This is a modern-English version of The Oxford Book of American Essays, originally written by unknown author(s). It has been thoroughly updated, including changes to sentence structure, words, spelling, and grammar—to ensure clarity for contemporary readers, while preserving the original spirit and nuance. If you click on a paragraph, you will see the original text that we modified, and you can toggle between the two versions.

Scroll to the bottom of this page and you will find a free ePUB download link for this book.


THE OXFORD BOOK OF
AMERICAN ESSAYS

CHOSEN BY

BRANDER MATTHEWS

Professor in Columbia University
Member of the American Academy of Arts and Letters




NEW YORK
OXFORD UNIVERSITY PRESS
AMERICAN BRANCH: 35 West 32nd Street
LONDON, TORONTO, MELBOURNE, AND BOMBAY
HUMPHREY MILFORD


1914

ALL RIGHTS RESERVED



Copyright, 1914
OXFORD UNIVERSITY PRESS
AMERICAN BRANCH

 

CHOSEN BY

BRANDER MATTHEWS

Professor at Columbia University
Member of the American Academy of Arts and Letters




NEW YORK
OXFORD UNIVERSITY PRESS
AMERICAN BRANCH: 35 W 32nd St
LONDON, TORONTO, MELBOURNE, AND BOMBAY
HUMPHREY MILFORD


1914

ALL RIGHTS RESERVED



Copyright, 1914
OXFORD UNIVERSITY PRESS
AMERICAN BRANCH

PAGE
Introv
The Ephemera: a Symbol of Human Life 1
Benjamin Franklin (1706-1790).
The Whistle4
Benjamin Franklin (1706-1790).
Dialogue Between Franklin and the Gout7
Benjamin Franklin (1706-1790).
Comfort for the Single Man15
Francis Hopkinson (1737-1791).
John Bull21
Washington Irving (1783-1859).
The Changeability of Literature34
Washington Irving (1783-1859).
Kean's Performance47
Richard Henry Dana (1787-1879).
Presents62
Ralph Waldo Emerson (1803-1882).
Uses of Great People67
Ralph Waldo Emerson (1803-1882).
Buds and Bird Sounds88
Nathaniel Hawthorne (1804-1864).
The Art of Writing99
Edgar Allan Poe (1809-1849).
Bread and the News114
Oliver Wendell Holmes (1809-1894).
Walking128
Henry David Thoreau (1817-1862).
On a Specific Attitude of Superiority in Foreigners166
James Russell Lowell (1819–1891).
Preface to "Leaves of Grass"194
Walt Whitman (1819–1892).
Literary Americanism213
Thomas Wentworth Higginson (1823-1911).
Thackeray in the U.S.229
George William Curtis (1824-1892).
Our March to D.C.241
Theodore Winthrop (1828-1861).
Calvin (A Study of Character)268
Charles Dudley Warner (1829-1900).
Five American Contributions to Society280
Charles William Eliot (1834- ).
I Speak of Dreams308
William Dean Howells (1837- ).
A Honeybee's Idyl331
John Burroughs (1837-present).
Cut-off Copples351
Clarence King (1842–1901).
The French Theatre368
Henry James (1843-Present).
Theocritus in Cape Cod394
Hamilton Wright Mabie (1846- ).
Colonialism in the U.S.410
Henry Cabot Lodge (1850- ).
NYC After Paris440
William Crary Brownell (1851-).
The Burden of Possessions467
Edward Sandford Martin (1856- ).
Free Trade vs. Protection in Literature475
Samuel McChord Crothers (1857- ).
Dante and the Bowery District480
Theodore Roosevelt (1858-1919).
The Uprising of the Unfit489
Nicholas Murray Butler (1862-Present).
On Translating the Odes of Horace497
William Peterfield Trent (1862- ).

INTRODUCTION

THE customary antithesis between "American" literature and "English" literature is unfortunate and misleading in that it seems to exclude American authors from the noble roll of those who have contributed to the literature of our mother-tongue. Of course, when we consider it carefully we cannot fail to see that the literature of a language is one and indivisible and that the nativity or the domicile of those who make it matters nothing. Just as Alexandrian literature is Greek, so American literature is English; and as Theocritus demands inclusion in any account of Greek literature, so Thoreau cannot be omitted from any history of English literature as a whole. The works of Anthony Hamilton and Rousseau, Mme. de Staël and M. Maeterlinck are not more indisputably a part of the literature of the French language than the works of Franklin and Emerson, of Hawthorne and Poe are part of the literature of the English language. Theocritus may never have set foot on the soil of Greece, and Thoreau never adventured himself on the Atlantic to visit the island-home of his ancestors; yet the former expressed himself in Greek and the latter in English,—and how can either be neglected in any comprehensive survey of the literature of his own tongue?

The usual contrast between "American" literature and "English" literature is unfortunate and misleading because it seems to exclude American authors from the esteemed list of those who have contributed to the literature of our language. When we think about it closely, it becomes clear that the literature of a language is one and indivisible, and the birthplace or residence of those who create it doesn't really matter. Just as Alexandrian literature is Greek, American literature is English; and just as Theocritus must be included in any discussion of Greek literature, Thoreau can't be overlooked in any history of English literature as a whole. The works of Anthony Hamilton and Rousseau, Mme. de Staël and M. Maeterlinck are just as much a part of French literature as the works of Franklin and Emerson, Hawthorne and Poe are part of English literature. Theocritus may never have stepped foot in Greece, and Thoreau never crossed the Atlantic to visit his ancestral homeland; yet the former wrote in Greek and the latter in English—so how can either be ignored in any thorough review of the literature of their respective languages?

None the less is it undeniable that there is in Franklin and Emerson, in Walt Whitman and Mark Twain, whatever their mastery of the idiom they inherited in common with Steele and Carlyle, with Browning and Lamb, an indefinable and intangible flavor which distinguishes the first group from the second. The men who have set down the feelings and the thoughts, the words and the deeds of the inhabitants of the United States have not quite the same outlook on life that we find in the men who have made a similar record in the British Isles. The social atmosphere is not the same on the opposite shores of the Western ocean; and the social organization is different in many particulars. For all that American literature is,—in the apt phrase of Mr. Howells,—"a condition of English literature," nevertheless it is also distinctively American. American writers are as loyal to the finer traditions of English literature as British writers are; they take an equal pride that they are also heirs of Chaucer and Dryden and subjects of King Shakspere; yet they cannot help having the note of their own nationality.

Nonetheless, it’s undeniable that there’s something unique in Franklin and Emerson, in Walt Whitman and Mark Twain, regardless of their mastery of the language they shared with Steele and Carlyle, with Browning and Lamb. There’s an undefinable and intangible quality that sets the first group apart from the second. The individuals who have captured the feelings and thoughts, the words and actions of the people living in the United States don’t quite share the same perspective on life as those who have created a similar record in the British Isles. The social atmosphere is different across the Western ocean, and the social structure varies in many ways. Although American literature is—using Mr. Howells’s apt phrase—"a condition of English literature," it is also distinctly American. American writers are as devoted to the rich traditions of English literature as British writers are; they take just as much pride in being heirs to Chaucer and Dryden and subjects of King Shakespeare; however, they naturally carry the essence of their own nationality.

Green, when he came to the Fourth of July, 1776, declared that thereafter the history of the English-speaking people flowed in two currents; and it is equally obvious that the stream of English literature has now two channels. The younger and the smaller is American—and what can we call the older and the ampler except British? A century ago there were published collections entitled the British Poets, the British Novelists, and the British Essayists; and the adjective was probably then chosen to indicate that these gatherings included the work of Scotch and Irish writers. Whatever the reason, the choice was happy; and the same adjective would serve to indicate now that the selections excluded the work of American writers. The British branch of English literature is the richer and the more various; yet the American branch has its own richness and its own variety, even if these qualities have revealed themselves only in the past hundred years.

When Green came to the Fourth of July, 1776, he stated that from that point on, the history of English-speaking people flowed in two separate streams; and it’s just as clear that English literature now has two channels. The younger and smaller channel is American—and what can we call the older and larger one except British? A century ago, there were published collections titled the British Poets, the British Novelists, and the British Essayists; and the term was likely chosen to show that these collections included works by Scottish and Irish writers. Whatever the reason, the choice was fitting; and the same term would now serve to indicate that the selections do not include works by American writers. The British branch of English literature is richer and more diverse; yet the American branch has its own richness and variety, even if these qualities have only come to light in the last hundred years.

It may be noted also that although American literature has not been adorned by so great a galaxy of brilliant names as illumined British literature in the nineteenth century, it has had the good fortune to possess more authors of cosmopolitan fame than can be found in the German literature of the past hundred years, in the Italian, or in the Spanish. A forgotten American essayist once asserted that "foreign nations are a contemporaneous posterity," and even if this smart saying is not to be taken too literally, it has its significance. There is therefore food for thought in the fact that at least half a dozen, not to say half a score, of American authors have won wide popularity outside the limits of their own language,—a statement which could not be made of as many German or Italian or Spanish authors of the nineteenth century. From the death of Goethe to the arrival of the playwrights of the present generation, perhaps Heine is the sole German writer either of prose or of verse who has established his reputation broadly among the readers of other tongues than his own. And not more than one or two Spanish or Italian authors have been received even by their fellow Latins, as warmly as the French and the Germans have welcomed Cooper and Poe, Emerson and Mark Twain.

It's worth noting that while American literature might not have boasted as many iconic names as British literature did in the nineteenth century, it has been fortunate to feature more authors with global recognition than what we can find in German, Italian, or Spanish literature from the last hundred years. An overlooked American essayist once claimed that "foreign nations are a contemporaneous posterity," and while this witty remark shouldn't be taken too literally, it has its significance. So, it's interesting to observe that at least six, if not twenty, American authors have gained considerable popularity beyond their own language, a claim that can't be made for as many German, Italian, or Spanish authors from the nineteenth century. From Goethe's death to the current generation of playwrights, perhaps Heine is the only German writer, in prose or poetry, who has built a broad reputation among readers of other languages. Furthermore, no more than one or two Spanish or Italian authors have been embraced as warmly by their fellow Latins as the French and Germans have welcomed Cooper, Poe, Emerson, and Mark Twain.

It is to present typical and characteristic examples of the American contribution to English literature in the essay-form that this volume has been prepared. Perhaps the term "essay-form" is not happily chosen since the charm of the essay lies in the fact that it is not formal, that it may be whimsical in its point of departure, and capricious in its ramblings after it has got itself under way. Even the Essay is itself a chameleon, changing color while we study it. There is little in common between Locke’s austere Essay on the Human Understanding and Lamb’s fantastic and frolicsome essay on Roast Pig. He would be bold indeed who should take compass and chain to measure off the precise territory of the Essay and to mark with scientific exactness the boundaries which separate it from the Address on the one side and from the Letter on the other.

This volume has been created to showcase typical and characteristic examples of the American contribution to English literature in essay form. Perhaps the term "essay form" isn't the best choice since the appeal of the essay lies in its informality, allowing it to start whimsically and wander freely once it gets going. The essay itself is like a chameleon, changing its colors as we analyze it. There’s not much in common between Locke’s serious Essay on the Human Understanding and Lamb’s playful and fanciful essay on Roast Pig. It would take a bold person to attempt to use a compass and chain to precisely define the territory of the Essay and accurately mark the boundaries that separate it from an Address on one side and a Letter on the other.

"Some (there are) that turn over all books and are equally searching in all papers," said Ben Jonson; "that write out of what they presently find or meet, without choice.... Such are all the Essayists, ever their master Montaigne." Bacon and Emerson followed in the footsteps of Montaigne, and present us with the results of their browsings among books and of their own dispersed meditations. In their hands the essay lacks cohesion and unity; it is essentially discursive. Montaigne never stuck to his text, when he had one; and the paragraphs of any of Emerson’s essays might be shuffled without increasing their fortuitous discontinuity.

"Some people go through every book and are just as thorough with all kinds of articles," said Ben Jonson; "that write based on whatever they find or come across, without any selection.... This includes all Essayists, especially their mentor Montaigne." Bacon and Emerson followed in Montaigne's footsteps, sharing the outcomes of their explorations among books and their own scattered thoughts. In their hands, the essay lacks coherence and consistency; it’s mainly conversational. Montaigne never stuck to his text when he had one; and the paragraphs of any of Emerson’s essays could be mixed up without affecting their random disconnection.

After Montaigne and Bacon came Steele and Addison, in whose hands the essay broadened its scope and took on a new aspect. The eighteenth century essay is so various that it may be accepted as the forerunner of the nineteenth century magazine, with its character-sketches and its brief tales, its literary and dramatic criticism, its obituary commemorations and its serial stories—for what but a serial story is the succession of papers devoted to the sayings and doings of Sir Roger? It was a new departure, although the writers of the Tatler and of the Spectator had profited by the Conversations of Walton and by the Characters of La Bruyère, by the epistles of Horace and by the comedies of Molière. (Has it ever been pointed out that the method of Steele and Addison in depicting Sir Roger is curiously akin to the method of Molière in presenting M. Jourdain?)

After Montaigne and Bacon came Steele and Addison, who expanded the essay's reach and gave it a fresh perspective. The 18th-century essay is so diverse that it can be seen as the precursor to the 19th-century magazine, with its character sketches, short stories, literary and dramatic critiques, obituaries, and serialized tales—because what else is the series of papers about the sayings and actions of Sir Roger but a serialized story? It was a significant change, even though the writers of the Tatler and Spectator drew inspiration from Walton's Conversations, La Bruyère's Characters, Horace's epistles, and Molière's comedies. (Has anyone pointed out that Steele and Addison’s way of portraying Sir Roger is strangely similar to Molière’s approach with M. Jourdain?)

The delightful form of poetry which we call by a French name, vers de société, (although it has flourished more abundantly in English literature than in French) and which Mr. Austin Dobson, one of its supreme masters, prefers to call by Cowper’s term, "familiar verse," may be accepted as the metrical equivalent of the prose essay as this was developed and expanded by the English writers of the eighteenth century. And as the familiar verse of our language is ampler and richer than that of any other tongue, so also is the familiar essay. Indeed, the essay is one of the most characteristic expressions of the quality of our race. In its ease and its lightness and its variety, it is almost unthinkable in German; and even in French it is far less frequent than in English and far less assiduously cultivated.

The charming form of poetry that we refer to by the French name vers de société (even though it has thrived more in English literature than in French) and which Mr. Austin Dobson, one of its top masters, prefers to call by Cowper’s term "familiar verse," can be seen as the poetic equivalent of the prose essay as developed and expanded by English writers in the eighteenth century. Just as our familiar verse is broader and richer than that of any other language, so is the familiar essay. In fact, the essay is one of the most distinctive expressions of our culture. Its ease, lightness, and variety make it almost unimaginable in German; and even in French, it's much less common than in English and not as diligently nurtured.

As Emerson trod in the footsteps of Bacon so Washington Irving walked in the trail blazed by Steele and Addison and Goldsmith; and Franklin earlier, although his essays are in fact only letters, had revealed his possession of the special quality the essay demands,—the playful wisdom of a man of the world who is also a man of letters. Indeed, Dr. Franklin was far better fitted to shine as an essayist than his more ponderous contemporary, Dr. Johnson; certainly Franklin would never have "made little fishes talk like whales." And in the nineteenth century the American branch of English literature has had a group of essayists less numerous than that which adorned the British branch, but not less interesting or less important to their own people.

As Emerson followed in Bacon's footsteps, Washington Irving walked the path paved by Steele, Addison, and Goldsmith; and Franklin, earlier on, though his essays were really just letters, showed he had the unique quality that essays require—the playful wisdom of someone who is both worldly and literate. In fact, Dr. Franklin was much better suited to excel as an essayist than his heavier contemporary, Dr. Johnson; Franklin would certainly never have "made little fishes talk like whales." In the nineteenth century, the American side of English literature produced a group of essayists that was fewer in number than those in the British side, but they were just as interesting and just as important to their own country.

Among these American essayists we may find all sorts and conditions of writers,—poets adventuring themselves in prose, novelists eschewing story-telling, statesmen turning for a moment to matters of less weight, men of science and men of affairs chatting about themselves and airing their opinions at large. In their hands, as in the hands of their British contemporaries, the essay remains infinitely various, refusing to conform to any single type, and insisting on being itself and on expressing its author. We find in the best of these American essayists the familiar style and the everyday vocabulary, the apparent simplicity and the seeming absence of effort, the horror of pedantry and the scorn of affectation, which are the abiding characteristics of the true essay. We find also the flavor of good talk, of the sprightly conversation that may sparkle in front of a wood fire and that often vanishes with the curling blue smoke.

Among these American essayists, we can find all kinds of writers—poets trying their hand at prose, novelists avoiding traditional storytelling, statesmen briefly discussing lighter topics, and scientists and businesspeople talking about themselves and sharing their opinions openly. Like their British counterparts, the essay in their hands remains incredibly diverse, refusing to fit into any single mold and insisting on being true to itself and its author. In the best of these American essayists, we see a familiar style and everyday vocabulary, an apparent simplicity and a seeming lack of effort, along with a disdain for pedantry and a rejection of pretense, which are the enduring features of a genuine essay. We also catch a hint of good conversation, that lively talk that can sparkle by a wood fire and often fades away with the curling blue smoke.

It is the bounden duty of every maker of an anthology to set forth the principles that have guided him in the choice of the examples he is proffering to the public. The present editor has excluded purely literary criticism, as not quite falling within the boundaries of the essay, properly so-called. Then he has avoided all set orations, although he has not hesitated to include more than one paper originally prepared to be read aloud by its writer, because these examples seemed to him to fall within the boundaries of the essay. (Nearly all of Emerson’s essays, it may be noted, had been lectures in an early stage of their existence.) Furthermore he has omitted all fiction, strictly to be so termed, although he would gladly have welcomed an apologue like Mark Twain’s "Traveling with a Reformer," which is essentially an essay despite its use of dialogue. He has included also Franklin’s "Dialogue with the Gout," which is instinct with the true spirit of the essay; and he has accepted as essays Franklin’s "Ephemera" and "The Whistle," although they were both of them letters to the same lady. As the essay flowers out of leisure and out of culture, and as there has been in the United States no long background of easy tranquillity, there is in the American branch of English literature a relative deficiency in certain of the lighter forms of the essay more abundantly represented in the British branch; and therefore the less frequent examples of these lighter forms have here been companioned by graver discussions, never grave enough, however, to be described as disquisitions. Finally, every selection is presented entire, except that Dana’s paper on Kean’s acting has been shorn of a needless preparatory note.

It's the responsibility of every anthology creator to explain the principles behind their selection of works they're presenting to the public. The current editor has left out purely literary criticism, as it doesn’t really fit the definition of an essay. He has also steered clear of formal speeches, although he hasn’t shied away from including several pieces originally meant to be read aloud by their authors, since those works seemed appropriate for the essay format. (It's worth noting that nearly all of Emerson's essays started as lectures.) Additionally, he has excluded all strictly defined fiction, although he would have happily included a fable like Mark Twain’s "Traveling with a Reformer," which is basically an essay even though it features dialogue. He has also included Franklin’s "Dialogue with the Gout," which truly captures the essence of the essay; likewise, he accepted Franklin’s "Ephemera" and "The Whistle," even though they were both letters to the same woman. Since essays grow from leisure and culture, and given that the United States hasn't historically enjoyed a long period of calm, American English literature tends to lack some of the lighter essay forms that are more common in British literature. As a result, the rarer instances of these lighter forms are accompanied by more serious discussions, though never serious enough to be called treatises. Lastly, every selection is presented in full, except that Dana’s paper on Kean’s acting has been stripped of an unnecessary introductory note.

BRANDER MATTHEWS.

BRANDER MATTHEWS.

[The essays by Ralph Waldo Emerson, Nathaniel Hawthorne, Oliver Wendell Holmes, Henry D. Thoreau, Thomas Wentworth Higginson, Charles Dudley Warner, and John Burroughs, are used by permission of, and by arrangement with, The Houghton Mifflin Company, the authorized publishers of their works. The essays by George William Curtis and by William Dean Howells are used by permission of Harper and Brothers. The essays by William Crary Brownell, Edward Sanford Martin, Nicholas Murray Butler, and Theodore Roosevelt are printed by permission of Charles Scribner’s Sons, the essay by Charles William Eliot by permission of The Century Company, and that by Henry James by permission of The Macmillan Company.]

[The essays by Ralph Waldo Emerson, Nathaniel Hawthorne, Oliver Wendell Holmes, Henry D. Thoreau, Thomas Wentworth Higginson, Charles Dudley Warner, and John Burroughs are used with permission and arrangements made with The Houghton Mifflin Company, the authorized publishers of their works. The essays by George William Curtis and William Dean Howells are used with permission from Harper and Brothers. The essays by William Crary Brownell, Edward Sanford Martin, Nicholas Murray Butler, and Theodore Roosevelt are printed with permission from Charles Scribner’s Sons, the essay by Charles William Eliot with permission from The Century Company, and that by Henry James with permission from The Macmillan Company.]

THE EPHEMERA: AN EMBLEM OF HUMAN LIFE

TO MADAME BRILLON, OF PASSY

BENJAMIN FRANKLIN

YOU may remember, my dear friend, that when we lately spent that happy day in the delightful garden and sweet society of the Moulin Joly, I stopped a little in one of our walks, and stayed some time behind the company. We had been shown numberless skeletons of a kind of little fly, called an ephemera, whose successive generations, we were told, were bred and expired within the day. I happened to see a living company of them on a leaf, who appeared to be engaged in conversation. You know I understand all the inferior animal tongues. My too great application to the study of them is the best excuse I can give for the little progress I have made in your charming language. I listened through curiosity to the discourse of these little creatures; but as they, in their national vivacity, spoke three or four together, I could make but little of their conversation. I found, however, by some broken expressions that I heard now and then, they were disputing warmly on the merit of two foreign musicians, one a cousin, the other a moscheto; in which dispute they spent their time, seemingly as regardless of the shortness of life as if they had been sure of living a month. Happy people! thought I; you are certainly under a wise, just, and mild government, since you have no public grievances to complain of, nor any subject of contention but the perfections and imperfections of foreign music. I turned my head from them to an old gray-headed one, who was single on another leaf, and talking to himself. Being amused with his soliloquy, I put it down in writing, in hopes it will likewise amuse her to whom I am so much indebted for the most pleasing of all amusements, her delicious company and heavenly harmony.

You may remember, my dear friend, that when we recently spent that lovely day in the beautiful garden and delightful company of the Moulin Joly, I paused briefly during one of our walks and lingered behind the group for a while. We had seen countless skeletons of a kind of tiny fly called an ephemera, whose successive generations, we were told, live and die within a single day. I happened to spot a group of them on a leaf, seemingly engaged in conversation. You know I can understand all the animal languages. My excessive dedication to studying them is the best explanation I have for my limited progress in your wonderful language. Out of curiosity, I listened to the chatter of these little creatures, but since they talked three or four at a time with their usual liveliness, I could make sense of very little. However, I gathered from some snippets I caught occasionally that they were having a heated debate about the merits of two foreign musicians, one a cousin, the other a moscheto; and they spent their time in this argument as if they were sure they would live for a month. Happy creatures! I thought; you are clearly under a wise, fair, and gentle rule, since you have no public grievances to complain about, nor any subject of contention other than the strengths and weaknesses of foreign music. I then turned my attention to an old gray-headed one who was alone on another leaf, talking to himself. Amused by his soliloquy, I wrote it down, hoping it will also entertain the person to whom I owe the most enjoyable of all pleasures, her delightful company and heavenly harmony.

"It was," said he, "the opinion of learned philosophers of our race, who lived and flourished long before my time, that this vast world, the Moulin Joly, could not itself subsist more than eighteen hours; and I think there was some foundation for that opinion, since, by the apparent motion of the great luminary that gives life to all nature, and which in my time has evidently declined considerably towards the ocean at the end of our earth, it must then finish its course, be extinguished in the waters that surround us, and leave the world in cold and darkness, necessarily producing universal death and destruction. I have lived seven of those hours, a great age, being no less than four hundred and twenty minutes of time. How very few of us continue so long! I have seen generations born, flourish, and expire. My present friends are the children and grandchildren of the friends of my youth, who are now, alas, no more! And I must soon follow them; for, by the course of nature, though still in health, I cannot expect to live above seven or eight minutes longer. What now avails all my toil and labor in amassing honey-dew on this leaf, which I cannot live to enjoy! What the political struggles I have been engaged in for the good of my compatriot inhabitants of this bush, or my philosophical studies for the benefit of our race in general! for in politics what can laws do without morals? Our present race of ephemeræ will in a course of minutes become corrupt, like those of other and older bushes, and consequently as wretched. And in philosophy how small our progress! Alas! art is long, and life is short! My friends would comfort me with the idea of a name they say I shall leave behind me; and they tell me I have lived long enough to nature and to glory. But what will fame be to an ephemera who no longer exists? And what will become of all history in the eighteenth hour, when the world itself, even the whole Moulin Joly, shall come to its end and be buried in universal ruin?"

"It was," he said, "the belief of wise philosophers from our race, who lived long before my time, that this vast world, the Moulin Joly, could not last more than eighteen hours. I believe there was some truth to that idea, as, given the visible movement of the great light that gives life to all nature, which in my time has noticeably shifted toward the ocean at the edge of our world, it must eventually finish its journey, be extinguished in the waters surrounding us, and leave the world in cold and darkness, inevitably causing universal death and destruction. I have lived seven of those hours, quite a long time, amounting to no less than four hundred and twenty minutes. How few of us last that long! I have witnessed generations born, thrive, and pass away. My current friends are the children and grandchildren of the friends from my youth, who are now, sadly, gone! And I must soon join them; for, by the natural course of events, even though I am still healthy, I cannot expect to live more than seven or eight minutes longer. What good does all my effort in gathering honeydew on this leaf do me if I can't enjoy it! What about the political struggles I've participated in for the benefit of my fellow inhabitants of this bush, or my philosophical studies for the overall good of our race! In politics, what can laws achieve without morals? Our current generation of ephemeræ will soon become corrupt, just like those from other, older bushes, and therefore equally miserable. And in philosophy, our progress is so minimal! Alas! art is long, and life is short! My friends would reassure me with the notion of a legacy they claim I will leave behind; they say I have lived long enough for nature and for glory. But what will fame mean to an ephemera who no longer exists? And what will happen to all history in the eighteenth hour, when the world itself, the entire Moulin Joly, comes to an end and is buried in universal ruin?"

To me, after all my eager pursuits, no solid pleasures now remain, but the reflection of a long life spent in meaning well, the sensible conversation of a few good lady ephemeræ, and now and then a kind smile and a tune from the ever amiable Brillante.

To me, after all my eager efforts, there are no real pleasures left, just the memory of a long life spent trying to do good, the thoughtful conversations with a few wonderful women, and occasionally a friendly smile and a song from the always charming Brillante.

THE WHISTLE

TO MADAME BRILLON

BENJAMIN FRANKLIN

I RECEIVED my dear friend’s two letters, one for Wednesday and one for Saturday. This is again Wednesday. I do not deserve one for to-day, because I have not answered the former. But, indolent as I am, and averse to writing, the fear of having no more of your pleasing epistles, if I do not contribute to the correspondence, obliges me to take up my pen; and as Mr. B. has kindly sent me word that he sets out to-morrow to see you, instead of spending this Wednesday evening, as I have done its namesakes, in your delightful company, I sit down to spend it in thinking of you, in writing to you, and in reading over and over again your letters.

I RECEIVED two letters from my dear friend, one for Wednesday and one for Saturday. Today is Wednesday again. I don’t deserve one for today because I haven’t responded to the last one. But, as lazy as I am and not really wanting to write, the fear of not getting more of your lovely letters if I don’t keep up with our correspondence pushes me to pick up my pen. And since Mr. B. has kindly let me know that he’s heading out to see you tomorrow, instead of spending this Wednesday evening, like I have with others, in your wonderful company, I’m sitting down to think of you, write to you, and read your letters over and over again.

I am charmed with your description of Paradise, and with your plan of living there; and I approve much of your conclusion, that, in the meantime, we should draw all the good we can from this world. In my opinion we might all draw more good from it than we do, and suffer less evil, if we would take care not to give too much for whistles. For to me it seems that most of the unhappy people we meet with are become so by neglect of that caution.

I’m really taken by your description of Paradise and your plan to live there. I completely agree with your conclusion that, for now, we should get as much good as we can from this world. I think we could all benefit more from it than we do and endure less suffering if we were careful not to pay too much for whistles. It seems to me that most of the unhappy people we encounter have become that way because they didn’t heed that advice.

You ask what I mean? You love stories, and will excuse my telling one of myself.

You ask what I mean? You love stories, and you'll understand if I share one about myself.

When I was a child of seven years old, my friends, on a holiday, filled my pocket with coppers. I went directly to a shop where they sold toys for children; and being charmed with the sound of a whistle, that I met by the way in the hands of another boy, I voluntarily offered and gave all my money for one. I then came home, and went whistling all over the house, much pleased with my whistle, but disturbing all the family. My brothers, and sisters, and cousins, understanding the bargain I had made, told me I had given four times as much for it as it was worth; put me in mind what good things I might have bought with the rest of the money; and laughed at me so much for my folly, that I cried with vexation; and the reflection gave me more chagrin than the whistle gave me pleasure.

When I was seven, my friends filled my pocket with coins on a holiday. I went straight to a toy shop for kids and, enchanted by the sound of a whistle that I saw in the hands of another boy, I eagerly offered all my money for one. I came home and started whistling throughout the house, happy with my whistle, but I was annoying everyone in the family. My siblings and cousins, knowing what I had done, told me I paid four times what it was worth, reminded me of all the cool things I could’ve bought with the rest of my money, and laughed at me so much for my foolishness that I ended up crying out of frustration. The realization brought me more sadness than the whistle brought me joy.

This, however, was afterwards of use to me, the impression continuing on my mind; so that often, when I was tempted to buy some unnecessary thing, I said to myself, Don’t give too much for the whistle; and I saved my money.

This, however, later helped me, as the impression stayed with me; so whenever I was tempted to buy something unnecessary, I reminded myself, Don’t pay too much for the whistle; and I saved my money.

As I grew up, came into the world, and observed the actions of men, I thought I met with many, very many, who gave too much for the whistle.

As I grew up, entered the world, and watched how people behaved, I realized I encountered many, very many, who paid too much for the whistle.

When I saw one too ambitious of court favor, sacrificing his time in attendance on levees, his repose, his liberty, his virtue, and perhaps his friends, to attain it, I have said to myself, This man gives too much for his whistle.

When I saw someone too eager for court approval, giving up his time at gatherings, his rest, his freedom, his integrity, and maybe even his friends to get it, I thought to myself, This man is paying too much for his whistle.

When I saw another fond of popularity, constantly employing himself in political bustles, neglecting his own affairs, and ruining them by that neglect, He pays, indeed, said I, too much for his whistle.

When I saw someone else who was really popular, always getting involved in political chaos, ignoring his own business, and ruining it by that neglect, He pays, indeed, I said, too much for his whistle.

If I knew a miser, who gave up every kind of comfortable living, all the pleasure of doing good to others, all the esteem of his fellow-citizens, and the joys of benevolent friendship, for the sake of accumulating wealth, Poor man, said I, you pay too much for your whistle.

If I knew a stingy person who gave up all the comforts of life, the joy of helping others, the respect of his community, and the happiness of genuine friendship just to amass wealth, Poor man, I’d say, you’re paying too much for your whistle.

When I met with a man of pleasure, sacrificing every laudable improvement of the mind, or of his fortune, to mere corporeal sensations, and ruining his health in their pursuit, Mistaken man, said I, you are providing pain for yourself, instead of pleasure; you give too much for your whistle.

When I met a guy who lived for pleasure, giving up any worthwhile growth of his mind or his wealth for just physical sensations, and destroying his health in the process, Confused guy, I said, you’re bringing pain upon yourself instead of pleasure; you’re paying too much for your toy.

If I see one fond of appearance, or fine clothes, fine houses, fine furniture, fine equipages, all above his fortune, for which he contracts debts, and ends his career in a prison, Alas! say I, he has paid dear, very dear, for his whistle.

If I see someone who loves looks, nice clothes, fancy houses, elegant furniture, and luxurious carriages—things that are beyond his means, for which he goes into debt and ends up in prison, oh no! I say, he has paid a high price, a very high price, for his little indulgence.

When I see a beautiful sweet-tempered girl married to an ill-natured brute of a husband, What a pity, say I, that she should pay so much for a whistle!

When I see a lovely, kind girl married to a nasty brute of a husband, What a pity, I say, that she should pay so much for a whistle!

In short, I conceive that great part of the miseries of mankind are brought upon them by the false estimates they have made of the value of things, and by their giving too much for their whistles.

In short, I believe that a large part of humanity's suffering comes from the incorrect judgments they make about the value of things, and by their overpaying for their whistles.

Yet I ought to have charity for these unhappy people, when I consider that, with all this wisdom of which I am boasting, there are certain things in the world so tempting, for example, the apples of King John, which happily are not to be bought; for if they were put to sale by auction, I might very easily be led to ruin myself in the purchase, and find that I had once more given too much for the whistle.

Yet I should feel compassion for these unfortunate people when I think about the fact that, despite all this wisdom I brag about, there are certain things in the world that are so enticing, like the apples of King John, which thankfully aren't for sale; because if they were auctioned off, I could easily be tempted to ruin myself by buying them and end up realizing I once again paid too much for the whistle.

Adieu, my dear friend, and believe me ever yours very sincerely and with unalterable affection.

Goodbye, my dear friend, and know that I am always sincerely yours with constant affection.

DIALOGUE BETWEEN FRANKLIN AND THE GOUT

Midnight, 22 October, 1780.

Midnight, October 22, 1780.

FRANKLIN. Eh! Oh! eh! What have I done to merit these cruel sufferings?

FRANKLIN. Ugh! Oh! Ugh! What have I done to deserve this terrible pain?

GOUT. Many things; you have ate and drank too freely, and too much indulged those legs of yours in their indolence.

GOUT. You've had way too much to eat and drink, and you've let those legs of yours be lazy for too long.

FRANKLIN. Who is it that accuses me?

FRANKLIN. Who's calling me out?

GOUT. It is I, even I, the Gout.

Gout. It's me, the Gout.

FRANKLIN. What! my enemy in person?

FRANKLIN. What! My enemy here in person?

GOUT. No, not your enemy.

GOUT. No, not your foe.

FRANKLIN. I repeat it, my enemy; for you would not only torment my body to death, but ruin my good name; you reproach me as a glutton and a tippler; now all the world, that knows me, will allow that I am neither the one nor the other.

FRANKLIN. I say it again, my enemy; because you would not only torture my body to death, but also destroy my reputation; you accuse me of being a glutton and a drunkard; but everyone who knows me will agree that I am neither.

GOUT. The world may think as it pleases; it is always very complaisant to itself, and sometimes to its friends; but I very well know that the quantity of meat and drink proper for a man, who takes a reasonable degree of exercise, would be too much for another, who never takes any.

GOUT. The world can think whatever it wants; it's usually very accommodating to itself and occasionally to its friends; but I know for sure that the amount of food and drink that’s right for someone who gets a decent amount of exercise would be way too much for someone who never moves at all.

FRANKLIN. I take—eh! oh!—as much exercise—eh!—as I can, Madam Gout. You know my sedentary state, and on that account, it would seem, Madam Gout, as if you might spare me a little, seeing it is not altogether my own fault.

FRANKLIN. I get—uh! oh!—as much exercise—uh!—as I can, Ms. Gout. You know how inactive I am, and because of that, it seems, Ms. Gout, that you could cut me some slack, since it's not entirely my doing.

GOUT. Not a jot; your rhetoric and your politeness are thrown away; your apology avails nothing. If your situation in life is a sedentary one, your amusements, your recreation, at least, should be active. You ought to walk or ride; or, if the weather prevents that, play at billiards. But let us examine your course of life. While the mornings are long, and you have leisure to go abroad, what do you do? Why, instead of gaining an appetite for breakfast, by salutary exercise, you amuse yourself with books, pamphlets, or newspapers, which commonly are not worth the reading. Yet you eat an inordinate breakfast, four dishes of tea, with cream, and one or two buttered toasts, with slices of hung beef, which I fancy are not things the most easily digested. Immediately afterwards you sit down to write at your desk, or converse with persons who apply to you on business. Thus the time passes till one, without any kind of bodily exercise. But all this I could pardon, in regard, as you say, to your sedentary condition. But what is your practice after dinner? Walking in the beautiful gardens of those friends with whom you have dined would be the choice of men of sense; yours is to be fixed down to chess, where you are found engaged for two or three hours! This is your perpetual recreation, which is the least eligible of any for a sedentary man, because, instead of accelerating the motion of the fluids, the rigid attention it requires helps to retard the circulation and obstruct internal secretions. Wrapt in the speculations of this wretched game, you destroy your constitution. What can be expected from such a course of living, but a body replete with stagnant humors, ready to fall prey to all kinds of dangerous maladies, if I, the Gout, did not occasionally bring you relief by agitating those humors, and so purifying or dissipating them? If it was in some nook or alley in Paris, deprived of walks, that you played awhile at chess after dinner, this might be excusable; but the same taste prevails with you in Passy, Auteuil, Montmartre, or Sanoy, places where there are the finest gardens and walks, a pure air, beautiful women, and most agreeable and instructive conversation; all which you might enjoy by frequenting the walks. But these are rejected for this abominable game of chess. Fie, then, Mr. Franklin! But amidst my instructions, I had almost forgot to administer my wholesome corrections; so take that twinge,—and that.

GOUT. Not at all; your fancy words and politeness are pointless; your apology means nothing. If your situation in life is a sedentary one, your leisure activities should at least be physical. You should walk or ride; or, if the weather doesn’t allow it, play billiards. But let’s look at how you spend your days. During the long mornings when you have time to go outside, what do you do? Instead of working up an appetite for breakfast through some healthy exercise, you occupy yourself with books, pamphlets, or newspapers, which are usually not worth reading. Yet you still have an excessive breakfast—four cups of tea with cream, and one or two buttered toasts with slices of cured beef, which I imagine are not the easiest things to digest. Right after that, you sit down to write at your desk or chat with people who come to you for business. This way, the time goes by until one o'clock without any physical activity. I could let that slide, considering, as you say, your sedentary lifestyle. But what do you do after dinner? Smart people would choose to walk in the beautiful gardens of those friends with whom you dined; instead, you stay glued to a chessboard for two or three hours! This is your constant pastime, which is the worst choice for someone who doesn’t move much, because, instead of speeding up your circulation, the intense focus it requires only slows it down and blocks your body’s internal functions. Lost in the thoughts of this dreadful game, you’re ruining your health. What can you expect from such a lifestyle except for a body filled with stagnant fluids, ready to fall victim to all kinds of illnesses, if I, the Gout, didn’t occasionally relieve you by stirring those fluids, thus cleansing or dispersing them? If you played chess after dinner in some hidden corner of Paris, away from walks, that might be understandable; but you have the same habit in Passy, Auteuil, Montmartre, or Sanoy, places with the best gardens and paths, fresh air, beautiful women, and wonderful, engaging conversations—all of which you could enjoy by taking a stroll. But you choose that dreadful game of chess instead. Shame on you, Mr. Franklin! In the midst of my advice, I almost forgot to give you my necessary corrections; so take that twinge,—and that.

FRANKLIN. Oh! eh! oh! Ohhh! As much instruction as you please, Madam Gout, and as many reproaches; but pray, Madam, a truce with your corrections!

FRANKLIN. Oh! eh! oh! Ohhh! Go ahead and share all the lessons you want, Madam Gout, and all the criticisms too; but please, Madam, let's have a break from your corrections!

GOUT. No, Sir, no,—I will not abate a particle of what is so much for your good,—therefore——

GOUT. No, Sir, no—I won’t reduce anything of what is so beneficial for you—therefore——

FRANKLIN. Oh! ehhh!—It is not fair to say I take no exercise, when I do very often, going out to dine and returning in my carriage.

FRANKLIN. Oh! ehhh!—It's not fair to claim that I don't get any exercise when I often go out to dinner and come back in my carriage.

GOUT. That, of all imaginable exercises, is the most slight and insignificant, if you allude to the motion of a carriage suspended on springs. By observing the degree of heat obtained by different kinds of motion, we may form an estimate of the quantity of exercise given by each. Thus, for example, if you turn out to walk in winter with cold feet, in an hour’s time you will be in a glow all over; ride on horseback, the same effect will scarcely be perceived by four hours' round trotting; but if you loll in a carriage, such as you have mentioned, you may travel all day and gladly enter the last inn to warm your feet by a fire. Flatter yourself then no longer, that half an hour’s airing in your carriage deserves the name of exercise. Providence has appointed few to roll in carriages, while he has given to all a pair of legs, which are machines infinitely more commodious and serviceable. Be grateful, then, and make a proper use of yours. Would you know how they forward the circulation of your fluids, in the very action of transporting you from place to place; observe when you walk, that all your weight is alternately thrown from one leg to the other; this occasions a great pressure on the vessels of the foot, and repels their contents; when relieved, by the weight being thrown on the other foot, the vessels of the first are allowed to replenish, and, by a return of this weight, this repulsion again succeeds; thus accelerating the circulation of the blood. The heat produced in any given time depends on the degree of this acceleration; the fluids are shaken, the humors attenuated, the secretions facilitated, and all goes well; the cheeks are ruddy, and health is established. Behold your fair friend at Auteuil; a lady who received from bounteous nature more really useful science than half a dozen such pretenders to philosophy as you have been able to extract from all your books. When she honors you with a visit, it is on foot. She walks all hours of the day, and leaves indolence, and its concomitant maladies, to be endured by her horses. In this, see at once the preservative of her health and personal charms. But when you go to Auteuil, you must have your carriage, though it is no farther from Passy to Auteuil than from Auteuil to Passy.

GOUT. Of all possible exercises, this is the most trivial and unimportant, especially if you’re referring to being in a carriage that’s cushioned by springs. By looking at the amount of heat produced by different types of movement, we can gauge how much exercise each gives. For instance, if you decide to take a walk in the winter with cold feet, you’ll be warm all over after an hour; but if you ride a horse, you won’t feel the same warmth even after four hours of trotting. If you lounge in a carriage like the one you mentioned, you might travel all day and then happily sit by a fire at the last inn to warm your feet. Stop thinking that half an hour in your carriage counts as exercise. Very few people are meant to travel in carriages, while everyone has been given a pair of legs, which are much more practical and useful. So, be thankful and make good use of yours. Do you want to see how they help with blood circulation just by moving you from one place to another? When you walk, you shift your weight from one leg to the other, which puts pressure on the blood vessels in your feet, pushing their contents forward. When the weight shifts to the other foot, the first foot's vessels can refill, and this cycle continues, speeding up the flow of blood. The warmth that builds up in a given time depends on how fast this process happens; your fluids get stirred up, your humors thin out, and secretions become easier, promoting overall well-being; your cheeks glow, and you stay healthy. Look at your beautiful friend at Auteuil; a woman who received more practical wisdom from nature than many pretenders to knowledge you could find in all your reading. When she visits you, she walks. She spends all day on her feet, leaving laziness and its associated problems to her horses. In this, you see her way to maintain her health and charm. But when you go to Auteuil, you need your carriage, even though the distance from Passy to Auteuil is just as short as from Auteuil to Passy.

FRANKLIN. Your reasonings grow very tiresome.

FRANKLIN. Your arguments are getting really annoying.

GOUT. I stand corrected. I will be silent and continue my office; take that, and that.

GOUT. I stand corrected. I'll be quiet and keep doing my work; take that, and that.

FRANKLIN. Oh! Ohh! Talk on, I pray you.

FRANKLIN. Oh! Ohh! Please, go on.

GOUT. No, no; I have a good number of twinges for you to-night, and you may be sure of some more to-morrow.

GOUT. No, no; I’ve got plenty of surprises for you tonight, and I can promise you’ll get more tomorrow.

FRANKLIN. What, with such a fever! I shall go distracted. Oh! eh! Can no one bear it for me?

FRANKLIN. What a fever! This is driving me crazy. Oh! Can’t anyone stand it for me?

GOUT. Ask that of your horses; they have served you faithfully.

GOUT. Ask your horses about that; they've been loyal to you.

FRANKLIN. How can you so cruelly sport with my torments?

FRANKLIN. How can you be so cruel as to play with my suffering?

GOUT. Sport! I am very serious. I have here a list of offenses against your own health distinctly written, and can justify every stroke inflicted on you.

GOUT. Sport! I'm not joking. I have a list of ways you’re harming your own health clearly laid out, and I can explain every single thing I've pointed out.

FRANKLIN. Read it then.

FRANKLIN. Read it then.

GOUT. It is too long a detail; but I will briefly mention some particulars.

GOUT. It's a lengthy story, but I'll quickly touch on a few details.

FRANKLIN. Proceed. I am all attention.

FRANKLIN. Go ahead. I'm all ears.

GOUT. Do you remember how often you have promised yourself, the following morning, a walk in the grove of Boulogne, in the garden de la Muette, or in your own garden, and have violated your promise, alleging, at one time, it was too cold, at another too warm, too windy, too moist, or what else you pleased; when in truth it was too nothing, but your insuperable love of ease?

GOUT. Do you remember how many times you’ve promised yourself that the next morning you’d take a walk in the Boulogne grove, in the garden de la Muette, or in your own garden, and then broke that promise, claiming it was too cold one time, too warm another, too windy, too humid, or whatever other excuse you could find; when in reality, it was not too anything except your unbreakable love for comfort?

FRANKLIN. That I confess may have happened occasionally, probably ten times in a year.

FRANKLIN. I admit that might have happened from time to time, probably about ten times a year.

GOUT. Your confession is very far short of the truth; the gross amount is one hundred and ninety-nine times.

GOUT. Your confession is nowhere near the truth; the total amount is one hundred ninety-nine times.

FRANKLIN. Is it possible?

FRANKLIN. Is it feasible?

GOUT. So possible, that it is fact; you may rely on the accuracy of my statement. You know M. Brillon’s gardens, and what fine walks they contain; you know the handsome flight of an hundred steps, which lead from the terrace above to the lawn below. You have been in the practice of visiting this amiable family twice a week, after dinner, and it is a maxim of your own, that "a man may take as much exercise in walking a mile, up and down stairs, as in ten on level ground." What an opportunity was here for you to have had exercise in both these ways! Did you embrace it, and how often?

GOUT. It's totally possible that it's true; you can trust what I'm saying. You're familiar with M. Brillon’s gardens and their beautiful paths; you know the impressive staircase of a hundred steps that goes from the terrace down to the lawn. You’ve been visiting this lovely family twice a week after dinner, and you say yourself that "you can get as much exercise walking a mile up and down stairs as you do in ten on flat ground." What an opportunity for you to get exercise in both ways! Did you take advantage of it, and how often?

FRANKLIN. I cannot immediately answer that question.

FRANKLIN. I can't answer that question right now.

GOUT. I will do it for you; not once.

GOUT. I’ll do it for you, not just once.

FRANKLIN. Not once?

FRANKLIN. Not even once?

GOUT. Even so. During the summer you went there at six o’clock. You found the charming lady, with her lovely children and friends, eager to walk with you, and entertain you with their agreeable conversation; and what has been your choice? Why, to sit on the terrace, satisfy yourself with the fine prospect, and passing your eye over the beauties of the garden below, without taking one step to descend and walk about in them. On the contrary, you call for tea and the chess-board; and lo! you are occupied in your seat till nine o’clock, and that besides two hours' play after dinner; and then, instead of walking home, which would have bestirred you a little, you step into your carriage. How absurd to suppose that all this carelessness can be reconcilable with health, without my interposition!

GOUT. Still. During the summer, you went there at six o’clock. You found the charming lady, along with her lovely children and friends, excited to walk with you and engage you in their enjoyable conversation; and what have you chosen? To sit on the terrace, admiring the beautiful view and scanning the splendor of the garden below, without making any effort to go down and explore it. Instead, you order tea and the chessboard; and there you are, occupied in your seat until nine o'clock, plus an additional two hours of play after dinner; then, rather than walking home, which would have given you a bit of exercise, you hop into your carriage. How ridiculous to think that all this laziness can be compatible with good health without my intervention!

FRANKLIN. I am convinced now of the justness of Poor Richard’s remark, that "Our debts and our sins are always greater than we think for."

FRANKLIN. I now truly believe in Poor Richard’s saying, that "Our debts and our sins are always more than we realize."

GOUT. So it is. You philosophers are sages in your maxims, and fools in your conduct.

GOUT. That's true. You philosophers may be wise in your sayings, but you're fools in your actions.

FRANKLIN. But do you charge among my crimes, that I return in a carriage from M. Brillon’s?

FRANKLIN. Are you really counting it as one of my offenses that I came back in a carriage from M. Brillon’s?

GOUT. Certainly; for, having been seated all the while, you cannot object the fatigue of the day, and cannot want therefore the relief of a carriage.

GOUT. Of course; since you've been sitting the whole time, you can't complain about being tired from the day, so you don't really need the comfort of a carriage.

FRANKLIN. What then would you have me do with my carriage?

FRANKLIN. So what do you want me to do with my carriage?

GOUT. Burn it if you choose; you would at least get heat out of it once in this way; or, if you dislike that proposal, here’s another for you; observe the poor peasants, who work in the vineyards and grounds about the villages of Passy, Auteuil, Chaillot, etc.; you may find every day among these deserving creatures, four or five old men and women, bent and perhaps crippled by weight of years, and too long and too great labor. After a most fatiguing day, these people have to trudge a mile or two to their smoky huts. Order your coachman to set them down. This is an act that will be good for your soul; and, at the same time, after your visit to the Brillons, if you return on foot, that will be good for your body.

GOUT. You can burn it if you want; at least you'll get some warmth from it that way; or, if you don't like that idea, here's another for you: look at the poor farmers who work in the vineyards and fields around the villages of Passy, Auteuil, Chaillot, etc.; you can see every day among these hardworking people four or five old men and women, hunched over and perhaps physically worn out from the weight of their years and too much hard work. After a long, tiring day, these folks have to walk a mile or two to their smoky homes. Tell your driver to drop them off. This will be good for your soul; and, at the same time, after your visit to the Brillons, if you walk back, that will be good for your body.

FRANKLIN. Ah! how tiresome you are!

FRANKLIN. Ah! how exhausting you are!

GOUT. Well, then, to my office; it should not be forgotten that I am your physician. There.

GOUT. Alright, let's head to my office; remember that I'm your doctor. There.

FRANKLIN. Ohhh! what a devil of a physician!

FRANKLIN. Ohhh! What a crazy doctor!

GOUT. How ungrateful you are to say so! Is it not I who, in the character of your physician, have saved you from the palsy, dropsy, and apoplexy? one or other of which would have done for you long ago, but for me.

GOUT. How ungrateful you are to say that! Am I not the one, as your doctor, who saved you from paralysis, edema, and stroke? One of those would have taken you out a long time ago if it weren't for me.

FRANKLIN. I submit, and thank you for the past, but entreat the discontinuance of your visits for the future; for, in my mind, one had better die than be cured so dolefully. Permit me just to hint, that I have also not been unfriendly to you. I never feed physician or quack of any kind, to enter the list against you; if then you do not leave me to my repose, it may be said you are ungrateful too.

FRANKLIN. I appreciate what you've done in the past, but I kindly ask that you stop visiting me in the future; I would rather die than be treated so miserably. Just to mention, I have not been unfriendly towards you. I never let any doctor or fraud step in to challenge you; so if you don’t let me have my peace, it could be said that you are ungrateful too.

GOUT. I can scarcely acknowledge that as any objection. As to quacks, I despise them; they may kill you indeed, but cannot injure me. And, as to regular physicians, they are at last convinced that the gout, in such a subject as you are, is no disease, but a remedy; and wherefore cure a remedy?—but to our business,—there.

GOUT. I can barely see that as an objection. As for quacks, I can’t stand them; they might endanger your life, but they can’t harm me. And regarding regular doctors, they finally understand that the gout, in someone like you, is not a disease, but a remedy; so why treat a remedy?—but back to our business,—there.

FRANKLIN. Oh! oh!—for Heaven’s sake leave me! and I promise faithfully never more to play at chess, but to take exercise daily, and live temperately.

FRANKLIN. Oh! oh!—for heaven's sake, just leave me! I promise to never play chess again, but instead, I will exercise every day and live more moderately.

GOUT. I know you too well. You promise fair; but, after a few months of good health, you will return to your old habits; your fine promises will be forgotten like the forms of the last year’s clouds. Let us then finish the account, and I will go. But I leave you with an assurance of visiting you again at a proper time and place; for my object is your good, and you are sensible now that I am your real friend.

GOUT. I know you too well. You make promises that sound good, but after a few months of feeling better, you'll fall back into your old habits; your nice promises will fade away like last year's clouds. So let’s wrap things up, and I’ll be on my way. But I want you to know that I’ll come back to see you again at the right time and place; my goal is your well-being, and you know now that I’m your real friend.

CONSOLATION FOR THE OLD BACHELOR

FRANCIS HOPKINSON

Mr. Aitken: Your Old Bachelor having pathetically represented the miseries of his solitary situation, severely reproaching himself for having neglected to marry in his younger days, I would fain alleviate his distress, by showing that it is possible he might have been as unhappy—even in the honorable state of matrimony.

Mr. Aitken: Your Old Bachelor, having sadly expressed the pains of his lonely life and harshly criticizing himself for not marrying when he was younger, I would like to ease his suffering by suggesting that he could have been just as unhappy—even in the respected state of marriage.

I am a shoemaker in this city, and by my industry and attention have been enabled to maintain my wife and a daughter, now six years old, in comfort and respect; and to lay by a little at the year’s end, against a rainy day.

I am a shoemaker in this city, and through hard work and dedication, I have been able to support my wife and our six-year-old daughter comfortably and with respect, while also saving a bit each year for a rainy day.

My good wife had long teased me to take her to New York, in order to visit Mrs. Snip, the lady of an eminent taylor in that city, and her cousin; from whom she had received many pressing invitations.

My wife had been bugging me for a while to take her to New York so she could visit Mrs. Snip, the wife of a well-known tailor in the city, and her cousin, who had sent her numerous invitations.

This jaunt had been the daily subject of discussion at breakfast, dinner, and supper for a month before the time fixed upon for putting it in execution. As our daughter Jenny could by no means be left at home, many and great were the preparations to equip Miss and her Mamma for this important journey; and yet, as my wife assured me, there was nothing provided but what was absolutely necessary, and which we could not possibly do without. My purse sweat at every pore.

This trip had been the main topic of conversation at breakfast, lunch, and dinner for a month before the planned date. Since our daughter Jenny couldn't be left at home, there were extensive preparations to get Miss and her Mom ready for this important journey. Yet, as my wife assured me, nothing was included that wasn't absolutely necessary and that we could do without. My wallet was feeling the strain.

At last, the long-expected day arrived, preceded by a very restless night. For, as my wife could not sleep for thinking on the approaching jaunt, neither would she suffer me to repose in quiet. If I happened through wearisomeness to fall into a slumber, she immediately roused me by some unseasonable question or remark: frequently asking if I was sure the apprentice had greased the chair-wheels, and seen that the harness was clean and in good order; often observing how surprised her cousin Snip would be to see us; and as often wondering how poor dear Miss Jenny would bear the fatigue of the journey. Thus past the night in delightful discourse, if that can with propriety be called a discourse, wherein my wife was the only speaker—my replies never exceeding the monosyllables yes or no, murmured between sleeping and waking.

Finally, the long-awaited day arrived, following a very restless night. My wife couldn't sleep thinking about the upcoming trip, and she wouldn't let me rest either. Whenever I dozed off from exhaustion, she would wake me up with some random question or comment: often asking if I was sure the apprentice had oiled the chair wheels and checked that the harness was clean and in good shape; she frequently noted how surprised her cousin Snip would be to see us; and she often wondered how poor dear Miss Jenny would handle the tiring journey. So the night went by in a lovely conversation, if you can call it that, where my wife did all the talking—my responses barely getting beyond the monosyllables yes or no, mumbled between sleeping and waking.

No sooner was it fair daylight, but up started my notable wife, and soon roused the whole family. The little trunk was stuffed with baggage, even to bursting, and tied behind the chair, and the chair-box was crammed with trumpery which we could not possibly do without. Miss Jenny was drest, and breakfast devoured in haste: the old negro wench was called in, and the charge of the house committed to her care; and the two apprentices and the hired maid received many wholesome cautions and instructions for their conduct during our absence, all which they most liberally promised to observe; whilst I attended, with infinite patience, the adjustment of these preliminaries.

As soon as it was light out, my amazing wife jumped out of bed and quickly woke up the whole family. The little trunk was packed to the brim with luggage, almost bursting, and tied to the back of the chair, while the chair-box was stuffed with stuff that we absolutely couldn’t live without. Miss Jenny was dressed, and breakfast was quickly eaten; the old black woman was brought in, and we entrusted her with taking care of the house; and the two apprentices and the hired maid received plenty of helpful reminders and instructions on how to behave while we were gone, all of which they eagerly promised to follow, while I waited, with great patience, for all these plans to be sorted out.

At length, however, we set off, and, turning the first corner, lost sight of our habitation, with great regret on my part, and no less joy on the part of Miss Jenny and her Mamma.

At last, we set off, and after turning the first corner, I lost sight of our home, feeling a lot of regret, while Miss Jenny and her mom felt just as much joy.

When we got to Poole’s Bridge, there happened to be a great concourse of wagons, carts, &c., so that we could not pass for some time—Miss Jenny frightened—my wife very impatient and uneasy—wondered I did not call out to those impudent fellows to make way for us; observing that I had not the spirit of a louse. Having got through this difficulty, we proceeded without obstruction—my wife in good-humor again—Miss Jenny in high spirits. At Kensington fresh troubles arise. "Bless me, Miss Jenny," says my wife, "where is the bandbox?" "I don’t know, Mamma; the last time I saw it, it was on the table in your room." What’s to be done? The bandbox is left behind—it contains Miss Jenny’s new wire-cap—there is no possibility of doing without it—as well no New York as no wire-cap—there is no alternative, we must e’en go back for it. Teased and mortified as I was, my good wife administered consolation by observing, "That it was my business to see that everything was put into the chair that ought to be, but there was no depending upon me for anything; and that she plainly saw I undertook this journey with an ill-will, merely because she had set her heart upon it." Silent patience was my only remedy. An hour and a half restored to us this essential requisite—the wire-cap—and brought us back to the place where we first missed it.

When we reached Poole’s Bridge, there was a huge crowd of wagons, carts, etc., so we couldn’t get through for a while—Miss Jenny was scared—my wife was really impatient and uneasy—wondered why I didn’t shout at those rude guys to let us pass; she said I had no backbone. After we managed to get past thisproblem, we continued on without any more delays—my wife was in a good mood again—Miss Jenny was cheerful. At Kensington, more troubles came up. "Oh no, Miss Jenny,” said my wife, “where’s the bandbox?” “I don’t know, Mom; the last time I saw it, it was on the table in your room.” What should we do? The bandbox is left behind—it has Miss Jenny’s new wire cap—there’s no way we can do without it—no New York without the wire cap—it’s unavoidable, we have to go back for it. Despite feeling annoyed and frustrated, my kind wife tried to comfort me by saying, "It's my job to make sure everything's packed in the chair, but I can’t rely on you for anything; it's clear you didn’t want to take this trip because I was so excited about it." The only thing I could do was stay silent and patient. An hour and a half later, we finally got back the wire cap, and returned to the spot where we first realized it was missing.

After innumerable difficulties and unparalleled dangers, occasioned by ruts, stumps, and tremendous bridges, we arrived at Neshamony ferry: but how to cross it was the question. My wife protested that neither she nor Jenny would go over in the boat with the horse. I assured her that there was not the least danger; that the horse was as quiet as a dog, and that I would hold him by the bridle all the way. These assurances had little weight: the most forcible argument was that she must go that way or not at all, for there was no other boat to be had. Thus persuaded, she ventured in—the flies were troublesome—the horse kicked—my wife in panics—Miss Jenny in tears. Ditto at Trenton-ferry.

After countless challenges and unmatched risks, caused by ruts, stumps, and huge bridges, we finally reached Neshamony ferry. But the real question was how to get across. My wife insisted that neither she nor Jenny would get in the boat with the horse. I assured her there was no real danger; the horse was as calm as a dog, and I promised to hold him by the bridle the entire time. These reassurances didn’t carry much weight: the strongest argument was that she had to cross that way or not at all, since there was no other boat available. After being convinced, she took the plunge—the flies were bothersome—the horse kicked—my wife panicked—Miss Jenny was in tears. Ditto at Trenton-ferry.

As we started pretty early, and as the days were long, we reached Trenton by two o’clock. Here we dined. My wife found fault with everything; and whilst she disposed of what I thought a tolerable hearty meal, declared there was nothing fit to eat. Matters, however, would have gone on pretty well, but Miss Jenny began to cry with the toothache—sad lamentations over Miss Jenny—all my fault because I had not made the glazier replace a broken pane in her chamber window. N. B. I had been twice for him, and he promised to come, but was not so good as his word.

As we set out quite early and the days were long, we arrived in Trenton by two o’clock. We had lunch there. My wife found fault with everything, and while she dismissed what I thought was a pretty decent meal, she insisted there was nothing worth eating. Things might have gone smoothly, but Miss Jenny started crying from a toothache—such sad lamentations about Miss Jenny—it was all my fault for not getting the glazier to replace a broken pane in her bedroom window. Just a note: I had gone to see him twice, and he promised to come, but he didn’t keep his word.

After dinner we again entered upon our journey—my wife in good-humor—Miss Jenny’s toothache much easier—various chat—I acknowledge everything my wife says for fear of discomposing her. We arrive in good time at Princetown. My wife and daughter admire the College. We refresh ourselves with tea, and go to bed early, in order to be up by times for the next day’s expedition.

After dinner, we set off on our journey again—my wife in a good mood—Miss Jenny’s toothache feeling much better—lots of chatting—I agree with everything my wife says to avoid upsetting her. We arrive in Princetown on time. My wife and daughter admire the College. We have some tea and go to bed early so we can get up early for tomorrow’s adventure.

In the morning we set off again in tolerable good-humor, and proceeded happily as far as Rocky-hill. Here my wife’s fears and terrors returned with great force. I drove as carefully as possible; but coming to a place where one of the wheels must unavoidably go over the point of a small rock, my wife, in a great fright, seized hold of one of the reins, which happening to be the wrong one, she pulled the horse so as to force the wheel higher up the rock than it would otherwise have gone, and overset the chair. We were all tumbled hickledy-pickledy, into the road—Miss Jenny’s face all bloody—the woods echo to her cries—my wife in a fainting-fit—and I in great misery; secretly and most devoutly wishing cousin Snip at the devil. Matters begin to mend—my wife recovers—Miss Jenny has only received a slight scratch on one of her cheeks—the horse stands quite still, and none of the harness broke. Matters grew worse again; the twine with which the bandbox was tied had broke in the fall, and the aforesaid wire-cap lay soaking in a nasty mudpuddle—grievous lamentations over the wire-cap—all my fault because I did not tie it better—no remedy—no wire-caps to be bought at Rocky-hill. At night my wife discovered a small bruise on her hip—was apprehensive it might mortify—did not know but the bone might be broken or splintered—many instances of mortifications occasioned by small injuries.

In the morning, we set off again in pretty good spirits and went happily as far as Rocky-hill. Here, my wife’s fears and anxieties came back strongly. I drove as carefully as I could, but when we reached a spot where one of the wheels had to go over a small rock, my wife, panicked, grabbed one of the reins. Unfortunately, she grabbed the wrong one, which caused the horse to pull the wheel up the rock more than it needed to, and we tipped over. We all tumbled into the road—Miss Jenny had a bloody face—the woods echoed with her cries—my wife fainted—and I was in deep distress, secretly wishing cousin Snip would just disappear. Things started to get better—my wife came around—Miss Jenny only had a minor scratch on her cheek—the horse stayed still, and none of the harness broke. But then things took a turn for the worse; the twine that held the bandbox together broke in the fall, and the wire cap was lying in a muddy puddle—everyone was lamenting the loss of the wire cap—all my fault for not tying it better—no remedy—no wire caps to buy at Rocky-hill. That night, my wife discovered a small bruise on her hip—worried it might get infected—concerned that the bone could be broken or splintered—she recalled many instances where small injuries led to infections.

After passing unhurt over the imminent dangers of Passayack and Hackensack rivers, and the yet more tremendous horrors of Pawlas-hook ferry, we arrived, at the close of the third day, at cousin Snip’s in the city of New York.

After safely navigating the looming threats of the Passayack and Hackensack rivers, as well as the even greater horrors of the Pawlas-hook ferry, we reached cousin Snip’s in New York City at the end of the third day.

Here we sojourned a tedious week; my wife spent as much money as would have maintained my family for a month at home, in purchasing a hundred useless articles which we could not possibly do without; and every night when we went to bed fatigued me with encomiums on her cousin Snip; leading to a history of the former grandeur of her family, and concluding with insinuations that I did not treat her with the attention and respect I ought.

Here we stayed for a long week; my wife spent as much money as would have supported my family for a month at home, buying a hundred useless items that we couldn't possibly live without; and every night when we went to bed, she tired me out with praise for her cousin Snip; this led to stories about her family's former glory and ended with hints that I didn’t treat her with the attention and respect she deserved.

On the seventh day my wife and cousin Snip had a pretty warm altercation respecting the comparative elegancies and advantages of New York and Philadelphia. The dispute ran high, and many aggravating words past between the two advocates. The next morning my wife declared that my business would not admit of a longer absence from home—and so after much ceremonious complaisance—in which my wife was by no means exceeded by her very polite cousin—we left the famous city of New York; and I with heart-felt satisfaction looked forward to the happy period of our safe arrival in Water-street, Philadelphia.

On the seventh day, my wife and cousin Snip had a pretty heated argument about the relative charms and benefits of New York and Philadelphia. The dispute got intense, and a lot of harsh words were exchanged between the two of them. The next morning, my wife insisted that my work wouldn’t allow me to stay away from home any longer—so after a lot of formal pleasantries, with my wife matching her very polite cousin’s courtesy— we left the famous city of New York. I looked forward to the joyous moment of our safe arrival in Water Street, Philadelphia, with genuine satisfaction.

But this blessing was not to be obtained without much vexation and trouble. But lest I should seem tedious I shall not recount the adventures of our return—how we were caught in a thunderstorm—how our horse failed, by which we were benighted three miles from our stage—how my wife’s panics returned—how Miss Jenny howled, and how very miserable I was made. Suffice it to say, that, after many distressing disasters, we arrived at the door of our own habitation in Water-street.

But this blessing didn’t come without a lot of frustration and trouble. To avoid being tedious, I won’t go into the details of our return—how we got caught in a thunderstorm—how our horse let us down, leaving us stranded three miles from our stop—how my wife’s panics returned—how Miss Jenny was crying, and how miserable I felt. It’s enough to say that, after many distressing mishaps, we finally reached the door of our home on Water Street.

No sooner had we entered the house than we were informed that one of my apprentices had run away with the hired-maid, nobody knew where; the old negro had got drunk, fallen into the fire, and burnt out one of her eyes; and our best china-bowl was broken.

No sooner had we entered the house than we learned that one of my apprentices had run away with the hired maid, and nobody knew where they had gone; the old black woman had gotten drunk, fallen into the fire, and lost one of her eyes; and our best china bowl was broken.

My good wife contrived, with her usual ingenuity, to throw the blame of all these misfortunes upon me. As this was a consolation to which I had been long accustomed in all untoward cases, I had recourse to my usual remedy, viz., silent patience. After sincerely praying that I might never more see cousin Snip, I sat industriously down to my trade, in order to retrieve my manifold losses.

My good wife cleverly managed to pin all these problems on me. Since I was used to this kind of blame in tough situations, I resorted to my standard solution: staying silent and patient. After sincerely hoping I would never have to see cousin Snip again, I got to work on my trade to try and make up for my many losses.

This is only a miniature picture of the married state, which I present to your Old Bachelor, in hopes it may abate his choler, and reconcile him to a single life. But, if this opiate should not be sufficient to give him some ease, I may, perhaps, send him a stronger dose hereafter.

This is just a small snapshot of married life that I’m sharing with you, Old Bachelor, hoping it will ease your frustration and make you more accepting of being single. But if this little tease doesn’t help, I might send you something stronger later on.

JOHN BULL

WASHINGTON IRVING

"An old song, created by a wise old head,
About an elderly respected gentleman who owned a large estate,
That maintained a sturdy old house at a generous pace,
And an old porter to help the needy at his gate. With an old study filled with stacks of scholarly books,
With an elderly chaplain, you might recognize him by his appearance,
With an old buttery hatch that’s basically fallen off the hooks,
And an old kitchen that had half a dozen elderly cooks. Like an old courtier, etc. —Old Song.

THERE is no species of humor in which the English more excel, than that which consists in caricaturing and giving ludicrous appellations, or nicknames. In this way they have whimsically designated, not merely individuals, but nations; and, in their fondness for pushing a joke, they have not spared even themselves. One would think that, in personifying itself, a nation would be apt to picture something grand, heroic and imposing, but it is characteristic of the peculiar humor of the English, and of their love for what is blunt, comic, and familiar, that they have embodied their national oddities in the figure of a sturdy, corpulent old fellow, with a three-cornered hat, red waistcoat, leather breeches, and stout oaken cudgel. Thus they have taken a singular delight in exhibiting their most private foibles in a laughable point of view; and have been so successful in their delineations, that there is scarcely a being in actual existence more absolutely present to the public mind than that eccentric personage, John Bull.

There's no type of humor that the English are better at than caricaturing and coming up with funny names or nicknames. They've whimsically labeled not just individuals but entire nations; and in their eagerness for a good joke, they haven’t even spared themselves. One might think that when a nation personifies itself, it would create something grand, heroic, and impressive, but the unique humor of the English, along with their appreciation for straightforward, comic, and relatable things, has led them to represent their national quirks as a sturdy, chubby old guy wearing a three-cornered hat, a red waistcoat, leather pants, and holding a solid wooden stick. They take a strange pleasure in showcasing their most personal quirks in a humorous light, and they've been so effective in their portrayals that there's hardly anyone more vividly imagined in the public consciousness than that quirky figure, John Bull.

Perhaps the continual contemplation of the character thus drawn of them has contributed to fix it upon the nation; and thus to give reality to what at first may have been painted in a great measure from the imagination. Men are apt to acquire peculiarities that are continually ascribed to them. The common orders of English seem wonderfully captivated with the beau ideal which they have formed of John Bull, and endeavor to act up to the broad caricature that is perpetually before their eyes. Unluckily, they sometimes make their boasted Bull-ism an apology for their prejudice or grossness; and this I have especially noticed among those truly homebred and genuine sons of the soil who have never migrated beyond the sound of Bow-bells. If one of these should be a little uncouth in speech, and apt to utter impertinent truths, he confesses that he is a real John Bull, and always speaks his mind. If he now and then flies into an unreasonable burst of passion about trifles, he observes, that John Bull is a choleric old blade, but then his passion is over in a moment, and he bears no malice. If he betrays a coarseness of taste, and an insensibility to foreign refinements, he thanks heaven for his ignorance—he is a plain John Bull, and has no relish for frippery and nicknacks. His very proneness to be gulled by strangers, and to pay extravagantly for absurdities, is excused under the plea of munificence—for John is always more generous than wise.

Maybe the constant thinking about the character drawn of them has helped to make it stick to the nation and to create a reality that at first might have come mostly from imagination. People tend to adopt quirks that are often attributed to them. The average English folks seem completely taken in by the ideal image they've built of John Bull and try to live up to the exaggerated caricature that's always in front of them. Unfortunately, they sometimes use their claimed Bull-ism as an excuse for their prejudice or crudeness, and I've particularly noticed this among those truly homegrown, genuine locals who have never moved beyond the sound of Bow Bells. If one of these guys is a bit awkward in speech and tends to speak inconvenient truths, he proudly declares that he’s a real John Bull who always says what he thinks. If he occasionally loses his temper over unimportant things, he notes that John Bull is a hot-tempered old chap, but his anger lasts only a moment, and he holds no grudges. If he shows a rough taste and is indifferent to foreign elegance, he thanks heaven for his ignorance—he’s a straightforward John Bull who has no taste for frivolous things and trinkets. His tendency to be easily fooled by strangers and spend extravagantly on nonsense is excused as generosity—after all, John is always more generous than wise.

Thus, under the name of John Bull, he will contrive to argue every fault into a merit, and will frankly convict himself of being the honestest fellow in existence.

Thus, under the name of John Bull, he will manage to turn every flaw into a strength and will openly admit that he is the most honest person alive.

However little, therefore, the character may have suited in the first instance, it has gradually adapted itself to the nation, or rather they have adapted themselves to each other; and a stranger who wishes to study English peculiarities, may gather much valuable information from the innumerable portraits of John Bull, as exhibited in the windows of the caricature-shops. Still, however, he is one of those fertile humorists, that are continually throwing out new portraits, and presenting different aspects from different points of view; and, often as he has been described, I cannot resist the temptation to give a slight sketch of him, such as he has met my eye.

However little the character may have suited in the beginning, it has gradually adjusted to the nation, or rather they have adjusted to each other; and a stranger who wants to study English quirks can gather plenty of valuable insights from the countless portraits of John Bull displayed in the windows of caricature shops. Still, he is one of those creative humorists who are always producing new portraits and showing different sides from different perspectives; and, no matter how often he has been described, I can't resist the urge to provide a brief sketch of him as I have seen him.

John Bull, to all appearance, is a plain downright matter-of-fact fellow, with much less of poetry about him than rich prose. There is little of romance in his nature, but a vast deal of strong natural feeling. He excels in humor more than in wit; is jolly rather than gay; melancholy rather than morose; can easily be moved to a sudden tear, or surprised into a broad laugh; but he loathes sentiment, and has no turn for light pleasantry. He is a boon companion, if you allow him to have his humor, and to talk about himself; and he will stand by a friend in a quarrel, with life and purse, however soundly he may be cudgeled.

John Bull seems like a straightforward, no-nonsense guy, with more of a practical approach than anything poetic. He’s not very romantic, but he has a lot of strong, genuine feelings. He’s better at humor than wit; he’s cheerful rather than overly happy, and more reflective than gloomy. He can quickly tear up or burst out laughing, but he dislikes sentimentality and isn’t into light-hearted banter. He’s a great friend as long as you let him be himself and talk about his own stories; he’ll support a friend in a fight, no matter how badly he gets beaten.

In this last respect, to tell the truth, he has a propensity to be somewhat too ready. He is a busy-minded personage, who thinks not merely for himself and family, but for all the country round, and is most generously disposed to be everybody’s champion. He is continually volunteering his services to settle his neighbors’ affairs, and takes it in great dudgeon if they engage in any matter of consequence without asking his advice; though he seldom engages in any friendly office of the kind without finishing by getting into a squabble with all parties, and then railing bitterly at their ingratitude. He unluckily took lessons in his youth in the noble science of defense, and having accomplished himself in the use of his limbs and his weapons, and become a perfect master at boxing and cudgel-play, he has had a troublesome life of it ever since. He cannot hear of a quarrel between the most distant of his neighbors, but he begins incontinently to fumble with the head of his cudgel, and consider whether his interest or honor does not require that he should meddle in the broil. Indeed he has extended his relations of pride and policy so completely over the whole country, that no event can take place, without infringing some of his finely-spun rights and dignities. Couched in his little domain, with these filaments stretching forth in every direction, he is like some choleric, bottle-bellied old spider, who has woven his web over a whole chamber, so that a fly cannot buzz, nor a breeze blow, without startling his repose, and causing him to sally forth wrathfully from his den.

In this regard, to be honest, he tends to be a bit too eager. He’s a busy-minded guy who thinks not just for himself and his family, but for everyone around him, and he’s very generous about being everyone’s champion. He’s always volunteering to help settle his neighbors’ problems, and he gets really angry if they do anything important without asking for his advice; though he rarely gets involved in any friendly task without ending up in an argument with everyone involved, then bitterly complaining about their ingratitude. Unfortunately, he took lessons in self-defense when he was younger, and after mastering boxing and stick fighting, he’s had a difficult time ever since. He can't hear about a fight between even the most distant neighbors without immediately starting to fidget with his stick and wondering if his honor or interests require him to get involved. In fact, he’s stretched his pride and influence so far across the whole area that no event can happen without somehow violating his delicate sense of rights and statuses. Stuck in his little world, with these threads extending in every direction, he’s like a grumpy, plump old spider who has spun his web over an entire room, so that a fly can’t buzz or a breeze blow without disturbing his rest and making him angrily emerge from his corner.

Though really a good-hearted, good-tempered old fellow at bottom, yet he is singularly fond of being in the midst of contention. It is one of his peculiarities, however, that he only relishes the beginning of an affray; he always goes into a fight with alacrity, but comes out of it grumbling even when victorious; and though no one fights with more obstinacy to carry a contested point, yet, when the battle is over, and he comes to the reconciliation, he is so much taken up with the mere shaking of hands, that he is apt to let his antagonist pocket all that they have been quarreling about. It is not, therefore, fighting that he ought so much to be on his guard against, as making friends. It is difficult to cudgel him out of a farthing; but put him in a good humor, and you may bargain him out of all the money in his pocket. He is like a stout ship, which will weather the roughest storm uninjured, but roll its masts overboard in the succeeding calm.

Although he's really a good-hearted, easygoing old guy at heart, he has a peculiar love for being in the middle of arguments. One of his quirks is that he only enjoys the start of a fight; he jumps into a conflict eagerly but comes out of it complaining, even if he wins. While no one is more stubborn in pushing a contested point, once the fight is over and it’s time to make up, he gets so caught up in just shaking hands that he tends to let his opponent take everything they were arguing about. So, it’s not really fighting he should watch out for, but making friends. It's hard to squeeze a penny out of him, but if you get him in a good mood, you can talk him into giving away all the cash in his pocket. He’s like a sturdy ship that can survive the worst storms without a scratch but will lose its masts during the calm that follows.

He is a little fond of playing the magnifico abroad; of pulling out a long purse; flinging his money bravely about at boxing matches, horse races, cock fights, and carrying a high head among "gentlemen of the fancy:" but immediately after one of these fits of extravagance, he will be taken with violent qualms of economy; stop short at the most trivial expenditure; talk desperately of being ruined and brought upon the parish; and, in such moods, will not pay the smallest tradesman’s bill, without violent altercation. He is in fact the most punctual and discontented paymaster in the world; drawing his coin out of his breeches pocket with infinite reluctance; paying to the uttermost farthing, but accompanying every guinea with a growl.

He loves to show off a bit when he's out and about; pulling out a long wallet and spending his money freely at boxing matches, horse races, and cock fights, all while acting like he's better than the "gentlemen of the fancy." But right after one of these spending sprees, he gets hit with serious guilt over money. He becomes super cautious about even the smallest expenses, talks dramatically about going broke and ending up in the poorhouse, and in those moods, he won't pay even the tiniest bill from a tradesman without a huge argument. In reality, he's the most punctual yet dissatisfied person when it comes to paying up; he digs his cash out of his pants pocket with a lot of hesitation, pays every last penny, but grumbles while handing over each coin.

With all his talk of economy, however, he is a bountiful provider, and a hospitable housekeeper. His economy is of a whimsical kind, its chief object being to devise how he may afford to be extravagant; for he will begrudge himself a beefsteak and pint of port one day, that he may roast an ox whole, broach a hogshead of ale, and treat all his neighbors on the next.

With all his talk about saving money, he's actually a generous provider and a welcoming host. His way of saving is quite quirky; his main goal is to figure out how he can splurge. He might deny himself a steak and a pint of port one day so that he can roast a whole ox, tap a barrel of ale, and host all his neighbors the next.

His domestic establishment is enormously expensive: not so much from any great outward parade, as from the great consumption of solid beef and pudding; the vast number of followers he feeds and clothes; and his singular disposition to pay hugely for small services. He is a most kind and indulgent master, and, provided his servants humor his peculiarities, flatter his vanity a little now and then, and do not peculate grossly on him before his face, they may manage him to perfection. Everything that lives on him seems to thrive and grow fat. His house-servants are well paid, and pampered, and have little to do. His horses are sleek and lazy, and prance slowly before his state carriage; and his house-dogs sleep quietly about the door, and will hardly bark at a housebreaker.

His household is incredibly expensive: not so much because of any grand displays, but due to the massive amount of meat and dessert consumed; the large number of people he feeds and outfits; and his unique tendency to pay a lot for small favors. He is a very kind and indulgent boss, and as long as his servants cater to his quirks, flatter his ego from time to time, and don’t cheat him to his face, they can manage him perfectly. Everything that depends on him seems to flourish and get fat. His house staff are well-paid, spoiled, and have little to do. His horses are sleek and lazy, strutting slowly in front of his fancy carriage; and his house dogs lounge peacefully by the door, barely barking at a burglar.

His family mansion is an old castellated manor-house, gray with age, and of a most venerable, though weather-beaten appearance. It has been built upon no regular plan, but is a vast accumulation of parts, erected in various tastes and ages. The center bears evident traces of Saxon architecture, and is as solid as ponderous stone and old English oak can make it. Like all the relics of that style, it is full of obscure passages, intricate mazes, and dusky chambers; and though these have been partially lighted up in modern days, yet there are many places where you must still grope in the dark. Additions have been made to the original edifice from time to time, and great alterations have taken place; towers and battlements have been erected during wars and tumults: wings built in time of peace; and out-houses, lodges, and offices, run up according to the whim or convenience of different generations, until it has become one of the most spacious, rambling tenements imaginable. An entire wing is taken up with the family chapel, a reverend pile, that must have been exceedingly sumptuous, and, indeed, in spite of having been altered and simplified at various periods, has still a look of solemn religious pomp. Its walls within are stored with the monuments of John’s ancestors; and it is snugly fitted up with soft cushions and well-lined chairs, where such of his family as are inclined to church services, may doze comfortably in the discharge of their duties.

His family mansion is an old castle-like manor house, gray with age and looking quite worn but dignified. It's built without any specific plan, just a vast collection of sections constructed in different styles and eras. The center shows clear signs of Saxon architecture, sturdy as heavy stone and old English oak can make it. Like all remnants of that style, it’s filled with hidden passages, complicated hallways, and dark rooms; and while some areas have been illuminated in modern times, there are plenty of spots where you still have to feel your way in the dark. Additions have been made to the original structure over time, and significant changes have occurred; towers and battlements were built during wars and unrest, wings added in peacetime, and outbuildings, lodges, and offices thrown up based on the whims or needs of different generations, resulting in one of the most spacious, winding homes imaginable. One whole wing is dedicated to the family chapel, a grand structure that must have been very luxurious, and despite having been altered and simplified over the years, it still carries an air of solemn religious grandeur. Inside, its walls are lined with memorials of John’s ancestors, and it is comfortably furnished with soft cushions and well-upholstered chairs, allowing family members who are inclined to attend church services to doze off comfortably while fulfilling their duties.

To keep up this chapel has cost John much money; but he is stanch in his religion, and piqued in his zeal, from the circumstance that many dissenting chapels have been erected in his vicinity, and several of his neighbors, with whom he has had quarrels, are strong papists.

To maintain this chapel has cost John a lot of money; but he is firm in his faith and fired up in his dedication, especially because many opposing chapels have been built nearby, and several of his neighbors, with whom he has had disputes, are devout Catholics.

To do the duties of the chapel he maintains, at a large expense, a pious and portly family chaplain. He is a most learned and decorous personage, and a truly well-bred Christian, who always backs the old gentleman in his opinions, winks discreetly at his little peccadilloes, rebukes the children when refractory, and is of great use in exhorting the tenants to read their Bibles, say their prayers, and, above all, to pay their rents punctually, and without grumbling.

To take care of the chapel, he spends a lot of money on a devout and heavyset family chaplain. He is a very learned and respectful person, and a genuinely well-mannered Christian, who always supports the old gentleman's views, discreetly overlooks his minor faults, scolds the children when they misbehave, and is very helpful in encouraging the tenants to read their Bibles, pray, and, above all, pay their rent on time and without complaining.

The family apartments are in a very antiquated taste, somewhat heavy, and often inconvenient, but full of the solemn magnificence of former times; fitted up with rich, though faded tapestry, unwieldy furniture, and loads of massy gorgeous old plate. The vast fireplaces, ample kitchens, extensive cellars, and sumptuous banqueting halls, all speak of the roaring hospitality of days of yore, of which the modern festivity at the manor-house is but a shadow. There are, however, complete suites of rooms apparently deserted and time-worn; and towers and turrets that are tottering to decay; so that in high winds there is danger of their tumbling about the ears of the household.

The family apartments have a really outdated style—somewhat heavy and often impractical—but they’re filled with the serious grandeur of past eras. They're decorated with rich, though worn, tapestries, bulky furniture, and lots of heavy, ornate old silverware. The huge fireplaces, spacious kitchens, extensive cellars, and lavish banquet halls all reflect the hearty hospitality of earlier times, which today's gatherings at the manor-house only faintly echo. However, there are complete suites of rooms that seem abandoned and worn down, along with towers and turrets that are crumbling; so during strong winds, there’s a risk of them collapsing on the household.

John has frequently been advised to have the old edifice thoroughly overhauled; and to have some of the useless parts pulled down, and the others strengthened with their materials; but the old gentleman always grows testy on this subject. He swears the house is an excellent house—that it is tight and weather proof, and not to be shaken by tempests—that it has stood for several hundred years, and, therefore, is not likely to tumble down now—that as to its being inconvenient, his family is accustomed to the inconveniences, and would not be comfortable without them—that as to its unwieldy size and irregular construction, these result from its being the growth of centuries, and being improved by the wisdom of every generation—that an old family, like his, requires a large house to dwell in; new, upstart families may live in modern cottages and snug boxes; but an old English family should inhabit an old English manor-house. If you point out any part of the building as superfluous, he insists that it is material to the strength or decoration of the rest, and the harmony of the whole; and swears that the parts are so built into each other, that if you pull down one, you run the risk of having the whole about your ears.

John has often been urged to completely renovate the old building; to tear down some of the useless parts and reinforce the others with their materials. However, the old gentleman always gets annoyed when this topic comes up. He insists that the house is great—that it’s sturdy and weatherproof, and won’t be shaken by storms—that it has stood for several hundred years, so it’s unlikely to collapse now—that even though it’s inconvenient, his family is used to those inconveniences and wouldn’t feel comfortable without them—that the odd size and irregular design come from being built over centuries, improved by the wisdom of each generation—that an old family like his needs a big house to live in; new, ambitious families can live in modern cottages and cozy homes, but an old English family should reside in an old English manor. If you point out any part of the building as unnecessary, he argues that it’s essential for the strength or decoration of the rest, and for the overall harmony; he insists that the parts are so intertwined that if you take one down, you risk having the whole thing collapse around you.

The secret of the matter is, that John has a great disposition to protect and patronize. He thinks it indispensable to the dignity of an ancient and honorable family, to be bounteous in its appointments, and to be eaten up by dependents; and so, partly from pride, and partly from kind-heartedness, he makes it a rule always to give shelter and maintenance to his superannuated servants.

The truth is, John has a natural tendency to protect and support others. He believes it's essential for the dignity of a long-standing and respected family to be generous in its offerings and to be surrounded by dependents. So, driven by both pride and kindness, he makes it a rule to always provide shelter and support to his retired servants.

The consequence is, that, like many other venerable family establishments, his manor is encumbered by old retainers whom he cannot turn off, and an old style which he cannot lay down. His mansion is like a great hospital of invalids, and, with all its magnitude, is not a whit too large for its inhabitants. Not a nook or corner but is of use in housing some useless personage. Groups of veteran beefeaters, gouty pensioners, and retired heroes of the buttery and the larder, are seen lolling about its walls, crawling over its lawns, dozing under its trees, or sunning themselves upon the benches at its doors. Every office and outhouse is garrisoned by these supernumeraries and their families; for they are amazingly prolific, and when they die off, are sure to leave John a legacy of hungry mouths to be provided for. A mattock cannot be struck against the most mouldering tumble-down tower, but out pops, from some cranny or loop-hole, the gray pate of some superannuated hanger-on, who has lived at John’s expense all his life, and makes the most grievous outcry at their pulling down the roof from over the head of a worn-out servant of the family. This is an appeal that John’s honest heart never can withstand; so that a man, who has faithfully eaten his beef and pudding all his life, is sure to be rewarded with a pipe and tankard in his old days.

The result is that, like many other long-established family homes, his manor is burdened by old retainers he can’t dismiss and an outdated style he can’t shake off. His mansion feels like a large hospital for the unwell, and, despite its size, it’s barely big enough for its residents. Every nook and cranny serves to accommodate some useless person. Groups of retired guards, gouty pensioners, and former champions of the pantry and kitchen lounge around its walls, crawl over its lawns, nap under its trees, or bask on the benches at its doors. Every office and outbuilding is filled with these extras and their families; they have a remarkable ability to multiply, and when they pass away, they leave John with a legacy of needy mouths to feed. You can’t strike a mattock against the most crumbling dilapidated tower without someone’s gray head popping out from a crevice or hole, someone who has lived at John’s expense all their life and protests loudly at the thought of tearing down the roof over the head of a tired family servant. This plea is one that John’s kind heart can never resist; so, a man who has faithfully enjoyed his meals all his life can always expect to be rewarded with a pipe and a tankard in his old age.

A great part of his park, also, is turned into paddocks, where his broken-down chargers are turned loose to graze undisturbed for the remainder of their existence—a worthy example of grateful recollection, which if some of his neighbors were to imitate, would not be to their discredit. Indeed, it is one of his great pleasures to point out these old steeds to his visitors, to dwell on their good qualities, extol their past services, and boast, with some little vainglory, of the perilous adventures and hardy exploits through which they have carried him.

A big part of his park is also turned into paddocks, where his retired horses roam freely to graze in peace for the rest of their lives—a commendable act of gratitude that wouldn’t hurt some of his neighbors to copy. In fact, one of his greatest joys is to show these old horses to his visitors, highlighting their good traits, praising their past contributions, and casually boasting about the dangerous adventures and brave feats they helped him through.

He is given, however, to indulge his veneration for family usages, and family encumbrances, to a whimsical extent. His manor is infested by gangs of gipsies; yet he will not suffer them to be driven off, because they have infested the place time out of mind, and been regular poachers upon every generation of the family. He will scarcely permit a dry branch to be lopped from the great trees that surround the house, lest it should molest the rooks, that have bred there for centuries. Owls have taken possession of the dovecote; but they are hereditary owls, and must not be disturbed. Swallows have nearly choked up every chimney with their nests; martins build in every frieze and cornice; crows flutter about the towers, and perch on every weathercock; and old gray-headed rats may be seen in every quarter of the house, running in and out of their holes undauntedly in broad daylight. In short, John has such a reverence for everything that has been long in the family, that he will not hear even of abuses being reformed, because they are good old family abuses.

He tends to indulge his respect for family traditions and obligations in a rather quirky way. His estate is filled with groups of gypsies; yet he won’t let anyone drive them away, since they’ve been there for ages and have always been poachers for the family. He hardly allows a dead branch to be cut from the big trees surrounding the house, for fear it might disturb the rooks that have nested there for centuries. Owls have taken over the dovecote; but they are inherited owls and must not be disturbed. Swallows have almost blocked every chimney with their nests; martins build in every frieze and cornice; crows flutter around the towers and perch on every weather vane; and old gray-headed rats can be seen everywhere in the house, running in and out of their holes boldly in broad daylight. In short, John has such a respect for everything that has been in the family for a long time that he refuses to consider even addressing problems, simply because they are good old family problems.

All those whims and habits have concurred woefully to drain the old gentleman’s purse; and as he prides himself on punctuality in money matters, and wishes to maintain his credit in the neighborhood, they have caused him great perplexity in meeting his engagements. This, too, has been increased by the altercations and heart-burnings which are continually taking place in his family. His children have been brought up to different callings, and are of different ways of thinking; and as they have always been allowed to speak their minds freely, they do not fail to exercise the privilege most clamorously in the present posture of his affairs. Some stand up for the honor of the race, and are clear that the old establishment should be kept up in all its state, whatever may be the cost; others, who are more prudent and considerate, entreat the old gentleman to retrench his expenses, and to put his whole system of housekeeping on a more moderate footing. He has, indeed, at times, seemed inclined to listen to their opinions, but their wholesome advice has been completely defeated by the obstreperous conduct of one of his sons. This is a noisy, rattle-pated fellow, of rather low habits, who neglects his business to frequent ale-houses—is the orator of village clubs, and a complete oracle among the poorest of his father’s tenants. No sooner does he hear any of his brothers mention reform or retrenchment, than up he jumps, takes the words out of their mouths, and roars out for an overturn. When his tongue is once going nothing can stop it. He rants about the room; hectors the old man about his spendthrift practices; ridicules his tastes and pursuits; insists that he shall turn the old servants out of doors; give the broken-down horses to the hounds; send the fat chaplain packing, and take a field-preacher in his place—nay, that the whole family mansion shall be leveled with the ground, and a plain one of brick and mortar built in its place. He rails at every social entertainment and family festivity, and skulks away growling to the ale-house whenever an equipage drives up to the door. Though constantly complaining of the emptiness of his purse, yet he scruples not to spend all his pocket-money in these tavern convocations, and even runs up scores for the liquor over which he preaches about his father’s extravagance.

All those whims and habits have sadly drained the old gentleman’s wallet; and since he prides himself on being punctual with money and wants to maintain his reputation in the neighborhood, they have caused him great stress in keeping up with his obligations. This situation has been made worse by the constant arguments and tensions that are happening within his family. His children have been raised with different careers in mind and have various opinions; since they have always been allowed to express themselves openly, they don’t hesitate to voice their thoughts most loudly regarding his current situation. Some defend the family legacy, insisting that the old ways should be upheld at all costs; others, who are more practical, urge the old gentleman to cut back on his spending and adopt a more reasonable approach to running the household. He has, at times, seemed open to their suggestions, but their sensible advice has been completely overshadowed by the obnoxious behavior of one of his sons. This loud, scatterbrained guy has rather poor habits; he neglects his work to hang out at pubs—he’s the speaker at village gatherings and a total authority among the poorest of his father’s tenants. As soon as he hears any of his brothers mention reform or cutting back, he jumps up, interrupts them, and loudly calls for radical change. Once he gets going, nothing can stop him. He struts around the room, berating the old man for his excessive spending; mocks his preferences and hobbies; demands that he fire the old servants; give the broken-down horses to the hounds; send the fat chaplain away, and hire a field preacher instead—he even insists that the entire family mansion should be torn down and replaced with a simple brick one. He criticizes every social gathering and family celebration, and sneaks off to the pub, grumbling, whenever a carriage pulls up to the door. Although he constantly complains about being broke, he has no problem spending all his pocket money on tavern gatherings and even runs up tabs for drinks while railing against his father’s extravagance.

It may readily be imagined how little such thwarting agrees with the old cavalier’s fiery temperament. He has become so irritable, from repeated crossings, that the mere mention of retrenchment or reform is a signal for a brawl between him and the tavern oracle. As the latter is too sturdy and refractory for paternal discipline, having grown out of all fear of the cudgel, they have frequent scenes of wordy warfare, which at times run so high, that John is fain to call in the aid of his son Tom, an officer who has served abroad, but is at present living at home, on half-pay. This last is sure to stand by the old gentleman, right or wrong; likes nothing so much as a racketing, roystering life; and is ready at a wink or nod, to out saber, and flourish it over the orator’s head, if he dares to array himself against paternal authority.

It’s easy to see how poorly such setbacks sit with the old knight's fiery personality. He has become so irritable after so many frustrations that just mentioning budget cuts or reforms starts a fight between him and the tavern's wise guy. Since the latter is too tough and stubborn for any kind of discipline, having lost all fear of punishment, they often have intense arguments that can get so heated that John feels the need to call in his son Tom, who has served overseas but is currently living at home on half-pay. Tom always supports his father, right or wrong; he enjoys nothing more than a wild, carefree life and is always ready to draw his sword and wave it over the wise guy’s head if he dares to challenge his father's authority.

These family dissensions, as usual, have got abroad, and are rare food for scandal in John’s neighborhood. People begin to look wise, and shake their heads, whenever his affairs are mentioned. They all "hope that matters are not so bad with him as represented; but when a man’s own children begin to rail at his extravagance, things must be badly managed. They understand he is mortgaged over head and ears, and is continually dabbling with money lenders. He is certainly an open-handed old gentleman, but they fear he has lived too fast; indeed, they never knew any good come of this fondness for hunting, racing, reveling and prize-fighting. In short, Mr. Bull’s estate is a very fine one, and has been in the family a long time; but, for all that, they have known many finer estates come to the hammer."

These family conflicts, as usual, have spread around, and they provide plenty of gossip in John's neighborhood. People start to look knowing and shake their heads whenever his situation is brought up. They all "hope that things aren’t as bad for him as they're being portrayed; but when a man's own kids start criticizing his spending, things must be poorly managed. They know he's deeply in debt and is constantly dealing with money lenders. He’s definitely a generous older guy, but they worry he’s lived beyond his means; in fact, they’ve never seen anything good come from this love for hunting, racing, partying, and prize-fighting. In short, Mr. Bull’s estate is quite impressive and has been in the family for a long time; but even so, they’ve seen many better estates get sold off."

What is worst of all, is the effect which these pecuniary embarrassments and domestic feuds have had on the poor man himself. Instead of that jolly round corporation, and smug rosy face, which he used to present, he has of late become as shriveled and shrunk as a frost-bitten apple. His scarlet gold-laced waistcoat, which bellied out so bravely in those prosperous days when he sailed before the wind, now hangs loosely about him like a mainsail in a calm. His leather breeches are all in folds and wrinkles, and apparently have much ado to hold up the boots that yawn on both sides of his once sturdy legs.

What’s worst of all is the impact that these financial troubles and family conflicts have had on the poor man himself. Instead of that jolly round belly and the smug rosy face he used to show off, he has lately become as shriveled and shrunk as a frostbitten apple. His fancy gold-embroidered waistcoat, which used to puff out so boldly in those prosperous days when life was easy, now hangs loosely on him like a sail in still air. His leather pants are all crumpled and wrinkled, and they seem to struggle just to hold up the boots that sag on both sides of his once-strong legs.

Instead of strutting about as formerly, with his three-cornered hat on one side; flourishing his cudgel, and bringing it down every moment with a hearty thump upon the ground; looking everyone sturdily in the face, and trolling out a stave of a catch or a drinking song; he now goes about whistling thoughtfully to himself, with his head drooping down, his cudgel tucked under his arm, and his hands thrust to the bottom of his breeches pockets, which are evidently empty.

Instead of walking around confidently like he used to, with his three-cornered hat tilted to one side; waving his stick and thumping it on the ground every few moments; staring everyone down and singing snippets of a catchy or drinking song; he now walks around whistling to himself, with his head down, his stick tucked under his arm, and his hands shoved deep into the pockets of his pants, which are clearly empty.

Such is the plight of honest John Bull at present; yet for all this the old fellow’s spirit is as tall and as gallant as ever. If you drop the least expression of sympathy or concern, he takes fire in an instant; swears that he is the richest and stoutest fellow in the country; talks of laying out large sums to adorn his house or buy another estate; and with a valiant swagger and grasping of his cudgel, longs exceedingly to have another bout at quarter-staff.

Such is the situation of honest John Bull right now; yet despite all this, the old guy's spirit is just as strong and brave as ever. If you show even the slightest bit of sympathy or concern, he gets fired up instantly; insists that he is the richest and toughest guy in the country; talks about spending a lot of money to decorate his house or buy another property; and with a bold swagger and grip on his club, is very eager to have another go at quarter-staff.

Though there may be something rather whimsical in all this, yet I confess I cannot look upon John’s situation without strong feelings of interest. With all his odd humors and obstinate prejudices, he is a sterling-hearted old blade. He may not be so wonderfully fine a fellow as he thinks himself, but he is at least twice as good as his neighbors represent him. His virtues are all his own; all plain, homebred, and unaffected. His very faults smack of the raciness of his good qualities. His extravagance savors of his generosity; his quarrelsomeness of his courage; his credulity of his open faith; his vanity of his pride; and his bluntness of his sincerity. They are all the redundancies of a rich and liberal character. He is like his own oak, rough without, but sound and solid within; whose bark abounds with excrescences in proportion to the growth and grandeur of the timber; and whose branches make a fearful groaning and murmuring in the least storm, from their very magnitude and luxuriance. There is something, too, in the appearance of his old family mansion that is extremely poetical and picturesque; and, as long as it can be rendered comfortably habitable, I should almost tremble to see it meddled with, during the present conflict of tastes and opinions. Some of his advisers are no doubt good architects, that might be of service; but many, I fear, are mere levelers, who, when they had once got to work with their mattocks on this venerable edifice, would never stop until they had brought it to the ground, and perhaps buried themselves among the ruins. All that I wish is, that John’s present troubles may teach him more prudence in future. That he may cease to distress his mind about other people’s affairs; that he may give up the fruitless attempt to promote the good of his neighbors, and the peace and happiness of the world, by dint of the cudgel; that he may remain quietly at home; gradually get his house into repair; cultivate his rich estate according to his fancy; husband his income—if he thinks proper; bring his unruly children into order—if he can; renew the jovial scenes of ancient prosperity; and long enjoy, on his paternal lands, a green, an honorable, and a merry old age.

While there may be something rather whimsical about all this, I have to admit I can't view John's situation without feeling a strong sense of interest. With all his quirky behaviors and stubborn beliefs, he is a genuinely good-hearted guy. He might not be as impressive as he thinks he is, but he's definitely better than what his neighbors say. His virtues are all his own—plain, homegrown, and genuine. Even his flaws reflect the richness of his good qualities. His extravagance shows his generosity; his quarrelsomeness highlights his courage; his gullibility reveals his open faith; his vanity is tied to his pride; and his bluntness indicates his sincerity. All these are just excesses of a generous and full character. He's like his own oak tree, rough on the outside but solid and strong on the inside; its bark is full of bumps in proportion to the size and strength of the wood, and its branches creak and groan in the slightest storm because of their size and abundance. There's something incredibly poetic and picturesque about the appearance of his old family home; as long as it can be made comfortably livable, I would almost cringe at the thought of it being changed during this conflict of tastes and opinions. Some of his advisors are undoubtedly good architects who could help, but many, I fear, are just destroyers who, once they started working with their tools on this venerable building, would stop only when they brought it to the ground, possibly burying themselves in the ruins. All I hope is that John's current troubles teach him to be wiser in the future. That he stops worrying about other people's lives; that he lets go of the fruitless effort to improve his neighbors' lives and bring peace and happiness to the world through force; that he stays home quietly; gradually fixes up his house; manages his rich estate as he likes; conserves his income—if he thinks it’s necessary; brings his unruly kids into line—if he can; relives the joyful days of past prosperity; and enjoys, on his ancestral land, a long, honorable, and happy old age.

THE MUTABILITY OF LITERATURE

A COLLOQUY IN WESTMINSTER ABBEY

WASHINGTON IRVING

"I know that everything under the moon decays,
And what is brought by humans in this world, In the distant future, everything will return to nothing. I know that all of the muse's beautiful songs,
With the effort of spirits that are so dearly earned,
As idle sounds, few or none are desired,
"There's nothing lighter than just praise." —Drummond of Hawthornden.

THERE are certain half-dreaming moods of mind, in which we naturally steal away from noise and glare, and seek some quiet haunt, where we may indulge our reveries and build our air castles undisturbed. In such a mood I was loitering about the old gray cloisters of Westminster Abbey, enjoying that luxury of wandering thought which one is apt to dignify with the name of reflection; when suddenly an interruption of madcap boys from Westminster School, playing at football, broke in upon the monastic stillness of the place, making the vaulted passages and mouldering tombs echo with their merriment. I sought to take refuge from their noise by penetrating still deeper into the solitudes of the pile, and applied to one of the vergers for admission to the library. He conducted me through a portal rich with the crumbling sculpture of former ages, which opened upon a gloomy passage leading to the chapter-house and the chamber in which doomsday book is deposited. Just within the passage is a small door on the left. To this the verger applied a key; it was double locked, and opened with some difficulty, as if seldom used. We now ascended a dark narrow staircase, and, passing through a second door, entered the library.

There are certain dreamy states of mind where we naturally drift away from noise and chaos, seeking a quiet place to indulge in our thoughts and build our castles in the air undisturbed. In such a mood, I was wandering through the old gray cloisters of Westminster Abbey, enjoying that luxury of wandering thought that one might call reflection; when suddenly a group of rowdy boys from Westminster School, playing football, burst in and interrupted the peaceful stillness of the place, making the vaulted passages and crumbling tombs echo with their laughter. I tried to escape their noise by going deeper into the solitude of the structure and asked one of the vergers for access to the library. He led me through a doorway adorned with the crumbling sculptures of past ages, which opened into a dark passage that led to the chapter house and the room where the Domesday Book is kept. Just inside the passage, there’s a small door on the left. The verger used a key on it; it was double locked and opened with some effort, as if it was rarely used. We then climbed a dark, narrow staircase and, after passing through a second door, entered the library.

I found myself in a lofty antique hall, the roof supported by massive joists of old English oak. It was soberly lighted by a row of Gothic windows at a considerable height from the floor, and which apparently opened upon the roofs of the cloisters. An ancient picture of some reverend dignitary of the church in his robes hung over the fireplace. Around the hall and in a small gallery were the books, arranged in carved oaken cases. They consisted principally of old polemical writers, and were much more worn by time than use. In the center of the library was a solitary table with two or three books on it, an inkstand without ink, and a few pens parched by long disuse. The place seemed fitted for quiet study and profound meditation. It was buried deep among the massive walls of the abbey, and shut up from the tumult of the world. I could only hear now and then the shouts of the school-boys faintly swelling from the cloisters, and the sound of a bell tolling for prayers, echoing soberly along the roofs of the abbey. By degrees the shouts of merriment grew fainter and fainter, and at length died away; the bell ceased to toll, and a profound silence reigned through the dusky hall.

I found myself in a high, old hall, the roof supported by huge beams of ancient English oak. It had dim lighting from a row of Gothic windows set high above the floor, which seemed to overlook the roofs of the cloisters. An old painting of some respected church figure in his robes hung above the fireplace. The hall and a small gallery were lined with books, kept in carved oak cases. They were mainly old debate writings and showed far more wear from age than from being used. In the center of the library was a single table with a couple of books on it, an inkstand without ink, and a few pens dried out from long disuse. The place felt perfect for quiet study and deep thought. It was tucked away within the thick walls of the abbey, cut off from the noise of the outside world. I could only occasionally hear the distant shouts of schoolboys faintly rising from the cloisters, and the sound of a bell ringing for prayers echoed solemnly across the abbey's roofs. Gradually, the cheerful shouts faded away until they were gone; the bell stopped tolling, and a deep silence settled over the gloomy hall.

I had taken down a little thick quarto, curiously bound in parchment, with brass clasps, and seated myself at the table in a venerable elbow-chair. Instead of reading, however, I was beguiled by the solemn monastic air, and lifeless quiet of the place, into a train of musing. As I looked around upon the old volumes in their mouldering covers, thus ranged on the shelves, and apparently never disturbed in their repose, I could not but consider the library a kind of literary catacomb, where authors, like mummies, are piously entombed, and left to blacken and moulder in dusty oblivion.

I had taken down a thick quarto, oddly bound in parchment with brass clasps, and settled into a vintage elbow chair at the table. Instead of reading, I was drawn in by the serious, monastic vibe and the lifeless silence of the place, leading me into a train of thought. As I looked around at the old books in their decaying covers, all lined up on the shelves and seemingly undisturbed in their rest, I couldn't help but see the library as a sort of literary catacomb, where authors, like mummies, are reverently buried and left to fade away in dusty oblivion.

How much, thought I, has each of these volumes, now thrust aside with such indifference, cost some aching head! how many weary days! how many sleepless nights! How have their authors buried themselves in the solitude of cells and cloisters; shut themselves up from the face of man, and the still more blessed face of nature; and devoted themselves to painful research and intense reflection! And all for what? to occupy an inch of dusty shelf—to have the title of their works read now and then in a future age, by some drowsy churchman or casual straggler like myself; and in another age to be lost, even to remembrance. Such is the amount of this boasted immortality. A mere temporary rumor, a local sound; like the tone of that bell which has just tolled among these towers, filling the ear for a moment—lingering transiently in echo—and then passing away like a thing that was not.

How much, I thought, has each of these books, now pushed aside with such indifference, cost someone’s aching mind! How many exhausting days! How many sleepless nights! How have their authors isolated themselves in cells and cloisters; shut themselves off from the sight of others, and even more happily, the beauty of nature; and dedicated themselves to painful research and deep thought! And all for what? To take up an inch of dusty shelf—to have the titles of their works glanced at now and then in some future time, by a sleepy clergyman or an occasional wanderer like me; and in another age to be forgotten, even from memory. Such is the reality of this so-called immortality. A mere temporary rumor, a local noise; like the sound of that bell which just rang among these towers, filling the ear for a moment—lingering briefly in echo—and then fading away like something that never existed.

While I sat half murmuring, half meditating these unprofitable speculations with my head resting on my hand, I was thrumming with the other hand upon the quarto, until I accidentally loosened the clasps; when, to my utter astonishment, the little book gave two or three yawns, like one awaking from a deep sleep; then a husky hem; and at length began to talk. At first its voice was very hoarse and broken, being much troubled by a cobweb which some studious spider had woven across it; and having probably contracted a cold from long exposure to the chills and damps of the abbey. In a short time, however, it became more distinct, and I soon found it an exceedingly fluent conversable little tome. Its language, to be sure, was rather quaint and obsolete, and its pronunciation, what, in the present day, would be deemed barbarous; but I shall endeavor, as far as I am able, to render it in modern parlance.

While I sat there half mumbling and half thinking about these pointless musings with my head resting on my hand, I was tapping on the book with my other hand until I accidentally popped the clasps open. To my surprise, the little book let out two or three yawns, like someone waking up from a deep sleep; then a gruff cough; and finally started to talk. At first, its voice was very scratchy and broken, disturbed by a cobweb that some diligent spider had woven across it, and probably had caught a cold from being exposed to the chill and damp of the abbey for so long. However, in a short while, it became clearer, and I quickly discovered it was quite an articulate little book. Its language was somewhat old-fashioned and its pronunciation would be considered unusual today; but I will try, as much as I can, to express it in modern language.

It began with railings about the neglect of the world—about merit being suffered to languish in obscurity, and other such commonplace topics of literary repining, and complained bitterly that it had not been opened for more than two centuries; that the dean only looked now and then into the library, sometimes took down a volume or two, trifled with them for a few moments, and then returned them to their shelves. "What a plague do they mean," said the little quarto, which I began to perceive was somewhat choleric, "what a plague do they mean by keeping several thousand volumes of us shut up here, and watched by a set of old vergers, like so many beauties in a harem, merely to be looked at now and then by the dean? Books were written to give pleasure and to be enjoyed; and I would have a rule passed that the dean should pay each of us a visit at least once a year; or if he is not equal to the task, let them once in a while turn loose the whole school of Westminster among us, that at any rate we may now and then have an airing."

It started with complaints about how the world was being neglected—about talent being allowed to fade into obscurity, and other common themes of literary sorrow. It bitterly lamented that it hadn’t been opened in over two hundred years; that the dean only occasionally glanced at the library, sometimes took down a book or two, fiddled with them for a few minutes, and then put them back on the shelves. "What on earth do they mean," said the little quarto, which I could tell was a bit irritable, "what on earth do they mean by keeping several thousand volumes like us locked up here, watched over by a bunch of old vergers, just to be glanced at occasionally by the dean? Books are meant to give pleasure and to be enjoyed; I think there should be a rule that the dean has to visit each of us at least once a year; or if he can’t handle that, let them occasionally unleash the whole school of Westminster among us, so we can at least get some fresh air now and then."

"Softly, my worthy friend," replied I, "you are not aware how much better you are off than most books of your generation. By being stored away in this ancient library, you are like the treasured remains of those saints and monarchs, which lie enshrined in the adjoining chapels; while the remains of your contemporary mortals, left to the ordinary course of nature, have long since returned to dust."

"Very gently, my good friend," I replied, "you don't realize how much better off you are than most books from your time. By being kept in this old library, you're like the treasured remains of saints and kings that are enshrined in the nearby chapels; while the remains of the ordinary people from your era have long since turned to dust."

"Sir," said the little tome, ruffling his leaves and looking big, "I was written for all the world, not for the bookworms of an abbey. I was intended to circulate from hand to hand, like other great contemporary works; but here have I been clasped up for more than two centuries, and might have silently fallen a prey to these worms that are playing the very vengeance with my intestines, if you had not by chance given me an opportunity of uttering a few last words before I go to pieces."

"Sir," said the little book, rustling its pages and puffing up, "I was made for everyone, not just for the bookworms of a monastery. I was meant to be passed around, like other great works of my time; but here I've been locked away for over two hundred years, and could have quietly succumbed to these worms that are wreaking havoc on my insides, if you hadn't happened to give me a chance to say a few final words before I fall apart."

"My good friend," rejoined I, "had you been left to the circulation of which you speak, you would long ere this have been no more. To judge from your physiognomy, you are now well stricken in years: very few of your contemporaries can be at present in existence; and those few owe their longevity to being immured like yourself in old libraries; which, suffer me to add, instead of likening to harems, you might more properly and gratefully have compared to those infirmaries attached to religious establishments, for the benefit of the old and decrepit, and where, by quiet fostering and no employment, they often endure to an amazingly good-for-nothing old age. You talk of your contemporaries as if in circulation—where do we meet with their works? what do we hear of Robert Groteste, of Lincoln? No one could have toiled harder than he for immortality. He is said to have written nearly two hundred volumes. He built, as it were, a pyramid of books to perpetuate his name: but, alas! the pyramid has long since fallen, and only a few fragments are scattered in various libraries, where they are scarcely disturbed even by the antiquarian. What do we hear of Giraldus Cambrensis, the historian, antiquary, philosopher, theologian, and poet? He declined two bishoprics, that he might shut himself up and write for posterity; but posterity never inquires after his labors. What of Henry of Huntingdon, who, besides a learned history of England, wrote a treatise on the contempt of the world, which the world has revenged by forgetting him? What is quoted of Joseph of Exeter, styled the miracle of his age in classical composition? Of his three great heroic poems one is lost forever, excepting a mere fragment; the others are known only to a few of the curious in literature; and as to his love verses and epigrams, they have entirely disappeared. What is in current use of John Wallis, the Franciscan, who acquired the name of the tree of life? Of William of Malmsbury;—of Simeon of Durham;—of Benedict of Peterborough;—of John Hanvill of St. Albans;—of——"

"My good friend," I replied, "if you had been left to the circulation you mention, you would have been gone by now. Judging by your appearance, you seem to be quite old: very few of your contemporaries are still alive; and those few owe their long lives to being shut away like you in old libraries. Rather than comparing them to harems, you should have more appropriately and gratefully compared them to those infirmaries attached to religious institutions, benefiting the elderly and frail, where, due to the peaceful environment and lack of tasks, they often end up living a remarkably uneventful old age. You speak of your contemporaries as if they are still circulating—where are their works? What do we hear about Robert Groteste from Lincoln? No one worked harder than he did for immortality. He supposedly wrote nearly two hundred volumes. He essentially built a pyramid of books to ensure his name would live on: but, sadly, the pyramid has long since collapsed, and only a few fragments remain scattered across various libraries, rarely touched even by collectors. What do we know of Giraldus Cambrensis, the historian, antiquarian, philosopher, theologian, and poet? He turned down two bishopric positions just to isolate himself and write for future generations; but future generations have no interest in his work. What about Henry of Huntingdon, who not only wrote a learned history of England but also a treatise on the contempt of the world, which the world has repaid by forgetting him? What do we quote from Joseph of Exeter, called the marvel of his age in classical writing? One of his three major epic poems is lost forever, except for a mere fragment; the others are only known to a handful of literature enthusiasts, and as for his love poems and epigrams, they have completely vanished. What do we currently recognize from John Wallis, the Franciscan known as the tree of life? What about William of Malmsbury—Simeon of Durham—Benedict of Peterborough—John Hanvill of St. Albans—of——"

"Prithee, friend," cried the quarto, in a testy tone, "how old do you think me? You are talking of authors that lived long before my time, and wrote either in Latin or French, so that they in a manner expatriated themselves, and deserved to be forgotten;[1] but I, sir, was ushered into the world from the press of the renowned Wynkyn de Worde. I was written in my own native tongue, at a time when the language had become fixed; and indeed I was considered a model of pure and elegant English."

"Prithee, friend," said the quarto, sounding annoyed, "how old do you think I am? You’re talking about authors who lived long before my time and wrote in Latin or French, which made them somewhat foreign and deserving of being forgotten;[1] but I, sir, was brought into the world from the press of the famous Wynkyn de Worde. I was written in my own native language, at a time when it had become established; and indeed, I was seen as a model of pure and elegant English."

(I should observe that these remarks were couched in such intolerably antiquated terms, that I have had infinite difficulty in rendering them into modern phraseology.)

(I should note that these comments were worded in such outdated language that I've had a lot of trouble translating them into modern terms.)

"I cry your mercy," said I, "for mistaking your age; but it matters little: almost all the writers of your time have likewise passed into forgetfulness; and De Worde’s publications are mere literary rarities among book-collectors. The purity and stability of language, too, on which you found your claims to perpetuity, have been the fallacious dependence of authors of every age, even back to the times of the worthy Robert of Gloucester, who wrote his history in rhymes of mongrel Saxon.[2] Even now many talk of Spenser’s 'well of pure English undefiled,' as if the language ever sprang from a well or fountain-head, and was not rather a mere confluence of various tongues, perpetually subject to changes and intermixtures. It is this which has made English literature so extremely mutable, and the reputation built upon it so fleeting. Unless thought can be committed to something more permanent and unchangeable than such a medium, even thought must share the fate of everything else, and fall into decay. This should serve as a check upon the vanity and exultation of the most popular writer. He finds the language in which he has embarked his fame gradually altering, and subject to the dilapidations of time and the caprice of fashion. He looks back and beholds the early authors of his country, once the favorites of their day, supplanted by modern writers. A few short ages have covered them with obscurity, and their merits can only be relished by the quaint taste of the bookworm. And such, he anticipates, will be the fate of his own work, which, however it may be admired in its day, and held up as a model of purity, will in the course of years grow antiquated and obsolete; until it shall become almost as unintelligible in its native land as an Egyptian obelisk, or one of those Runic inscriptions said to exist in the deserts of Tartary. I declare," added I, with some emotion, "when I contemplate a modern library, filled with new works, in all the bravery of rich gilding and binding, I feel disposed to sit down and weep; like the good Xerxes, when he surveyed his army, pranked out in all the splendor of military array, and reflected that in one hundred years not one of them would be in existence!"

"I beg your forgiveness," I said, "for misjudging your age; but it doesn’t really matter: nearly all the writers of your time have faded into obscurity; and De Worde’s publications are now just rare finds among book collectors. The clarity and consistency of language, which you claim as your basis for lasting fame, have always been a shaky reliance for authors throughout history, dating back to the time of the worthy Robert of Gloucester, who wrote his history in rhymes of a mixed Saxon.[2] Even today, many talk about Spenser’s 'well of pure English undefiled,' as if the language ever came from a well or source, and not from a blend of various languages, constantly changing and mixing. This is what has made English literature incredibly variable, and the reputation built on it so temporary. Unless ideas can be captured in something more permanent and unchangeable than such a medium, those ideas will share the same fate as everything else and eventually fade away. This should serve as a reminder against the pride and overconfidence of even the most popular writer. They see the language that underpins their fame gradually shifting, susceptible to the decay of time and the whims of fashion. They look back and see the early authors of their country, once celebrated in their time, now overtaken by contemporary writers. A few short centuries have obscured them, and their value can only be appreciated by those with a niche interest in old books. And such, they expect, will be the fate of their own work, which, no matter how admired today, and held up as a standard of purity, will become outdated and irrelevant over time; until it becomes almost as incomprehensible in its own country as an Egyptian obelisk, or one of those Runic inscriptions said to exist in the deserts of Tartary. I must say," I added, with some emotion, "when I look at a modern library, filled with new works, all decked out in opulent gilding and binding, I feel like sitting down and crying; like good Xerxes did when he looked over his army, all decked out in their military splendor, and realized that in a hundred years none of them would be alive!"

"Ah," said the little quarto, with a heavy sigh, "I see how it is; these modern scribblers have superseded all the good old authors. I suppose nothing is read now-a-days but Sir Philip Sydney’s Arcadia, Sackville’s stately plays, and Mirror for Magistrates, or the fine-spun euphuisms of the 'unparalleled John Lyly.'"

"Ah," said the little quarto, with a heavy sigh, "I get it; these modern writers have replaced all the great classic authors. I guess nothing is read these days except for Sir Philip Sidney’s Arcadia, Sackville’s impressive plays, and Mirror for Magistrates, or the elaborate euphuisms of the 'unmatched John Lyly.'"

"There you are again mistaken," said I; "the writers whom you suppose in vogue, because they happened to be so when you were last in circulation, have long since had their day. Sir Philip Sydney’s Arcadia, the immortality of which was so fondly predicted by his admirers,[3] and which, in truth, is full of noble thoughts, delicate images, and graceful turns of language, is now scarcely ever mentioned. Sackville has strutted into obscurity; and even Lyly, though his writings were once the delight of a court, and apparently perpetuated by a proverb, is now scarcely known even by name. A whole crowd of authors who wrote and wrangled at the time, have likewise gone down, with all their writings and their controversies. Wave after wave of succeeding literature has rolled over them, until they are buried so deep, that it is only now and then that some industrious diver after fragments of antiquity brings up a specimen for the gratification of the curious.

"There you are mistaken again," I said. "The writers you think are popular, just because they were when you last checked, have long since faded from view. Sir Philip Sidney’s Arcadia, which his fans promised would be immortal,[3] and which is truly filled with noble thoughts, beautiful imagery, and elegant language, is now hardly ever mentioned. Sackville has faded into obscurity; and even Lyly, although his works were once the pride of the court and supposedly remembered in a proverb, is now barely known by name. A whole bunch of authors who were active and argued during that time have also disappeared, along with all their writings and disputes. Wave after wave of new literature has washed over them, burying them so deep that only now and then does some diligent explorer pull up a fragment of the past for the curious to see."

"For my part," I continued, "I consider this mutability of language a wise precaution of Providence for the benefit of the world at large, and of authors in particular. To reason from analogy, we daily behold the varied and beautiful tribes of vegetables springing up, flourishing, adorning the fields for a short time, and then fading into dust, to make way for their successors. Were not this the case, the fecundity of nature would be a grievance instead of a blessing. The earth would groan with rank and excessive vegetation, and its surface become a tangled wilderness. In like manner the works of genius and learning decline, and make way for subsequent productions. Language gradually varies, and with it fade away the writings of authors who have flourished their allotted time; otherwise, the creative powers of genius would overstock the world, and the mind would be completely bewildered in the endless mazes of literature. Formerly there were some restraints on this excessive multiplication. Works had to be transcribed by hand, which was a slow and laborious operation; they were written either on parchment, which was expensive, so that one work was often erased to make way for another; or on papyrus, which was fragile and extremely perishable. Authorship was a limited and unprofitable craft, pursued chiefly by monks in the leisure and solitude of their cloisters. The accumulation of manuscripts was slow and costly, and confined almost entirely to monasteries. To these circumstances it may, in some measure, be owing that we have not been inundated by the intellect of antiquity; that the fountains of thought have not been broken up, and modern genius drowned in the deluge. But the inventions of paper and the press have put an end to all these restraints. They have made everyone a writer, and enabled every mind to pour itself into print, and diffuse itself over the whole intellectual world. The consequences are alarming. The stream of literature has swollen into a torrent—augmented into a river—expanded into a sea. A few centuries since, five or six hundred manuscripts constituted a great library; but what would you say to libraries such as actually exist, containing three or four hundred thousand volumes; legions of authors at the same time busy; and the press going on with fearfully increasing activity, to double and quadruple the number? Unless some unforeseen mortality should break out among the progeny of the muse, now that she has become so prolific, I tremble for posterity. I fear the mere fluctuation of language will not be sufficient. Criticism may do much. It increases with the increase of literature, and resembles one of those salutary checks on population spoken of by economists. All possible encouragement, therefore, should be given to the growth of critics, good or bad. But I fear all will be in vain; let criticism do what it may, writers will write, printers will print, and the world will inevitably be overstocked with good books. It will soon be the employment of a lifetime merely to learn their names. Many a man of passable information, at the present day, reads scarcely anything but reviews; and before long a man of erudition will be little better than a mere walking catalogue."

"For my part," I continued, "I think this changing nature of language is a wise precaution by Providence for the benefit of the world as a whole, and for authors in particular. To compare by analogy, we see every day the diverse and beautiful tribes of plants springing up, thriving, beautifying the fields for a short time, and then fading away to make room for their successors. If this weren’t the case, the fertility of nature would be more of a burden than a blessing. The earth would be overwhelmed by dense and excessive vegetation, turning its surface into a tangled wilderness. Similarly, the works of genius and knowledge decline, making way for new creations. Language gradually changes, and along with it fade the writings of authors who have had their time in the spotlight; otherwise, the creative powers of genius would flood the world, and the mind would be completely lost in the endless complexities of literature. In the past, there were some limitations on this excessive multiplication. Works had to be copied by hand, which was a slow and laborious task; they were written either on parchment, which was costly, so one work was often erased to make space for another; or on papyrus, which was delicate and easily damaged. Authorship was a limited and unprofitable craft, mostly pursued by monks in the peace and solitude of their cloisters. The accumulation of manuscripts was slow and expensive, mostly confined to monasteries. These conditions may, to some extent, explain why we haven't been overwhelmed by ancient intellect; why the fountains of thought haven’t been unleashed, drowning modern genius in a deluge. But the inventions of paper and the printing press have removed all these restrictions. They have turned everyone into a writer, allowing every mind to express itself in print and spread across the entire intellectual landscape. The results are alarming. The flow of literature has swollen into a torrent—grown into a river—expanded into a sea. A few centuries ago, five or six hundred manuscripts made a great library; but what would you say about libraries that actually exist, containing three or four hundred thousand volumes; countless authors busy at the same time; and the press operating with frightening intensity, doubling and quadrupling production? Unless some unforeseen calamity strikes the offspring of the muse, now that she has become so prolific, I worry for future generations. I fear the simple fluctuation of language won’t be enough. Criticism can help. It grows with the increase in literature and is like one of those beneficial checks on population mentioned by economists. Therefore, every possible encouragement should be given to the growth of critics, whether they're good or bad. But I fear it will all be in vain; no matter what criticism tries to do, writers will continue to write, printers will keep printing, and the world will inevitably be flooded with good books. It will soon take a lifetime just to learn their titles. Many people today with average knowledge read hardly anything but reviews; and soon, a well-educated person may be little more than a walking catalogue."

"My very good sir," said the little quarto, yawning most drearily in my face, "excuse my interrupting you, but I perceive you are rather given to prose. I would ask the fate of an author who was making some noise just as I left the world. His reputation, however, was considered quite temporary. The learned shook their heads at him, for he was a poor half-educated varlet, that knew little of Latin, and nothing of Greek, and had been obliged to run the country for deer-stealing. I think his name was Shakspeare. I presume he soon sunk into oblivion."

"My good sir," said the little book, yawning widely in my face, "sorry to interrupt, but I notice you tend to favor prose. I’d like to know what happened to an author who was making some buzz just as I left the world. His reputation was thought to be quite fleeting. The scholars shook their heads at him because he was a poorly educated fellow, who knew little Latin and nothing of Greek, and had been forced to flee the country for stealing deer. I think his name was Shakespeare. I assume he quickly faded into obscurity."

"On the contrary," said I, "it is owing to that very man that the literature of his period has experienced a duration beyond the ordinary term of English literature. There rise authors now and then, who seem proof against the mutability of language, because they have rooted themselves in the unchanging principles of human nature. They are like gigantic trees that we sometimes see on the banks of a stream; which, by their vast and deep roots, penetrating through the mere surface, and laying hold on the very foundations of the earth, preserve the soil around them from being swept away by the ever-flowing current, and hold up many a neighboring plant, and perhaps worthless weed, to perpetuity. Such is the case with Shakspeare, whom we behold defying the encroachments of time, retaining in modern use the language and literature of his day, and giving duration to many an indifferent author, merely from having flourished in his vicinity. But even he, I grieve to say, is gradually assuming the tint of age, and his whole form is overrun by a profusion of commentators, who, like clambering vines and creepers, almost bury the noble plant that upholds them."

"On the contrary," I said, "it's because of that very man that the literature of his time has lasted longer than typical English literature. Now and then, certain authors emerge who seem unaffected by the changes in language because they have grounded themselves in the unchanging principles of human nature. They resemble giant trees we sometimes see along riverbanks; their vast and deep roots penetrate the surface, reaching deep into the earth to keep the surrounding soil from being washed away by the ever-flowing current and support many neighboring plants, even the worthless weeds, for the long term. Such is the case with Shakespeare, whom we see defying the passage of time, keeping the language and literature of his era alive, and prolonging the relevance of many mediocre authors simply because they thrived in his shadow. But even he, I regret to say, is slowly taking on the hue of age, and his entire presence is overwhelmed by a multitude of commentators, who, like climbing vines and creepers, nearly smother the noble plant that supports them."

Here the little quarto began to heave his sides and chuckle, until at length he broke out in a plethoric fit of laughter that had well nigh choked him, by reason of his excessive corpulency. "Mighty well!" cried he, as soon as he could recover breath, "mighty well! and so you would persuade me that the literature of an age is to be perpetuated by a vagabond deer-stealer! by a man without learning; by a poet, forsooth—a poet!" And here he wheezed forth another fit of laughter.

Here the little book started to shake and chuckle until he finally burst out in a fit of laughter that almost choked him because he was so overweight. "Really now!" he exclaimed, as soon as he could catch his breath, "really now! So you're trying to convince me that the literature of a time is going to be carried on by a wandering deer thief! By a man with no education; by a poet, indeed—a poet!" And he wheezed out another round of laughter.

I confess that I felt somewhat nettled at this rudeness, which, however, I pardoned on account of his having flourished in a less polished age. I determined, nevertheless, not to give up my point.

I admit that I felt a bit annoyed by this rudeness, which I forgave because he came from a less refined time. Still, I decided not to back down from my position.

"Yes," resumed I, positively, "a poet; for of all writers he has the best chance for immortality. Others may write from the head, but he writes from the heart, and the heart will always understand him. He is the faithful portrayer of nature, whose features are always the same and always interesting. Prose writers are voluminous and unwieldy; their pages are crowded with commonplaces, and their thoughts expanded into tediousness. But with the true poet everything is terse, touching, or brilliant. He gives the choicest thoughts in the choicest language. He illustrates them by everything that he sees most striking in nature and art. He enriches them by pictures of human life, such as it is passing before him. His writings, therefore, contain the spirit, the aroma, if I may use the phrase, of the age in which he lives. They are caskets which inclose within a small compass the wealth of the language—its family jewels, which are thus transmitted in a portable form to posterity. The setting may occasionally be antiquated, and require now and then to be renewed, as in the case of Chaucer; but the brilliancy and intrinsic value of the gems continue unaltered. Cast a look back over the long reach of literary history. What vast valleys of dullness, filled with monkish legends and academical controversies! what bogs of theological speculations! what dreary wastes of metaphysics! Here and there only do we behold the heaven-illuminated bards, elevated like beacons on their widely-separate heights, to transmit the pure light of poetical intelligence from age to age."[4]

"Yes," I continued confidently, "a poet; because out of all writers, he has the best chance for immortality. Others may write from intellect, but he writes from the heart, and the heart will always connect with him. He faithfully portrays nature, whose features are always the same and always interesting. Prose writers are lengthy and cumbersome; their pages are filled with clichés, and their thoughts stretch into boredom. But with a true poet, everything is concise, emotional, or brilliant. He delivers the finest thoughts in the best language. He illustrates them with everything striking he observes in nature and art. He enriches them with scenes from human life as it unfolds around him. Therefore, his writings embody the spirit, the essence, if I may say, of the age he lives in. They are treasure chests that hold within a small space the wealth of language—its family jewels, which are thus passed on in a portable form to future generations. The setting may sometimes feel outdated and need refreshing, as with Chaucer; but the brilliance and intrinsic value of the gems remain unchanged. Look back over the vast expanse of literary history. What immense valleys of dullness, filled with monkish legends and academic disputes! What marshes of theological debates! What dreary expanses of metaphysics! Only occasionally do we see the heaven-lit poets, standing like beacons on their widely separated heights, transmitting the pure light of poetic insight from one generation to the next."

I was just about to launch forth into eulogiums upon the poets of the day, when the sudden opening of the door caused me to turn my head. It was the verger, who came to inform me that it was time to close the library. I sought to have a parting word with the quarto, but the worthy little tome was silent; the clasps were closed: and it looked perfectly unconscious of all that had passed. I have been to the library two or three times since, and have endeavored to draw it into further conversation, but in vain; and whether all this rambling colloquy actually took place, or whether it was another of those odd day-dreams to which I am subject, I have never to this moment been able to discover.

I was just about to start raving about the great poets of today when the door suddenly opened, making me turn my head. It was the librarian, here to tell me it was time to close the library. I wanted to say a final word to the book, but the little volume was silent; its clasps were shut, and it seemed completely unaware of everything that had happened. I've gone back to the library a couple of times since, trying to engage it in conversation again, but with no luck; I still can’t tell if this entire chat actually happened or if it was just one of those strange daydreams I often have.

KEAN’S ACTING

RICHARD HENRY DANA

"For, doubtless, that indeed according to art is most eloquent, which turns and approaches nearest to nature, from whence it came."

"For sure, what is truly eloquent in art is that which closely aligns with nature, from which it originated."

—MILTON.

—MILTON.

"Professed diversions! can't they escape?
I apologize, but there is no text provided for me to modernize. Please provide the text you'd like me to work on. We raid tombs for fun; from the dust
Awaken the hero from his sleep; ask him to step forward. The setting for our entertainment: How divine We sit, immersed in immortality, Shed tears freely for those unfortunate souls destined to die; "Feeling sorry for their fate, we forget our own!"
—Young.

I HAD scarcely thought of the theater for some years, when Kean arrived in this country; and it was more from curiosity than from any other motive, that I went to see, for the first time, the great actor of the age. I was soon lost to the recollection of being in a theater, or looking upon a great display of the "mimic art." The simplicity, earnestness, and sincerity of his acting made me forgetful of the fiction, and bore me away with the power of reality and truth. If this be acting, said I, as I returned home, I may as well make the theater my school, and henceforward study nature at second hand.

I HAD hardly thought about the theater for a few years when Kean came to this country; and it was more out of curiosity than anything else that I decided to see the great actor of the time for the first time. I quickly forgot that I was in a theater or watching a grand display of the "mimic art." The simplicity, earnestness, and sincerity of his performance made me forget the fiction and swept me away with the power of reality and truth. If this is acting, I thought as I headed home, I might as well consider the theater my school and start studying nature through this lens.

How can I describe one who is almost as full of beauties as nature itself,—who grows upon us the more we become acquainted with him, and makes us sensible that the first time we saw him in any part, however much he may have moved us, we had but a partial apprehension of the many excellences of his acting? We cease to consider it as a mere amusement. It is an intellectual feast; and he who goes to it with a disposition and capacity to relish it, will receive from it more nourishment for his mind, than he would be likely to do in many other ways in twice the time. Our faculties are opened and enlivened by it; our reflections and recollections are of an elevated kind; and the voice which is sounding in our ears, long after we have left him, creates an inward harmony which is for our good.

How can I describe someone who is almost as full of beauty as nature itself—who grows on us the more we get to know him, and makes us realize that the first time we saw him anywhere, no matter how much he moved us, we only had a partial understanding of the many talents in his performance? We stop thinking of it as just entertainment. It becomes an intellectual feast; and those who approach it with an openness and ability to appreciate it will gain more insight for their minds than they would in many other ways in twice the time. Our abilities are awakened and energized by it; our thoughts and memories are elevated; and the voice that lingers in our ears long after we've left creates an inner harmony that benefits us.

Kean, in truth, stands very much in that relation to other players whom we have seen, that Shakspeare does to other dramatists. One player is called classical; another makes fine points here, and another there; Kean makes more fine points than all of them together; but in him these are only little prominences, showing their bright heads above a beautifully undulated surface. A continual change is going on in him, partaking of the nature of the varying scenes he is passing through, and the many thoughts and feelings which are shifting within him.

Kean truly stands in a similar relationship to the other actors we have seen as Shakespeare does to other playwrights. One actor is labeled classical; another has some impressive moments here and there; but Kean delivers more standout moments than all of them combined. However, in him, these moments are just small highlights, peeking above a beautifully varied surface. He undergoes a constant transformation, reflecting the different scenes he experiences and the numerous thoughts and emotions that shift within him.

In a clear autumnal day we may see, here and there, a massed white cloud edged with a blazing brightness against a blue sky, and now and then a dark pine swinging its top in the wind, with the melancholy sound of the sea; but who can note the shifting and untiring play of the leaves of the wood, and their passing hues, when each seems a living thing full of sensations, and happy in its rich attire? A sound, too, of universal harmony is in our ears, and a wide-spread beauty before our eyes, which we cannot define; yet a joy is in our hearts. Our delight increases in these, day after day, the longer we give ourselves to them, till at last we become, as it were, a part of the existence without us. So it is with natural characters. They grow upon us imperceptibly, till we become bound up in them, we scarce know when or how. So, in its degree, it will fare with the actor who is deeply filled with nature, and is perpetually throwing off her beautiful evanescences. Instead of becoming tired of him, as we do, after a time, of others, he will go on giving something which will be new to the observing mind, and will keep the feelings alive, because their action will be natural. I have no doubt, that, excepting those who go to a play as children look into a show-box, to admire and exclaim at distorted figures, and raw, unharmonious colors, there is no man of a moderately warm temperament, and with a tolerable share of insight into human nature, who would not find his interest in Kean increasing with a study of him. It is very possible that the excitement would lessen, but there would be a quieter pleasure, instead of it, stealing upon him, as he became familiar with the character of the acting.

On a clear autumn day, we can see a few puffy white clouds lit up against a blue sky and occasionally a dark pine tree swaying in the wind, accompanied by the somber sound of the sea. But who can really notice the constant and lively dance of the leaves in the woods and their changing colors, when each one seems like a living being full of sensations, happy in its vibrant attire? There’s also a sense of universal harmony in our ears and a broad beauty in front of our eyes that we can’t quite describe; yet there’s a joy in our hearts. Our delight in these things grows day by day the more we immerse ourselves in them, until we ultimately become part of the existence around us. The same goes for natural characters. They gradually become a part of us, until we’re so intertwined with them that we hardly realize when or how it happens. This is also true for an actor who is deeply in tune with nature and continuously expresses its beautiful ephemerality. Instead of growing tired of him, as we often do with others, he will keep offering something new to the observant mind and keep our feelings alive because his performance feels natural. I have no doubt that, apart from those who attend a play like children looking into a toy box to marvel at misshapen figures and bright, clashing colors, there’s no man with a reasonably warm temperament and some understanding of human nature who wouldn’t find his interest in Kean growing deeper with study. It’s very possible that the thrill would diminish, but a quieter pleasure would gently replace it as he became more familiar with the character of the performance.

Taken within his range of characters, the versatility of his playing is striking. He seems not the same being, now representing Richard, and, again, Hamlet; but the two characters alone appear before you, and as distinct individuals who had never known or heard of each other. So does he become the character he is to represent, that we have sometimes thought it a reason why he was not universally better liked here, in Richard; and that because the player did not make himself a little more visible, he must needs bear a share of our dislike of the cruel king. And this may be still more the case, as his construction of the character, whether right or wrong, creates in us an unmixed dislike of Richard, till the anguish of his mind makes him the object of pity; from which time, to the close, all allow that he plays the part better than anyone has done before him.

Within his range of characters, his versatility is impressive. He doesn’t seem like the same person when he’s playing Richard and then Hamlet; instead, each character appears before us as a distinct individual who has never met or heard of the other. He immerses himself fully into the role, leading some to think that this might be why he wasn’t liked as much as he could have been in Richard. Because the actor doesn’t make himself a little more relatable, he ends up sharing in our dislike for the cruel king. This is even more pronounced as his portrayal of the character, whether it's accurate or not, evokes an intense dislike for Richard until the torment he faces makes him a figure of sympathy. From that point until the end, everyone agrees he plays the part better than anyone has before.

In his highest-wrought passion, when the limbs and muscles are alive and quivering, and his gestures hurried and vehement, nothing appears ranted or overacted; because he makes us feel, that, with all this, there is something still within him struggling for utterance. The very breaking and harshness of his voice, in these parts, help to this impression, and make up, in a good degree, for this defect, if it be a defect here.

In his most intense moments, when his limbs and muscles are energized and trembling, and his gestures are quick and passionate, nothing seems forced or exaggerated; because he makes us feel that, despite all this, there’s still something inside him fighting to be expressed. The roughness and edge of his voice in these moments contribute to this feeling and largely compensate for this flaw, if it even is a flaw in this context.

Though he is on the very verge of truth in his passionate parts, he does not fall into extravagance; but runs along the dizzy edge of the roaring and beating sea, with feet as sure as we walk our parlors. We feel that he is safe, for some preternatural spirit upholds him as it hurries him onward; and while all is uptorn and tossing in the whirl of the passions, we see that there is a power and order over the whole.

Though he is on the brink of discovering the truth in his passionate moments, he doesn't go overboard; instead, he navigates the chaotic edge of the roaring and crashing sea with the same confidence we have walking through our living rooms. We sense that he is protected, as if some supernatural force is supporting him while propelling him forward; and even as everything is thrown into turmoil by the swirling emotions, we can see that there is a strength and order overall.

A man has feelings sometimes which can only be breathed out; there is no utterance for them in words. I had hardly written this when the terrible "Ha!" with which Kean makes Lear hail Cornwall and Regan as they enter in the fourth scene of the second act, came to my mind. That cry seemed at the time to take me up and sweep me along in its wild swell. No description in the world could give a tolerably clear notion of it;—it must be formed, as well as it may be, from what is here said of its effect.

A man sometimes has feelings that can only be exhaled; there's no way to express them in words. I had just finished writing this when the powerful "Ha!" that Kean uses when Lear greets Cornwall and Regan as they enter in the fourth scene of the second act popped into my head. That cry felt like it lifted me up and carried me away in its intense surge. No description could accurately capture it; it can only be imagined, as best as possible, from what I've said about its impact.

Kean’s playing is sometimes but the outbreaking of inarticulate sounds;—the throttled struggle of rage, and the choking of grief,—the broken laugh of extreme suffering, when the mind is ready to deliver itself over to an insane joy,—the utterance of over-full love, which cannot and would not speak in express words, and that of wildering grief, which blanks all the faculties of man.

Kean's performance sometimes consists of just a burst of inarticulate sounds—the muffled struggle of anger and the choking feeling of sorrow—the shattered laugh that comes from deep suffering, when the mind is on the brink of slipping into a frenzied joy—the expression of overwhelming love that cannot find the right words, and that of bewildering grief that paralyzes all human faculties.

No other player whom I have heard has attempted these, except now and then; and should anyone have made the trial in the various ways in which Kean gives them, probably he would have failed. Kean thrills us with them, as if they were wrung from him in his agony. They have not the appearance of study or artifice. The truth is, that the labor of a mind of his genius constitutes its existence and delight. It is not like the toil of ordinary men at their task-work. What shows effort in them comes from him with the freedom and force of nature.

No other performer I've heard has tried these, except occasionally; and if anyone has attempted them in the different ways Kean does, they likely failed. Kean captivates us with them, as if they were pulled from him in his pain. They don't feel studied or contrived. The reality is that the work of a mind as brilliant as his is what brings it to life and makes it enjoyable. It’s not like the hard work of regular folks doing their jobs. What seems like effort in them comes from him with the ease and power of nature.

Some object to the frequent use of such sounds, and to others they are quite shocking. But those who permit themselves to consider that there are really violent passions in man’s nature, and that they utter themselves a little differently from our ordinary feelings, understand and feel their language as they speak to us in Kean. Probably no actor has conceived passion with the intenseness and life that he does. It seems to enter into him and possess him, as evil spirits possessed men of old. It is curious to observe how some, who have sat very contentedly, year after year, and called the face-making, which they have seen, expression, and the stage-stride, dignity, and the noisy declamation, and all the rhodomontade of acting, energy and passion, complain that Kean is apt to be extravagant; when in truth he seems to be little more than a simple personation of the feeling or passion to be expressed at the time.

Some people dislike the frequent use of these sounds, and others find them quite shocking. But those who allow themselves to think that there are real violent passions in human nature, and that they express themselves a bit differently from our everyday emotions, understand and resonate with the language they convey in Kean. Probably no actor has captured passion with the depth and vibrancy that he does. It seems to enter him and take over, much like how evil spirits possessed people in the past. It’s interesting to notice how some, who have sat comfortably year after year and called the facial expressions they’ve seen "expression," and the way actors stride across the stage "dignity," along with the loud declamation and all the theatrics of acting "energy" and "passion," complain that Kean tends to be excessive; when in reality, he seems to be simply embodying the feeling or passion that needs to be shown at that moment.

It has been so common a saying, that Lear is the most difficult of characters to personate, that we had taken it for granted no man could play it so as to satisfy us. Perhaps it is the hardest to represent. Yet the part which has generally been supposed the most difficult, the insanity of Lear, is scarcely more so than that of the choleric old king. Inefficient rage is almost always ridiculous; and an old man, with a broken-down body and a mind falling in pieces from the violence of its uncontrolled passions, is in constant danger of exciting, along with our pity, a feeling of contempt. It is a chance matter to which we may be most moved. And this it is which makes the opening of Lear so difficult.

It’s been said so often that Lear is the toughest character to portray that we just assumed no one could play it in a way that would satisfy us. It might actually be the hardest role to take on. However, the part that’s usually considered the most challenging, Lear’s insanity, isn’t much more difficult than that of the irritable old king. Ineffectual rage is almost always funny; and an old man with a failing body and a mind falling apart from the strain of uncontrolled emotions constantly risks provoking, along with our sympathy, a sense of disdain. It’s a random thing that can really move us. And this is what makes the beginning of Lear so challenging.

We may as well notice here the objection which some make to the abrupt violence with which Kean begins in Lear. If this be a fault, it is Shakspeare, and not Kean, who is to blame; for, no doubt, he has conceived it according to his author. Perhaps, however, the mistake lies in this case, where it does in most others, with those who put themselves into the seat of judgment to pass upon great men.

We should recognize the criticism some have about the sudden intensity with which Kean starts in Lear. If this is a flaw, it’s Shakespeare, not Kean, who should be held responsible, as he likely envisioned it that way in the original text. However, the real issue may be, as it often is, with those who take it upon themselves to judge great individuals.

In most instances, Shakspeare has given us the gradual growth of a passion, with such little accompaniments as agree with it, and go to make up the whole man. In Lear, his object being to represent the beginning and course of insanity, he has properly enough gone but a little back of it, and introduced to us an old man of good feelings enough, but one who had lived without any true principle of conduct, and whose unruled passions had grown strong with age, and were ready, upon a disappointment, to make shipwreck of an intellect never strong. To bring this about, he begins with an abruptness rather unusual; and the old king rushes in before us, with his passions at their height, and tearing him like fiends.

In most cases, Shakespeare shows us the gradual development of a passion, along with the small details that reflect it and contribute to the whole person. In "Lear," since he aims to depict the onset and progression of insanity, he wisely takes us just a bit before that point, introducing us to an old man with decent feelings but who has lived without any real guiding principles, and whose unchecked passions have intensified with age, ready to derail a mind that was never very strong upon facing disappointment. To set this up, he begins with an unusual abruptness; the old king appears suddenly, his passions at their peak and tearing at him like demons.

Kean gives this as soon as the fitting occasion offers itself. Had he put more of melancholy and depression and less of rage into the character, we should have been much puzzled at his so suddenly going mad. It would have required the change to have been slower; and besides, his insanity must have been of another kind. It must have been monotonous and complaining, instead of continually varying; at one time full of grief, at another playful, and then wild as the winds that roared about him, and fiery and sharp as the lightning that shot by him. The truth with which he conceived this was not finer than his execution of it. Not for a moment, in his utmost violence, did he suffer the imbecility of the old man’s anger to touch upon the ludicrous, when nothing but the justest conception and feeling of the character could have saved him from it.

Kean delivers this whenever the right moment presents itself. If he had infused more sadness and despair and less fury into the character, we would have been quite confused by his sudden madness. The transformation would have needed to be more gradual; plus, his insanity would have had to be different. It should have been more monotonous and complaining, instead of constantly changing; at times it would be filled with sorrow, other times playful, and then wild like the raging winds around him, and fierce and sharp like the lightning flashing by. The truth with which he captured this was no finer than his execution of it. Not for a second, even in his most intense moments, did he let the foolishness of the old man’s anger become ridiculous, as only a true understanding and feeling for the character could have prevented that.

It has been said that Lear is a study for one who would make himself acquainted with the workings of an insane mind. And it is hardly less true, that the acting of Kean was an embodying of these workings. His eye, when his senses are first forsaking him, giving an inquiring look at what he saw, as if all before him was undergoing a strange and bewildering change which confused his brain,—the wandering, lost motions of his hands, which seemed feeling for something familiar to them, on which they might take hold and be assured of a safe reality,—the under monotone of his voice, as if he was questioning his own being, and what surrounded him,—the continuous, but slight, oscillating motion of the body,—all these expressed, with fearful truth, the bewildered state of a mind fast unsettling, and making vain and weak efforts to find its way back to its wonted reason. There was a childish, feeble gladness in the eye, and a half-piteous smile about the mouth at times, which one could scarce look upon without tears. As the derangement increased upon him, his eye lost its notice of objects about him, wandering over things as if he saw them not, and fastening upon the creatures of his crazed brain. The helpless and delighted fondness with which he clings to Edgar, as an insane brother, is another instance of the justness of Kean’s conceptions. Nor does he lose the air of insanity, even in the fine moralizing parts, and where he inveighs against the corruptions of the world. There is a madness even in his reason.

It has been said that Lear is a study for anyone who wants to understand how an insane mind works. It's equally true that Kean's performance embodied this chaos. His eyes, when he starts to lose his senses, show a curious look as if everything around him is changing in a strange and confusing way—his hands move aimlessly, searching for something familiar to hold onto for reassurance of reality—his voice carries an underlying tone, as if he’s questioning his own existence and what’s around him—the slight, constant swaying of his body—all these details vividly express the confused state of a mind rapidly unraveling, making futile and weak attempts to return to its usual reasoning. There’s a childlike, fragile joy in his eyes, and at times a half-pitying smile on his lips, which is hard to see without feeling emotional. As his madness deepens, his eyes lose focus on the objects around him, drifting over things as if he doesn’t see them, fixating instead on the visions from his disturbed mind. The helpless and joyful affection he shows for Edgar, treating him like a brother in madness, is another example of how accurately Kean captures this. He doesn’t lose the sense of insanity, even in the more reflective moments when he criticizes the world's corruption. There’s a kind of madness even in his reasoning.

The violent and immediate changes of the passions in Lear, so difficult to manage without jarring upon us, are given by Kean with a spirit and with a fitness to nature which we had hardly thought possible. These are equally well done both before and after the loss of reason. The most difficult scene, in this respect, is the last interview between Lear and his daughters, Goneril and Regan,—(and how wonderfully does Kean carry it through!)—the scene which ends with the horrid shout and cry with which he runs out mad from their presence, as if the very brain had taken fire.

The intense and sudden shifts in emotions in Lear, which are so hard to handle without affecting us, are portrayed by Kean with a spirit and a naturalness we hardly thought was possible. He executes these changes brilliantly both before and after the loss of sanity. The toughest scene in this regard is the final interaction between Lear and his daughters, Goneril and Regan—(and how incredibly does Kean pull it off!)—the moment that ends with his horrifying shout as he runs out mad from their presence, as if his very mind had caught fire.

The last scene which we are allowed to have of Shakspeare’s Lear, for the simply pathetic, was played by Kean with unmatched power. We sink down helpless under the oppressive grief. It lies like a dead weight upon our hearts. We are denied even the relief of tears; and are thankful for the shudder that seizes us when he kneels to his daughter in the deploring weakness of his crazed grief.

The final scene we get to see of Shakespeare's Lear, in terms of pure emotion, was performed by Kean with incredible intensity. We feel completely overwhelmed by the heavy sorrow. It sits like a lead weight on our hearts. We're even denied the comfort of tears and instead, we are grateful for the chill that runs through us when he kneels to his daughter in the painful vulnerability of his shattered grief.

It is lamentable that Kean should not be allowed to show his unequaled powers in the last scene of Lear, as Shakspeare wrote it; and that this mighty work of genius should be profaned by the miserable, mawkish sort of by-play of Edgar’s and Cordelia’s loves. Nothing can surpass the impertinence of the man who made the change, but the folly of those who sanctioned it.

It’s unfortunate that Kean isn’t allowed to showcase his unmatched talents in the final scene of Lear, as Shakespeare intended; and that this incredible piece of art should be tainted by the pathetic, sentimental antics of Edgar’s and Cordelia’s romances. Nothing can compare to the arrogance of the person who made the change, but the foolishness of those who approved it is even worse.

 

When I began, I had no other intention than that of giving a few general impressions made upon me by Kean’s acting; but, falling accidentally upon his Lear, I have been led, unawares, into particulars. It is only to take these as some of the instances of his powers in Lear, and then to think of him as not inferior in his other characters, and some notion may be formed of the effect of Kean’s playing upon those who understand and like him. Neither this, nor anything I might add, would be likely to reach his great and various powers.

When I started, I only intended to share some general thoughts on Kean’s acting. However, after coming across his performance in Lear, I found myself diving into specifics. These should be taken as just a few examples of his skills in Lear, and if we also consider his other roles, we can begin to grasp the impact of Kean’s performances on those who appreciate his work. Neither this nor anything else I could say would truly capture the full extent of his remarkable abilities.

If it could be said of anyone, it might be said of Kean, that he does not fall behind his author, but stands forward, the living representative of the character he has drawn. When he is not playing in Shakspeare, he fills up where his author is wanting; and when in Shakspeare, he gives not only what is set down, but whatever the situation and circumstances attendant upon the being he personates would naturally call forth. He seems, at the time, to have possessed himself of Shakspeare’s imagination, and to have given it body and form. Read any scene in Shakspeare,—for instance, the last of Lear that is played,—and see how few words are there set down, and then remember how Kean fills out with varied and multiplied expression and circumstances, and the truth of this remark will be obvious enough. There are few men, I believe, let them have studied the plays of Shakspeare ever so attentively, who can see Kean in them without confessing that he has helped them to a truer and fuller conception of the author, notwithstanding what their own labors had done for them.

If you could say this about anyone, it would be Kean, who does not just follow his script but actually embodies the character he plays. When he's not performing in Shakespeare, he steps in where the author is lacking; and when he is in Shakespeare, he provides not just what's written, but also everything the situation and context of the character would naturally evoke. He seems to capture Shakespeare’s imagination and bring it to life. Take any scene in Shakespeare—like the last one from Lear—and notice how few words are written, then consider how Kean adds depth and nuance with his varied expressions and circumstances, and it will be clear how true this observation is. I believe there are few people, no matter how thoroughly they have studied Shakespeare's plays, who can watch Kean perform and not admit that he has provided them with a clearer and richer understanding of the author, despite their own efforts.

It is not easy to say in what character Kean plays best. He so fits himself to each in turn, that if the effect he produces at one time is less than at another, it is because of some inferiority in stage-effect in the character. Othello is probably the character best adapted to stage-effect, and Kean has an uninterrupted power over us in playing it. When he commands, we are awed; when his face is sensitive with love and love thrills in his soft tones, all that our imaginations had pictured to us is realized. His jealousy, his hate, his fixed purposes, are terrific and deadly; and the groans wrung from him in his grief have the pathos and anguish of Esau’s, when he stood before his old, blind father, and sent up "an exceeding bitter cry."

It's hard to pinpoint which role Kean plays best. He adapts so well to each character that if he seems more powerful in one role than another, it's likely due to some limitation in the stage presentation of that character. Othello is probably the role that works best on stage, and Kean has a consistent, captivating hold on us when he plays it. When he exerts his authority, we feel a sense of awe; when his face shows sensitivity with love and his soft voice conveys emotion, everything we imagined comes to life. His jealousy, anger, and determined intentions are intense and chilling; the grief that escapes him carries the deep sadness and agony of Esau's when he stood before his old, blind father, sending up "an exceeding bitter cry."

Again, in Richard, how does he hurry forward to his object, sweeping away all between him and it! The world and its affairs are nothing to him, till he gains his end. He is all life, and action, and haste,—he fills every part of the stage, and seems to do all that is done.

Again, in Richard, he rushes toward his goal, pushing aside everything in his way! The world and its matters mean nothing to him until he achieves his aim. He is all about life, action, and speed—he occupies every part of the stage and appears to be responsible for everything that happens.

I have before said that his voice is harsh and breaking in his high tones, in his rage, but that this defect is of little consequence in such places. Nor is it well suited to the more declamatory parts. This, again, is scarce worth considering; for how very little is there of mere declamation in good English plays! But it is one of the finest voices in the world for all the passions and feelings which can be uttered in the middle and lower tones. In Lear,—

I have mentioned before that his voice is rough and shaky in the high notes, especially when he's angry, but this flaw doesn't matter much in those situations. It's also not very suitable for the more dramatic parts. However, this is hardly worth worrying about because there's so little pure declamation in good English plays! But it is one of the best voices in the world for expressing all the emotions and feelings that can be conveyed in the middle and lower tones. In Lear,—

"If you have poison for me, I’ll drink it."

And again,—

And again—

"You do me wrong by bringing me out of the grave.
You are a soul in bliss.

Why should I cite passages? Can any man open upon the scene in which these are contained, without Kean’s piteous looks and tones being present to him? And does not the mere remembrance of them, as he reads, bring tears into his eyes? Yet, once more, in Othello,—

Why should I cite passages? Can anyone dive into the scene where these lines are found without recalling Kean's heartbreaking expressions and voice? And doesn't just the thought of them, as one reads, bring tears to their eyes? Yet again, in Othello,—

"Had it pleased Heaven" "To test me with hardship," &c.

In the passage beginning with

In the passage starting with

"O, now forever
Goodbye, peaceful mind.

there was "a mysterious confluence of sounds" passing off into infinite distance, and every thought and feeling within him seemed traveling with them.

there was "a mysterious mix of sounds" fading into infinity, and every thought and feeling inside him felt like it was journeying with them.

How graceful he is in Othello! It is not a practiced, educated grace, but the "unbought grace" of his genius, uttering itself in its beauty and grandeur in the movements of the outward man. When he says to Iago so touchingly, "Leave me, leave me, Iago," and, turning from him, walks to the back of the stage, raising his hands, and bringing them down upon his head, with clasped fingers, and stands thus with his back to us, there is a grace and majesty in his figure which we look on with admiration.

How graceful he is in Othello! It’s not a practiced, learned kind of grace, but the "unbought grace" of his genius, expressing itself in its beauty and grandeur in the movements of the outward man. When he poignantly says to Iago, "Leave me, leave me, Iago," and, turning from him, walks to the back of the stage, raising his hands and bringing them down upon his head with his fingers clasped, standing there with his back to us, there is a grace and majesty in his figure that we admire.

Talking of these things in Kean is something like reading the Beauties of Shakspeare; for he is as true in the subordinate as in the great parts. But he must be content to share with other men of genius, and think himself fortunate if one in a hundred sees his lesser beauties, and marks the truth and delicacy of his under-playing. For instance, when he has no share in the action going on, he is not busy in putting himself into attitudes to draw attention, but stands or sits in a simple posture, like one with an engaged mind. His countenance, too, is in a state of ordinary repose, with but a slight, general expression of the character of his thoughts; for this is all the face shows, when the mind is taken up in silence with its own reflections. It does not assume marked or violent expressions, as in soliloquy. When a man gives utterance to his thoughts, though alone, the charmed rest of the body is broken; he speaks in his gestures too, and the countenance is put into a sympathizing action.

Talking about these things in Kean is a bit like reading the Beauties of Shakespeare; he is just as authentic in the smaller roles as he is in the big ones. But he has to accept that he shares the spotlight with other talented people and should consider himself lucky if even one out of a hundred recognizes his subtle strengths and notices the truth and finesse of his understated performance. For example, when he’s not involved in the action, he doesn’t try to draw attention to himself with extravagant poses; instead, he stands or sits naturally, like someone deep in thought. His expression is calm and ordinary, showing just a hint of what’s on his mind; that’s all his face reveals when he’s silently reflecting. He doesn’t display strong or dramatic expressions like he does in a soliloquy. When someone voices their thoughts, even when alone, the tranquil stillness of their body breaks; they also express themselves through gestures, and their face reflects what they feel.

I was first struck with this in his Hamlet; for the deep and quiet interest, so marked in Hamlet, made the justness of Kean’s playing, in this respect, the more obvious. And since then, I have observed him attentively, and have found the same true acting in his other characters.

I was first impressed by this in his Hamlet; the deep and subtle interest that stood out in Hamlet made the accuracy of Kean's performance in this regard even clearer. Since then, I've watched him closely and found the same quality of true acting in his other roles.

This right conception of situation and its general effect seems to require almost as much genius as his conceptions of his characters, and, indeed, may be considered as one with them. He deserves praise for it; for there is so much of the subtilty of nature in it, if one may so speak, that while a few are able, with his help, to put themselves into the situation, and perceive the justness of his acting in it, the rest, both those who like him upon the whole, as well as those who profess to see little in him, will be apt to let it pass by without observing it.

This accurate understanding of the situation and its overall impact seems to require as much talent as his ideas about his characters, and may actually be considered part of those ideas. He deserves recognition for this; there’s so much subtlety of nature in it, so to speak, that while a few, with his guidance, can immerse themselves in the situation and see how fitting his performance is, most people, whether they generally like him or claim to see little value in his work, are likely to let it go unnoticed.

Like most men, however, Kean receives a partial reward, at least, for his sacrifice of the praise of the many to what he feels to be the truth. For when he passes from the state of natural repose, even into that of gentle motion and ordinary discourse, he is immediately filled with a spirit and life, which he makes everyone feel who is not armor-proof against him. This helps to the sparkling brightness and warmth of his playing, the grand secret of which, like that of colors in a picture, lies in a just contrast. We can all speculate concerning the general rules upon this; but when the man of genius gives us their results, how few are there who can trace them out with an observant eye, or look with a discerning satisfaction upon the great whole. Perhaps this very beauty in Kean has helped to an opinion, which, no doubt, is true, that he is, at times, too sharp and abrupt. I well remember, while once looking at a picture in which the shadow of a mountain fell, in strong outline, upon a part of a stream, I overheard some quite sensible people expressing their wonder that the artist should have made the water of two colors, seeing it was all one and the same thing.

Like most men, Kean gets at least some recognition for sacrificing the praise of the many for what he believes to be the truth. When he shifts from a state of natural calm to one of gentle movement and casual conversation, he's immediately filled with an energy and spirit that everyone can feel, unless they're totally oblivious. This contributes to the vibrant brightness and warmth of his performance, the secret of which, much like the colors in a painting, lies in a proper contrast. We can all theorize about the general principles behind this, but when a genius reveals their results, very few can actually observe them closely or appreciate the bigger picture with a discerning eye. Perhaps this very beauty in Kean has led to the view, which is likely true, that he can be, at times, too sharp and abrupt. I clearly remember, while admiring a painting where the shadow of a mountain starkly contrasted against a part of a stream, overhearing some seemingly sensible people expressing their surprise that the artist had painted the water in two different colors, even though it was all part of the same water.

Instances of Kean’s keeping of situations were striking in the opening of the trial scene in The Iron Chest, and in Hamlet, when the father’s ghost tells the story of his death.

Instances of Kean’s handling of situations were notable in the opening of the trial scene in The Iron Chest, and in Hamlet, when the father’s ghost recounts the story of his death.

The composure to which he is bent up, in the former, must be present with all who saw him. And, though from the immediate purpose, shall I pass by the startling and appalling change, when madness seized upon his brain, with the swiftness and power of a fanged monster? Wonderfully as this last part was played, we cannot well imagine how much the previous calm, and the suddenness of the unlooked-for change from it, added to the terror of the scene. The temple stood fixed on its foundations; the earthquake shook it, and it was a heap. Is this one of Kean’s violent contrasts?

The calmness he maintained in the earlier part must have been evident to everyone who saw him. And even though it’s not my main focus, I should mention the shocking and frightening transformation when madness overtook his mind, with the speed and force of a vicious beast. As incredible as that final act was, we can hardly imagine how much the initial calm and the abruptness of the unexpected shift added to the terror of the moment. The temple remained firmly in place; the earthquake shook it, and it crumbled into a pile. Is this one of Kean’s dramatic contrasts?

While Kean listened, in Hamlet, to the father’s story, the entire man was absorbed in deep attention, mingled with a tempered awe. His posture was simple, with a slight inclination forward. The spirit was the spirit of his father, whom he had loved and reverenced, and who was to that moment ever present in his thoughts. The first superstitious terror at meeting him had passed off. The account of his father’s appearance given him by Horatio and the watch, and his having followed him some distance, had, in a degree, familiarized him to the sight, and he stood before us in the stillness of one who was to hear, then or never, what was to be told, but without that eager reaching forward which other players give, and which would be right, perhaps, in any character but that of Hamlet, who connects the past and what is to come with the present, and mingles reflection with his immediate feelings, however deep.

While Kean listened to the father's story in Hamlet, he was completely focused, filled with a controlled sense of awe. His posture was relaxed, leaning slightly forward. The spirit he faced was that of his father, whom he had loved and respected, and who was always on his mind at that moment. The initial superstitious fear he felt upon encountering him had faded away. The descriptions of his father’s appearance provided by Horatio and the watch, along with having followed him for a while, had somewhat familiarized him with the sight. He stood there in the stillness of someone who was about to hear something crucial, but without the eager forward lean that other actors might exhibit. That kind of urgency might be appropriate for any character but Hamlet, who links the past and future with the present and blends his reflections with his immediate feelings, no matter how profound they are.

As an instance of Kean’s familiar, and, if I may be allowed to term, domestic acting, the first scene in the fourth act of his Sir Giles Overreach may be taken. His manner at meeting Lovell and through the conversation with him, the way in which he turns his chair and leans upon it, were as easy and natural as they could have been in real life, had Sir Giles been actually existing, and engaged at that moment in conversation in Lovell’s room.

As an example of Kean’s well-known, and, if I may say, natural acting, the first scene in the fourth act of his Sir Giles Overreach stands out. His demeanor when meeting Lovell and throughout their conversation, the way he turns his chair and leans on it, felt as effortless and genuine as if Sir Giles were actually there, having a conversation in Lovell’s room.

It is in these things, scarcely less than in the more prominent parts of his playing, that Kean shows himself the great actor. He must always make a deep impression; but to suppose the world at large capable of a right estimate of his different powers, would be forming a judgment against every-day proof. The gradual manner in which the character of his playing has opened upon me satisfies me, that in acting, as in everything else, however deep may be the first effect of genius upon us, we come slowly, and through study, to a perception of its minute beauties and delicate characteristics. After all, the greater part of men seldom get beyond the first general impression.

It’s in these details, just as much as in the more noticeable parts of his performance, that Kean proves himself to be a great actor. He always leaves a strong impression; but to think that the general public can truly appreciate his various talents would be unrealistic. The gradual way in which I've come to understand the character of his acting shows me that in acting, as in everything else, no matter how strong the initial impact of talent is on us, we slowly come to recognize its subtle beauty and fine details through study. After all, most people rarely move beyond that initial general impression.

As there must needs go a modicum of fault-finding along with commendation, it may be well to remark, that Kean plays his hands too much at times, and moves about the dress over his breast and neck too frequently in his hurried and impatient passages, and that he does not always adhere with sufficient accuracy to the received readings of Shakspeare, and that the effect would be greater, upon the whole, were he to be more sparing of sudden changes from violent voice and gesticulation to a low conversation-tone and subdued manner.

Since a little criticism often comes with praise, it’s worth mentioning that Kean sometimes gesticulates too much and frequently adjusts his costume around his chest and neck during his intense and impatient moments. Additionally, he doesn't always stick closely enough to Shakespeare's original lines. Overall, the impact of his performance would be stronger if he used fewer abrupt shifts from loud voice and dramatic gestures to a calmer, quieter tone.

His frequent use of these in Sir Giles Overreach is with good effect, for Sir Giles is playing his part; so, too, in Lear, for Lear’s passions are gusty and shifting; but, in the main, it is a kind of playing too marked and striking to bear so frequent repetition, and had better sometimes be spared, where, considered alone, it might be properly enough used, for the sake of bringing it in at some other place with greater effect.

His frequent use of these in Sir Giles Overreach is effective, as Sir Giles is fully engaged in his role; similarly, in Lear, Lear's emotions are turbulent and changeable. However, overall, it's a type of acting that is too pronounced and striking to be repeated so often. It would be better to hold back sometimes; if considered on its own, it might be used appropriately, making it more impactful if introduced at a different time.

It is well to speak of these defects, for though the little faults of genius, in themselves considered, but slightly affect those who can enter into its true character, yet such are made impatient at the thought, that an opportunity is given those to carp who know not how to commend.

It's good to mention these flaws, because while the minor shortcomings of talent may not impact those who truly understand its essence, they still become frustrated at the idea that it gives those who cannot appreciate it the chance to criticize.

Though I have taken up a good deal of room, I must end without speaking of many things which occur to me. Some will be of the opinion that I have already said enough. Thinking of Kean as I do, I could not honestly have said less; for I hold it to be a low and wicked thing to keep back from merit of any kind its due,—and, with Steele, that "there is something wonderful in the narrowness of those minds which can be pleased, and be barren of bounty to those who please them."

Though I've taken up quite a bit of space, I have to wrap up without addressing many things that come to mind. Some might think I've already said enough. Given my thoughts on Kean, I couldn't honestly say less; I believe it's wrong and unfair to deny anyone their deserved recognition, and, like Steele said, "there's something amazing about the narrow-mindedness of those who can be satisfied but are stingy with gratitude to those who satisfy them."

Although the self-important, out of self-concern, give praise sparingly, and the mean measure theirs by their likings or dislikings of a man, and the good even are often slow to allow the talents of the faulty their due, lest they bring the evil to repute; yet it is the wiser as well as the honester course, not to disparage an excellence because it neighbors upon a fault, nor to take away from another what is his of right, with a view to our own name, nor to rest our character for discernment upon the promptings of an unkind heart. Where God has not feared to bestow great powers, we may not fear giving them their due; nor need we be parsimonious of commendation, as if there were but a certain quantity for distribution, and our liberality would be to our loss; nor should we hold it safe to detract from another’s merit, as if we could always keep the world blind, lest we live to see him whom we disparaged, praised, and whom we hated, loved.

Even though those who are self-absorbed praise others only when it suits them, and those who are petty measure worth by their personal feelings about a person, even the good people can be slow to recognize the talents of those who have flaws, fearing that this might tarnish their reputation. However, it’s wiser and more honest not to diminish someone’s excellence just because it’s close to a fault, nor should we take away what rightfully belongs to someone else just for our own benefit, or judge someone’s worth based on a cruel heart. Where God has been generous with great abilities, we shouldn’t hesitate to acknowledge them; we shouldn’t be stingy with praise as if there’s only so much of it to go around, fearing that being generous will somehow disadvantage us. It’s also unwise to undermine another's merits, believing we can keep the world in the dark, because we might end up witnessing the person we criticized being praised, and the one we despised being loved.

Whatever be his failings, give every man a full and ready commendation for that in which he excels; it will do good to our own hearts, while it cheers his. Nor will it bring our judgment into question with the discerning; for enthusiasm for what is great does not argue such an unhappy want of discrimination as that measured and cold approval, which is bestowed alike upon men of mediocrity and upon those of gifted minds.

No matter his flaws, recognize every man for what he does well; it will benefit our own hearts while uplifting his. It won't compromise our judgment with those who can see clearly; being passionate about greatness doesn’t show a lack of discernment like the reserved and indifferent approval given to both average individuals and those with exceptional talents.

GIFTS

RALPH WALDO EMERSON

"Gifts from someone who loved me,—
It was about time they came; When he stopped loving me,
"Time they stopped for shame."

IT is said that the world is in a state of bankruptcy, that the world owes the world more than the world can pay, and ought to go into chancery, and be sold. I do not think this general insolvency, which involves in some sort all the population, to be the reason of the difficulty experienced at Christmas and New Year, and other times, in bestowing gifts; since it is always so pleasant to be generous, though very vexatious to pay debts. But the impediment lies in the choosing. If, at any time, it comes into my head that a present is due from me to somebody, I am puzzled what to give until the opportunity is gone. Flowers and fruits are always fit presents; flowers, because they are a proud assertion that a ray of beauty outvalues all the utilities of the world. These gay natures contrast with the somewhat stern countenance of ordinary nature; they are like music heard out of a workhouse. Nature does not cocker us: we are children, not pets: she is not fond: everything is dealt to us without fear or favor, after severe universal laws. Yet these delicate flowers look like the frolic and interference of love and beauty. Men used to tell us that we love flattery, even though we are not deceived by it, because it shows that we are of importance enough to be courted. Something like that pleasure the flowers give us: what am I to whom these sweet hints are addressed? Fruits are acceptable gifts because they are the flower of commodities, and admit of fantastic values being attached to them. If a man should send to me to come a hundred miles to visit him, and should set before me a basket of fine summer fruit, I should think there was some proportion between the labor and the reward.

IT is said that the world is in a state of bankruptcy, that the world owes more than it can pay, and ought to go bankrupt and be sold off. I don’t think this general financial struggle, affecting pretty much everyone, is the reason we find it difficult to give gifts at Christmas and New Year, and other times; it’s always nice to be generous, even though paying off debts can be quite frustrating. The real challenge lies in choosing the right gift. Whenever it occurs to me that I owe someone a present, I get stuck on what to give until the moment passes. Flowers and fruits are always great gifts; flowers because they proudly declare that a touch of beauty outweighs all the practical things in life. These vibrant blooms stand out against the often harsh look of nature; they’re like music coming from a factory. Nature doesn’t pamper us: we’re children, not pets; she's not affectionate: everything we get is dealt out without favoritism, according to strict universal laws. Yet these delicate flowers seem like a playful intrusion of love and beauty. People used to say that we enjoy flattery, even if we’re not fooled by it, because it shows we’re important enough to be sought after. That’s a bit like the pleasure flowers give us: what am I to whom these lovely gestures are directed? Fruits make good gifts too because they're the best of what we produce and can carry special meanings. If someone invited me to travel a hundred miles to see them and presented me with a basket of delicious summer fruit, I would feel that there was a good balance between the effort and the reward.

For common gifts, necessity makes pertinences and beauty every day, and one is glad when an imperative leaves him no option, since if the man at the door have no shoes, you have not to consider whether you could procure him a paint-box. And as it is always pleasing to see a man eat bread, or drink water, in the house or out of doors, so it is always a great satisfaction to supply these first wants. Necessity does everything well. In our condition of universal dependence, it seems heroic to let the petitioner be the judge of his necessity, and to give all that is asked, though at great inconvenience. If it be a fantastic desire, it is better to leave to others the office of punishing him. I can think of many parts I should prefer playing to that of the Furies. Next to things of necessity, the rule for a gift which one of my friends prescribed is, that we might convey to some person that which properly belonged to his character, and was easily associated with him in thought. But our tokens of compliment and love are for the most part barbarous. Rings and other jewels are not gifts, but apologies for gifts. The only gift is a portion of thyself. Thou must bleed for me. Therefore the poet brings his poem; the shepherd, his lamb; the farmer, corn; the miner, a gem; the sailor, coral and shells; the painter, his picture; the girl, a handkerchief of her own sewing. This is right and pleasing, for it restores society in so far to the primary basis, when a man’s biography is conveyed in his gift, and every man’s wealth is an index of his merit. But it is a cold, lifeless business when you go to the shops to buy me something, which does not represent your life and talent, but a goldsmith’s. This is fit for kings, and rich men who represent kings, and a false state of property, to make presents of gold and silver stuffs, as a kind of symbolical sin-offering, or payment of blackmail.

For everyday gifts, necessity makes both relevance and beauty pop up regularly, and it’s nice when a must-do leaves you no choice, because if the person at your door doesn’t have shoes, you don't have to think about whether you could get them a paint set. Just like it’s always nice to see someone eating bread or drinking water, whether indoors or outdoors, it’s also really satisfying to meet these basic needs. Necessity does everything perfectly. In our shared state of dependence, it feels noble to let the person asking decide what they need and to give them whatever they ask for, even if it’s inconvenient for you. If it’s a silly request, it’s better to let others handle the punishment. There are many roles I’d rather take on than that of the Furies. Besides necessities, a friend of mine suggested that when giving a gift, we should convey something that truly reflects the recipient’s character and is easily connected to them in thought. However, our symbols of affection and appreciation are often crude. Rings and jewelry don’t count as gifts; they’re more like apologies for not giving a real gift. The only true gift is a piece of yourself. You have to give a part of you. That’s why the poet shares his poem, the shepherd brings his lamb, the farmer offers grain, the miner presents a gem, the sailor brings coral and shells, the painter showcases his artwork, and the girl gives a handkerchief she made. This is right and satisfying, as it brings society back to its roots, where a person’s life story is told through their gift, and every person's wealth reflects their character. But it feels cold and lifeless when you go to a store to buy me something that doesn’t represent your life and skills, but rather a jeweler's. This is something suited for kings and wealthy individuals who act like kings, and it creates a fake sense of wealth when gifts of gold and silver are given, as if they're some sort of symbolic payment or bribe.

The law of benefits is a difficult channel, which requires careful sailing, or rude boats. It is not the office of a man to receive gifts. How dare you give them? We wish to be self-sustained. We do not quite forgive a giver. The hand that feeds us is in some danger of being bitten. We can receive anything from love, for that is a way of receiving it from ourselves; but not from anyone who assumes to bestow. We sometimes hate the meat which we eat, because there seems something of degrading dependence in living by it.

The law of benefits is a tricky path that requires careful navigation or strong vessels. It’s not a man’s role to accept gifts. How can you even offer them? We want to be self-reliant. We don't fully forgive someone who gives us something. The hand that feeds us risks being bitten. We can accept anything from love since it feels like we’re receiving it from ourselves, but not from anyone who thinks they’re giving us something. Sometimes we even dislike the food we eat because there’s a sense of humiliating dependence in relying on it.

"Brother, if Jupiter gives you a gift,
"Be careful not to take anything from his hands."

We ask the whole. Nothing less will content us. We arraign society if it do not give us besides earth, and fire, and water, opportunity, love, reverence, and objects of veneration.

We demand it all. Anything less won’t satisfy us. We hold society accountable if it doesn’t provide us with more than just earth, fire, and water—opportunity, love, respect, and things to admire.

He is a good man who can receive a gift well. We are either glad or sorry at a gift, and both emotions are unbecoming. Some violence, I think, is done, some degradation borne, when I rejoice or grieve at a gift. I am sorry when my independence is invaded, or when a gift comes from such as do not know my spirit, and so the act is not supported; and if the gift pleases me overmuch, then I should be ashamed that the donor should read my heart, and see that I love his commodity, and not him. The gift, to be true, must be the flowing of the giver unto me, correspondent to my flowing unto him. When the waters are at level, then my goods pass to him, and his to me. All his are mine, all mine his. I say to him, How can you give me this pot of oil, or this flagon of wine, when all your oil and wine is mine, which belief of mine this gift seems to deny? Hence the fitness of beautiful, not useful things for gifts. This giving is flat usurpation, and therefore when the beneficiary is ungrateful, as all beneficiaries hate all Timons, not at all considering the value of the gift, but looking back to the greater store it was taken from, I rather sympathize with the beneficiary than with the anger of my lord Timon. For, the expectation of gratitude is mean, and is continually punished by the total insensibility of the obliged person. It is a great happiness to get off without injury and heart-burning, from one who has had the ill-luck to be served by you. It is a very onerous business, this of being served, and the debtor naturally wishes to give you a slap. A golden text for these gentlemen is that which I so admire in the Buddhist, who never thanks, and who says, "Do not flatter your benefactors."

He’s a good person who can accept a gift graciously. We either feel happy or sad about receiving a gift, and both reactions are inappropriate. I believe that a certain harm occurs, a degradation felt, when I either rejoice or lament over a gift. I feel uncomfortable when my independence is compromised, or when a gift comes from someone who doesn’t understand my character, making the gesture feel insincere; and if I get too much pleasure from the gift, I feel embarrassed that the giver might see into my heart and realize that I appreciate their item, not them. For a gift to be genuine, there must be a mutual flow between the giver and me, corresponding to my giving to them. When things are balanced, then my possessions can be exchanged freely, and his belongings are also mine. I ask him, how can you offer me this jar of oil or this bottle of wine when all your oil and wine already belong to me? This belief seems to contradict the gift itself. That’s why beautiful but impractical things make better gifts. This type of giving feels like theft, and when the recipient shows ingratitude—like all recipients despise all Timons—not considering the true worth of the gift, but only remembering the larger source it came from, I find myself sympathizing more with the recipient than with Timon’s frustration. Expecting gratitude is petty, and it’s often met with complete disregard from the person who owes you. It's a relief to manage to leave a situation without hurt feelings after helping someone who hasn’t been lucky to have you serve them. Being served is a heavy burden, and the debtor often wants to retaliate. A wise lesson for these people is something I admire in Buddhism, where one never thanks and says, “Don’t flatter your benefactors.”

The reason for these discords I conceive to be that there is no commensurability between a man and any gift. You cannot give anything to a magnanimous person. After you have served him he at once puts you in debt by his magnanimity. The service a man renders his friend is trivial and selfish, compared with the service he knows his friend stood in readiness to yield him, alike before he had begun to serve his friend, and now also. Compared with that good-will I bear my friend, the benefit it is in my power to render him seems small. Besides, our action on each other, good as well as evil, is so incidental and at random, that we can seldom hear the acknowledgments of any person who would thank us for a benefit, without some shame and humiliation. We can rarely strike a direct stroke, but must be content with an oblique one; we seldom have the satisfaction of yielding a direct benefit, which is directly received. But rectitude scatters favors on every side without knowing it, and receives with wonder the thanks of all people.

The reason for these conflicts, I think, is that there’s no true comparison between a person and any gift. You can’t really give anything to a generous person. Once you’ve done something for them, they immediately make you feel indebted because of their generosity. The help a person gives to a friend feels trivial and selfish compared to the support that friend was ready to offer, both before and after that help was given. In relation to the goodwill I have for my friend, the help I can provide seems minimal. Plus, the way we affect each other—both positively and negatively—is so random and unpredictable that we often feel embarrassed and humbled when someone thanks us for a favor. We rarely achieve a direct benefit to someone; instead, we have to settle for an indirect one. We seldom experience the satisfaction of giving a direct benefit that’s directly acknowledged. But those with integrity scatter kindness around without realizing it and are surprised when they receive thanks from everyone.

I fear to breathe any treason against the majesty of love, which is the genius and god of gifts, and to whom we must not affect to prescribe. Let him give kingdoms or flower-leaves indifferently. There are persons from whom we always expect fairy-tokens; let us not cease to expect them. This is prerogative, and not to be limited by our municipal rules. For the rest, I like to see that we cannot be bought and sold. The best of hospitality and of generosity is also not in the will, but in fate. I find that I am not much to you; you do not need me; you do not feel me; then am I thrust out of doors, though you proffer me house and lands. No services are of any value, but only likeness. When I have attempted to join myself to others by services, it proved an intellectual trick,—no more. They eat your service like apples, and leave you out. But love them, and they feel you, and delight in you all the time.

I’m afraid to say anything that goes against the greatness of love, which is the spirit and source of all gifts, and we shouldn't pretend to dictate to it. Let it give kingdoms or flower petals without favor. There are people from whom we always expect magical gifts; let’s keep expecting them. This is a privilege that shouldn’t be restricted by our local rules. Moreover, I appreciate that we can’t be bought or sold. The best hospitality and generosity come not from choice, but from fate. I realize that I don’t mean much to you; you don’t need me; you don’t notice me; so I feel cast aside, even if you offer me a home and land. No deeds hold any value, only connection. When I’ve tried to connect with others through my deeds, it turned out to be just an intellectual game—nothing more. They consume your kindness like apples and leave you out. But love them, and they will sense you and take joy in you constantly.

USES OF GREAT MEN

RALPH WALDO EMERSON

IT is natural to believe in great men. If the companions of our childhood should turn out to be heroes, and their condition regal, it would not surprise us. All mythology opens with demigods, and the circumstance is high and poetic; that is, their genius is paramount. In the legends of the Gautama, the first men ate the earth, and found it deliciously sweet.

IT is natural to believe in great people. If our childhood friends turned out to be heroes, and if they lived like royalty, we wouldn’t be surprised. All mythology starts with demigods, and it’s a grand and poetic idea; their brilliance is unmatched. In the legends of Gautama, the first humans ate from the earth and found it wonderfully sweet.

Nature seems to exist for the excellent. The world is upheld by the veracity of good men: they make the earth wholesome. They who lived with them found life glad and nutritious. Life is sweet and tolerable only in our belief in such society; and actually or ideally we manage to live with superiors. We call our children and our lands by their names. Their names are wrought into the verbs of language, their works and effigies are in our houses, and every circumstance of the day recalls an anecdote of them.

Nature seems to exist for the best of us. The world is sustained by the truth of good people: they make the earth enjoyable. Those who lived alongside them found life joyful and fulfilling. Life is sweet and bearable only because we believe in such a community; and in reality or in our ideals, we manage to live among those who inspire us. We name our children and our lands after them. Their names are woven into our language, their achievements and images are in our homes, and every moment of the day reminds us of a story about them.

The search after the great is the dream of youth and the most serious occupation of manhood. We travel into foreign parts to find his works—if possible, to get a glimpse of him. But we are put off with fortune instead. You say the English are practical; the Germans are hospitable; in Valencia the climate is delicious; and in the hills of the Sacramento there is gold for the gathering. Yes, but I do not travel to find comfortable, rich, and hospitable people, or clear sky, or ingots that cost too much. But if there were any magnet that would point to the countries and houses where are the persons who are intrinsically rich and powerful, I would sell all, and buy it, and put myself on the road to-day.

The search for greatness is the dream of youth and the most serious pursuit of adulthood. We travel to foreign places to discover their works—if possible, to catch a glimpse of them. But instead, we are met with fortune. You say the English are practical; the Germans are welcoming; in Valencia the weather is beautiful; and in the hills of Sacramento, there's gold to be found. Yes, but I don't travel to meet comfortable, wealthy, and friendly people, enjoy clear skies, or find expensive gold. However, if there were a magnet that could point to the countries and houses where truly rich and powerful individuals are found, I would sell everything, buy it, and set out on the road today.

The race goes with us on their credit. The knowledge that in the city is a man who invented the railroad raises the credit of all the citizens. But enormous populations, if they be beggars, are disgusting, like moving cheese, like hills of ants or of fleas—the more, the worse.

The race is credited with us. The fact that there’s a man in the city who invented the railroad boosts the reputation of all the citizens. But massive populations, if they're just beggars, are off-putting, like moving cheese, like hills of ants or fleas—the more there are, the worse it gets.

Our religion is the love and cherishing of these patrons. The gods of fable are the shining moments of great men. We run all our vessels into one mould. Our colossal theologies of Judaism, Christism, Buddhism, Mahometism, are the necessary and structural action of the human mind. The student of history is like a man going into a warehouse to buy cloths or carpets. He fancies he has a new article. If he go to the factory, he shall find that his new stuff still repeats the scrolls and rosettes which are found on the interior walls of the pyramids of Thebes. Our theism is the purification of the human mind. Man can paint, or make, or think nothing but man. He believes that the great material elements had their origin from his thought. And our philosophy finds one essence collected or distributed.

Our faith revolves around loving and valuing these figures. The gods of legend represent the brilliant achievements of remarkable individuals. We combine all our beliefs into one form. Our massive theologies of Judaism, Christianity, Buddhism, and Islam are essential reflections of the human mind. A history student is like someone entering a shop to buy fabrics or rugs. They think they’ve discovered something new. But if they visit the source, they’ll see that their new find still echoes the designs and patterns seen on the inner walls of the Thebes pyramids. Our belief in God is a way to refine the human mind. People can only create, make, or think about what comes from humanity. They believe the fundamental elements of the universe stem from their ideas. And our philosophy identifies a single essence that can be shared or spread.

If now we proceed to inquire into the kinds of service we derive from others, let us be warned of the danger of modern studies, and begin low enough. We must not contend against love, or deny the substantial existence of other people. I know not what would happen to us. We have social strengths. Our affection towards others creates a sort of vantage or purchase which nothing will supply. I can do that by another which I cannot do alone. I can say to you what I cannot first say to myself. Other men are lenses through which we read our own minds. Each man seeks those of different quality from his own, and such as are good of their kind; that is, he seeks other men, and the otherest. The stronger the nature, the more it is reactive. Let us have the quality pure. A little genius let us leave alone. A main difference betwixt men is, whether they attend their own affair or not. Man is that noble endogenous plant which grows, like the palm, from within outward. His own affair, though impossible to others, he can open with celerity and in sport. It is easy to sugar to be sweet, and to nitre to be salt. We take a great deal of pains to waylay and entrap that which of itself will fall into our hands. I count him a great man who inhabits a higher sphere of thought, into which other men rise with labor and difficulty; he has but to open his eyes to see things in a true light, and in large relations; whilst they must make painful corrections, and keep a vigilant eye on many sources of error. His service to us is of like sort. It costs a beautiful person no exertion to paint her image on our eyes; yet how splendid is that benefit! It costs no more for a wise soul to convey his quality to other men. And everyone can do his best thing easiest. "Peu de moyens, beaucoup d’effét." He is great who is what he is from nature, and who never reminds us of others.

If we now look into the different types of support we get from others, let’s be cautious about the pitfalls of modern studies and start with the basics. We shouldn’t fight against love or dismiss the real presence of other people. I can’t say what might happen to us if we do. We have social strengths. Our feelings for others create a kind of advantage that nothing else can provide. I can express things through someone else that I can’t say to myself first. Other people are like lenses that help us understand our own thoughts. Each person searches for qualities in others that differ from their own and seeks those who are genuinely good; that is, they look for other people and the otherest. The stronger someone is, the more reactive they become. Let’s strive for pure quality. Let’s not disturb a bit of genius. A major difference among people is whether they focus on their own issues or not. A person is like a noble plant that grows from the inside out, just like a palm tree. They can readily express their own matters, even if others find them challenging, and do so with ease and enjoyment. It’s easy for sugar to be sweet and for salt to be salty. We go to great lengths to capture what will naturally come to us. I believe a truly great person is one who exists in a higher realm of thought, a place where others must labor intensely to ascend. They only need to open their eyes to perceive things clearly and in a broader context, while others must make painful adjustments and remain constantly vigilant against many sources of errors. Their service to us is similar. It takes no effort for a beautiful person to leave an impression on us; yet, what a fantastic gift that is! It requires no extra effort for a wise person to share their wisdom with others. And everyone can achieve their best work with the least effort. "Peu de moyens, beaucoup d’effét." The truly great person is one who is completely themselves, naturally, and doesn’t remind us of anyone else.

But he must be related to us, and our life receive from him some promise of explanation. I cannot tell what I would know; but I have observed there are persons who, in their character and actions, answer questions which I have not skill to put. One man answers some questions which none of his contemporaries put, and is isolated. The past and passing religions and philosophies answer some other question. Certain men affect us as rich possibilities, but helpless to themselves and to their times,—the sport perhaps, of some instinct that rules in the air,—they do not speak to our want. But the great are near; we know them at sight. They satisfy expectation, and fall into place. What is good is effective, generative; makes for itself room, food, and allies. A sound apple produces seed—a hybrid does not. Is a man in his place, he is constructive, fertile, magnetic, inundating armies with his purpose, which is thus executed. The river makes its own shores, and each legitimate idea makes its own channels and welcome—harvests for food, institutions for expression, weapons to fight with, and disciples to explain it. The true artist has the planet for his pedestal; the adventurer, after years of strife, has nothing broader than his own shoes.

But he has to be connected to us, and our lives should get some promise of understanding from him. I can’t say exactly what I want to know; but I’ve noticed that some people, through their character and actions, answer questions I can’t articulate. One person addresses questions that none of his peers ask, and as a result, he’s alone. The religions and philosophies of the past and present answer other questions. Certain individuals make us feel like they’re full of potential, yet are powerless themselves and in their time—they might just be influenced by some instinct that’s in the air—they don’t meet our needs. But the truly great individuals are recognizable; we can spot them easily. They meet our expectations and fit into their role. What is good is effective and creative; it makes room for itself, sustenance, and supporters. A healthy apple bears seeds—a hybrid doesn’t. When a person is in their rightful place, they are constructive, fertile, magnetic, and they inspire others with their purpose, which gets realized. The river shapes its own banks, and every legitimate idea carves out its own paths and welcomes—harvests for nourishment, institutions for expression, tools for conflict, and followers to spread the message. The true artist has the entire planet as their stage; the adventurer, after years of struggle, has nothing more than the size of their own shoes.

Our common discourse respects two kinds of use or service from superior men. Direct giving is agreeable to the early belief of men; direct giving of material or metaphysical aid, as of health, eternal youth, fine senses, arts of healing, magical power, and prophecy. The boy believes there is a teacher who can sell him wisdom. Churches believe in imputed merit. But, in strictness, we are not much cognizant of direct serving. Man is endogenous, and education is his unfolding. The aid we have from others is mechanical, compared with the discoveries of nature in us. What is thus learned is delightful in the doing, and the effect remains. Right ethics are central, and go from the soul outward. Gift is contrary to the law of the universe. Serving others is serving us. I must absolve me to myself. "Mind thy affair," says the spirit; "coxcomb, would you meddle with the skies, or with other people?" Indirect service is left. Men have a pictorial or representative quality, and serve us in the intellect. Behmen and Swedenborg saw that things were representative. Men are also representative; first, of things, and secondly, of ideas.

Our common conversation recognizes two types of contributions or services from superior individuals. Direct giving aligns with the early beliefs of people; this includes the straightforward offering of material or spiritual support, such as health, eternal youth, enhanced senses, healing skills, magical abilities, and prophecy. A child believes there is a teacher who can impart wisdom. Religious institutions believe in borrowed merit. However, in reality, we aren't very aware of direct service. Humans grow from within, and education is part of that growth. The help we receive from others is mechanical compared to the insights we discover within ourselves. What we learn in this way is enjoyable in the process, and the impact lasts. True ethics are fundamental and radiate from the soul outward. Gift-giving goes against the laws of the universe. Helping others means helping ourselves. I must free myself from my own burdens. "Mind your own business," says the spirit; "fool, do you want to interfere with the heavens or other people?" Indirect service remains. People have a representational or illustrative quality and contribute to our understanding. Behmen and Swedenborg recognized that everything represents something. People are also representative; first of tangible things, and second, of ideas.

As plants convert the minerals into food for animals, so each man converts some raw material in nature to human use. The inventors of fire, electricity, magnetism, iron, lead, glass, linen, silk, cotton; the makers of tools; the inventor of decimal notation; the geometer; the engineer; the musician, severally make an easy way for all through unknown and impossible confusions. Each man is, by secret liking, connected with some district of nature, whose agent and interpreter he is, as Linnæus, of plants; Huber, of bees; Fries, of lichens; Van Mons, of pears; Dalton, of atomic forms; Euclid, of lines; Newton, of fluxions.

As plants turn minerals into food for animals, each person transforms some raw materials from nature for human use. The inventors of fire, electricity, magnetism, iron, lead, glass, linen, silk, and cotton; the creators of tools; the inventor of decimal notation; the geometer; the engineer; the musician, each pave an easy path for everyone through unknown and seemingly impossible complexities. Each person is, by a hidden preference, linked to a part of nature, of which they are the agent and interpreter, just like Linnæus with plants; Huber with bees; Fries with lichens; Van Mons with pears; Dalton with atomic structures; Euclid with lines; and Newton with calculus.

A man is a center for nature, running out threads of relation through everything, fluid and solid, material and elemental. The earth rolls; every clod and stone comes to the meridian; so every organ, function, acid, crystal, grain of dust, has its relation to the brain. It waits long, but its turn comes. Each plant has its parasite, and each created thing its lover and poet. Justice has already been done to steam, to iron, to wood, to coal, to loadstone, to iodine, to corn and cotton; but how few materials are yet used by our arts! The mass of creatures and of qualities are still hid and expectant. It would seem as if each waited, like the enchanted princess in fairy tales, for a destined human deliverer. Each must be disenchanted, and walk forth to the day in human shape. In the history of discovery, the ripe and latent truth seems to have fashioned a brain for itself. A magnet must be made man, in some Gilbert, or Swedenborg, or Oersted, before the general mind can come to entertain its powers.

A man is a hub for nature, connecting various threads of relationship throughout everything, both fluid and solid, material and elemental. The Earth spins; every clod and stone moves to the center; similarly, every organ, function, acid, crystal, and speck of dust relates to the brain. It waits for a long time, but its moment arrives. Each plant has its parasite, and everything created has its lover and poet. Justice has been served to steam, iron, wood, coal, loadstone, iodine, corn, and cotton; but so few materials are used by our arts! A vast number of creatures and qualities remain hidden and anticipate their discovery. It seems as if each one waits, like the enchanted princess in fairy tales, for a destined human rescuer. Each must be set free and brought into the light in human form. In the story of discovery, the obvious and hidden truths seem to have developed a brain for themselves. A magnet must be personified, in someone like Gilbert, Swedenborg, or Oersted, before the broader mind can appreciate its capabilities.

If we limit ourselves to the first advantages: a sober grace adheres to the mineral and botanic kingdoms, which in the highest moments comes up as the charm of nature, the glitter of the spar, the sureness of affinity, the veracity of angles. Light and darkness, heat and cold, hunger and food, sweet and sour, solid, liquid, and gas, circle us round in a wreath of pleasures, and, by their agreeable quarrel, beguile the day of life. The eye repeats every day the first eulogy on things—"He saw that they were good." We know where to find them; and these performers are relished all the more after a little experience of the pretending races. We are entitled, also, to higher advantages. Something is wanting to science, until it has been humanized. The table of logarithms is one thing, and its vital play, in botany, music, optics, and architecture, another. There are advancements to numbers, anatomy, architecture, astronomy, little suspected at first, when, by union with intellect and will, they ascend into the life, and reappear in conversation, character, and politics.

If we focus on the first advantages: a simple elegance exists in the mineral and plant kingdoms, which at their finest moments reveals the beauty of nature, the sparkle of minerals, the certainty of connections, and the truth of shapes. Light and darkness, heat and cold, hunger and food, sweet and sour, solid, liquid, and gas surround us in a circle of pleasures, and through their enjoyable contradictions, they brighten our daily lives. Our eyes remind us every day of the first praise of things—"He saw that they were good." We know where to discover them, and these experiences are even more enjoyable after we've had a taste of the false pretenders. We also have the right to seek greater advantages. There’s something missing in science until it becomes more humanized. A table of logarithms is one thing, but its living application in botany, music, optics, and architecture is something else entirely. There are advancements in numbers, anatomy, architecture, and astronomy that we might not initially recognize, which, when combined with intellect and will, elevate them into life, shining through in conversation, character, and politics.

But this comes later. We speak now only of our acquaintance with them in their own sphere, and the way in which they seem to fascinate and draw to them some genius who occupies himself with one thing all his life long. The possibility of interpretation lies in the identity of the observer with the observed. Each material thing has its celestial side; has its translation, through humanity, into the spiritual and necessary sphere, where it plays a part as indestructible as any other. And to these, their ends, all things continually ascend. The gases gather to the solid firmament; the chemic lump arrives at the plant, and grows; arrives at the quadruped, and walks; arrives at the man, and thinks. But also the constituency determines the vote of the representative. He is not only representative, but participant. Like can only be known by like. The reason why he knows about them is, that he is of them; he has just come out of nature, or from being a part of that thing. Animated chlorine knows of chlorine, and incarnate zinc, of zinc. Their quality makes his career; and he can variously publish their virtues, because they compose him. Man, made of the dust of the world, does not forget his origin; and all that is yet inanimate will one day speak and reason. Unpublished nature will have its whole secret told. Shall we say that quartz mountains will pulverize into innumerable Werners, Von Buchs, and Beaumonts; and the laboratory of the atmosphere holds in solution I know not what Berzeliuses and Davys?

But this comes later. Right now, we’re only talking about our connection with them in their own environment and how they seem to attract some genius who dedicates their entire life to one thing. The possibility of understanding comes from the observer being similar to the observed. Everything material has its celestial aspect; it translates, through humanity, into the spiritual and essential sphere, where it plays a role as unbreakable as any other. To achieve their goals, all things continuously evolve. Gases come together to form solid ground; chemical compounds become plants and grow; they develop into animals that walk; they progress to humans who think. But the makeup also influences the representative’s vote. He is not just a representative; he is also a participant. Like recognizes like. The reason he understands them is that he is one of them; he has just emerged from nature or been a part of that essence. Living chlorine recognizes chlorine, and embodied zinc knows zinc. Their qualities shape his path; he can express their virtues in various ways because they make up who he is. Man, formed from the earth’s dust, does not forget his origins; and everything that is still lifeless will one day have a voice and reason. Unexpressed nature will completely reveal its secrets. Should we say that quartz mountains will break down into countless Werners, Von Buchs, and Beaumonts; and the laboratory of the atmosphere contains unknown Berzeliuses and Davys?

Thus we sit by the fire, and take hold on the poles of the earth. This quasi omnipresence supplies the imbecility of our condition. In one of those celestial days, when heaven and earth meet and adorn each other, it seems a poverty that we can only spend it once: we wish for a thousand heads, a thousand bodies, that we might celebrate its immense beauty in many ways and places. Is this fancy? Well, in good faith, we are multiplied by our proxies. How easily we adopt their labors. Every ship that comes to America got its chart from Columbus. Every novel is a debtor to Homer. Every carpenter who shaves with a foreplane borrows the genius of a forgotten inventor. Life is girt all round with a zodiac of sciences, the contributions of men who have perished to add their point of light to our sky. Engineer, broker, jurist, physician, moralist, theologian, and every man, inasmuch as he has any science, is a definer and map-maker of the latitudes and longitudes of our condition. These road-makers on every hand enrich us. We must extend the area of life, and multiply our relations. We are as much gainers by finding a new property in the old earth as by acquiring a new planet.

So here we are by the fire, connecting with the world around us. This kind of semi-omnipresence highlights the limitations of our situation. On one of those beautiful days when heaven and earth seem to come together and complement each other, it feels like a shame that we can only experience it once: we wish we had a thousand heads and bodies to celebrate its incredible beauty in countless ways and places. Is this just a daydream? Well, honestly, we are amplified through our connections. We easily take on their achievements. Every ship that sails to America follows the maps made by Columbus. Every novel owes something to Homer. Every carpenter who smooths wood with a plane benefits from the brilliance of some long-forgotten inventor. Life is surrounded by a circle of knowledge, thanks to the contributions of those who've passed on, adding their bit of light to our sky. Engineers, brokers, lawyers, doctors, moralists, theologians, and anyone with expertise help define and chart the coordinates of our existence. These builders in various fields enrich us. We need to broaden the scope of life and increase our connections. Discovering a new value in the old world is as beneficial as claiming a new planet.

We are too passive in the reception of these material or semi-material aids. We must not be sacks and stomachs. To ascend one step—we are better served through our sympathy. Activity is contagious. Looking where others look, and conversing with the same things, we catch the charm which lured them. Napoleon said, "You must not fight too often with one enemy, or you will teach him all your art of war." Talk much with any man of vigorous mind, and we acquire very fast the habit of looking at things in the same light, and, on each occurrence, we anticipate his thought.

We are too passive in how we accept these material or semi-material aids. We shouldn't just be passive recipients. To move forward, we benefit more from our empathy. Action is contagious. By looking at what others look at and discussing the same topics, we catch the appeal that attracted them. Napoleon said, "You must not fight too often with one enemy, or you will teach him all your art of war." By talking a lot with anyone with a strong mind, we quickly start to view things in the same way and anticipate their thoughts with each experience.

Men are helpful through the intellect and the affections. Other help, I find a false appearance. If you affect to give me bread and fire, I perceive that I pay for it the full price, and at last it leaves me as it found me, neither better nor worse; but all mental and moral force is a positive good. It goes out from you, whether you will or not, and profits me whom you never thought of. I cannot even hear of personal vigor of any kind, great power of performance, without fresh resolution. We are emulous of all that man can do. Cecil’s saying of Sir Walter Raleigh, "I know that he can toil terribly," is an electric touch. So are Clarendon’s portraits—of Hampden: "who was of an industry and vigilance not to be tired out or wearied by the most laborious, and of parts not to be imposed on by the most subtle and sharp, and of a personal courage equal to his best parts;"—of Falkland: "who was so severe an adorer of truth that he could as easily have given himself leave to steal as to dissemble." We cannot read Plutarch without a tingling of the blood; and I accept the saying of the Chinese Mencius: "A sage is the instructor of a hundred ages. When the manners of Loo are heard of, the stupid become intelligent, and the wavering, determined."

Men are helpful through their intelligence and emotions. Other forms of help seem superficial to me. If you pretend to give me food and warmth, I realize that I fully pay for it, and in the end, it leaves me as I was, neither better nor worse; but all mental and moral strength is a genuine benefit. It comes from you, whether you realize it or not, and it helps me, even if you never intended it. I can't hear about someone's personal strength or impressive abilities without feeling renewed motivation. We are inspired by everything that humanity can achieve. Cecil’s remark about Sir Walter Raleigh, "I know that he can work incredibly hard," is like a jolt of energy. So are Clarendon’s descriptions—of Hampden: "who had such relentless industry and vigilance that he could not be worn out by the heaviest labor, and was not easily deceived by the most cunning and sharp; and of a personal courage that matched his best qualities;"—of Falkland: "who was such a devoted seeker of truth that he would as easily allow himself to steal as to be dishonest." We can't read Plutarch without feeling invigorated; and I accept what the Chinese philosopher Mencius said: "A sage is the teacher of a hundred generations. When the customs of Loo are known, the foolish become wise, and the uncertain find direction."

This is the moral of biography; yet it is hard for departed men to touch the quick like our own companions, whose names may not last as long. What is he whom I never think of? whilst in every solitude are those who succor our genius, and stimulate us in wonderful manners. There is a power in love to divine another’s destiny better than that other can, and, by heroic encouragements, hold him to his task. What has friendship so signal as its sublime attraction to whatever virtue is in us? We will never more think cheaply of ourselves, or of life. We are piqued to some purpose, and the industry of the diggers on the railroad will not again shame us.

This is the lesson of biography; still, it's difficult for those who have passed away to impact us like our current friends, whose names might not endure as long. Who is the person I'm not even thinking about? Meanwhile, in every moment of solitude, there are those who support our creativity and inspire us in incredible ways. Love has a unique ability to understand someone else's fate better than they can, and through encouraging acts, it keeps them focused on their goals. What does friendship have that is more remarkable than its amazing ability to draw out the virtues within us? We will never again underestimate ourselves or life. We are motivated to achieve something, and the hard work of those building the railroad will no longer make us feel ashamed.

Under this head, too, falls that homage, very pure, as I think, which all ranks pay to the hero of the day, from Coriolanus and Gracchus, down to Pitt, Lafayette, Wellington, Webster, Lamartine. Hear the shouts in the street! The people cannot see him enough. They delight in a man. Here is a head and a trunk! What a front! What eyes! Atlantean shoulders, and the whole carriage heroic, with equal inward force to guide the great machine! This pleasure of full expression to that which, in their private experience, is usually cramped and obstructed, runs, also, much higher, and is the secret of the reader’s joy in literary genius. Nothing is kept back. There is fire enough to fuse the mountain of ore. Shakspeare’s principal merit may be conveyed in saying that he, of all men, best understands the English language, and can say what he will. Yet these unchoked channels and floodgates of expression are only health or fortunate constitution. Shakspeare’s name suggests other and purely intellectual benefits.

Under this topic, we also find that sincere admiration, which I believe to be very genuine, that all social classes show to the hero of the moment, from Coriolanus and Gracchus, to Pitt, Lafayette, Wellington, Webster, and Lamartine. Listen to the cheers in the streets! The people can’t get enough of him. They take joy in a man. Look at his head and body! What a face! What eyes! His shoulders are strong, and he carries himself with a hero's presence, backed by an equally powerful inner strength to manage his great persona! This enjoyment of full self-expression, which in their daily lives tends to be limited and stifled, also runs much deeper, revealing the secret to the reader’s delight in literary brilliance. Nothing is held back. There’s enough passion to melt down a mountain of raw material. Shakespeare’s main strength could be summed up by saying that he, above all others, truly understands the English language and can express exactly what he wants. However, these unblocked channels and open gates of expression are just signs of good health or fortunate talent. Shakespeare’s name also brings to mind other purely intellectual advantages.

Senates and sovereigns have no compliment, with their medals, swords, and armorial coats, like the addressing to a human being thoughts out of a certain height, and presupposing his intelligence. This honor, which is possible in personal intercourse scarcely twice in a lifetime, genius perpetually pays; contented, if now and then, in a century, the proffer is accepted. The indicators of the values of matter are degraded to a sort of cooks and confectioners, on the appearance of the indicators of ideas. Genius is the naturalist or geographer of the supersensible regions, and draws their map; and, by acquainting us with new fields of activity, cools our affection for the old. These are at once accepted as the reality, of which the world we have conversed with is the show.

Senates and rulers have no real appreciation, with their medals, swords, and coats of arms, much like addressing someone from a high place, assuming they understand. This kind of honor, which can only happen in personal interactions maybe twice in a lifetime, is constantly given by genius; it’s satisfied if every now and then, someone accepts it in a century. The signs of material value are reduced to a kind of cooks and bakers when the signs of ideas appear. Genius is like the naturalist or geographer of the non-material realms, mapping them out; and by introducing us to new areas of engagement, it diminishes our attachment to the old. These new revelations are immediately recognized as reality, while the world we’ve known is just a façade.

We go to the gymnasium and the swimming-school to see the power and beauty of the body; there is the like pleasure, and higher benefit, from witnessing intellectual feats of all kinds; as feats of memory, of mathematical combination, great power of abstraction, the transmutings of the imagination, even versatility and concentration, as these acts expose the invisible organs and members of the mind, which respond, member for member, to the parts of the body. For we thus enter a new gymnasium, and learn to choose men by their truest marks, taught, with Plato, "to choose those who can, without aid from the eyes or any other sense, proceed to truth and to being." Foremost among these activities are the summersaults, spells, and resurrections wrought by the imagination. When this wakes, a man seems to multiply ten times or a thousand times his force. It opens the delicious sense of indeterminate size, and inspires an audacious mental habit. We are as elastic as the gas of gunpowder, and a sentence in a book or a word dropped in conversation sets free our fancy, and instantly our heads are bathed with galaxies, and our feet tread the floor of the pit. And this benefit is real, because we are entitled to these enlargements, and, once having passed the bounds, shall never again be quite the miserable pedants we were.

We go to the gym and the pool to appreciate the strength and beauty of the body; there's similar enjoyment and even greater benefit in witnessing a variety of intellectual achievements, like feats of memory, mathematical skills, strong abstract thinking, creative imagination, and the ability to focus and adapt. These acts reveal the unseen parts and functions of the mind, which respond in kind to the body. It’s like stepping into a new gym where we learn to judge people by their true qualities, as Plato taught, "to choose those who can, without relying on sight or any other sense, reach truth and existence." Among the most engaging activities are the flips, spells, and revivals created by imagination. When it awakens, a person seems to amplify their strength a hundred or even a thousand times. It expands our perception of size and fosters a bold way of thinking. We're as flexible as gunpowder, and a single line from a book or a word in conversation can ignite our imagination, instantly sending our minds racing through galaxies while our feet remain grounded. This benefit is genuine because we deserve these expansions, and once we’ve pushed beyond our limits, we’ll never be as narrow-minded as we were before.

The high functions of the intellect are so allied that some imaginative power usually appears in all eminent minds, even in arithmeticians of the first class, but especially in meditative men of an intuitive habit of thought. This class serve us, so that they have the perception of identity and the perception of reaction. The eyes of Plato, Shakspeare, Swedenborg, Goethe, never shut on either of these laws. The perception of these laws is a kind of meter of the mind. Little minds are little, through failure to see them.

The higher functions of the mind are so connected that some imaginative ability often shows up in all exceptional thinkers, even top mathematicians, but especially in reflective individuals with an intuitive way of thinking. This group helps us by having a strong sense of identity and awareness of how things interact. The insights of Plato, Shakespeare, Swedenborg, and Goethe never overlooked these principles. Understanding these principles acts like a measure of the mind. Small-minded people remain small because they fail to recognize them.

Even these feasts have their surfeit. Our delight in reason degenerates into idolatry of the herald. Especially when a mind of powerful method has instructed men, we find the examples of oppression. The dominion of Aristotle, the Ptolemaic astronomy, the credit of Luther, of Bacon, of Locke,—in religion, the history of hierarchies, of saints, and the sects which have taken the name of each founder,—are in point. Alas! every man is such a victim. The imbecility of men is always inviting the impudence of power. It is the delight of vulgar talent to dazzle and to blind the beholder. But true genius seeks to defend us from itself. True genius will not impoverish, but will liberate, and add new senses. If a wise man should appear in our village, he would create, in those who conversed with him, a new consciousness of wealth, by opening their eyes to unobserved advantages; he would establish a sense of immovable equality, calm us with assurances that we could not be cheated; as everyone would discern the checks and guaranties of condition. The rich would see their mistakes and poverty, the poor their escapes and their resources.

Even these feasts can become overwhelming. Our enjoyment of reason turns into idolizing the messenger. Especially when a strong-minded person has taught us, we see examples of oppression. The influence of Aristotle, Ptolemaic astronomy, and the reputations of Luther, Bacon, and Locke—in religion, the histories of hierarchies, saints, and the groups named after each founder—are all examples. Unfortunately, everyone falls victim to this. The ignorance of people always invites the boldness of authority. It's the pleasure of mediocre talent to dazzle and blind its audience. But true genius aims to protect us from itself. True genius doesn’t impoverish; it liberates and enhances our understanding. If a wise person were to come to our village, they would create in those who spoke with them a new awareness of wealth, by revealing unseen advantages; they would establish a sense of unshakeable equality, calming us with the reassurance that we couldn't be fooled; everyone would recognize the checks and balances of their situation. The rich would see their errors and limitations, while the poor would discover their opportunities and resources.

But nature brings all this about in due time. Rotation is her remedy. The soul is impatient of masters, and eager for change. Housekeepers say of a domestic who has been valuable, "She had lived with me long enough." We are tendencies, or rather symptoms, and none of us complete. We touch and go, and sip the foam of many lives. Rotation is the law of nature. When nature removes a great man, people explore the horizon for a successor; but none comes, and none will. His class is extinguished with him. In some other and quite different field, the next man will appear; not Jefferson, not Franklin, but now a great salesman; than a road-contractor; then a student of fishes; then a buffalo-hunting explorer, or a semi-savage Western general. Thus we make a stand against our rougher masters; but against the best there is a finer remedy. The power which they communicate is not theirs. When we are exalted by ideas, we do not owe this to Plato, but to the idea, to which, also, Plato was debtor.

But nature brings all this about in its own time. Change is her remedy. The soul can't stand being controlled and craves transformation. Housekeepers say of a servant who has been valuable, "She has worked for me long enough." We are tendencies, or rather signs, and none of us are complete. We move in and out, and enjoy the surface of many lives. Change is the law of nature. When nature takes away a great person, people look around for a successor; but none arrives, and none will. His type disappears with him. In some other, totally different area, the next person will emerge; not Jefferson, not Franklin, but now a top salesperson; then a road contractor; then a fish researcher; then a buffalo-hunting explorer, or a somewhat wild Western general. Thus we resist our harsher masters; but against the best there is a more refined remedy. The power they share isn’t truly theirs. When we are uplifted by ideas, we don’t owe this to Plato, but to the idea itself, to which, also, Plato was indebted.

I must not forget that we have a special debt to a single class. Life is a scale of degrees. Between rank and rank of our great men are wide intervals. Mankind have, in all ages, attached themselves to a few persons, who, either by the quality of that idea they embodied, or by the largeness of their reception, were entitled to the position of leaders and law-givers. These teach us the qualities of primary nature—admit us to the constitution of things. We swim, day by day, on a river of delusions, and are effectually amused with houses and towns in the air, of which the men about us are dupes. But life is a sincerity. In lucid intervals we say, "Let there be an entrance opened for me into realties; I have worn the fool’s cap too long." We will know the meaning of our economies and politics. Give us the cipher, and, if persons and things are scores of a celestial music, let us read off the strains. We have been cheated of our reason; yet there have been sane men who enjoyed a rich and related existence. What they know they know for us. With each new mind, a new secret of nature transpires; nor can the Bible be closed until the last great man is born. These men correct the delirium of the animal spirits, make us considerate, and engage us to new aims and powers. The veneration of mankind selects these for the highest place. Witness the multitude of statues, pictures, and memorials which recall their genius in every city, village, house, and ship:

I must not forget that we owe a special debt to a particular group. Life is all about different levels. There are significant gaps between the ranks of our great leaders. Throughout history, people have attached themselves to a few individuals who, either through the ideas they represented or their widespread acceptance, deserved to be seen as leaders and law-makers. These individuals teach us the fundamental qualities of our nature—revealing the underlying structure of things. Each day, we float on a river of illusions, entertained by dreams of houses and towns that those around us fall for. But life is about honesty. In moments of clarity, we say, "Let me access reality; I've worn the fool's hat for too long." We want to understand our economies and politics. Give us the key, and as if people and things were notes in a celestial symphony, let us play the melodies. We’ve been robbed of our reason; yet there have been sensible people who lived fulfilling and connected lives. What they know, they know for us. With every new mind, a new truth about nature emerges; and the Bible can't be closed until the last great person is born. These individuals correct the madness of our passions, prompt us to think critically, and inspire us toward new goals and abilities. The respect of humanity elevates these people to the highest status. Just look at the countless statues, paintings, and memorials that celebrate their brilliance in every city, village, home, and ship:

"Always their ghosts appear before us,
Our noble brothers, united by blood; At the bed and table, they rule over us,
"With looks of beauty and kind words."

How to illustrate the distinctive benefit of ideas, the service rendered by those who introduce moral truths into the general mind?—I am plagued, in all my living, with a perpetual tariff of prices. If I work in my garden and prune an apple-tree, I am well enough entertained, and could continue indefinitely in the like occupation. But it comes to mind that a day is gone, and I have got this precious nothing done. I go to Boston or New York, and run up and down on my affairs: they are sped, but so is the day. I am vexed by the recollection of this price I have paid for a trifling advantage. I remember the peau d’âne, on which whoso sat should have his desire, but a piece of the skin was gone for every wish. I go to a convention of philanthropists. Do what I can, I cannot keep my eyes off the clock. But if there should appear in the company some gentle soul who knows little of persons or parties, of Carolina or Cuba, but who announces a law that disposes these particulars, and so certifies me of the equity which checkmates every false player, bankrupts every self-seeker, and apprises me of my independence on any conditions of country, or time, or human body, that man liberates me; I forget the clock. I pass out of the sore relation to persons. I am healed of my hurts. I am made immortal by apprehending my possession of incorruptible goods. Here is great competition of rich and poor. We live in a market, where is only so much wheat, or wool, or land; and if I have so much more, every other must have so much less. I seem to have no good, without breach of good manners. Nobody is glad in the gladness of another, and our system is one of war, of an injurious superiority. Every child of the Saxon race is educated to wish to be first. It is our system; and a man comes to measure his greatness by the regrets, envies, and hatreds of his competitors. But in these new fields there is room: here are no self-esteems, no exclusions.

How can I show the unique benefit of ideas, the service provided by those who introduce moral truths into everyone's awareness? I constantly deal with a never-ending cost of time in my life. If I spend the day working in my garden and trimming an apple tree, I enjoy it and could go on doing it forever. But then I realize a whole day has passed, and I've accomplished nothing of value. I go to Boston or New York, rushing around with my tasks: they get done, but so does the day. I'm frustrated, remembering the price I've paid for a trivial gain. It reminds me of the peau d’âne, where anyone who sat on it could fulfill their desires, but had to give up a piece of the skin for each wish. I attend a convention of philanthropists. No matter how hard I try, I can't stop glancing at the clock. But if someone kind shows up, who knows little about people, parties, Carolina, or Cuba, yet announces a principle that clarifies these details, certifying me of the fairness that counters every dishonest player, undermines every selfish person, and reminds me of my independence from any circumstances of country, time, or physical form, that person frees me; I forget about the clock. I escape the painful relationship with others. I'm healed of my wounds. I feel immortal by realizing I possess untainted treasures. Here, there is intense competition between the rich and the poor. We live in a marketplace where there's only a limited supply of wheat, wool, or land; if I have more, everyone else has less. I feel like I can't gain anything without violating good manners. Nobody feels joy in another's happiness, and our system is one of conflict and harmful superiority. Every child of the Saxon race is raised to want to be the best. That's how our system works, and a person measures his worth by the regrets, envies, and hatreds of his rivals. But in these new areas, there's plenty of space: there are no egos, no exclusions.

I admire great men of all classes, those who stand for facts and for thoughts; I like rough and smooth, "scourges of God" and "darlings of the human race." I like the first Cæsar; and Charles V, of Spain; and Charles XII, of Sweden; Richard Plantagenet; and Bonaparte, in France. I applaud a sufficient man, an officer equal to his office; captains, ministers, senators. I like a master standing firm on legs of iron, well-born, rich, handsome, eloquent, loaded with advantages, drawing all men by fascination into tributaries and supports of his power. Sword and staff, or talents sword-like or staff-like, carry on the work of the world. But I find him greater when he can abolish himself, and all heroes, by letting in this element of reason, irrespective of persons; this subtilizer, and irresistible upward force, into our thought, destroying individualism; the power so great that the potentate is nothing. Then he is a monarch who gives a constitution to his people; a pontiff who preaches the equality of souls, and releases his servants from their barbarous homages; an emperor who can spare his empire.

I admire exceptional people from all backgrounds, those who stand for facts and ideas; I appreciate the rough and the smooth, "scourges of God" and "darlings of the human race." I admire the first Caesar, Charles V of Spain, Charles XII of Sweden, Richard Plantagenet, and Bonaparte in France. I applaud capable individuals, officers who are up to the task; captains, ministers, senators. I like a leader who stands firm on strong legs, well-born, wealthy, attractive, articulate, loaded with advantages, attracting everyone as tributaries and supporters of his power. Whether through force or influence, the talents that do the work of the world are invaluable. But I find him even greater when he can set aside his own identity, along with all heroes, by allowing this element of reason, regardless of individuals; this subtle and irresistible upward force, into our thought, dismantling individualism; so powerful that the ruler becomes insignificant. Then he is a monarch who grants a constitution to his people; a pontiff who preaches the equality of souls and frees his followers from their outdated reverence; an emperor who can let go of his empire.

But I intended to specify, with a little minuteness, two or three points of service. Nature never spares the opium or nepenthe; but, wherever she mars her creature with some deformity or defect, lays her poppies plentifully on the bruise, and the sufferer goes joyfully through life, ignorant of the ruin, and incapable of seeing it, though all the world point their finger at it every day. The worthless and offensive members of society, whose existence is a social pest, invariably think themselves the most ill-used people alive, and never get over their astonishment at the ingratitude and selfishness of their contemporaries. Our globe discovers its hidden virtues, not only in heroes and archangels, but in gossips and nurses. Is it not a rare contrivance that lodged the due inertia in every creature, the conserving, resisting energy, the anger at being waked or changed? Altogether independent of the intellectual force in each is the pride of opinion, the security that we are right. Not the feeblest grandame, not a mowing idiot, but uses what spark of perception and faculty is left, to chuckle and triumph in his or her opinion over the absurdities of all the rest. Difference from me is the measure of absurdity. Not one has a misgiving of being wrong. Was it not a bright thought that made things cohere with this bitumen, fastest of cements? But, in the midst of this chuckle of self-gratulation, some figure goes by which Thersites too can love and admire. This is he that should marshal us the way we were going. There is no end to his aid. Without Plato, we should almost lose our faith in the possibility of a reasonable book. We seem to want but one, but we want one. We love to associate with heroic persons, since our receptivity is unlimited; and, with the great, our thoughts and manners easily become great. We are all wise in capacity, though so few in energy. There needs but one wise man in a company, and all are wise, so rapid is the contagion.

But I wanted to point out, in a bit more detail, a couple of service-related points. Nature never withholds the opium or comfort, but whenever she marks her creation with some flaw or defect, she generously lays her poppies on the bruises, and the person affected happily goes through life, unaware of the damage, even though everyone around them points it out every day. The worthless and problematic members of society, whose existence is a burden to everyone, always think they are the most mistreated people alive and are forever shocked by the ingratitude and selfishness of those around them. Our world reveals its hidden virtues not only in heroes and archangels but also in gossips and caregivers. Isn’t it a strange design that gives every creature the necessary inertia, the __________ conserving, resisting energy, the annoyance at being disturbed or changed? Completely separate from the intellectual strength in each individual is the pride of opinion, the confidence that we are right. Not even the weakest elder, nor a drooling fool, fails to use whatever small spark of awareness and ability they possess to mock and take pride in their views over the silliness of everyone else. The difference from me is the measure of absurdity. Not one of them doubts they might be wrong. Wasn’t it a brilliant idea that made things stick together with this tar, the strongest of adhesives? Yet, amid this self-satisfied laughter, someone passes by whom even Thersites can admire and appreciate. This is the one who should lead us in the direction we were headed. His help has no end. Without Plato, we might almost lose our belief in the possibility of a sensible book. We seem to want just one, but we truly need one. We love to associate with heroic individuals, as our capacity for receiving is limitless; and with the great, our thoughts and behaviors easily become elevated. We are all wise in potential, though so few in action. It only takes one wise person in a group for all to become wise, as the influence spreads quickly.

Great men are thus a collyrium to clear our eyes from egotism, and enable us to see other people and their works. But there are vices and follies incident to whole populations and ages. Men resemble their contemporaries, even more than their progenitors. It is observed in old couples, or in persons who have been housemates for a course of years, that they grow like; and if they should live long enough, we should not be able to know them apart. Nature abhors these complaisances, which threaten to melt the world into a lump, and hastens to break up such maudlin agglutinations. The like assimilation goes on between men of one town, of one sect, of one political party; and the ideas of the time are in the air, and infect all who breathe it. Viewed from any high point, this city of New York, yonder city of London, the western civilization, would seem a bundle of insanities. We keep each other in countenance, and exasperate by emulation the frenzy of the time. The shield against the stingings of conscience is the universal practice, or our contemporaries. Again: it is very easy to be as wise and good as your companions. We learn of our contemporaries what they know, without effort, and almost through the pores of the skin. We catch it by sympathy, or as a wife arrives at the intellectual and moral elevations of her husband. But we stop where they stop. Very hardly can we take another step. The great, or such as hold of nature, and transcend fashions, by their fidelity to universal ideas, are saviors from these federal errors, and defend us from our contemporaries. They are the exceptions which we want, where all grows alike. A foreign greatness is the antidote for cabalism.

Great individuals act like eye drops that clear our vision from self-absorption, allowing us to see other people and their contributions. However, there are flaws and foolishness that affect entire populations and eras. People tend to resemble those around them more than their ancestors. It's noticeable in older couples or people who have lived together for years; they start to look alike, and if they live long enough, it might be hard to tell them apart. Nature despises these connections, which threaten to blend everyone into one indistinguishable mass, and quickly works to break up such sentimental unions. A similar blending happens among people from the same town, group, or political party; the prevailing ideas of the time are in the air and contaminate everyone who breathes it. From a distance, this city of New York and the city of London, along with Western civilization, may seem like a collection of madness. We support each other and fuel the madness of our era through competition. Our defense against the prickings of conscience is the common behavior of our peers. Moreover, it’s quite easy to be as wise and virtuous as those around you. We absorb what our contemporaries know effortlessly, almost osmotically. We catch it through connection, similar to how a wife reaches the intellectual and moral levels of her husband. But we only progress as far as they do. It's very difficult to take another step beyond that. The truly great, those who connect with nature and rise above trends through their commitment to universal ideas, save us from these collective mistakes and protect us from our peers. They are the exceptions we need in a world where everyone tends to become the same. An outside greatness is the remedy for close-mindedness.

Thus we feed on genius, and refresh ourselves from too much conversation with our mates, and exult in the depth of nature in that direction in which he leads us. What indemnification is one great man for populations of pygmies! Every mother wishes one son a genius, though all the rest should be mediocre. But a new danger appears in the excess of influence of the great man. His attractions warp us from our place. We have become underlings and intellectual suicides. Ah! yonder in the horizon is our help: other great men, new qualities, counterweights and checks on each other. We cloy of the honey of each peculiar greatness. Every hero becomes a bore at last. Perhaps Voltaire was not bad-hearted, yet he said of the good Jesus, even, "I pray you, let me never hear that man’s name again." They cry up the virtues of George Washington—"Damn George Washington!" is the poor Jacobin’s whole speech and confutation. But it is human nature’s indispensable defense. The centripetence augments the centrifugence. We balance one man with his opposite, and the health of the State depends on the see-saw.

So we draw inspiration from genius, refreshing ourselves from too much conversation with our friends, and reveling in the depth of nature in the direction he guides us. What compensation is one great man for populations of lesser talents! Every mother hopes one of her sons will be a genius, even if the others are just average. But a new danger arises from the overwhelming influence of the great man. His allure distracts us from our own place. We become followers and intellectual failures. Ah! Over there on the horizon is our salvation: other great men, new qualities, checks and balances against each other. We tire of the sweetness of each unique greatness. Every hero eventually becomes boring. Perhaps Voltaire wasn’t malicious, yet he said of the good Jesus, “I pray you, let me never hear that man’s name again.” They praise the virtues of George Washington—“Damn George Washington!” is all the poor Jacobin can say. But it is human nature's essential defense. The attraction brings more repulsion. We balance one man with his opposite, and the health of the State depends on this back-and-forth.

There is, however, a speedy limit to the use of heroes. Every genius is defended from approach by quantities of unavailableness. They are very attractive, and seem at a distance our own; but we are hindered on all sides from approach. The more we are drawn, the more we are repelled. There is something not solid in the good that is done for us. The best discovery the discoverer makes for himself. It has something unreal for his companion, until he too has substantiated it. It seems as if the Deity dressed each soul which he sends into nature in certain virtues and powers not communicable to other men, and, sending it to perform one more turn through the circle of beings, wrote, "Not transferable," and "Good for this trip only," on these garments of the soul. There is somewhat deceptive about the intercourse of minds. The boundaries are invisible, but they are never crossed. There is such good will to impart, and such good will to receive, that each threatens to become the other; but the law of individuality collects its secret strength: you are you, and I am I, and so we remain.

There is, however, a quick limit to how much we can rely on heroes. Every genius is kept at a distance by a lot of unavailability. They are very appealing and seem like they could be one of us from afar, but we’re blocked from getting close. The more we’re drawn in, the more we’re pushed away. There’s something insubstantial about the good that’s done for us. The greatest discovery the discoverer makes is really for themselves. It feels unreal for their companion until they too can prove it. It’s as if the Deity outfits each soul sent into the world with certain virtues and powers that can’t be passed on to others, and, sending it to take another turn through the cycle of existence, labels it with “Not transferable” and “Good for this trip only” on these soul garments. There’s something misleading about how minds connect. The boundaries are invisible, but they can’t be crossed. There’s such a strong desire to share and to receive that each side risks becoming the other; but the law of individuality gathers its quiet strength: you are you, and I am I, and we stay that way.

For Nature wishes everything to remain itself; and whilst every individual strives to grow and exclude, and to exclude and grow, to the extremities of the universe, and to impose the law of its being on every other creature, Nature steadily aims to protect each against every other. Each is self-defended. Nothing is more marked than the power by which individuals are guarded from individuals, in a world where every benefactor becomes so easily a malefactor, only by continuation of his activity into places where it is not due; where children seem so much at the mercy of their foolish parents, and where almost all men are too social and interfering. We rightly speak of the guardian angels of children. How superior in their security from infusions of evil persons, from vulgarity and second thought! They shed their own abundant beauty on the objects they behold. Therefore, they are not at the mercy of such poor educators as we adults. If we huff and chide them, they soon come not to mind it, and get a self-reliance; and if we indulge them to folly, they learn the limitation elsewhere.

For nature wants everything to stay true to itself; and while each individual tries to grow, exclude, and dominate to the furthest reaches of the universe, seeking to impose its own way of being on every other creature, nature consistently works to protect each one from the others. Each is self-protected. Nothing is more obvious than the way individuals are shielded from one another, in a world where every helper can easily become a hindrance, merely by extending their influence into areas where it’s not needed; where children seem so vulnerable to their clueless parents, and where almost everyone is too intrusive and meddling. We rightfully refer to the guardian angels of children. How much more secure they are from the negative influences of harmful individuals, from crudeness and second-guessing! They bring their own incredible beauty to whatever they see. So, they aren’t at the mercy of such inadequate teachers as we adults. If we scold and criticize them, they quickly learn not to pay attention to it, developing their own self-confidence; and if we indulge them to the point of foolishness, they discover their limits elsewhere.

We need not fear excessive influence. A more generous trust is permitted. Serve the great. Stick at no humiliation. Grudge no office thou canst render. Be the limb of their body, the breath of their mouth. Compromise thy egotism. Who cares for that, so thou gain aught wider and nobler? Never mind the taunt of Boswellism: the devotion may easily be greater than the wretched pride which is guarding its own skirts. Be another—not thyself, but a Platonist; not a soul, but a Christian; not a naturalist, but a Cartesian; not a poet, but a Shaksperian. In vain; the wheels of tendency will not stop, nor will all the forces of inertia, fear, or of love itself, hold thee there. On, and forever onward! The microscope observes a monad or wheel-insect among the infusories circulating in water. Presently a dot appears on the animal, which enlarges to a slit, and it becomes two perfect animals. The ever-proceeding detachment appears not less in all thought, and in society. Children think they cannot live without their parents. But long before they are aware of it, the black dot has appeared, and the detachment taken place. Any accident will now reveal to them their independence.

We don't need to worry about too much influence. A greater level of trust is allowed. Serve those who are great. Don't shy away from any humiliation. Don't hold back on any role you can play. Be a part of their whole, the voice of their thoughts. Set aside your ego. Who cares about that, as long as you achieve something larger and more meaningful? Don’t worry about the criticism of being like Boswell; the dedication can often be stronger than the pitiful pride that’s just protecting itself. Be someone else—not yourself, but a Platonist; not just a person, but a Christian; not a naturalist, but a Cartesian; not merely a poet, but a Shakespearian. It’s useless; the current of change won’t stop, and nothing—including fear or love—will hold you back. Keep moving forward, always onward! A microscope sees a tiny organism or wheel-insect among the tiny life forms in water. Soon a dot appears on the creature, which grows into a slit, and it becomes two perfect creatures. This ongoing separation is just as visible in all thoughts and in society. Children believe they can't survive without their parents. But long before they even realize it, that black dot has appeared, and the separation has occurred. Any incident will now show them their independence.

But great men—the word is injurious. Is there caste? Is there fate? What becomes of the promise to virtue? The thoughtful youth laments the superfœtation of nature. "Generous and handsome," he says, "is your hero; but look at yonder poor Paddy, whose country is his wheelbarrow; look at his whole nation of Paddies." Why are the masses, from the dawn of history down, food for knives and powder? The idea dignifies a few leaders, who have sentiment, opinion, love, self-devotion; and they make war and death sacred; but what for the wretches whom they hire and kill? The cheapness of man is every day’s tragedy. It is as real a loss that others should be low as that we should be low; for we must have society.

But great men—that term is harmful. Is there a class system? Is there destiny? What happens to the promise of goodness? The thoughtful young person grieves over the overabundance of nature. "Noble and attractive," he says, "is your hero; but look at that poor guy over there, whose only possession is his wheelbarrow; look at his entire nation of people like him." Why have the masses, throughout history, been fodder for violence? This idea elevates a few leaders who possess feelings, beliefs, love, and dedication; they turn war and death into something sacred— but what about the unfortunate souls they recruit and kill? The devaluation of human life is a daily tragedy. It’s just as tragic that others are lowly as it is for us to be low; because we need society.

Is it a reply to these suggestions, to say society is a Pestalozzian school; all are teachers and pupils in turn. We are equally served by receiving and by imparting. Men who know the same things are not long the best company for each other. But bring to each an intelligent person of another experience, and it is as if you let off water from a lake, by cutting a lower basin. It seems a mechanical advantage, and great benefit it is to each speaker, as he can now paint out his thought to himself. We pass very fast, in our personal moods, from dignity to dependence. And if any appear never to assume the chair, but always to stand and serve, it is because we do not see the company in a sufficiently long period for the whole rotation of parts to come about. As to what we call the masses and common men—there are no common men. All men are at last of a size; and true art is only possible on the conviction that every talent has its apotheosis somewhere. Fair play, and an open field, and freshest laurels to all who have won them! But heaven reserves an equal scope for every creature. Each is uneasy until he has produced his private ray unto the concave sphere, and beheld his talent also in its last nobility and exaltation.

Is it a response to these suggestions to say that society is like a Pestalozzian school; everyone is both a teacher and a student at different times? We benefit equally from learning and sharing. People who know the same things don’t make for the best company for long. But if you bring in someone smart with different experiences, it’s like releasing water from a lake by cutting into a lower basin. It provides a mechanical advantage, and it’s a huge benefit for each speaker, as they can now clarify their thoughts to themselves. We quickly shift between feelings of dignity and dependence. If some seem to never take the lead but always stand and serve, it’s because we haven’t observed the group long enough for the full cycle of roles to unfold. As for what we call the masses and ordinary people—there are no ordinary people. In the end, everyone is equal, and true art can only exist with the belief that every talent has its moment of greatness somewhere. Fair play, an open field, and the best rewards to all who deserve them! But the universe allows equal opportunity for every being. Each person feels restless until they’ve shared their unique perspective and seen their talent recognized in its highest form.

The heroes of the hour are relatively great—of a faster growth; or they are such, in whom, at the moment of success, a quality is ripe which is then in request. Other days will demand other qualities. Some rays escape the common observer, and want a finely adapted eye. Ask the great man if there be none greater. His companions are; and not the less great, but the more, that society cannot see them. Nature never sends a great man into the planet without confiding the secret to another soul.

The heroes of the moment are usually impressive—they develop quickly; or they possess a quality that’s in demand at the peak of their success. Different times will call for different qualities. Some talents go unnoticed by the average person and require a keen eye to appreciate. Ask a great person if there’s anyone greater. Their peers are, and they’re just as remarkable, if not more so, because society fails to recognize them. Nature never sends a great person into the world without sharing the secret with another soul.

One gracious fact emerges from these studies—that there is true ascension in our love. The reputations of the nineteenth century will one day be quoted to prove its barbarism. The genius of humanity is the real subject whose biography is written in our annals. We must infer much, and supply many chasms in the record. The history of the universe is symptomatic, and life is mnemonical. No man, in all the procession of famous men, is reason or illumination, or that essence we were looking for, but is an exhibition, in some quarter, of new possibilities. Could we one day complete the immense figure which these flagrant points compose! The study of many individuals leads us to an elemental region wherein the individual is lost, or wherein all touch by their summits. Thought and feeling, that break out there, cannot be impounded by any fence of personality. This is the key to the power of the greatest men—their spirit diffuses itself. A new quality of mind travels by night and by day, in concentric circles from its origin, and publishes itself by unknown methods; the union of all minds appears intimate; what gets admission to one cannot be kept out of any other; the smallest acquisition of truth or of energy, in any quarter, is so much good to the commonwealth of souls. If the disparities of talent and position vanish when the individuals are seen in the duration which is necessary to complete the career of each, even more swiftly the seeming injustice disappears when we ascend to the central identity of all the individuals, and know that they are made of the substance which ordaineth and doeth.

One clear takeaway from these studies is that our love truly grows. In the future, people will look back at the reputations of the nineteenth century and highlight its brutality. The real story is about the genius of humanity, which is documented in our history. We need to read between the lines and fill in many gaps in the record. The history of the universe reflects human experience, and life serves as a reminder. No one, among all the notable figures, represents pure reason or insight, or that essence we’ve been seeking, but instead demonstrates new possibilities in their own way. Imagine if we could complete the vast picture made up of these striking points! Studying individual lives takes us to a foundational place where the individual disappears, or where everyone connects at a deeper level. Thoughts and feelings that emerge from this place cannot be confined by personal boundaries. This is the essence of what makes the greatest individuals powerful—their spirit radiates outwards. A new way of thinking spreads both day and night, expanding in concentric circles from its source and revealing itself in mysterious ways; the connection between all minds feels close; what resonates with one cannot be excluded from another; even the tiniest gain in truth or energy, anywhere, benefits all of humanity. If the differences in talent and status fade when we consider the duration needed for each person’s journey, the perceived unfairness also quickly disappears when we recognize the shared essence that unites all individuals, knowing they are made of the same fundamental stuff that shapes and guides.

The genius of humanity is the right point of view of history. The qualities abide; the men who exhibit them have now more, now less, and pass away; the qualities remain on another brow. No experience is more familiar. Once you saw phœnixes: they are gone; the world is not therefore disenchanted. The vessels on which you read sacred emblems turn out to be common pottery; but the sense of the pictures is sacred, and you may still read them transferred to the walls of the world. For a time our teachers serve us personally, as meters or milestones of progress. Once they were angels of knowledge, and their figures touched the sky. Then we drew near, saw their means, culture, and limits; and they yielded their place to other geniuses. Happy, if a few names remain so high that we have not been able to read them nearer, and age and comparison have not robbed them of a ray. But, at last, we shall cease to look in men for completeness, and shall content ourselves with their social and delegated quality. All that respects the individual is temporary and prospective, like the individual himself, who is ascending out of his limits into a catholic existence. We have never come at the true and best benefit of any genius, so long as we believe him an original force. In the moment when he ceases to help us as a cause, he begins to help us more as an effect. Then he appears as an exponent of a vaster mind and will. The opaque self becomes transparent with the light of the First Cause.

The brilliance of humanity lies in our perspective on history. The traits persist; the people who display them have more at times and less at others, and they eventually fade away; but the qualities live on in others. This experience is all too familiar. Once you saw great figures rise, but they are gone; that doesn't mean the world has lost its magic. The vessels you once thought held sacred symbols turn out to be ordinary pottery; yet the meaning of the images remains sacred, and you can still interpret them as they are reflected in the world around you. For a while, our mentors serve as personal markers of progress. Once, they were like heavenly beings of knowledge whose presence seemed limitless. As we got closer, we noticed their methods, culture, and boundaries; eventually, they gave way to new geniuses. It’s fortunate if a few names remain so prominent that we can’t get closer to them, and time and comparison haven't dimmed their brilliance. Ultimately, we will stop expecting completeness from individuals and will be satisfied with their societal and shared qualities. Everything regarding the individual is temporary and forward-looking, just like the individual who is transcending their limits into a broader existence. We have never truly reaped the benefits of any genius while we consider them purely original forces. When they stop serving as a cause, they begin to help us more as effects. They then emerge as representatives of a greater mind and will. The opaque self becomes clear in the light of the First Cause.

Yet, within the limits of human education and agency, we may say great men exist that there may be greater men. The destiny of organized nature is amelioration, and who can tell its limits? It is for man to tame the chaos; on every side, whilst he lives, to scatter the seeds of science and of song, that climate, corn, animals, men, may be milder, and the germs of love and benefit may be multiplied.

Yet, within the boundaries of human education and action, we can say that great people exist so that even greater people may arise. The purpose of organized nature is improvement, and who can say how far it can go? It's up to humanity to bring order to the chaos; everywhere, while we live, we should spread the seeds of knowledge and creativity, so that the climate, crops, animals, and people may be kinder, and the seeds of love and kindness can grow.

BUDS AND BIRD-VOICES

NATHANIEL HAWTHORNE

BALMY Spring—weeks later than we expected, and months later than we longed for her—comes at last to revive the moss on the roof and walls of our old mansion. She peeps brightly into my study window, inviting me to throw it open and create a summer atmosphere by the intermixture of her genial breath with the black and cheerless comfort of the stove. As the casement ascends, forth into infinite space fly the innumerable forms of thought or fancy that have kept me company in the retirement of this little chamber during the sluggish lapse of wintry weather—visions gay, grotesque and sad, pictures of real life tinted with nature’s homely gray and russet, scenes in dreamland bedizened with rainbow-hues which faded before they were well laid on. All these may vanish now, and leave me to mold a fresh existence out of sunshine. Brooding Meditation may flap her dusky wings and take her owl-like flight, blinking amid the cheerfulness of noontide. Such companions befit the season of frosted window-panes and crackling fires, when the blast howls through the black-ash trees of our avenue, and the drifting snowstorm chokes up the wood paths and fills the highway from stone wall to stone wall. In the spring and summer time all somber thoughts should follow the winter northward with the somber and thoughtful crows. The old paradisiacal economy of life is again in force: we live, not to think nor to labor, but for the simple end of being happy; nothing for the present hour is worthy of man’s infinite capacity save to imbibe the warm smile of heaven and sympathize with the reviving earth.

BALMY Spring—weeks later than we expected, and months later than we longed for her—finally arrives to refresh the moss on the roof and walls of our old house. She shines brightly through my study window, urging me to open it and create a summery vibe by mixing her warm breath with the dull and dreary comfort of the stove. As the window rises, countless thoughts and ideas that kept me company during the slow, cold days of winter escape into the open air—joyful, quirky, and sad visions, real-life scenes tinted with nature’s humble gray and russet, and dreamlike places adorned with rainbow colors that faded before they could properly emerge. All of these can vanish now, allowing me to shape a new existence from sunshine. Deep Reflection may spread her dark wings and take her owl-like flight, blinking in the brightness of noon. Such companions suit the season of frosted windows and crackling fires, when the wind howls through the black-ash trees lining our street and the drifting snow fills the paths and blocks the roads from stone wall to stone wall. In the spring and summer, all gloomy thoughts should follow winter northward with the somber and contemplative crows. The old idyllic way of life is back: we live, not to think or work, but simply to be happy; nothing in the present moment is worthy of humanity's infinite potential except to soak in the warm smile of heaven and connect with the rejuvenating earth.

The present Spring comes onward with fleeter footsteps because Winter lingered so unconscionably long that with her best diligence she can hardly retrieve half the allotted period of her reign. It is but a fortnight since I stood on the brink of our swollen river and beheld the accumulated ice of four frozen months go down the stream. Except in streaks here and there upon the hillsides, the whole visible universe was then covered with deep snow the nethermost layer of which had been deposited by an early December storm. It was a sight to make the beholder torpid, in the impossibility of imagining how this vast white napkin was to be removed from the face of the corpse-like world in less time than had been required to spread it there. But who can estimate the power of gentle influences, whether amid material desolation or the moral winter of man’s heart? There have been no tempestuous rains—even no sultry days—but a constant breath of southern winds, with now a day of kindly sunshine, and now a no less kindly mist, or a soft descent of showers, in which a smile and a blessing seemed to have been steeped. The snow has vanished as if by magic; whatever heaps may be hidden in the woods and deep gorges of the hills, only two solitary specks remain in the landscape, and those I shall almost regret to miss when to-morrow I look for them in vain. Never before, methinks, has spring pressed so closely on the footsteps of retreating winter. Along the roadside the green blades of grass have sprouted on the very edge of the snowdrifts. The pastures and mowing fields have not yet assumed a general aspect of verdure, but neither have they the cheerless brown tint which they wear in later autumn, when vegetation has entirely ceased; there is now a faint shadow of life, gradually brightening into the warm reality. Some tracts in a happy exposure—as, for instance, yonder southwestern slope of an orchard, in front of that old red farmhouse beyond the river—such patches of land already wear a beautiful and tender green to which no future luxuriance can add a charm. It looks unreal—a prophecy, a hope, a transitory effect of some peculiar light, which will vanish with the slightest motion of the eye. But beauty is never a delusion; not these verdant tracts but the dark and barren landscape all around them is a shadow and a dream. Each moment wins some portion of the earth from death to life; a sudden gleam of verdure brightens along the sunny slope of a bank which an instant ago was brown and bare. You look again, and, behold an apparition of green grass!

Spring is moving in quickly this year because Winter stuck around way too long, and even with her best efforts, she can barely reclaim half the time she was supposed to have. It was just two weeks ago that I stood by our overflowing river and watched the ice from four frozen months float away. Aside from some streaks here and there on the hillsides, everything was covered in deep snow, the bottom layer of which was laid down by an early December storm. It was a sight that made you feel numb, impossible to imagine how this vast white blanket would be removed from the lifeless world in less time than it took to cover it. But who can measure the power of gentle influences, whether in the midst of physical desolation or the emotional winter of a person's heart? There have been no wild storms—no hot days—just a steady breeze from the south, alternating between sunny days and soft mists or gentle rains that felt like a smile and a blessing. The snow has disappeared almost magically; whatever piles might still be hidden in the woods and deep hollows of the hills, only two small patches remain in view, and I’ll almost regret watching them fade away tomorrow. I’ve never seen spring come so closely behind retreating winter. Along the roadside, green shoots of grass have started to peek out from the edges of the snowdrifts. The pastures and fields aren’t fully green yet, but they’re not the dull brown they wear in late autumn when all life has stopped; right now, there’s a faint hint of life that’s gradually becoming more vibrant. Some areas in a sunny spot—like that southwestern slope of the orchard in front of the old red farmhouse across the river—are already showing a beautiful and soft green that no future growth can enhance. It feels surreal—a promise, a hope, a fleeting effect of some special light that will disappear with the slightest movement of the eye. But beauty is never an illusion; it’s the dark and barren landscape all around that is the illusion and the dream. Each moment brings some part of the earth back to life; a sudden flash of green brightens up a sunny bank that just an instant ago was brown and bare. You look again, and suddenly, there’s a vision of green grass!

The trees in our orchard and elsewhere are as yet naked, but already appear full of life and vegetable blood. It seems as if by one magic touch they might instantaneously burst into full foliage, and that the wind which now sighs through their naked branches might make sudden music amid innumerable leaves. The moss-grown willow tree which for forty years past has overshadowed these western windows will be among the first to put on its green attire. There are some objections to the willow: it is not a dry and cleanly tree, and impresses the beholder with an association of sliminess. No trees, I think, are perfectly agreeable as companions unless they have glossy leaves, dry bark, and a firm and hard texture of trunk and branches. But the willow is almost the earliest to gladden us with the promise and reality of beauty in its graceful and delicate foliage, and the last to scatter its yellow, yet scarcely-withered, leaves upon the ground. All through the winter, too, its yellow twigs give it a sunny aspect which is not without a cheering influence even in the grayest and gloomiest day. Beneath a clouded sky it faithfully remembers the sunshine. Our old house would lose a charm were the willow to be cut down, with its golden crown over the snow-covered roof, and its heap of summer verdure.

The trees in our orchard and elsewhere are still bare, but they already seem full of life and vitality. It feels like with a single touch, they could instantly burst into full leaves, and that the wind, which now whispers through their bare branches, could suddenly create music among countless leaves. The moss-covered willow tree that has shaded these western windows for the past forty years will be one of the first to don its green leaves. There are some downsides to the willow: it’s not a dry or tidy tree, and it gives the observer an impression of sliminess. I believe no trees are truly pleasant companions unless they have shiny leaves, dry bark, and a sturdy texture in their trunk and branches. But the willow is among the first to bring us the promise and reality of beauty with its graceful and delicate foliage, and it’s the last to drop its yellow, yet barely wilted, leaves onto the ground. Even throughout winter, its yellow twigs provide a bright appearance that brings cheer, even on the grayest and gloomiest days. Under a cloudy sky, it reliably remembers the sunshine. Our old house would lose some of its charm if the willow were cut down, with its golden crown over the snow-covered roof and its abundance of summer greenery.

The lilac shrubs under my study windows are likewise almost in leaf; in two or three days more I may put forth my hand and pluck the topmost bough in its freshest green. These lilacs are very aged, and have lost the luxuriant foliage of their prime. The heart or the judgment or the moral sense or the taste is dissatisfied with their present aspect. Old age is not venerable when it embodies itself in lilacs, rose-bushes, or any other ornamental shrubs; it seems as if such plants, as they grow only for beauty, ought to flourish only in immortal youth—or, at least, to die before their sad decrepitude. Trees of beauty are trees of paradise, and therefore not subject to decay by their original nature, though they have lost that precious birthright by being transplanted to an earthly soil. There is a kind of ludicrous unfitness in the idea of a time-stricken and grandfatherly lilac-bush. The analogy holds good in human life. Persons who can only be graceful and ornamental—who can give the world nothing but flowers—should die young, and never be seen with gray hair and wrinkles, any more than the flower-shrubs with mossy bark and blighted foliage, like the lilacs under my window. Not that beauty is worthy of less than immortality. No; the beautiful should live forever, and thence, perhaps, the sense of impropriety when we see it triumphed over by time. Apple trees, on the other hand, grow old without reproach. Let them live as long as they may, and contort themselves into whatever perversity of shape they please, and deck their withered limbs with a springtime gaudiness of pink-blossoms, still they are respectable, even if they afford us only an apple or two in a season. Those few apples—or, at all events, the remembrance of apples in bygone years—are the atonement which utilitarianism inexorably demands for the privilege of lengthened life. Human flower shrubs, if they will grow old on earth, should, besides their lovely blossoms, bear some kind of fruit that will satisfy earthly appetites, else neither man nor the decorum of nature will deem it fit that the moss should gather on them.

The lilac bushes under my study windows are almost starting to bud; in another couple of days, I could reach out and pick the freshest leaves from the top. These lilacs are quite old and have lost the lush foliage of their heyday. My heart or my judgment or my taste is unhappy with how they look now. Old age isn't admirable when it shows up in lilacs, rose bushes, or any other ornamental shrubs; it feels like these plants, which exist solely for beauty, should thrive only in eternal youth—or at least fade away before reaching their sad decline. Beautiful trees belong in paradise, so they shouldn’t decay by their very nature, even though they’ve lost that precious quality by being planted in earthly soil. There's something almost laughable about a time-worn, grandfatherly lilac bush. This same idea applies to human life. People who are just meant to be graceful and beautiful—who can only give the world flowers—should die young, and shouldn’t have to face gray hair and wrinkles, just like the flower bushes with their mossy bark and wilted leaves, like the lilacs outside my window. It’s not that beauty deserves anything less than immortality. No; the beautiful should live forever, and that's perhaps why we feel a sense of wrongness when we see it overtaken by time. Apple trees, on the other hand, age without shame. Let them live as long as they want, twisting into whatever odd shapes they like, and dressing their withered branches with bright pink blossoms in spring; they remain respectable, even if they only give us an apple or two each season. Those few apples—or at least, the memories of apples from years gone by—are the price that practicality demands for the privilege of a long life. Human flower bushes, if they choose to grow old on earth, should also bear some kind of fruit along with their lovely blooms that can satisfy earthly appetites, or else neither humanity nor the order of nature will think it right for moss to grow on them.

One of the first things that strikes the attention when the white sheet of winter is withdrawn is the neglect and disarray that lay hidden beneath it. Nature is not cleanly, according to our prejudices. The beauty of preceding years, now transformed to brown and blighted deformity, obstructs the brightening loveliness of the present hour. Our avenue is strewn with the whole crop of autumn’s withered leaves. There are quantities of decayed branches which one tempest after another has flung down, black and rotten, and one or two with the ruin of a bird’s nest clinging to them. In the garden are the dried bean-vines, the brown stalks of the asparagus-bed, and melancholy old cabbages which were frozen into the soil before their unthrifty cultivator could find time to gather them. How invariable throughout all the forms of life do we find these intermingled memorials of death! On the soil of thought and in the garden of the heart, as well as in the sensual world, lie withered leaves—the ideas and feelings that we have done with. There is no wind strong enough to sweep them away; infinite space will not garner them from our sight. What mean they? Why may we not be permitted to live and enjoy as if this were the first life and our own the primal enjoyment, instead of treading always on these dry bones and mouldering relics from the aged accumulation of which springs all that now appears so young and new? Sweet must have been the spring-time of Eden, when no earlier year had strewn its decay upon the virgin turf, and no former experience had ripened into summer and faded into autumn in the hearts of its inhabitants! That was a world worth living in.—Oh, thou murmurer, it is out of the very wantonness of such a life that thou feignest these idle lamentations. There is no decay. Each human soul is the first created inhabitant of its own Eden.—We dwell in an old moss-covered mansion and tread in the worn footprints of the past and have a gray clergyman’s ghost for our daily and nightly inmate, yet all these outward circumstances are made less than visionary by the renewing power of the spirit. Should the spirit ever lose this power—should the withered leaves and the rotten branches and the moss-covered house and the ghost of the gray past ever become its realities, and the verdure and the freshness merely its faint dream—then let it pray to be released from earth. It will need the air of heaven to revive its pristine energies.

One of the first things that grabs your attention when the white blanket of winter is lifted is the neglect and mess that were hidden underneath it. Nature isn’t tidy, according to our biases. The beauty of past years is now reduced to brown, ugly remains that block the bright beauty of the present moment. Our street is covered with a whole bunch of autumn's dried leaves. There are plenty of decayed branches that storms have knocked down, black and rotten, and one or two with a ruined bird's nest still clinging to them. In the garden, you see the dried bean vines, the brown stalks of the asparagus, and sad old cabbages that froze into the ground before their careless gardener could get around to picking them. Throughout all forms of life, we find these mixed reminders of death! On the soil of thought and in the garden of the heart, as well as in the physical world, there are withered leaves—the ideas and feelings we’ve moved on from. There’s no wind strong enough to blow them away; endless space won’t remove them from our sight. What do they mean? Why can’t we just live and enjoy as if this were our first life and our own the original joy, instead of always walking on these dry bones and crumbling remnants from the ancient buildup that gives rise to everything that now seems so young and fresh? How sweet must have been the springtime of Eden, when no previous year had spread its decay over the virgin grass, and no past experience had matured into summer and faded into autumn in the hearts of its residents! That was a world worth living in.—Oh, you complainer, it’s out of the very indulgence of such a life that you create these pointless laments. There is no decay. Each human soul is the first created resident of its own Eden.—We live in an old, moss-covered mansion and walk in the worn footsteps of the past, with a gray clergyman's ghost as our daily and nightly companion, yet all these external circumstances are made less significant by the renewing power of the spirit. If the spirit ever loses this power—if the withered leaves and rotten branches and the moss-covered house and the ghost of the past ever become its realities, and the greenery and freshness merely a faint dream—then let it pray to be freed from the earth. It will need the air of heaven to restore its original energy.

What an unlooked for flight was this from our shadowy avenue of black-ash and balm-of-gilead trees into the infinite! Now we have our feet again upon the turf. Nowhere does the grass spring up so industriously as in this homely yard, along the base of the stone wall and in the sheltered nooks of the buildings, and especially around the southern door-step—a locality which seems particularly favorable to its growth, for it is already tall enough to bend over and wave in the wind. I observe that several weeds—and, most frequently, a plant that stains the fingers with its yellow juice—have survived and retained their freshness and sap throughout the winter. One knows not how they have deserved such an exception from the common lot of their race. They are now the patriarchs of the departed year, and may preach mortality to the present generation of flowers and weeds.

What an unexpected journey this is from our dark path of black-ash and balm-of-gilead trees into the vastness! Now we’re back on the grass. Nowhere does the grass grow so vigorously as in this cozy yard, along the stone wall and in the sheltered corners of the buildings, especially around the southern doorstep—a spot that seems particularly good for growing, as it’s already tall enough to bend and sway in the wind. I notice that several weeds—and most often, a plant that stains your fingers with its yellow sap—have survived and kept their freshness and vitality through the winter. It’s unclear how they’ve earned such an exception from the typical fate of their kind. They are now the elders of the past year and could teach the current generation of flowers and weeds a thing or two about mortality.

Among the delights of spring, how is it possible to forget the birds? Even the crows were welcome, as the sable harbingers of a brighter and livelier race. They visited us before the snow was off, but seem mostly to have betaken themselves to remote depths of the woods, which they haunt all summer long. Many a time shall I disturb them there, and feel as if I had intruded among a company of silent worshipers as they sit in Sabbath stillness among the treetops. Their voices, when they speak, are in admirable accordance with the tranquil solitude of a summer afternoon, and, resounding so far above the head, their loud clamor increases the religious quiet of the scene instead of breaking it. A crow, however, has no real pretensions to religion, in spite of his gravity of mien and black attire; he is certainly a thief, and probably an infidel. The gulls are far more respectable, in a moral point of view. These denizens of sea-beaten rocks and haunters of the lonely beach come up our inland river at this season, and soar high overhead, flapping their broad wings in the upper sunshine. They are among the most picturesque of birds, because they so float and rest upon the air as to become almost stationary parts of the landscape. The imagination has time to grow acquainted with them; they have not flitted away in a moment. You go up among the clouds and greet these lofty-flighted gulls, and repose confidently with them upon the sustaining atmosphere. Ducks have their haunts along the solitary places of the river, and alight in flocks upon the broad bosom of the overflowed meadows. Their flight is too rapid and determined for the eye to catch enjoyment from it, although it never fails to stir up the heart with the sportsman’s ineradicable instinct. They have now gone farther northward, but will visit us again in autumn.

Among the joys of spring, how can we forget the birds? Even the crows are welcome, as the dark signs of a brighter and livelier season. They visit us before the snow melts, but mostly they retreat to the deeper woods, where they linger all summer long. Many times I will disturb them there, feeling as though I’ve intruded among a group of silent worshipers sitting in stillness among the treetops. Their voices, when they do speak, perfectly match the calm solitude of a summer afternoon, and their loud calls, echoing high above, enhance the peacefulness of the scene rather than disrupt it. However, a crow doesn’t really have any genuine claim to being religious, despite its serious demeanor and black feathers; it’s definitely a thief, and probably a nonbeliever. The gulls are much more respectable from a moral standpoint. These residents of rocky shores and solitary beaches come up our inland river at this time of year, soaring high overhead, flapping their wide wings in the bright sky. They are some of the most picturesque birds, floating and resting in the air so gracefully that they seem almost like stationary features of the landscape. We have time to really take them in; they don’t just rush by. You can go up among the clouds and meet these high-flying gulls, resting confidently with them upon the supportive atmosphere. Ducks have their favorite spots along the quiet sections of the river, landing in flocks on the vast expanse of flooded meadows. Their flight is too quick and purposeful for the eye to fully enjoy, yet it always stirs up the hunter’s deep-seated instincts. They have now traveled farther north, but will return to us in autumn.

The smaller birds—the little songsters of the woods, and those that haunt man’s dwellings and claim human friendship by building their nests under the sheltering eaves or among the orchard trees—these require a touch more delicate and a gentler heart than mine to do them justice. Their outburst of melody is like a brook let loose from wintry chains. We need not deem it a too high and solemn word to call it a hymn of praise to the Creator, since Nature, who pictures the reviving year in so many sights of beauty, has expressed the sentiment of renewed life in no other sound save the notes of these blessed birds. Their music, however, just now seems to be incidental, and not the result of a set purpose. They are discussing the economy of life and love and the site and architecture of their summer residences, and have no time to sit on a twig and pour forth solemn hymns or overtures, operas, symphonies and waltzes. Anxious questions are asked, grave subjects are settled in quick and animated debate, and only by occasional accident, as from pure ecstasy, does a rich warble roll its tiny waves of golden sound through the atmosphere. Their little bodies are as busy as their voices; they are in a constant flutter and restlessness. Even when two or three retreat to a tree-top to hold council, they wag their tails and heads all the time with the irrepressible activity of their nature, which perhaps renders their brief span of life in reality as long as the patriarchal age of sluggish man. The blackbirds—three species of which consort together—are the noisiest of all our feathered citizens. Great companies of them—more than the famous "four-and-twenty" whom Mother Goose has immortalized—congregate in contiguous tree-tops and vociferate with all the clamor and confusion of a turbulent political meeting. Politics, certainly, must be the occasion of such tumultuous debates, but still, unlike all other politicians, they instill melody into their individual utterances and produce harmony as a general effect. Of all bird-voices, none are more sweet and cheerful to my ear than those of swallows in the dim, sun-streaked interior of a lofty barn; they address the heart with even a closer sympathy than Robin Redbreast. But, indeed, all these winged people that dwell in the vicinity of homesteads seem to partake of human nature and possess the germ, if not the development, of immortal souls. We hear them saying their melodious prayers at morning’s blush and eventide. A little while ago, in the deep of night, there came the lively thrill of a bird’s note from a neighboring tree—a real song such as greets the purple dawn or mingles with the yellow sunshine. What could the little bird mean by pouring it forth at midnight? Probably the music gushed out of the midst of a dream in which he fancied himself in paradise with his mate, but suddenly awoke on a cold, leafless bough with a New England mist penetrating through his feathers. That was a sad exchange of imagination for reality.

The smaller birds—the little singers of the woods, and those that hang around human homes and win our friendship by building their nests under the protective eaves or among the orchard trees—these need a finer touch and a gentler heart than mine to truly appreciate. Their burst of melody is like a brook freed from winter's grip. It’s not too lofty or serious to call it a hymn of praise to the Creator, since Nature, which depicts the renewing year in countless beautiful sights, has expressed the joy of new life in no other sound except for the songs of these cherished birds. Their music, however, right now seems to be incidental, not something they’re doing with a clear purpose. They’re chatting about the essentials of life and love, the location and design of their summer homes, and don’t have time to perch on a twig and sing solemn hymns or overtures, operas, symphonies, and waltzes. They’re asking anxious questions, tackling serious topics in lively, animated discussions, and only occasionally, in moments of pure joy, does a rich trill send tiny waves of golden sound through the air. Their little bodies are as busy as their voices; they are always fluttering and restless. Even when two or three retreat to the top of a tree to hold a meeting, they are wagging their tails and heads the whole time, reflecting their uncontainable nature, which perhaps makes their short lives feel as long as the slow-paced lives of old men. The blackbirds—three types that hang out together—are the loudest of all our feathered residents. Huge flocks of them—more than the famous "four-and-twenty" that Mother Goose made famous—gather in nearby tree-tops and squawk with all the noise and chaos of a heated political meeting. Politics must certainly be the reason for such raucous debates, but unlike all other politicians, they add melody to their individual calls and create harmony as a whole. Of all the birds' voices, none sound sweeter and brighter to me than the swallows in the dim, sunlit interior of a tall barn; they connect with the heart even more closely than the Robin Redbreast does. In fact, all these winged creatures that live near human homes seem to share something of human nature and have the spark, if not the full potential, of immortal souls. We hear them offering their melodious prayers at dawn and dusk. Not long ago, in the deep of night, a lively bird’s note from a nearby tree broke the silence—a real song like those that greet the purple dawn or mix with the golden sunshine. What could the little bird mean by singing at midnight? Probably the music flowed out of a dream where he imagined he was in paradise with his mate but suddenly woke up on a cold, leafless branch while a New England mist seeped through his feathers. That was a heartbreaking swap of imagination for reality.

Insects are among the earliest births of spring. Multitudes, of I know not what species, appeared long ago on the surface of the snow. Clouds of them almost too minute for sight hover in a beam of sunshine, and vanish as if annihilated when they pass into the shade. A mosquito has already been heard to sound the small horror of his bugle-horn. Wasps infest the sunny windows of the house. A bee entered one of the chambers with a prophecy of flowers. Rare butterflies came before the snow was off, flaunting in the chill breeze, and looking forlorn and all astray in spite of the magnificence of their dark velvet cloaks with golden borders.

Insects are among the first signs of spring. A swarm, I can't identify by species, appeared a while ago on the surface of the snow. Tiny clouds of them, almost too small to see, float in a beam of sunshine and disappear as if they’ve been wiped out when they move into the shade. A mosquito has already been heard buzzing its annoying little tune. Wasps are swarming around the sunny windows of the house. A bee entered one of the rooms, bringing a hint of flowers. Rare butterflies showed up before the snow melted, fluttering in the chilly breeze, looking lost and out of place despite the beauty of their dark velvet wings with golden edges.

The fields and wood-paths have as yet few charms to entice the wanderer. In a walk the other day I found no violets nor anemones, nor anything in the likeness of a flower. It was worth while, however, to ascend our opposite hill for the sake of gaining a general idea of the advance of spring, which I had hitherto been studying in its minute developments. The river lay round me in a semi-circle, overflowing all the meadows which give it its Indian name, and offering a noble breadth to sparkle in the sunbeams. Along the hither shore a row of trees stood up to their knees in water, and afar off, on the surface of the stream, tufts of bushes thrust up their heads, as it were, to breathe. The most striking objects were great solitary trees here and there with a mile-wide waste of water all around them. The curtailment of the trunk by its immersion in the river quite destroys the fair proportions of the tree, and thus makes us sensible of a regularity and propriety in the usual forms of nature. The flood of the present season, though it never amounts to a freshet on our quiet stream, has encroached farther upon the land than any previous one for at least a score of years. It has overflowed stone fences, and even rendered a portion of the highway navigable for boats. The waters, however, are now gradually subsiding; islands become annexed to the mainland, and other islands emerge like new creations from the watery waste. The scene supplies an admirable image of the receding of the Nile—except that there is no deposit of black slime—or of Noah’s flood, only that there is a freshness and novelty in these recovered portions of the continent which give the impression of a world just made rather than of one so polluted that a deluge had been requisite to purify it. These upspringing islands are the greenest spots in the landscape; the first gleam of sunlight suffices to cover them with verdure.

The fields and woodland paths have very few attractions to draw in a wanderer right now. During a walk the other day, I didn’t find any violets or anemones, or anything resembling a flower. Still, it was worth the climb up the opposite hill to get a general sense of how spring is progressing, which I had been noticing through its small changes. The river surrounded me in a semi-circle, flooding all the meadows that give it its Indian name and creating a broad expanse that sparkled in the sunlight. On this side of the river, a line of trees stood with their bases submerged in water, while in the distance, clumps of bushes poked their tops above the surface, as if to take a breath. The most striking sights were the large solitary trees scattered around, each with a wide expanse of water surrounding them. The way the tree trunks are partially immersed in the river distorts their usual proportions, highlighting the regularity and beauty of nature’s typical forms. This season’s flood, while not reaching the level of a fresh overflow on our quiet stream, has encroached further onto the land than any in the last twenty years. It has overflowed stone fences and even made parts of the road passable by boat. However, the waters are now gradually receding; islands are rejoining the mainland, and new islands are rising like fresh creations from the watery expanse. The scene provides a perfect image of the Nile receding—except without any black silt—or of Noah’s flood, but these reappearing lands feel fresh and new, as if a world has just been created rather than one that was so dirty that a flood was needed to cleanse it. These newly formed islands are the greenest spots in the landscape; even the first hint of sunlight is enough to cover them in greenery.

Thank Providence for spring! The earth—and man himself, by sympathy with his birthplace—would be far other than we find them if life toiled wearily onward without this periodical infusion of the primal spirit. Will the world ever be so decayed that spring may not renew its greenness? Can man be so dismally age-stricken that no faintest sunshine of his youth may revisit him once a year? It is impossible. The moss on our time-worn mansion brightens into beauty, the good old pastor who once dwelt here renewed his prime, regained his boyhood, in the genial breezes of his ninetieth spring. Alas for the worn and heavy soul if, whether in youth or age, it have outlived its privilege of springtime sprightliness! From such a soul the world must hope no reformation of its evil—no sympathy with the lofty faith and gallant struggles of those who contend in its behalf. Summer works in the present and thinks not of the future; autumn is a rich conservative; winter has utterly lost its faith, and clings tremulously to the remembrance of what has been; but spring, with its outgushing life, is the true type of the movement.

Thank goodness for spring! The earth—and people, who are connected to their home—would be so different if life didn’t get this regular boost of fresh energy. Will the world ever be so worn down that spring can’t bring back its greenery? Can someone be so weighed down by age that no faint reminder of their youthful days comes back to them each year? That’s impossible. The moss on our old house brightens into beauty, and the kind old pastor who lived here was rejuvenated, regaining his youth in the warm breezes of his ninetieth spring. It’s sad for the tired and heavy-hearted if, whether young or old, they can’t enjoy the joy of springtime anymore! From such a person, the world has no hope for a change for the better—no connection to the high hopes and brave efforts of those fighting for it. Summer focuses on the now and doesn’t consider the future; autumn is a rich caretaker; winter has completely lost its hope and holds nervously to memories of what used to be; but spring, with its bursting life, truly represents movement.

THE PHILOSOPHY OF COMPOSITION

EDGAR ALLAN POE

CHARLES DICKENS, in a note now lying before me, alluding to an examination I once made of the mechanism of Barnaby Rudge, says—"By the way, are you aware that Godwin wrote his Caleb Williams backwards? He first involved his hero in a web of difficulties, forming the second volume, and then, for the first, cast about him for some mode of accounting for what had been done."

CHARLES DICKENS, in a note that’s in front of me, referring to an analysis I did of the structure of Barnaby Rudge, mentions—"By the way, did you know that Godwin wrote his Caleb Williams in reverse? He initially put his hero in a complicated situation, creating the second volume, and then, for the first, looked for a way to explain what had happened."

I cannot think this the precise mode of procedure on the part of Godwin—and indeed what he himself acknowledges, is not altogether in accordance with Mr. Dickens’ idea—but the author of Caleb Williams was too good an artist not to perceive the advantage derivable from at least a somewhat similar process. Nothing is more clear than that every plot, worth the name, must be elaborated to its dénouement before anything be attempted with the pen. It is only with the dénouement constantly in view that we can give a plot its indispensable air of consequence, or causation, by making the incidents, and especially the tone at all points, tend to the development of the intention.

I don't think this is the exact way for Godwin to proceed—and what he himself admits doesn’t completely align with Mr. Dickens' perspective—but the author of Caleb Williams was too skilled an artist not to recognize the benefits of at least a somewhat similar approach. It's clear that every plot worth mentioning has to be worked out to its dénouement before any writing begins. Only with the dénouement always in mind can we give a plot its essential sense of importance or causation, by ensuring that the incidents, and especially the tone at every point, contribute to the development of the intention.

There is a radical error, I think, in the usual mode of constructing a story. Either history affords a thesis—or one is suggested by an incident of the day—or, at best, the author sets himself to work in the combination of striking events to form merely the basis of his narrative—designing, generally, to fill in with description, dialogue, or autorial comment, whatever crevices of fact, or action, may, from page to page, render themselves apparent.

There’s a major mistake, I believe, in the typical way of writing a story. Either history provides a main idea—or one is prompted by a current event—or, at best, the author tries to piece together exciting events to create the foundation of the narrative—usually planning to fill in the gaps with descriptions, dialogue, or personal commentary, based on whatever bits of information or action appear from page to page.

I prefer commencing with the consideration of an effect. Keeping originality always in view—for he is false to himself who ventures to dispense with so obvious and so easily attainable a source of interest—I say to myself, in the first place, "Of the innumerable effects, or impressions, of which the heart, the intellect, or (more generally) the soul is susceptible, what one shall I, on the present occasion, select?" Having chosen a novel, first, and secondly a vivid effect, I consider whether it can be best wrought by incident or tone—whether by ordinary incidents and peculiar tone, or the converse, or by peculiarity both of incident and tone—afterward looking about me (or rather within) for such combinations of event, or tone, as shall best aid me in the construction of the effect.

I prefer to start by thinking about an effect. Always keeping originality in mind—because anyone who tries to ignore such a clear and easily attainable source of interest is not being true to themselves—I ask myself, first, “Out of the countless effects or impressions that the heart, mind, or more broadly, the soul can experience, which one should I choose for this occasion?” After deciding on a novel and then a strong effect, I consider whether it’s best achieved through incident or mood—whether through ordinary events and a unique tone, the other way around, or by having both the incident and tone be unusual—then I look around me (or rather inside myself) for the combinations of events or tone that will best help me create that effect.

I have often thought how interesting a magazine paper might be written by any author who would—that is to say, who could—detail, step by step, the processes by which any one of his compositions attained its ultimate point of completion. Why such a paper has never been given to the world, I am much at a loss to say—but, perhaps, the autorial vanity has had more to do with the omission than any one other cause. Most writers—poets in especial—prefer having it understood that they compose by a species of fine frenzy—an ecstatic intuition—and would positively shudder at letting the public take a peep behind the scenes, at the elaborate and vacillating crudities of thought—at the true purposes seized only at the last moment—at the innumerable glimpses of idea that arrived not at the maturity of full view—at the fully matured fancies discarded in despair as unmanageable—at the cautious selections and rejections—at the painful erasures and interpolations—in a word, at the wheels and pinions—the tackle for scene-shifting—the step-ladders and demon-traps—the cock’s feathers, the red paint and the black patches, which, in ninety-nine cases out of the hundred, constitute the properties of the literary histrio.

I've often thought about how interesting it would be to read an article by any author that explains, step by step, how one of their works reached its final version. I’m not sure why such an article hasn’t been published, but maybe it’s mostly due to the pride of authors. Most writers—especially poets—prefer that people believe they create in a kind of frenzied inspiration—an ecstatic intuition—and would be horrified to let the public see behind the curtain, revealing the messy and changing thoughts, the true intentions that only became clear at the last minute, the countless ideas that never fully developed, the well-crafted concepts discarded out of frustration, the careful choices and rejections, the painful edits and additions—in short, the gears and mechanisms, the tools for changing scenes, the ladders and traps, the feathers, the red paint, and the black patches, which, in ninety-nine out of a hundred cases, make up the props of the literary actor.

I am aware, on the other hand, that the case is by no means common, in which an author is at all in condition to retrace the steps by which his conclusions have been attained. In general, suggestions, having arisen pell-mell, are pursued and forgotten in a similar manner.

I realize, however, that it’s not common for an author to go back and retrace the steps that led to their conclusions. Usually, ideas come up in a rush, and they are followed and then forgotten just as quickly.

For my own part, I have neither sympathy with the repugnance alluded to, nor, at any time, the least difficulty in recalling to mind the progressive steps of any of my compositions; and, since the interest of an analysis, or reconstruction, such as I have considered a desideratum, is quite independent of any real or fancied interest in the thing analyzed, it will not be regarded as a breach of decorum on my part to show the modus operandi by which some one of my own works was put together. I select "The Raven," as the most generally known. It is my design to render it manifest that no one point in its composition is referable either to accident or intuition—that the work proceeded, step by step, to its completion with the precision and rigid consequence of a mathematical problem.

For my part, I don’t share the dislike mentioned, nor have I ever had any trouble remembering the stages of my creations. Since the value of an analysis or reconstruction, which I see as important, is completely independent of any genuine or imagined interest in the thing being analyzed, I don’t think it will be seen as inappropriate for me to demonstrate the way I put together one of my own works. I’ll choose "The Raven," since it’s the most widely recognized. My aim is to make it clear that no part of its creation is due to chance or instinct—that the work came together, step by step, with the accuracy and strict consistency of a math problem.

Let us dismiss, as irrelevant to the poem, per se, the circumstance—or say the necessity—which, in the first place, gave rise to the intention of composing a poem that should suit at once the popular and the critical taste.

Let’s set aside, as irrelevant to the poem itself, the situation—or let’s call it the need—that led to the intention of writing a poem that would appeal to both the general public and critics.

We commence, then, with this intention.

We begin with this intention.

The initial consideration was that of extent. If any literary work is too long to be read at one sitting, we must be content to dispense with the immensely important effect derivable from unity of impression—for, if two sittings be required, the affairs of the world interfere, and everything like totality is at once destroyed. But since, ceteris paribus, no poet can afford to dispense with anything that may advance his design, it but remains to be seen whether there is, in extent, any advantage to counterbalance the loss of unity which attends it. Here I say no, at once. What we term a long poem is, in fact, merely a succession of brief ones—that is to say, of brief poetical effects. It is needless to demonstrate that a poem is such, only inasmuch as it intensely excites, by elevating, the soul; and all intense excitements are, through a psychal necessity, brief. For this reason, at least one-half of the Paradise Lost is essentially prose—a succession of poetical excitements interspersed, inevitably, with corresponding depressions—the whole being deprived, through the extremeness of its length, of the vastly important artistic element, totality, or unity, of effect.

The first thing to consider is length. If a literary work is too long to read in one go, we have to accept that we miss out on the crucial impact that comes from a single impression—because if it takes two sessions, the distractions of the world come in, and any sense of wholeness is lost. However, since, ceteris paribus, no poet can afford to overlook anything that might promote his vision, we need to figure out if there's any benefit to length that makes up for the unity we lose because of it. Here, I say no, right away. What we call a long poem is really just a series of short ones—meaning brief poetic effects. It’s unnecessary to prove that a poem only qualifies as such if it deeply stirs and uplifts the soul; and all deep excitements are, by their very nature, short. For this reason, at least half of Paradise Lost is essentially prose—a series of poetic excitements mixed, inevitably, with corresponding lows—the whole piece suffers, due to its excessive length, from the extremely important artistic element of totality, or unity, of effect.

It appears evident, then, that there is a distinct limit, as regards length, to all works of literary art—the limit of a single sitting—and that, although in certain classes of prose composition, such as Robinson Crusoe, (demanding no unity,) this limit may be advantageously overpassed, it can never properly be overpassed in a poem. Within this limit, the extent of a poem may be made to bear mathematical relation to its merit—in other words, to the excitement or elevation—again in other words, to the degree of the true poetical effect which it is capable of inducing; for it is clear that the brevity must be in direct ratio of the intensity of the intended effect:—this, with one proviso—that a certain degree of duration is absolutely requisite for the production of any effect at all.

It’s clear, then, that there’s a specific limit on the length of all literary works—the limit of a single sitting—and that, while certain types of prose, like Robinson Crusoe, which don't require unity, can successfully exceed this limit, a poem can never truly go beyond it. Within this limit, a poem's length can be mathematically related to its quality—in other words, to the excitement or elevation—or, in simpler terms, to the degree of genuine poetic effect it can create; because it’s obvious that the shorter the poem, the more intense the desired effect must be: with one exception—that some minimum duration is absolutely necessary for any effect to occur at all.

Holding in view these considerations, as well as that degree of excitement which I deemed not above the popular, while not below the critical, taste, I reached at once what I conceived the proper length for my intended poem—a length of about one hundred lines. It is, in fact, a hundred and eight.

Considering these factors, along with the level of excitement that I believed would appeal to both the general public and critical audiences, I immediately decided on the right length for my planned poem—around one hundred lines. It actually comes to a hundred and eight.

My next thought concerned the choice of an impression, or effect, to be conveyed: and here I may as well observe that, throughout the construction, I kept steadily in view the design of rendering the work universally appreciable. I should be carried too far out of my immediate topic were I to demonstrate a point upon which I have repeatedly insisted, and which, with the poetical, stands not in the slightest need of demonstration—the point, I mean, that Beauty is the sole legitimate province of the poem. A few words, however, in elucidation of my real meaning, which some of my friends have evinced a disposition to misrepresent. That pleasure which is at once the most intense, the most elevating, and the most pure, is, I believe, found in the contemplation of the beautiful. When, indeed, men speak of Beauty, they mean, precisely, not a quality, as is supposed, but an effect—they refer, in short, just to that intense and pure elevation of soulnot of intellect, or of heart—upon which I have commented, and which is experienced in consequence of contemplating "the beautiful." Now I designate Beauty as the province of the poem, merely because it is an obvious rule of Art that effects should be made to spring from direct causes—that objects should be attained through means best adapted for their attainment—no one as yet having been weak enough to deny that the peculiar elevation alluded to is most readily attained in the poem. Now the object, Truth, or the satisfaction of the intellect, and the object Passion, or the excitement of the heart, are, although attainable, to a certain extent, in poetry, far more readily attainable in prose. Truth, in fact, demands a precision, and Passion, a homeliness (the truly passionate will comprehend me) which are absolutely antagonistic to that Beauty which, I maintain, is the excitement, or pleasurable elevation, of the soul. It by no means follows from anything here said, that passion, or even truth, may not be introduced, and even profitably introduced, into a poem—for they may serve in elucidation, or aid the general effect, as do discords in music, by contrast—but the true artist will always contrive, first, to tone them into proper subservience to the predominant aim, and, secondly, to enveil them, as far as possible, in that Beauty which is the atmosphere and the essence of the poem.

My next thought was about the impression or effect I wanted to convey: and here I should point out that, throughout the process, I aimed to make the work universally appreciated. It would take me too far from my main topic to demonstrate a point I've repeatedly made, which, along with the poetic, doesn’t need any demonstration—specifically, that Beauty is the only legitimate focus of the poem. However, a few words are necessary to clarify my true meaning, as some friends have shown a tendency to misinterpret it. The pleasure that is not only the most intense but also the most uplifting and the purest, I believe, comes from contemplating the beautiful. When people talk about Beauty, they aren’t referring to a quality, as is often assumed, but rather an effect—they are referring to that intense and pure elevation of soulnot of intellect or heart— that results from experiencing “the beautiful.” I label Beauty as the focus of the poem simply because it’s a basic rule of Art that effects should come from direct causes—that goals should be achieved through the best means possible—no one has been foolish enough to argue that the particular elevation mentioned is most readily achieved in poetry. On the other hand, the goal of Truth, or the satisfaction of intellect, and the goal of Passion, or the stirring of the heart, are, while achievable in poetry to some extent, much more easily attained in prose. Truth demands precision, and Passion requires a homeliness (those who are truly passionate will understand me) that are completely opposed to that Beauty which I claim is the excitement or pleasurable elevation of the soul. This doesn’t mean, however, that passion, or even truth, cannot be included, and even beneficially included, in a poem—since they can provide clarification or support the overall effect, like discords in music through contrast—but the true artist will always manage, first, to make them properly subordinate to the main goal, and, second, to wrap them up as much as possible in that Beauty which is the essence and atmosphere of the poem.

Regarding, then, Beauty as my province, my next question referred to the tone of its highest manifestation—and all experience has shown that this tone is one of sadness. Beauty of whatever kind, in its supreme development, invariably excites the sensitive soul to tears. Melancholy is thus the most legitimate of all the poetical tones.

As for Beauty being my focus, my next question was about the tone of its greatest expression—and all experience has shown that this tone is one of sadness. Beauty, in any form, when fully realized, consistently moves the sensitive soul to tears. Melancholy is, therefore, the most genuine of all poetic tones.

The length, the province, and the tone, being thus determined, I betook myself to ordinary induction, with the view of obtaining some artistic piquancy which might serve me as a key-note in the construction of the poem—some pivot upon which the whole structure might turn. In carefully thinking over all the usual artistic effects—or more properly points, in the theatrical sense—I did not fail to perceive immediately that no one had been so universally employed as that of the refrain. The universality of its employment sufficed to assure me of its intrinsic value, and spared me the necessity of submitting it to analysis. I considered it, however, with regard to its susceptibility of improvement, and soon saw it to be in a primitive condition. As commonly used, the refrain, or burden, not only is limited to lyric verse, but depends for its impression upon the force of monotone—both in sound and thought. The pleasure is deduced solely from the sense of identity—of repetition. I resolved to diversify, and so vastly heighten, the effect, by adhering, in general, to the monotone of sound, while I continually varied that of thought: that is to say, I determined to produce continuously novel effects, by the variation of the application of the refrain—the refrain itself remaining, for the most part, unvaried.

The length, the theme, and the tone being set, I turned to ordinary reasoning to find some artistic spark that could serve as a key element in crafting the poem—something that the whole piece could revolve around. After carefully considering all the typical artistic effects—or more accurately, points, in a theatrical sense—I quickly realized that no element had been used as widely as the refrain. Its widespread use assured me of its inherent value and made any further analysis unnecessary. However, I contemplated its potential for improvement and soon recognized it was in a basic state. Typically, the refrain, or chorus, is limited to lyrical poetry and relies on the power of monotone—both in sound and meaning. The enjoyment comes solely from the sense of sameness—of repetition. I decided to diversify and significantly enhance the effect by generally sticking to a monotone sound while continually varying the thoughts: in other words, I aimed to create continuously fresh effects by changing the application of the refrain—with the refrain itself remaining mostly unchanged.

These points being settled, I next bethought me of the nature of my refrain. Since its application was to be repeatedly varied, it was clear that the refrain itself must be brief, for there would have been an insurmountable difficulty in frequent variations of application in any sentence of length. In proportion to the brevity of the sentence, would, of course, be the facility of the variation. This led me at once to a single word as the best refrain.

With these points settled, I next thought about the nature of my refrain. Since its application was going to change frequently, it was obvious that the refrain itself needed to be short; otherwise, there would be an overwhelming challenge in making frequent variations with any longer phrases. The shorter the sentence, the easier it would be to vary it. This immediately brought me to the conclusion that a single word would be the best refrain.

The question now arose as to the character of the word. Having made up my mind to a refrain, the division of the poem into stanzas was, of course, a corollary: the refrain forming the close to each stanza. That such a close, to have force, must be sonorous and susceptible of protracted emphasis, admitted no doubt: and these considerations inevitably led me to the long o as the most sonorous vowel, in connection with r as the most producible consonant.

The question now came up about the character of the word. After deciding on a refrain, dividing the poem into stanzas was a natural next step: the refrain would cap each stanza. It was clear that for such a close to have impact, it needed to be resonant and able to be emphasized for a while. These thoughts led me to choose the long o as the most resonant vowel, combined with r as the easiest consonant to produce.

The sound of the refrain being thus determined, it became necessary to select a word embodying this sound, and at the same time in the fullest possible keeping with that melancholy which I had predetermined as the tone of the poem. In such a search it would have been absolutely impossible to overlook the word "Nevermore." In fact, it was the very first which presented itself.

The sound of the refrain being set, it became essential to choose a word that captured this sound while also reflecting the sadness I had decided would be the tone of the poem. In this search, it would have been completely impossible to miss the word "Nevermore." In fact, it was the very first one that came to mind.

The next desideratum was a pretext for the continuous use of the one word "nevermore." In observing the difficulty which I at once found in inventing a sufficiently plausible reason for its continuous repetition, I did not fail to perceive that this difficulty arose solely from the pre-assumption that the word was to be so continuously or monotonously spoken by a human being—I did not fail to perceive, in short, that the difficulty lay in the reconciliation of this monotony with the exercise of reason on the part of the creature repeating the word. Here, then, immediately arose the idea of a non-reasoning creature capable of speech; and, very naturally, a parrot, in the first instance, suggested itself, but was superseded forthwith by a Raven, as equally capable of speech, and infinitely more in keeping with the intended tone.

The next desideratum was a reason to keep using the word "nevermore." As I noticed the challenge I faced in coming up with a believable reason for its constant repetition, I realized that this challenge stemmed entirely from the assumption that the word had to be continuously or monotonously spoken by a human being—essentially, I recognized that the issue was reconciling this monotony with the reasoning ability of the creature saying the word. This led me to the idea of a non-reasoning creature that could still talk; naturally, a parrot came to mind first, but then I quickly thought of a Raven, which could speak just as well and was much more fitting for the intended tone.

I had now gone so far as the conception of a Raven—the bird of ill omen—monotonously repeating the one word, "Nevermore," at the conclusion of each stanza, in a poem of melancholy tone, and in length about one hundred lines. Now, never losing sight of the object supremeness, or perfection, at all points, I asked myself—"Of all melancholy topics, what, according to the universal understanding of mankind, is the most melancholy?" Death—was the obvious reply. "And when," I said, "is this most melancholy of topics most poetical?" From what I have already explained at some length, the answer, here also, is obvious—"When it most closely allies itself to Beauty: the death, then, of a beautiful woman is, unquestionably, the most poetical topic in the world—and equally is it beyond doubt that the lips best suited for such topic are those of a bereaved lover."

I had gotten as far as the idea of a Raven—the bird of bad luck— monotonously repeating the one word, "Nevermore," at the end of each stanza in a poem with a sad tone, about a hundred lines long. I kept focused on the goal of achieving excellence and perfection in every aspect, and I asked myself, "Of all the sad topics, what is considered the saddest by everyone?" The answer was obvious: Death. "And when," I said, "is this saddest topic also the most poetic?" From what I've already explained in detail, the answer is clear—"When it is most closely connected to Beauty: the death of a beautiful woman is, without a doubt, the most poetic subject in the world—and it’s equally clear that the lips best suited to speak on this subject are those of a grieving lover."

I had now to combine the two ideas, of a lover lamenting his deceased mistress and a Raven continuously repeating the word "Nevermore"—I had to combine these, bearing in mind my design of varying, at every turn, the application of the word repeated; but the only intelligible mode of such combination is that of imagining the Raven employing the word in answer to the queries of the lover. And here it was that I saw at once the opportunity afforded for the effect on which I had been depending—that is to say, the effect of the variation of application. I saw that I could make the first query propounded by the lover—the first query to which the Raven should reply "Nevermore"—that I could make this first query a commonplace one—the second less so—the third still less, and so on—until at length the lover, startled from his original nonchalance by the melancholy character of the word itself—by its frequent repetition—and by a consideration of the ominous reputation of the fowl that uttered it—is at length excited to superstition, and wildly propounds queries of a far different character—queries whose solution he has passionately at heart—propounds them half in superstition and half in that species of despair which delights, in self-torture—propounds them not altogether because he believes in the prophetic or demoniac character of the bird (which, reason assures him, is merely repeating a lesson learned by rote) but because he experiences a frenzied pleasure in so modeling his questions as to receive from the expected "Nevermore" the most delicious because the most intolerable of sorrow. Perceiving the opportunity thus afforded me—or, more strictly, thus forced upon me in the progress of the construction—I first established in mind the climax, or concluding query—that to which "Nevermore" should be in the last place an answer—that in reply to which this word "Nevermore" should involve the utmost conceivable amount of sorrow and despair.

I now had to combine two ideas: a lover mourning his lost mistress and a Raven that keeps repeating "Nevermore." I needed to do this while keeping in mind my goal of varying the context each time the word was repeated. The only clear way to combine them was to imagine the Raven responding to the lover's questions. This was where I realized I had the opportunity to create the effect I had been aiming for—the effect of varying the context of the word's application. I saw that I could make the first question asked by the lover—a question to which the Raven would reply "Nevermore"—a simple one; the second question would be less common, the third even less so, and so on, until finally the lover, shaken from his initial indifference by the sad tone of the word itself, its frequent repetition, and the foreboding reputation of the bird saying it, would become superstitious and start asking wildly different questions—questions he desperately wanted the answers to—asking them partly out of superstition and partly from a kind of despair that relishes self-torment. He would ask not just because he thinks the bird might have prophetic or demonic powers (which reason tells him is just repeating something learned by rote), but because he finds a twisted pleasure in crafting his questions to receive the most exquisite, yet unbearable sorrow from the expected "Nevermore." Recognizing this opportunity presented to me—or, more accurately, forced upon me as I developed the story—I first mapped out the climax, or final question—that which "Nevermore" would ultimately answer. This question would be one to which the word "Nevermore" would convey the greatest imaginable sorrow and despair.

Here then the poem may be said to have its beginning—at the end, where all works of art should begin—for it was here, at this point of my preconsiderations, that I first put pen to paper in the composition of the stanza:

Here then the poem can be said to start—at the end, where all works of art should begin—because it was at this moment in my initial thoughts that I first put pen to paper to create the stanza:

"'Prophet,' I said, 'you bring evil! You're still a prophet, whether you’re a bird or a devil!
By that heaven above us—by that God we both worship,
Tell this sorrowful soul, if in the distant Aidenn,
It will embrace a holy maiden whom the angels call Lenore—
Hold onto a rare and beautiful woman whom the angels call Lenore.'
"Nevermore," said the raven.

I composed this stanza, at this point, first that, by establishing the climax, I might the better vary and graduate, as regards seriousness and importance, the preceding queries of the lover—and, secondly, that I might definitely settle the rhythm, the meter, and the length and general arrangement of the stanza—as well as graduate the stanzas which were to precede, so that none of them might surpass this in rhythmical effect. Had I been able, in the subsequent composition, to construct more vigorous stanzas, I should, without scruple, have purposely enfeebled them, so as not to interfere with the climacteric effect.

I wrote this stanza to create a climax that would better vary and elevate the seriousness and importance of the lover's previous questions. Also, I wanted to clearly set the rhythm, meter, length, and overall arrangement of the stanza, as well as adjust the stanzas that would come before it, ensuring none of them would have a greater rhythmic impact. If I could have crafted more powerful stanzas later on, I would have intentionally weakened them to not disrupt the climactic effect.

And here I may as well say a few words of the versification. My first object (as usual) was originality. The extent to which this has been neglected, in versification, is one of the most unaccountable things in the world. Admitting that there is little possibility of variety in mere rhythm, it is still clear that the possible varieties of meter and stanza are absolutely infinite—and yet, for centuries, no man, in verse, has ever done, or ever seemed to think of doing, an original thing. The fact is, originality (unless in minds of very unusual force) is by no means a matter, as some suppose, of impulse or intuition. In general, to be found, it must be elaborately sought, and although a positive merit of the highest class, demands in its attainment less of invention than negation.

And here I might as well say a few words about the way the verses are constructed. My main goal (as usual) was originality. The level to which this has been overlooked in poetry is one of the most baffling things ever. While it’s true that there’s not much room for variety in just the rhythm, it’s still clear that the possible variations in meter and stanza are absolutely endless—and yet, for centuries, no one in poetry has ever done or seemed to think of doing anything original. The reality is, originality (unless in minds with very exceptional ability) is not purely a matter of instinct or intuition, as some think. Usually, to be found, it must be carefully searched for, and while it is undoubtedly a high form of merit, achieving it requires more negation than invention.

Of course, I pretend to no originality in either the rhythm or meter of the "Raven." The former is trochaic—the latter is octameter acatalectic, alternating with heptameter catalectic repeated in the refrain of the fifth verse, and terminating with tetrameter catalectic. Less pedantically—the feet employed throughout (trochees) consist of a long syllable followed by a short: the first line of the stanza consists of eight of these feet—the second of seven and a half (in effect two-thirds)—the third of eight—the fourth of seven and a half—the fifth the same—the sixth three and a half. Now, each of these lines, taken individually, has been employed before, and what originality the "Raven" has, is in their combination into stanza; nothing even remotely approaching this combination has ever been attempted. The effect of this originality of combination is aided by other unusual, and some altogether novel effects, arising from an extension of the application of the principles of rhyme and alliteration.

Of course, I don't claim any originality in the rhythm or meter of the "Raven." The rhythm is trochaic, and the meter is octameter acatalectic, alternating with heptameter catalectic that repeats in the refrain of the fifth verse, ending with tetrameter catalectic. To put it less pedantically, the feet used throughout (trochees) consist of a long syllable followed by a short one: the first line of the stanza has eight of these feet, the second has seven and a half (effectively two-thirds), the third has eight, the fourth has seven and a half, the fifth is the same, and the sixth has three and a half. Each of these lines, taken individually, has been used before, and the uniqueness of the "Raven" lies in their combination into stanza; nothing even close to this combination has ever been attempted. The impact of this unique combination is enhanced by other unusual, and some completely new, effects that come from applying the principles of rhyme and alliteration in innovative ways.

The next point to be considered was the mode of bringing together the lover and the Raven—and the first branch of this consideration was the locale. For this the most natural suggestion might seem to be a forest, or the fields—but it has always appeared to me that a close circumscription of space is absolutely necessary to the effect of insulated incident:—it has the force of a frame to a picture. It has an indisputable moral power in keeping concentrated the attention, and, of course, must not be confounded with mere unity of place.

The next thing to think about was how to bring the lover and the Raven together—and the first aspect of this consideration was the locale. While it might seem obvious to choose a forest or the fields, I’ve always felt that a tight circumscription of space is essential for the impact of isolated events: it acts like a frame for a picture. It has a clear moral power in maintaining focused attention, and it shouldn't be confused with just having a single location.

I determined, then, to place the lover in his chamber—in a chamber rendered sacred to him by memories of her who had frequented it. The room is represented as richly furnished—this in mere pursuance of the ideas I have already explained on the subject of Beauty, as the sole true poetical thesis.

I decided to put the lover in his room—a room made special by memories of her who used to be there. The room is shown to be beautifully furnished—this is just in line with the ideas I've already shared about Beauty, which is the only true poetic theme.

The locale being thus determined, I had now to introduce the bird—and the thought of introducing him through the window, was inevitable. The idea of making the lover suppose, in the first instance, that the flapping of the wings of the bird against the shutter, is a "tapping" at the door, originated in a wish to increase, by prolonging, the reader’s curiosity, and in a desire to admit the incidental effect arising from the lover’s throwing open the door, finding all dark, and thence adopting the half-fancy that it was the spirit of his mistress that knocked.

The locale being set, I now had to bring in the bird—and it felt natural to introduce him through the window. The idea of making the lover think, at first, that the sound of the bird's wings flapping against the shutter was a "tapping" at the door came from a desire to build up the reader’s curiosity and to highlight the moment when the lover throws open the door, finds everything dark, and then entertains the half-formed idea that it was his mistress's spirit knocking.

I made the night tempestuous, first, to account for the Raven’s seeking admission, and secondly, for the effect of contrast with the (physical) serenity within the chamber.

I made the night stormy, primarily to explain the Raven wanting to come in, and secondly, to create a contrast with the calm atmosphere inside the room.

I made the bird alight on the bust of Pallas, also for the effect of contrast between the marble and the plumage—it being understood that the bust was absolutely suggested by the bird—the bust of Pallas being chosen, first, as most in keeping with the scholarship of the lover, and, secondly, for the sonorousness of the word, Pallas, itself.

I had the bird land on the bust of Pallas, partly for the contrast between the marble and its feathers—it’s understood that the bust was entirely inspired by the bird—the bust of Pallas was chosen first because it matched the intelligence of the lover, and second, for the appealing sound of the name Pallas itself.

About the middle of the poem, also, I have availed myself of the force of contrast, with a view of deepening the ultimate impression. For example, an air of the fantastic—approaching as nearly to the ludicrous as was admissible—is given to the Raven’s entrance. He comes in "with many a flirt and flutter."

About the middle of the poem, I also took advantage of contrast to enhance the overall impact. For instance, the Raven’s entrance has a touch of the fantastic, almost bordering on the ridiculous, as much as was appropriate. He comes in "with many a flirt and flutter."

"He showed no respect at all—he didn't stop or pause for a moment,
"But with the demeanor of a lord or lady, sitting above my bedroom door."

In the two stanzas which follow, the design is more obviously carried out:—

In the two stanzas that follow, the design is much more clearly executed:—

"Then this black bird charming my gloomy thoughts into a smile
By the serious and strict expression it had,
"Even though your crest is cut and shaved, you," I said, "are definitely no coward,
Terribly dark and old Raven roaming from the nighttime beach—
Tell me what your majestic name is on the Night's Plutonian shore!
Quoth the Raven, "Nevermore."
I was quite amazed to hear this awkward bird speak so clearly,
Although its answer had little meaning—it was of little relevance; For we can't help but agree that no living person Have you ever been lucky enough to see a bird above your bedroom door?
Bird or beast on the carved bust above his bedroom door,
With the name 'Nevermore.'

The effect of the dénouement being thus provided for, I immediately drop the fantastic for a tone of the most profound seriousness:—this tone commencing in the stanza directly following the one last quoted, with the line,

The effect of the dénouement being thus handled, I immediately shift from the fantastical to a tone of deep seriousness:—this tone begins in the stanza right after the last one quoted, with the line,

"But the Raven, perched alone on that calm bust, only spoke," etc.

From this epoch the lover no longer jests—no longer sees anything even of the fantastic in the Raven’s demeanor. He speaks of him as a "grim, ungainly, ghastly, gaunt, and ominous bird of yore," and feels the "fiery eyes" burning into his "bosom’s core." This revolution of thought, or fancy, on the lover’s part, is intended to induce a similar one on the part of the reader—to bring the mind into a proper frame for the dénouement—which is now brought about as rapidly and as directly as possible.

From this time on, the lover no longer jokes—he doesn't even see anything fantastic about the Raven's behavior. He describes it as a "grim, awkward, frightening, skinny, and eerie bird from the past," and feels the "fiery eyes" piercing into his "heart's core." This shift in thought, or imagination, from the lover is meant to encourage a similar shift in the reader—to prepare the mind for the dénouement—which is now delivered as quickly and as directly as possible.

With the dénouement proper—with the Raven’s reply, "Nevermore," to the lover’s final demand if he shall meet his mistress in another world—the poem, in its obvious phase, that of a simple narrative, may be said to have its completion. So far, everything is within the limits of the accountable—of the real. A raven, having learned by rote the single word "Nevermore," and having escaped from the custody of its owner, is driven at midnight, through the violence of a storm, to seek admission at a window from which a light still gleams—the chamber-window of a student, occupied half in poring over a volume, half in dreaming of a beloved mistress deceased. The casement being thrown open at the fluttering of the bird’s wings, the bird itself perches on the most convenient seat out of the immediate reach of the student, who, amused by the incident and the oddity of the visitor’s demeanor, demands of it, in jest and without looking for a reply, its name. The raven addressed, answers with its customary word, "Nevermore"—a word which finds immediate echo in the melancholy heart of the student, who, giving utterance aloud to certain thoughts suggested by the occasion, is again startled by the fowl’s repetition of "Nevermore." The student now guesses the state of the case, but is impelled, as I have before explained, by the human thirst for self-torture, and in part by superstition, to propound such queries to the bird as will bring him, the lover, the most of the luxury of sorrow, through the anticipated answer "Nevermore." With the indulgence, to the utmost extreme, of this self-torture, the narration, in what I have termed its first or obvious phase, has a natural termination, and so far there has been no overstepping of the limits of the real.

With the ending proper—when the Raven responds with "Nevermore" to the lover’s last question about whether he will meet his mistress in another world—the poem, at its most basic level as a simple story, can be considered complete. Up until this point, everything is within the realm of the understandable—of reality. A raven, which has memorized the single word "Nevermore," escapes from its owner and is driven at midnight, through a fierce storm, to seek entry at a window where a light still shines—the window of a student who is half engrossed in a book and half lost in thoughts of his deceased beloved. As the window opens with the flutter of the bird’s wings, the raven settles on the closest spot out of the student’s reach. Amused by the situation and the bird's unusual behavior, the student jokingly asks the raven its name, not expecting an answer. The raven replies with its usual word, "Nevermore"—a word that resonates deeply in the melancholy heart of the student, who expresses aloud some thoughts inspired by the moment, only to be startled again by the bird’s repetition of "Nevermore." The student begins to understand the situation but, as I mentioned before, is driven by a human desire for self-inflicted pain, and partly by superstition, to ask the bird questions that will bring him the most anguish, expecting the answer "Nevermore." With the indulgence of this self-torment to the fullest extent, the story, as I have called it in its first or obvious phase, comes to a natural conclusion, and so far there has been no breach of the boundaries of reality.

But in subjects so handled, however skillfully, or with however vivid an array of incident, there is always a certain hardness or nakedness, which repels the artistical eye. Two things are invariably required—first, some amount of complexity, or more properly, adaptation; and, secondly, some amount of suggestiveness—some undercurrent, however indefinite, of meaning. It is this latter, in especial, which imparts to a work of art so much of that richness (to borrow from colloquy a forcible term) which we are too fond of confounding with the ideal. It is the excess of the suggested meaning—it is the rendering this the upper instead of the under current of the theme—which turns into prose (and that of the very flattest kind) the so-called poetry of the so-called transcendentalists.

But in subjects like these, no matter how skillfully handled or how vivid the incidents, there's always a certain hardness or rawness that pushes away the artistic eye. Two things are always needed—first, some level of complexity, or more accurately, adaptation; and secondly, some degree of suggestiveness—some underlying, even if vague, meaning. It's this latter aspect, in particular, that gives a work of art much of that richness (to borrow a strong term from conversation) that we often mistakenly confuse with the ideal. It’s the excess of the suggested meaning—it’s making this the main instead of the underlying current of the theme—that reduces the so-called poetry of the so-called transcendentalists into flat prose.

Holding these opinions, I added the two concluding stanzas of the poem—their suggestiveness being thus made to pervade all the narrative which has preceded them. The undercurrent of meaning is rendered first apparent in the lines—

Holding these opinions, I added the final two stanzas of the poem—allowing their suggestiveness to influence all the narrative that came before them. The underlying meaning becomes clear first in the lines—

"Take your beak out of my heart, and take your form off my door!'
"Nevermore!" said the Raven.

It will be observed that the words, "from out my heart," involve the first metaphorical expression in the poem. They, with the answer, "Nevermore," dispose the mind to seek a moral in all that has been previously narrated. The reader begins now to regard the Raven as emblematical—but it is not until the very last line of the very last stanza, that the intention of making him emblematical of Mournful and Never-ending Remembrance is permitted distinctly to be seen:

It can be noted that the phrase, "from out my heart," contains the first metaphor in the poem. This, along with the response, "Nevermore," prompts the reader to search for a moral in everything that has been told so far. At this point, the reader starts to see the Raven as symbolic—but it isn't until the very last line of the final stanza that the purpose of making him a symbol of Mournful and Never-ending Remembrance is clearly revealed:

"And the Raven, never moving, is still sitting, still sitting,
On the pale bust of Pallas right above my bedroom door; And his eyes look just like a demon's that is dreaming,
And the lamplight streaming over him casts his shadow on the floor; And my soul from out that shadow that’s lying on the floor "Shall be lifted—never again."

BREAD AND THE NEWSPAPER

OLIVER WENDELL HOLMES

THIS is the new version of the Panem et Circenses of the Roman populace. It is our ultimatum, as that was theirs. They must have something to eat, and the circus-shows to look at. We must have something to eat, and the papers to read.

THIS is the new version of the Panem et Circenses of the Roman populace. It is our ultimatum, as that was theirs. They need food and entertainment. We need food and news to read.

Everything else we can give up. If we are rich, we can lay down our carriages, stay away from Newport or Saratoga, and adjourn the trip to Europe sine die. If we live in a small way, there are at least new dresses and bonnets and every-day luxuries which we can dispense with. If the young Zouave of the family looks smart in his new uniform, its respectable head is content, though he himself grow seedy as a caraway-umbel late in the season. He will cheerfully calm the perturbed nap of his old beaver by patient brushing in place of buying a new one, if only the Lieutenant’s jaunty cap is what it should be. We all take a pride in sharing the epidemic economy of the time. Only bread and the newspaper we must have, whatever else we do without.

Everything else we can give up. If we’re wealthy, we can leave our carriages behind, avoid Newport or Saratoga, and postpone our trip to Europe indefinitely. If we live simply, there are still new dresses and hats and everyday luxuries that we can do without. If the young Zouave in the family looks sharp in his new uniform, his respectable family is fine with it, even if he starts to look worn out like a caraway seed late in the season. He’ll happily tidy up his old beaver hat with some brushing instead of buying a new one, as long as the Lieutenant’s cap looks just right. We all take pride in joining in on the frugal spirit of the times. Only bread and the newspaper are essentials we can't give up, no matter what else we do without.

How this war is simplifying our mode of being! We live on our emotions, as the sick man is said in the common speech to be nourished by his fever. Our ordinary mental food has become distasteful, and what would have been intellectual luxuries at other times, are now absolutely repulsive.

How this war is simplifying our way of living! We thrive on our emotions, just like the sick person is said to be sustained by their fever. Our usual thoughts have become unappealing, and what used to be intellectual treats at other times are now completely repulsive.

All this change in our manner of existence implies that we have experienced some very profound impression, which will sooner or later betray itself in permanent effects on the minds and bodies of many among us. We cannot forget Corvisart’s observation of the frequency with which diseases of the heart were noticed as the consequence of the terrible emotions produced by the scenes of the great French Revolution. Laennec tells the story of a convent, of which he was the medical director, where all the nuns were subjected to the severest penances and schooled in the most painful doctrines. They all became consumptive soon after their entrance, so that, in the course of his ten years’ attendance, all the inmates died out two or three times, and were replaced by new ones. He does not hesitate to attribute the disease from which they suffered to those depressing moral influences to which they were subjected.

All this change in how we live means that we’ve had some deep experiences that will eventually show up as lasting effects on the minds and bodies of many of us. We can’t overlook Corvisart’s note about how often heart diseases were linked to the intense emotions caused by the events of the French Revolution. Laennec shares the story of a convent where he was the medical director, where all the nuns were forced to endure extreme penances and taught the most painful beliefs. Soon after they arrived, all of them became ill with consumption, so that during his ten years there, all the residents died out two or three times and were replaced by new ones. He doesn’t hesitate to blame the sickness they experienced on the heavy moral pressures they faced.

So far we have noticed little more than disturbances of the nervous system as a consequence of the war excitement in non-combatants. Take the first trifling example which comes to our recollection. A sad disaster to the Federal army was told the other day in the presence of two gentlemen and a lady. Both the gentlemen complained of a sudden feeling at the epigastrium, or, less learnedly, the pit of the stomach, changed color, and confessed to a slight tremor about the knees. The lady had a "grande révolution," as French patients say,—went home, and kept her bed for the rest of the day. Perhaps the reader may smile at the mention of such trivial indispositions, but in more sensitive natures death itself follows in some cases from no more serious cause. An old gentleman fell senseless in fatal apoplexy, on hearing of Napoleon’s return from Elba. One of our early friends, who recently died of the same complaint, was thought to have had his attack mainly in consequence of the excitements of the time.

So far we've noticed little more than nervous system issues as a result of the war excitement affecting non-combatants. Take the first small example that comes to mind. A tragic loss for the Federal army was discussed recently in front of two men and a woman. Both men suddenly felt something in their stomachs, changed color, and admitted to a slight shaking in their knees. The woman experienced a "big reaction," as French patients would say—went home, and stayed in bed for the rest of the day. The reader may find such minor ailments amusing, but in more sensitive individuals, death itself can sometimes result from such seemingly trivial causes. An older gentleman collapsed from a fatal stroke upon hearing about Napoleon's return from Elba. One of our early friends, who recently died from the same condition, was believed to have been affected primarily due to the stress of the times.

We all know what the war fever is in our young men,—what a devouring passion it becomes in those whom it assails. Patriotism is the fire of it, no doubt, but this is fed with fuel of all sorts. The love of adventure, the contagion of example, the fear of losing the chance of participating in the great events of the time, the desire of personal distinction, all help to produce those singular transformations which we often witness, turning the most peaceful of our youth into the most ardent of our soldiers. But something of the same fever in a different form reaches a good many non-combatants, who have no thought of losing a drop of precious blood belonging to themselves or their families. Some of the symptoms we shall mention are almost universal; they are as plain in the people we meet everywhere as the marks of an influenza, when that is prevailing.

We all know what the war fever is in our young men—how much of a consuming passion it becomes in those it strikes. Patriotism is definitely a part of it, but it's fueled by many other things. The love of adventure, seeing others taking action, the fear of missing out on significant moments, the desire for personal recognition—all of these contribute to the surprising changes we often see, turning our most peaceful youth into our most passionate soldiers. But a similar fever in a different form affects many non-combatants who have no intention of risking their own or their family’s lives. Some symptoms we’ll mention are nearly universal; they are as unmistakable in the people we encounter everywhere as the signs of a flu outbreak when it’s going around.

The first is a nervous restlessness of a very peculiar character. Men cannot think, or write, or attend to their ordinary business. They stroll up and down the streets, or saunter out upon the public places. We confessed to an illustrious author that we laid down the volume of his work which we were reading when the war broke out. It was as interesting as a romance, but the romance of the past grew pale before the red light of the terrible present. Meeting the same author not long afterwards, he confessed that he had laid down his pen at the same time that we had closed his book. He could not write about the sixteenth century any more than we could read about it, while the nineteenth was in the very agony and bloody sweat of its great sacrifice.

The first is a nervous restlessness of a very unique kind. People can’t think, write, or focus on their everyday tasks. They wander up and down the streets or hang out in public spaces. We admitted to a famous author that we stopped reading his book when the war started. It was as captivating as a novel, but the story of the past faded in comparison to the harsh reality of the present. Running into the same author not long after, he admitted that he had put down his pen just like we had closed his book. He couldn’t write about the sixteenth century any more than we could read about it while the nineteenth was in the midst of its intense and bloody struggle.

Another most eminent scholar told us in all simplicity that he had fallen into such a state that he would read the same telegraphic dispatches over and over again in different papers, as if they were new, until he felt as if he were an idiot. Who did not do just the same thing, and does not often do it still, now that the first flush of the fever is over? Another person always goes through the side streets on his way for the noon extra,—he is so afraid somebody will meet him and tell the news he wishes to read, first on the bulletin-board, and then in the great capitals and leaded type of the newspaper.

Another well-regarded scholar told us simply that he had gotten to the point where he would read the same news reports over and over in different papers, as if they were new, until he felt like an idiot. Who hasn’t done the same thing, and doesn’t still do it now that the initial excitement of the fever is over? Another person always takes the back streets on his way to grab the noon extra—he’s so worried someone will run into him and spill the news he wants to read, first on the bulletin board, and then in the big headlines and bold type of the newspaper.

When any startling piece of war-news comes, it keeps repeating itself in our minds in spite of all we can do. The same trains of thought go tramping round in circle through the brain, like the supernumeraries that make up the grand army of a stage-show. Now, if a thought goes round through the brain a thousand times in a day, it will have worn as deep a track as one which has passed through it once a week for twenty years. This accounts for the ages we seem to have lived since the twelfth of April last, and, to state it more generally, for that ex post facto operation of a great calamity, or any very powerful impression, which we once illustrated by the image of a stain spreading backwards from the leaf of life open before us through all those which we have already turned.

When any shocking piece of war news comes in, it keeps playing in our minds no matter what we do. The same thoughts keep going in circles through our brains, like extras in a big stage production. Now, if a thought goes around our brain a thousand times in a day, it will create a deep groove just like one that has only come through once a week for twenty years. This explains the long time we feel we’ve lived since April twelfth, and, more generally, it accounts for that ex post facto effect of a major disaster, or any very strong impression, which we once illustrated with the image of a stain spreading backwards from the open page of life in front of us through all those we have already turned.

Blessed are those who can sleep quietly in times like these! Yet, not wholly blessed, either: for what is more painful than the awaking from peaceful unconsciousness to a sense that there is something wrong,—we cannot at first think what,—and then groping our way about through the twilight of our thoughts until we come full upon the misery, which, like some evil bird, seemed to have flown away, but which sits waiting for us on its perch by our pillow in the gray of the morning?

Blessed are those who can sleep soundly in times like these! Yet, not completely blessed either: for what is more painful than waking from peaceful oblivion to a feeling that something is off—we can’t quite put our finger on it—then fumbling through the fog of our thoughts until we finally confront the misery, which, like a sinister bird, seemed to have flown away but is now perched by our pillow in the gray of morning, waiting for us?

The converse of this is perhaps still more painful. Many have the feeling in their waking hours that the trouble they are aching with is, after all, only a dream,—if they will rub their eyes briskly enough and shake themselves, they will awake out of it, and find all their supposed grief is unreal. This attempt to cajole ourselves out of an ugly fact always reminds us of those unhappy flies who have been indulging in the dangerous sweets of the paper prepared for their especial use.

The opposite of this might be even more painful. Many people feel during the day that the troubles they’re dealing with are just a bad dream—if only they could rub their eyes hard enough and shake themselves, they would wake up and realize all their supposed grief isn't real. This effort to trick ourselves into ignoring an ugly truth always makes us think of those poor flies that have been lured in by the dangerous sweetness of the paper made just for them.

Watch one of them. He does not feel quite well,—at least, he suspects himself of indisposition. Nothing serious,—let us just rub our fore-feet together, as the enormous creature who provides for us rubs his hands, and all will be right. He rubs them with that peculiar twisting movement of his, and pauses for the effect. No! all is not quite right yet. Ah! it is our head that is not set on just as it ought to be. Let us settle that where it should be, and then we shall certainly be in good trim again. So he pulls his head about as an old lady adjusts her cap, and passes his fore-paw over it like a kitten washing herself.—Poor fellow! It is not a fancy, but a fact, that he has to deal with. If he could read the letters at the head of the sheet, he would see they were Fly-Paper.—So with us, when, in our waking misery, we try to think we dream! Perhaps very young persons may not understand this; as we grow older, our waking and dreaming life run more and more into each other.

Watch one of them. He doesn’t feel quite right—at least, he suspects he’s unwell. Nothing serious—let's just rub our front feet together, like the huge creature who takes care of us rubs his hands, and everything will be fine. He rubs them with that unique twisting motion of his and waits for the effect. No! Everything isn’t quite right yet. Ah! It’s our head that’s not aligned as it should be. Let’s fix that where it belongs, and then we’ll definitely be in good shape again. So he adjusts his head like an elderly lady fixing her hat and sweeps his front paw over it like a kitten grooming herself. Poor guy! It’s not just a feeling; it’s a reality he’s facing. If he could read the letters at the top of the page, he would see they say Fly-Paper. Just like us, when we try to convince ourselves that we’re dreaming in our waking misery! Maybe younger people won’t get this; as we grow older, our waking life and dream life blend together more and more.

Another symptom of our excited condition is seen in the breaking up of old habits. The newspaper is as imperious as a Russian Ukase; it will be had, and it will be read. To this all else must give place. If we must go out at unusual hours to get it, we shall go, in spite of after-dinner nap or evening somnolence. If it finds us in company, it will not stand on ceremony, but cuts short the compliment and the story by the divine right of its telegraphic dispatches.

Another sign of our excited state is the breakdown of old habits. The newspaper is as commanding as a Russian decree; it demands to be obtained and read. Everything else must take a backseat to it. If we need to head out at odd hours to get it, we will, no matter if we've just taken a post-dinner nap or feel sleepy in the evening. If we are with others, it won't wait politely; it interrupts compliments and stories, claiming its importance with the urgency of its news reports.

 

War is a very old story, but it is a new one to this generation of Americans. Our own nearest relation in the ascending line remembers the Revolution well. How should she forget it? Did she not lose her doll, which was left behind, when she was carried out of Boston, about that time growing uncomfortable by reason of cannon-balls dropping in from the neighboring heights at all hours,—in token of which see the tower of Brattle Street Church at this very day? War in her memory means ’76. As for the brush of 1812, "we did not think much about that"; and everybody knows that the Mexican business did not concern us much, except in its political relations. No! war is a new thing to all of us who are not in the last quarter of their century. We are learning many strange matters from our fresh experience. And besides, there are new conditions of existence which make war as it is with us very different from war as it has been.

War is a very old story, but it's new for this generation of Americans. Our closest ancestor remembers the Revolution well. How could she forget? Didn’t she lose her doll, which was left behind when she was carried out of Boston, during a time when cannonballs were constantly falling from the nearby hills—just take a look at the tower of Brattle Street Church today as proof? For her, war means ’76. As for the War of 1812, "we didn’t think much about that"; and everyone knows the Mexican War didn’t really concern us, except for its political implications. No! War is something new for all of us who aren’t in the last quarter of our lives. We’re learning a lot from our new experiences. Plus, there are new conditions of existence that make war today very different from how it has been in the past.

The first and obvious difference consists in the fact that the whole nation is now penetrated by the ramifications of a network of iron nerves which flash sensation and volition backward and forward to and from towns and provinces as if they were organs and limbs of a single living body. The second is the vast system of iron muscles which, as it were, move the limbs of the mighty organism one upon another. What was the railroad-force which put the Sixth Regiment in Baltimore on the 19th of April but a contraction and extension of the arm of Massachusetts with a clenched fist full of bayonets at the end of it?

The first and most obvious difference is that the entire nation is now connected by a network of iron pathways that transmit feelings and actions back and forth between cities and regions as if they were parts of a single living body. The second is the extensive system of iron mechanisms that move the parts of this huge organism in coordination. What was the railroad power that sent the Sixth Regiment to Baltimore on April 19th if not the contraction and extension of Massachusetts's arm, with a fist full of bayonets at the end?

This perpetual intercommunication, joined to the power of instantaneous action, keeps us always alive with excitement. It is not a breathless courier who comes back with the report from an army we have lost sight of for a month, nor a single bulletin which tells us all we are to know for a week of some great engagement, but almost hourly paragraphs, laden with truth or falsehood as the case may be, making us restless always for the last fact or rumor they are telling. And so of the movements of our armies. Tonight the stout lumbermen of Maine are encamped under their own fragrant pines. In a score or two of hours they are among the tobacco-fields and the slave-pens of Virginia. The war passion burned like scattered coals of fire in the households of Revolutionary times; now it rushes all through the land like a flame over the prairie. And this instant diffusion of every fact and feeling produces another singular effect in the equalizing and steadying of public opinion. We may not be able to see a month ahead of us; but as to what has passed a week afterwards it is as thoroughly talked out and judged as it would have been in a whole season before our national nervous system was organized.

This constant communication, combined with the ability to act instantly, keeps us energized with excitement. It’s not just a breathless messenger returning with news from an army we haven’t heard from in a month, nor a single report giving us everything we need to know for a week about a major battle. Instead, it’s almost hourly updates, full of truth or lies depending on the situation, making us constantly anxious for the latest fact or rumor. The same goes for our army's movements. Tonight, the tough lumberjacks of Maine are camped beneath their own fragrant pines. In just a couple of hours, they’ll be in the tobacco fields and slave pens of Virginia. The passion for war burned like scattered coals in the households of Revolutionary times; now, it spreads across the country like wildfire on the prairie. This immediate spread of every fact and feeling creates another unique effect in leveling and stabilizing public opinion. We might not be able to predict a month ahead, but what happened a week ago is thoroughly discussed and analyzed as if it had taken an entire season before our national nervous system was set up.

"As the wild storm stirs the sleeping sea,
"You alone teach everything that a person can become!"

We indulged in the above apostrophe to War in a Phi Beta Kappa poem of long ago, which we liked better before we read Mr. Cutler’s beautiful prolonged lyric delivered at the recent anniversary of that Society.

We took the liberty of referencing the war in an old Phi Beta Kappa poem that we preferred before reading Mr. Cutler's beautiful extended lyric presented at the recent anniversary of that Society.

Oftentimes, in paroxysms of peace and good-will towards all mankind, we have felt twinges of conscience about the passage,—especially when one of our orators showed us that a ship of war costs as much to build and keep as a college, and that every port-hole we could stop would give us a new professor. Now we begin to think that there was some meaning in our poor couplet. War has taught us, as nothing else could, what we can be and are. It has exalted our manhood and our womanhood, and driven us all back upon our substantial human qualities, for a long time more or less kept out of sight by the spirit of commerce, the love of art, science, or literature, or other qualities not belonging to all of us as men and women.

Often, in moments of peace and goodwill toward all humanity, we've felt pangs of conscience about the passage—especially when one of our speakers pointed out that a warship costs as much to build and maintain as a college, and that every port-hole we could block would allow us to hire a new professor. Now we start to realize there might have been some truth in our old couplet. War has shown us, like nothing else could, what we can be and what we truly are. It has elevated our humanity, making us rely on our fundamental human traits, which had long been overshadowed by the pursuit of commerce, the appreciation of art, science, or literature, or other qualities not shared by all of us as men and women.

It is at this very moment doing more to melt away the petty social distinctions which keep generous souls apart from each other, than the preaching of the Beloved Disciple himself would do. We are finding out that not only "patriotism is eloquence," but that heroism is gentility. All ranks are wonderfully equalized under the fire of a masked battery. The plain artisan or the rough fireman, who faces the lead and iron like a man, is the truest representative we can show of the heroes of Crécy and Agincourt. And if one of our fine gentlemen puts off his straw-colored kids and stands by the other, shoulder to shoulder, or leads him on to the attack, he is as honorable in our eyes and in theirs as if he were ill-dressed and his hands were soiled with labor.

At this very moment, it's doing more to break down the petty social barriers that keep generous people apart than the preaching of the Beloved Disciple himself ever could. We're realizing that not only is "patriotism eloquent," but heroism also shows true character. All social ranks are remarkably equalized under the fire of a hidden artillery unit. The basic worker or the tough firefighter, who faces danger like a brave person, is the best example we can find of the heroes of Crécy and Agincourt. And if one of our refined gentlemen takes off his fancy gloves and stands side by side with the others, or leads them into battle, he is just as honorable in our eyes and in theirs as if he were poorly dressed and his hands were dirty from work.

Even our poor "Brahmins,"—whom a critic in ground-glass spectacles (the same who grasps his statistics by the blade and strikes at his supposed antagonist with the handle) oddly confounds with the "bloated aristocracy," whereas they are very commonly pallid, undervitalized, shy, sensitive creatures, whose only birthright is an aptitude for learning,—even these poor New England Brahmins of ours, subvirates of an organizable base as they often are, count as full men, if their courage is big enough for the uniform which hangs so loosely about their slender figures.

Even our unfortunate "Brahmins,"—whom a critic wearing ground-glass glasses (the same one who clings to his statistics and attacks his imagined opponent) strangely mixes up with the "wealthy aristocracy," even though they are often pale, low-energy, shy, sensitive individuals, whose only birthright is an ability to learn,—even these unfortunate New England Brahmins of ours, subvirates of an organizable base as they often are, are considered fully human, as long as their courage is strong enough to fill out the uniform that hangs so loosely on their slim figures.

A young man was drowned not very long ago in the river running under our windows. A few days afterwards a field-piece was dragged to the water’s edge, and fired many times over the river. We asked a bystander, who looked like a fisherman, what that was for. It was to "break the gall," he said, and so bring the drowned person to the surface. A strange physiological fancy and a very odd non sequitur; but that is not our present point. A good many extraordinary objects do really come to the surface when the great guns of war shake the waters, as when they roared over Charleston harbor.

A young man drowned recently in the river that runs beneath our windows. A few days later, a cannon was dragged to the water's edge and fired several times over the river. We asked a bystander who looked like a fisherman what that was for. He said it was to "break the gall" and bring the drowned person to the surface. A strange physiological idea and a very odd non sequitur; but that's not our main point. A lot of unusual things do actually surface when the big guns of war shake the waters, like when they boomed over Charleston harbor.

Treason came up, hideous, fit only to be huddled into its dishonorable grave. But the wrecks of precious virtues, which had been covered with the waves of prosperity, came up also. And all sorts of unexpected and unheard-of things, which had lain unseen during our national life of fourscore years, came up and are coming up daily, shaken from their bed by the concussions of the artillery bellowing around us.

Treason emerged, ugly and deserving only to be buried in its shameful grave. But the remnants of valued virtues, which had been buried under the waves of success, surfaced too. And all kinds of surprising and unknown things, which had gone unnoticed during our eighty years as a nation, have surfaced and continue to surface daily, shaken from their resting places by the booming artillery surrounding us.

It is a shame to own it, but there were persons otherwise respectable not unwilling to say that they believed the old valor of Revolutionary times had died out from among us. They talked about our own Northern people as the English in the last centuries used to talk about the French,—Goldsmith’s old soldier, it may be remembered, called one Englishman good for five of them. As Napoleon spoke of the English, again, as a nation of shopkeepers, so these persons affected to consider the multitude of their countrymen as unwarlike artisans,—forgetting that Paul Revere taught himself the value of liberty in working upon gold, and Nathanael Greene fitted himself to shape armies in the labor of forging iron.

It's unfortunate to admit, but there were respectable people who said they believed the old bravery of Revolutionary times had vanished among us. They spoke about our Northern folks like the English used to talk about the French in past centuries—Goldsmith’s old soldier, you might remember, claimed one Englishman was worth five of them. Just as Napoleon referred to the English as a nation of shopkeepers, these people pretended to see their fellow countrymen as non-military artisans—forgetting that Paul Revere learned the value of liberty while working with gold, and Nathanael Greene trained to lead armies through the labor of forging iron.

These persons have learned better now. The bravery of our free working-people was overlaid, but not smothered; sunken, but not drowned. The hands which had been busy conquering the elements had only to change their weapons and their adversaries, and they were as ready to conquer the masses of living force opposed to them as they had been to build towns, to dam rivers, to hunt whales, to harvest ice, to hammer brute matter into every shape civilization can ask for.

These people have learned better now. The courage of our free working-class was hidden, but not extinguished; it was suppressed, but not defeated. The hands that were once busy mastering nature just needed to switch their tools and their opponents, and they were just as ready to take on the huge masses standing against them as they had been to build cities, dam rivers, hunt whales, harvest ice, and shape raw materials into everything civilization requires.

Another great fact came to the surface, and is coming up every day in new shapes,—that we are one people. It is easy to say that a man is a man in Maine or Minnesota, but not so easy to feel it, all through our bones and marrow. The camp is deprovincializing us very fast. Brave Winthrop, marching with the city élégants, seems to have been a little startled to find how wonderfully human were the hard-handed men of the Eighth Massachusetts. It takes all the nonsense out of everybody, or ought to do it, to see how fairly the real manhood of a country is distributed over its surface. And then, just as we are beginning to think our own soil has a monopoly of heroes as well as of cotton, up turns a regiment of gallant Irishmen, like the Sixty-ninth, to show us that continental provincialism is as bad as that of Coos County, New Hampshire, or of Broadway, New York.

Another great truth has emerged, and it keeps coming to light in new ways—that we are one people. It's easy to say a man is a man in Maine or Minnesota, but it's not so easy to truly feel it down to our bones. The camp is quickly broadening our perspectives. Brave Winthrop, marching with the city elites, seems to have been a bit surprised to discover how incredibly human the hard-working men of the Eighth Massachusetts are. It removes all the nonsense from everyone, or at least it should, to see how evenly the true manhood of a country is spread across its landscape. Just when we start to think our own land has a monopoly on heroes as well as cotton, a regiment of brave Irishmen, like the Sixty-ninth, arrives to remind us that provincialism is just as limiting whether it’s in Coos County, New Hampshire, or Broadway, New York.

Here, too, side by side in the same great camp, are half a dozen chaplains, representing half a dozen modes of religious belief. When the masked battery opens, does the "Baptist" Lieutenant believe in his heart that God takes better care of him than of his "Congregationalist" Colonel? Does any man really suppose, that, of a score of noble young fellows who have just laid down their lives for their country, the Homoousians are received to the mansions of bliss, and the Homoiousians translated from the battle-field to the abodes of everlasting woe? War not only teaches what man can be, but it teaches also what he must not be. He must not be a bigot and a fool in the presence of that day of judgment proclaimed by the trumpet which calls to battle, and where a man should have but two thoughts: to do his duty, and trust his Maker. Let our brave dead come back from the fields where they have fallen for law and liberty, and if you will follow them to their graves, you will find out what the Broad Church means; the narrow church is sparing of its exclusive formulæ over the coffins wrapped in the flag which the fallen heroes had defended! Very little comparatively do we hear at such times of the dogmas on which men differ; very much of the faith and trust in which all sincere Christians can agree. It is a noble lesson, and nothing less noisy than the voice of cannon can teach it so that it shall be heard over all the angry cries of theological disputants.

Here, too, side by side in the same large camp, are half a dozen chaplains, representing various religious beliefs. When the masked battery opens fire, does the "Baptist" Lieutenant truly believe that God watches over him more than his "Congregationalist" Colonel? Does anyone really think that of the many brave young men who have just sacrificed their lives for their country, the Homoousians are welcomed into paradise, while the Homoiousians are condemned from the battlefield to eternal damnation? War not only shows us what man can be, but also what he must avoid being. He must not be a bigot or a fool in the face of that day of judgment declared by the trumpet that calls men to battle, where a man should focus on just two thoughts: to fulfill his duty and to trust his Creator. If our courageous dead could rise from the fields where they fell for law and liberty, and if you accompany them to their graves, you will learn what the Broad Church signifies; the narrow church is stingy with its exclusive doctrines over the coffins wrapped in the flag that the fallen heroes defended! During such times, we hear very little about the dogmas on which people disagree; instead, we hear a great deal about the faith and trust that all sincere Christians can share. It is a profound lesson, and only something as powerful as cannon fire can convey it in a way that cuts through the angry debates of theological opponents.

Now, too, we have a chance to test the sagacity of our friends, and to get at their principles of judgment. Perhaps most of us will agree that our faith in domestic prophets has been diminished by the experience of the last six months. We had the notable predictions attributed to the Secretary of State, which so unpleasantly refused to fulfill themselves. We were infested at one time with a set of ominous-looking seers, who shook their heads and muttered obscurely about some mighty preparations that were making to substitute the rule of the minority for that of the majority. Organizations were darkly hinted at; some thought our armories would be seized; and there are not wanting ancient women in the neighboring University town who consider that the country was saved by the intrepid band of students who stood guard, night after night, over the G. R. cannon and the pile of balls in the Cambridge Arsenal.

Now, we also have a chance to test the wisdom of our friends and understand their judgment principles. Most of us would probably agree that our trust in local prophets has been shaken by the events of the past six months. There were notable predictions from the Secretary of State that sadly didn’t come true. We were once overwhelmed by a group of ominous seers who shook their heads and muttered vaguely about some big plans to replace the rule of the majority with that of the minority. There were dark hints about organizations; some believed our armories would be taken over, and there are still old women in the nearby University town who think the country was saved by the brave group of students who kept watch, night after night, over the G. R. cannon and the stockpile of balls in the Cambridge Arsenal.

As a general rule, it is safe to say that the best prophecies are those which the sages remember after the event prophesied of has come to pass, and remind us that they have made long ago. Those who are rash enough to predict publicly beforehand commonly give us what they hope, or what they fear, or some conclusion from an abstraction of their own, or some guess founded on private information not half so good as what everybody gets who reads the papers,—never by any possibility a word that we can depend on, simply because there are cobwebs of contingency between every to-day and to-morrow that no field-glass can penetrate when fifty of them lie woven one over another. Prophesy as much as you like, but always hedge. Say that you think the rebels are weaker than is commonly supposed, but, on the other hand, that they may prove to be even stronger than is anticipated. Say what you like,—only don’t be too peremptory and dogmatic; we know that wiser men than you have been notoriously deceived in their predictions in this very matter.

As a general rule, it's fair to say that the best predictions are those that the wise people remember after the event has happened and remind us they made long ago. Those who are reckless enough to predict things publicly beforehand usually share what they hope, what they fear, or some conclusion based on their own abstract thinking, or a guess rooted in private information that's not nearly as good as what anyone can find in the news—never something we can truly rely on, simply because there are layers of uncertainty between today and tomorrow that no telescope can see through when they are all tangled together. Predict as much as you want, but always hedge. Say that you think the rebels are weaker than most people assume, but also that they could end up being even stronger than expected. Say whatever you want—just don’t be too assertive and dogmatic; we know that smarter people than you have been clearly misled in their predictions about this very issue.

"You will go and return, and you will never perish in battle."

Let that be your model; and remember, on peril of your reputation as a prophet, not to put a stop before or after the nunquam.

Let that be your guide; and remember, under the risk of damaging your reputation as a prophet, not to place a stop before or after the nunquam.

There are two or three facts connected with time, besides that already referred to, which strike us very forcibly in their relation to the great events passing around us. We spoke of the long period seeming to have elapsed since this war began. The buds were then swelling which held the leaves that are still green. It seems as old as Time himself. We cannot fail to observe how the mind brings together the scenes of to-day and those of the old Revolution. We shut up eighty years into each other like the joints of a pocket-telescope. When the young men from Middlesex dropped in Baltimore the other day, it seemed to bring Lexington and the other Nineteenth of April close to us. War has always been the mint in which the world’s history has been coined, and now every day or week or month has a new medal for us. It was Warren that the first impression bore in the last great coinage; if it is Ellsworth now, the new face hardly seems fresher than the old. All battle-fields are alike in their main features. The young fellows who fell in our earlier struggle seemed like old men to us until within these few months; now we remember they were like these fiery youth we are cheering as they go to the fight; it seems as if the grass of our bloody hillside was crimsoned but yesterday, and the cannon-ball imbedded in the church-tower would feel warm, if we laid our hand upon it.

There are a couple of facts related to time, besides the one we've already mentioned, that hit us hard in connection with the major events happening around us. We talked about how long it feels since this war started. Back then, the buds were swelling with the leaves that are still green today. It feels as ancient as Time itself. We can’t help but notice how our minds link the events of today with those of the old Revolution. It’s like we’re collapsing eighty years into each other, just like the sections of a pocket telescope. When the young men from Middlesex showed up in Baltimore the other day, it felt like bringing Lexington and that other Nineteenth of April right up to us. War has always been the place where the world's history gets shaped, and now every day, week, or month gives us a new medal. It was Warren that made the first mark in the last major shaping; if it’s Ellsworth now, the new face doesn’t seem any fresher than the old one. All battlefields are pretty similar in their main aspects. The young guys who fell in our earlier struggles seemed old to us until just a few months ago; now we remember they were just like the passionate young men we’re cheering on as they head to fight. It feels like the grass on our bloody hillside was stained just yesterday, and the cannonball stuck in the church tower would feel warm if we touched it.

Nay, in this our quickened life we feel that all the battles from earliest time to our own day, where Right and Wrong have grappled, are but one great battle, varied with brief pauses or hasty bivouacs upon the field of conflict. The issues seem to vary, but it is always a right against a claim, and, however the struggle of the hour may go, a movement onward of the campaign, which uses defeat as well as victory to serve its mighty ends. The very implements of our warfare change less than we think. Our bullets and cannon-balls have lengthened into bolts like those which whistled out of old arbalests. Our soldiers fight with weapons, such as are pictured on the walls of Theban tombs, wearing a newly invented head-gear as old as the days of the Pyramids.

No, in our fast-paced lives, we realize that all the battles from ancient times to today, where good and evil have clashed, are really just one huge battle, interrupted by brief breaks or quick camps on the battlefield. The challenges may seem different, but it's always a struggle between right and a claim, and no matter how the current fight goes, there's a forward movement in the overall campaign, which uses both defeat and victory to achieve its powerful goals. The tools of our warfare change less than we think. Our bullets and cannonballs have evolved into projectiles like those that once flew from ancient crossbows. Our soldiers fight with weapons depicted on the walls of Theban tombs, donning newly designed helmets that are as old as the days of the Pyramids.

Whatever miseries this war brings upon us, it is making us wiser, and, we trust, better. Wiser, for we are learning our weakness, our narrowness, our selfishness, our ignorance, in lessons of sorrow and shame. Better, because all that is noble in men and women is demanded by the time, and our people are rising to the standard the time calls for. For this is the question the hour is putting to each of us: Are you ready, if need be, to sacrifice all that you have and hope for in this world, that the generations to follow you may inherit a whole country whose natural conditions shall be peace, and not a broken province which must live under the perpetual threat, if not in the constant presence, of war and all that war brings with it? If we are all ready for this sacrifice, battles may be lost, but the campaign and its grand object must be won.

No matter what hardships this war brings us, it's making us wiser and, we hope, better. Wiser, because we're realizing our weaknesses, our limitations, our selfishness, and our ignorance through painful lessons. Better, because the best in men and women is being called for during this time, and our people are rising to meet that challenge. The real question we're all facing is this: Are you prepared to give up everything you have and aspire to for the sake of future generations, so they can inherit a country defined by peace instead of a broken land living under the constant threat, if not the reality, of war and all its consequences? If we are all willing to make this sacrifice, we might lose some battles, but we will ultimately win the campaign and its greater purpose.

Heaven is very kind in its way of putting questions to mortals. We are not abruptly asked to give up all that we most care for, in view of the momentous issues before us. Perhaps we shall never be asked to give up all, but we have already been called upon to part with much that is dear to us, and should be ready to yield the rest as it is called for. The time may come when even the cheap public print shall be a burden our means cannot support, and we can only listen in the square that was once the market-place to the voices of those who proclaim defeat or victory. Then there will be only our daily food left. When we have nothing to read and nothing to eat, it will be a favorable moment to offer a compromise. At present we have all that nature absolutely demands,—we can live on bread and the newspaper.

Heaven has a unique way of asking questions of us mortals. We aren’t suddenly required to give up everything we hold dear, despite the significant issues in front of us. Maybe we’ll never be asked to give up everything, but we’ve already had to let go of much that we cherish, and we should be prepared to give up the rest when it’s necessary. There may come a time when even the inexpensive newspaper becomes a luxury we can’t afford, and all we can do is listen in the square that used to be the marketplace to those who announce defeat or victory. At that point, all we’ll have left is our daily meals. When we have nothing to read and nothing to eat, it will be the right time to suggest a compromise. For now, we have everything nature requires—we can survive on bread and the news.

WALKING

HENRY DAVID THOREAU

I WISH to speak a word for Nature, for absolute freedom and wildness, as contrasted with a freedom and culture merely civil,—to regard man as an inhabitant, or a part and parcel of Nature, rather than a member of society. I wish to make an extreme statement, if so I may make an emphatic one, for there are enough champions of civilization: the minister and the school-committee, and every one of you will take care of that.

I WISH to say something for Nature, for complete freedom and wildness, as opposed to a freedom and culture that are just civilized— to see man as a resident, or a part of Nature, rather than a member of society. I want to make a bold statement, if I can make it a forceful one, because there are plenty of supporters of civilization: the minister, the school board, and all of you will handle that.

 

I have met with but one or two persons in the course of my life who understood the art of Walking, that is, of taking walks,—who had a genius, so to speak, for sauntering: which word is beautifully derived from "idle people who roved about the country, in the Middle Ages, and asked charity, under pretense of going à la Sainte Terre," to the Holy Land, till the children exclaimed, "There goes a Sainte-Terrer," a Saunterer,—a Holy-Lander. They who never go to the Holy Land in their walks, as they pretend, are indeed mere idlers and vagabonds; but they who do go there are saunterers in the good sense, such as I mean. Some, however, would derive the word from sans terre, without land or a home, which, therefore, in the good sense, will mean, having no particular home, but equally at home everywhere. For this is the secret of successful sauntering. He who sits still in a house all the time may be the greatest vagrant of all; but the saunterer, in the good sense, is no more vagrant than the meandering river, which is all the while sedulously seeking the shortest course to the sea. But I prefer the first, which, indeed, is the most probable derivation. For every walk is a sort of crusade, preached by some Peter the Hermit in us, to go forth and reconquer this Holy Land from the hands of the Infidels.

I’ve only met one or two people in my life who truly understood the art of walking, meaning the art of taking walks—who had a natural talent, so to speak, for sauntering: a term that beautifully comes from "idle people who wandered around the countryside in the Middle Ages, asking for charity under the pretense of going à la Sainte Terre," or to the Holy Land, until the children would shout, "There goes a Sainte-Terrer," a Saunterer—a Holy-Lander. Those who never go to the Holy Land in their walks, as they claim, are just idlers and drifters; but those who do go there are the genuine saunterers I’m talking about. Some, however, might say the word comes from sans terre, meaning without land or home, which implies, in a positive way, having no specific home but feeling at home everywhere. This is the key to successful sauntering. Someone who sits at home all the time might actually be the biggest wanderer of all; meanwhile, a true saunterer is no more of a wandering soul than a meandering river, which is always carefully finding the shortest path to the sea. Still, I favor the first explanation, which is indeed the most likely origin. Every walk is like a kind of crusade, inspired by some Peter the Hermit within us, to go out and reclaim this Holy Land from the hands of the Infidels.

It is true, we are but faint-hearted crusaders, even the walkers, nowadays, who undertake no persevering, never-ending enterprises. Our expeditions are but tours, and come round again at evening to the old hearth-side from which we set out. Half the walk is but retracing our steps. We should go forth on the shortest walk, perchance, in the spirit of undying adventure, never to return,—prepared to send back our embalmed hearts only as relics to our desolate kingdoms. If you are ready to leave father and mother, and brother and sister, and wife and child and friends, and never see them again,—if you have paid your debts, and made your will, and settled all your affairs, and are a free man, then you are ready for a walk.

It's true, we are just timid adventurers, even those who take walks these days, who don't commit to any ongoing, endless quests. Our journeys are more like short trips, and we always come back in the evening to the same cozy spot we started from. Half of the walk is just retracing our steps. We should set out on the shortest walk, perhaps, with a spirit of endless adventure, never planning to return—ready to send back our preserved hearts as mementos to our empty kingdoms. If you're prepared to leave behind your parents, siblings, spouse, children, and friends, and never see them again—if you've settled your debts, made a will, taken care of all your affairs, and are truly free, then you're ready for a walk.

To come down to my own experience, my companion and I, for I sometimes have a companion, take pleasure in fancying ourselves knights of a new, or rather an old, order,—not Equestrians or Chevaliers, not Ritters or riders, but Walkers, a still more ancient and honorable class, I trust. The chivalric and heroic spirit which once belonged to the Rider seems now to reside in, or perchance to have subsided into, the Walker,—not the Knight, but Walker Errant. He is a sort of fourth estate, outside of Church and State and People.

To get to my own experience, my friend and I—because I sometimes have a friend—enjoy imagining ourselves as knights of a new, or rather an old, order—not Equestrians or Chevaliers, not Ritters or riders, but Walkers, a much older and respectable class, I hope. The chivalric and heroic spirit that used to belong to the Rider seems now to exist in, or maybe have settled into, the Walker—not the Knight, but the Walker Errant. He’s like a fourth estate, existing outside of the Church, State, and People.

We have felt that we almost alone hereabouts practiced this noble art; though, to tell the truth, at least, if their own assertions are to be received, most of my townsmen would fain walk sometimes, as I do, but they cannot. No wealth can buy the requisite leisure, freedom, and independence, which are the capital in this profession. It comes only by the grace of God. It requires a direct dispensation from Heaven to become a walker. You must be born into the family of the Walkers. Ambulator nascitur, non fit. Some of my townsmen, it is true, can remember and have described to me some walks which they took ten years ago, in which they were so blessed as to lose themselves for half an hour in the woods; but I know very well that they have confined themselves to the highway ever since, whatever pretensions they may make to belong to this select class. No doubt they were elevated for a moment as by the reminiscence of a previous state of existence, when even they were foresters and outlaws.

We’ve felt that we’re almost the only ones around here practicing this noble art; although, to be honest, at least if you believe what they say, most of my neighbors would love to walk sometimes, like I do, but they can’t. No amount of money can buy the necessary time, freedom, and independence, which are essential in this profession. Those come only through the grace of God. You need a direct blessing from Heaven to become a walker. You have to be born into the family of Walkers. Ambulator nascitur, non fit. Some of my neighbors can indeed remember and have told me about some walks they took ten years ago, where they were lucky enough to get lost in the woods for half an hour; but I know very well that they have stuck to the main road ever since, regardless of any claims they might make about being part of this exclusive group. No doubt they felt uplifted for a moment as if recalling a previous life when they were even foresters and outlaws.

"When he arrived at Green Wood,
On a merry morning,
There he heard the soft sounds. Of birds happily singing.
"It's really far gone, said Robyn,
Last time I was here; I would like to shoot a little. At the given spot.

I think that I cannot preserve my health and spirits, unless I spend four hours a day at least,—and it is commonly more than that,—sauntering through the woods and over the hills and fields, absolutely free from all worldly engagements. You may safely say, A penny for your thoughts, or a thousand pounds. When sometimes I am reminded that the mechanics and shopkeepers stay in their shops not only all the forenoon, but all the afternoon too, sitting with crossed legs, so many of them,—as if the legs were made to sit upon, and not to stand or walk upon,—I think that they deserve some credit for not having all committed suicide long ago.

I believe I can't keep my health and spirits up unless I spend at least four hours a day—usually more—wandering through the woods and across the hills and fields, completely free from any worldly distractions. You could ask me, "What are you thinking?" and I might say it's worth a penny or even a thousand pounds. When I remember that so many mechanics and shopkeepers stay in their shops not just all morning but all afternoon too, sitting with their legs crossed—like legs are meant just for sitting instead of standing or walking—I think they deserve some credit for not having given up on life a long time ago.

I, who cannot stay in my chamber for a single day without acquiring some rust, and when sometimes I have stolen forth for a walk at the eleventh hour of four o’clock in the afternoon, too late to redeem the day, when the shades of night were already beginning to be mingled with the daylight, have felt as if I had committed some sin to be atoned for,—I confess that I am astonished at the power of endurance, to say nothing of the moral insensibility, of my neighbors who confine themselves to shops and offices the whole day for weeks and months, ay, and years almost together. I know not what manner of stuff they are of,—sitting there now at three o’clock in the afternoon, as if it were three o’clock in the morning. Bonaparte may talk of the three-o’clock-in-the-morning courage, but it is nothing to the courage which can sit down cheerfully at this hour in the afternoon over against one’s self whom you have known all the morning, to starve out a garrison to whom you are bound by such strong ties of sympathy. I wonder that about this time, or say between four and five o’clock in the afternoon, too late for the morning papers and too early for the evening ones, there is not a general explosion heard up and down the street, scattering a legion of antiquated and house-bred notions and whims to the four winds for an airing,—and so the evil cure itself.

I, who can’t spend a single day stuck in my room without feeling sluggish, and when I occasionally sneak out for a walk around four in the afternoon—too late to make the most of the day—when dusk is already mixing with the daylight, feel like I’ve committed some offense that needs to be righted. I admit I’m amazed by the endurance, not to mention the moral indifference, of my neighbors who shut themselves in shops and offices all day for weeks, months, and even years on end. I can’t understand what kind of people they are—sitting there at three in the afternoon, as if it were three in the morning. Bonaparte might talk about the courage of being up at three in the morning, but it’s nothing compared to the bravery it takes to sit there cheerfully at this time in the afternoon, opposite someone you've known all morning, to let a group you feel deeply connected to starve. I wonder why, around four or five in the afternoon, when it's too late for the morning papers and too early for the evening ones, there isn’t a loud eruption in the street, sending a bunch of old and homebound ideas and quirks flying away for some fresh air—and thus fixing the problem itself.

How womankind, who are confined to the house still more than men, stand it I do not know; but I have ground to suspect that most of them do not stand it at all. When, early in a summer afternoon, we have been shaking the dust of the village from the skirts of our garments, making haste past those houses with purely Doric or Gothic fronts, which have such an air of repose about them, my companion whispers that probably about these times their occupants are all gone to bed. Then it is that I appreciate the beauty and the glory of architecture, which itself never turns in, but forever stands out and erect, keeping watch over the slumberers.

How women, who are even more stuck at home than men, manage, I don’t know; but I have a feeling that most of them can’t handle it at all. When, early on a summer afternoon, we’ve been shaking the dust of the village off our clothes, hurrying past those houses with their pure Doric or Gothic styles that have such a calming vibe about them, my friend whispers that probably around this time, all the people inside have gone to bed. That’s when I really appreciate the beauty and glory of architecture, which never turns in but always stands tall and alert, watching over those who are asleep.

No doubt temperament, and, above all, age, have a good deal to do with it. As a man grows older, his ability to sit still and follow indoor occupations increases. He grows vespertinal in his habits as the evening of life approaches, till at last he comes forth only just before sundown, and gets all the walk that he requires in half an hour.

No doubt temperament, and especially age, play a significant role in this. As a man gets older, his ability to sit still and engage in indoor activities increases. He becomes more evening-oriented in his habits as he nears the end of his life, until finally he only goes out just before sunset, managing to get all the walking he needs in half an hour.

But the walking of which I speak has nothing in it akin to taking exercise, as it is called, as the sick take medicine at stated hours,—as the swinging of dumb-bells or chairs; but is itself the enterprise and adventure of the day. If you would get exercise, go in search of the springs of life. Think of a man’s swinging dumb-bells for his health, when those springs are bubbling up in far-off pastures unsought by him!

But the walking I’m talking about isn’t like doing exercise for fitness, like how sick people take their medicine on a schedule, or swinging weights; it’s actually the main event of the day. If you want to get some exercise, go look for the sources of life. Imagine a guy swinging weights to stay healthy when those sources are bubbling up in distant fields that he isn’t even looking for!

Moreover, you must walk like a camel, which is said to be the only beast which ruminates when walking. When a traveler asked Wordsworth’s servant to show him her master’s study, she answered, "Here is his library, but his study is out of doors."

Moreover, you have to walk like a camel, which is said to be the only animal that chews its cud while walking. When a traveler asked Wordsworth's servant to show him her master's study, she replied, "Here's his library, but his study is outside."

Living much out of doors, in the sun and wind, will no doubt produce a certain roughness of character,—will cause a thicker cuticle to grow over some of the finer qualities of our nature, as on the face and hands, or as severe manual labor robs the hands of some of their delicacy of touch. So staying in the house, on the other hand, may produce a softness and smoothness, not to say thinness of skin, accompanied by an increased sensibility to certain impressions. Perhaps we should be more susceptible to some influences important to our intellectual and moral growth, if the sun had shone and the wind blown on us a little less; and no doubt it is a nice matter to proportion rightly the thick and thin skin. But methinks that is a scurf that will fall off fast enough,—that the natural remedy is to be found in the proportion which the night bears to the day, the winter to the summer, thought to experience. There will be so much the more air and sunshine in our thoughts. The callous palms of the laborer are conversant with finer tissues of self-respect and heroism, whose touch thrills the heart, than the languid fingers of idleness. That is mere sentimentality that lies abed by day and thinks itself white, far from the tan and callus of experience.

Spending a lot of time outdoors in the sun and wind will definitely create a bit of roughness in one's character—like how tougher skin grows over some of our finer qualities, just as manual labor toughens hands and takes away their gentleness. On the flip side, staying indoors might lead to a softness and smoothness, even a thinness of skin, paired with an increased sensitivity to certain sensations. We might be more open to some influences that are key for our intellectual and moral growth if we had spent a little less time in the sun and wind; it certainly seems important to find a good balance between rough and smooth skin. But I believe that roughness will wear off quickly—it’s only natural, as seen in the balance between night and day, winter and summer, thought and experience. Our thoughts will have more air and sunshine. The rough hands of a worker know more about deeper feelings of self-respect and heroism that can stir the heart than the soft fingers of someone who is idle. It’s just sentimentality to stay in bed all day thinking it's better to be untanned and untouched by life’s experiences.

When we walk, we naturally go to the fields and woods: what would become of us, if we walked only in a garden or a mall? Even some sects of philosophers have felt the necessity of importing the woods to themselves, since they did not go to the woods. "They planted groves and walks of Platanes," where they took subdiales ambulationes in porticos open to the air. Of course it is of no use to direct our steps to the woods, if they do not carry us thither. I am alarmed when it happens that I have walked a mile into the woods bodily, without getting there in spirit. In my afternoon walk I would fain forget all my morning occupations and my obligations to society. But it sometimes happens that I cannot easily shake off the village. The thought of some work will run in my head, and I am not where my body is,—I am out of my senses. In my walks I would fain return to my senses. What business have I in the woods, if I am thinking of something out of the woods? I suspect myself, and cannot help a shudder, when I find myself so implicated even in what are called good works,—for this may sometimes happen.

When we walk, we naturally head to the fields and woods: what would happen to us if we only walked in a garden or a mall? Even some groups of philosophers realized they needed to bring the woods to themselves since they didn't go there. "They planted groves and paths of sycamores," where they took subdiales ambulationes in open-air porches. Of course, there's no point in heading to the woods if our minds don’t follow. I get worried when I find I've physically walked a mile into the woods but haven’t really arrived there in spirit. During my afternoon walk, I want to forget all my morning tasks and obligations to society. But sometimes it’s hard to shake off the village. Thoughts of work keep running through my mind, and I’m not present where my body is—I’m out of my mind. In my walks, I want to regain my senses. What am I doing in the woods if I’m thinking about something outside of them? I suspect I’m caught up in something, and it gives me a chill when I find myself entangled even in what's considered good work—because that can happen sometimes.

My vicinity affords many good walks; and though for so many years I have walked almost every day, and sometimes for several days together, I have not yet exhausted them. An absolutely new prospect is a great happiness, and I can still get this any afternoon. Two or three hours’ walking will carry me to as strange a country as I expect ever to see. A single farmhouse which I had not seen before is sometimes as good as the dominions of the King of Dahomey. There is in fact a sort of harmony discoverable between the capabilities of the landscape within a circle of ten miles’ radius, or the limits of an afternoon walk, and the threescore years and ten of human life. It will never become quite familiar to you.

My area has a lot of great walking trails, and even though I’ve been walking almost every day for so many years, sometimes for several days in a row, I still haven’t explored them all. Finding a completely new view is a real joy, and I can still experience that any afternoon. A two or three-hour walk will take me to a place as strange as I expect to ever see. Sometimes, seeing a single farmhouse I haven’t encountered before feels as exciting as the kingdoms of the King of Dahomey. There’s actually a kind of balance between what you can discover in the landscape within a ten-mile radius, or the distance of an afternoon walk, and the average human life span of seventy years. It will never become entirely familiar to you.

Nowadays almost all man’s improvements, so called, as the building of houses, and the cutting down of the forest and of all large trees, simply deform the landscape, and make it more and more tame and cheap. A people who would begin by burning the fences and let the forest stand! I saw the fences half consumed, their ends lost in the middle of the prairie, and some worldly miser with a surveyor looking after his bounds, while heaven had taken place around him, and he did not see the angels going to and fro, but was looking for an old post-hole in the midst of paradise. I looked again, and saw him standing in the middle of a boggy, stygian fen, surrounded by devils, and he had found his bounds without a doubt, three little stones, where a stake had been driven, and looking nearer, I saw that the Prince of Darkness was his surveyor.

These days, almost all of man's so-called improvements, like building houses and cutting down forests and big trees, just ruin the landscape, making it more and more dull and cheap. A community that would start by burning down the fences and letting the forest thrive! I saw the fences half burned, their ends lost in the middle of the prairie, while some greedy person with a surveyor was obsessing over his property lines, completely oblivious to the beauty around him, missing the angels moving back and forth, as he searched for an old post-hole in the middle of paradise. I looked again and saw him standing in the middle of a muddy, dark swamp, surrounded by demons, and he had definitely found his boundaries—three tiny stones where a stake had been driven. Looking closer, I realized the Prince of Darkness was his surveyor.

I can easily walk ten, fifteen, twenty, any number of miles, commencing at my own door, without going by any house, without crossing a road except where the fox and the mink do: first along by the river, and then the brook, and then the meadow and the woodside. There are square miles in my vicinity which have no inhabitant. From many a hill I can see civilization and the abodes of man afar. The farmers and their works are scarcely more obvious than woodchucks and their burrows. Man and his affairs, church and state and school, trade and commerce, and manufactures and agriculture, even politics, the most alarming of them all,—I am pleased to see how little space they occupy in the landscape. Politics is but a narrow field, and that still narrower highway yonder leads to it. I sometimes direct the traveler thither. If you would go to the political world, follow the great road,—follow that market-man, keep his dust in your eyes, and it will lead you straight to it; for it, too, has its place merely, and does not occupy all space. I pass from it as from a bean-field into the forest, and it is forgotten. In one half-hour I can walk off to some portion of the earth’s surface where a man does not stand from one year’s end to another, and there, consequently, politics are not, for they are but as the cigar-smoke of a man.

I can easily walk ten, fifteen, twenty miles, starting from my front door, without passing any houses or crossing a road except where the fox and the mink go: first by the river, then the brook, and then through the meadow and the woods. There are square miles around me that have no people at all. From many hills, I can see civilization and human dwellings far away. The farmers and their work are hardly more noticeable than woodchucks and their burrows. Man and his concerns—church, state, school, trade, commerce, manufacturing, agriculture, even politics, the most concerning of them all—I’m impressed by how little space they take up in the landscape. Politics is a narrow field, and that even narrower road over there leads to it. Sometimes, I direct travelers that way. If you want to enter the political world, follow the main road—stick close to that market vendor, keep his dust in your eyes, and it will take you right there; for it too has its place and doesn’t consume all space. I move away from it as one would from a bean field into the forest, and it fades from my mind. In just half an hour, I can walk to a spot on the earth where no person stands from one year to the next, and there, naturally, politics don’t exist, for they’re like the smoke from a cigar.

The village is the place to which the roads tend, a sort of expansion of the highway, as a lake of a river. It is the body of which roads are the arms and legs,—a trivial or quadrivial place, the thoroughfare and ordinary of travelers. The word is from the Latin villa, which, together with via, a way, or more anciently ved and vella, Varro derives from veho, to carry, because the villa is the place to and from which things are carried. They who got their living by teaming were said vellaturam facere. Hence, too, apparently, the Latin word vilis and our vile; also villain. This suggests what kind of degeneracy villagers are liable to. They are wayworn by the travel that goes by and over them, without traveling themselves.

The village is where the roads lead, like a widening of the highway is to a lake of a river. It’s the core of which roads are the arms and legs—a basic or central spot, the main route for travelers. The term comes from the Latin villa, which, along with via, means a way, or even earlier ved and vella; Varro traces it back to veho, meaning to carry, since the villa is where things are brought to and taken from. Those who made a living by transporting goods were said to vellaturam facere. This also seems to link to the Latin word vilis and our word vile; plus villain. This implies what kind of decline villagers might face. They’re worn out by the travel that goes past and through them, even when they don’t travel themselves.

Some do not walk at all; others walk in the highways; a few walk across lots. Roads are made for horses and men of business. I do not travel in them much, comparatively, because I am not in a hurry to get to any tavern or grocery or livery-stable or depot to which they lead. I am a good horse to travel, but not from choice a roadster. The landscape-painter uses the figures of men to mark a road. He would not make that use of my figure. I walk out into a Nature such as the old prophets and poets, Menu, Moses, Homer, Chaucer, walked in. You may name it America, but it is not America: neither Americus Vespucius, nor Columbus, nor the rest were the discoverers of it. There is a truer account of it in mythology than in any history of America, so called, that I have seen.

Some people don’t walk at all; others walk on the main roads; a few take shortcuts across fields. Roads are made for horses and business people. I don’t use them much, relatively speaking, because I’m not rushing to any tavern, grocery store, stable, or station they lead to. I’m a good traveler, but I prefer to avoid the main roads. Landscape artists use people to show paths. They wouldn’t use my figure that way. I walk out into a nature like that which the ancient prophets and poets, such as Menu, Moses, Homer, and Chaucer, walked in. You might call it America, but it’s not America: neither Americus Vespucius, Columbus, nor anyone else really discovered it. There’s a more accurate account of it in mythology than in any history of America I’ve seen.

However, there are a few old roads that may be trodden with profit, as if they led somewhere now that they are nearly discontinued. There is the Old Marlborough Road, which does not go to Marlborough now, methinks, unless that is Marlborough where it carries me. I am the bolder to speak of it here, because I presume that there are one or two such roads in every town.

However, there are a few old roads that might still be worth exploring, even though they are almost forgotten. There's the Old Marlborough Road, which probably doesn’t lead to Marlborough anymore unless it takes me to the Marlborough I have in mind. I'm more confident mentioning it here because I believe there are one or two similar roads in every town.

THE OLD MARLBOROUGH ROAD.
Where they used to dig for money,
But never found anything;
Where sometimes martial miles Single files,
And Elijah Wood, I fear for no reason:
No other guy, Save Elisha Dugan,—
O man of wild ways, Partridges and rabbits, Who has no worries Only to set traps,
Who lives all alone,
Close to the edge, And where life is best
Always eating.
When spring awakens my spirit
With a desire to travel,
I can get enough gravel. On the Old Marlborough Road. No one fixes it,
For no one wears it;
It's a living way,
As the Christians say. Not many are there Who enters there, Only the guests of the Irishman Quin. What is it, what is it,
But a way out there,
And the slight chance Thinking of going somewhere? Great stone guideboards,
But no travelers; Towns' cenotaphs Named on their profiles.
It's definitely worth checking out
Where you might be.
What king? Did the thing, I'm still wondering; Set up how or when, By which selectmen, Gourgas or Lee, Clark or Darby? They’re a great effort To be something permanent;
Blank tablets of stone, Where a traveler might complain,
In one sentence Grave everything that is known; Which someone else might read,
In his great need. I know a few Lines that would work,
Literature that could endure Everywhere, What a man could remember See you next December, And read it again in the spring,
After the thaw. If with fancy displayed You leave your home,
You can travel around the world. By the Old Marlborough Road.

At present, in this vicinity, the best part of the land is not private property; the landscape is not owned, and the walker enjoys comparative freedom. But possibly the day will come when it will be partitioned off into so-called pleasure-grounds, in which a few will take a narrow and exclusive pleasure only,—when fences shall be multiplied, and man-traps and other engines invented to confine men to the public road, and walking over the surface of God’s earth shall be construed to mean trespassing on some gentleman’s grounds. To enjoy a thing exclusively is commonly to exclude yourself from the true enjoyment of it. Let us improve our opportunities, then, before the evil days come.

Right now, in this area, the best part of the land isn't privately owned; the scenery isn't owned by anyone, and the walker feels a sense of freedom. But there may come a day when it gets divided into so-called pleasure grounds, where only a few will enjoy a narrow and exclusive pleasure—when fences are built everywhere, and man-traps and other devices are created to keep people on the public road, and simply walking on God's earth will be seen as trespassing on someone's property. To enjoy something exclusively often means to miss out on the true enjoyment of it. So let's make the most of our opportunities before those bad days arrive.

 

What is it that makes it so hard sometimes to determine whither we will walk? I believe that there is a subtile magnetism in Nature, which, if we unconsciously yield to it, will direct us aright. It is not indifferent to us which way we walk. There is a right way; but we are very liable from heedlessness and stupidity to take the wrong one. We would fain take that walk, never yet taken by us through this actual world, which is perfectly symbolical of the path which we love to travel in the interior and ideal world; and sometimes, no doubt, we find it difficult to choose our direction, because it does not yet exist distinctly in our idea.

What makes it so hard sometimes to figure out which way we should go? I think there’s a subtle pull in Nature that, if we unconsciously follow it, will guide us correctly. It matters which direction we take. There is a right path, but we often end up taking the wrong one due to carelessness and ignorance. We want to take that journey we've never experienced in this real world, which perfectly represents the path we love to explore in our inner and ideal world; and sometimes, it’s definitely difficult to choose our direction because it isn’t clearly formed in our minds yet.

When I go out of the house for a walk, uncertain as yet whither I will bend my steps, and submit myself to my instinct to decide for me, I find, strange and whimsical as it may seem, that I finally and inevitably settle southwest, toward some particular wood or meadow or deserted pasture or hill in that direction. My needle is slow to settle,—varies a few degrees, and does not always point due south-west, it is true, and it has good authority for this variation, but it always settles between west and south-south-west. The future lies that way to me, and the earth seems more unexhausted and richer on that side. The outline which would bound my walks would be, not a circle, but a parabola, or rather like one of those cometary orbits which have been thought to be non-returning curves, in this case opening westward, in which my house occupies the place of the sun. I turn round and round irresolute sometimes for a quarter of an hour, until I decide, for a thousandth time, that I will walk into the southwest or west. Eastward I go only by force; but westward I go free. Thither no business leads me. It is hard for me to believe that I shall find fair landscapes or sufficient wildness and freedom behind the eastern horizon. I am not excited by the prospect of a walk thither; but I believe that the forest which I see in the western horizon stretches uninterruptedly toward the setting sun, and there are no towns nor cities in it of enough consequence to disturb me. Let me live where I will, on this side is the city, on that the wilderness, and ever I am leaving the city more and more, and withdrawing into the wilderness. I should not lay so much stress on this fact, if I did not believe that something like this is the prevailing tendency of my countrymen. I must walk toward Oregon, and not toward Europe. And that way the nation is moving, and I may say that mankind progress from east to west. Within a few years we have witnessed the phenomenon of a southeastward migration, in the settlement of Australia; but this affects us as a retrograde movement, and judging from the moral and physical character of the first generation of Australians, has not yet proved a successful experiment. The eastern Tartars think that there is nothing west beyond Thibet. "The world ends there," say they, "beyond there is nothing but a shoreless sea." It is unmitigated East where they live.

When I step out of the house for a walk, unsure of where I’ll end up, I let my instincts guide me. It’s strange, but I always seem to head southwest, toward some specific woods, meadow, open pasture, or hill in that direction. My direction isn’t always precise—it wavers a bit and doesn’t consistently point directly southwest, but it always settles somewhere between west and south-southwest. To me, the future lies in that direction, and the earth seems more fresh and abundant over there. The path I take wouldn’t be a circle, but more like a parabola, or like those comet orbits that are thought to be non-returning curves, with my house at the center like the sun. Sometimes I turn in circles for a good fifteen minutes, until I finally decide, once again, to head southwest or west. I only go east when I have to; heading west feels free. Nothing leads me in that direction for business. It’s hard for me to believe I’ll find beautiful landscapes or enough wilderness and freedom beyond the eastern horizon. I’m not thrilled about walking that way, but I have faith that the forest I see on the western horizon stretches endlessly toward the setting sun, with no towns or cities big enough to bother me. No matter where I live, the city is on this side, and the wilderness is on that side, and I keep moving further away from the city into the wilderness. I wouldn’t emphasize this if I didn’t believe it’s a common trend among my fellow countrymen. I’m drawn to walk toward Oregon, not Europe. That’s where the nation is headed, and I’d argue that humanity is progressing from east to west. In recent years, we’ve seen a phenomenon of southeastward migration with the settlement of Australia, but that feels like a step backwards, and judging by the moral and physical traits of the first generation of Australians, it hasn't proven to be a successful venture. The eastern Tartars think there’s nothing west of Tibet. "The world ends there," they say, "beyond that is just an endless sea." They truly live in the East.

We go eastward to realize history and study the works of art and literature, retracing the steps of the race; we go westward as into the future, with a spirit of enterprise and adventure. The Atlantic is a Lethean stream, in our passage over which we have had an opportunity to forget the Old World and its institutions. If we do not succeed this time, there is perhaps one more chance for the race left before it arrives on the banks of the Styx; and that is in the Lethe of the Pacific, which is three times as wide.

We head east to explore our history and study the achievements in art and literature, retracing our culture's journey; we move westward into the future, filled with ambition and a sense of adventure. The Atlantic is like a river of forgetfulness that we cross, providing us a chance to leave behind the Old World and its ways. If we don’t succeed this time, there might be one more opportunity left for humanity before we reach the shores of the afterlife; and that is in the vastness of the Pacific, which is three times wider.

I know not how significant it is, or how far it is an evidence of singularity, that an individual should thus consent in his pettiest walk with the general movement of the race; but I know that something akin to the migratory instinct in birds and quadrupeds,—which, in some instances, is known to have affected the squirrel tribe, impelling them to a general and mysterious movement, in which they were seen, say some, crossing the broadest rivers, each on its particular chip, with its tail raised for a sail, and bridging narrower streams with their dead,—that something like the furor which affects the domestic cattle in the spring, and which is referred to a worm in their tails,—affects both nations and individuals, either perennially or from time to time. Not a flock of wild geese cackles over our town, but it to some extent unsettles the value of real estate here, and, if I were a broker, I should probably take that disturbance into account.

I’m not sure how significant it is, or how much it shows uniqueness, that a person would agree in their smallest actions with the overall behavior of humanity; but I realize that something similar to the migratory instincts seen in birds and animals—like how it’s been observed that squirrels can sometimes engage in a strange communal movement, where they are seen, according to some, crossing wide rivers on little bits of wood, tails raised as sails, even using the bodies of the dead to bridge smaller streams—something like the frenzy that affects farm animals in spring, which is attributed to a worm in their tails—affects both countries and individuals, either continuously or occasionally. Whenever a flock of wild geese flies over our town, it tends to disrupt the value of real estate here, and if I were a real estate agent, I would probably factor that disturbance in.

"Then people long to go on pilgrimages,
"And palmeres to seek out strange shores."

Every sunset which I witness inspires me with the desire to go to a West as distant and as fair as that into which the sun goes down. He appears to migrate westward daily, and tempt us to follow him. He is the Great Western Pioneer whom the nations follow. We dream all night of those mountain-ridges in the horizon, though they may be of vapor only, which were last gilded by his rays. The island of Atlantis, and the islands and gardens of the Hesperides, a sort of terrestrial paradise, appear to have been the Great West of the ancients, enveloped in mystery and poetry. Who has not seen in imagination, when looking into the sunset sky, the gardens of the Hesperides, and the foundation of all those fables?

Every sunset I see fills me with the urge to head to a West as distant and beautiful as the place where the sun sets. It seems to travel westward every day, encouraging us to follow. It’s the Great Western Pioneer that nations chase after. We spend all night dreaming of those mountain ridges on the horizon, even though they might just be clouds, which were last lit up by his rays. The island of Atlantis, along with the islands and gardens of the Hesperides—a kind of earthly paradise—seem to have been the Great West of ancient times, wrapped in mystery and poetry. Who hasn’t imagined, while gazing at the sunset sky, the gardens of the Hesperides and the origins of all those myths?

Columbus felt the westward tendency more strongly than any before. He obeyed it, and found a New World for Castile and Leon. The herd of men in those days scented fresh pastures from afar.

Columbus felt the pull to the west more intensely than anyone else before him. He followed that urge and discovered a New World for Castile and Leon. Back then, people could sense new opportunities from a distance.

"And now the sun had spread across all the hills,
And now was dropped into the western bay; Finally, he stood up and adjusted his blue cloak;
"Tomorrow to fresh woods and new pastures."

Where on the globe can there be found an area of equal extent with that occupied by the bulk of our States, so fertile and so rich and varied in its productions, and at the same time so habitable by the European, as this is? Michaux, who knew but part of them, says that "the species of large trees are much more numerous in North America than in Europe; in the United States there are more than one hundred and forty species that exceed thirty feet in height; in France there are but thirty that attain this size." Later botanists more than confirm his observations. Humboldt came to America to realize his youthful dreams of a tropical vegetation, and he beheld it in its greatest perfection in the primitive forests of the Amazon, the most gigantic wilderness on the earth, which he has so eloquently described. The geographer Guyot, himself a European, goes farther,—farther than I am ready to follow him; yet not when he says,—"As the plant is made for the animal, as the vegetable world is made for the animal world, America is made for the man of the Old World.... The man of the Old World sets out upon his way. Leaving the highlands of Asia, he descends from station to station towards Europe. Each of his steps is marked by a new civilization superior to the preceding, by a greater power of development. Arrived at the Atlantic, he pauses on the shore of this unknown ocean, the bounds of which he knows not, and turns upon his footprints for an instant." When he has exhausted the rich soil of Europe, and reinvigorated himself, "then recommences his adventurous career westward as in the earliest ages." So far Guyot.

Where on the globe can you find an area as large as the bulk of our States that is so fertile, diverse in its resources, and at the same time so livable for Europeans? Michaux, who only saw part of it, noted that "the variety of large trees is much greater in North America than in Europe; in the United States, there are over one hundred and forty species that grow taller than thirty feet; in France, there are only thirty that reach this height." Later botanists confirmed his observations. Humboldt came to America to pursue his youthful dreams of tropical vegetation and saw it at its finest in the untouched forests of the Amazon, the largest wilderness on Earth, which he described so powerfully. The geographer Guyot, a European himself, goes even further—further than I’m willing to follow him. Yet not when he says, "As the plant is made for the animal, as the vegetable world is made for the animal world, America is made for the man of the Old World.... The man of the Old World begins his journey. Leaving the highlands of Asia, he descends from station to station towards Europe. Each of his steps is marked by a new civilization superior to the one before, with greater potential for development. When he reaches the Atlantic, he pauses on the shore of this unknown ocean, the extent of which he doesn’t know, and briefly looks back at his path." Once he has exhausted Europe’s rich soil and recharged himself, "he starts his adventurous journey westward again, just like in the earliest days." So far Guyot.

From this western impulse coming in contact with the barrier of the Atlantic sprang the commerce and enterprise of modern times. The younger Michaux, in his Travels West of the Alleghanies in 1802, says that the common inquiry in the newly settled West was, "'From what part of the world have you come?' As if these vast and fertile regions would naturally be the place of meeting and common country of all the inhabitants of the globe."

From this western drive meeting the barrier of the Atlantic came the commerce and ventures of modern times. The younger Michaux, in his Travels West of the Alleghanies in 1802, notes that the usual question in the newly settled West was, "'Where are you from?' As if these vast and fertile regions would naturally be the common meeting place and home for all the people of the world."

To use an obsolete Latin word, I might say, Ex Oriente lux; ex Occidente FRUX. From the East light; from the West fruit.

To use an old Latin phrase, I could say, Ex Oriente lux; ex Occidente FRUX. From the East comes light; from the West comes fruit.

Sir Francis Head, an English traveler and a Governor-General of Canada, tells us that "in both the northern and southern hemispheres of the New World, Nature has not only outlined her works on a larger scale, but has painted the whole picture with brighter and more costly colors than she used in delineating and in beautifying the Old World.... The heavens of America appear infinitely higher, the sky is bluer, the air is fresher, the cold is intenser, the moon looks larger, the stars are brighter, the thunder is louder, the lightning is vivider, the wind is stronger, the rain is heavier, the mountains are higher, the rivers longer, the forests bigger, the plains broader." This statement will do at least to set against Buffon’s account of this part of the world and its productions.

Sir Francis Head, an English traveler and former Governor-General of Canada, tells us that "in both the northern and southern hemispheres of the New World, Nature has not only outlined her works on a larger scale, but has painted the whole picture with brighter and more expensive colors than she used in depicting and beautifying the Old World.... The skies of America seem infinitely higher, the sky is bluer, the air is fresher, the cold is harsher, the moon appears larger, the stars are brighter, the thunder is louder, the lightning is more vivid, the wind is stronger, the rain is heavier, the mountains are taller, the rivers are longer, the forests are larger, the plains are broader." This statement serves to contrast with Buffon’s account of this part of the world and its products.

Linnæus said long ago, "Nescio quæ facies læta, glabra plantis Americanis: I know not what there is of joyous and smooth in the aspect of American plants;" and I think that in this country there are no, or at most very few, Africanæ bestiæ, African beasts, as the Romans called them, and that in this respect also it is peculiarly fitted for the habitation of man. We are told that within three miles of the center of the East-Indian city of Singapore, some of the inhabitants are annually carried off by tigers; but the traveler can lie down in the woods at night almost anywhere in North America without fear of wild beasts.

Linnæus said a long time ago, "I don't know what is joyful and smooth about the appearance of American plants;" and I think that in this country there are none, or at most very few, African beasts, as the Romans called them, and that in this way it is particularly suitable for humans to live here. We are told that within three miles of the center of the East-Indian city of Singapore, some locals are taken by tigers each year; but a traveler can lie down in the woods at night almost anywhere in North America without fearing wild animals.

These are encouraging testimonies. If the moon looks larger here than in Europe, probably the sun looks larger also. If the heavens of America appear infinitely higher, and the stars brighter, I trust that these facts are symbolical of the height to which the philosophy and poetry and religion of her inhabitants may one day soar. At length, perchance, the immaterial heaven will appear as much higher to the American mind, and the intimations that star it as much brighter. For I believe that climate does thus react on man,—as there is something in the mountain-air that feeds the spirit and inspires. Will not man grow to greater perfection intellectually as well as physically under these influences? Or is it unimportant how many foggy days there are in his life? I trust that we shall be more imaginative, that our thoughts will be clearer, fresher, and more ethereal, as our sky,—our understanding more comprehensive and broader, like our plains,—our intellect generally on a grander scale, like our thunder and lightning, our rivers and mountains and forests,—and our hearts shall even correspond in breadth and depth and grandeur to our inland seas. Perchance there will appear to the traveler something, he knows not what, of læta and glabra, of joyous and serene, in our very faces. Else to what end does the world go on, and why was America discovered?

These are encouraging testimonies. If the moon looks bigger here than in Europe, the sun probably looks bigger too. If America’s skies seem infinitely higher and the stars shine brighter, I hope these facts symbolize the heights to which the philosophy, poetry, and religion of its people may one day rise. Eventually, perhaps, the spiritual realm will appear as much higher to the American mind, and the insights that decorate it will shine just as brightly. I believe that climate influences us—there's something about mountain air that nourishes the spirit and inspires creativity. Won’t people become more intellectually and physically advanced under these influences? Or do the number of foggy days in one’s life not matter? I hope we will be more imaginative, that our thoughts will be clearer, fresher, and more elevated, like our skies—our understanding broader and more comprehensive, like our plains—our intellect generally on a grander scale, like our thunder and lightning, our rivers, mountains, and forests—and our hearts shall correspond in breadth, depth, and greatness to our inland seas. Perhaps travelers will notice something indescribable, a sense of joy and serenity, in our very faces. Otherwise, what is the purpose of the world continuing on, and why was America discovered?

To Americans I hardly need to say,—

To Americans I hardly need to say,—

"The star of empire moves westward."

As a true patriot, I should be ashamed to think that Adam in paradise was more favorably situated on the whole than the backwoodsman in this country.

As a true patriot, I should be embarrassed to think that Adam in paradise had a better situation overall than the person living in the backwoods of this country.

Our sympathies in Massachusetts are not confined to New England; though we may be estranged from the South, we sympathize with the West. There is the home of the younger sons, as among the Scandinavians they took to the sea for their inheritance. It is too late to be studying Hebrew; it is more important to understand even the slang of to-day.

Our sympathies in Massachusetts aren't limited to New England; even if we may feel disconnected from the South, we stand with the West. That's where the younger generation finds their home, just like the Scandinavians took to the sea for their legacy. It's too late to be learning Hebrew; what matters more is understanding today's slang.

Some months ago I went to see a panorama of the Rhine. It was like a dream of the Middle Ages. I floated down its historic stream in something more than imagination, under bridges built by the Romans, and repaired by later heroes, past cities and castles whose very names were music to my ears, and each of which was the subject of a legend. There were Ehrenbreitstein and Rolandseck and Coblentz, which I knew only in history. They were ruins that interested me chiefly. There seemed to come up from its waters and its vine-clad hills and valleys a hushed music as of Crusaders departing for the Holy Land. I floated along under the spell of enchantment, as if I had been transported to an heroic age, and breathed an atmosphere of chivalry.

A few months ago, I went to see a view of the Rhine. It felt like a dream from the Middle Ages. I floated down its historic river in more than just imagination, passing under bridges built by the Romans and fixed by later heroes, past cities and castles whose names were like music to my ears, each tied to its own legend. There were Ehrenbreitstein, Rolandseck, and Coblentz, which I only knew from history. They were ruins that fascinated me. From the waters and the vine-covered hills and valleys, it felt like a soft music rose up, like Crusaders setting off for the Holy Land. I drifted along under a spell, as if I had been taken back to an age of heroes, breathing in an atmosphere of chivalry.

Soon after, I went to see a panorama of the Mississippi, and as I worked my way up the river in the light of to-day, and saw the steamboats wooding up, counted the rising cities, gazed on the fresh ruins of Nauvoo, beheld the Indians moving west across the stream, and, as before I had looked up the Moselle now looked up the Ohio and the Missouri, and heard the legends of Dubuque and of Wenona’s Cliff,—still thinking more of the future than of the past or present,—I saw that this was a Rhine stream of a different kind; that the foundations of castles were yet to be laid, and the famous bridges were yet to be thrown over the river; and I felt that this was the heroic age itself, though we know it not, for the hero is commonly the simplest and obscurest of men.

Soon after, I went to check out a view of the Mississippi, and as I made my way up the river in today’s light, I saw the steamboats taking on wood, counted the growing cities, looked at the fresh ruins of Nauvoo, watched the Indians moving west across the stream, and just like before when I looked up the Moselle, now I looked up the Ohio and the Missouri, and heard the stories of Dubuque and Wenona’s Cliff—still thinking more about the future than about the past or present—I realized that this was a Rhine river of a different kind; that the foundations of castles were yet to be built, and the famous bridges were yet to be constructed over the river; and I felt that this was the heroic age itself, even though we don’t recognize it, because the hero is often the simplest and most obscure of individuals.

 

The West of which I speak is but another name for the Wild; and what I have been preparing to say is, that in Wildness is the preservation of the World. Every tree sends its fibers forth in search of the Wild. The cities import it at any price. Men plow and sail for it. From the forest and wilderness come the tonics and barks which brace mankind. Our ancestors were savages. The story of Romulus and Remus being suckled by a wolf is not a meaningless fable. The founders of every State which has risen to eminence have drawn their nourishment and vigor from a similar wild source. It was because the children of the Empire were not suckled by the wolf that they were conquered and displaced by the children of the Northern forests who were.

The West that I’m talking about is just another term for the Wild; and what I’m getting at is that in Wildness lies the preservation of the World. Every tree sends its roots out looking for the Wild. Cities crave it no matter the cost. People farm and set sail for it. From the forest and wilderness come the tonics and remedies that strengthen humanity. Our ancestors were untamed. The tale of Romulus and Remus being raised by a wolf isn’t just a silly story. The founders of every great civilization have drawn their strength and sustenance from a similar wild source. It was because the children of the Empire weren't nurtured by the wolf that they were conquered and replaced by the children of the Northern forests who were.

I believe in the forest, and in the meadow, and in the night in which the corn grows. We require an infusion of hemlock-spruce or arbor-vitæ in our tea. There is a difference between eating and drinking for strength and from mere gluttony. The Hottentots eagerly devour the marrow of the koodoo and other antelopes raw, as a matter of course. Some of our Northern Indians eat raw the marrow of the Arctic reindeer, as well as various other parts, including the summits of the antlers, as long as they are soft. And herein, perchance, they have stolen a match on the cooks of Paris. They get what usually goes to feed the fire. This is probably better than stall-fed beef and slaughter-house pork to make a man of. Give me a wildness whose glance no civilization can endure,—as if we lived on the marrow of koodoos devoured raw.

I believe in the forest, the meadow, and the night when the corn grows. We need to add some hemlock-spruce or arbor-vitae to our tea. There's a difference between eating and drinking for strength and just indulging. The Hottentots eagerly eat the marrow of the koodoo and other antelopes raw, just as a natural part of their diet. Some of our Northern Indians eat the raw marrow of the Arctic reindeer, along with various other parts, including the soft tips of the antlers. In this respect, they might have outsmarted the chefs in Paris. They consume what usually goes to waste. This is probably better than grain-fed beef and factory-farmed pork for building a strong person. Give me a wildness whose gaze no civilization can withstand—as if we lived off the raw marrow of koodoos.

There are some intervals which border the strain of the wood-thrush, to which I would migrate,—wild lands where no settler has squatted; to which, methinks, I am already acclimated.

There are certain areas that are on the edge of the wood-thrush's call, to which I would move—untamed places where no settlers have claimed land; to which, I feel, I am already adapted.

The African hunter Cummings tells us that the skin of the eland, as well as that of most other antelopes just killed, emits the most delicious perfume of trees and grass. I would have every man so much like a wild antelope, so much a part and parcel of Nature, that his very person should thus sweetly advertise our senses of his presence, and remind us of those parts of Nature which he most haunts. I feel no disposition to be satirical, when the trapper’s coat emits the odor of musquash even; it is a sweeter scent to me than that which commonly exhales from the merchant’s or the scholar’s garments. When I go into their wardrobes and handle their vestments, I am reminded of no grassy plains and flowery meads which they have frequented, but of dusty merchants’ exchanges and libraries rather.

The African hunter Cummings tells us that the skin of the eland, like that of most other recently killed antelopes, gives off a wonderful scent of trees and grass. I wish every man could be like a wild antelope, so connected to Nature that his very being would sweetly alert our senses to his presence and remind us of the natural places he loves. I don’t feel inclined to be sarcastic, even when the trapper’s coat carries the smell of muskrat; that scent is more pleasant to me than what usually comes from the clothes of merchants or scholars. When I go into their closets and touch their clothes, I’m reminded not of grassy plains and flowery meadows they’ve visited, but of dusty market exchanges and libraries instead.

A tanned skin is something more than respectable, and perhaps olive is a fitter color than white for a man,—a denizen of the woods. "The pale white man!" I do not wonder that the African pitied him. Darwin the naturalist says, "A white man bathing by the side of a Tahitian was like a plant bleached by the gardener’s art, compared with a fine, dark green one, growing vigorously in the open fields."

A tanned complexion is more than just respectable, and maybe an olive tone suits a man—someone who lives in the woods—better than pale skin. "The pale white man!" It doesn't surprise me that the African felt sorry for him. Darwin, the naturalist, noted, "A white man bathing next to a Tahitian looked like a plant that had been artificially bleached by a gardener compared to a strong, dark green one thriving in the open fields."

Ben Jonson exclaims,—

Ben Jonson says,—

"How close to good is what is fair!"

So I would say,—

So I’d say,—

How close to good is what is wild!

Life consists with wildness. The most alive is the wildest. Not yet subdued to man, its presence refreshes him. One who pressed forward incessantly and never rested from his labors, who grew fast and made infinite demands on life, would always find himself in a new country or wilderness, and surrounded by the raw material of life. He would be climbing over the prostrate stems of primitive forest-trees.

Life is all about wildness. The wildest is the most alive. Still untamed by humans, its presence rejuvenates us. Someone who constantly pushes forward and never takes a break from their work, who grows rapidly and makes endless demands on life, will always find themselves in new territory or wilderness, surrounded by the unrefined elements of life. They would be climbing over the fallen trunks of ancient trees.

Hope and the future for me are not in lawns and cultivated fields, not in towns and cities, but in the impervious and quaking swamps. When, formerly, I have analyzed my partiality for some farm which I had contemplated purchasing, I have frequently found that I was attracted solely by a few square rods of impermeable and unfathomable bog,—a natural sink in one corner of it. That was the jewel which dazzled me. I derive more of my subsistence from the swamps which surround my native town than from the cultivated gardens in the village. There are no richer parterres to my eyes than the dense beds of dwarf andromeda (Cassandra calyculata) which cover these tender places on the earth’s surface. Botany cannot go farther than tell me the names of the shrubs which grow there,—the high-blueberry, panicled andromeda, lamb-kill, azalea, and rhodora,—all standing in the quaking sphagnum. I often think that I should like to have my house front on this mass of dull red bushes, omitting other flower pots and borders, transplanted spruce and trim box, even graveled walks,—to have this fertile spot under my windows, not a few imported barrow-fulls of soil only to cover the sand which was thrown out in digging the cellar. Why not put my house, my parlor, behind this plot, instead of behind that meager assemblage of curiosities, that poor apology for a Nature and Art, which I call my front-yard? It is an effort to clear up and make a decent appearance when the carpenter and mason have departed, though done as much for the passer-by as the dweller within. The most tasteful front-yard fence was never an agreeable object of study to me; the most elaborate ornaments, acorn-tops, or what not, soon wearied and disgusted me. Bring your sills up to the very edge of the swamp, then, (though it may not be the best place for a dry cellar,) so that there be no access on that side to citizens. Front-yards are not made to walk in, but, at most, through, and you could go in the back way.

Hope and my future aren’t in lawns and cultivated fields, nor in towns and cities, but in the dense and shifting swamps. When I’ve looked back at my interest in a farm I thought about buying, I often found I was drawn in mainly by a few square yards of impenetrable and mysterious bog—a natural sinkhole in one corner. That was the gem that captivated me. I get more of my sustenance from the swamps surrounding my hometown than from the tended gardens in the village. There are no richer flower beds to me than the thick patches of dwarf andromeda (Cassandra calyculata) that blanket these delicate areas on the earth’s surface. Botany can tell me the names of the shrubs that grow there—the high blueberry, panicled andromeda, lamb-kill, azalea, and rhodora—all standing in the spongy sphagnum. I often think I’d rather have my house overlooking this mass of dull red bushes, skipping other flower pots and borders, transplanted spruce, and neatly trimmed box, even graveled paths—wanting this fertile patch right under my windows, rather than just a few imported loads of soil to cover the sand excavated for the basement. Why not position my house, my living room, behind this plot instead of behind that meager collection of oddities, that poor imitation of Nature and Art, which I call my front yard? It’s a struggle to tidy up and make it look presentable when the carpenter and mason are gone, even if it’s done as much for those passing by as it is for those living there. The most stylish front yard fence has never interested me; the most elaborate decorations, acorn caps, or whatever, soon bored and disgusted me. So, I’d say bring your foundations right up to the edge of the swamp (even if it’s not the best spot for a dry basement), ensuring there’s no access on that side for neighbors. Front yards aren’t made for strolling in, but at most for walking through, and you could always enter through the back.

Yes, though you may think me perverse, if it were proposed to me to dwell in the neighborhood of the most beautiful garden that ever human art contrived, or else of a Dismal swamp, I should certainly decide for the swamp. How vain, then, have been all your labors, citizens, for me!

Yes, although you might think I'm strange, if I had the choice between living near the most beautiful garden ever created by human hands or near a gloomy swamp, I would definitely choose the swamp. How futile all your efforts have been, citizens, for me!

My spirits infallibly rise in proportion to the outward dreariness. Give me the ocean, the desert, or the wilderness! In the desert, pure air and solitude compensate for want of moisture and fertility. The traveler Burton says of it,—"Your morale improves; you become frank and cordial, hospitable and single-minded.... In the desert, spirituous liquors excite only disgust. There is a keen enjoyment in a mere animal existence." They who have been traveling long on the steppes of Tartary say,—"On reëntering cultivated lands, the agitation, perplexity, and turmoil of civilization oppressed and suffocated us; the air seemed to fail us, and we felt every moment as if about to die of asphyxia." When I would recreate myself, I seek the darkest wood, the thickest and most interminable, and, to the citizen, most dismal swamp. I enter a swamp as a sacred place,—a sanctum sanctorum. There is the strength, the marrow of Nature. The wild-wood covers the virgin mold,—and the same soil is good for men and for trees. A man’s health requires as many acres of meadow to his prospect as his farm does loads of muck. There are the strong meats on which he feeds. A town is saved, not more by the righteous men in it than by the woods and swamps that surround it. A township where one primitive forest waves above, while another primitive forest rots below,—such a town is fitted to raise not only corn and potatoes, but poets and philosophers for the coming ages. In such a soil grew Homer and Confucius and the rest, and out of such a wilderness comes the Reformer eating locusts and wild honey.

My spirits always lift when everything around seems bleak. Give me the ocean, the desert, or the wilderness! In the desert, the clean air and solitude make up for the lack of water and fertility. The traveler Burton says, "Your morale improves; you become open and friendly, hospitable and straightforward.... In the desert, alcoholic drinks only bring disgust. There’s a pure enjoyment in simple existence." Those who have traveled long on the steppes of Tartary say, "When we returned to cultivated lands, the confusion, worry, and chaos of civilization overwhelmed and choked us; the air felt stifling, and we constantly felt like we were about to suffocate." When I want to relax, I go to the darkest, thickest, and most endless swamp, which seems gloomy to city folks. I enter a swamp like it’s a sacred space—a sanctum sanctorum. There lies the essence, the core of Nature. The wild woods cover the untouched soil, and the same earth is good for both people and trees. A person’s health needs as many acres of meadow in their view as their farm does loads of fertilizer. There are the wholesome foods that nourish him. A town is sustained, not just by the good people within it, but also by the woods and swamps surrounding it. A town where one ancient forest stands tall above while another decays beneath—it’s a place that can produce not only crops like corn and potatoes but also poets and philosophers for future generations. From such fertile ground sprang Homer and Confucius and others, and from such wilderness emerges the Reformer who feeds on locusts and wild honey.

To preserve wild animals implies generally the creation of a forest for them to dwell in or resort to. So it is with man. A hundred years ago they sold bark in our streets peeled from our own woods. In the very aspect of those primitive and rugged trees, there was, methinks, a tanning principle which hardened and consolidated the fibers of men’s thoughts. Ah! already I shudder for these comparatively degenerate days of my native village, when you cannot collect a load of bark of good thickness,—and we no longer produce tar and turpentine.

To protect wild animals usually means creating a forest for them to live in or visit. It's the same for humans. A hundred years ago, they sold bark on our streets that was stripped from our own forests. Even in the look of those rough and ancient trees, there was, I think, a quality that strengthened and solidified people’s thoughts. Ah! I already feel uneasy about these relatively poorer days in my hometown when you can't gather a decent load of thick bark—and we no longer make tar and turpentine.

The civilized nations—Greece, Rome, England—have been sustained by the primitive forests which anciently rotted where they stand. They survive as long as the soil is not exhausted. Alas for human culture! little is to be expected of a nation, when the vegetable mould is exhausted, and it is compelled to make manure of the bones of its fathers. There the poet sustains himself merely by his own superfluous fat, and the philosopher comes down on his marrow-bones.

The civilized nations—Greece, Rome, England—have thrived thanks to the ancient forests that used to decay where they stood. They continue to exist as long as the soil isn't depleted. What a pity for human culture! Not much can be expected from a nation when the rich earth is gone, forcing it to use the bones of its ancestors as fertilizer. In such a place, the poet survives solely on his own excess, while the philosopher struggles on his knees.

It is said to be the task of the American "to work the virgin soil," and that "agriculture here already assumes proportions unknown everywhere else." I think that the farmer displaces the Indian even because he redeems the meadow, and so makes himself stronger and in some respects more natural. I was surveying for a man the other day a single straight line one hundred and thirty-two rods long, through a swamp, at whose entrance might have been written the words which Dante read over the entrance to the infernal regions,—"Leave all hope, ye that enter,"—that is, of ever getting out again; where at one time I saw my employer actually up to his neck and swimming for his life in his property, though it was still winter. He had another similar swamp which I could not survey at all, because it was completely under water, and nevertheless, with regard to a third swamp, which I did survey from a distance, he remarked to me, true to his instincts, that he would not part with it for any consideration, on account of the mud which it contained. And that man intends to put a girdling ditch round the whole in the course of forty months, and so redeem it by the magic of his spade. I refer to him only as the type of a class.

It’s said that it’s the American’s job to "work the virgin soil," and that "agriculture here is growing at a rate unlike anywhere else." I believe that the farmer replaces the Native American because he cultivates the land, making himself stronger and, in some ways, more in tune with nature. The other day, I was surveying a straight line one hundred and thirty-two rods long through a swamp, where you could have put up a sign similar to the words Dante read at the entrance to the underworld—"Abandon all hope, ye who enter here"—meaning there was no way out. At one point, I saw my employer literally swimming for his life, completely submerged in his own property, despite it still being winter. He had another swamp that I couldn’t survey at all because it was entirely underwater, and yet, regarding a third swamp that I did survey from a distance, he told me, staying true to his instincts, that he wouldn’t sell it for anything because of the mud it held. That guy plans to dig a ditch around the whole thing in the next forty months and turn it into something useful with his shovel. I mention him just as a representative of a larger group.

The weapons with which we have gained our most important victories, which should be handed down as heirlooms from father to son, are not the sword and the lance, but the bushwhack, the turf-cutter, the spade, and the bog-hoe, rusted with the blood of many a meadow, and begrimed with the dust of many a hard-fought field. The very winds blew the Indian’s cornfield into the meadow, and pointed out the way which he had not the skill to follow. He had no better implement with which to intrench himself in the land than a clam-shell. But the farmer is armed with plow and spade.

The tools that have secured our greatest victories, which should be passed down from father to son, are not the sword and spear, but the bushwhacker, the turf cutter, the shovel, and the bog hoe, stained with the blood of many fields and covered in the dust of numerous battles. The winds swept the Indian's cornfield into the meadow and showed him the path he couldn't navigate. His only tool to claim the land was a clam shell. But the farmer is equipped with plow and shovel.

In literature it is only the wild that attracts us. Dullness is but another name for tameness. It is the uncivilized free and wild thinking in Hamlet and the Iliad, in all the scriptures and mythologies, not learned in the schools, that delights us. As the wild duck is more swift and beautiful than the tame, so is the wild—the mallard—thought, which 'mid falling dews wings its way above the fens. A truly good book is something as natural, and as unexpectedly and unaccountably fair and perfect, as a wild flower discovered on the prairies of the West or in the jungles of the East. Genius is a light which makes the darkness visible, like the lightning’s flash, which perchance shatters the temple of knowledge itself,—and not a taper lighted at the hearthstone of the race, which pales before the light of common day.

In literature, we are only drawn to the wild. Boredom is just another word for being tame. It's the uncivilized, free, and wild thinking found in Hamlet and the Iliad, in all scriptures and mythologies that aren't taught in schools, that fascinates us. Just as the wild duck is faster and more beautiful than its domesticated counterpart, so too is the wild—the mallard—that soars above the wetlands at dawn. A truly great book is something natural, unexpectedly beautiful and perfect, like a wildflower found in the prairies of the West or in the jungles of the East. Genius is a light that reveals the darkness, similar to a flash of lightning that might just shatter the very foundations of knowledge itself—not a flickering candle lit at home, which dims in comparison to the brightness of day.

English literature, from the days of the minstrels to the Lake Poets,—Chaucer and Spenser and Milton, and even Shakespeare, included,—breathes no quite fresh and, in this sense, wild strain. It is an essentially tame and civilized literature, reflecting Greece and Rome. Her wilderness is a green wood,—her wild man a Robin Hood. There is plenty of genial love of Nature, but not so much of Nature herself. Her chronicles inform us when her wild animals, but not when the wild man in her, became extinct.

English literature, from the days of the minstrels to the Lake Poets—including Chaucer, Spenser, Milton, and even Shakespeare—does not have a completely fresh and wild vibe. It is fundamentally tame and civilized, reflecting influences from Greece and Rome. Its wilderness is a lush forest, and its wild man is Robin Hood. There's a lot of heartfelt admiration for Nature, but not as much of Nature itself. The records tell us about when the wild animals disappeared, but not when the wild spirit within it vanished.

The science of Humboldt is one thing, poetry is another thing. The poet to-day, notwithstanding all the discoveries of science, and the accumulated learning of mankind, enjoys no advantage over Homer.

The science of Humboldt is one thing, poetry is another. The poet today, despite all the discoveries of science and the accumulated knowledge of humanity, has no advantage over Homer.

Where is the literature which gives expression to Nature? He would be a poet who could impress the winds and streams into his service, to speak for him; who nailed words to their primitive senses, as farmers drive down stakes in the spring, which the frost has heaved; who derived his words as often as he used them,—transplanted them to his page with earth adhering to their roots; whose words were so true and fresh and natural that they would appear to expand like the buds at the approach of spring, though they lay half-smothered between two musty leaves in a library,—ay, to bloom and bear fruit there, after their kind, annually, for the faithful reader, in sympathy with surrounding Nature.

Where is the literature that captures the essence of Nature? A true poet would be someone who could harness the winds and streams to speak for him; who would stick words to their original meanings, just as farmers drive stakes into the ground in spring after the frost has pushed them up; who would revive his words as often as he used them—transplanting them to his page with dirt still on their roots; whose words are so authentic and fresh and natural that they seem to blossom like buds with the arrival of spring, even if they’re buried between two dusty pages in a library—yes, to bloom and bear fruit there, every year, for the devoted reader, in harmony with the surrounding Nature.

I do not know of any poetry to quote which adequately expresses this yearning for the Wild. Approached from this side, the best poetry is tame. I do not know where to find in any literature, ancient or modern, any account which contents me of that Nature with which even I am acquainted. You will perceive that I demand something which no Augustan nor Elizabethan age, which no culture, in short, can give. Mythology comes nearer to it than anything. How much more fertile a Nature, at least, has Grecian mythology its root in than English literature! Mythology is the crop which the Old World bore before its soil was exhausted, before the fancy and imagination were affected with blight; and which it still bears, wherever its pristine vigor is unabated. All other literatures endure only as the elms which overshadow our houses; but this is like the great dragon-tree of the Western Isles, as old as mankind, and, whether that does or not, will endure as long; for the decay of other literatures makes the soil in which it thrives.

I don’t know of any poetry that captures this longing for the Wild. From this perspective, the best poetry feels restrained. I can't find any account in any literature, ancient or modern, that satisfies me regarding that Nature I'm familiar with. You'll notice I’m asking for something that neither the Augustan nor Elizabethan eras, nor any culture, can provide. Mythology comes closer than anything else. Grecian mythology, at least, has a much richer connection to Nature than English literature! Mythology is the harvest that the Old World produced before its soil became depleted, before creativity and imagination were affected; and it continues to thrive wherever its original strength remains intact. All other literatures last only like the elms that shade our homes; but mythology is like the great dragon tree of the Western Isles, as ancient as humanity itself, and it will endure as long, regardless of what happens, because the decline of other literatures enriches the ground where it flourishes.

The West is preparing to add its fables to those of the East. The valleys of the Ganges, the Nile, and the Rhine, having yielded their crop, it remains to be seen what the valleys of the Amazon, the Plate, the Orinoco, the St. Lawrence, and the Mississippi will produce. Perchance, when, in the course of ages, American liberty has become a fiction of the past,—as it is to some extent a fiction of the present,—the poets of the world will be inspired by American mythology.

The West is getting ready to contribute its stories alongside those of the East. With the valleys of the Ganges, the Nile, and the Rhine having provided their harvest, we now have to wait and see what the valleys of the Amazon, the Plate, the Orinoco, the St. Lawrence, and the Mississippi will offer. Maybe, when, over time, American liberty has faded into a myth—just as it is somewhat a myth now—the poets of the world will draw inspiration from American legends.

The wildest dreams of wild men, even, are not the less true, though they may not recommend themselves to the sense which is most common among Englishmen and Americans to-day. It is not every truth that recommends itself to the common sense. Nature has a place for the wild clematis as well as for the cabbage. Some expressions of truth are reminiscent,—others merely sensible, as the phrase is,—others prophetic. Some forms of disease, even, may prophesy forms of health. The geologist has discovered that the figures of serpents, griffins, flying dragons, and other fanciful embellishments of heraldry, have their prototypes in the forms of fossil species which were extinct before man was created, and hence "indicate a faint and shadowy knowledge of a previous state of organic existence." The Hindoos dreamed that the earth rested on an elephant, and the elephant on a tortoise, and the tortoise on a serpent; and though it may be an unimportant coincidence, it will not be out of place here to state, that a fossil tortoise has lately been discovered in Asia large enough to support an elephant. I confess that I am partial to these wild fancies, which transcend the order of time and development. They are the sublimest recreation of the intellect. The partridge loves peas, but not those that go with her into the pot.

The wildest dreams of wild men, even, are still true, even if they might not appeal to the common sense of Englishmen and Americans today. Not every truth appeals to common sense. Nature has a place for wild clematis as well as for cabbage. Some expressions of truth are reminiscent, others are merely sensible, and some are prophetic. Even some forms of disease might predict forms of health. Geologists have found that the images of serpents, griffins, flying dragons, and other fanciful elements of heraldry have their counterparts in fossil species that went extinct before humans existed, suggesting a faint and shadowy understanding of a previous state of organic life. The Hindoos believed that the earth rested on an elephant, the elephant on a tortoise, and the tortoise on a serpent; and while it may just be a coincidence, it’s worth mentioning that a fossil tortoise large enough to support an elephant was recently discovered in Asia. I admit that I’m fond of these wild fancies that transcend time and development. They are the highest form of mental recreation. The partridge loves peas, but not the ones that end up in her pot.

In short, all good things are wild and free. There is something in a strain of music, whether produced by an instrument or by the human voice,—take the sound of a bugle in a summer night, for instance,—which by its wildness, to speak without satire, reminds me of the cries emitted by wild beasts in their native forests. It is so much of their wildness as I can understand. Give me for my friends and neighbors wild men, not tame ones. The wildness of the savage is but a faint symbol of the awful ferity with which good men and lovers meet.

In short, all good things are wild and free. There’s something in a piece of music, whether it comes from an instrument or the human voice—like the sound of a bugle on a summer night, for example—that, in its wildness, reminds me of the cries of wild animals in their natural habitats. That’s as much of their wildness as I can grasp. I’d prefer to have wild men as my friends and neighbors, not tame ones. The wildness of the savage is just a faint echo of the intense passion with which good men and lovers come together.

I love even to see the domestic animals reassert their native rights,—any evidence that they have not wholly lost their original wild habits and vigor; as when my neighbor’s cow breaks out of her pasture early in the spring and boldly swims the river, a cold, gray tide, twenty-five or thirty rods wide, swollen by the melted snow. It is the buffalo crossing the Mississippi. This exploit confers some dignity on the herd in my eyes,—already dignified. The seeds of instinct are preserved under the thick hides of cattle and horses, like seeds in the bowels of the earth, an indefinite period.

I love even seeing domestic animals reclaim their natural instincts—any sign that they haven't completely lost their original wild ways and energy; like when my neighbor's cow escapes her pasture early in the spring and confidently swims across the river, a cold, gray expanse, twenty-five or thirty rods wide, swollen from the melting snow. It's like the buffalo crossing the Mississippi. This feat adds a certain dignity to the herd in my eyes—already dignified. The seeds of instinct are preserved beneath the thick hides of cattle and horses, like seeds buried deep in the earth for an indefinite time.

Any sportiveness in cattle is unexpected. I saw one day a herd of a dozen bullocks and cows running about and frisking in unwieldy sport, like huge rats, even like kittens. They shook their heads, raised their tails, and rushed up and down a hill, and I perceived by their horns, as well as by their activity, their relation to the deer tribe. But, alas! a sudden loud Whoa! would have damped their ardor at once, reduced them from venison to beef, and stiffened their sides and sinews like the locomotive. Who but the Evil One has cried, "Whoa!" to mankind? Indeed, the life of cattle, like that of many men, is but a sort of locomotiveness; they move a side at a time, and man, by his machinery, is meeting the horse and the ox half-way. Whatever part the whip has touched is thenceforth palsied. Who would ever think of a side of any of the supple cat tribe, as we speak of a side of beef?

Any playfulness in cattle is surprising. One day, I saw a group of a dozen bullocks and cows running around and frolicking awkwardly, like giant rats or even kittens. They shook their heads, lifted their tails, and dashed up and down a hill, and I could tell by their horns, as well as their energy, that they were related to deer. But, sadly! a sudden loud Whoa! would have killed their excitement immediately, turning them from venison to beef, and stiffening their bodies and muscles like a train. Who but the Devil has shouted "Whoa!" to humanity? Truly, the life of cattle, like that of many people, is just a kind of locomotion; they move one side at a time, and humans, with their machines, are meeting the horse and the ox halfway. Whatever part the whip has struck becomes numb. Who would ever consider a side of any of the agile cat family, as we refer to a side of beef?

I rejoice that horses and steers have to be broken before they can be made the slaves of men, and that men themselves have some wild oats still left to sow before they become submissive members of society. Undoubtedly, all men are not equally fit subjects for civilization; and because the majority, like dogs and sheep, are tame by inherited disposition, this is no reason why the others should have their natures broken that they may be reduced to the same level. Men are in the main alike, but they were made several in order that they might be various. If a low use is to be served, one man will do nearly or quite as well as another; if a high one, individual excellence is to be regarded. Any man can stop a hole to keep the wind away, but no other man could serve so rare a use as the author of this illustration did. Confucius says,—"The skins of the tiger and the leopard, when they are tanned, are as the skins of the dog and the sheep tanned." But it is not the part of a true culture to tame tigers, any more than it is to make sheep ferocious; and tanning their skins for shoes is not the best use to which they can be put.

I’m glad that horses and cattle need to be trained before they can become the property of people, and that people still have some wildness left in them before they conform to society. Clearly, not all people are equally suited for civilization; and just because most, like dogs and sheep, are naturally docile, it doesn’t mean that the others should have their natures diminished to fit in. People are mostly similar, but they were created to be different so that they could be diverse. If a simple task is to be done, one person will do just as well as another; but for a more significant purpose, individual excellence matters. Any person can plug a hole to keep the wind out, but no one else could accomplish such a rare task as the author of this example did. Confucius says, "The skins of the tiger and the leopard, when they are tanned, are like the skins of the dog and the sheep when tanned." But true culture doesn’t involve taming tigers, just as it doesn’t mean making sheep aggressive; and using their skins for shoes isn’t the best way to utilize them.

 

When looking over a list of men’s names in a foreign language, as of military officers, or of authors who have written on a particular subject, I am reminded once more that there is nothing in a name. The name Menschikoff, for instance, has nothing in it to my ears more human than a whisker, and it may belong to a rat. As the names of the Poles and Russians are to us, so are ours to them. It is as if they had been named by the child’s rigmarole,—Iery wiery ichery van, tittle-tol-tan. I see in my mind a herd of wild creatures swarming over the earth, and to each the herdsman has affixed some barbarous sound in his own dialect. The names of men are of course as cheap and meaningless as Bose and Tray, the names of dogs.

When I look at a list of men's names in a foreign language, like military officers or writers on a specific topic, I'm reminded again that a name means nothing. Take the name Menschikoff, for example; it sounds no more human to me than a whisker, and it could belong to a rat. Just as Polish and Russian names sound strange to us, our names sound just as foreign to them. It’s like they were named by a child's nonsense rhyme—Iery wiery ichery van, tittle-tol-tan. I picture a herd of wild creatures roaming the earth, each labeled with some strange sound from the herdsman's language. Men's names are just as cheap and meaningless as Bose and Tray, the names of dogs.

Methinks it would be some advantage to philosophy, if men were named merely in the gross, as they are known. It would be necessary only to know the genus and perhaps the race or variety, to know the individual. We are not prepared to believe that every private soldier in a Roman army had a name of his own,—because we have not supposed that he had a character of his own. At present our only true names are nicknames. I knew a boy who, from his peculiar energy, was called "Buster" by his playmates, and this rightly supplanted his Christian name. Some travelers tell us that an Indian had no name given him at first, but earned it, and his name was his fame; and among some tribes he acquired a new name with every new exploit. It is pitiful when a man bears a name for convenience merely, who has earned neither name nor fame.

I think it would benefit philosophy if people were named in a general way, like how they are known. It would only be necessary to know the type and perhaps the background or category to identify the individual. We don't really believe that every soldier in a Roman army had a personal name—because we don't assume he had a distinctive character. Right now, our only true names are nicknames. I knew a boy who, because of his unique energy, was called "Buster" by his friends, and that name effectively replaced his given name. Some travelers say that an Indian wasn't given a name at first but earned it, and his name reflected his reputation; and in some tribes, he received a new name with each new achievement. It's sad when a person carries a name just for convenience, having earned neither a name nor a reputation.

I will not allow mere names to make distinctions for me, but still see men in herds for all them. A familiar name cannot make a man less strange to me. It may be given to a savage who retains in secret his own wild title earned in the woods. We have a wild savage in us, and a savage name is perchance somewhere recorded as ours. I see that my neighbor, who bears the familiar epithet William, or Edwin, takes it off with his jacket. It does not adhere to him when asleep or in anger, or aroused by any passion or inspiration. I seem to hear pronounced by some of his kin at such a time his original wild name in some jaw-breaking or else melodious tongue.

I won’t let just names define who I am, but I still see people in groups because of them. A familiar name doesn’t make someone any less unfamiliar to me. It could belong to a savage who secretly holds onto his own wild name earned in the wilderness. We all have a wild side, and maybe there’s a savage name somewhere that belongs to us. I notice that my neighbor, who goes by the common name William or Edwin, sheds it like a jacket. It doesn’t stick to him when he’s asleep, angry, or overcome by any emotion or inspiration. I can almost hear some of his relatives calling him by his original wild name in some challenging or beautiful language during those moments.

 

Here is this vast, savage, howling mother of ours, Nature, lying all around, with such beauty, and such affection for her children, as the leopard; and yet we are so early weaned from her breast to society, to that culture which is exclusively an interaction of man on man,—a sort of breeding in and in, which produces at most a merely English nobility, a civilization destined to have a speedy limit.

Here is this vast, wild, howling mother of ours, Nature, surrounding us with such beauty and such love for her children, like a leopard; and yet we are weaned from her nurturing so early to join society, to that culture which is solely an interaction among humans—a kind of inbreeding that produces, at most, just an English nobility, a civilization that is bound to have a quick end.

In society, in the best institutions of men, it is easy to detect a certain precocity. When we should still be growing children, we are already little men. Give me a culture which imports much muck from the meadows, and deepens the soil,—not that which trusts to heating manures, and improved implements and modes of culture only!

In society, even in the best institutions, it's easy to notice a kind of early maturity. When we should still be growing up, we're already acting like adults. I want a culture that brings in a lot of natural nutrients from the fields and enriches the soil—not one that relies solely on artificial fertilizers and advanced tools and farming methods!

Many a poor, sore-eyed student that I have heard of would grow faster, both intellectually and physically, if, instead of sitting up so very late, he honestly slumbered a fool’s allowance.

Many tired, worn-out students I've heard about would progress more quickly, both mentally and physically, if they actually got a reasonable amount of sleep instead of staying up so late.

There may be an excess even of informing light. Niepce, a Frenchman, discovered "actinism," that power in the sun’s rays which produces a chemical effect,—that granite rocks, and stone structures, and statues of metal, "are all alike destructively acted upon during the hours of sunshine, and, but for provisions of Nature no less wonderful, would soon perish under the delicate touch of the most subtile of the agencies of the universe." But he observed that "those bodies which underwent this change during the daylight possessed the power of restoring themselves to their original conditions during the hours of night, when this excitement was no longer influencing them." Hence it has been inferred that "the hours of darkness are as necessary to the inorganic creation as we know night and sleep are to the organic kingdom." Not even does the moon shine every night, but gives place to darkness.

There can be too much light even when it’s meant to inform. Niepce, a Frenchman, discovered "actinism," the ability of sunlight to create a chemical effect—granite rocks, stone structures, and metal statues are all similarly damaged during sunshine hours, and without some truly remarkable provisions from Nature, they would quickly disintegrate under the subtle influence of the universe's most delicate forces. However, he noticed that "those materials that underwent this change during the day could restore themselves to their original states at night, when this influence was no longer affecting them." Therefore, it has been concluded that "the hours of darkness are just as crucial to the inorganic world as we understand night and sleep to be for the organic world." The moon doesn't shine every night either; it gives way to darkness.

I would not have every man nor every part of a man cultivated, any more than I would have every acre of earth cultivated: part will be tillage, but the greater part will be meadow and forest, not only serving an immediate use, but preparing a mould against a distant future, by the annual decay of the vegetation which it supports.

I wouldn’t want every person or every aspect of a person to be developed, just like I wouldn’t want every piece of land to be farmed: some areas should be cultivated, but most should remain as meadows and forests. These areas not only provide immediate benefits but also help enrich the soil for the future through the annual decay of the plants that grow there.

There are other letters for the child to learn than those which Cadmus invented. The Spaniards have a good term to express this wild and dusky knowledge—Gramática parda, tawny grammar,—a kind of mother-wit derived from that same leopard to which I have referred.

There are other letters for the child to learn besides the ones Cadmus created. The Spaniards have a great term for this wild and obscure knowledge—Gramática parda, or tawny grammar—a kind of natural intelligence that comes from the same leopard I mentioned earlier.

We have heard of a Society for the Diffusion of Useful Knowledge. It is said that knowledge is power; and the like. Methinks there is equal need of a Society for the Diffusion of Useful Ignorance, what we will call Beautiful Knowledge, a knowledge useful in a higher sense: for what is most of our boasted so-called knowledge but a conceit that we know something, which robs us of the advantage of our actual ignorance? What we call knowledge is often our positive ignorance; ignorance our negative knowledge. By long years of patient industry and reading of the newspapers,—for what are the libraries of science but files of newspapers?—a man accumulates a myriad facts, lays them up in his memory, and then when in some spring of his life he saunters abroad into the Great Fields of thought, he, as it were, goes to grass like a horse, and leaves all his harness behind in the stable. I would say to the Society for the Diffusion of Useful Knowledge, sometimes,—Go to grass. You have eaten hay long enough. The spring has come with its green crop. The very cows are driven to their country pastures before the end of May; though I have heard of one unnatural farmer who kept his cow in the barn and fed her on hay all the year round. So, frequently, the Society for the Diffusion of Useful Knowledge treats its cattle.

We’ve heard of a Society for the Diffusion of Useful Knowledge. It’s said that knowledge is power and all that. I think there’s an equal need for a Society for the Diffusion of Useful Ignorance, which we’ll call Beautiful Knowledge, a knowledge that’s useful in a deeper sense: because what we proudly call knowledge is often just a belief that we know something, which takes away the advantage of our actual ignorance. What we call knowledge is often our actual ignorance; ignorance is our unrecognized knowledge. After years of hard work and reading the news—because what are the libraries of science but archives of newspapers?—a person gathers countless facts, stores them in their memory, and then when they finally venture out into the vast fields of thought, it’s like they become like a horse that’s left its harness behind in the barn. I would tell the Society for the Diffusion of Useful Knowledge sometimes, “Go to pasture. You’ve eaten hay long enough. Spring has arrived with its fresh crops. Even the cows are taken to their pastures before the end of May; though I’ve heard of one strange farmer who kept his cow in the barn and fed her hay all year round.” Often, this is how the Society for the Diffusion of Useful Knowledge treats its members.

A man’s ignorance sometimes is not only useful, but beautiful,—while his knowledge, so called, is oftentimes worse than useless, besides being ugly. Which is the best man to deal with,—he who knows nothing about a subject, and, what is extremely rare, knows that he knows nothing, or he who really knows something about it, but thinks that he knows all?

A man's ignorance can sometimes be not just useful, but also beautiful—while his so-called knowledge is often worse than useless and even unattractive. So, which is the better person to engage with: the one who knows nothing about a topic and, what's extremely rare, realizes he knows nothing, or the one who knows a bit about it but believes he knows everything?

My desire for knowledge is intermittent; but my desire to bathe my head in atmospheres unknown to my feet is perennial and constant. The highest that we can attain to is not Knowledge, but Sympathy with Intelligence. I do not know that this higher knowledge amounts to anything more definite than a novel and grand surprise on a sudden revelation of the insufficiency of all that we called Knowledge before,—a discovery that there are more things in heaven and earth than are dreamed of in our philosophy. It is the lighting up of the mist by the sun. Man cannot know in any higher sense than this, any more than he can look serenely and with impunity in the face of sun: 'Ως τἱ νοὡν, οὑ κενον νοἡσεις,—"You will not perceive that, as perceiving a particular thing," say the Chaldean Oracles.

My thirst for knowledge comes and goes, but my desire to explore realms beyond my current understanding is always strong and consistent. The greatest achievement we can reach isn’t just Knowledge, but a connection with understanding. I don’t think this deeper knowledge is anything more specific than a stunning realization of how limited our past understanding was—a revelation that there are more things in the universe than we ever imagined in our theories. It's like the sun breaking through the fog. A person can't truly know in a deeper sense, just like they can't safely look directly at the sun: As you think, so you shall become.,—"You will not perceive that, as perceiving a particular thing," say the Chaldean Oracles.

There is something servile in the habit of seeking after a law which we may obey. We may study the laws of matter at and for our convenience, but a successful life knows no law. It is an unfortunate discovery certainly, that of a law which binds us where we did not know before that we were bound. Live free, child of the mist,—and with respect to knowledge we are all children of the mist. The man who takes the liberty to live is superior to all the laws, by virtue of his relation to the law-maker. "That is active duty," says the Vishnu Purana, "which is not for our bondage; that is knowledge which is for our liberation: all other duty is good only unto weariness; all other knowledge is only the cleverness of an artist."

There’s something subservient about constantly looking for a rule to follow. We might study the laws of nature for our own benefit, but a truly fulfilling life isn’t bound by any rules. It’s certainly a disappointing realization to discover a law that limits us when we didn’t even know we were restricted. Live freely, child of the fog—when it comes to knowledge, we’re all children of the fog. The person who dares to truly live is above all laws because of their connection to the lawgiver. "That is true duty," says the Vishnu Purana, "which does not lead to our enslavement; that is knowledge which leads to our freedom: all other duty only leads to exhaustion; all other knowledge is merely the skill of an artist."

 

It is remarkable how few events or crises there are in our histories; how little exercised we have been in our minds; how few experiences we have had. I would fain be assured that I am growing apace and rankly, though my very growth disturb this dull equanimity,—though it be with struggle through long, dark, muggy nights or seasons of gloom. It would be well, if all our lives were a divine tragedy even, instead of this trivial comedy or farce. Dante, Bunyan, and others, appear to have been exercised in their minds more than we: they were subjected to a kind of culture such as our district schools and colleges do not contemplate. Even Mahomet, though many may scream at his name, had a good deal more to live for, ay, and to die for, than they have commonly.

It’s striking how few events or crises we experience in our lives; how little our minds have been challenged; how few real experiences we've actually had. I wish I could be sure that I’m growing rapidly and deeply, even if that growth disrupts this dull sense of calm—whether it comes from struggling through long, dark, humid nights or gloomy seasons. It would be better if our lives resembled a divine tragedy instead of this trivial comedy or farce. Dante, Bunyan, and others seemed to engage their minds far more than we do; they underwent a kind of intellectual development that our local schools and colleges don’t offer. Even Muhammad, despite how some people react to his name, had a lot more to live for, and yes, more to die for, than most people do today.

When, at rare intervals, some thought visits one, as perchance he is walking on a railroad, then indeed the cars go by without his hearing them. But soon, by some inexorable law, our life goes by and the cars return.

When, occasionally, a thought comes to you while you're walking on a railroad, the trains go by without you even noticing them. But soon, by some unavoidable law, life continues on and the trains come back.

"Soft breeze, wandering unseen,
And you bend the thistles around Loira of storms,
Traveler of the windy valleys, "Why did you leave my ear so soon?"

While almost all men feel an attraction drawing them to society, few are attracted strongly to Nature. In their relation to Nature men appear to me for the most part, notwithstanding their arts, lower than the animals. It is not often a beautiful relation, as in the case of the animals. How little appreciation of the beauty of the landscape there is among us! We have to be told that the Greeks called the world Κὁσμος, Beauty, or Order, but we do not see clearly why they did so, and we esteem it at best only a curious philological fact.

While almost all men feel a pull towards society, only a few are truly drawn to Nature. In their connection with Nature, men seem, for the most part, lower than animals, despite their arts. Their relationship isn't often a beautiful one, unlike that of animals. How little we appreciate the beauty of the landscape around us! We have to be reminded that the Greeks referred to the world as World, meaning Beauty or Order, but we don’t quite understand why they thought so, and we see it as nothing more than an interesting linguistic fact.

For my part, I feel that with regard to Nature I live a sort of border life, on the confines of a world into which I make occasional and transional and transient forays only, and my patriotism and allegiance to the State into whose territories I seem to retreat are those of a moss-trooper. Unto a life which I call natural I would gladly follow even a will-o'-the-wisp through bogs and sloughs unimaginable, but no moon nor firefly has shown me the causeway to it. Nature is a personality so vast and universal that we have never seen one of her features. The walker in the familiar fields which stretch around my native town sometimes finds himself in another land than is described in their owners’ deeds, as it were in some far-away field on the confines of the actual Concord, where her jurisdiction ceases, and the idea which the word Concord suggests ceases to be suggested. These farms which I have myself surveyed, these bounds which I have set up, appear dimly still as through a mist; but they have no chemistry to fix them; they fade from the surface of the glass; and the picture which the painter painted stands out dimly from beneath. The world with which we are commonly acquainted leaves no trace, and it will have no anniversary.

For my part, I feel like I live on the edge of Nature, just at the borders of a world I only occasionally and briefly explore, and my loyalty to the State that I seem to retreat into is that of a wanderer. I would gladly follow even a will-o'-the-wisp through unthinkable bogs and swamps toward a life that feels natural, but neither the moon nor a firefly has shown me the path to it. Nature is such a vast and universal presence that we have never truly seen any of her features. The walker in the familiar fields around my hometown sometimes finds himself in a different land than described in the deeds of the landowners, as if in some distant field beyond the actual Concord, where her influence ends, and the concept that the word Concord evokes also fades away. These farms I have surveyed, these boundaries I have marked, still appear vaguely to me, as if through a mist; but they have no lasting substance; they vanish from sight, and the image the painter created stands out faintly beneath. The world we usually know leaves no mark, and it won't have any anniversaries.

I took a walk on Spaulding’s Farm the other afternoon. I saw the setting sun lighting up the opposite side of a stately pine wood. Its golden rays straggled into the aisles of the wood as into some noble hall. I was impressed as if some ancient and altogether admirable and shining family had settled there in that part of the land called Concord, unknown to me,—to whom the sun was servant,—who had not gone into society in the village,—who had not been called on. I saw their park, their pleasure-ground, beyond through the wood, in Spaulding’s cranberry-meadow. The pines furnished them with gables as they grew. Their house was not obvious to vision; the trees grew through it. I do not know whether I heard the sounds of a suppressed hilarity or not. They seemed to recline on the sunbeams. They have sons and daughters. They are quite well. The farmer’s cart-path, which leads directly through their hall, does not in the least put them out,—as the muddy bottom of a pool is sometimes seen through the reflected skies. They never heard of Spaulding, and do not know that he is their neighbor,—notwithstanding I heard him whistle as he drove his team through the house. Nothing can equal the serenity of their lives. Their coat of arms is simply a lichen. I saw it painted on the pines and oaks. Their attics were in the tops of the trees. They are of no politics. There was no noise of labor. I did not perceive that they were weaving or spinning. Yet I did detect, when the wind lulled and hearing was done away, the finest imaginable sweet musical hum,—as of a distant hive in May, which perchance was the sound of their thinking. They had no idle thoughts, and no one without could see their work, for their industry was not as in knots and excrescences embayed.

I took a walk on Spaulding’s Farm the other afternoon. I saw the setting sun illuminating the opposite side of a grand pine forest. Its golden rays spread into the paths of the woods like they were entering a majestic hall. I felt as if some ancient and totally admirable family had settled in this part of the land known as Concord, unknown to me,—to whom the sun served,—who hadn’t socialized in the village,—who hadn’t been visited. I glimpsed their park, their recreational area, further back in the woods, in Spaulding’s cranberry meadow. The pines provided them with gables as they grew. Their house wasn’t visible; the trees intertwined with it. I’m not sure whether I heard echoes of muted laughter or not. They seemed to relax on the sunbeams. They have sons and daughters. They’re doing quite well. The farmer’s cart path, which goes straight through their hall, doesn’t disturb them at all,—just like the muddy bottom of a pool can sometimes be seen through the reflected sky. They’ve never heard of Spaulding and don’t even know he’s their neighbor,—even though I heard him whistle as he drove his team through their house. Nothing can match the peace of their lives. Their coat of arms is simply a lichen. I saw it painted on the pines and oaks. Their attics were in the treetops. They have no political affiliations. There was no sound of work. I didn’t notice them weaving or spinning. Yet I did sense, when the wind calmed and sound faded away, the most beautiful, sweet musical hum,—like a distant hive in May, which perhaps was the sound of their thoughts. They had no idle thoughts, and no one outside could see their work, because their productivity wasn’t tangled up or obvious.

But I find it difficult to remember them. They fade irrevocably out of my mind even now while I speak and endeavor to recall them, and recollect myself. It is only after a long and serious effort to recollect my best thoughts that I become again aware of their cohabitancy. If it were not for such families as this, I think I should move out of Concord.

But I find it hard to remember them. They fade away from my mind even as I speak and try to recall them and get myself together. It's only after a long and focused effort to remember my best thoughts that I become aware of their presence again. If it weren't for families like this, I think I would leave Concord.

We are accustomed to say in New England that few and fewer pigeons visit us every year. Our forests furnish no mast for them. So, it would seem, few and fewer thoughts visit each growing man from year to year, for the grove in our minds is laid waste,—sold to feed unnecessary fires of ambition, or sent to mill, and there is scarcely a twig left for them to perch on. They no longer build nor breed with us. In some more genial season, perchance, a faint shadow flits across the landscape of the mind, cast by the wings of some thought in its vernal or autumnal migration, but, looking up, we are unable to detect the substance of the thought itself. Our winged thoughts are turned to poultry. They no longer soar, and they attain only to a Shanghai and Cochin-China grandeur. Those gra-a-ate thoughts, those gra-a-ate men you hear of!

We often say in New England that fewer and fewer pigeons come to visit us each year. Our forests don't provide any food for them. It seems like fewer thoughts visit each growing person year after year because the grove in our minds has been cleared—sold to feed unnecessary fires of ambition, or ground up, leaving hardly a twig for them to rest on. They no longer build or reproduce with us. In some friendlier season, maybe a faint shadow flits across the landscape of the mind, cast by the wings of a thought during its spring or autumn migration, but when we look up, we can’t quite see the substance of the thought itself. Our winged thoughts have become like chickens. They no longer soar and only reach a level of Shanghai and Cochin-China grandeur. Those great thoughts, those great men you hear about!

 

We hug the earth,—how rarely we mount! Methinks we might elevate ourselves a little more. We might climb a tree, at least. I found my account in climbing a tree once. It was a tall white pine, on the top of a hill; and though I got well pitched, I was well paid for it, for I discovered new mountains in the horizon which I had never seen before,—so much more of the earth and the heavens. I might have walked about the foot of the tree for threescore years and ten, and yet I certainly should never have seen them. But, above all, I discovered around me,—it was near the end of June,—on the ends of the topmost branches only, a few minute and delicate red cone-like blossoms, the fertile flower of the white pine looking heavenward. I carried straightway to the village the topmost spire, and showed it to stranger jurymen who walked the streets,—for it was court-week,—and to farmers and lumber-dealers and wood-choppers and hunters, and not one had ever seen the like before, but they wondered as at a star dropped down. Tell of ancient architects finishing their works on the tops of columns as perfectly as on the lower and more visible parts! Nature has from the first expanded the minute blossoms of the forest only toward the heavens, above men’s heads and unobserved by them. We see only the flowers that are under our feet in the meadows. The pines have developed their delicate blossoms on the highest twigs of the wood every summer for ages, as well over the heads of Nature’s red children as of her white ones; yet scarcely a farmer or hunter in the land has ever seen them.

We hug the earth—how rarely do we rise up! I think we could lift ourselves a bit more. We could at least climb a tree. I once found it worthwhile to climb a tree. It was a tall white pine on top of a hill; and even though I struggled to balance, it was worth it because I discovered new mountains on the horizon that I had never seen before—so much more of the earth and the sky. I could have strolled around the base of that tree for sixty years and still never would have seen them. But most importantly, I noticed around me—it was near the end of June—a few tiny and delicate red cone-like flowers at the tips of the highest branches, the fertile flowers of the white pine reaching for the sky. I immediately took the topmost branch to the village and showed it to some strangers who were walking the streets since it was court week, and to farmers, lumberjacks, woodcutters, and hunters, and not one had ever seen anything like it before; they marveled like it was a star that had fallen. Think about ancient architects finishing their work on the tops of columns just as perfectly as they did on the lower, more visible parts! Nature has always grown the tiny flowers of the forest only toward the heavens, above people's heads and unnoticed by them. We only see the flowers that are right beneath our feet in the meadows. Pines have been producing their delicate blossoms on the highest twigs of the woods every summer for ages, above the heads of both Nature’s red children and her white ones; yet hardly any farmer or hunter in the land has ever seen them.

 

Above all, we cannot afford not to live in the present. He is blessed over all mortals who loses no moment of the passing life in remembering the past. Unless our philosophy hears the cock crow in every barn-yard within our horizon, it is belated. That sound commonly reminds us that we are growing rusty and antique in our employments and habits of thought. His philosophy comes down to a more recent time than ours. There is something suggested by it that is a newer testament,—the gospel according to this moment. He has not fallen astern; he has got up early, and kept up early, and to be where he is to be in season, in the foremost rank of time. It is an expression of the health and soundness of Nature, a brag for all the world,—healthiness as of a spring burst forth, a new fountain of the Muses, to celebrate this last instant of time. Where he lives no fugitive slave laws are passed. Who has not betrayed his master many times since last he heard that note?

Above all, we can't afford to stop living in the present. He is blessed above all others who doesn’t waste any moment of life by dwelling on the past. Unless our perspective hears the rooster crow in every yard within our view, it’s outdated. That sound usually reminds us that we’re becoming old-fashioned in our work and ways of thinking. His views are more current than ours. There’s something in them that suggests a new message—the gospel of this moment. He hasn’t fallen behind; he gets up early, stays alert, and is where he needs to be on time, at the forefront of the present. It’s a sign of the health and vitality of Nature, a proclamation to the world—a healthiness like a spring bursting forth, a new source of inspiration, to celebrate this very moment in time. Where he lives, no laws enforcing slavery are enacted. Who hasn’t betrayed their master many times since they last heard that crow?

The merit of this bird’s strain is in its freedom from all plaintiveness. The singer can easily move us to tears or to laughter, but where is he who can excite in us a pure morning joy? When, in doleful dumps, breaking the awful stillness of our wooden sidewalk on a Sunday, or, perchance, a watcher in the house of mourning, I hear a cockerel crow far or near, I think to myself, "There is one of us well, at any rate,"—and with a sudden gush return to my senses.

The value of this bird's song is in its complete absence of sadness. The singer can effortlessly bring us to tears or make us laugh, but who can inspire in us a pure morning joy? Whenever I'm feeling down, breaking the heavy silence of our quiet sidewalk on a Sunday, or perhaps as a bystander in a time of grief, I hear a rooster crowing nearby or in the distance, and I think to myself, "At least there’s one of us doing well,"—and with that thought, I suddenly feel more awake.

 

We had a remarkable sunset one day last November. I was walking in a meadow, the source of a small brook, when the sun at last, just before setting, after a cold gray day, reached a clear stratum in the horizon, and the softest, brightest morning sunlight fell on the dry grass and on the stems of the trees in the opposite horizon, and on the leaves of the shrub-oaks on the hill-side, while our shadows stretched long over the meadow eastward, as if we were the only motes in its beams. It was such a light as we could not have imagined a moment before, and the air also was so warm and serene that nothing was wanting to make a paradise of that meadow. When we reflected that this was not a solitary phenomenon, never to happen again, but that it would happen forever and ever an infinite number of evenings, and cheer and reassure the latest child that walked there, it was more glorious still.

We had an amazing sunset one day last November. I was walking in a meadow, the source of a small brook, when the sun finally, just before setting, broke through a clear patch on the horizon after a cold gray day. The softest, brightest morning light spilled over the dry grass and the tree trunks on the opposite side, and on the leaves of the shrub-oaks on the hillside, while our shadows stretched long across the meadow to the east, as if we were the only specks in its rays. The light was something we couldn't have imagined just moments before, and the air was warm and calm, making that meadow feel like paradise. When we realized this wasn't just a one-time event that would never happen again, but that it would occur endlessly, bringing joy and comfort to every child who walked there, it felt even more incredible.

The sun sets on some retired meadow, where no house is visible, with all the glory and splendor that it lavishes on cities, and perchance, as it has never set before,—where there is but a solitary marsh-hawk to have his wings gilded by it, or only a musquash looks out from his cabin, and there is some little black-veined brook in the midst of the marsh, just beginning to meander, winding slowly round a decaying stump. We walked in so pure and bright a light, gilding the withered grass and leaves, so softly and serenely bright, I thought I had never bathed in such a golden flood, without a ripple or a murmur to it. The west side of every wood and rising ground gleamed like the boundary of Elysium, and the sun on our backs seemed like a gentle herdsman driving us home at evening.

The sun sets over a quiet meadow, where no houses are seen, shining with all the beauty and splendor it gives to cities, perhaps like it has never set before—where there's just a lone marsh hawk getting its wings lit up by it, or only a muskrat peeking out from its den, and there's a small black-veined brook in the marsh, just starting to wind its way around a rotting stump. We walked in such pure and bright light, illuminating the dried grass and leaves, so softly and serenely bright, I felt like I had never soaked in such a golden glow, without a ripple or sound. The west side of every wood and hill shone like the edge of paradise, and the sun on our backs felt like a gentle shepherd guiding us home in the evening.

So we saunter toward the Holy Land, till one day the sun shall shine more brightly than ever he has done, shall perchance shine into our minds and hearts, and light up our whole lives with a great awakening light, as warm and serene and golden as on a bank-side in autumn.

So we stroll towards the Holy Land, until one day the sun will shine brighter than it ever has, maybe shining into our minds and hearts, and illuminating our entire lives with a powerful awakening light, as warm, peaceful, and golden as on a riverbank in autumn.

ON A CERTAIN CONDESCENSION IN FOREIGNERS[5]

JAMES RUSSELL LOWELL

WALKING one day toward the Village, as we used to call it in the good old days when almost every dweller in the town had been born in it, I was enjoying that delicious sense of disenthralment from the actual which the deepening twilight brings with it, giving as it does a sort of obscure novelty to things familiar. The coolness, the hush, broken only by the distant bleat of some belated goat, querulous to be disburdened of her milky load, the few faint stars, more guessed as yet than seen, the sense that the coming dark would so soon fold me in the secure privacy of its disguise,—all things combined in a result as near absolute peace as can be hoped for by a man who knows that there is a writ out against him in the hands of the printer’s devil. For the moment, I was enjoying the blessed privilege of thinking without being called on to stand and deliver what I thought to the small public who are good enough to take any interest therein. I love old ways, and the path I was walking felt kindly to the feet it had known for almost fifty years. How many fleeting impressions it had shared with me! How many times I had lingered to study the shadows of the leaves mezzotinted upon the turf that edged it by the moon, of the bare boughs etched with a touch beyond Rembrandt by the same unconscious artist on the smooth page of snow! If I turned round, through dusky tree-gaps came the first twinkle of evening lamps in the dear old homestead. On Corey’s hill I could see these tiny pharoses of love and home and sweet domestic thoughts flash out one by one across the blackening salt-meadow between. How much has not kerosene added to the cheerfulness of our evening landscape! A pair of night-herons flapped heavily over me toward the hidden river. The war was ended. I might walk townward without that aching dread of bulletins that had darkened the July sunshine and twice made the scarlet leaves of October seem stained with blood. I remembered with a pang, half-proud, half-painful, how, so many years ago, I had walked over the same path and felt round my finger the soft pressure of a little hand that was one day to harden with faithful grip of saber. On how many paths, leading to how many homes where proud Memory does all she can to fill up the fireside gaps with shining shapes, must not men be walking in just such pensive mood as I? Ah, young heroes, safe in immortal youth as those of Homer, you at least carried your ideal hence untarnished! It is locked for you beyond moth or rust in the treasure-chamber of Death.

WALKING one day toward the Village, as we used to call it back in the good old days when almost everyone in town was born there, I was enjoying that wonderful feeling of escape from reality that the deepening twilight brings, giving a kind of obscure novelty to familiar things. The coolness, the quiet, interrupted only by the distant bleat of some late goat, anxious to be relieved of her milky burden, the few faint stars, more imagined than seen, the feeling that the coming darkness would soon wrap me in the comforting privacy of its disguise—all these combined to create a feeling of near absolute peace that one could hope for, even with a writ out against me in the hands of the printer’s devil. For the moment, I was enjoying the blessed privilege of thinking without having to share my thoughts with the small audience that is kind enough to show any interest. I love old ways, and the path I was walking felt kind to the feet it had known for almost fifty years. How many fleeting impressions it had shared with me! How many times I had paused to admire the shadows of the leaves, softly etched upon the grassy edge by the moon, and of the bare branches outlined in a style even more exquisite than Rembrandt by the same unconscious artist on the smooth canvas of snow! If I turned around, through dusky gaps in the trees, ____ came the first twinkle of evening lamps in the dear old homestead. From Corey’s hill, I could see these tiny beacons of love, home, and sweet domestic thoughts light up one by one across the darkening salt meadow. How much cheerfulness hasn't kerosene added to our evening landscape! A pair of night herons flapped heavily over me toward the hidden river. The war was over. I could walk toward town without that aching fear of bulletins that had cast a shadow over the July sunshine and made the scarlet leaves of October seem stained with blood. I remembered with a mix of pride and pain how, many years ago, I had walked this same path and felt the soft pressure of a little hand that would one day tighten around a saber. On how many paths, leading to how many homes where proud Memory does her best to fill the gaps around the fireplace with shining shapes, must men be walking in just as contemplative a mood as I am? Ah, young heroes, safe in your immortal youth like those of Homer, you at least carried your ideals away untarnished! They are secure for you beyond the reach of moth or rust in the treasure chamber of Death.

Is not a country, I thought, that has had such as they in it, that could give such as they a brave joy in dying for it, worth something, then? And as I felt more and more the soothing magic of evening’s cool palm upon my temples, as my fancy came home from its revery, and my senses, with reawakened curiosity, ran to the front windows again from the viewless closet of abstraction, and felt a strange charm in finding the old tree and shabby fence still there under the travesty of falling night, nay, were conscious of an unsuspected newness in familiar stars and the fading outlines of hills my earliest horizon, I was conscious of an immortal soul, and could not but rejoice in the unwaning goodliness of the world into which I had been born without any merit of my own. I thought of dear Henry Vaughan’s rainbow, "Still young and fine!" I remembered people who had to go over to the Alps to learn what the divine silence of snow was, who must run to Italy before they were conscious of the miracle wrought every day under their very noses by the sunset, who must call upon the Berkshire hills to teach them what a painter autumn was, while close at hand the Fresh Pond meadows made all oriels cheap with hues that showed as if a sunset-cloud had been wrecked among their maples. One might be worse off than even in America, I thought. There are some things so elastic that even the heavy roller of democracy cannot flatten them altogether down. The mind can weave itself warmly in the cocoon of its own thoughts and dwell a hermit anywhere. A country without traditions, without ennobling associations, a scramble of parvenus, with a horrible consciousness of shoddy running through politics, manners, art, literature, nay, religion itself? I confess, it did not seem so to me there in that illimitable quiet, that serene self-possession of nature, where Collins might have brooded his "Ode to Evening," or where those verses on Solitude in Dodsley’s Collection, that Hawthorne liked so much, might have been composed. Traditions? Granting that we had none, all that is worth having in them is the common property of the soul,—an estate in gavelkind for all the sons of Adam,—and, moreover, if a man cannot stand on his two feet (the prime quality of whoever has left any tradition behind him), were it not better for him to be honest about it at once, and go down on all fours? And for associations, if one have not the wit to make them for himself out of native earth, no ready-made ones of other men will avail much. Lexington is none the worse to me for not being in Greece, nor Gettysburg that its name is not Marathon. "Blessed old fields," I was just exclaiming to myself, like one of Mrs. Radcliffe’s heroes, "dear acres, innocently secure from history, which these eyes first beheld, may you be also those to which they shall at last slowly darken!" when I was interrupted by a voice which asked me in German whether I was the Herr Professor, Doctor, So-and-so? The "Doctor" was by brevet or vaticination, to make the grade easier to my pocket.

Isn't it a country, I thought, that has had people like them in it, who could find such brave joy in dying for it, worth something? And as I felt more and more the soothing magic of the evening’s cool touch on my head, as my mind returned from its daydream, and my senses, with renewed curiosity, went back to the front windows from the hidden space of abstraction, I felt a strange charm in seeing the old tree and shabby fence still there under the disguise of the falling night. I was even aware of an unexpected freshness in familiar stars and the dim outlines of hills that framed my earliest view. I felt a connection to something immortal and couldn’t help but rejoice in the ongoing beauty of the world I had been born into without any effort of my own. I thought of dear Henry Vaughan’s rainbow, "Still young and fine!" I remembered people who had to travel to the Alps to discover what the divine silence of snow felt like, who had to go to Italy before they realized the miracle happening every day right before them with the sunset, who needed to visit the Berkshire hills to learn what an artist autumn could be, while nearby the Fresh Pond meadows made all structures look cheap with colors that seemed as if a sunset cloud had crashed among their maples. I thought it could be worse than even in America. Some things are so resilient that even the heavy weight of democracy can’t completely flatten them. The mind can wrap itself comfortably in the cocoon of its own thoughts and thrive as a hermit anywhere. A country without traditions, without uplifting associations, a mix of parvenus, with a horrible sense of shoddiness running through politics, manners, art, literature, even religion? I admit, it didn’t seem that way to me in that endless calm, that peaceful assurance of nature, where Collins might have contemplated his "Ode to Evening," or where those verses on Solitude in Dodsley’s Collection that Hawthorne cherished might have been written. Traditions? Assuming we had none, all that’s worth having in them is the common heritage of the soul—a shared responsibility for all the sons of Adam—and besides, if a person can’t stand on his own two feet (the main quality of anyone who has left behind a tradition), wouldn’t it be better for him to admit it right away and drop down on all fours? And about associations, if one doesn’t have the creativity to make them for himself from the land he knows, no ready-made ones from others will be of much use. Lexington doesn’t lose value for me by not being in Greece, nor does Gettysburg lose its significance by not being Marathon. "Blessed old fields," I was just exclaiming to myself, like one of Mrs. Radcliffe’s heroes, "dear acres, blissfully untouched by history, which these eyes first saw, may you also be the same ones they will finally darken!" when I was interrupted by a voice that asked me in German if I was the Herr Professor, Doctor, So-and-so? The "Doctor" was just a title or prediction, to make it easier on my wallet.

One feels so intimately assured that he is made up, in part, of shreds and leavings of the past, in part of the interpolations of other people, that an honest man would be slow in saying yes to such a question. But "my name is So-and-so" is a safe answer, and I gave it. While I had been romancing with myself, the street-lamps had been lighted, and it was under one of these detectives that have robbed the Old Road of its privilege of sanctuary after nightfall that I was ambushed by my foe. The inexorable villain had taken my description, it appears, that I might have the less chance to escape him. Dr. Holmes tells us that we change our substance, not every seven years, as was once believed, but with every breath we draw. Why had I not the wit to avail myself of the subterfuge, and, like Peter, to renounce my identity, especially, as in certain moods of mind, I have often more than doubted of it myself? When a man is, as it were, his own front-door, and is thus knocked at, why may he not assume the right of that sacred wood to make every house a castle, by denying himself to all visitations? I was truly not at home when the question was put to me, but had to recall myself from all out-of-doors, and to piece my self-consciousness hastily together as well as I could before I answered it.

One feels deeply assured that he's made up, partly, of bits and pieces of the past and partly from others' influences, that a genuinely honest person would hesitate to say yes to such a question. But saying "my name is So-and-so" is a safe response, so I said it. While I had been daydreaming, the streetlights had been turned on, and it was under one of those lights that have taken away the Old Road's right to be a safe haven after dark that I was caught by my enemy. The relentless villain had gotten my description, it seems, to reduce my chances of escaping him. Dr. Holmes tells us that we change our essence not every seven years, as was once thought, but with every breath we take. Why didn’t I think to use a clever trick and, like Peter, deny my identity, especially since I often question it myself during certain moods? When a person is essentially their own front door and is knocked on, why can't they claim the right of that sacred door to make every home a fortress by refusing all visitors? I truly wasn’t at home when the question was asked, but I had to pull myself back from everything outside and quickly piece together my self-awareness as best as I could before responding.

I knew perfectly well what was coming. It is seldom that debtors or good Samaritans waylay people under gaslamps in order to force money upon them, so far as I have seen or heard. I was also aware, from considerable experience, that every foreigner is persuaded that, by doing this country the favor of coming to it, he has laid every native thereof under an obligation, pecuniary or other, as the case may be, whose discharge he is entitled to on demand duly made in person or by letter. Too much learning (of this kind) had made me mad in the provincial sense of the word. I had begun life with the theory of giving something to every beggar that came along, though sure of never finding a native-born countryman among them. In a small way, I was resolved to emulate Hatem Tai’s tent, with its three hundred and sixty-five entrances, one for every day in the year,—I know not whether he was astronomer enough to add another for leap-years. The beggars were a kind of German-silver aristocracy; not real plate, to be sure, but better than nothing. Where everybody was overworked, they supplied the comfortable equipoise of absolute leisure, so æsthetically needful. Besides, I was but too conscious of a vagrant fiber in myself, which too often thrilled me in my solitary walks with the temptation to wander on into infinite space, and by a single spasm of resolution to emancipate myself from the drudgery of prosaic serfdom to respectability and the regular course of things. This prompting has been at times my familiar demon, and I could not but feel a kind of respectful sympathy for men who had dared what I had only sketched out to myself as a splendid possibility. For seven years I helped maintain one heroic man on an imaginary journey to Portland,—as fine an example as I have ever known of hopeless loyalty to an ideal. I assisted another so long in a fruitless attempt to reach Mecklenburg-Schwerin, that at last we grinned in each other’s faces when we met, like a couple of augurs. He was possessed by this harmless mania as some are by the North Pole, and I shall never forget his look of regretful compassion (as for one who was sacrificing his higher life to the fleshpots of Egypt) when I at last advised him somewhat strenuously to go to the D——, whither the road was so much traveled that he could not miss it. General Banks, in his noble zeal for the honor of his country, would confer on the Secretary of State the power of imprisoning, in case of war, all these seekers of the unattainable, thus by a stroke of the pen annihilating the single poetic element in our humdrum life. Alas! not everybody has the genius to be a Bobbin-Boy, or doubtless all these also would have chosen that more prosperous line of life! But moralists, sociologists, political economists, and taxes have slowly convinced me that my beggarly sympathies were a sin against society. Especially was the Buckle doctrine of averages (so flattering to our free-will) persuasive with me; for as there must be in every year a certain number who would bestow an alms on these abridged editions of the Wandering Jew, the withdrawal of my quota could make no possible difference, since some destined proxy must always step forward to fill my gap. Just so many misdirected letters every year and no more! Would it were as easy to reckon up the number of men on whose backs fate has written the wrong address, so that they arrive by mistake in Congress and other places where they do not belong! May not these wanderers of whom I speak have been sent into the world without any proper address at all? Where is our Dead-Letter Office for such? And if wiser social arrangements should furnish us with something of the sort, fancy (horrible thought!) how many a workingman’s friend (a kind of industry in which the labor is light and the wages heavy) would be sent thither because not called for in the office where he at present lies!

I knew exactly what was coming. It's rare for people who owe money or good Samaritans to stop people under streetlights to give them cash, at least from what I've seen or heard. I also knew, from a lot of experience, that every foreigner thinks that by coming to this country, they've put every native in their debt, whether financially or otherwise, and they believe they're entitled to be repaid whenever they ask, either in person or by letter. Too much learning of this kind had driven me a bit crazy in a local sense. I had started out believing in giving something to every beggar that came my way, even though I was sure I'd never find a fellow countryman among them. In a small way, I was determined to imitate Hatem Tai’s tent, which had three hundred and sixty-five entrances, one for each day of the year—I’m not sure if he was clever enough to add another for leap years. The beggars formed a sort of pseudo-aristocracy; not real wealth, but better than nothing. In a place where everyone was overworked, they provided the much-needed balance of complete leisure. Plus, I was acutely aware of a wandering urge within myself, which often tempted me during my solitary walks to escape into the unknown, to liberate myself from the monotonous grind of respectability and routine. This impulse had often been my constant companion, and I couldn’t help but feel some respect for people who had dared the things I’d only imagined as grand possibilities. For seven years, I supported one heroic man on a fictional journey to Portland—a shining example of futile loyalty to an ideal. I helped another for so long in a pointless attempt to reach Mecklenburg-Schwerin that eventually, we just grinned at each other like a couple of fortune-tellers when we met. He was caught up in this harmless obsession like some are with the North Pole, and I’ll never forget his regretful look of compassion for me (as if I were sacrificing my higher aspirations for the comforts of life) when I finally urged him quite insistently to head to the D——, where the road was so well-traveled that he couldn’t miss it. General Banks, in his noble desire to uphold the dignity of his country, would grant the Secretary of State the power to imprison these seekers of the unattainable in times of war, essentially erasing the only poetic element in our mundane lives with just a stroke of a pen. Unfortunately, not everyone has the talent to be a Bobbin-Boy, or surely there would be more choosing that successful path! However, moralists, sociologists, political economists, and taxes have gradually convinced me that my charitable instincts were a sin against society. The Buckle doctrine of averages (which flatters our free will) particularly appealed to me; since each year, there has to be a certain number of people who would give to these abbreviated versions of the Wandering Jew, my decision not to contribute wouldn’t matter since someone else would surely step in to fill my place. Just as many misdirected letters each year and no more! If only it were as easy to count the number of people who’ve been led astray by fate, showing up by mistake in places like Congress where they don’t belong! Could it be that these wanderers I've mentioned were sent into the world without any proper address at all? Where is our Dead-Letter Office for them? And if smarter social structures provided that sort of thing, can you imagine (what a terrible thought!) how many friends of workingmen (a job where the labor is light and the pay is heavy) would be sent there because they weren't needed in their current spots?

But I am leaving my new acquaintance too long under the lamp-post. The same Gano which had betrayed me to him revealed to me a well-set young man of about half my own age, as well dressed, so far as I could see, as I was, and with every natural qualification for getting his own livelihood as good, if not better, than my own. He had been reduced to the painful necessity of calling upon me by a series of crosses beginning with the Baden Revolution (for which, I own, he seemed rather young,—but perhaps he referred to a kind of revolution practiced every season at Baden-Baden), continued by repeated failures in business, for amounts which must convince me of his entire respectability, and ending with our Civil War. During the latter, he had served with distinction as a soldier, taking a main part in every important battle, with a rapid list of which he favored me, and no doubt would have admitted that, impartial as Jonathan Wild’s great ancestor, he had been on both sides, had I baited him with a few hints of conservative opinions on a subject so distressing to a gentleman wishing to profit by one’s sympathy and unhappily doubtful as to which way it might lean. For all these reasons, and, as he seemed to imply, for his merit in consenting to be born in Germany, he considered himself my natural creditor to the extent of five dollars, which he would handsomely consent to accept in greenbacks, though he preferred specie. The offer was certainly a generous one, and the claim presented with an assurance that carried conviction. But, unhappily, I had been led to remark a curious natural phenomenon. If I was ever weak enough to give anything to a petitioner of whatever nationality, it always rained decayed compatriots of his for a month after. Post hoc ergo propter hoc may not always be safe logic, but here I seemed to perceive a natural connection of cause and effect. Now, a few days before I had been so tickled with a paper (professedly written by a benevolent American clergyman) certifying that the bearer, a hard-working German, had long "sofered with rheumatic paints in his limps," that, after copying the passage into my note-book, I thought it but fair to pay a trifling honorarium to the author. I had pulled the string of the shower-bath! It had been running shipwrecked sailors for some time, but forthwith it began to pour Teutons, redolent of lager-bier. I could not help associating the apparition of my new friend with this series of otherwise unaccountable phenomena. I accordingly made up my mind to deny the debt, and modestly did so, pleading a native bias towards impecuniosity to the full as strong as his own. He took a high tone with me at once, such as an honest man would naturally take with a confessed repudiator. He even brought down his proud stomach so far as to join himself to me for the rest of my townward walk, that he might give me his views of the American people, and thus inclusively of myself.

But I'm leaving my new acquaintance waiting too long by the lamp post. The same Gano who betrayed me to him also introduced me to a well-groomed young man about half my age, dressed as well as I was, and with every natural ability to make a living just as good, if not better, than mine. He had been forced into asking for my help due to a series of unfortunate events starting with the Baden Revolution (which, I admit, he seemed a bit young for—but maybe he was referring to the kind of revolution that happens every season in Baden-Baden), followed by repeated business failures that should have convinced me of his complete respectability, and ending with our Civil War. During that time, he served honorably as a soldier, playing a significant role in every major battle, which he enthusiastically listed for me. He probably would have admitted that, impartial like Jonathan Wild’s great ancestor, he had been on both sides had I teased him with some hints of conservative views on a topic so distressing to a man trying to win sympathy and uncertain about which way I might lean. For all these reasons, and as he seemed to suggest, because of his virtue in being born in Germany, he viewed himself as my natural debtor for five dollars, which he would graciously accept in cash, although he preferred coins. The offer was certainly generous, and his claim was presented with a confidence that was convincing. Unfortunately, I had noticed a strange natural phenomenon. Whenever I was foolish enough to give anything to someone asking for help, it always rained fellow countrymen of theirs for a month afterward. Post hoc ergo propter hoc may not always be valid reasoning, but here I felt there was a clear connection. Just a few days earlier, I had been amused by a paper (supposedly written by a kind American clergyman) declaring that the bearer, a hardworking German, had long "suffered with rheumatic pains in his limbs," that, after copying the passage into my notebook, I thought it fair to give a small honorarium to the author. I had opened the floodgates! It had been pouring in shipwrecked sailors for a while, but suddenly it started pouring in Germans, reeking of lager-bier. I couldn't help but connect the appearance of my new friend with this otherwise inexplicable phenomenon. So, I decided to deny the debt, which I did modestly, claiming a natural inclination towards poverty as strong as his own. He immediately took a superior tone with me, as a decent person would naturally do with someone admitting to defaulting. He even lowered his proud demeanor enough to walk with me back into town, so he could share his views on the American people, and by extension, on me.

I know not whether it is because I am pigeon-livered and lack gall, or whether it is from an overmastering sense of drollery, but I am apt to submit to such bastings with a patience which afterwards surprises me, being not without my share of warmth in the blood. Perhaps it is because I so often meet with young persons who know vastly more than I do, and especially with so many foreigners whose knowledge of this country is superior to my own. However it may be, I listened for some time with tolerable composure as my self-appointed lecturer gave me in detail his opinions of my country and its people. America, he informed me, was without arts, science, literature, culture, or any native hope of supplying them. We were a people wholly given to money-getting, and who, having got it, knew no other use for it than to hold it fast. I am fain to confess that I felt a sensible itching of the biceps, and that my fingers closed with such a grip as he had just informed me was one of the effects of our unhappy climate. But happening just then to be where I could avoid temptation by dodging down a by-street, I hastily left him to finish his diatribe to the lamp-post, which could stand it better than I. That young man will never know how near he came to being assaulted by a respectable gentleman of middle age, at the corner of Church Street. I have never felt quite satisfied that I did all my duty by him in not knocking him down. But perhaps he might have knocked me down, and then?

I don’t know if it’s because I’m soft-hearted and lack courage, or if it’s just that I find it all so amusing, but I tend to put up with such beatings with a patience that surprises me later, considering I have my share of fire in my veins. Maybe it’s because I often encounter young people who know way more than I do, and especially so many foreigners whose understanding of this country surpasses my own. Regardless, I listened for a while with decent composure as my self-proclaimed teacher laid out his views on my country and its people. America, he told me, had no arts, science, literature, culture, or any hope of developing them. We were a people completely focused on making money, and once we had it, we didn’t know any other way to use it than to cling to it. I must admit that I felt a strong urge to punch him, and my fingers clenched with the grip he had just described as one of the effects of our unfortunate climate. But at that moment, I found a way to escape temptation by ducking down a side street, and I quickly left him to finish his rant to the lamp-post, which could handle it better than I could. That young man will never know how close he came to being attacked by a respectable middle-aged gentleman at the corner of Church Street. I’ve never felt entirely satisfied that I did my duty by him in not knocking him down. But maybe he would have knocked me down instead, and then what?

The capacity of indignation makes an essential part of the outfit of every honest man, but I am inclined to doubt whether he is a wise one who allows himself to act upon its first hints. It should be rather, I suspect, a latent heat in the blood, which makes itself felt in character, a steady reserve for the brain, warming the ovum of thought to life, rather than cooking it by a too hasty enthusiasm in reaching the boiling-point. As my pulse gradually fell back to its normal beat, I reflected that I had been uncomfortably near making a fool of myself,—a handy salve of euphuism for our vanity, though it does not always make a just allowance to Nature for her share in the business. What possible claim had my Teutonic friend to rob me of my composure? I am not, I think, specially thin-skinned as to other people’s opinions of myself, having, as I conceive, later and fuller intelligence on that point than anybody else can give me. Life is continually weighing us in very sensitive scales, and telling every one of us precisely what his real weight is to the last grain of dust. Whoever at fifty does not rate himself quite as low as most of his acquaintance would be likely to put him, must be either a fool or a great man, and I humbly disclaim being either. But if I was not smarting in person from any scattering shot of my late companion’s commination, why should I grow hot at any implication of my country therein? Surely her shoulders are broad enough, if yours or mine are not, to bear up under a considerable avalanche of this kind. It is the bit of truth in every slander, the hint of likeness in every caricature, that makes us smart. "Art thou there, old Truepenny?" How did your blade know its way so well to that one loose rivet in our armor? I wondered whether Americans were over-sensitive in this respect, whether they were more touchy than other folks. On the whole, I thought we were not. Plutarch, who at least had studied philosophy, if he had not mastered it, could not stomach something Herodotus had said of Bœotia, and devoted an essay to showing up the delightful old traveler’s malice and ill-breeding. French editors leave out of Montaigne’s "Travels" some remarks of his about France, for reasons best known to themselves. Pachydermatous Deutschland, covered with trophies from every field of letters, still winces under that question which Père Bouhours put two centuries ago, Si un Allemand peut être bel-esprit? John Bull grew apoplectic with angry amazement at the audacious persiflage of Pückler-Muskau. To be sure, he was a prince,—but that was not all of it, for a chance phrase of gentle Hawthorne sent a spasm through all the journals of England. Then this tenderness is not peculiar to us? Console yourself, dear man and brother, whatever else you may be sure of, be sure at least of this, that you are dreadfully like other people. Human nature has a much greater genius for sameness than for originality, or the world would be at a sad pass shortly. The surprising thing is that men have such a taste for this somewhat musty flavor, that an Englishman, for example, should feel himself defrauded, nay, even outraged, when he comes over here and finds a people speaking what he admits to be something like English, and yet so very different from (or, as he would say, to) those he left at home. Nothing, I am sure, equals my thankfulness when I meet an Englishman who is not like every other, or, I may add, an American of the same odd turn.

The ability to feel indignation is an important trait for every honest person, but I’m starting to think that someone who immediately acts on it might not be very wise. It should instead be more of a latent heat in the blood, manifesting in one’s character— a calm reserve for the mind, nurturing thoughts into existence rather than rushing them into boiling over with enthusiasm. As my heart rate slowed back to normal, I realized I had been uncomfortably close to making a fool of myself—a convenient excuse for our vanity, although it doesn’t always give Nature her due credit in the matter. What reason did my German friend have to disturb my peace of mind? I don’t see myself as particularly sensitive to others’ opinions of me, believing I have a more developed understanding of myself than anyone else could offer. Life constantly assesses us with very accurate scales and reveals to each of us exactly our true weight down to the smallest detail. Anyone who, at fifty, doesn’t think of themselves as lower than most of their peers likely falls into the categories of either a fool or a great person, and I humbly reject being either. But if I wasn’t personally hurt by any stray shots from my recent companion's criticisms, why should I feel offended by any implications about my country? Surely her shoulders are broad enough, if ours are not, to handle such an avalanche. It is the glimmer of truth in every insult and the hint of resemblance in every caricature that stings. "Are you there, old Truepenny?" How did your blade find its way so well to that one weak spot in our defenses? I wondered if Americans were overly sensitive in this regard, more sensitive than others. Overall, I thought we were not. Plutarch, who at least studied philosophy, if not mastered it, couldn't tolerate something Herodotus said about Bœotia and wrote an essay to expose the delightful old traveler’s malice and bad manners. French editors remove some of Montaigne’s remarks about France from his "Travels" for reasons known only to them. Sturdy Germany, adorned with trophies from every field of letters, still flinches at the question that Père Bouhours posed two centuries ago, Si un Allemand peut être bel-esprit? John Bull was left fuming with indignation at the cheeky remarks of Pückler-Muskau. Sure, he was a prince—but that wasn’t the whole story, because a chance phrase from gentle Hawthorne caused a stir in the entirety of England’s newspapers. So this sensitivity isn’t unique to us? Take heart, dear friend and brother, whatever else you might be sure of, be assured at least of this: you are terribly similar to other people. Human nature has a far greater talent for sameness than for originality, or the world would be in a sorry state soon. The surprising thing is that people have such a taste for this somewhat stale flavor that an Englishman, for example, feels cheated, even outraged, when he comes over here and finds a people speaking what he admits is something like English, yet so very different from (or, as he would say, to) the folks he left behind. Nothing, I’m sure, matches my gratitude when I meet an Englishman who is not like every other, or, I may add, an American of the same unique nature.

Certainly it is no shame to a man that he should be as nice about his country as about his sweetheart, and who ever heard even the friendliest appreciation of that unexpressive she that did not seem to fall infinitely short? Yet it would hardly be wise to hold everyone an enemy who could not see her with our own enchanted eyes. It seems to be the common opinion of foreigners that Americans are too tender upon this point. Perhaps we are; and if so, there must be a reason for it. Have we had fair play? Could the eyes of what is called Good Society (though it is so seldom true either to the adjective or noun) look upon a nation of democrats with any chance of receiving an undistorted image? Were not those, moreover, who found in the old order of things an earthly paradise, paying them quarterly dividends for the wisdom of their ancestors, with the punctuality of the seasons, unconsciously bribed to misunderstand if not to misrepresent us? Whether at war or at peace, there we were, a standing menace to all earthly paradises of that kind, fatal underminers of the very credit on which the dividends were based, all the more hateful and terrible that our destructive agency was so insidious, working invisible in the elements, as it seemed, active while they slept, and coming upon them in the darkness like an armed man. Could Laius have the proper feelings of a father towards Œdipus, announced as his destined destroyer by infallible oracles, and felt to be such by every conscious fiber of his soul? For more than a century the Dutch were the laughing-stock of polite Europe. They were butter-firkins, swillers of beer and schnaps, and their vrouws from whom Holbein painted the all-but loveliest of Madonnas, Rembrandt the graceful girl who sits immortal on his knee in Dresden, and Rubens his abounding goddesses, were the synonymes of clumsy vulgarity. Even so late as Irving the ships of the greatest navigators in the world were represented as sailing equally well stern-foremost. That the aristocratic Venetians should have

Certainly, it's not shameful for a person to care about their country as much as they do about their partner. And who hasn’t noticed that even the most glowing praise for that quiet companion always seems to fall short? However, it's probably not wise to consider everyone an enemy who can't appreciate her with our enchanted perspective. Many foreigners think that Americans are way too sensitive about this. Maybe we are, and if that’s the case, there must be a reason for it. Have we been treated fairly? Can the eyes of what’s called Good Society (even though it's rarely true to either word) look at a nation of democrats without getting a distorted view? Weren’t those who found paradise in the old system, reaping rewards from their ancestors' wisdom precisely on time, unknowingly incentivized to misunderstand or misrepresent us? Whether at war or peace, we stood as a threat to those earthly paradises, undermining the very credit on which their benefits relied, all the more loathed and feared because our destructive influence was so subtle, working invisibly in the background, acting while they were unaware, and descending upon them like a thief in the night. Could Laius truly have the right feelings of a father towards Œdipus, labeled as his destined destroyer by infallible prophecies and felt to be such by every fiber of his being? For over a century, the Dutch were the laughingstock of refined Europe. They were seen as mere butter makers, beer drinkers, and their women, who inspired some of the loveliest figures by Holbein, the graceful girl immortalized by Rembrandt in Dresden, and Rubens’ abundant goddesses, were the epitome of clumsy vulgarity. Even in Irving's time, the ships of the greatest navigators in the world were depicted sailing just as well backward. That the aristocratic Venetians should have

"Fastened with huge piles
"Through the center of their newly caught miles,"

was heroic. But the far more marvelous achievement of the Dutch in the same kind was ludicrous even to republican Marvell. Meanwhile, during that very century of scorn, they were the best artists, sailors, merchants, bankers, printers, scholars, jurisconsults, and statesmen in Europe, and the genius of Motley has revealed them to us, earning a right to themselves by the most heroic struggle in human annals. But, alas! they were not merely simple burghers who had fairly made themselves High Mightinesses, and could treat on equal terms with anointed kings, but their commonwealth carried in its bosom the germs of democracy. They even unmuzzled, at least after dark, that dreadful mastiff, the Press, whose scent is, or ought to be, so keen for wolves in sheep’s clothing and for certain other animals in lions’ skins. They made fun of Sacred Majesty, and, what was worse, managed uncommonly well without it. In an age when periwigs made so large a part of the natural dignity of man, people with such a turn of mind were dangerous. How could they seem other than vulgar and hateful?

was heroic. But the even more incredible achievement of the Dutch in the same vein was ridiculous, even to republican Marvell. Meanwhile, during that very century of disdain, they were the best artists, sailors, merchants, bankers, printers, scholars, lawyers, and statesmen in Europe, and the genius of Motley has shown us this, earning their place through the most courageous struggle in human history. But, sadly, they were not just simple townspeople who had rightfully made themselves High Mightinesses and could negotiate on equal footing with crowned kings; their commonwealth held the seeds of democracy. They even loosened, at least after dark, that fearsome watchdog, the Press, whose nose is, or should be, sharp for wolves in sheep’s clothing and for certain other critters in lions’ skins. They poked fun at Sacred Majesty and, even worse, managed quite well without it. In an era when wigs formed a large part of a man's natural dignity, people with such a mindset were seen as threats. How could they appear anything other than common and detestable?

In the natural course of things we succeeded to this unenviable position of general butt. The Dutch had thriven under it pretty well, and there was hope that we could at least contrive to worry along. And we certainly did in a very redoubtable fashion. Perhaps we deserved some of the sarcasm more than our Dutch predecessors in office. We had nothing to boast of in arts or letters, and were given to bragging overmuch of our merely material prosperity, due quite as much to the virtue of our continent as to our own. There was some truth in Carlyle’s sneer, after all. Till we had succeeded in some higher way than this, we had only the success of physical growth. Our greatness, like that of enormous Russia, was greatness on the map,—barbarian mass only; but had we gone down, like that other Atlantis, in some vast cataclysm, we should have covered but a pin’s point on the chart of memory, compared with those ideal spaces occupied by tiny Attica and cramped England. At the same time, our critics somewhat too easily forgot that material must make ready the foundation for ideal triumphs, that the arts have no chance in poor countries. And it must be allowed that democracy stood for a great deal in our shortcoming. The Edinburgh Review never would have thought of asking, "Who reads a Russian book?" and England was satisfied with iron from Sweden without being impertinently inquisitive after her painters and statuaries. Was it that they expected too much from the mere miracle of Freedom? Is it not the highest art of a Republic to make men of flesh and blood, and not the marble ideals of such? It may be fairly doubted whether we have produced this higher type of man yet. Perhaps it is the collective, not the individual, humanity that is to have a chance of nobler development among us. We shall see. We have a vast amount of imported ignorance, and, still worse, of native ready-made knowledge, to digest before even the preliminaries of such a consummation can be arranged. We have got to learn that statesmanship is the most complicated of all arts, and to come back to the apprenticeship-system too hastily abandoned. At present, we trust a man with making constitutions on less proof of competence than we should demand before we gave him our shoe to patch. We have nearly reached the limit of the reaction from the old notion, which paid too much regard to birth and station as qualifications for office, and have touched the extreme point in the opposite direction, putting the highest of human functions up at auction to be bid for by any creature capable of going upright on two legs. In some places, we have arrived at a point at which civil society is no longer possible, and already another reaction has begun, not backwards to the old system, but towards fitness either from natural aptitude or special training. But will it always be safe to let evils work their own cure by becoming unendurable? Every one of them leaves its taint in the constitution of the body-politic, each in itself, perhaps, trifling, but all together powerful for evil.

In the natural course of things, we ended up in this unenviable position as the general target. The Dutch thrived under it pretty well, and there was hope that we could at least manage to get by. And we definitely did, in a very impressive way. Maybe we deserved some of the sarcasm more than our Dutch predecessors in office. We didn’t have much to boast about in arts or literature, and we were prone to bragging too much about our purely material prosperity, which was just as much a result of our continent’s advantages as of our own efforts. There was some truth in Carlyle’s criticism, after all. Until we achieved something better than this, our success was only physical growth. Our greatness, like that of vast Russia, was only greatness on the map—just a barbaric mass; if we had vanished, like that other Atlantis, in a huge disaster, we would have barely registered on the map of memory, compared to the ideal spaces occupied by small Attica and cramped England. At the same time, our critics often forgot that material conditions must lay the groundwork for ideal achievements, that the arts can't flourish in poor countries. And it must be acknowledged that democracy played a significant role in our shortcomings. The Edinburgh Review would never have asked, "Who reads a Russian book?" and England was happy with iron from Sweden without being rudely inquisitive about her painters and sculptors. Did they expect too much from the simple miracle of Freedom? Isn’t the highest art of a Republic to create real men, not just marble ideals? It can be seriously doubted whether we have produced this higher type of person yet. Perhaps it’s the collective, not the individual, humanity that has the potential for greater development among us. We’ll see. We have a lot of imported ignorance, and even worse, a lot of native, ready-made knowledge to digest before we can even start working towards such a goal. We need to learn that statesmanship is the most complex of all arts, and we have to return to the apprenticeship system that we abandoned too quickly. Right now, we trust someone to create constitutions with less proof of competence than we would require before letting them patch our shoes. We’ve nearly reached the limit of the reaction against the old idea that placed too much importance on birth and status as qualifications for office, and we’re now at the extreme point in the opposite direction, treating the highest human functions like an auction for anyone capable of standing upright on two legs. In some places, we’ve reached a point where civil society is no longer viable, and another reaction has already started—not a return to the old system, but a move toward qualifications based on natural ability or specialized training. But is it always wise to let problems resolve themselves by becoming unbearable? Each issue leaves its mark on the body politic; each might seem minor, but together they can be quite damaging.

But whatever we might do or leave undone, we were not genteel, and it was uncomfortable to be continually reminded that, though we should boast that we were the Great West till we were black in the face, it did not bring us an inch nearer to the world’s West-End. That sacred inclosure of respectability was tabooed to us. The Holy Alliance did not inscribe us on its visiting-list. The Old World of wigs and orders and liveries would shop with us, but we must ring at the area-bell, and not venture to awaken the more august clamors of the knocker. Our manners, it must be granted, had none of those graces that stamp the caste of Vere de Vere, in whatever museum of British antiquities they may be hidden. In short, we were vulgar.

But no matter what we did or didn’t do, we weren’t classy, and it was uncomfortable to keep being reminded that, even if we boasted about being the Great West until we turned blue in the face, it didn’t get us any closer to the world’s West End. That respected circle was off-limits for us. The Holy Alliance didn’t include us on its guest list. The Old World of wigs, medals, and formal attire would do business with us, but we had to ring the service bell and couldn’t dare to disturb the more distinguished sounds of the front door knocker. Our manners, it must be admitted, lacked those nuances that define the upper class, no matter where they might be hidden in the museums of British history. In short, we were pretty much uncultured.

This was one of those horribly vague accusations, the victim of which has no defense. An umbrella is of no avail against a Scotch mist. It envelops you, it penetrates at every pore, it wets you through without seeming to wet you at all. Vulgarity is an eighth deadly sin, added to the list in these latter days, and worse than all the others put together, since it perils your salvation in this world,—far the more important of the two in the minds of most men. It profits nothing to draw nice distinctions between essential and conventional, for the convention in this case is the essence, and you may break every command of the decalogue with perfect good-breeding, nay, if you are adroit, without losing caste. We, indeed, had it not to lose, for we had never gained it. "How am I vulgar?" asks the culprit, shudderingly. "Because thou art not like unto Us," answers Lucifer, Son of the Morning, and there is no more to be said. The god of this world may be a fallen angel, but he has us there! We were as clean,—so far as my observation goes, I think we were cleaner, morally and physically, than the English, and therefore, of course, than everybody else. But we did not pronounce the diphthong ou as they did, and we said eether and not eyther, following therein the fashion of our ancestors, who unhappily could bring over no English better than Shakespeare’s; and we did not stammer as they had learned to do from the courtiers, who in this way flattered the Hanoverian king, a foreigner among the people he had come to reign over. Worse than all, we might have the noblest ideas and the finest sentiments in the world, but we vented them through that organ by which men are led rather than leaders, though some physiologists would persuade us that Nature furnishes her captains with a fine handle to their faces that Opportunity may get a good purchase on them for dragging them to the front.

This was one of those frustratingly vague accusations that leave the victim with no way to defend themselves. An umbrella is useless against a Scotch mist. It surrounds you, seeps in through every pore, and soaks you completely without even seeming to. Vulgarity has become an eighth deadly sin, added to the list in recent times, and it's worse than all the others combined because it puts your salvation at risk in this world—far more important to most people. It doesn’t help to make subtle distinctions between what's essential and what's conventional because, in this case, the convention is the essence, and you can break every commandment of the decalogue while being perfectly well-mannered; in fact, if you're clever, you can do it without losing social status. We certainly had nothing to lose since we had never gained any. "How am I vulgar?" asks the accused, trembling. "Because you are not like Us," replies Lucifer, Son of the Morning, and there's nothing more to say. The god of this world may be a fallen angel, but he has us there! We were as clean—at least from what I’ve seen, I think we were cleaner, both morally and physically, than the English, and therefore, of course, than everyone else. But we didn’t pronounce the diphthong ou like they did, and we said eether instead of eyther, sticking to the tradition of our ancestors, who unfortunately brought over no English better than Shakespeare’s; and we didn't stutter like they had learned to do from the courtiers, who flattered the Hanoverian king, a foreigner among the people he was meant to rule. Even worse, we could have the noblest ideas and the finest feelings in the world, but we expressed them through that organ by which men are led rather than leading themselves, though some physiologists might try to convince us that Nature gives her leaders a prominent feature on their faces so that Opportunity can effectively pull them to the forefront.

This state of things was so painful that excellent people were not wanting who gave their whole genius to reproducing here the original Bull, whether by gaiters, the cut of their whiskers, by a factitious brutality in their tone, or by an accent that was forever tripping and falling flat over the tangled roots of our common tongue. Martyrs to a false ideal, it never occurred to them that nothing is more hateful to gods and men than a second-rate Englishman, and for the very reason that this planet never produced a more splendid creature than the first-rate one, witness Shakespeare and the Indian Mutiny. If we could contrive to be not too unobtrusively our simple selves, we should be the most delightful of human beings, and the most original; whereas, when the plating of Anglicism rubs off, as it always will in points that come to much wear, we are liable to very unpleasing conjectures about the quality of the metal underneath. Perhaps one reason why the average Briton spreads himself here with such an easy air of superiority may be owing to the fact that he meets with so many bad imitations as to conclude himself the only real thing in a wilderness of shams. He fancies himself moving through an endless Bloomsbury, where his mere apparition confers honor as an avatar of the court-end of the universe. Not a Bull of them all but is persuaded he bears Europa upon his back. This is the sort of fellow whose patronage is so divertingly insufferable. Thank Heaven he is not the only specimen of cater-cousinship from the dear old Mother Island that is shown to us! Among genuine things, I know nothing more genuine than the better men whose limbs were made in England. So manly-tender, so brave, so true, so warranted to wear, they make us proud to feel that blood is thicker than water.

This situation was so painful that there were plenty of amazing people who dedicated their entire talent to recreating the original essence of the Bull, whether through their attire, the style of their facial hair, a fake harshness in their tone, or an accent that constantly stumbled over the complexities of our shared language. Martyrs to a misguided ideal, they never realized that nothing is more despised by both gods and humans than a second-rate Englishman, and for this very reason—this planet has never produced a more remarkable being than a first-rate one, just look at Shakespeare and the Indian Mutiny. If we could manage to be simply ourselves without being too obvious about it, we would be the most delightful and original people. However, when the shiny surface of Anglicism wears off, as it inevitably will in areas that get a lot of use, it can lead to some very unflattering assumptions about what’s beneath that surface. Perhaps one reason the average Briton carries himself with such an air of superiority here is because he encounters so many poor imitations that he concludes he is the only authentic one in a sea of fakes. He imagines he is walking through an endless Bloomsbury, where his mere presence brings honor as a representative of the upper crust of the universe. Not a single Bull among them doubts that he carries Europa on his back. This is the kind of guy whose pretentious patronage is both amusing and unbearable. Thank goodness he isn’t the only type of distant relative from the beloved old Mother Island that we have to deal with! Among genuine people, I know nothing more authentic than the better men whose bodies were shaped in England. So noble and gentle, so brave and true, they make us proud to feel that blood is thicker than water.

But it is not merely the Englishman; every European candidly admits in himself some right of primogeniture in respect of us, and pats this shaggy continent on the back with a lively sense of generous unbending. The German who plays the bass-viol has a well-founded contempt, which he is not always nice in concealing, for a country so few of whose children ever take that noble instrument between their knees. His cousin, the Ph.D. from Göttingen, cannot help despising a people who do not grow loud and red over Aryans and Turanians, and are indifferent about their descent from either. The Frenchman feels an easy mastery in speaking his mother tongue, and attributes it to some native superiority of parts that lifts him high above us barbarians of the West. The Italian prima donna sweeps a curtsy of careless pity to the over-facile pit which unsexes her with the bravo! innocently meant to show a familiarity with foreign usage. But all without exception make no secret of regarding us as the goose bound to deliver them a golden egg in return for their cackle. Such men as Agassiz, Guyot, and Goldwin Smith come with gifts in their hands; but since it is commonly European failures who bring hither their remarkable gifts and acquirements, this view of the case is sometimes just the least bit in the world provoking. To think what a delicious seclusion of contempt we enjoyed till California and our own ostentatious parvenus, flinging gold away in Europe that might have endowed libraries at home, gave us the ill repute of riches! What a shabby downfall from the Arcadia which the French officers of our Revolutionary War fancied they saw here through Rousseau-tinted spectacles! Something of Arcadia there really was, something of the Old Age; and that divine provincialism were cheaply repurchased could we have it back again in exchange for the tawdry upholstery that has taken its place.

But it’s not just the Englishman; every European honestly admits to feeling some sense of superiority over us and gives this rugged continent a pat on the back with a sense of generous satisfaction. The German who plays the double bass holds a well-deserved contempt, which he doesn't always hide well, for a country whose few children barely touch such a noble instrument. His cousin, the Ph.D. from Göttingen, can't help but look down on a people who don't get worked up about Aryans and Turanians and are indifferent to their own heritage. The Frenchman feels a sense of superiority when speaking his native language and thinks it shows some inherent greatness that puts him far above us Western barbarians. The Italian prima donna gives a casual curtsy of pity to the easily impressed crowd that undermines her with the "bravo!" they innocently shout to show they’re familiar with foreign customs. But without exception, they openly see us as the goose that should lay a golden egg in exchange for their clucking. People like Agassiz, Guyot, and Goldwin Smith come with gifts in hand; but since it’s usually European failures who bring their remarkable talents and achievements here, this perspective can be just a bit annoying. To think how blissfully aloof we were until California and our own ostentatious new rich, throwing gold around in Europe that could’ve built libraries at home, gave us the bad reputation of wealth! What a sad fall from the Arcadia that the French officers of our Revolutionary War thought they saw here through Rousseau-tinted glasses! There really was something Arcadian, something reminiscent of the Old World; and that beautiful provincialism would be worth a lot to reclaim if we could trade it for the cheap glamour that’s taken its place.

For some reason or other, the European has rarely been able to see America except in caricature. Would the first Review of the world have printed the niaiseries of Mr. Maurice Sand as a picture of society in any civilized country? Mr. Sand, to be sure, has inherited nothing of his famous mother’s literary outfit, except the pseudonyme. But since the conductors of the Revue could not have published his story because it was clever, they must have thought it valuable for its truth. As true as the last-century Englishman’s picture of Jean Crapaud! We do not ask to be sprinkled with rosewater, but may perhaps fairly protest against being drenched with the rinsings of an unclean imagination. The next time the Revue allows such ill-bred persons to throw their slops out of its first-floor windows, let it honestly preface the discharge with a gardez-l’eau! that we may run from under in season. And Mr. Duvergier d’Hauranne, who knows how to be entertaining! I know le Français est plutôt indiscret que confiant, and the pen slides too easily when indiscretions will fetch so much a page; but should we not have been tant-soit-peu more cautious had we been writing about people on the other side of the Channel? But then it is a fact in the natural history of the American long familiar to Europeans, that he abhors privacy, knows not the meaning of reserve, lives in hotels because of their greater publicity, and is never so pleased as when his domestic affairs (if he may be said to have any) are paraded in the newspapers. Barnum, it is well known, represents perfectly the average national sentiment in this respect. However it be, we are not treated like other people, or perhaps I should say like people who are ever likely to be met with in society.

For some reason, Europeans have rarely been able to view America as anything other than a caricature. Would the first Review of the world have published Mr. Maurice Sand's niaiseries as a reflection of society in any civilized country? Mr. Sand, of course, hasn’t inherited anything from his famous mother’s literary talent, except the pseudonym. But since the editors of the Revue couldn’t have published his story because it was clever, they must have thought it was valuable for its truth. As truthful as the last-century Englishman’s depiction of Jean Crapaud! We don’t ask to be sprinkled with rosewater, but we can reasonably protest against being soaked with the residue of an unclean imagination. The next time the Revue lets such ill-mannered people dump their waste out of its first-floor windows, it should honestly warn us with a gardez-l’eau! so we can get out of the way in time. And Mr. Duvergier d'Hauranne, who knows how to entertain! I know le Français est plutôt indiscret que confiant, and the pen flows too easily when indiscretions can make a good profit; but wouldn’t we have been tant-soit-peu more cautious if we were writing about people across the Channel? But it is a fact in the natural history of the American, well-known to Europeans, that he dislikes privacy, doesn’t understand the meaning of reserve, lives in hotels for their greater visibility, and is never happier than when his personal affairs (if he can be said to have any) are splashed across the newspapers. Barnum perfectly represents the average national sentiment in this regard. Whatever the case, we’re not treated like other people, or perhaps I should say like people you’d typically encounter in society.

Is it in the climate? Either I have a false notion of European manners, or else the atmosphere affects them strangely when exported hither. Perhaps they suffer from the sea-voyage like some of the more delicate wines. During our Civil War an English gentleman of the highest description was kind enough to call upon me, mainly, as it seemed, to inform me how entirely he sympathized with the Confederates, and how sure he felt that we could never subdue them,—"they were the gentlemen of the country, you know." Another, the first greetings hardly over, asked me how I accounted for the universal meagerness of my countrymen. To a thinner man than I, or from a stouter man than he, the question might have been offensive. The Marquis of Hartington[6] wore a secession badge at a public ball in New York. In a civilized country he might have been roughly handled; but here, where the bienséances are not so well understood, of course nobody minded it. A French traveler told me he had been a good deal in the British colonies, and had been astonished to see how soon the people became Americanized. He added, with delightful bonhomie, and as if he were sure it would charm me, that "they even began to talk through their noses, just like you!" I was naturally ravished with this testimony to the assimilating power of democracy, and could only reply that I hoped they would never adopt our democratic patent-method of seeming to settle one’s honest debts, for they would find it paying through the nose in the long-run. I am a man of the New World, and do not know precisely the present fashion of May-Fair, but I have a kind of feeling that if an American (mutato nomine, de te is always frightfully possible) were to do this kind of thing under a European roof, it would induce some disagreeable reflections as to the ethical results of democracy. I read the other day in print the remark of a British tourist who had eaten large quantities of our salt, such as it is (I grant it has not the European savor), that the Americans were hospitable, no doubt, but that it was partly because they longed for foreign visitors to relieve the tedium of their dead-level existence, and partly from ostentation. What shall we do? Shall we close our doors? Not I, for one, if I should so have forfeited the friendship of L. S., most lovable of men. He somehow seems to find us human, at least, and so did Clough, whose poetry will one of these days, perhaps, be found to have been the best utterance in verse of this generation.

Is it something about the climate? Either I have a mistaken idea of European customs, or the atmosphere changes them in strange ways when they come here. Maybe they suffer from the sea voyage like some of the more delicate wines. During our Civil War, a distinguished English gentleman was kind enough to visit me, mainly to express how completely he sympathized with the Confederates and how certain he felt that we could never defeat them—"they were the gentlemen of the country, you know." Another visitor, not long after the initial pleasantries, asked me how I explained the widespread thinness of my countrymen. To anyone thinner than me, or to someone sturdier than him, the question might have been offensive. The Marquis of Hartington[6] wore a secession badge at a public ball in New York. In a civilized country, he might have been treated roughly; but here, where the social norms aren't as well understood, of course, no one cared. A French traveler told me he had spent a lot of time in the British colonies and was amazed at how quickly the people became Americanized. He added, with charming bonhomie, as if he were sure I would appreciate it, that "they even started to talk through their noses, just like you!" I was naturally thrilled by this acknowledgment of the unifying power of democracy, and could only respond that I hoped they wouldn’t adopt our democratic way of making it seem like we settle our honest debts, because they would end up paying through the nose in the long run. I’m a man of the New World, and I don’t quite know the current style of May-Fair, but I have a feeling that if an American (mutato nomine, de te is always frightfully possible) were to act this way under a European roof, it would lead to some uncomfortable thoughts about the ethical implications of democracy. I recently read a comment from a British tourist who had consumed a lot of our salt, as it is (I admit it doesn’t have the European flavor), saying that Americans are undoubtedly hospitable, but that it's partly because they long for foreign visitors to break the monotony of their flat existence, and partly out of showiness. What should we do? Should we close our doors? Not me, for one, if it means losing the friendship of L. S., one of the most lovable men. He somehow seems to find us human, at least, and so did Clough, whose poetry might someday be recognized as the best expression in verse of this generation.

The fine old Tory aversion of former times was not hard to bear. There was something even refreshing in it, as in a northeaster to a hardy temperament. When a British parson, traveling in Newfoundland while the slash of our separation was still raw, after prophesying a glorious future for an island that continued to dry its fish under the ægis of Saint George, glances disdainfully over his spectacles in parting at the U. S. A., and forebodes for them a "speedy relapse into barbarism," now that they have madly cut themselves off from the humanizing influences of Britain, I smile with barbarian self-conceit. But this kind of thing became by degrees an unpleasant anachronism. For meanwhile the young giant was growing, was beginning indeed to feel tight in his clothes, was obliged to let in a gore here and there in Texas, in California, in New Mexico, in Alaska, and had the scissors and needle and thread ready for Canada when the time came. His shadow loomed like a Brocken-specter over against Europe,—the shadow of what they were coming to, that was the unpleasant part of it. Even in such misty image as they had of him, it was painfully evident that his clothes were not of any cut hitherto fashionable, nor conceivable by a Bond Street tailor,—and this in an age, too, when everything depends upon clothes, when, if we do not keep up appearances, the seeming-solid frame of this universe, nay, your very God, would slump into himself, like a mockery king of snow, being nothing, after all, but a prevailing mode. From this moment the young giant assumed the respectable aspect of a phenomenon, to be got rid of if possible, but at any rate as legitimate a subject of human study as the glacial period or the silurian what-d’ye-call-ems. If the man of the primeval drift-heaps be so absorbingly interesting, why not the man of the drift that is just beginning, of the drift into whose irresistible current we are just being sucked whether we will or no? If I were in their place, I confess I should not be frightened. Man has survived so much, and contrived to be comfortable on this planet after surviving so much! I am something of a protestant in matters of government also, and am willing to get rid of vestments and ceremonies and to come down to bare benches, if only faith in God take the place of a general agreement to profess confidence in ritual and sham. Every mortal man of us holds stock in the only public debt that is absolutely sure of payment, and that is the debt of the Maker of this Universe to the Universe he has made. I have no notion of selling out my shares in a panic.

The old Tory disdain from back in the day wasn’t hard to handle. There was even something refreshing about it, like a cold wind to a strong spirit. When a British clergyman, traveling in Newfoundland while the wound of our separation was still fresh, prophesies a bright future for an island that still dries its fish under Saint George’s protection, then looks down his nose at the U.S.A. and predicts their "quick return to barbarism" after they foolishly cut themselves off from Britain’s civilizing influence, I can’t help but smile with a sense of barbaric pride. But this kind of attitude gradually became an annoying relic. Meanwhile, the young giant was growing; it was starting to feel cramped in its own clothes, needing to let in a bit of extra space here and there in Texas, California, New Mexico, and Alaska, and had the scissors and thread ready for Canada when the time came. Its shadow loomed like a ghost over Europe—the shadow of what they were becoming, and that was the troubling part. Even in the fuzzy image they had of him, it was painfully clear that his clothes were not of any style that was previously fashionable or imaginable to a Bond Street tailor—and this in an era when everything revolves around fashion, when if we don’t maintain appearances, the seemingly-solid structure of this universe, even your very God, would collapse into itself, like a mock king of snow, being nothing but a passing trend. From this point on, the young giant took on the serious appearance of a phenomenon, something that needed to be managed if possible, but at least as legitimate a subject of human study as the Ice Age or those Silurian whatever-they-are. If the person from the ancient drift heaps is so fascinating, why not the person from the new drift, the one being irresistibly pulled into that current whether we like it or not? If I were in their shoes, I honestly wouldn’t be scared. Humanity has endured so much and managed to be comfortable on this planet after surviving all that! I have some progressive views on government too, and I’m willing to ditch formalities and ceremonies to get down to bare necessities, if only faith in God can replace a mere collective pretense of confidence in rituals and nonsense. Every one of us holds shares in the only public debt that is absolutely certain to be paid, and that is the debt of the Creator of this Universe to the Universe He has created. I have no intention of selling my shares in a panic.

It was something to have advanced even to the dignity of a phenomenon, and yet I do not know that the relation of the individual American to the individual European was bettered by it; and that, after all, must adjust itself comfortably before there can be a right understanding between the two. We had been a desert, we became a museum. People came hither for scientific and not social ends. The very cockney could not complete his education without taking a vacant stare at us in passing. But the sociologists (I think they call themselves so) were the hardest to bear. There was no escape. I have even known a professor of this fearful science to come disguised in petticoats. We were cross-examined as a chemist cross-examines a new substance. Human? yes, all the elements are present, though abnormally combined. Civilized? Hm! that needs a stricter assay. No entomologist could take a more friendly interest in a strange bug. After a few such experiences, I, for one, have felt as if I were merely one of those horrid things preserved in spirits (and very bad spirits, too) in a cabinet. I was not the fellow-being of these explorers: I was a curiosity; I was a specimen. Hath not an American organs, dimensions, senses, affections, passions even as a European hath? If you prick us, do we not bleed? If you tickle us, do we not laugh? I will not keep on with Shylock to his next question but one.

It was quite something to have become a phenomenon, yet I'm not sure if the relationship between individual Americans and individual Europeans improved because of it; that aspect needs to be sorted out before there can be a genuine understanding between the two. We started as a barren land, then turned into a museum. People came here for scientific reasons, not social ones. Even the average person couldn't complete their education without taking a vacant look at us as they passed by. But the sociologists (that’s what they call themselves, I believe) were the hardest to deal with. There was no escape. I even knew a professor from this daunting field who came disguised in women’s clothing. We were questioned like a chemist examines a new substance. Human? Yes, all the elements are there, though oddly combined. Civilized? Hmm! That requires a more thorough evaluation. No entomologist could show more enthusiastic interest in a strange insect. After a few such encounters, I, for one, felt like I was just one of those disgusting specimens preserved in bad spirits in a jar. I wasn’t a fellow human to these explorers; I was a curiosity; I was a specimen. Does not an American have organs, size, senses, feelings, and emotions just like a European? If you prick us, do we not bleed? If you tickle us, do we not laugh? I won’t continue with Shylock to his next question but one.

Till after our Civil War it never seemed to enter the head of any foreigner, especially of any Englishman, that an American had what could be called a country, except as a place to eat, sleep, and trade in. Then it seemed to strike them suddenly. "By Jove, you know, fellahs don’t fight like that for a shop-till!" No, I rather think not. To Americans America is something more than a promise and an expectation. It has a past and traditions of its own. A descent from men who sacrificed everything and came hither, not to better their fortunes, but to plant their idea in virgin soil, should be a good pedigree. There was never colony save this that went forth, not to seek gold, but God. Is it not as well to have sprung from such as these as from some burly beggar who came over with Wilhelmus Conquestor, unless, indeed, a line grow better as it runs farther away from stalwart ancestors? And for our history, it is dry enough, no doubt, in the books, but, for all that, is of a kind that tells in the blood. I have admitted that Carlyle’s sneer had a show of truth in it. But what does he himself, like a true Scot, admire in the Hohenzollerns? First of all, that they were canny, a thrifty, forehanded race. Next, that they made a good fight from generation to generation with the chaos around them. That is precisely the battle which the English race on this continent has been carrying doughtily on for two centuries and a half. Doughtily and silently, for you cannot hear in Europe "that crash, the death-song of the perfect tree," that has been going on here from sturdy father to sturdy son, and making this continent habitable for the weaker Old World breed that has swarmed to it during the last half-century. If ever men did a good stroke of work on this planet, it was the forefathers of those whom you are wondering whether it would not be prudent to acknowledge as far-off cousins. Alas, man of genius, to whom we owe so much, could you see nothing more than the burning of a foul chimney in that clash of Michael and Satan which flamed up under your very eyes?

Until after our Civil War, it never seemed to occur to any foreigner, especially any Englishman, that an American had what could be considered a country, except as a place to eat, sleep, and trade. Then, it suddenly hit them. "By Jove, you know, fellows don’t fight like that for a shop!" No, I seriously doubt it. To Americans, America is more than just a promise and an expectation. It has its own history and traditions. A lineage descending from people who sacrificed everything and came here, not to improve their fortunes, but to establish their ideals in untouched land, should be a strong heritage. There has never been a colony except this one that sought not gold, but God. Isn’t it better to come from such people than from some brawny beggar who arrived with William the Conqueror, unless, of course, a lineage improves as it moves further from its strong ancestors? And as for our history, it may seem dry in the books, but it’s of a kind that runs deep in the blood. I admit that Carlyle’s sneer had a semblance of truth. But what does he, like a true Scot, admire in the Hohenzollerns? First of all, that they were canny, a thrifty, forward-thinking people. Next, that they fought a good fight from generation to generation against the chaos around them. That’s exactly the struggle that the English race on this continent has been bravely sustaining for two and a half centuries. Bravely and quietly, because in Europe you can’t hear "that crash, the death-song of the perfect tree," that has been echoing here from strong father to strong son, making this continent livable for the weaker Old World stock that has flooded in over the last fifty years. If anyone ever did a great job on this planet, it was the forefathers of those you are contemplating whether it would be wise to recognize as distant relatives. Alas, genius man, to whom we owe so much, could you see nothing more than the burning of a foul chimney in that battle of Michael and Satan that flared up right before your eyes?

Before our war we were to Europe but a huge mob of adventurers and shopkeepers. Leigh Hunt expressed it well enough when he said that he could never think of America without seeing a gigantic counter stretched all along the seaboard. Feudalism had by degrees made commerce, the great civilizer, contemptible. But a tradesman with sword on thigh and very prompt of stroke was not only redoubtable, he had become respectable also. Few people, I suspect, alluded twice to a needle in Sir John Hawkwood’s presence, after that doughty fighter had exchanged it for a more dangerous tool of the same metal. Democracy had been hitherto only a ludicrous effort to reverse the laws of nature by thrusting Cleon into the place of Pericles. But a democracy that could fight for an abstraction, whose members held life and goods cheap compared with that larger life which we call country, was not merely unheard of, but portentous. It was the nightmare of the Old World taking upon itself flesh and blood, turning out to be substance and not dream. Since the Norman crusader clanged down upon the throne of the porphyrogeniti, carefully-draped appearances had never received such a shock, had never been so rudely called on to produce their titles to the empire of the world. Authority has had its periods not unlike those of geology, and at last comes Man claiming kingship in right of his mere manhood. The world of the Saurians might be in some respects more picturesque, but the march of events is inexorable, and it is bygone.

Before our war, we were just a huge group of adventurers and shopkeepers in Europe. Leigh Hunt summed it up well when he said he could never think of America without picturing a giant storefront stretching all along the coast. Over time, feudalism had made commerce, the great civilizer, something to look down on. But a tradesman with a sword at his side and quick on the draw was not only formidable; he had also become respectable. I suspect that few dared to mention a needle in Sir John Hawkwood’s presence, after that brave fighter had traded it for a more dangerous weapon of the same material. Up until then, democracy had been a ridiculous attempt to overturn the natural order by placing Cleon where Pericles belonged. But a democracy that could fight for an idea, whose members valued life and possessions less than the greater life we call country, was not just unheard of; it was alarming. It was the nightmare of the Old World taking on flesh and blood, proving to be real and not just a dream. Since the Norman crusader clanged down upon the throne of the porphyrogeniti, carefully maintained appearances had never faced such a jolt, never been so rudely forced to justify their claim to world domination. Authority has gone through periods similar to geological eras, and now comes Man claiming kingship simply by virtue of being human. The age of the Saurians may have been more picturesque in some ways, but the march of events is relentless, and it is now in the past.

The young giant had certainly got out of long-clothes. He had become the enfant terrible of the human household. It was not and will not be easy for the world (especially for our British cousins) to look upon us as grown up. The youngest of nations, its people must also be young and to be treated accordingly, was the syllogism. Youth has its good qualities, as people feel who are losing it, but boyishness is another thing. We had been somewhat boyish as a nation, a little loud, a little pushing, a little braggart. But might it not partly have been because we felt that we had certain claims to respect that were not admitted? The war which established our position as a vigorous nationality has also sobered us. A nation, like a man, cannot look death in the eye for four years without some strange reflections, without arriving at some clearer consciousness of the stuff it is made of, without some great moral change. Such a change, or the beginning of it, no observant person can fail to see here. Our thought and our politics, our bearing as a people, are assuming a manlier tone. We have been compelled to see what was weak in democracy as well as what was strong. We have begun obscurely to recognize that things do not go of themselves, and that popular government is not in itself a panacea, is no better than any other form except as the virtue and wisdom of the people make it so, and that when men undertake to do their own kingship, they enter upon the dangers and responsibilities as well as the privileges of the function. Above all, it looks as if we were on the way to be persuaded that no government can be carried on by declamation. It is noticeable also that facility of communication has made the best English and French thought far more directly operative here than ever before. Without being Europeanized, our discussion of important questions in statesmanship, in political economy, in æsthetics, is taking a broader scope and a higher tone. It had certainly been provincial, one might almost say local, to a very unpleasant extent. Perhaps our experience in soldiership has taught us to value training more than we have been popularly wont. We may possibly come to the conclusion, one of these days, that self-made men may not be always equally skillful in the manufacture of wisdom, may not be divinely commissioned to fabricate the higher qualities of opinion on all possible topics of human interest.

The young giant had definitely grown out of his childhood. He had become the enfant terrible of the human household. It wasn't and won't be easy for the world (especially for our British friends) to see us as grown-ups. The youngest of nations, its people must also be young and treated accordingly, was the reasoning. Youth has its good qualities, as those who are losing it can feel, but immaturity is another matter. As a nation, we had been somewhat immature, a little loud, a little pushy, a little braggy. But could it partly be because we felt we had some claims to respect that were not acknowledged? The war that established our position as a strong nation has also sobered us. A nation, like a person, can’t face death for four years without some big reflections and a clearer understanding of what it is made of, leading to some major moral changes. No observant person can miss the signs of this change, or the beginning of it, here. Our thoughts and politics, our demeanor as a people, are taking on a more mature tone. We have been forced to see the weaknesses in democracy as well as its strengths. We are starting to recognize that things don’t just happen on their own, and that popular government is not a cure-all, no better than any other form except as the virtue and wisdom of the people make it so, and that when people take on their own governance, they also take on the risks and responsibilities that come with it, along with the privileges. Above all, it seems we are beginning to understand that no government can function just through rhetoric. It’s also noticeable that improved communication has made the best English and French thought much more directly influential here than ever before. Without being Europeanized, our discussions on important issues in governance, political economy, and aesthetics are taking on a broader perspective and a higher tone. They had certainly been provincial, even local, to an unpleasant extent. Maybe our experiences in the military have taught us to value training more than we typically have. One of these days, we may come to realize that self-made individuals may not always be equally skilled in creating wisdom, and may not be divinely appointed to shape the higher qualities of opinion on all kinds of human interest topics.

So long as we continue to be the most common-schooled and the least cultivated people in the world, I suppose we must consent to endure this condescending manner of foreigners toward us. The more friendly they mean to be the more ludicrously prominent it becomes. They can never appreciate the immense amount of silent work that has been done here, making this continent slowly fit for the abode of man, and which will demonstrate itself, let us hope, in the character of the people. Outsiders can only be expected to judge a nation by the amount it has contributed to the civilization of the world; the amount, that is, that can be seen and handled. A great place in history can only be achieved by competitive examinations, nay, by a long course of them. How much new thought have we contributed to the common stock? Till that question can be triumphantly answered, or needs no answer, we must continue to be simply interesting as an experiment, to be studied as a problem, and not respected as an attained result or an accomplished solution. Perhaps, as I have hinted, their patronizing manner toward us is the fair result of their failing to see here anything more than a poor imitation, a plaster-cast of Europe. And are they not partly right? If the tone of the uncultivated American has too often the arrogance of the barbarian, is not that of the cultivated as often vulgarly apologetic? In the American they meet with is there the simplicity, the manliness, the absence of sham, the sincere human nature, the sensitiveness to duty and implied obligation, that in any way distinguishes us from what our orators call "the effete civilization of the Old World"? Is there a politician among us daring enough (except a Dana here and there) to risk his future on the chance of our keeping our word with the exactness of superstitious communities like England? Is it certain that we shall be ashamed of a bankruptcy of honor, if we can only keep the letter of our bond? I hope we shall be able to answer all these questions with a frank yes. At any rate, we would advise our visitors that we are not merely curious creatures, but belong to the family of man, and that, as individuals, we are not to be always subjected to the competitive examination above mentioned, even if we acknowledged their competence as an examining board. Above all, we beg them to remember that America is not to us, as to them, a mere object of external interest to be discussed and analyzed, but in us, part of our very marrow. Let them not suppose that we conceive of ourselves as exiles from the graces and amenities of an older date than we, though very much at home in a state of things not yet all it might be or should be, but which we mean to make so, and which we find both wholesome and pleasant for men (though perhaps not for dilettanti) to live in. "The full tide of human existence" may be felt here as keenly as Johnson felt it at Charing Cross, and in a larger sense. I know one person who is singular enough to think Cambridge the very best spot on the habitable globe. "Doubtless God could have made a better, but doubtless he never did."

As long as we remain the most commonly educated but least refined people in the world, I guess we have to accept this condescending attitude from foreigners. The friendlier they try to be, the more laughably obvious it gets. They can never appreciate the huge amount of quiet effort that has gone into making this continent suitable for people to live on, which we hope will eventually show in the character of the populace. Outsiders can only judge a nation based on what it has visibly contributed to global civilization; the tangible stuff that can be seen and touched. A significant place in history can only be achieved through competitive exams, and a long series of them at that. How much new thought have we added to the collective knowledge? Until we can confidently answer that question, or until it needs no answer, we will continue to be merely interesting as an experiment, something to be studied as a problem, rather than being respected as a completed achievement or solution. Perhaps, as I have suggested, their patronizing attitude towards us is a fair outcome of their seeing nothing here but a poor copy, a plaster cast of Europe. And aren’t they partly right? If the tone of the uncultivated American often has the arrogance of a savage, isn't it true that the more refined among us can be just as vulgar in our apologies? In the Americans they meet, is there simplicity, integrity, a lack of insincerity, a genuine human nature, a sensitivity to duty and obligation that in any way sets us apart from what our speakers refer to as "the exhausted civilization of the Old World"? Is there a politician among us brave enough (except for the occasional Dana) to risk his future on the hope that we will honor our commitments as precisely as superstitious societies like England? Is it certain that we will feel ashamed of a breach of honor if we can only adhere to the letter of our agreements? I hope we can answer all these questions with a straightforward yes. In any case, we would like to inform our visitors that we are not just strange beings, but part of the human family, and that as individuals, we shouldn’t always be subject to the competitive evaluations mentioned earlier, even if we accepted their authority as an examining body. Above all, we ask them to remember that America is not just a topic of external interest for us to discuss and analyze, but in us, part of our very essence. Let them not think of us as exiles from the refinements and comforts of an older civilization, while we are very much at home in situations that aren’t all that they could or should be, but which we intend to improve and that we find both healthy and enjoyable for people (though perhaps not for dilettanti) to live in. "The full tide of human existence" can be felt here as intensely as Johnson felt it at Charing Cross, and in a broader sense. I know one person who is unique enough to think Cambridge is the best place on Earth. "Doubtless God could have made a better one, but surely he never did."

It will take England a great while to get over her airs of patronage toward us, or even passably to conceal them. She cannot help confounding the people with the country, and regarding us as lusty juveniles. She has a conviction that whatever good there is in us is wholly English, when the truth is that we are worth nothing except so far as we have disinfected ourselves of Anglicism. She is especially condescending just now, and lavishes sugar-plums on us as if we had not outgrown them. I am no believer in sudden conversions, especially in sudden conversions to a favorable opinion of people who have just proved you to be mistaken in judgment and therefore unwise in policy. I never blamed her for not wishing well to democracy,—how should she?—but Alabamas are not wishes. Let her not be too hasty in believing Mr. Reverdy Johnson’s pleasant words. Though there is no thoughtful man in America who would not consider a war with England the greatest of calamities, yet the feeling towards her here is very far from cordial, whatever our Minister may say in the effusion that comes after ample dining. Mr. Adams, with his famous "My Lord, this means war," perfectly represented his country. Justly or not, we have a feeling that we have been wronged, not merely insulted. The only sure way of bringing about a healthy relation between the two countries is for Englishmen to clear their minds of the notion that we are always to be treated as a kind of inferior and deported Englishman whose nature they perfectly understand, and whose back they accordingly stroke the wrong way of the fur with amazing perseverance. Let them learn to treat us naturally on our merits as human beings, as they would a German or a Frenchman, and not as if we were a kind of counterfeit Briton whose crime appeared in every shade of difference, and before long there would come that right feeling which we naturally call a good understanding. The common blood, and still more the common language, are fatal instruments of misapprehension. Let them give up trying to understand us, still more thinking that they do, and acting in various absurd ways as the necessary consequence, for they will never arrive at that devoutly-to-be-wished consummation, till they learn to look at us as we are and not as they suppose us to be. Dear old long-estranged mother-in-law, it is a great many years since we parted. Since 1660, when you married again, you have been a stepmother to us. Put on your spectacles, dear madam. Yes, we have grown, and changed likewise. You would not let us darken your doors, if you could help it. We know that perfectly well. But pray, when we look to be treated as men, don’t shake that rattle in our faces, nor talk baby to us any longer.

It will take England a long time to shake off its condescending attitude towards us or even to hide it properly. She tends to mix up the people with the country, seeing us as immature youths. She believes that all the good in us is completely English, when the truth is we only have value to the extent that we've distanced ourselves from English influence. Right now, she is especially patronizing, giving us gifts as if we haven’t outgrown them. I don’t believe in sudden changes of heart, especially towards people who have just shown you that your judgment was incorrect and your policies unwise. I never criticized her for not supporting democracy—why would she?—but Alabamas aren't just wishes. She shouldn't be too quick to trust Mr. Reverdy Johnson’s flattering words. Although there isn't a thoughtful person in America who would consider a war with England anything but a disaster, the feeling towards her here is far from friendly, no matter what our Minister may say after a big dinner. Mr. Adams, with his famous "My Lord, this means war," perfectly represented his country. Rightly or wrongly, we feel we’ve been wronged, not just insulted. The only real way to create a healthy relationship between the two countries is for the English to stop thinking that we should always be treated as some kind of lesser version of themselves whose nature they completely understand, treating us the wrong way with shocking persistence. They should learn to treat us as equals on our own terms, like they would a German or a Frenchman, instead of seeing us as a kind of fake Briton with every difference being a flaw, and before long we’d achieve the good understanding we both desire. Our shared blood and especially our common language often lead to misunderstandings. They need to stop trying to understand us, and even more, stop pretending that they do and acting in ridiculous ways as a result, because they’ll never reach that much-desired outcome until they look at us for who we really are, not who they think we are. Dear old estranged mother-in-law, it’s been many years since we parted. Since 1660, when you remarried, you’ve acted like a stepmother to us. Put on your glasses, dear madam. Yes, we have grown and changed. You wouldn’t let us anywhere near your doorstep if you could avoid it. We understand that very well. But please, when we ask to be treated as adults, don’t wave that rattle in our faces or talk to us like we’re children anymore.

"Go ahead, child, visit your grandmother, child;" Give the old lady a kingdom, and it will be hers. "Give it a plum, a cherry, and a fig!"

PREFACE TO "LEAVES OF GRASS"

1855

WALT WHITMAN

AMERICA does not repel the past, or what the past has produced under its forms, or amid other politics, or the idea of castes, or the old religions—accepts the lesson with calmness—is not impatient because the slough still sticks to opinions and manners in literature, while the life which served its requirements has passed into the new life of the new forms—perceives that the corpse is slowly borne from the eating and sleeping rooms of the house—perceives that it waits a little while in the door—that it was fittest for its days—that its action has descended to the stalwart and well-shaped heir who approaches—and that he shall be fittest for his days.

AMERICA doesn’t reject the past, or what it has created in its various forms, through different politics, or the idea of social classes, or the old religions—it calmly accepts the lessons from it. It’s not frustrated because outdated beliefs and behaviors still linger in literature, even though the life that once met its needs has transitioned into a new life with new forms. It sees that the past is slowly being carried away from the main areas of life—it notices that it lingers for a moment at the door—that it was most suited for its time—that its influence has passed to the strong and capable successor who is coming—and that he will be most suitable for his time.

The Americans of all nations at any time upon the earth, have probably the fullest poetical nature. The United States themselves are essentially the greatest poem. In the history of the earth hitherto, the largest and most stirring appear tame and orderly to their ampler largeness and stir. Here at last is something in the doings of man that corresponds with the broadcast doings of the day and night. Here is action untied from strings, necessarily blind to particulars and details, magnificently moving in masses. Here is the hospitality which for ever indicates heroes. Here the performance, disdaining the trivial, unapproach’d in the tremendous audacity of its crowds and groupings, and the push of its perspective, spreads with crampless and flowing breadth, and showers its prolific and splendid extravagance. One sees it must indeed own the riches of the summer and winter, and need never be bankrupt while corn grows from the ground, or the orchards drop apples, or the bays contain fish, or men beget children upon women.

The Americans, more than any other nation at any time in history, likely have the richest poetic spirit. The United States itself is essentially the greatest poem. In the history of the earth so far, the biggest and most exciting events seem bland and orderly compared to their vastness and energy. Here, at last, is something in human actions that matches the widespread happenings of day and night. Here is action free from constraints, necessarily ignoring specifics and details, magnificently moving in large groups. Here is the hospitality that forever signifies heroes. Here, the performance, rejecting the trivial, unmatched in its boldness of crowds and formations, and the depth of its perspective, spreads with boundless and flowing width, showering its abundant and spectacular extravagance. It's clear that it must possess the wealth of summer and winter and will never be impoverished as long as crops grow from the soil, orchards bear fruit, bays hold fish, or people continue to have children.

Other states indicate themselves in their deputies—but the genius of the United States is not best or most in its executives or legislatures, nor in its ambassadors or authors, or colleges or churches or parlors, nor even in its newspapers or inventors—but always most in the common people, south, north, west, east, in all its States, through all its mighty amplitude. The largeness of the nation, however, were monstrous without a corresponding largeness and generosity of the spirit of the citizen. Not swarming states, nor streets and steamships, nor prosperous business, nor farms, nor capital, nor learning, may suffice for the ideal of man—nor suffice the poet. No reminiscences may suffice either. A live nation can always cut a deep mark, and can have the best authority the cheapest—namely, from its own soul. This is the sum of the profitable uses of individuals or states, and of present action and grandeur, and of the subjects of poets. (As if it were necessary to trot back generation after generation to the eastern records! As if the beauty and sacredness of the demonstrable must fall behind that of the mythical! As if men do not make their mark out of any times! As if the opening of the western continent by discovery, and what has transpired in North and South America, were less than the small theater of the antique, or the aimless sleep-walking of the middle ages!) The pride of the United States leaves the wealth and finesse of the cities, and all returns of commerce and agriculture, and all the magnitude of geography or shows of exterior victory, to enjoy the sight and realization of full-sized men, or one full-sized man unconquerable and simple.

Other countries show themselves through their representatives—but the essence of the United States is not best represented by its leaders or lawmakers, nor by its diplomats, writers, schools, churches, or social gatherings, and not even in its newspapers or inventors—but rather most in the everyday people, everywhere from the south to the north, the west to the east, across all its states and vast expanse. The size of the nation, however, would be overwhelming without a matching size and generosity of the citizens' spirit. Neither bustling states, nor busy streets and ships, nor thriving businesses, nor farms, nor wealth, nor education can fulfill the ideal of humanity—or satisfy the poet. Memories alone won't cut it either. A vibrant nation can always leave a significant impact and draw its best authority from its own soul. This is the essence of the valuable contributions of individuals or states, along with current actions and greatness, and of the themes for poets. (As if it were essential to go back generation after generation to the records of the east! As if the beauty and significance of what is proven must be less than that of the mythical! As if people can’t make their mark from any era! As if the discovery of the western continent and everything that has happened in North and South America is less impressive than the limited stage of the ancient world or the pointless wandering of the middle ages!) The pride of the United States transcends the wealth and sophistication of its cities, and all the benefits of trade and agriculture, as well as the vastness of geography or the displays of outward success, to appreciate the sight and reality of fully developed individuals, or one complete individual who is unbeatable and genuine.

The American poets are to inclose old and new, for America is the race of races. The expression of the American poet is to be transcendent and new. It is to be indirect, and not direct or descriptive or epic. Its quality goes through these to much more. Let the age and wars of other nations be chanted, and their eras and characters be illustrated, and that finish the verse. Not so the great psalm of the republic. Here the theme is creative, and has vista. Whatever stagnates in the flat of custom or obedience or legislation, the great poet never stagnates. Obedience does not master him, he masters it. High up out of reach he stands, turning a concentrated light—he turns the pivot with his finger—he baffles the swiftest runners as he stands, and easily overtakes and envelopes them. The time straying toward infidelity and confections and persiflage he withholds by steady faith. Faith is the antiseptic of the soul—it pervades the common people and preserves them—they never give up believing and expecting and trusting. There is that indescribable freshness and unconsciousness about an illiterate person, that humbles and mocks the power of the noblest expressive genius. The poet sees for a certainty how one not a great artist may be just as sacred and perfect as the greatest artist.

American poets are meant to encompass both the old and the new, because America is a blend of all races. The expression of the American poet should be transcendent and fresh. It should be indirect, rather than direct, descriptive, or epic. Its essence goes beyond these forms. Let the ages and wars of other nations be sung about, and their eras and characters be depicted, and let that be the end of the verse. Not so with the great anthem of the republic. Here, the theme is creative and expansive. Whatever gets stuck in the rut of tradition, conformity, or law, the great poet avoids stagnation. He isn’t controlled by obedience; he’s in control of it. High up, out of reach, he shines a focused light—he shifts the pivot with his finger—he outpaces the fastest runners while standing still, and effortlessly catches up to and envelops them. In times that drift towards doubt, superficiality, and sarcasm, he maintains steady faith. Faith is the soul's cleanser—it flows through the common people and protects them—they never stop believing, expecting, and trusting. There’s an indescribable freshness and innocence in an uneducated person that humbles and challenges the mightiest expressive genius. The poet clearly sees how someone who isn’t a great artist can be just as sacred and perfect as the greatest artist.

The power to destroy or remould is freely used by the greatest poet, but seldom the power of attack. What is past is past. If he does not expose superior models, and prove himself by every step he takes, he is not what is wanted. The presence of the great poet conquers—not parleying, or struggling, or any prepared attempts. Now he has passed that way, see after him! There is not left any vestige of despair, or misanthropy, or cunning, or exclusiveness, or the ignominy of a nativity or color, or delusion of hell or the necessity of hell—and no man thenceforward shall be degraded for ignorance or weakness or sin. The greatest poet hardly knows pettiness or triviality. If he breathes into anything that was before thought small, it dilates with the grandeur and life of the universe. He is a seer—he is individual—he is complete in himself—the others are as good as he, only he sees it, and they do not. He is not one of the chorus—he does not stop for any regulation—he is the president of regulation. What the eyesight does to the rest, he does to the rest. Who knows the curious mystery of the eyesight? The other senses corroborate themselves, but this is removed from any proof but its own, and foreruns the identities of the spiritual world. A single glance of it mocks all the investigations of man, and all the instruments and books of the earth, and all reasoning. What is marvelous? what is unlikely? what is impossible or baseless or vague—after you have once just open’d the space of a peach-pit, and given audience to far and near, and to the sunset, and had all things enter with electric swiftness, softly and duly, without confusion or jostling or jam?

The power to transform or reshape is freely wielded by the greatest poet, but the power to attack is rarely utilized. What has happened is in the past. If he does not reveal better examples and prove himself with every move he makes, he’s not what people want. The presence of the great poet is what conquers—not arguing, struggling, or any rehearsed efforts. Now that he has traveled that path, look after him! There’s no trace left of despair, misanthropy, cunning, exclusiveness, or the shame of birth or skin color, nor any delusion of hell or need for hell—and from then on, no one will be belittled for ignorance, weakness, or sin. The greatest poet hardly recognizes pettiness or triviality. If he breathes life into anything that was once considered small, it expands with the grandeur and vibrancy of the universe. He is a visionary—he is unique—he is whole in himself—others are just as good as he is; it’s just that he recognizes it, and they do not. He is not part of the chorus—he doesn’t conform to any rules—he sets the standard. What vision does for the rest, he does for everyone. Who understands the mysterious nature of vision? The other senses confirm each other, but vision is beyond any proof except for its own, leading into the identities of the spiritual realm. A single glance from it mocks all human inquiry, all the tools and books of the earth, and all reasoning. What is wonderful? What is unlikely? What is impossible, unfounded, or unclear—once you’ve merely opened the space of a peach pit, and welcomed both the distant and near, and the sunset, having everything flow in rapidly, quietly, and orderly, without confusion or crowding?

The land and sea, the animals, fishes and birds, the sky of heaven and the orbs, the forests, mountains and rivers, are not small themes—but folks expect of the poet to indicate more than the beauty and dignity which always attach to dumb real objects—they expect him to indicate the path between reality and their souls. Men and women perceive the beauty well enough—probably as well as he. The passionate tenacity of hunters, woodmen, early risers, cultivators of gardens and orchards and fields, the love of healthy women for the manly form, seafaring persons, drivers of horses, the passion for light and the open air, all is an old varied sign of the unfailing perception of beauty, and of a residence of the poetic in out-door people. They can never be assisted by poets to perceive—some may, but they never can. The poetic quality is not marshal’d in rhyme or uniformity, or abstract addresses to things, nor in melancholy complaints or good precepts, but is the life of these and much else, and is in the soul. The profit of rhyme is that it drops seeds of a sweeter and more luxuriant rhyme, and of uniformity that it conveys itself into its own roots in the ground out of sight. The rhyme and uniformity of perfect poems show the free growth of metrical laws, and bud from them as unerringly and loosely as lilacs and roses on a bush, and take shapes as compact as the shapes of chestnuts and oranges, and melons and pears, and shed the perfume impalpable to form. The fluency and ornaments of the finest poems or music or orations or recitations, are not independent but dependent. All beauty comes from beautiful blood and a beautiful brain. If the greatnesses are in conjunction in a man or woman, it is enough—the fact will prevail through the universe; but the gaggery and gilt of a million years will not prevail. Who troubles himself about his ornaments or fluency is lost. This is what you shall do: Love the earth and sun and the animals, despise riches, give alms to everyone that asks, stand up for the stupid and crazy, devote your income and labor to others, hate tyrants, argue not concerning God, have patience and indulgence toward the people, take off your hat to nothing known or unknown, or to any man or number of men—go freely with powerful uneducated persons, and with the young, and with the mothers of families—re-examine all you have been told in school or church or in any book, and dismiss whatever insults your own soul; and your very flesh shall be a great poem, and have the richest fluency, not only in its words, but in the silent lines of its lips and face, and between the lashes of your eyes, and in every motion and joint of your body. The poet shall not spend his time in unneeded work. He shall know that the ground is already plow’d and manured; others may not know it, but he shall. He shall go directly to the creation. His trust shall master the trust of everything he touches—and shall master all attachment.

The land and sea, the animals, fish and birds, the sky and stars, the forests, mountains and rivers, are big themes—but people expect the poet to show more than just the beauty and dignity that come with these natural objects—they want him to reveal the connection between reality and their souls. Men and women recognize the beauty just fine—probably as well as he does. The passionate persistence of hunters, woodsmen, early risers, gardeners and farmers, the love that healthy women have for the strong male form, sailors, horse riders, the love for light and the great outdoors, all show that people who live outside have an innate sense of beauty and a poetic spirit. They can’t rely on poets to see it—some may, but they really can’t. The essence of poetry isn’t found in rhymes or uniformity, abstract ideas, melancholy laments, or moral lessons, but is the life within these and much more, stemming from the soul. The beauty of rhyme helps plant seeds of sweeter and richer sound, while uniformity roots itself deep where it can’t be seen. The rhyme and structure of great poems demonstrate the natural growth of rhythmic laws, blooming as freely and effortlessly as lilacs and roses on a bush and taking shapes as solid as chestnuts, oranges, melons, and pears, giving off a fragrance that transcends form. The flow and embellishments of the finest poems, music, speeches, or readings aren’t independent but are interconnected. All beauty comes from beautiful blood and a beautiful mind. If greatness exists in a man or woman, that fact will echo throughout the universe; but the superficiality and shimmer of countless years won't hold any value. Those preoccupied with their appearance or eloquence are lost. Here’s what you should do: Love the earth, the sun, and animals, shun material wealth, give generously to everyone who asks, stand up for the foolish and the mad, dedicate your earnings and work to others, despise tyrants, don’t argue about God, be patient and understanding toward the people, never tip your hat to anyone known or unknown, or to any group of people—mix freely with unrefined individuals, the young, and mothers—question everything you’ve been taught in school, church, or any book, and discard whatever insults your spirit; and your very body will become a great poem, flowing richly not just in its words, but in the silent curves of your lips and face, between the lashes of your eyes, and in every movement and joint of your body. The poet won’t waste time on unnecessary tasks. He’ll understand that the ground has already been plowed and fertilized; others might not see it, but he will. He’ll head straight to the creation. His trust will dominate everything he interacts with—and will conquer all attachments.

The known universe has one complete lover, and that is the greatest poet. He consumes an eternal passion, and is indifferent which chance happens, and which possible contingency of fortune or misfortune, and persuades daily and hourly his delicious pay. What balks or breaks others is fuel for his burning progress to contact and amorous joy. Other proportions of the reception of pleasure dwindle to nothing to his proportions. All expected from heaven or from the highest, he is rapport with in the sight of the daybreak, or the scenes of the winter woods, or the presence of children playing, or with his arm round the neck of a man or woman. His love above all love has leisure and expanse—he leaves room ahead of himself. He is no irresolute or suspicious lover—he is sure—he scorns intervals. His experience and the showers and thrills are not for nothing. Nothing can jar him—suffering and darkness cannot—death and fear cannot. To him complaint and jealousy and envy are corpses buried and rotten in the earth—he saw them buried. The sea is not surer of the shore, or the shore of the sea, than he is of the fruition of his love, and of all perfection and beauty.

The known universe has one true lover, and that is the greatest poet. He embraces an eternal passion, indifferent to whatever chance arises, whether it brings good fortune or bad luck, and he delights in his sweet rewards every moment of every day. What discourages or breaks others fuels his ongoing journey toward connection and joyful love. Other ways of experiencing pleasure shrink in comparison to his. Everything expected from heaven or the highest realms, he finds in the light of dawn, in the scenes of winter woods, in the sight of children playing, or with his arm around someone close. His love, above all, has space and freedom—he makes room for what lies ahead. He is not a hesitant or doubtful lover—he is confident—he dismisses delays. His experiences, the excitement and thrills, are meaningful. Nothing can shake him—not suffering or darkness, not death or fear. To him, complaints, jealousy, and envy are like corpses buried and decaying in the ground—he has seen them laid to rest. The sea is no more certain of the shore than he is of the fulfillment of his love, and of all perfection and beauty.

The fruition of beauty is no chance of miss or hit—it is as inevitable as life—it is exact and plumb as gravitation. From the eyesight proceeds another eyesight, and from the hearing proceeds another hearing, and from the voice proceeds another voice, eternally curious of the harmony of things with man. These understand the law of perfection in masses and floods—that it is profuse and impartial—that there is not a minute of the light or dark, nor an acre of the earth and sea, without it—nor any direction of the sky, nor any trade or employment, nor any turn of events. This is the reason that about the proper expression of beauty there is precision and balance. One part does not need to be thrust above another. The best singer is not the one who has the most lithe and powerful organ. The pleasure of poems is not in them that take the handsomest measure and sound.

The experience of beauty is not a matter of luck—it's as certain as life itself—it’s as precise and consistent as gravity. From one person's sight comes another's sight, from one person's hearing comes another's hearing, and from one person's voice comes another's voice, always seeking the harmony between people and the world. These beings understand the principle of perfection in great numbers and waves—that it's abundant and fair—that there isn't a moment of light or darkness, nor a piece of land or ocean, that is without it—nor any point in the sky, nor any job or pursuit, nor any twist of fate. This is why there is precision and balance in the proper expression of beauty. One element doesn’t need to overshadow another. The best singer isn't necessarily the one with the most graceful and powerful voice. The enjoyment of poetry isn't found solely in those that have the most beautiful form and sound.

Without effort, and without exposing in the least how it is done, the greatest poet brings the spirit of any or all events and passions and scenes and persons, some more and some less, to bear on your individual character as you hear or read. To do this well is to compete with the laws that pursue and follow Time. What is the purpose must surely be there, and the clew of it must be there—and the faintest indication is the indication of the best, and then becomes the clearest indication. Past and present and future are not disjoin’d but join’d. The greatest poet forms the consistence of what is to be, from what has been and is. He drags the dead out of their coffins and stands them again on their feet. He says to the past, Rise and walk before me that I may realize you. He learns the lesson—he places himself where the future becomes present. The greatest poet does not only dazzle his rays over character and scenes and passions—he finally ascends, and finishes all—he exhibits the pinnacles that no man can tell what they are for, or what is beyond—he glows a moment on the extremest verge. He is most wonderful in his last half-hidden smile or frown; by that flash of the moment of parting the one that sees it shall be encouraged or terrified afterward for many years. The greatest poet does not moralize or make applications of morals—he knows the soul. The soul has that measureless pride which consists in never acknowledging any lessons or deductions but its own. But it has sympathy as measureless as its pride, and the one balances the other, and neither can stretch too far while it stretches in company with the other. The inmost secrets of art sleep with the twain. The greatest poet has lain close betwixt both, and they are vital in his style and thoughts.

Without effort, and without revealing how it's done, the greatest poet taps into the essence of any events, emotions, scenes, or people, some more than others, influencing your individual character as you hear or read. To do this well is to compete with the forces that chase after Time. The purpose must surely be there, and the clue to it must be there—and the slightest hint is the sign of the best, which then becomes the clearest indication. Past, present, and future are not separate but connected. The greatest poet shapes what is to come from what has been and what is happening now. He pulls the dead from their graves and sets them back on their feet. He tells the past, "Rise and walk before me so I can truly understand you." He learns the lesson—he positions himself where the future becomes the present. The greatest poet doesn’t just illuminate characters, scenes, and emotions—he ultimately rises above it all, showcasing heights that no one can fully understand, or what lies beyond—he briefly shines on the farthest edge. He is most remarkable in his final half-hidden smile or frown; in that fleeting moment before parting, the observer will either feel uplifted or terrified for many years to come. The greatest poet doesn't moralize or apply morals—he understands the soul. The soul possesses an infinite pride that refuses to acknowledge any lessons or conclusions besides its own. But it has a sympathy that matches its pride, and together they keep each other in balance, neither stretching too far while aligned with the other. The deepest secrets of art rest with both. The greatest poet has dwelled closely with both, and they are alive in his style and thoughts.

The art of art, the glory of expression and the sunshine of the light of letters, is simplicity. Nothing is better than simplicity—nothing can make up for excess, or for the lack of definiteness. To carry on the heave of impulse and pierce intellectual depths and give all subjects their articulations, are powers neither common nor very uncommon. But to speak in literature with the perfect rectitude and insouciance of the movements of animals, and the unimpeachableness of the sentiment of trees in the woods and grass by the roadside, is the flawless triumph of art. If you have look’d on him who has achiev’d it you have look’d on one of the masters of the artists of all nations and times. You shall not contemplate the flight of the gray gull over the bay, or the mettlesome action of the blood horse, or the tall leaning of sunflowers on their stalk, or the appearance of the sun journeying through heaven, or the appearance of the moon afterward, with any more satisfaction than you shall contemplate him. The great poet has less a mark’d style, and is more the channel of thoughts and things without increase or diminution, and is the free channel of himself. He swears to his art, I will not be meddlesome, I will not have in my writing any elegance, or effect, or originality, to hang in the way between me and the rest like curtains. I will have nothing hang in the way, not the richest curtains. What I tell I tell for precisely what it is. Let who may exalt or startle or fascinate or soothe, I will have purposes as health or heat or snow has, and be as regardless of observation. What I experience or portray shall go from my composition without a shred of my composition. You shall stand by my side and look in the mirror with me.

The essence of art, the beauty of expression, and the brightness of written words is simplicity. Nothing surpasses simplicity—nothing can compensate for excess or vagueness. To follow the surge of inspiration, explore deep ideas, and clearly express all subjects are abilities that are not very common. But to write in literature with the perfect straightforwardness and ease of animal movements, and the unwavering emotion of trees in the forest and grass by the roadside, is the ultimate achievement of art. If you've seen someone who has accomplished this, you've seen one of the greatest masters among artists of all cultures and eras. You won't find greater satisfaction in watching a gray gull fly over the bay, a spirited racehorse in motion, sunflowers leaning on their stalks, the sun moving across the sky, or the moon that follows, than you will in observing him. The great poet has less of a distinct style and serves more as a conduit for thoughts and realities without embellishment, being completely true to himself. He commits to his art, saying, "I won't be intrusive; I won't let any elegance, effect, or originality get in the way of my work like curtains." He won't let anything obstruct the view, not even the finest drapes. What I express, I express exactly as it is. Whether someone may elevate, shock, charm, or calm, I will have aims as fundamental as health, warmth, or snow, and will be indifferent to judgment. What I experience or depict will emerge from my writing without a trace of my own intervention. You will stand beside me and gaze into the mirror together.

The old red blood and stainless gentility of great poets will be proved by their unconstraint. A heroic person walks at his ease through and out of that custom or precedent or authority that suits him not. Of the traits of the brotherhood of first-class writers, savans, musicians, inventors and artists, nothing is finer than silent defiance advancing from new free forms. In the need of poems, philosophy, politics, mechanism, science, behavior, the craft of art, an appropriate native grand opera, shipcraft, or any craft, he is greatest for ever and ever who contributes the greatest original practical example. The cleanest expression is that which finds no sphere worthy of itself, and makes one.

The old passion and polished manners of great poets will be revealed by their freedom. A heroic person moves easily in and out of customs, precedents, or authorities that don’t work for him. Among the characteristics of top writers, scholars, musicians, inventors, and artists, nothing is more admirable than the quiet defiance that emerges from new, unrestricted forms. In the realms of poetry, philosophy, politics, technology, science, behavior, the art of creation, an appropriate native grand opera, shipbuilding, or any craft, the one who contributes the most significant original practical example is the greatest of all time. The clearest expression is one that finds no space worthy of it and creates one.

The messages of great poems to each man and woman are, Come to us on equal terms, only then can you understand us. We are no better than you, what we inclose you inclose, what we enjoy you may enjoy. Did you suppose there could be only one Supreme? We affirm there can be unnumber’d Supremes, and that one does not countervail another any more than one eyesight countervails another—and that men can be good or grand only of the consciousness of their supremacy within them. What do you think is the grandeur of storms and dismemberments, and the deadliest battles and wrecks, and the wildest fury of the elements, and the power of the sea, and the motion of Nature, and the throes of human desires, and dignity and hate and love? It is that something in the soul which says, Rage on, whirl on, I tread master here and everywhere—Master of the spasms of the sky and of the shatter of the sea, Master of nature and passion and death, and of all terror and all pain.

The messages of great poems to everyone are clear: Come to us as equals, and only then can you truly understand us. We are no better than you; what we experience, you can experience too. Did you think there could be just one Supreme being? We believe there can be countless Supremes, and that one doesn’t diminish another, just like one person's vision doesn’t overshadow another’s—and that people can only be good or great through the awareness of their own supremacy within. What do you think makes storms, destruction, the most dangerous battles, wrecks, the fierce power of the elements, the sea’s might, nature’s movements, the struggles of human desires, and the feelings of dignity, hate, and love so grand? It’s that part of the soul that insists, Keep going, whirl on, I am the master here and everywhere—Master of the storms in the sky and the crashing sea, Master of nature, passion, and death, and of all fear and pain.

The American bards shall be mark’d for generosity and affection, and for encouraging competitors. They shall be Kosmos, without monopoly or secrecy, glad to pass anything to anyone—hungry for equals night and day. They shall not be careful of riches and privilege—they shall be riches and privilege—they shall perceive who the most affluent man is. The most affluent man is he that confronts all the shows he sees by equivalents out of the stronger wealth of himself. The American bard shall delineate no class of persons, nor one or two out of the strata of interests, nor love most nor truth most, nor the soul most, nor the body most—and not be for the Eastern States more than the Western, or the Northern States more than the Southern.

The American poets will be known for their generosity and kindness, and for supporting their peers. They will be universal, without exclusivity or secrecy, eager to share everything with anyone—constantly seeking equals. They won’t be concerned about wealth and status—they will embody wealth and status—they will understand who the richest person is. The richest person is the one who measures all the experiences they encounter by the greater wealth within themselves. The American poet will not define any specific group of people, nor focus on just one or two interests, nor favor love over truth, or the soul over the body—and will not lean towards the Eastern states more than the Western ones, or the Northern states more than the Southern.

Exact science and its practical movements are no checks on the greatest poet, but always his encouragement and support. The outset and remembrance are there—there the arms that lifted him first, and braced him best—there he returns after all his goings and comings. The sailor and traveler—the anatomist, chemist, astronomer, geologist, phrenologist, spiritualist, mathematician, historian, and lexicographer, are not poets, but they are the lawgivers of poets, and their construction underlies the structure of every perfect poem. No matter what rises or is utter’d, they sent the seed of the conception of it—of them and by them stand the visible proofs of souls. If there shall be love and content between the father and the son, and if the greatness of the son is the exuding of the greatness of the father, there shall be love between the poet and the man of demonstrable science. In the beauty of poems are henceforth the tuft and final applause of science.

Exact science and its practical applications are not obstacles for the greatest poet; instead, they are his motivation and support. The beginning and the memories are present—those are the forces that first lifted him and helped him the most—there he returns after all his journeys. The sailor and traveler—the anatomist, chemist, astronomer, geologist, phrenologist, spiritualist, mathematician, historian, and lexicographer are not poets, but they set the rules for poets, and their ideas form the foundation of every perfect poem. No matter what emerges or is expressed, they planted the seeds of those ideas—through them, the visible evidence of souls exists. If there is love and understanding between a father and son, and if the son’s greatness stems from the father’s greatness, then there will be love between the poet and the man of exact science. In the beauty of poems lies the essence and ultimate recognition of science.

Great is the faith of the flush of knowledge, and of the investigation of the depths of qualities and things. Cleaving and circling here swells the soul of the poet, yet is president of itself always. The depths are fathomless, and therefore calm. The innocence and nakedness are resumed—they are neither modest nor immodest. The whole theory of the supernatural, and all that was twined with it or educed out of it, departs as a dream. What has ever happen’d—what happens, and whatever may or shall happen, the vital laws inclose all. They are sufficient for any case and for all cases—none to be hurried or retarded—any special miracle of affairs or persons inadmissible in the vast clear scheme where every motion and every spear of grass, and the frames and spirits of men and women and all that concerns them, are unspeakably perfect miracles, all referring to all, and each distinct and in its place. It is also not consistent with the reality of the soul to admit that there is anything in the known universe more divine than men and women.

Great is the faith in the rush of knowledge and in exploring the depths of qualities and things. Both the soaring and the circling enhance the poet's spirit, yet it remains in control of itself at all times. The depths are endless, and that's why they are peaceful. The purity and rawness return—they are neither shy nor shameless. The entire concept of the supernatural, along with everything that connects to it or comes from it, disappears like a dream. What has happened—what happens, and what may or will happen, all vital laws encompass everything. They are enough for any situation and all situations—none can be rushed or delayed—any unique miracle involving events or people is not allowed in the grand clear plan where every movement, every blade of grass, and the bodies and souls of men and women, along with everything that affects them, are incredibly perfect miracles, interconnected, and each distinct and in its rightful place. It is also inconsistent with the reality of the soul to suggest that there is anything in the known universe more divine than men and women.

Men and women, and the earth and all upon it, are to be taken as they are, and the investigation of their past and present and future shall be unintermitted, and shall be done with perfect candor. Upon this basis philosophy speculates, ever looking towards the poet, ever regarding the eternal tendencies of all toward happiness, never inconsistent with what is clear to the senses and to the soul. For the eternal tendencies of all toward happiness make the only point of sane philosophy. Whatever comprehends less than that—whatever is less than the laws of light and of astronomical motion—or less than the laws that follow the thief, the liar, the glutton and the drunkard, through this life and doubtless afterward—or less than vast stretches of time, or the slow formation of density, or the patient upheaving of strata—is of no account. Whatever would put God in a poem or system of philosophy as contending against some being or influence, is also of no account. Sanity and ensemble characterize the great master—spoilt in one principle, all is spoilt. The great master has nothing to do with miracles. He sees health for himself in being one of the mass—he sees the hiatus in singular eminence. To the perfect shape comes common ground. To be under the general law is great, for that is to correspond with it. The master knows that he is unspeakably great, and that all are unspeakably great—that nothing, for instance, is greater than to conceive children, and bring them up well—that to be is just as great as to perceive or tell.

Men and women, as well as the earth and everything on it, should be accepted as they are, and the exploration of their past, present, and future should continue without pause, done with complete openness. On this foundation, philosophy reflects, always looking toward poetry, always considering the universal drive toward happiness, and never contradicting what is clear to our senses and our soul. This universal drive toward happiness is the only foundation of sound philosophy. Anything that falls short of this—anything less than the laws of light and astronomical motion, or less than the consequences that follow a thief, liar, glutton, and drunkard in this life and probably beyond, or less than vast expanses of time, or the gradual formation of density, or the slow rising of layers—is insignificant. Anything that would place God in a poem or philosophy as opposing some entity or force is also insignificant. Sanity and unity define the great master—if one principle is corrupted, everything is corrupted. The great master has no connection to miracles. He finds his strength in being part of the collective—he recognizes the flaw in excessive individuality. To align with the universal law is significant, for that means to resonate with it. The master knows he is immensely great, and that everyone is immensely great—that nothing, for instance, is greater than creating life and raising it well—that existing is just as significant as perceiving or articulating.

In the make of the great masters the idea of political liberty is indispensable. Liberty takes the adherence of heroes wherever man and woman exist—but never takes any adherence or welcome from the rest more than from poets. They are the voice and exposition of liberty. They out of ages are worthy the grand idea—to them it is confided, and they must sustain it. Nothing has precedence of it, and nothing can warp or degrade it.

In the works of great masters, the concept of political freedom is essential. Freedom captures the loyalty of heroes wherever men and women are found—but it receives less loyalty or acceptance from anyone other than poets. They are the voice and representation of freedom. Throughout history, they deserve the noble idea—it's entrusted to them, and they must uphold it. Nothing is more important than this, and nothing can distort or diminish it.

As the attributes of the poets of the kosmos concenter in the real body, and in the pleasure of things, they possess the superiority of genuineness over all fiction and romance. As they emit themselves, facts are shower’d over with light—the daylight is lit with more volatile light—the deep between the setting and rising sun goes deeper many fold. Each precise object or condition or combination or process exhibits a beauty—the multiplication table its—old age its—the carpenter’s trade its—the grand opera its—the huge-hull’d clean-shap’d New York clipper at sea under steam or full sail gleams with unmatch’d beauty—the American circles and large harmonies of government gleam with theirs—and the commonest definite intentions and actions with theirs. The poets of the kosmos advance through all interpositions and coverings and turmoils and stratagems to first principles. They are of use—they dissolve poverty from its need, and riches from its conceit. You large proprietor, they say, shall not realize or perceive more than anyone else. The owner of the library is not he who holds a legal title to it, having bought and paid for it. Anyone and everyone is owner of the library, (indeed he or she alone is owner,) who can read the same through all the varieties of tongues and subjects and styles, and in whom they enter with ease, and make supple and powerful and rich and large.

As the qualities of the poets of the universe come together in the physical world, and in the enjoyment of things, they have a genuine advantage over all fiction and romance. As they express themselves, facts are illuminated—the daylight shines brighter—the space between the setting and rising sun deepens even more. Every specific object, condition, combination, or process has its own beauty—the multiplication table has its own—the elderly have theirs—the carpenter’s craft has its beauty—the grand opera has its allure—the sleek, well-designed New York clipper sailing at sea, powered by steam or full sail, sparkles with unmatched beauty—the American ideals and overarching structures of government shine with their own beauty—and even the simplest intentions and actions have theirs. The poets of the universe navigate through all barriers, chaos, and tricks to uncover core truths. They serve a purpose—they eliminate poverty from necessity and wealth from arrogance. They say to you, the wealthy owner, that you won’t experience or understand more than anyone else. The real owner of the library isn’t the person who holds the legal title after purchasing it. The true owner of the library is anyone who can read and understand it across all the various languages, subjects, and styles, and who absorbs it easily, making it flexible, powerful, rich, and expansive.

These American States, strong and healthy and accomplish’d, shall receive no pleasure from violations of natural models, and must not permit them. In paintings or mouldings or carvings in mineral or wood, or in the illustrations of books or newspapers, or in the patterns of woven stuffs, or anything to beautify rooms or furniture or costumes, or to put upon cornices or monuments, or on the prows or sterns of ships, or to put anywhere before the human eye indoors or out, that which distorts honest shapes, or which creates unearthly beings or places or contingencies, is a nuisance and revolt. Of the human form especially, it is so great it must never be made ridiculous. Of ornaments to a work nothing outre can be allow’d—but those ornaments can be allow’d that conform to the perfect facts of the open air, and that flow out of the nature of the work, and come irrepressibly from it, and are necessary to the completion of the work. Most works are most beautiful without ornament. Exaggerations will be revenged in human physiology. Clean and vigorous children are jetted and conceiv’d only in those communities where the models of natural forms are public every day. Great genius and the people of these States must never be demean’d to romances. As soon as histories are properly told, no more need of romances.

These American states, strong, vibrant, and accomplished, shall find no pleasure in violations of natural standards and must not allow them. In art or sculpture or carvings in stone or wood, in illustrations in books or newspapers, in the patterns of fabrics, or in anything meant to beautify rooms, furniture, or clothing, or to embellish cornices or monuments, or on the bows or sterns of ships, or anywhere visible to the human eye inside or outside, anything that distorts honest shapes or creates otherworldly beings, places, or scenarios is a nuisance and an affront. Especially concerning the human form, it is so significant that it must never be made to look ridiculous. For embellishments in a work, nothing outrageous can be permitted—only those that align with the true facts of the outdoors, that arise naturally from the work itself, and are essential to its completion. Most works are most beautiful without embellishment. Exaggerations will have consequences in human physiology. Healthy and vigorous children are born and raised only in communities where models of natural forms are present every day. Great genius and the people of these states should never be reduced to mere romances. Once histories are accurately told, there will be no need for romances.

The great poets are to be known by the absence in them of tricks, and by the justification of perfect personal candor. All faults may be forgiven of him who has perfect candor. Henceforth let no man of us lie, for we have seen that openness wins the inner and outer world, and that there is no single exception, and that never since our earth gather’d itself in a mass have deceit or subterfuge or prevarication attracted its smallest particle or the faintest tinge of a shade—and that through the enveloping wealth and rank of a state, or the whole republic of states, a sneak or sly person shall be discover’d and despised—and that the soul has never once been fool’d and never can be fool’d—and thrift without the loving nod of the soul is only a fœtid puff—and there never grew up in any of the continents of the globe, nor upon any planet or satellite, nor in that condition which precedes the birth of babes, nor at any time during the changes of life, nor in any stretch of abeyance or action of vitality, nor in any process of formation or reformation anywhere, a being whose instinct hated the truth.

Great poets are recognized by their lack of tricks and their complete honesty. All flaws can be forgiven in someone who is wholly candid. From now on, let’s all be truthful, because we’ve learned that honesty wins over both ourselves and the world around us, with no exceptions. Since the earth first formed, deception or trickery has never attracted even the tiniest part or the faintest hint of a shadow—and no matter how wealthy or powerful a nation may be, a sneaky or deceitful person will always be found out and looked down upon. The soul has never been fooled, and it never can be. And being frugal without the soul's approval is just a worthless puff of air. There has never been a being on any continent, planet, or moon, nor in the state before babies are born, nor at any point during life's changes, nor in any period of rest or action of life, nor in any process of formation or reformation anywhere, that instinctively hated the truth.

Extreme caution or prudence, the soundest organic health, large hope and comparison and fondness for women and children, large alimentiveness and destructiveness and causality, with a perfect sense of the oneness of nature, and the propriety of the same spirit applied to human affairs, are called up of the float of the brain of the world to be parts of the greatest poet from his birth out of his mother’s womb, and from her birth out of her mother’s. Caution seldom goes far enough. It has been thought that the prudent citizen was the citizen who applied himself to solid gains, and did well for himself and for his family, and completed a lawful life without debt or crime. The greatest poet sees and admits these economies as he sees the economies of food and sleep, but has higher notions of prudence than to think he gives much when he gives a few slight attentions at the latch of the gate. The premises of the prudence of life are not the hospitality of it, or the ripeness and harvest of it. Beyond the independence of a little sum laid aside for burial-money, and of a few clap-boards around and shingles overhead on a lot of American soil own’d, and the easy dollars that supply the year’s plain clothing and meals, the melancholy prudence of the abandonment of such a great being as a man is, to the toss and pallor of years of money-making, with all their scorching days and icy nights, and all their stifling deceits and underhand dodgings, or infinitesimals of parlors, or shameless stuffing while others starve, and all the loss of the bloom and odor of the earth, and of the flowers and atmosphere, and of the sea, and of the true taste of the women and men you pass or have to do with in youth or middle age, and the issuing sickness and desperate revolt at the close of a life without elevation or naïveté, (even if you have achiev’d a secure 10,000 a year, or election to Congress or the Governorship,) and the ghastly chatter of a death without serenity or majesty, is the great fraud upon modern civilization and forethought, blotching the surface and system which civilization undeniably drafts, and moistening with tears the immense features it spreads and spreads with such velocity before the reach’d kisses of the soul.

Extreme caution or prudence, sound organic health, a lot of hope and admiration for women and children, strong desires for life and destruction, along with a clear understanding of the unity of nature and the application of that spirit to human affairs, are all summoned from the collective consciousness of the world to be parts of the greatest poet from his birth from his mother’s womb, and from her birth from her mother’s. Caution often doesn't go far enough. It has been believed that a prudent citizen is someone who focuses on solid gains, does well for himself and his family, and leads a lawful life free of debt or crime. The greatest poet recognizes and acknowledges these practicalities as he does the necessities of food and sleep, but he has a deeper sense of prudence than merely giving a few small favors at the gate. The foundations of life's prudence are not about being hospitable or reaping its rewards. Beyond having a little money set aside for burial, a few boards and shingles over a plot of American soil owned, and the easy cash that covers a year's basic clothing and meals, the grim caution of leaving such a great being as a man at the mercy of money-making years, filled with scorching days and icy nights, all their suffocating tricks and sneaky behaviors, or tiny, cramped living rooms, or shameless excess while others starve, comes at the cost of losing the beauty and fragrance of the earth, the flowers and atmosphere, the sea, and the true essence of the men and women you encounter in youth or middle age, leading to pain and desperate rebellion at the end of a life untouched by elevation or innocence, (even if you've secured an income of 10,000 a year or been elected to Congress or the Governorship,) and the horrifying noise of a death lacking peace or dignity, is the great deception of modern civilization and foresight, staining the surface and system that civilization undeniably crafts, and drenching with tears the vast features it spreads out with such speed before the soul's eager kisses.

Ever the right explanation remains to be made about prudence. The prudence of the mere wealth and respectability of the most esteem’d life appears too faint for the eye to observe at all, when little and large alike drop quietly aside at the thought of the prudence suitable for immortality. What is the wisdom that fills the thinness of a year, or seventy or eighty years—to the wisdom spaced out by ages, and coming back at a certain time with strong reinforcements and rich presents, and the clear faces of wedding-guests as far as you can look, in every direction, running gayly toward you? Only the soul is of itself—all else has reference to what ensues. All that a person does or thinks is of consequence. Nor can the push of charity or personal force ever be anything else than the profoundest reason, whether it brings argument to hand or no. No specification is necessary—to add or subtract or divide is in vain. Little or big, learn’d or unlearn’d, white or black, legal or illegal, sick or well, from the first inspiration down the windpipe to the last expiration out of it, all that a male or female does that is vigorous and benevolent and clean is so much sure profit to him or her in the unshakable order of the universe, and through the whole scope of it forever. The prudence of the greatest poet answers at last the craving and glut of the soul, puts off nothing, permits no let-up for its own case or any case, has no particular sabbath or judgment day, divides not the living from the dead, or the righteous from the unrighteous, is satisfied with the present, matches every thought or act by its correlative, and knows no possible forgiveness or deputed atonement.

The right explanation about prudence still needs to be made. The prudence tied to mere wealth and respectability of the most esteemed life seems too subtle for anyone to notice, especially when both small and large matters fade away at the thought of the prudence needed for immortality. What kind of wisdom fills the fleeting moments of a year, or seventy or eighty years—compared to wisdom that spans ages, returning at certain times with strong support and lavish gifts, and the joyful faces of wedding guests running towards you in every direction? Only the soul is truly self-sufficient—all else relates to what follows. Everything a person does or thinks matters. The push of charity or personal strength can only be the deepest reason, whether it supports an argument or not. No specifics are needed—adding, subtracting, or dividing is futile. Whether small or large, educated or uneducated, white or black, legal or illegal, sick or well, from the first breath taken to the last breath exhaled, every vigorous, kind, and pure action taken by anyone is a definite gain in the unshakeable order of the universe, now and forever. The prudence of the greatest poet ultimately satisfies the yearning of the soul, leaving nothing to chance, allowing no breaks for itself or anyone else, having no specific day of rest or judgment, not separating the living from the dead, or the righteous from the unrighteous, being content with the present, matching every thought or action with its counterpart, and knowing no possible forgiveness or delegated atonement.

The direct trial of him who would be the greatest poet is to-day. If he does not flood himself with the immediate age as with vast oceanic tides—if he be not himself the age transfigur’d, and if to him is not open’d the eternity which gives similitude to all periods and locations and processes, and animate and inanimate forms, and which is the bond of time, and rises up from its inconceivable vagueness and infiniteness in the swimming shapes of to-day, and is held by the ductile anchors of life, and makes the present spot the passage from what was to what shall be, and commits itself to the representation of this wave of an hour, and this one of the sixty beautiful children of the wave—let him merge in the general run, and wait his development.

The direct test for the person who wants to be the greatest poet is happening today. If they don’t immerse themselves in the current era like huge ocean tides—if they aren’t transformed by the age, and if they don’t see the eternity that connects all times, places, happenings, and both living and non-living forms, which ties together time and emerges from its unfathomable mystery and infinity in the fluid shapes of today, and is supported by the flexible anchors of life, making the present moment the transition from what was to what will be, and if they don’t commit to capturing this momentary wave, and this one of the sixty beautiful waves—then they should blend in with the crowd and wait for their growth.

Still the final test of poems, or any character or work, remains. The prescient poet projects himself centuries ahead, and judges performer or performance after the changes of time. Does it live through them? Does it still hold on untired? Will the same style, and the direction of genius to similar points, be satisfactory now? Have the marches of tens and hundreds and thousands of years made willing detours to the right hand and the left hand for his sake? Is he beloved long and long after he is buried? Does the young man think often of him? and the young woman think often of him? and do the middle-aged and the old think of him?

Still, the ultimate test of poems, or any character or work, remains. The visionary poet sees himself centuries ahead and judges the performer or performance after the passage of time. Does it endure through them? Does it still resonate? Will the same style and the direction of genius towards similar themes be satisfying now? Have the journeys of decades, centuries, and millennia taken willing detours for his sake? Is he cherished long after he's laid to rest? Do the young man and young woman think of him often? And do the middle-aged and the elderly remember him?

A great poem is for ages and ages in common, and for all degrees and complexions, and all departments and sects, and for a woman as much as a man, and a man as much as a woman. A great poem is no finish to a man or woman, but rather a beginning. Has anyone fancied he could sit at last under some due authority, and rest satisfied with explanations, and realize, and be content and full? To no such terminus does the greatest poet bring—he brings neither cessation nor shelter’d fatness and ease. The touch of him, like Nature, tells in action. Whom he takes he takes with firm sure grasp into live regions previously unattain’d—thenceforward is no rest—they see the space and ineffable sheen that turn the old spots and lights into dead vacuums. Now there shall be a man cohered out of tumult and chaos—the elder encourages the younger and shows him how—they two shall launch off fearlessly together till the new world fits an orbit for itself, and looks unabash’d on the lesser orbits of the stars, and sweeps through the ceaseless rings, and shall never be quiet again.

A great poem lasts through ages and speaks to everyone, regardless of their background, beliefs, or gender—it resonates just as much with women as with men. A great poem doesn’t mark the end for anyone; instead, it’s a new beginning. Has anyone really thought they could finally sit back under proper authority, feel satisfied with explanations, and find fulfillment and contentment? The greatest poet doesn’t lead to such an endpoint—he offers no pause or comfortable resting place. His influence, like Nature, expresses itself through action. Those he inspires are taken with a firm, steady hand into vibrant realms that were once unattainable—after that, there’s no stopping; they see the vastness and brilliant spark that turn once-familiar places into empty spaces. Now, a man will emerge from chaos and disorder—the older one encourages the younger, showing him the way—they will launch forward together, unafraid, until the new world finds its own path and looks boldly at the smaller orbits of the stars, sweeping through endless cycles, and will never be still again.

There will soon be no more priests. Their work is done. A new order shall arise, and they shall be the priests of man, and every man shall be his own priest. They shall find their inspiration in real objects to-day, symptoms of the past and future. They shall not deign to defend immortality or God, or the perfection of things, or liberty, or the exquisite beauty and reality of the soul. They shall arise in America, and be responded to from the remainder of the earth.

There will soon be no more priests. Their job is over. A new order will emerge, and people will become their own priests. They will draw inspiration from real things today, signs of the past and future. They will not bother to defend immortality or God, or the perfection of things, or freedom, or the profound beauty and reality of the soul. They will rise in America, and others around the world will respond.

The English language befriends the grand American expression—it is brawny enough, and limber and full enough. On the tough stock of a race who through all change of circumstance was never without the idea of political liberty, which is the animus of all liberty, it has attracted the terms of daintier and gayer and subtler and more elegant tongues. It is the powerful language of resistance—it is the dialect of common sense. It is the speech of the proud and melancholy races, and of all who aspire. It is the chosen tongue to express growth, faith, self-esteem, freedom, justice, equality, friendliness, amplitude, prudence, decision, and courage. It is the medium that shall wellnigh express the inexpressible.

The English language embraces the great American spirit—it’s strong, flexible, and rich. From a resilient group of people who, despite changing circumstances, have always held on to the idea of political freedom, which is the essence of all freedom, it has adopted words from more delicate, cheerful, refined, and elegant languages. It is the powerful language of resistance—it’s the language of common sense. It is the voice of proud and reflective communities, and of everyone who dreams big. It is the preferred language to articulate growth, faith, self-worth, freedom, justice, equality, kindness, generosity, wisdom, determination, and bravery. It is the medium that can almost convey the inexpressible.

No great literature nor any like style of behavior or oratory, or social intercourse or household arrangements, or public institutions, or the treatment by bosses of employ’d people, nor executive detail, or detail of the army and navy, nor spirit of legislation or courts, or police or tuition or architecture, or songs or amusements, can long elude the jealous and passionate instinct of American standards. Whether or no the sign appears from the mouths of the people, it throbs a live interrogation in every freeman’s and freewoman’s heart, after that which passes by, or this built to remain. Is it uniform with my country? Are its disposals without ignominious distinctions? Is it for the ever-growing communes of brothers and lovers, large, well united, proud, beyond the old models, generous beyond all models? Is it something grown fresh out of the fields, or drawn from the sea for use to me to-day here? I know that what answers for me, an American, in Texas, Ohio, Canada, must answer for any individual or nation that serves for a part of my materials. Does this answer? Is it for the nursing of the young of the republic? Does it solve readily with the sweet milk of the nipples of the breasts of the Mother of Many Children?

No great literature, or similar behavior, speech, social interactions, household setups, public institutions, or the way bosses treat their employees, nor the details of governance, the military, the spirit of laws or courts, police, education, architecture, songs, or entertainment, can escape the intense and passionate standards of Americans for long. Regardless of whether the signs come from the people, there’s a burning question in the heart of every free man and woman about what is temporary and what is meant to last. Is it in line with my country? Are its arrangements free from shameful distinctions? Is it meant for the ever-growing communities of brothers and sisters, large, united, proud, beyond old models, and generous beyond all expectations? Is it something freshly grown from the earth or pulled from the sea for my use today? I know that what resonates with me, as an American in Texas, Ohio, or Canada, must resonate with any individual or nation that is part of my experience. Does it resonate? Is it nurturing for the youth of the republic? Does it blend smoothly with the nourishing sustenance of the Mother of Many Children?

America prepares with composure and good-will for the visitors that have sent word. It is not intellect that is to be their warrant and welcome. The talented, the artist, the ingenious, the editor, the statesman, the erudite, are not unappreciated—they fall in their place and do their work. The soul of the nation also does its work. It rejects none, it permits all. Only toward the like of itself will it advance half-way. An individual is as superb as a nation when he has the qualities which make a superb nation. The soul of the largest and wealthiest and proudest nation may well go half-way to meet that of its poets.

America calmly and kindly prepares for the visitors who have reached out. It’s not just intelligence that will greet them. The talented, the artists, the innovative, the editors, the politicians, and the scholars are valued—they fulfill their roles and contribute their efforts. The heart of the nation also plays its part. It turns away no one and welcomes everyone. It will only move halfway for those like itself. An individual can be as remarkable as a nation when they embody the qualities that create a great nation. The spirit of the largest, richest, and proudest nation may very well meet the spirit of its poets halfway.

AMERICANISM IN LITERATURE

THOMAS WENTWORTH HIGGINSON

THE voyager from Europe who lands upon our shores perceives a difference in the sky above his head; the height seems loftier, the zenith more remote, the horizon-wall more steep; the moon appears to hang in the middle air, beneath a dome that arches far beyond it. The sense of natural symbolism is so strong in us, that the mind seeks a spiritual significance in this glory of the atmosphere. It is not enough to find the sky enlarged, and not the mind,—cœlum, non animum. One wishes to be convinced that here the intellectual man inhales a deeper breath, and walks with bolder tread; that philosopher and artist are here more buoyant, more fresh, more fertile; that the human race has here escaped at one bound from the despondency of ages, as from their wrongs.

The traveler from Europe who arrives on our shores notices a difference in the sky above; it seems higher, the zenith feels further away, and the horizon appears steeper. The moon looks like it’s floating in mid-air, under a dome that stretches far beyond it. Our strong sense of natural symbolism makes the mind search for a spiritual meaning in the beauty of the atmosphere. It’s not enough to observe that the sky is larger while the mind remains ordinary—cœlum, non animum. One wants to be convinced that here, the intellectual person breathes deeper and walks with more confidence; that philosophers and artists here are more inspired, fresher, and more creative; that humanity has leaped from the despair of ages, as if escaping from their grievances.

And the true and healthy Americanism is to be found, let us believe, in this attitude of hope; an attitude not necessarily connected with culture nor with the absence of culture, but with the consciousness of a new impulse given to all human progress. The most ignorant man may feel the full strength and heartiness of the American idea, and so may the most accomplished scholar. It is a matter of regret if thus far we have mainly had to look for our Americanism and our scholarship in very different quarters, and if it has been a rare delight to find the two in one.

And true, healthy Americanism can be found, we hope, in this attitude of optimism; an attitude that isn’t necessarily tied to education or lack of it, but to the awareness of a new energy driving human progress. Even the most uninformed person can feel the power and enthusiasm of the American idea, just as the most educated scholar can. It's unfortunate that so far we've had to search for our Americanism and our scholarship in very different places, making it a rare pleasure to find them both in one.

It seems unspeakably important that all persons among us, and especially the student and the writer, should be pervaded with Americanism. Americanism includes the faith that national self-government is not a chimera, but that, with whatever inconsistencies and drawbacks, we are steadily establishing it here. It includes the faith that to this good thing all other good things must in time be added. When a man is heartily imbued with such a national sentiment as this, it is as marrow in his bones and blood in his veins. He may still need culture, but he has the basis of all culture. He is entitled to an imperturbable patience and hopefulness, born of a living faith. All that is scanty in our intellectual attainments, or poor in our artistic life, may then be cheerfully endured: if a man sees his house steadily rising on sure foundations, he can wait or let his children wait for the cornice and the frieze. But if one happens to be born or bred in America without this wholesome confidence, there is no happiness for him; he has his alternative between being unhappy at home and unhappy abroad; it is a choice of martyrdoms for himself, and a certainty of martyrdom for his friends.

It seems incredibly important that everyone among us, especially students and writers, should be filled with Americanism. Americanism includes the belief that national self-government is not a fantasy, but that, despite any inconsistencies and challenges, we are consistently building it here. It also includes the belief that over time, all other good things will be added to this foundation. When someone is truly filled with such national pride, it becomes as essential as marrow in their bones and blood in their veins. They may still need culture, but they have the root of all culture. They deserve an unshakeable patience and optimism, born from a genuine belief. Any shortcomings in our intellectual achievements or the quality of our artistic life can be faced with a positive attitude: if someone sees their home steadily built on strong foundations, they can wait or let their children wait for the finishing touches. But if someone is born or raised in America without this healthy confidence, there is no happiness for them; they face the choice of being unhappy at home or unhappy elsewhere; it’s a decision between different kinds of suffering for themselves, and a sure suffering for their friends.

Happily, there are few among our cultivated men in whom this oxygen of American life is wholly wanting. Where such exist, for them the path across the ocean is easy, and the return how hard! Yet our national character develops slowly; we are aiming at something better than our English fathers, and we pay for it by greater vacillations and vibrations of movement. The Englishman’s strong point is a vigorous insularity which he carries with him, portable and sometimes insupportable. The American’s more perilous gift is a certain power of assimilation, so that he acquires something from every man he meets, but runs the risk of parting with something in return. For the result, greater possibilities of culture, balanced by greater extremes of sycophancy and meanness. Emerson says that the Englishman of all men stands most firmly on his feet. But it is not the whole of man’s mission to be found standing, even at the most important post. Let him take one step forward,—and in that advancing figure you have the American.

Thankfully, there are few among our educated people who completely lack this vital aspect of American life. For those who do, the journey across the ocean is easy, but the return is quite challenging! Our national character evolves slowly; we are striving for something better than what our English forefathers achieved, and we pay the price with greater fluctuations and shifts in our approach. The strength of the Englishman lies in his steadfast insularity, which he carries with him—practical yet at times unbearable. The American’s more risky trait is a certain ability to adapt, allowing him to gain something from every person he encounters, but he also risks losing something in return. This leads to greater opportunities for culture, tempered by sharper extremes of flattery and pettiness. Emerson states that the Englishman stands most firmly on his own two feet. But it is not enough for a person’s purpose to just be found standing, even at the most critical position. Let him take one step forward—and in that advancing figure, you see the American.

We are accustomed to say that the war and its results have made us a nation, subordinated local distinctions, cleared us of our chief shame, and given us the pride of a common career. This being the case, we may afford to treat ourselves to a little modest self-confidence. Those whose faith in the American people carried them hopefully through the long contest with slavery will not be daunted before any minor perplexities of Chinese immigrants or railway brigands or enfranchised women. We are equal to these things; and we shall also be equal to the creation of a literature. We need intellectual culture inexpressibly, but we need a hearty faith still more. "Never yet was there a great migration that did not result in a new form of national genius." But we must guard against both croakers and boasters; and above all, we must look beyond our little Boston or New York or Chicago or San Francisco, and be willing citizens of the great Republic.

We often say that the war and its outcomes have united us as a nation, minimized local differences, relieved us of our biggest shame, and given us the pride in a shared mission. Given that, we can indulge in a little healthy self-confidence. Those who had faith in the American people during the long struggle against slavery won’t be intimidated by the minor challenges posed by Chinese immigrants, railroad bandits, or women gaining the right to vote. We can handle these issues; and we will also rise to the challenge of creating a rich literature. We desperately need intellectual culture, but we need strong faith even more. "There has never been a great migration that didn't lead to a new form of national genius." However, we must be cautious of both pessimists and braggers; and above all, we should look beyond our little Boston, New York, Chicago, or San Francisco, and be engaged citizens of the great Republic.

The highest aim of most of our literary journals has thus far been to appear English, except where some diverging experimentalist has said, "Let us be German," or "Let us be French." This was inevitable; as inevitable as a boy’s first imitations of Byron or Tennyson. But it necessarily implied that our literature must, during this epoch, be second-rate. We need to become national, not by any conscious effort, such as implies attitudinizing and constraint, but by simply accepting our own life. It is not desirable to go out of one’s way to be original, but it is to be hoped that it may lie in one’s way. Originality is simply a fresh pair of eyes. If you want to astonish the whole world, said Rahel, tell the simple truth. It is easier to excuse a thousand defects in the literary man who proceeds on this faith, than to forgive the one great defect of imitation in the purist who seeks only to be English. As Wasson has said, "The Englishman is undoubtedly a wholesome figure to the mental eye; but will not twenty million copies of him do, for the present?" We must pardon something to the spirit of liberty. We must run some risks, as all immature creatures do, in the effort to use our own limbs. Professor Edward Channing used to say that it was a bad sign for a college boy to write too well; there should be exuberances and inequalities. A nation which has but just begun to create a literature must sow some wild oats. The most tiresome vaingloriousness may be more hopeful than hypercriticism and spleen. The follies of the absurdest spread-eagle orator may be far more promising, because they smack more of the soil, than the neat Londonism of the city editor who dissects him.

The primary goal of most of our literary magazines has been to seem English, unless some experimental thinker suggested, "Let’s be German," or "Let’s be French." This was bound to happen, much like a boy’s initial attempts to mimic Byron or Tennyson. However, it meant that our literature had to be, during this time, second-rate. We need to embrace our own lives and become national, not through deliberate effort that comes off as forced or pretentious, but by simply accepting who we are. It's not ideal to try too hard to be original, but hopefully, originality will come naturally. Originality is just having a fresh perspective. If you want to amaze the entire world, as Rahel said, just tell the simple truth. It’s easier to overlook a thousand flaws in a writer who follows this principle than to forgive the single major flaw of imitation in the purist who only wants to be English. As Wasson pointed out, "The Englishman is undoubtedly a wholesome figure to the mental eye; but will not twenty million copies of him do, for the present?" We must allow some freedom. We should take some risks, like all young beings do, in learning to use our own abilities. Professor Edward Channing once remarked that it was a bad sign for a college student to write too perfectly; there should be bursts of creativity and inconsistencies. A nation that has only just started to develop its literature must sow some wild oats. The most annoying arrogance might be more promising than excessive criticism and bitterness. The mistakes of the most ridiculous show-off may be much more hopeful, as they resonate more with the local culture, than the polished London style of the city editor who critiques him.

It is but a few years since we have dared to be American in even the details and accessories of our literary work; to make our allusions to natural objects real not conventional; to ignore the nightingale and skylark, and look for the classic and romantic on our own soil. This change began mainly with Emerson. Some of us can recall the bewilderment with which his verses on the humblebee, for instance, were received, when the choice of subject caused as much wonder as the treatment. It was called "a foolish affectation of the familiar." Happily the atmosphere of distance forms itself rapidly in a new land, and the poem has now as serene a place in literature as if Andrew Marvell had written it. The truly cosmopolitan writer is not he who carefully denudes his work of everything occasional and temporary, but he who makes his local coloring forever classic through the fascination of the dream it tells. Reason, imagination, passion, are universal; but sky, climate, costume, and even type of human character, belong to some one spot alone till they find an artist potent enough to stamp their associations on the memory of all the world. Whether his work be picture or symphony, legend or lyric, is of little moment. The spirit of the execution is all in all.

It's only been a few years since we’ve dared to embrace our American identity in even the little details of our writing; to make our references to nature real instead of conventional; to overlook the nightingale and skylark, and seek the classic and romantic on our own turf. This shift primarily started with Emerson. Some of us remember the confusion surrounding his poems about the humblebee, for example, where the subject matter sparked as much surprise as the way he presented it. It was labeled "a silly pretension of familiarity." Thankfully, the distance we create quickly in a new country has allowed that poem to find a peaceful spot in literature, almost as if Andrew Marvell had written it. The truly global writer isn’t the one who meticulously strips his work of anything momentary or specific, but rather the one who makes their local elements timeless through the enchanting story it tells. Reason, imagination, and passion are universal; however, things like sky, climate, attire, and even types of human character belong to a single place until they find an artist strong enough to imprint their associations on the memories of everyone. Whether his work is a painting, a symphony, a legend, or a song matters little. What truly counts is the spirit behind the execution.

As yet, we Americans have hardly begun to think of the details of execution in any art. We do not aim at perfection of detail even in engineering, much less in literature. In the haste of our national life, most of our intellectual work is done at a rush, is something inserted in the odd moments of the engrossing pursuit. The popular preacher becomes a novelist; the editor turns his paste-pot and scissors to the compilation of a history; the same man must be poet, wit, philanthropist, and genealogist. We find a sort of pleasure in seeing this variety of effort, just as the bystanders like to see a street-musician adjust every joint in his body to a separate instrument, and play a concerted piece with the whole of himself. To be sure, he plays each part badly, but it is such a wonder he should play them all! Thus, in our rather hurried and helter-skelter training, the man is brilliant, perhaps; his main work is well done; but his secondary work is slurred. The book sells, no doubt, by reason of the author’s popularity in other fields; it is only the tone of our national literature that suffers. There is nothing in American life that can make concentration cease to be a virtue. Let a man choose his pursuit, and make all else count for recreation only. Goethe’s advice to Eckermann is infinitely more important here than it ever was in Germany: "Beware of dissipating your powers; strive constantly to concentrate them. Genius thinks it can do whatever it sees others doing, but it is sure to repent of every ill-judged outlay."

So far, we Americans have barely started to consider the details of execution in any art form. We don't strive for perfection in detail, not even in engineering, let alone in literature. In the fast pace of our national life, most of our intellectual work is rushed, something done in the spare moments of our busy pursuits. The popular preacher becomes a novelist; the editor switches from paste and scissors to compiling a history; the same person must also be a poet, a wit, a philanthropist, and a genealogist. We find a kind of enjoyment in seeing this diversity of effort, just like onlookers enjoy watching a street musician tweak every part of his body to play different instruments, creating a performance with all his abilities. Of course, he plays each part poorly, but it’s amazing that he can do them all! In our somewhat hasty and chaotic training, a person may be brilliant; their main work may be well done, but their secondary work is often overlooked. The book sells, certainly, because of the author’s popularity in other areas; it’s just the quality of our national literature that suffers. There’s nothing in American life that should make concentration anything less than a virtue. A person should choose their path and regard everything else as mere recreation. Goethe's advice to Eckermann is far more relevant here than it ever was in Germany: "Beware of dissipating your powers; strive constantly to concentrate them. Genius thinks it can do whatever it sees others doing, but it is sure to regret every miscalculated investment."

In one respect, however, this desultory activity is an advantage: it makes men look in a variety of directions for a standard. As each sect in religion helps to protect us from some other sect, so every mental tendency is the limitation of some other. We need the English culture, but we do not need it more evidently than we need the German, the French, the Greek, the Oriental. In prose literature, for instance, the English contemporary models are not enough. There is an admirable vigor and heartiness, a direct and manly tone; King Richard still lives; but Saladin also had his fine sword-play; let us see him. There are the delightful French qualities,—the atmosphere where literary art means fineness of touch. "Où il n’y a point de délicatesse, il n’y a point de littérature. Un écrit où ne se recontrent que de la force et un certain feu sans éclat n’annonce que le caractère." But there is something in the English climate which seems to turn the fine edge of any very choice scymitar till it cuts Saladin’s own fingers at last.

In one way, though, this scattered activity is a benefit: it encourages people to look in various directions for a standard. Just as each religious group helps shield us from others, every mental trend restricts another. We need English culture, but we also need German, French, Greek, and Oriental culture just as much. In prose literature, for example, contemporary English models aren't sufficient. There's great energy and robustness, a straightforward and masculine tone; King Richard is still relevant, but Saladin also had his impressive skills—let's recognize him too. The charming qualities of French literature create an environment where literary art represents refinement. "Where there is no delicacy, there is no literature. A piece where only strength and a certain fire without brilliance are present indicates only character." But something about the English climate seems to dull the fine edge of any exceptional sword until it eventually cuts Saladin’s own fingers.

God forbid that I should disparage this broad Anglo-Saxon manhood which is the basis of our national life. I knew an American mother who sent her boy to Rugby School in England, in the certainty, as she said, that he would there learn two things,—to play cricket and to speak the truth. He acquired both thoroughly, and she brought him home for what she deemed, in comparison, the ornamental branches. We cannot spare the Englishman from our blood, but it is our business to make him more than an Englishman. That iron must become steel; finer, harder, more elastic, more polished. For this end the English stock was transferred from an island to a continent, and mixed with new ingredients, that it might lose its quality of coarseness, and take a more delicate grain.

God forbid that I should criticize this strong Anglo-Saxon spirit that underlies our national identity. I knew an American mother who sent her son to Rugby School in England, believing, as she said, he would learn two things—how to play cricket and how to speak the truth. He mastered both, and she brought him home for what she considered the more refined subjects. We can't afford to lose the English influence in our culture, but it's our responsibility to make him more than just an Englishman. That iron must become steel; finer, stronger, more flexible, more refined. To achieve this, the English heritage was moved from an island to a continent, mixed with new elements, so it could lose its roughness and develop a more delicate texture.

As yet, it must be owned, this daring expectation is but feebly reflected in our books. In looking over any collection of American poetry, for instance, one is struck with the fact that it is not so much faulty as inadequate. Emerson set free the poetic intuition of America, Hawthorne its imagination. Both looked into the realm of passion, Emerson with distrust, Hawthorne with eager interest; but neither thrilled with its spell, and the American poet of passion is yet to come. How tame and manageable are wont to be the emotions of our bards, how placid and literary their allusions! There is no baptism of fire; no heat that breeds excess. Yet it is not life that is grown dull, surely; there are as many secrets in every heart, as many skeletons in every closet, as in any elder period of the world’s career. It is the interpreters of life who are found wanting, and that not on this soil alone, but throughout the Anglo-Saxon race. It is not just to say, as someone has said, that our language has not in this generation produced a love-song, for it has produced Browning; but was it in England or in Italy that he learned to sound the depths of all human emotion?

As it stands, this bold expectation is only weakly reflected in our books. When reviewing any collection of American poetry, for example, one is struck by the fact that it is not so much flawed as it is insufficient. Emerson set free the poetic insight of America, while Hawthorne unleashed its imagination. Both explored the realm of passion, with Emerson feeling skeptical and Hawthorne showing eager interest; but neither fully experienced its magic, and the American poet of passion has yet to emerge. How tame and controllable the emotions of our poets are, how calm and literary their references! There is no trial by fire; no intensity that creates excess. Yet surely life hasn't turned dull; there are as many secrets in every heart, as many skeletons in every closet, as in any earlier period of history. It's the interpreters of life who fall short, and this isn't just the case here, but across the Anglo-Saxon world. It's not accurate to say, as someone has claimed, that our language hasn't produced a love song in this generation, because it has produced Browning; but did he learn to explore the depths of all human emotion in England or in Italy?

And it is not to verse that this temporary check of ardor applies. It is often said that prose fiction now occupies the place held by the drama during the Elizabethan age. Certainly this modern product shows something of the brilliant profusion of that wondrous flowering of genius; but here the resemblance ends. Where in our imaginative literature does one find the concentrated utterance, the intense and breathing life, the triumphs and despairs, the depth of emotion, the tragedy, the thrill, that meet one everywhere in those Elizabethan pages? What impetuous and commanding men are these, what passionate women; how they love and hate, struggle and endure; how they play with the world; what a trail of fire they leave behind them as they pass by! Turn now to recent fiction. Dickens’s people are amusing and lovable, no doubt; Thackeray’s are wicked and witty; but how under-sized they look, and how they loiter on the mere surfaces of life, compared, I will not say with Shakespeare’s, but even with Chapman’s and Webster’s men. Set aside Hawthorne in America, with perhaps Charlotte Brontë and George Eliot in England, and there would scarcely be a fact in prose literature to show that we modern Anglo-Saxons regard a profound human emotion as a thing worth the painting. Who now dares delineate a lover, except with good-natured pitying sarcasm, as in David Copperfield or Pendennis? In the Elizabethan period, with all its unspeakable coarseness, hot blood still ran in the veins of literature; lovers burned and suffered and were men. And what was true of love was true of all the passions of the human soul.

And this temporary check on passion doesn't just apply to poetry. It's often said that prose fiction has taken the place of drama during the Elizabethan era. Certainly, this modern form has some of the vivid richness of that incredible burst of creativity; but that's where the similarity stops. Where in our imaginative literature do we find the powerful expression, the intense and vibrant life, the triumphs and heartaches, the emotional depth, the tragedy, the excitement that are so prevalent in those Elizabethan works? What fierce and commanding men these are, and what passionate women; how they love and hate, struggle and endure; how they play with the world; what a trail of fire they leave behind them as they pass! Now look at modern fiction. Dickens’s characters are entertaining and lovable, no doubt; Thackeray’s are clever and witty; but they seem so small and they linger on the surface of life, especially when compared, I won’t say to Shakespeare’s characters, but even to Chapman’s and Webster’s. Setting aside Hawthorne in America, along with perhaps Charlotte Brontë and George Eliot in England, there’s hardly any evidence in prose literature that we modern Anglo-Saxons consider profound human emotion as something worthy of exploration. Who today has the nerve to portray a lover, except with kind teasing sarcasm, as in David Copperfield or Pendennis? In the Elizabethan period, despite its unbearable coarseness, true passion still ran through literature; lovers burned with desire, suffered, and were fully human. And what was true of love applied to all the passions of the human soul.

In this respect, as in many others, France has preserved more of the artistic tradition. The common criticism, however, is, that in modern French literature, as in the Elizabethan, the play of feeling is too naked and obvious, and that the Puritan self-restraint is worth more than all that dissolute wealth. I believe it; and here comes in the intellectual worth of America. Puritanism was a phase, a discipline, a hygiene; but we cannot remain always Puritans. The world needed that moral bracing, even for its art; but after all, life is not impoverished by being ennobled; and in a happier age, with a larger faith, we may again enrich ourselves with poetry and passion, while wearing that heroic girdle still around us. Then the next blossoming of the world’s imagination need not bear within itself, like all the others, the seeds of an epoch of decay.

In this sense, like in many others, France has kept more of the artistic tradition. The common criticism, though, is that in modern French literature, like in the Elizabethan era, emotions are too raw and obvious, and that the Puritan self-restraint is more valuable than all that extravagant indulgence. I believe this is true, and this is where America's intellectual value comes in. Puritanism was a phase, a discipline, a form of hygiene; but we can't always stay Puritans. The world needed that moral strength, even for its art; but in the end, life isn’t diminished by being elevated; and in a better time, with broader beliefs, we can once again fill ourselves with poetry and passion, while still holding onto that heroic strength. Then the next flowering of the world’s imagination doesn't have to carry within it, like all the others, the seeds of an era of decline.

I utterly reject the position taken by Matthew Arnold, that the Puritan spirit in America was essentially hostile to literature and art. Of course the forest pioneer cannot compose orchestral symphonies, nor the founder of a state carve statues. But the thoughtful and scholarly men who created the Massachusetts Colony brought with them the traditions of their universities, and left these embodied in a college. The Puritan life was only historically inconsistent with culture; there was no logical antagonism. Indeed, that life had in it much that was congenial to art, in its enthusiasm and its truthfulness. Take these Puritan traits, employ them in a more genial sphere, add intellectual training and a sunny faith, and you have a soil suited to art above all others. To deny it is to see in art only something frivolous and insincere. The American writer in whom the artistic instinct was strongest came of unmixed Puritan stock. Major John Hathorne, in 1692, put his offenders on trial, and generally convicted and hanged them all. Nathaniel Hawthorne held his more spiritual tribunal two centuries later, and his keener scrutiny found some ground of vindication for each one. The fidelity, the thoroughness, the conscientious purpose, were the same in each. Both sought to rest their work, as all art and all law must rest, upon the absolute truth. The writer kept, no doubt, something of the somberness of the magistrate; each, doubtless, suffered in the woes he studied; and as the one "had a knot of pain in his forehead all winter" while meditating the doom of Arthur Dimmesdale, so may the other have borne upon his own brow the trace of Martha Corey’s grief.

I completely disagree with Matthew Arnold's view that the Puritan spirit in America was fundamentally opposed to literature and art. Sure, the pioneers in the forest can't create orchestral symphonies, and the founders of a state aren't going to carve statues. But the thoughtful and educated individuals who established the Massachusetts Colony brought the traditions of their universities with them and left behind a college as a symbol of that legacy. The Puritan way of life was only historically at odds with culture; there was no inherent conflict. In fact, that life contained many elements that were supportive of art, like its passion and honesty. If you take these Puritan qualities, apply them in a more welcoming environment, add some intellectual training and a positive outlook, you create a perfect environment for art. To deny this is to see art as nothing more than frivolous and insincere. The American writer with the strongest artistic instinct came from pure Puritan roots. Major John Hathorne put his offenders on trial in 1692, generally convicting and executing them all. Nathaniel Hawthorne held his own more spiritual tribunal two centuries later, and his sharper analysis found a reason for compassion for each individual. The dedication, thoroughness, and earnest intention were the same in both cases. Both sought to base their work, as all art and law must, on absolute truth. The writer surely retained some of the magistrate's seriousness; both undoubtedly felt the pain of the troubles they examined; and just as one "had a knot of pain in his forehead all winter" while contemplating Arthur Dimmesdale's fate, the other may have carried the weight of Martha Corey’s sorrow on his own brow.

No, it does not seem to me that the obstacle to a new birth of literature and art in America lies in the Puritan tradition, but rather in the timid and faithless spirit that lurks in the circles of culture, and still holds something of literary and academic leadership in the homes of the Puritans. What are the ghosts of a myriad Blue Laws compared with the transplanted cynicism of one "Saturday Review"? How can any noble literature germinate where young men are habitually taught that there is no such thing as originality, and that nothing remains for us in this effete epoch of history but the mere recombining of thoughts which sprang first from braver brains? It is melancholy to see young men come forth from the college walls with less enthusiasm than they carried in; trained in a spirit which is in this respect worse than English toryism—that is, does not even retain a hearty faith in the past. It is better that a man should have eyes in the back of his head than that he should be taught to sneer at even a retrospective vision. One may believe that the golden age is behind us or before us, but alas for the forlorn wisdom of him who rejects it altogether! It is not the climax of culture that a college graduate should emulate the obituary praise bestowed by Cotton Mather on the Rev. John Mitchell of Cambridge, "a truly aged young man." Better a thousand times train a boy on Scott’s novels or the Border Ballads than educate him to believe, on the one side, that chivalry was a cheat and the troubadours imbeciles, and on the other hand, that universal suffrage is an absurdity and the one real need is to get rid of our voters. A great crisis like a civil war brings men temporarily to their senses, and the young resume the attitude natural to their years, in spite of their teachers; but it is a sad thing when, in seeking for the generous impulses of youth, we have to turn from the public sentiment of the colleges to that of the workshops and the farms.

No, I don’t think the barrier to a new era of literature and art in America comes from the Puritan tradition. Instead, it lies in the timid and untrusting attitude that exists in cultural circles, which still has some influence over literary and academic leadership in Puritan homes. What are the countless Blue Laws worth compared to the transplanted cynicism found in one "Saturday Review"? How can any great literature emerge in an environment where young men are regularly taught that originality doesn’t exist and that our only option in this exhausted era is to simply rearrange thoughts that originated with bolder minds? It’s disheartening to see young men leave college with less passion than they had when they arrived, molded by a mindset that is even worse than English toryism—it doesn’t hold a genuine belief in the past. It’s better for a person to have insight than to be taught to mock even a glance backward. One can think that the golden age is either behind us or ahead of us, but how tragic for the wisdom of someone who completely dismisses it! It’s not the pinnacle of culture when a college graduate mirrors the obituary tribute that Cotton Mather gave to the Rev. John Mitchell of Cambridge, calling him "a truly aged young man." It’s far better to immerse a boy in Scott’s novels or the Border Ballads than to train him to believe on one hand that chivalry was a fraud and troubadours were fools, and on the other that universal suffrage is ridiculous and our only real need is to get rid of our voters. A significant crisis, like a civil war, can bring people back to reality, and young people can reclaim their natural youthful energy despite what they’ve been taught; however, it’s unfortunate that when we seek the noble instincts of youth, we have to look beyond the prevailing college sentiments to find them in the workshops and farms.

It is a thing not to be forgotten, that for a long series of years the people of our Northern States were habitually in advance of their institutions of learning, in courage and comprehensiveness of thought. There were long years during which the most cultivated scholar, so soon as he embraced an unpopular opinion, was apt to find the college doors closed against him, and only the country lyceum—the people’s college—left open. Slavery had to be abolished before the most accomplished orator of the nation could be invited to address the graduates of his own university. The first among American scholars was nominated year after year, only to be rejected, before the academic societies of his own neighborhood. Yet during all that time the rural lecture associations showered their invitations on Parker and Phillips; culture shunned them, but the common people heard them gladly. The home of real thought was outside, not inside, the college walls. It hardly embarrassed a professor’s position if he defended slavery as a divine institution; but he risked his place if he denounced the wrong. In those days, if by any chance a man of bold opinions drifted into a reputable professorship, we listened sadly to hear his voice grow faint. He usually began to lose his faith, his courage, his toleration,—in short, his Americanism,—when he left the ranks of the uninstructed.

It’s important to remember that for many years, people in our Northern States were often ahead of their educational institutions in courage and open-mindedness. There were long periods when the most educated scholar would find the college doors shut against him as soon as he took an unpopular stance, leaving only the local lyceum—the people's college—available to him. It took the abolition of slavery before the country's best speaker could be invited to address the graduates of his own university. The top American scholar was nominated year after year, only to be turned down by the academic societies in his area. Meanwhile, during that same time, rural lecture groups were eagerly inviting Parker and Phillips; high culture rejected them, but the general public welcomed them. The real center of thoughtful discourse was outside, not within, the college walls. It hardly affected a professor’s standing if he defended slavery as a divine practice; however, he risked his position if he spoke out against it. Back then, if a man with bold ideas somehow ended up in a respected professor role, we sadly listened as his voice grew weaker. He would typically start to lose his faith, courage, and open-mindedness—in short, his American spirit—once he moved away from the ranks of the uninformed.

That time is past; and the literary class has now come more into sympathy with the popular heart. It is perhaps fortunate that there is as yet but little esprit de corps among our writers, so that they receive their best sympathy, not from each other, but from the people. Even the memory of our most original authors, as Thoreau, or Margaret Fuller Ossoli, is apt to receive its sharpest stabs from those of the same guild. When we American writers find grace to do our best, it is not so much because we are sustained by each other, as that we are conscious of a deep popular heart, slowly but surely answering back to ours, and offering a worthier stimulus than the applause of a coterie. If we once lose faith in our audience, the muse grows silent. Even the apparent indifference of this audience to culture and high finish may be in the end a wholesome influence, recalling us to those more important things, compared to which these are secondary qualities. The indifference is only comparative; our public prefers good writing, as it prefers good elocution; but it values energy, heartiness, and action more. The public is right; it is the business of the writer, as of the speaker, to perfect the finer graces without sacrificing things more vital. "She was not a good singer," says some novelist of his heroine, "but she sang with an inspiration such as good singers rarely indulge in." Given those positive qualities, and I think that a fine execution does not hinder acceptance in America, but rather aids it. Where there is beauty of execution alone, a popular audience, even in America, very easily goes to sleep. And in such matters, as the French actor, Samson, said to the young dramatist, "sleep is an opinion."

That time is over; now the literary community is more in tune with what the general public feels. It might be a good thing that our writers don’t have much of a sense of unity among themselves, because their strongest support comes not from each other, but from the people. Even the legacies of our most original authors, like Thoreau and Margaret Fuller Ossoli, often face harsh criticism from their peers. When we American writers manage to do our best work, it’s not really because we’re buoyed by one another, but because we sense a deep connection with the public, who is steadily but surely responding to us and offering a more meaningful motivation than the applause of a small group. If we ever lose faith in our audience, our creativity becomes stifled. Even if this audience seems indifferent to culture and polished work, it might ultimately lead us back to the more significant aspects of writing, which are far more important than just surface qualities. Their indifference is only a matter of contrast; our audience values good writing, just like it values good speaking, but it appreciates energy, passion, and action even more. The public is right; it’s the job of the writer, just like that of the speaker, to refine the finer details without losing sight of what really matters. "She wasn't a great singer," some novelist says about his heroine, "but she sang with a passion that good singers rarely express." With those essential qualities, I believe that excellent execution doesn't hinder acceptance in America; in fact, it helps. When there's only beautiful execution, a popular audience, even in America, can easily lose interest. As the French actor Samson told the young playwright, "sleep is an opinion."

It takes more than grammars and dictionaries to make a literature. "It is the spirit in which we act that is the great matter," Goethe says. Der Geist aus dem wir handeln ist das Höchste. Technical training may give the negative merits of style, as an elocutionist may help a public speaker by ridding him of tricks. But the positive force of writing or of speech must come from positive sources,—ardor, energy, depth of feeling or of thought. No instruction ever gave these, only the inspiration of a great soul, a great need, or a great people. We all know that a vast deal of oxygen may go into the style of a man; we see in it not merely what books he has read, what company he has kept, but also the food he eats, the exercise he takes, the air he breathes. And so there is oxygen in the collective literature of a nation, and this vital element proceeds, above all else, from liberty. For want of this wholesome oxygen, the voice of Victor Hugo comes to us uncertain and spasmodic, as of one in an alien atmosphere where breath is pain; for want of it, the eloquent English tones that at first sounded so clear and bell-like now reach us only faint and muffled, and lose their music day by day. It is by the presence of this oxygen that American literature is to be made great. We are lost if we permit this inspiration of our nation’s life to sustain only the journalist and the stump-speaker, while we allow the colleges and the books to be choked with the dust of dead centuries and to pant for daily breath.

It takes more than grammar and dictionaries to create literature. "It's the spirit in which we act that really matters," Goethe says. Der Geist aus dem wir handeln ist das Höchste. Technical training can give you the basics of style, like how an elocution coach can help a public speaker eliminate bad habits. But the true power of writing or speaking comes from genuine sources—passion, energy, depth of feeling or thought. No amount of instruction can provide these; only the inspiration from a great soul, a deep need, or a significant culture can do that. We all know that a lot of effort can influence a person's style; it reveals not just the books they've read or the company they've kept, but also their diet, their exercise, and the air they breathe. Similarly, there is a vital essence in a nation's collective literature, and this crucial element primarily comes from freedom. Without this essential element, the voice of Victor Hugo reaches us haltingly and unevenly, as if he’s in an alien environment where breathing is a struggle; without it, the once-clear and melodic English tones now come to us faint and muffled, losing their beauty day by day. It is through this vital essence that American literature will become great. We will be in trouble if we let the inspiration from our nation's life only empower journalists and stump speakers while allowing colleges and books to become suffocated by the dust of past centuries, gasping for fresh air.

Perhaps it may yet be found that the men who are contributing most to raise the tone of American literature are the men who have never yet written a book and have scarcely time to read one, but by their heroic energy in other spheres are providing exemplars for what our books shall one day be. The man who constructs a great mechanical work helps literature, for he gives a model which shall one day inspire us to construct literary works as great. I do not wish to be forever outdone by the carpet-machinery of Clinton or the grain-elevators of Chicago. We have not yet arrived at our literature,—other things must come first; we are busy with our railroads, perfecting the vast alimentary canal by which the nation assimilates raw immigrants at the rate of half a million a year. We are not yet producing, we are digesting: food now, literary composition by and by: Shakespeare did not write Hamlet at the dinner-table. It is of course impossible to explain this to foreigners, and they still talk of convincing, while we talk of dining.

Maybe it will turn out that the people who are doing the most to elevate American literature are those who have never written a book and hardly find the time to read one. However, through their incredible efforts in other areas, they are creating examples for what our books could eventually be. The person who builds an impressive mechanical structure contributes to literature because they provide a model that will inspire us to create equally great literary works. I don't want to be constantly overshadowed by the carpet machinery of Clinton or the grain elevators of Chicago. We haven't reached our literary potential yet—other things need to come first; we’re focused on building our railroads, perfecting the vast system through which the nation processes raw immigrants at the rate of half a million a year. We aren't producing yet; we're digesting: nourishing ourselves now, literary creation later: Shakespeare didn’t write Hamlet while eating dinner. It's, of course, impossible to explain this to foreigners; they still emphasize convincing, while we focus on dining.

For one, I cannot dispense with the society which we call uncultivated. Democratic sympathies seem to be mainly a matter of vigor and health. It seems to be the first symptom of biliousness to think that only one’s self and one’s cousins are entitled to consideration and constitute the world. Every refined person is an aristocrat in his dyspeptic moments; when hearty and well, he demands a wider range of sympathy. It is so tedious to live only in one circle and have only a genteel acquaintance! Mrs. Trench, in her delightful letters, complains of the society in Dresden, about the year 1800, because of "the impossibility, without overstepping all bounds of social custom, of associating with any but noblesse." We order that matter otherwise in America. I wish not only to know my neighbor, the man of fashion, who strolls to his club at noon, but also my neighbor, the wheelwright, who goes to his dinner at the same hour. One would not wish to be unacquainted with the fair maiden who drives by in her basket-wagon in the afternoon; nor with the other fair maiden, who may be seen at her washtub in the morning. Both are quite worth knowing; both are good, sensible, dutiful girls: the young laundress is the better mathematician, because she has gone through the grammar school; but the other has the better French accent, because she has spent half her life in Paris. They offer a variety, at least, and save from that monotony which besets any set of people when seen alone. There was much reason in Horace Walpole’s coachman, who, having driven the maids of honor all his life, bequeathed his earnings to his son, on condition that he should never marry a maid of honor.

For one, I can’t do without the society we call uncultivated. Democratic feelings seem to be mostly about energy and health. It seems like the first sign of being out of sorts is thinking that only you and your relatives deserve consideration and make up the world. Every refined person is an aristocrat when they’re feeling unwell; when they’re healthy and strong, they want a broader range of sympathy. It’s so boring to only live in one circle and have only pretentious acquaintances! Mrs. Trench, in her lovely letters, complains about the society in Dresden around 1800 because of "the impossibility, without overstepping all bounds of social custom, of associating with any but noblesse." We handle that differently in America. I want to know not just my neighbor, the fashionable man who strolls to his club at noon, but also my neighbor, the wheelwright, who heads to dinner at the same time. You wouldn’t want to be unfamiliar with the lovely young woman who drives by in her basket-wagon in the afternoon; nor with the other young woman, who you might see at her washtub in the morning. Both are definitely worth knowing; both are good, sensible, hardworking girls: the young laundress is the better mathematician because she attended grammar school, but the other has the better French accent since she spent half her life in Paris. They offer variety, at least, and save you from the monotony that comes with any group of people when seen in isolation. There was a lot of sense in Horace Walpole’s coachman, who, after driving the maids of honor all his life, left his earnings to his son on the condition that he should never marry a maid of honor.

I affirm that democratic society, the society of the future, enriches and does not impoverish human life, and gives more, not less, material for literary art. Distributing culture through all classes, it diminishes class-distinction and develops individuality. Perhaps it is the best phenomenon of American life, thus far, that the word "gentleman," which in England still designates a social order, is here more apt to refer to personal character. When we describe a person as a gentleman, we usually refer to his manners, morals, and education, not to his property or birth; and this change alone is worth the transplantation across the Atlantic. The use of the word "lady" is yet more comprehensive, and therefore more honorable still; we sometimes see, in a shopkeeper’s advertisement, "Saleslady wanted." No doubt the mere fashionable novelist loses terribly by the change: when all classes may wear the same dress-coat, what is left for him? But he who aims to depict passion and character gains in proportion; his material is increased tenfold. The living realities of American life ought to come in among the tiresome lay-figures of average English fiction like Steven Lawrence into the London drawing-room: tragedy must resume its grander shape, and no longer turn on the vexed question whether the daughter of this or that matchmaker shall marry the baronet. It is the characteristic of a real book that, though the scene be laid in courts, their whole machinery might be struck out and the essential interest of the plot remain the same. In Auerbach’s On the Heights, for instance, the social heights might be abolished and the moral elevation would be enough. The play of human emotion is a thing so absorbing, that the petty distinctions of cottage and castle become as nothing in its presence. Why not waive these small matters in advance, then, and go straight to the real thing?

I believe that a democratic society, which represents the future, enriches rather than diminishes human life, providing more, not less, material for literary art. By spreading culture across all classes, it reduces class distinctions and fosters individuality. One of the best aspects of American life, so far, is that the term "gentleman," which in England still indicates a social status, here is more likely to refer to personal character. When we describe someone as a gentleman, we usually mean his manners, morals, and education, not his wealth or lineage; and this shift alone is worth bringing over from across the Atlantic. The term "lady" is even broader and thus more honorable; we sometimes see in a shopkeeper's ad, "Saleslady wanted." Of course, the typical fashionable novelist suffers significantly from this change: when all classes can wear the same dress coat, what’s left for him? But those who aim to portray passion and character benefit greatly; their material is vastly expanded. The realities of American life should replace the tedious archetypes of average English fiction like Steven Lawrence stepping into a London drawing-room: tragedy must regain its grander form, no longer revolving around the frustrating question of whether the daughter of this or that matchmaker will marry the baronet. A true book can be such that, even if set in courts, the entire setup could be removed, and the core interest of the plot would remain intact. In Auerbach’s On the Heights, for example, the social heights could be eliminated, and the moral elevation would still be sufficient. The complexity of human emotion is so captivating that the trivial distinctions between cottage and castle become insignificant in its presence. So why not bypass these minor details and get straight to the essence?

The greatest transatlantic successes which American novelists have yet attained—those won by Cooper and Mrs. Stowe—have come through a daring Americanism of subject, which introduced in each case a new figure to the European world,—first the Indian, then the negro. Whatever the merit of the work, it was plainly the theme which conquered. Such successes are not easily to be repeated, for they were based on temporary situations never to recur. But they prepare the way for higher triumphs to be won by a profounder treatment,—the introduction into literature, not of new tribes alone, but of the American spirit. To analyze combinations of character that only our national life produces, to portray dramatic situations that belong to a clearer social atmosphere,—this is the higher Americanism. Of course, to cope with such themes in such a spirit is less easy than to describe a foray or a tournament, or to multiply indefinitely such still-life pictures as the stereotyped English or French society affords; but the thing when once done is incomparably nobler. It may be centuries before it is done: no matter. It will be done, and with it will come a similar advance along the whole line of literary labor, like the elevation which we have seen in the whole quality of scientific work in this country within the last twenty years.

The biggest successes across the Atlantic that American novelists have achieved so far—those by Cooper and Mrs. Stowe—came through a bold Americanism in their subjects, introducing new figures to European audiences—first the Native American, then the black. Regardless of the quality of the writing, it was clearly the topics that captured attention. Such successes are hard to replicate because they were based on fleeting circumstances that won't happen again. However, they set the stage for greater achievements that require a deeper exploration—not just introducing new cultures but also expressing the American spirit. To analyze character combinations unique to our national experience and to depict dramatic situations that reflect a clearer social environment—this is the true essence of Americanism. Admittedly, tackling such themes in this way is more challenging than simply recounting a raid or a tournament, or endlessly repeating the still-life scenes typical of English or French society; but accomplishing this is far more profound. It might take centuries to achieve it: so what. It will happen, and with it, a similar progress will occur across all areas of literary work, much like the improvement we've seen in the overall quality of scientific research in this country over the past twenty years.

We talk idly about the tyranny of the ancient classics, as if there were some special peril about it, quite distinct from all other tyrannies. But if a man is to be stunted by the influence of a master, it makes no difference whether that master lived before or since the Christian epoch. One folio volume is as ponderous as another, if it crushes down the tender germs of thought. There is no great choice between the volumes of the Encyclopædia. It is not important to know whether a man reads Homer or Dante: the essential point is whether he believes the world to be young or old; whether he sees as much scope for his own inspiration as if never a book had appeared in the world. So long as he does this, he has the American spirit: no books, no travel, can overwhelm him, for these will only enlarge his thoughts and raise his standard of execution. When he loses this faith, he takes rank among the copyists and the secondary, and no accident can raise him to a place among the benefactors of mankind. He is like a man who is frightened in battle: you cannot exactly blame him, for it may be an affair of the temperament or of the digestion; but you are glad to let him drop to the rear, and to close up the ranks. Fields are won by those who believe in the winning.

We casually discuss the oppression of the ancient classics, as if there's something particularly dangerous about it, different from all other forms of oppression. But if someone is held back by a master, it doesn't matter if that master lived before or after the Christian era. One heavy book is just as burdensome as another if it stifles the delicate sprouts of thought. There's not much difference between the volumes of the Encyclopædia. It doesn't really matter if someone reads Homer or Dante; the critical issue is whether they see the world as young or old; whether they find as much potential for their own creativity as if no book had ever been written. As long as they do, they embody the American spirit: no books or travel can overwhelm them, because these will only broaden their ideas and elevate their standards. When they lose that belief, they become just another copyist, and no twist of fate can elevate them to the ranks of those who contribute meaningfully to humanity. They're like someone who panics in battle: you can't really blame them, as it might be due to their temperament or health; but you're relieved to let them fall back and tighten the formation. Victories are claimed by those who believe they can win.

[From Americanism in Literature. Copyright, 1871, by James R. Osgood & Co.]

[From Americanism in Literature. Copyright, 1871, by James R. Osgood & Co.]

THACKERAY IN AMERICA

GEORGE WILLIAM CURTIS

MR. THACKERAY’S visit at least demonstrates that if we are unwilling to pay English authors for their books, we are ready to reward them handsomely for the opportunity of seeing and hearing them. If Mr. Dickens, instead of dining at other people’s expense, and making speeches at his own, when he came to see us, had devoted an evening or two in the week to lecturing, his purse would have been fuller, his feelings sweeter, and his fame fairer. It was a Quixotic crusade, that of the Copyright, and the excellent Don has never forgiven the windmill that broke his spear.

MR. THACKERAY’S visit shows that if we're not willing to pay English authors for their books, we're definitely ready to reward them generously for the chance to see and hear them. If Mr. Dickens had spent an evening or two each week giving lectures instead of dining at other people’s expense and making speeches for himself when he visited us, he would have had more money, felt better, and gained more recognition. The fight for Copyright was a noble but misguided effort, and the great hero has never forgiven the windmill that shattered his spear.

Undoubtedly, when it was ascertained that Mr. Thackeray was coming, the public feeling on this side of the sea was very much divided as to his probable reception. "He’ll come and humbug us, eat our dinners, pocket our money, and go home and abuse us, like that unmitigated snob Dickens," said Jonathan, chafing with the remembrance of that grand ball at the Park Theater and the Boz tableaux, and the universal wining and dining, to which the distinguished Dickens was subject while he was our guest.

Undoubtedly, when it became clear that Mr. Thackeray was coming, the public sentiment over here was very divided about how he would be received. "He’ll come and fool us, eat our meals, take our money, and then go home and talk trash about us, just like that complete snob Dickens," Jonathan said, frustrated by the memory of that grand ball at the Park Theater and the Boz performances, along with all the wining and dining that the esteemed Dickens enjoyed while he was our guest.

"Let him have his say," said others, "and we will have our look. We will pay a dollar to hear him, if we can see him at the same time; and as for the abuse, why, it takes even more than two such cubs of the roaring British Lion to frighten the American Eagle. Let him come, and give him fair play."

"Let him speak," said others, "and we'll watch. We'll pay a dollar to hear him if we can see him at the same time; and as for the insults, it takes more than just two of those kids from the roaring British Lion to scare the American Eagle. Let him come and give him a fair chance."

He did come, and had fair play, and returned to England with a comfortable pot of gold holding $12,000, and with the hope and promise of seeing us again in September, to discourse of something not less entertaining than the witty men and sparkling times of Anne. We think there was no disappointment with his lectures. Those who knew his books found the author in the lecturer. Those who did not know his books were charmed in the lecturer by what is charming in the author—the unaffected humanity, the tenderness, the sweetness, the genial play of fancy, and the sad touch of truth, with that glancing stroke of satire which, lightning-like, illumines while it withers. The lectures were even more delightful than the books, because the tone of the voice and the appearance of the man, the general personal magnetism, explained and alleviated so much that would otherwise have seemed doubtful or unfair. For those who had long felt in the writings of Thackeray a reality quite inexpressible, there was a secret delight in finding it justified in his speaking; for he speaks as he writes—simply, directly, without flourish, without any cant of oratory, commending what he says by its intrinsic sense, and the sympathetic and humane way in which it was spoken. Thackeray is the kind of "stump orator" that would have pleased Carlyle. He never thrusts himself between you and his thought. If his conception of the time and his estimate of the men differ from your own, you have at least no doubt what his view is, nor how sincere and necessary it is to him. Mr. Thackeray considers Swift a misanthrope; he loves Goldsmith and Steele and Harry Fielding; he has no love for Sterne, great admiration for Pope, and alleviated admiration for Addison. How could it be otherwise? How could Thackeray not think Swift a misanthrope and Sterne a factitious sentimentalist? He is a man of instincts, not of thoughts: he sees and feels. He would be Shakespeare’s call-boy, rather than dine with the Dean of St. Patrick’s. He would take a pot of ale with Goldsmith, rather than a glass of burgundy with the "Reverend Mr. Sterne," and that simply because he is Thackeray. He would have done it as Fielding would have done it, because he values one genuine emotion above the most dazzling thought; because he is, in fine, a Bohemian, "a minion of the moon," a great, sweet, generous heart.

He did come, and had a fair chance, and returned to England with a nice sum of $12,000, and the hope and promise of seeing us again in September to chat about something just as entertaining as the witty people and lively times of Anne. We believe there was no disappointment with his lectures. Those who knew his books found the author in the speaker. Those who hadn’t read his books were captivated by the lecturer, drawn in by the same appealing qualities of the author—the genuine kindness, the tenderness, the sweetness, the playful imagination, and the poignant touch of truth, along with that sharp bit of satire that, like lightning, enlightens while it stings. The lectures were even more enjoyable than the books because the tone of his voice and his presence, the overall personal charm, clarified and eased a lot that might have otherwise seemed unclear or unfair. For those who had long sensed an inexpressible reality in Thackeray’s writing, there was a hidden joy in hearing it confirmed in his speaking; for he talks as he writes—simply, directly, without embellishment, without any pretentiousness, validating what he says through its inherent sense and the sympathetic, humane approach with which it was delivered. Thackeray is the kind of speaker that would have pleased Carlyle. He never puts himself between you and his ideas. If his views of the time and his opinions of the people differ from yours, you at least have no doubt about what his perspective is or how sincere and important it is to him. Mr. Thackeray sees Swift as a misanthrope; he admires Goldsmith and Steele and Henry Fielding; he has no affection for Sterne, holds great admiration for Pope, and mixed feelings for Addison. How could it be any other way? How could Thackeray not see Swift as a misanthrope and Sterne as a fake sentimentalist? He’s a man of instincts, not just ideas: he sees and feels. He would rather be Shakespeare’s messenger than have dinner with the Dean of St. Patrick’s. He’d prefer to share a pint with Goldsmith rather than a glass of burgundy with the "Reverend Mr. Sterne," and that’s simply because he is Thackeray. He would do it the way Fielding would have, because he values one genuine emotion over the most dazzling thought; because, in short, he is a Bohemian, "a minion of the moon," a big, sweet, generous heart.

We say this with more unction now that we have personal proof of it in his public and private intercourse while he was here.

We say this with more emphasis now that we have personal proof of it in his public and private interactions while he was here.

The popular Thackeray-theory, before his arrival, was of a severe satirist, who concealed scalpels in his sleeves and carried probes in his waistcoat pockets; a wearer of masks; a scoffer and sneerer, and general infidel of all high aims and noble character. Certainly we are justified in saying that his presence among us quite corrected this idea. We welcomed a friendly, genial man; not at all convinced that speech is heaven’s first law, but willing to be silent when there is nothing to say; who decidedly refused to be lionized—not by sulking, but by stepping off the pedestal and challenging the common sympathies of all he met; a man who, in view of the thirty-odd editions of Martin Farquhar Tupper, was willing to confess that every author should "think small-beer of himself." Indeed, he has this rare quality, that his personal impression deepens, in kind, that of his writings. The quiet and comprehensive grasp of the fact, and the intellectual impossibility of holding fast anything but the fact, is as manifest in the essayist upon the wits as in the author of Henry Esmond and Vanity Fair. Shall we say that this is the sum of his power, and the secret of his satire? It is not what might be, nor what we or other persons of well-regulated minds might wish, but it is the actual state of things that he sees and describes. How, then, can he help what we call satire, if he accept Mrs. Rawdon Crawley’s invitation and describe her party? There was no more satire in it, so far as he is concerned, than in painting lilies white. A full-length portrait of the fair Lady Beatrix, too, must needs show a gay and vivid figure, superbly glittering across the vista of those stately days. Then, should Dab and Tab, the eminent critics, step up and demand that her eyes be a pale blue, and her stomacher higher around the neck? Do Dab and Tab expect to gather pears from peach-trees? Or, because their theory of dendrology convinces them that an ideal fruit-tree would supply any fruit desired upon application, do they denounce the non-pear-bearing peach-tree in the columns of their valuable journal? This is the drift of the fault found with Thackeray. He is not Fénelon, he is not Dickens, he is not Scott; he is not poetical, he is not ideal, he is not humane; he is not Tit, he is not Tat, complain the eminent Dabs and Tabs. Of course he is not, because he is Thackeray—a man who describes what he sees, motives as well as appearances—a man who believes that character is better than talent—that there is a worldly weakness superior to worldly wisdom—that Dick Steele may haunt the ale-house and be carried home muzzy, and yet be a more commendable character than the reverend Dean of St. Patrick’s, who has genius enough to illuminate a century, but not sympathy enough to sweeten a drop of beer. And he represents this in a way that makes us see it as he does, and without exaggeration; for surely nothing could be more simple than his story of the life of "honest Dick Steele." If he allotted to that gentleman a consideration disproportioned to the space he occupies in literary history, it only showed the more strikingly how deeply the writer-lecturer’s sympathy was touched by Steele’s honest humanity.

The popular idea of Thackeray before he showed up was that he was a harsh satirist who hid sharp tools in his sleeves and had probing questions ready in his waistcoat pockets; he was seen as someone who wore masks, sneered at everything, and generally disbelieved in high ideals and noble character. However, we can confidently say that his presence among us completely dispelled that notion. We welcomed a friendly, warm person; not entirely convinced that talking is the most important thing, but willing to stay quiet when there’s nothing to add; someone who openly rejected being treated like a celebrity—not by sulking, but by stepping down from the pedestal and engaging with everyone around him; a person who, considering the many editions of Martin Farquhar Tupper, was ready to admit that every author should "think little of themselves." Indeed, he has the rare quality that his personal impact enhances the impression of his writings. The calm and thorough understanding of facts, along with the clear inability to cling to anything but the truth, shines through both in his essays on wit and in his novels like Henry Esmond and Vanity Fair. Should we conclude that this is the essence of his power, the secret behind his satire? It’s not about what could be, nor what we or any reasonable people might wish; it’s the reality he observes and describes. So how can he avoid what we label satire if he accepts Mrs. Rawdon Crawley’s invitation and details her party? There’s no more satire in that, from his perspective, than there is in painting lilies white. A full-length portrait of the lovely Lady Beatrix must capture a bright and lively image, sparkling against the backdrop of those grand days. Then, if Dab and Tab, the esteemed critics, step up to insist her eyes should be a light blue and her neckline higher, are they really expecting to get pears from peach trees? Or because their theories of botany lead them to believe an ideal fruit tree should yield any fruit on request, do they criticize the non-pear-bearing peach tree in their prestigious journal? This is the crux of the criticism aimed at Thackeray. He is neither Fénelon, nor Dickens, nor Scott; he isn’t poetic, idealistic, or compassionate; he is neither Tit nor Tat, say the respected Dabs and Tabs. Of course he isn’t, because he is Thackeray—a man who portrays what he sees, including motives as well as appearances—a man who believes character outweighs talent—that there’s a worldly weakness that’s more admirable than worldly wisdom—that Dick Steele may hang out at the pub and stumble home, yet still be a more commendable character than the Reverend Dean of St. Patrick’s, who has enough genius to light up a century but lacks the empathy to sweeten a drop of beer. And he represents this in a way that lets us see things as he does, without embellishment; for nothing could be simpler than his account of "honest Dick Steele." If he gives that gentleman more attention than his small spot in literary history would suggest, it simply highlights how profoundly the writer’s sympathy was moved by Steele’s genuine humanity.

An article in our April number complained that the tendency of his view of Anne’s times was to a social laxity, which might be very exhilarating but was very dangerous; that the lecturer’s warm commendation of fermented drinks, taken at a very early hour of the morning in tavern-rooms and club houses, was as deleterious to the moral health of enthusiastic young readers disposed to the literary life as the beverage itself to their physical health.

An article in our April issue criticized that the tendency of his perspective on Anne’s era leaned towards social looseness, which could be exciting but was also quite risky; that the lecturer’s enthusiastic praise of alcoholic drinks consumed early in the morning in pubs and clubs was just as harmful to the moral well-being of eager young readers inclined towards a literary life as the drinks were to their physical health.

But this is not a charge to be brought against Thackeray. It is a quarrel with history and with the nature of literary life. Artists and authors have always been the good fellows of the world. That mental organization which predisposes a man to the pursuit of literature and art is made up of talent combined with ardent social sympathy, geniality, and passion, and leads him to taste every cup and try every experience. There is certainly no essential necessity that this class should be a dissipated and disreputable class, but by their very susceptibility to enjoyment they will always be the pleasure lovers and seekers. And here is the social compensation to the literary man for the surrender of those chances of fortune which men of other pursuits enjoy. If he makes less money, he makes more juice out of what he does make. If he cannot drink burgundy he can quaff the nut-brown ale; while the most brilliant wit, the most salient fancy, the sweetest sympathy, the most genial culture, shall sparkle at his board more radiantly than a silver service, and give him the spirit of the tropics and the Rhine, whose fruits are on other tables. The golden light that transfigures talent and illuminates the world, and which we call genius, is erratic and erotic; and while in Milton it is austere, and in Wordsworth cool, and in Southey methodical, in Shakespeare it is fervent, with all the results of fervor; in Raphael lovely, with all the excesses of love; in Dante moody, with all the whims of caprice. The old quarrel of Lombard Street with Grub Street is as profound as that of Osiris and Typho—it is the difference of sympathy. The Marquis of Westminster will take good care that no superfluous shilling escapes. Oliver Goldsmith will still spend his last shilling upon a brave and unnecessary banquet to his friends.

But this isn't a criticism of Thackeray. It's more about a disagreement with history and the nature of literary life. Artists and writers have always been the good people in the world. The mindset that drives someone to pursue literature and art is made up of talent mixed with strong social connections, friendliness, and passion, which leads them to experience everything life has to offer. There’s really no reason this group should be seen as a reckless or disreputable bunch, but their openness to enjoyment means they will always seek pleasure. This, in turn, is the social reward for literary folks who give up the opportunities for wealth that people in other professions enjoy. If they earn less money, they certainly savor more from what they do earn. If they can't drink burgundy, they can still enjoy a good ale; while the sharpest wit, the most vibrant imagination, the deepest empathy, and the most generous spirit will shine at their table more brilliantly than any silverware, giving them the vibrant essence of the tropics and the Rhine, whose luxuries are found on other tables. The golden light that transforms talent and lights up the world, which we call genius, is unpredictable and passionate; and while in Milton it is serious, in Wordsworth it's calm, and in Southey it's orderly, in Shakespeare it’s intense, along with all the intensity that comes with it; in Raphael it's beautiful, with all the extremes of love; in Dante it's moody, full of whimsical changes. The age-old conflict between Lombard Street and Grub Street is as profound as the struggle between Osiris and Typho—it’s about the difference in sympathy. The Marquis of Westminster will ensure that no extra shilling slips away. Oliver Goldsmith will still spend his last shilling on a grand and unnecessary feast for his friends.

Whether this be a final fact of human organization or not, it is certainly a fact of history. Every man instinctively believes that Shakespeare stole deer, just as he disbelieves that Lord-mayor Whittington ever told a lie; and the secret of that instinct is the consciousness of the difference in organization. "Knave, I have the power to hang ye," says somebody in one of Beaumont and Fletcher’s plays. "And I do be hanged and scorn ye," is the airy answer. "I had a pleasant hour the other evening," said a friend to us, "over my cigar and a book." "What book was that?" "A treatise conclusively proving the awful consequences of smoking." De Quincey came up to London and declared war upon opium; but during a little amnesty, in which he lapsed into his old elysium, he wrote his best book depicting its horrors.

Whether this is a final truth about how humans organize or not, it is definitely a fact of history. Everyone instinctively believes that Shakespeare poached deer, just like he doesn’t believe that Lord Mayor Whittington ever lied; and the reason for that instinct is the awareness of the difference in status. "You scoundrel, I have the power to hang you," says someone in one of Beaumont and Fletcher’s plays. "And I’ll gladly be hanged and look down on you," is the casual reply. "I had a nice time the other evening," a friend told us, "over my cigar and a book." "What book was that?" "A treatise conclusively showing the terrible effects of smoking." De Quincey came to London and declared war on opium; but during a brief break, when he slipped back into his old paradise, he wrote his best book detailing its horrors.

Our readers will not imagine that we are advocating the claims of drunkenness nor defending social excess. We are only recognizing a fact and stating an obvious tendency. The most brilliant illustrations of every virtue are to be found in the literary guild, as well as the saddest beacons of warning; yet it will often occur that the last in talent and the first in excess of a picked company will be a man around whom sympathy most kindly lingers. We love Goldsmith more at the head of an ill-advised feast than Johnson and his friends leaving it, thoughtful and generous as their conduct was. The heart despises prudence.

Our readers might not realize that we're not promoting drunkenness or defending partying too much. We're simply acknowledging a reality and pointing out a clear trend. The most shining examples of virtue can be found within the literary community, along with the most sobering warnings; yet, it often happens that the least talented person in a select group will be someone whom people feel a strong connection to. We prefer Goldsmith leading a poorly planned party over Johnson and his friends leaving it, no matter how thoughtful and generous their actions were. The heart often disregards caution.

In the single-hearted regard we know that pity has a larger share. Yet it is not so much that pity which is commiseration for misfortune and deficiency, as that which is recognition of a necessary worldly ignorance. The literary class is the most innocent of all. The contempt of practical men for the poets is based upon a consciousness that they are not bad enough for a bad world. To a practical man nothing is so absurd as the lack of worldly shrewdness. The very complaint of the literary life that it does not amass wealth and live in palaces is the scorn of the practical man, for he cannot understand that intellectual opacity which prevents the literary man from seeing the necessity of the different pecuniary condition. It is clear enough to the publisher who lays up fifty thousand a year why the author ends the year in debt. But the author is amazed that he who deals in ideas can only dine upon occasional chops, while the man who merely binds and sells ideas sits down to perpetual sirloin. If they should change places, fortune would change with them. The publisher turned author would still lay up his thousands; the publishing author would still directly lose thousands. It is simply because it is a matter of prudence, economy, and knowledge of the world. Thomas Hood made his ten thousand dollars a year, but if he lived at the rate of fifteen thousand he would hardly die rich. Mr. Jerdan, a gentleman who, in his Autobiography, advises energetic youth to betake themselves to the highway rather than to literature, was, we understand, in the receipt of an easy income, and was a welcome guest in pleasant houses; but living in a careless, shiftless, extravagant way, he was presently poor, and, instead of giving his memoirs the motto, peccavi, and inditing a warning, he dashes off a truculent defiance. Practical publishers and practical men of all sorts invest their earnings in Michigan Central or Cincinnati and Dayton instead, in steady works and devoted days, and reap a pleasant harvest of dividends. Our friends the authors invest in prime Havanas, Rhenish, in oyster suppers, love and leisure, and divide a heavy percentage of headache, dyspepsia, and debt.

In a single-minded way, we know that compassion plays a bigger role. However, it’s not so much about sympathy for misfortune and shortcomings, but rather an acknowledgment of a necessary ignorance of the world. The literary community is the most innocent of all. The disdain that practical people have for poets comes from their awareness that poets aren't cynical enough for a harsh world. To a practical person, nothing seems more ridiculous than a lack of street smarts. The very complaint of literary life—that it doesn’t accumulate wealth and dwell in luxury—is met with scorn by practical people, who can't understand the intellectual blindness that prevents writers from realizing the need for a different financial status. It’s obvious to a publisher who saves fifty thousand a year why the author ends the year in debt. Yet the author is baffled that someone dealing in ideas can only afford occasional meals, while the person who just publishes and sells ideas enjoys constant fine dining. If they were to switch places, their fortunes would swap too. The publisher turned author would still save his thousands; the writing publisher would still experience a loss of thousands. It’s simply about prudence, frugality, and understanding the world. Thomas Hood made his ten thousand dollars a year, but if he lived like he earned fifteen thousand, he wouldn’t die wealthy. Mr. Jerdan, a gentleman who, in his Autobiography, urges ambitious young people to pursue the highway instead of literature, was, as we understand, receiving an easy income and was a welcome guest in nice homes; however, living carelessly and extravagantly, he soon became poor and, instead of giving his memoirs the title peccavi and writing a warning, he blasts out a defiant message. Practical publishers and other practical people invest their earnings in Michigan Central or Cincinnati and Dayton instead, dedicating themselves to steady work and productive days, and they enjoy a nice return of dividends. Our author friends invest in premium cigars, Rhenish, fancy oyster dinners, love, and leisure, while earning a hefty share of headaches, indigestion, and debt.

This is as true a view, from another point, as the one we have already taken. If the literary life has the pleasures of freedom, it has also its pains. It may be willing to resign the queen’s drawing-room, with the illustrious galaxy of stars and garters, for the chamber with a party nobler than the nobility. The author’s success is of a wholly different kind from that of the publisher, and he is thoughtless who demands both. Mr. Roe, who sells sugar, naturally complains that Mr. Doe, who sells molasses, makes money more rapidly. But Mr. Tennyson, who writes poems, can hardly make the same complaint of Mr. Moxon, who publishes them, as was very fairly shown in a number of the Westminster Review, when noticing Mr. Jerdan’s book.

This is just as valid a perspective, from another angle, as the one we've already considered. While a literary life offers the joys of freedom, it definitely comes with its own hardships. One might gladly give up the queen’s drawing room, filled with a dazzling array of stars and garters, for a space with a company that's even grander than the upper class. An author’s success is totally different from a publisher's, and it’s naive to expect both. Mr. Roe, who sells sugar, naturally gripes that Mr. Doe, who sells molasses, makes money faster. But Mr. Tennyson, who writes poems, can hardly voice the same complaint against Mr. Moxon, who publishes them, as was aptly pointed out in an issue of the Westminster Review when discussing Mr. Jerdan’s book.

What we have said is strictly related to Mr. Thackeray’s lectures, which discuss literature. All the men he commemorated were illustrations and exponents of the career of letters. They all, in various ways, showed the various phenomena of the temperament. And when in treating of them the critic came to Steele, he found one who was one of the most striking illustrations of one of the most universal aspects of literary life—the simple-hearted, unsuspicious, gay gallant and genial gentleman; ready with his sword or his pen, with a smile or a tear, the fair representative of the social tendency of his life. It seems to us that the Thackeray theory—the conclusion that he is a man who loves to depict madness, and has no sensibilities to the finer qualities of character—crumbled quite away before that lecture upon Steele. We know that it was not considered the best; we know that many of the delighted audience were not sufficiently familiar with literary history fully to understand the position of the man in the lecturer’s review; but, as a key to Thackeray, it was, perhaps, the most valuable of all. We know in literature of no more gentle treatment; we have not often encountered in men of the most rigorous and acknowledged virtue such humane tenderness; we have not often heard from the most clerical lips words of such genuine Christianity. Steele’s was a character which makes weakness amiable: it was a weakness, if you will, but it was certainly amiability, and it was a combination more attractive than many full-panoplied excellences. It was not presented as a model. Captain Steele in the tap-room was not painted as the ideal of virtuous manhood; but it certainly was intimated that many admirable things were consonant with a free use of beer. It was frankly stated that if, in that character, virtue abounded, cakes and ale did much more abound. Captain Richard Steele might have behaved much better than he did, but we should then have never heard of him. A few fine essays do not float a man into immortality, but the generous character, the heart sweet in all excesses and under all chances, is a spectacle too beautiful and too rare to be easily forgotten. A man is better than many books. Even a man who is not immaculate may have more virtuous influence than the discreetest saint. Let us remember how fondly the old painters lingered round the story of Magdalen, and thank Thackeray for his full-length Steele.

What we've discussed is closely tied to Mr. Thackeray's lectures on literature. All the men he honored represented different facets of a literary career. Each showed various aspects of personality. And when the critic addressed Steele, he found one of the most striking examples of a common aspect of literary life—the kind-hearted, trusting, cheerful gentleman; always ready with his sword or pen, a smile or a tear, truly reflecting the social nature of his life. It seems that the Thackeray theory—that he’s a man who loves to depict madness and lacks sensitivity to the finer qualities of character—fell apart during that lecture on Steele. We know it wasn't considered the best; many in the captivated audience weren’t familiar enough with literary history to grasp the man’s position in the lecture; but as a key to understanding Thackeray, it was perhaps the most valuable of them all. We don’t know of any gentler treatment in literature; we haven't often seen such humane tenderness in those known for their strict and reputable virtue; and we haven't often heard such genuine expressions of Christianity from the most religious figures. Steele’s character makes weakness appealing: it was indeed a weakness, but it was certainly amiability, and that combination is more attractive than many complete virtues. It wasn't presented as a model. Captain Steele in the tavern wasn’t shown as the ideal of virtue; but it was certainly suggested that many admirable qualities can coexist with a generous use of beer. It was honestly stated that while virtue was present in that character, cakes and ale were even more abundant. Captain Richard Steele could have acted better, but if he had, we might never have known him. A few excellent essays don’t secure a man’s place in immortality, but a generous character, a heart kind in all excesses and under all circumstances, is a sight too beautiful and rare to forget easily. A man is worth more than many books. Even someone who isn’t perfect may have a more virtuous influence than the most discreet saint. Let’s remember how fondly the old painters celebrated the story of Magdalen, and thank Thackeray for his comprehensive portrayal of Steele.

We conceive this to be the chief result of Thackeray’s visit, that he convinced us of his intellectual integrity; he showed us how impossible it is for him to see the world and describe it other than he does. He does not profess cynicism, nor satirize society with malice; there is no man more humble, none more simple; his interests are human and concrete, not abstract. We have already said that he looks through and through at the fact. It is easy enough, and at some future time it will be done, to deduce the peculiarity of his writings from the character of his mind. There is no man who masks so little as he in assuming the author. His books are his observations reduced to writing. It seems to us as singular to demand that Dante should be like Shakespeare as to quarrel with Thackeray’s want of what is called ideal portraiture. Even if you thought, from reading his Vanity Fair, that he had no conception of noble women, certainly after the lecture upon Swift, after all the lectures, in which every allusion to women was so manly and delicate and sympathetic, you thought so no longer. It is clear that his sympathy is attracted to women—to that which is essentially womanly, feminine. Qualities common to both sexes do not necessarily charm him because he finds them in women. A certain degree of goodness must always be assumed. It is only the rare flowering that inspires special praise. You call Amelia’s fondness for George Osborne foolish, fond idolatry. Thackeray smiles, as if all love were not idolatry of the fondest foolishness. What was Hero’s—what was Francesca da Rimini’s—what was Juliet’s? They might have been more brilliant women than Amelia, and their idols of a larger mold than George, but the love was the same old foolish, fond idolatry. The passion of love and a profound and sensible knowledge, regard based upon prodigious knowledge of character and appreciation of talent, are different things. What is the historic and poetic splendor of love but the very fact, which constantly appears in Thackeray’s stories, namely, that it is a glory which dazzles and blinds. Men rarely love the women they ought to love, according to the ideal standards. It is this that makes the plot and mystery of life. Is it not the perpetual surprise of all Jane’s friends that she should love Timothy instead of Thomas? and is not the courtly and accomplished Thomas sure to surrender to some accidental Lucy without position, wealth, style, worth, culture—without anything but heart? This is the fact, and it reappears in Thackeray, and it gives his books that air of reality which they possess beyond all modern story.

We believe the main outcome of Thackeray’s visit is that he proved to us his intellectual honesty; he demonstrated how impossible it is for him to see and describe the world any other way than he does. He doesn't claim to be cynical nor does he satirize society with malice; there isn’t anyone more humble or straightforward than him. His interests are human and tangible, not abstract. We’ve already mentioned that he sees through the details clearly. It's straightforward enough, and it will be done in the future, to derive the uniqueness of his writings from the nature of his mind. No one hides behind a facade less than he does in taking on the role of the author. His books are simply his observations written down. It seems as odd to expect Dante to be like Shakespeare as it is to critique Thackeray for not having what’s generally called ideal portraiture. Even if you thought, based on reading his Vanity Fair, that he couldn’t envision noble women, certainly after the lecture on Swift, after all the lectures, where every mention of women was handled with so much grace and empathy, you wouldn’t think that anymore. It's clear that he feels a connection to women—to what is essentially feminine. Traits that both genders share don’t necessarily appeal to him just because they are found in women. A certain level of goodness is always assumed. Only the rare and exceptional qualities get special recognition. You might call Amelia’s love for George Osborne foolish, blind devotion. Thackeray smiles, as if to say that all love is not just blind devotion of the most foolish kind. What was Hero’s—what was Francesca da Rimini’s—what was Juliet’s? They may have been more impressive women than Amelia, and their idols may have been of a greater stature than George, but the love was still the same age-old, foolish devotion. The passion of love and a deep and thoughtful understanding, regard based on extensive knowledge of character and recognition of talent, are different things. What is the historic and poetic grandeur of love but the very fact that consistently appears in Thackeray’s stories—that it is a glory that dazzles and blinds? Men rarely love the women they’re supposed to love according to ideal standards. This makes up the plot and mystery of life. Isn’t it a constant surprise to all of Jane’s friends that she loves Timothy instead of Thomas? And isn’t the refined and talented Thomas likely to fall for some random Lucy who has nothing—no status, wealth, style, merit, or culture—just love? This is the reality, and it recurs in Thackeray, giving his books that sense of authenticity that surpasses all modern storytelling.

And it is this single perception of the fact which, simple as it is, is the rarest intellectual quality that made his lectures so interesting. The sun rose again upon the vanished century, and lighted those historic streets. The wits of Queen Anne ruled the hour, and we were bidden to their feast. Much reading of history and memoirs had not so sent the blood into those old English cheeks, and so moved those limbs in proper measure, as these swift glances through the eyes of genius. It was because, true to himself, Thackeray gave us his impression of those wits as men rather than authors. For he loves character more than thought. He is a man of the world, and not a scholar. He interprets the author by the man. When you are made intimate with young Swift, Sir William Temple’s saturnine secretary, you more intelligently appreciate the Dean of St. Patrick’s. When the surplice of Mr. Sterne is raised a little, more is seen than the reverend gentleman intends. Hogarth, the bluff Londoner, necessarily depicts a bluff, coarse, obvious morality. The hearty Fielding, the cool Addison, the genial Goldsmith, these are the figures that remain in memory, and their works are valuable as they indicate the man.

And it’s this singular understanding of the facts that, simple as it is, represents the rarest intellectual quality that made his lectures so captivating. The sun rose again over the gone century, illuminating those historic streets. The wits of Queen Anne dominated the moment, and we were invited to their gathering. No amount of reading history and memoirs could stir the blood in those old English cheeks or move those limbs with proper rhythm quite like these quick insights from a genius. It’s because Thackeray, staying true to himself, presented his view of those wits as people rather than just writers. He values character more than ideas. He’s a worldly person, not just a scholar. He interprets the author through the individual. When you get to know young Swift, Sir William Temple’s gloomy secretary, you can appreciate the Dean of St. Patrick’s more deeply. When Mr. Sterne’s surplice is lifted just a bit, you see more than the reverend intends. Hogarth, the straightforward Londoner, inevitably depicts a blunt, rough kind of morality. The spirited Fielding, the composed Addison, the warm Goldsmith—these are the figures that stick in your memory, and their works are precious because they reflect the individual.

Mr. Thackeray’s success was very great. He did not visit the West, nor Canada. He went home without seeing Niagara Falls. But wherever he did go he found a generous and social welcome, and a respectful and sympathetic hearing. He came to fulfill no mission, but he certainly knit more closely our sympathy with Englishmen. Heralded by various romantic memoirs, he smiled at them, stoutly asserted that he had been always able to command a good dinner, and to pay for it; nor did he seek to disguise that he hoped his American tour would help him to command and pay for more. He promised not to write a book about us, but we hope he will, for we can ill spare the criticism of such an observer. At least, we may be sure that the material gathered here will be worked up in some way. He found that we were not savages nor bores. He found that there were a hundred here for every score in England who knew well and loved the men of whom he spoke. He found that the same red blood colors all the lips that speak the language he so nobly praised. He found friends instead of critics. He found those who, loving the author, loved the man more. He found a quiet welcome from those who are waiting to welcome him again and as sincerely.

Mr. Thackeray’s success was remarkable. He didn't travel to the West or Canada. He returned home without seeing Niagara Falls. But wherever he went, he received a warm and friendly welcome, along with a respectful and understanding audience. He wasn’t there on any specific mission, but he definitely strengthened our connection with the English. With various romantic memoirs preceding him, he smiled at them, confidently claimed that he had always been able to enjoy a good meal and pay for it; he also didn’t hide that he hoped his American tour would allow him to enjoy and pay for even more. He promised not to write a book about us, but we hope he will, as we can hardly afford to miss the insights of such an observer. At the very least, we can be certain that the experiences he collected here will be developed in some way. He discovered that we were neither uncivilized nor dull. He found many more people here who knew and admired the individuals he spoke about compared to England. He saw that the same passionate spirit runs through all who speak the language he praised so highly. He encountered friends rather than critics. He found those who, while loving the author, loved the person even more. He received a warm welcome from those who are eager to greet him again just as genuinely.

[From Literary and Social Essays, by George William Curtis. Copyright, 1894, by Harper & Brothers.]

[From Literary and Social Essays, by George William Curtis. Copyright, 1894, by Harper & Brothers.]

OUR MARCH TO WASHINGTON

THEODORE WINTHROP

THROUGH THE CITY

AT three o’clock in the afternoon of Friday, April 19, we took our peacemaker, a neat twelve-pound brass howitzer, down from the Seventh Regiment Armory, and stationed it in the rear of the building. The twin peacemaker is somewhere near us, but entirely hidden by this enormous crowd.

AT three o’clock in the afternoon on Friday, April 19, we took our peacemaker, a tidy twelve-pound brass howitzer, down from the Seventh Regiment Armory and set it up in the back of the building. The other peacemaker is somewhere close by but completely concealed by this massive crowd.

An enormous crowd! of both sexes, of every age and condition. The men offer all kinds of truculent and patriotic hopes; the women shed tears, and say, "God bless you, boys!"

An enormous crowd! of both men and women, of all ages and backgrounds. The men express all sorts of aggressive and patriotic hopes; the women cry and say, "God bless you, boys!"

This is a part of the town, where baddish cigars prevail. But good or bad, I am ordered to keep all away from the gun. So the throng stands back, peers curiously over the heads of its junior members, and seems to be taking the measure of my coffin.

This is a part of town where not-so-great cigars are the norm. But whether they're good or bad, I've been told to keep everyone away from the gun. So the crowd hangs back, peeking over the heads of the younger ones, and it looks like they're sizing up my coffin.

After a patient hour of this, the word is given, we fall in, our two guns find their places at the right of the line of march, we move on through the thickening crowd.

After a long hour of waiting, the signal is given, we step in, our two guns take their positions on the right of the line, and we move forward through the growing crowd.

At a great house on the left, as we pass the Astor Library, I see a handkerchief waving for me. Yes! it is she who made the sandwiches in my knapsack. They were a trifle too thick, as I afterwards discovered, but otherwise perfection. Be these my thanks and the thanks of hungry comrades who had bites of them!

At a big house on the left, as we walk by the Astor Library, I see a handkerchief waving at me. Yes! It’s the one who made the sandwiches in my backpack. They were a bit too thick, as I found out later, but otherwise perfect. Let this be my thanks and the thanks of the hungry friends who shared them!

At the corner of Great Jones Street we halted for half an hour,—then, everything ready, we marched down Broadway.

At the corner of Great Jones Street, we stopped for half an hour—then, with everything ready, we walked down Broadway.

It was worth a life, that march. Only one who passed, as we did, through that tempest of cheers, two miles long, can know the terrible enthusiasm of the occasion. I could hardly hear the rattle of our own gun-carriages, and only once or twice the music of our band came to me muffled and quelled by the uproar. We knew now, if we had not before divined it, that our great city was with us as one man, utterly united in the great cause we were marching to sustain.

It was a march worth a lifetime. Only those who, like us, went through that storm of cheers, stretching two miles long, can truly understand the overwhelming excitement of the moment. I could barely hear the clatter of our own gun carriages, and only once or twice did the music of our band reach me, drowned out by the noise. We realized now, if we hadn't sensed it before, that our great city was standing with us, completely united in the important cause we were marching to support.

This grand fact I learned by two senses. If hundreds of thousands roared it into my ears, thousands slapped it into my back. My fellow-citizens smote me on the knapsack, as I went by at the gun-rope, and encouraged me each in his own dialect. "Bully for you!" alternated with benedictions, in the proportion of two "bullies" to one blessing.

This big truth I picked up through two senses. If hundreds of thousands shouted it in my ears, thousands hit me on the back. Other citizens patted me on the shoulder as I passed by with the ropes, each encouraging me in their own way. "Great job!" mixed with blessings, at a rate of two "great jobs" for every blessing.

I was not so fortunate as to receive more substantial tokens of sympathy. But there were parting gifts showered on the regiment, enough to establish a variety-shop. Handkerchiefs, of course, came floating down upon us from the windows, like a snow. Pretty little gloves pelted us with love-taps. The sterner sex forced upon us pocket-knives new and jagged, combs, soap, slippers, boxes of matches, cigars by the dozen and the hundred, pipes to smoke shag and pipes to smoke Latakia, fruit, eggs, and sandwiches. One fellow got a new purse with ten bright quarter-eagles.

I wasn't lucky enough to receive more meaningful gifts of sympathy. But there were plenty of farewell presents showered on the regiment, enough to set up a store. Handkerchiefs floated down to us from the windows like snow. Adorable little gloves hit us with gentle taps of affection. The men threw pocket knives, new and sharp, at us, along with combs, soap, slippers, boxes of matches, dozens and hundreds of cigars, pipes for shag tobacco and pipes for Latakia, fruit, eggs, and sandwiches. One guy even got a new wallet with ten shiny quarter-eagles.

At the corner of Grand Street, or thereabouts, a "bhoy" in red flannel shirt and black dress pantaloons, leaning back against the crowd with Herculean shoulders, called me,—"Saäy, bully! take my dorg! he’s one of the kind that holds till he draps." This gentleman, with his animal, was instantly shoved back by the police, and the Seventh lost the "dorg."

At the corner of Grand Street, or somewhere around there, a guy in a red flannel shirt and black dress pants, leaning against the crowd with broad shoulders, called out to me, "Hey, buddy! Take my dog! He’s the type that hangs on until he drops." This guy, along with his dog, was quickly pushed back by the police, and the Seventh lost the "dog."

These were the comic incidents of the march, but underlying all was the tragic sentiment that we might have tragic work presently to do. The news of the rascal attack in Baltimore on the Massachusetts Sixth had just come in. Ours might be the same chance. If there were any of us not in earnest before, the story of the day would steady us. So we said good-by to Broadway, moved down Cortlandt Street under a bower of flags, and at half-past six shoved off in the ferry-boat.

These were the funny moments from the march, but beneath it all was the sad realization that we might soon face serious challenges. We had just heard about the sneak attack in Baltimore on the Massachusetts Sixth. We could be facing the same situation. If anyone wasn’t taking it seriously before, the events of the day would make us focus. So, we said goodbye to Broadway, walked down Cortlandt Street under a canopy of flags, and at six-thirty, we left on the ferry boat.

Everybody has heard how Jersey City turned out and filled up the Railroad Station, like an opera-house, to give God-speed to us as a representative body, a guaranty of the unquestioning loyalty of the "conservative" class in New York. Everybody has heard how the State of New Jersey, along the railroad line, stood through the evening and the night to shout their quota of good wishes. At every station the Jerseymen were there, uproarious as Jerseymen, to shake our hands and wish us a happy despatch. I think I did not see a rod of ground without its man, from dusk till dawn, from the Hudson to the Delaware.

Everybody has heard how Jersey City filled up the Railroad Station, like an opera house, to wish us well as a representative group, showing the unwavering loyalty of the "conservative" class in New York. Everyone knows how the State of New Jersey, along the train route, stood through the evening and night to shout their share of good luck. At every station, the people from Jersey were there, boisterous as ever, to shake our hands and wish us a safe journey. I think I didn’t see a stretch of land without someone there, from dusk till dawn, from the Hudson to the Delaware.

Upon the train we made a jolly night of it. All knew that the more a man sings, the better he is likely to fight. So we sang more than we slept, and, in fact, that has been our history ever since.

On the train, we had a great night. Everyone knew that the more a guy sings, the better he’s probably going to fight. So we sang more than we slept, and honestly, that’s been our story ever since.

PHILADELPHIA

At sunrise we were at the station in Philadelphia, and dismissed for an hour. Some hundreds of us made up Broad Street for the Lapierre House to breakfast. When I arrived, I found every place at table filled and every waiter ten deep with orders. So, being an old campaigner, I followed up the stream of provender to the fountain-head, the kitchen. Half a dozen other old campaigners were already there, most hospitably entertained by the cooks. They served us, hot and hot, with the best of their best, straight from the gridiron and the pan. I hope, if I live to breakfast again in the Lapierre House, that I may be allowed to help myself and choose for myself below-stairs.

At sunrise, we were at the station in Philadelphia and had an hour to kill. Several hundred of us made our way down Broad Street to the Lapierre House for breakfast. When I got there, every table was full and the waitstaff were swamped with orders. So, being experienced, I followed the flow of food to the source: the kitchen. A handful of other veterans were already there, being warmly welcomed by the cooks. They served us hot food straight from the grill and the pan, with the very best dishes. I hope that if I ever get to have breakfast at the Lapierre House again, I'll be allowed to help myself and make my own choices in the kitchen.

When we rendezvoused at the train, we found that the orders were for every man to provide himself three days’ rations in the neighborhood, and be ready for a start at a moment’s notice.

When we met at the train, we discovered that everyone was supposed to get three days' worth of food nearby and be ready to leave at a moment's notice.

A mountain of bread was already piled up in the station. I stuck my bayonet through a stout loaf, and, with a dozen comrades armed in the same way, went foraging about for other vivers.

A mountain of bread was already piled up at the station. I stabbed my bayonet into a thick loaf, and, along with a dozen teammates armed the same way, went searching for other vivers.

It is a poor part of Philadelphia; but whatever they had in the shops or the houses seemed to be at our disposition.

It’s a rough area of Philadelphia, but whatever they had in the shops or homes seemed to be available for us to use.

I stopped at a corner shop to ask for pork, and was amicably assailed by an earnest dame,—Irish, I am pleased to say. She thrust her last loaf upon me, and sighed that it was not baked that morning for my "honor’s service."

I stopped by a corner store to ask for pork, and was warmly approached by a sincere woman—Irish, I’m happy to say. She handed me her last loaf of bread and sighed that it hadn’t been baked that morning for my “honor’s service.”

A little farther on, two kindly Quaker ladies compelled me to step in. "What could they do?" they asked eagerly. "They had no meat in the house; but could we eat eggs? They had in the house a dozen and a half, new-laid." So the pot to the fire, and the eggs boiled, and bagged by myself and that tall Saxon, my friend E., of the Sixth Company. While the eggs simmered, the two ladies thee-ed us prayerfully and tearfully, hoping that God would save our country from blood, unless blood must be shed to preserve Law and Liberty.

A little further along, two kind Quaker ladies insisted that I come inside. "What can we do?" they asked eagerly. "We have no meat in the house, but can you eat eggs? We have a dozen and a half, fresh-laid." So we put a pot on the fire, boiled the eggs, and bagged them up myself and that tall Saxon, my friend E., from the Sixth Company. While the eggs simmered, the two ladies addressed us tenderly and tearfully, praying that God would keep our country safe from bloodshed, unless blood had to be spilled to uphold Law and Liberty.

Nothing definite from Baltimore when we returned to the station. We stood by, waiting orders. About noon the Eighth Massachusetts Regiment took the train southward. Our regiment was ready to a man to try its strength with the Plug Uglies. If there had been any voting on the subject, the plan to follow the straight road to Washington would have been accepted by acclamation. But the higher powers deemed that "the longest way round was the shortest way home," and no doubt their decision was wise. The event proved it.

Nothing definite from Baltimore when we got back to the station. We stood by, waiting for orders. Around noon, the Eighth Massachusetts Regiment headed south on the train. Our regiment was all set to take on the Plug Uglies. If there had been a vote on it, the plan to take the direct route to Washington would have been approved unanimously. But the higher-ups thought that “the longest way around was the shortest way home,” and no doubt their decision was smart. The outcome showed it.

At two o’clock came the word to "fall in." We handled our howitzers again, and marched down Jefferson Avenue to the steamer "Boston" to embark.

At two o’clock, we got the order to "fall in." We loaded our howitzers again and marched down Jefferson Avenue to the steamer "Boston" to board.

To embark for what port? For Washington, of course, finally; but by what route? That was to remain in doubt to us privates for a day or two.

To set out for which destination? To Washington, of course; but by which way? That would stay uncertain for us regular soldiers for a day or two.

The "Boston" is a steamer of the outside line from Philadelphia to New York. She just held our legion. We tramped on board, and were allotted about the craft from the top to the bottom story. We took tents, traps, and grub on board, and steamed away down the Delaware in the sweet afternoon of April. If ever the heavens smiled fair weather on any campaign, they have done so on ours.

The "Boston" is a steamer that travels from Philadelphia to New York. She just accommodated our group. We boarded and were assigned space throughout the ship from the top deck to the bottom. We brought tents, gear, and food on board, and set off down the Delaware River on a beautiful April afternoon. If the heavens ever smiled with good weather on any journey, it was on ours.

THE "BOSTON"

Soldiers on shipboard are proverbially fish out of water. We could not be called by the good old nickname of "lobsters" by the crew. Our gray jackets saved the sobriquet. But we floundered about the crowded vessel like boiling victims in a pot. At last we found our places, and laid ourselves about the decks to tan or bronze or burn scarlet, according to complexion. There were plenty of cheeks of lobster-hue before next evening on the "Boston."

Soldiers on board a ship are like fish out of water. The crew wouldn’t call us by the old nickname "lobsters." Our gray jackets spared us from that. But we stumbled around the crowded vessel like victims boiling in a pot. Eventually, we found our spots and sprawled on the decks to tan, bronze, or burn red, depending on our skin type. By the next evening on the "Boston," there were plenty of lobster-red faces.

A thousand young fellows turned loose on shipboard were sure to make themselves merry. Let the reader imagine that! We were like any other excursionists, except that the stacks of bright guns were always present to remind us of our errand, and regular guard-mounting and drill went on all the time. The young citizens growled or laughed at the minor hardships of the hasty outfit, and toughened rapidly to business.

A thousand young guys let loose on a ship were definitely going to have a good time. Just imagine it! We were like any other tourists, except that the stacks of shiny guns were always there to remind us of our mission, and regular guard duty and drills were happening all the time. The young recruits complained or joked about the little inconveniences of our rushed preparation, and quickly toughened up for the task at hand.

Sunday, the 21st, was a long and somewhat anxious day. While we were bowling along in the sweet sunshine and sweeter moonlight of the halcyon time, Uncle Sam might be dethroned by somebody in buckram, or Baltimore burnt by the boys from Lynn or Marblehead, revenging the massacre of their fellows. Everyone begins to comprehend the fiery eagerness of men who live in historic times. "I wish I had control of chain-lightning for a few minutes," says O., the droll fellow of our company. "I’d make it come thick and heavy and knock spots out of Secession."

Sunday, the 21st, was a long and somewhat anxious day. While we were cruising in the lovely sunshine and even lovelier moonlight of this peaceful time, Uncle Sam could be overthrown by someone in a fancy uniform, or Baltimore could be set on fire by the guys from Lynn or Marblehead, avenging the massacre of their friends. Everyone starts to feel the intense eagerness of people living through historic moments. "I wish I could control lightning for a few minutes," says O., the funny guy in our group. "I’d make it strike hard and fast and wipe out Secession."

At early dawn of Monday, the 22d, after feeling along slowly all night, we see the harbor of Annapolis. A frigate with sails unbent lies at anchor. She flies the stars and stripes. Hurrah!

At early dawn on Monday, the 22nd, after moving slowly all night, we see the harbor of Annapolis. A frigate with its sails down is anchored. It's flying the stars and stripes. Hurrah!

A large steamboat is aground farther in. As soon as we can see anything, we catch the glitter of bayonets on board.

A big steamboat is stuck further in. As soon as we can see anything, we spot the shine of bayonets on deck.

By and by boats come off, and we get news that the steamer is the "Maryland," a ferry-boat of the Philadelphia and Baltimore Railroad. The Massachusetts Eighth Regiment had been just in time to seize her on the north side of the Chesapeake. They learned that she was to be carried off by the crew and leave them blockaded. So they shot their Zouaves ahead as skirmishers. The fine fellows rattled on board, and before the steamboat had time to take a turn or open a valve, she was held by Massachusetts in trust for Uncle Sam. Hurrah for the most important prize thus far in the war! It probably saved the "Constitution," "Old Ironsides," from capture by the traitors. It probably saved Annapolis, and kept Maryland open without bloodshed.

Soon, boats arrived, and we heard that the steamer was the "Maryland," a ferry operated by the Philadelphia and Baltimore Railroad. The Massachusetts Eighth Regiment had just managed to seize her on the north side of the Chesapeake. They found out that the crew intended to take her away, leaving them blocked. So, they sent their Zouaves ahead as skirmishers. The brave guys quickly boarded, and before the steamboat had a chance to turn around or open a valve, she was secured by Massachusetts in trust for Uncle Sam. Hooray for the most significant prize so far in the war! It likely saved the "Constitution," "Old Ironsides," from being captured by the traitors. It probably saved Annapolis and kept Maryland open without bloodshed.

As soon as the Massachusetts Regiment had made prize of the ferry-boat, a call was made for engineers to run her. Some twenty men at once stepped to the front. We of the New York Seventh afterwards concluded that whatever was needed in the way of skill or handicraft could be found among those brother Yankees. They were the men to make armies of. They could tailor for themselves, shoe themselves, do their own blacksmithing, gun-smithing, and all other work that calls for sturdy arms and nimble fingers. In fact, I have such profound confidence in the universal accomplishment of the Massachusetts Eighth, that I have no doubt, if the order were, "Poets to the front!" "Painters present arms!" "Sculptors charge bayonets!" a baker’s dozen out of every company would respond.

As soon as the Massachusetts Regiment captured the ferry boat, they called for engineers to operate it. Around twenty men immediately stepped up. We from the New York Seventh later agreed that any skills or craftsmanship needed could be found among those fellow Yankees. They were the kind of people to build armies from. They could tailor their own clothes, shoe their own horses, handle their own blacksmithing, gunsmithing, and any other work that requires strong arms and quick fingers. In fact, I have such complete confidence in the Massachusetts Eighth's abilities that I have no doubt, if the order was, "Poets to the front!" "Painters present arms!" "Sculptors charge bayonets!" a dozen from each company would step forward.

Well, to go on with their story,—when they had taken their prize, they drove her straight downstream to Annapolis, the nearest point to Washington. There they found the Naval Academy in danger of attack, and "Old Ironsides"—serving as a practice-ship for the future midshipmen—also exposed. The call was now for seamen to man the old craft and save her from a worse enemy than her prototype met in the "Guerrière." Seamen? Of course! They were Marbleheaded men, Gloucester men, Beverly men, seamen all, par excellence! They clapped on the frigate to aid the middies, and by and by started her out into the stream. In doing this their own pilot took the chance to run them purposely on a shoal in the intricate channel. A great error of judgment on his part! as he perceived, when he found himself in irons and in confinement. "The days of trifling with traitors are over!" think the Eighth Regiment of Massachusetts.

Well, to continue their story, once they captured their prize, they headed straight downstream to Annapolis, the closest point to Washington. There, they found the Naval Academy under threat of attack, and "Old Ironsides," which was serving as a practice ship for the future midshipmen, was also at risk. The call went out for sailors to crew the old ship and protect her from a worse foe than what her predecessor faced in the "Guerrière." Sailors? Absolutely! They were from Marblehead, Gloucester, Beverly—sailors all, par excellence! They jumped on the frigate to support the midshipmen and eventually launched her into the water. In doing this, their own pilot made the mistake of intentionally running them aground in the complicated channel. A huge miscalculation on his part! He realized this when he found himself in handcuffs and in custody. "The days of messing around with traitors are over!" thought the Eighth Regiment of Massachusetts.

But there they were, hard and fast on the shoal, when we came up. Nothing to nibble on but knobs of anthracite. Nothing to sleep on softer or cleaner than coal-dust. Nothing to drink but the brackish water under their keel. "Rather rough!" so they afterward patiently told us.

But there they were, stuck firmly on the shoal, when we came up. Nothing to snack on but lumps of coal. Nothing to sleep on that was softer or cleaner than coal dust. Nothing to drink but the salty water beneath their hull. "Pretty rough!" they later told us patiently.

Meantime the "Constitution" had got hold of a tug, and was making her way to an anchorage where her guns commanded everything and everybody. Good and true men chuckled greatly over this. The stars and stripes also were still up at the fort at the Naval Academy.

Meanwhile, the "Constitution" had taken control of a tug and was heading to an anchorage where her guns could dominate everything and everyone. Good and honest men found this highly amusing. The stars and stripes were still flying at the fort at the Naval Academy.

Our dread, that, while we were off at sea, some great and perhaps fatal harm had been suffered, was greatly lightened by these good omens. If Annapolis was safe, why not Washington safe also? If treachery had got head at the capital, would not treachery have reached out its hand and snatched this doorway? These were our speculations as we began to discern objects, before we heard news.

Our fear that while we were at sea, some serious and possibly fatal harm had occurred, was eased by these positive signs. If Annapolis was safe, why wouldn’t Washington be safe too? If there was betrayal in the capital, wouldn’t it have extended its reach and taken this place too? These were our thoughts as we started to see things clearly, before we received any news.

But news came presently. Boats pulled off to us. Our officers were put into communication with the shore. The scanty facts of our position became known from man to man. We privates have greatly the advantage in battling with the doubt of such a time. We know that we have nothing to do with rumors. Orders are what we go by. And orders are Facts.

But news arrived soon. Boats came up to us. Our officers started communicating with the shore. The limited details of our situation spread from person to person. We privates have a big advantage in dealing with the uncertainty of this moment. We know we have nothing to do with rumors. We operate based on orders. And orders are Facts.

We lay a long, lingering day, off Annapolis. The air was full of doubt, and we were eager to be let loose. All this while the "Maryland" stuck fast on the bar. We could see them, half a mile off, making every effort to lighten her. The soldiers tramped forward and aft, danced on her decks, shot overboard a heavy baggage-truck. We saw them start the truck for the stern with a cheer. It crashed down. One end stuck in the mud. The other fell back and rested on the boat. They went at it with axes, and presently it was clear.

We spent a long, drawn-out day off Annapolis. The air was thick with uncertainty, and we were eager to break free. Meanwhile, the "Maryland" was stuck fast on the bar. We could see them half a mile away, trying everything to lighten the ship. Soldiers moved back and forth, danced on the decks, and tossed a heavy baggage truck overboard. We watched as they cheered and pushed the truck toward the stern. It crashed down, one end got stuck in the mud, while the other end tipped back onto the boat. They went at it with axes, and soon enough, it was cleared.

As the tide rose, we gave our grounded friends a lift with the hawser. No go! The "Boston" tugged in vain. We got near enough to see the whites of the Massachusetts eyes, and their unlucky faces and uniforms all grimy with their lodgings in the coal-dust. They could not have been blacker, if they had been breathing battle-smoke and dust all day. That experience was clear gain to them.

As the tide came in, we tried to help our stuck friends with the hawser. No luck! The "Boston" tugged without success. We got close enough to see the whites of the Massachusetts troops' eyes, and their unfortunate faces and uniforms were all dirty from the coal dust. They couldn't have looked any dirtier, even if they had been breathing in battle smoke and dust all day. That experience was clearly a gain for them.

By and by, greatly to the delight of the impatient Seventh, the "Boston" was headed for shore. Never speak ill of the beast you bestraddle! Therefore requiescat "Boston"! may her ribs lie light on soft sand when she goes to pieces! may her engines be cut up into bracelets for the arms of the patriotic fair! good by to her, dear old, close, dirty, slow coach! She served her country well in a moment of trial. Who knows but she saved it? It was a race to see who should first get to Washington,—and we and the Virginia mob, in alliance with the District mob, were perhaps nip and tuck for the goal.

Eventually, to the great joy of the impatient Seventh, the "Boston" was headed for shore. Never speak poorly of the beast you ride! So, goodbye "Boston"! May her hull rest lightly on soft sand when she falls apart! May her engines be turned into bracelets for the arms of patriotic women! Farewell, dear old, cramped, dirty, slow coach! She served her country well in a time of crisis. Who knows, maybe she saved it? It was a race to see who would reach Washington first—and we and the Virginia crowd, teamed up with the District crowd, were probably neck and neck for the finish line.

ANNAPOLIS

So the Seventh Regiment landed and took Annapolis. We were the first troops ashore.

So the Seventh Regiment arrived and captured Annapolis. We were the first troops on land.

The middies of the Naval Academy no doubt believe that they had their quarters secure. The Massachusetts boys are satisfied that they first took the town in charge. And so they did.

The midshipmen at the Naval Academy surely think their quarters are safe. The guys from Massachusetts are confident they were the first to take control of the town. And they did.

But the Seventh took it a little more. Not, of course, from its loyal men, but for its loyal men,—for loyal Maryland, and for the Union.

But the Seventh took it a bit further. Not, of course, from its loyal men, but for its loyal men— for loyal Maryland and for the Union.

Has anybody seen Annapolis? It is a picturesque old place, sleepy enough, and astonished to find itself wide-awaked by a war, and obliged to take responsibility and share for good and ill in the movement of its time. The buildings of the Naval Academy stand parallel with the river Severn, with a green plateau toward the water and a lovely green lawn toward the town. All the scene was fresh and fair with April, and I fancied, as the "Boston" touched the wharf, that I discerned the sweet fragrance of apple-blossoms coming with the spring-time airs.

Has anyone seen Annapolis? It’s a charming old town, pretty quiet, and surprised to find itself awakened by a war, having to take on responsibility and share in both the good and bad of its time. The buildings of the Naval Academy are lined up next to the Severn River, with a grassy area by the water and a beautiful green lawn facing the town. Everything looked fresh and beautiful in April, and I thought, as the "Boston" docked, that I could smell the sweet scent of apple blossoms carried by the spring breeze.

I hope that the companies of the Seventh, should the day arrive, will charge upon horrid batteries or serried ranks with as much alacrity as they marched ashore on the greensward of the Naval Academy. We disembarked, and were halted in line between the buildings and the river.

I hope that the companies of the Seventh, when the time comes, will charge into battle with the same eagerness as they marched ashore on the grass of the Naval Academy. We got off the boat and lined up between the buildings and the river.

Presently, while we stood at ease, people began to arrive,—some with smallish fruit to sell, some with smaller news to give. Nobody knew whether Washington was taken. Nobody knew whether Jeff Davis was now spitting in the Presidential spittoon, and scribbling his distiches with the nib of the Presidential goose-quill. We were absolutely in doubt whether a seemingly inoffensive knot of rustics, on a mound without the inclosures, might not, at tap of drum, unmask a battery of giant columbiads, and belch blazes at us, raking our line.

Right now, as we relaxed, people started to show up—some selling small fruits, others bringing bits of news. No one knew if Washington had been captured. No one knew if Jeff Davis was sitting in the Presidential seat, writing his messages with the President's quill. We were completely unsure if a seemingly harmless group of locals, standing on a mound outside the fences, might suddenly reveal a hidden battery of massive cannons and fire at us, targeting our line.

Nothing so entertaining happened. It was a parade, not a battle. At sunset our band played strains sweet enough to pacify all Secession, if Secession had music in its soul. Coffee, hot from the coppers of the Naval School, and biscuit were served out to us; and while we supped, we talked with our visitors, such as were allowed to approach.

Nothing that exciting happened. It was a parade, not a battle. At sunset, our band played melodies sweet enough to calm all Secession, if Secession had music in its soul. We were served hot coffee from the Naval School and biscuits; and while we ate, we chatted with the visitors who were allowed to come close.

First the boys of the School—fine little blue-jackets—had their story to tell.

First, the boys from the school—smart little kids in blue jackets—had their story to share.

"Do you see that white farm-house, across the river?" says a brave pigmy of a chap in navy uniform. "That is head-quarters for Secession. They were going to take the School from us, Sir, and the frigate; but we’ve got ahead of 'em, now you and the Massachusetts boys have come down,"—and he twinkled all over with delight. "We can’t study any more. We are on guard all the time. We’ve got howitzers, too, and we’d like you to see, to-morrow, on drill, how we can handle 'em. One of their boats came by our sentry last night," (a sentry probably five feet high), "and he blazed away, Sir. So they thought they wouldn’t try us that time."

"Do you see that white farmhouse across the river?" asks a brave little guy in a navy uniform. "That’s the headquarters for Secession. They were planning to take the School from us, Sir, along with the frigate; but we’ve gotten ahead of them now that you and the Massachusetts guys are here,"—and he beamed with joy. "We can’t study anymore. We’re on guard all the time. We’ve got howitzers as well, and we’d love for you to see how we can handle them during drill tomorrow. One of their boats passed our sentry last night," (the sentry was probably about five feet tall), "and he fired away, Sir. So they thought they wouldn’t mess with us that time."

It was plain that these young souls had been well tried by the treachery about them. They, too, had felt the pang of the disloyalty of comrades. Nearly a hundred of the boys had been spoilt by the base example of their elders in the repudiating States, and had resigned.

It was clear that these young people had been tested by the betrayal around them. They, too, had experienced the pain of their friends' disloyalty. Almost a hundred of the boys had been corrupted by the poor example set by their elders in the rejecting States, and had given up.

After the middies, came anxious citizens from the town. Scared, all of them. Now that we were come and assured them that persons and property were to be protected, they ventured to speak of the disgusting tyranny to which they, American citizens, had been subjected. We came into contact here with utter social anarchy. No man, unless he was ready to risk assault, loss of property, exile, dared to act or talk like a freeman. "This great wrong must be righted," think the Seventh Regiment, as one man. So we tried to reassure the Annapolitans that we meant to do our duty as the nation’s armed police, and mob-law was to be put down, so far as we could do it.

After the soldiers arrived, worried townspeople started to gather. They were all scared. Now that we had come and reassured them that both people and property would be protected, they felt comfortable enough to talk about the terrible oppression they, as American citizens, had experienced. Here, we encountered complete social chaos. No one, unless he was willing to risk violence, losing his property, or being forced into exile, dared to act or speak like a free person. "This great injustice has to be fixed," thought the Seventh Regiment, united in purpose. So we tried to reassure the people of Annapolis that we intended to do our duty as the nation's armed enforcers, and we aimed to stop mob rule as much as we could.

Here, too, voices of war met us. The country was stirred up. If the rural population did not give us a bastard imitation of Lexington and Concord, as we tried to gain Washington, all Pluguglydom would treat us à la Plugugly somewhere near the junction of the Annapolis and Baltimore and Washington Railroad. The Seventh must be ready to shoot.

Here, too, we encountered the sounds of war. The country was agitated. If the rural population didn’t give us a poor imitation of Lexington and Concord while we tried to reach Washington, all of Pluguglydom would handle us like they do in Plugugly, somewhere near the junction of the Annapolis and Baltimore and Washington Railroad. The Seventh must be prepared to shoot.

At dusk we were marched up to the Academy and quartered about in the buildings,—some in the fort, some in the recitation-halls. We lay down on our blankets and knapsacks. Up to this time our sleep and diet had been severely scanty.

At sunset, we were taken to the Academy and settled into the buildings—some of us in the fort, others in the lecture halls. We lay down on our blankets and backpacks. Until then, our sleep and food had been very limited.

We stayed all next day at Annapolis. The "Boston" brought the Massachusetts Eighth ashore that night. Poor fellows! what a figure they cut, when we found them bivouacked on the Academy grounds next morning! To begin: They had come off in hot patriotic haste, half-uniformed and half-outfitted. Finding that Baltimore had been taken by its own loafers and traitors, and that the Chesapeake ferry was impracticable, had obliged them to change line of march. They were out of grub. They were parched dry for want of water on the ferry-boat. Nobody could decipher Caucasian, much less Bunker-Hill Yankee, in their grimy visages.

We stayed in Annapolis all day. The "Boston" dropped off the Massachusetts Eighth that night. Poor guys! They looked a mess when we saw them camped out on the Academy grounds the next morning! To start with, they had rushed over in a wave of patriotic excitement, half in uniform and half not prepared. Discovering that Baltimore had been taken over by its own slackers and traitors, and that the ferry across the Chesapeake couldn’t be used, forced them to change their route. They were out of food. They were completely dehydrated from the lack of water on the ferry. No one could make sense of their faces, which were dirty and unreadable, not even the old-timey Bostonian slang.

But, hungry, thirsty, grimy, these fellows were GRIT.

But, hungry, thirsty, and dirty, these guys were GRIT.

Massachusetts ought to be proud of such hardy, cheerful, faithful sons.

Massachusetts should be proud of such strong, happy, loyal sons.

We of the Seventh are proud, for our part, that it was our privilege to share our rations with them, and to begin a fraternization which grows closer every day and will be historical.

We of the Seventh are proud to say that we had the honor of sharing our food with them, starting a friendship that gets stronger every day and will be historic.

But I must make a shorter story. We drilled and were reviewed that morning on the Academy parade. In the afternoon the Naval School paraded their last before they gave up their barracks to the coming soldiery. So ended the 23d of April.

But I need to keep it brief. We practiced and were evaluated that morning during the Academy parade. In the afternoon, the Naval School had their final parade before they handed over their barracks to the incoming troops. And that was the end of April 23rd.

Midnight, 24th. We were rattled up by an alarm,—perhaps a sham one, to keep us awake and lively. In a moment, the whole regiment was in order of battle in the moonlight on the parade. It was a most brilliant spectacle, as company after company rushed forward, with rifles glittering, to take their places in the array.

Midnight, 24th. We were jolted awake by an alarm—maybe a fake one, just to keep us alert and energetic. In an instant, the entire regiment was lined up for battle in the moonlight on the parade. It was a stunning sight, as company after company charged forward, rifles shining, to take their positions in the formation.

After this pretty spirt, we were rationed with pork, beef, and bread for three days, and ordered to be ready to march on the instant.

After this nice break, we were given rations of pork, beef, and bread for three days and told to be ready to march at any moment.

WHAT THE MASSACHUSETTS EIGHTH HAD BEEN DOING

MEANTIME General Butler’s command, the Massachusetts Eighth, had been busy knocking disorder in the head.

MEANTIME General Butler’s command, the Massachusetts Eighth, had been busy putting an end to disorder.

Presently after their landing, and before they were refreshed, they pushed companies out to occupy the railroad-track beyond the town.

Currently, after they landed and before they refreshed themselves, they sent groups out to occupy the railroad track beyond the town.

They found it torn up. No doubt the scamps who did the shabby job fancied that there would be no more travel that way until strawberry-time. They fancied the Yankees would sit down on the fences and begin to whittle white-oak toothpicks, darning the rebels, through their noses, meanwhile.

They found it in shambles. No doubt the punks who messed it up thought that there wouldn’t be any more travel that way until strawberry season. They believed the Yankees would just sit on the fences and start carving white-oak toothpicks, mocking the rebels instead.

I know these men of the Eighth can whittle, and I presume they can say "Darn it," if occasion requires; but just now track-laying was the business on hand.

I know these guys from the Eighth can carve wood, and I assume they can say "Darn it" if they need to; but right now, laying track was the task at hand.

"Wanted, experienced track-layers!" was the word along the files.

"Wanted, experienced track-layers!" was the word along the files.

All at once the line of the road became densely populated with experienced track-layers, fresh from Massachusetts.

Suddenly, the road was filled with skilled track layers who had just come from Massachusetts.

Presto change! the rails were relaid, spiked, and the roadway leveled and better ballasted than any road I ever saw south of Mason and Dixon’s line.

Presto change! The tracks were redone, secured, and the road was smoothed out and better supported than any road I’ve ever seen south of the Mason-Dixon line.

"We must leave a good job for these folks to model after," say the Massachusetts Eighth.

"We need to set a good example for these people to follow," says the Massachusetts Eighth.

A track without a train is as useless as a gun without a man. Train and engine must be had. "Uncle Sam’s mails and troops cannot be stopped another minute," our energetic friends conclude. So,—the railroad company’s people being either frightened or false,—in marches Massachusetts to the station. "We, the People of the United States, want rolling-stock for the use of the Union," they said, or words to that effect.

A track without a train is as useless as a gun without a person. We need the train and engine. "Uncle Sam’s mail and troops can’t be delayed another minute," our enthusiastic friends concluded. So, since the railroad company’s staff were either scared or dishonest, Massachusetts marched to the station. "We, the People of the United States, need rolling stock for the use of the Union," they said, or something like that.

The engine—a frowsy machine at the best—had been purposely disabled.

The engine—a messy machine at best—had been deliberately disabled.

Here appeared the deus ex machina, Charles Homans, Beverly Light Guard, Company E, Eighth Massachusetts Regiment.

Here appeared the deus ex machina, Charles Homans, Beverly Light Guard, Company E, Eighth Massachusetts Regiment.

That is the man, name and titles in full, and he deserves well of his country.

That is the man, with his full name and titles, and he deserves a lot from his country.

He took a quiet squint at the engine,—it was as helpless as a boned turkey,—and he found "Charles Homans, his mark," written all over it.

He took a quick look at the engine—it was as useless as a boneless turkey—and he saw "Charles Homans, his mark," written all over it.

The old rattletrap was an old friend. Charles Homans had had a share in building it. The machine and the man said, "How d’y’ do?" at once. Homans called for a gang of engine-builders. Of course they swarmed out of the ranks. They passed their hands over the locomotive a few times, and presently it was ready to whistle and wheeze and rumble and gallop, as if no traitor had ever tried to steal the go and the music out of it.

The old clunker was an old friend. Charles Homans had helped build it. The machine and the man greeted each other with a "How's it going?" Homans summoned a crew of engine builders. They quickly came out from the ranks. They ran their hands over the locomotive a few times, and soon it was ready to whistle and wheeze and rumble and speed off, as if no one had ever tried to take the power and the sound out of it.

This had all been done during the afternoon of the 23d. During the night, the renovated engine was kept cruising up and down the track to see all clear. Guards of the Eighth were also posted to protect passage.

This was all done on the afternoon of the 23rd. Throughout the night, the updated engine was kept running back and forth on the track to ensure everything was clear. Guards from the Eighth were also stationed to ensure safe passage.

Our commander had, I presume, been co-operating with General Butler in this business. The Naval Academy authorities had given us every despatch and assistance, and the middies, frank, personal hospitality. The day was halcyon, the grass was green and soft, the apple-trees were just in blossom: it was a day to be remembered.

Our commander had, I assume, been working together with General Butler on this matter. The Naval Academy staff had provided us with all the updates and support we needed, and the midshipmen extended their warm, personal hospitality. The day was beautiful, the grass was green and soft, and the apple trees were just starting to bloom: it was a day to remember.

Many of us will remember it, and show the marks of it for months, as the day we had our heads cropped. By evening there was hardly one poll in the Seventh tenable by anybody’s grip. Most sat in the shade and were shorn by a barber. A few were honored with a clip by the artist hand of the petit caporal of our Engineer Company.

Many of us will remember it and bear the marks of it for months, as the day we got our hair cut. By evening, hardly anyone's hair was manageable. Most people sat in the shade and were trimmed by a barber. A few were lucky enough to have their cut done by the skilled hand of the petit caporal of our Engineer Company.

While I rattle off these trifling details, let me not fail to call attention to the grave service done by our regiment, by its arrival, at the nick of time, at Annapolis. No clearer special Providence could have happened. The country-people of the traitor sort were aroused. Baltimore and its mob were but two hours away. The "Constitution" had been hauled out of reach of a rush by the Massachusetts men,—first on the ground,—but was half manned and not fully secure. And there lay the "Maryland," helpless on the shoal, with six or seven hundred souls on board, so near the shore that the late Captain Rynders’s gun could have sunk her from some ambush.

While I go over these minor details, I want to highlight the significant service our regiment provided by arriving just in time at Annapolis. There couldn't have been a clearer example of divine intervention. The local people who supported the traitors were stirred up. Baltimore and its mob were only two hours away. The "Constitution" had been moved out of reach of a rush by the Massachusetts men—who were the first on the scene—but was only partially manned and not completely secure. And there lay the "Maryland," stranded on the shoal with six or seven hundred people on board, so close to shore that the late Captain Rynders's gun could have taken her out from hiding.

Yes! the Seventh Regiment at Annapolis was the Right Man in the Right Place!

Yes! The Seventh Regiment at Annapolis was the right team in the right spot!

OUR MORNING MARCH

REVEILLE. As nobody pronounces this word à la française, as everybody calls it "Revelee," why not drop it, as an affectation, and translate it the "Stir your Stumps," the "Peel your Eyes," the "Tumble Up," or literally the "Wake"?

REVEILLE. Since no one says this word à la française and everyone calls it "Revelee," why not get rid of it as a pretentious term and translate it as "Stir your Stumps," "Peel your Eyes," "Tumble Up," or just the literal "Wake"?

Our snorers had kept up this call so lustily since midnight, that, when the drums sounded it, we were all ready.

Our snorers had been calling out so loudly since midnight that, when the drums sounded, we were all set.

The Sixth and Second Companies, under Captain Nevers, are detached to lead the van. I see my brother Billy march off with the Sixth, into the dusk, half moonlight, half dawn, and hope that no beggar of a Secessionist will get a pat shot at him, by the roadside, without his getting a chance to let fly in return. Such little possibilities intensify the earnest detestation we feel for the treasons we come to resist and to punish. There will be some bitter work done, if we ever get to blows in this war,—this needless, reckless, brutal assault upon the mildest of all governments.

The Sixth and Second Companies, led by Captain Nevers, are assigned to take the lead. I watch my brother Billy march off with the Sixth into the fading light, a mix of half-moon and half-dawn, and I hope that no lowlife Secessionist takes a shot at him by the roadside without giving him a chance to fire back. These small possibilities only deepen the strong hatred we have for the betrayals we’re about to fight against and punish. There will be some tough battles ahead if we ever actually engage in this war—this unnecessary, reckless, brutal attack on the most gentle of all governments.

Before the main body of the regiment marches, we learn that the "Baltic" and other transports came in last night with troops from New York and New England, enough to hold Annapolis against a square league of Plug Uglies. We do not go on without having our rear protected and our communications open. It is strange to be compelled to think of these things in peaceful America. But we really knew little more of the country before us than Cortés knew of Mexico. I have since learned from a high official, that thirteen different messengers were dispatched from Washington in the interval of anxiety while the Seventh was not forthcoming, and only one got through.

Before the main part of the regiment marches, we find out that the "Baltic" and other ships arrived last night with troops from New York and New England, enough to secure Annapolis against a group of troublemakers. We won’t move forward without ensuring our rear is protected and our communication lines are open. It's odd to have to think about these things in peaceful America. But honestly, we knew just as little about the land ahead of us as Cortés knew about Mexico. I've since learned from a high official that thirteen different messengers were sent from Washington during the anxious wait for the Seventh, and only one made it through.

At half-past seven we take up our line of march, pass out of the charming grounds of the Academy, and move through the quiet, rusty, picturesque old town. It has a romantic dullness,—Annapolis,—which deserves a parting compliment.

At 7:30, we start our march, leave the lovely grounds of the Academy, and stroll through the quiet, charming, old town. Annapolis has a uniquely beautiful but uneventful vibe that deserves a final compliment.

Although we deem ourselves a fine-looking set, although our belts are blanched with pipe-clay and our rifles shine sharp in the sun, yet the townspeople stare at us in a dismal silence. They have already the air of men quelled by a despotism. None can trust his neighbor. If he dares to be loyal, he must take his life into his hands. Most would be loyal, if they dared. But the system of society which has ended in this present chaos had gradually eliminated the bravest and best men. They have gone in search of Freedom and Prosperity; and now the bullies cow the weaker brothers. "There must be an end of this mean tyranny," think the Seventh, as they march through old Annapolis and see how sick the town is with doubt and alarm.

Even though we think we look good and our belts are neat and our rifles gleam in the sun, the townspeople stare at us in uncomfortable silence. They seem like beaten men under a cruel power. No one trusts their neighbor. If someone tries to be loyal, they risk their life. Most would be loyal if they had the courage. But the social system that led to this chaos has gradually driven out the bravest and best people. They left in search of Freedom and Prosperity, while the bullies intimidate the weaker ones. "This unfair tyranny has to stop," the Seventh think as they march through old Annapolis and see how troubled the town is with doubt and fear.

Outside the town, we strike the railroad and move along, the howitzers in front, bouncing over the sleepers. When our line is fully disengaged from the town, we halt.

Outside the town, we hit the railroad and move along, the howitzers in front, bouncing over the ties. When our line is completely out of the town, we stop.

Here the scene is beautiful. The van rests upon a high embankment, with a pool surrounded by pine-trees on the right, green fields on the left. Cattle are feeding quietly about. The air sings with birds. The chestnut-leaves sparkle. Frogs whistle in the warm spring morning. The regiment groups itself along the bank and the cutting. Several Marylanders of the half-price age—under twelve—come gaping up to see us harmless invaders. Each of these young gentry is armed with a dead spring frog, perhaps by way of tribute. And here—hollo! here comes Horace Greeley in propria persona! He marches through our groups with the Greeley walk, the Greeley hat on the back of his head, the Greeley white coat on his shoulders, his trousers much too short, and an absorbed, abstracted demeanor. Can it be Horace, reporting for himself? No; this is a Maryland production, and a little disposed to be sulky.

The scene is stunning. The van is parked on a high bank, with a pool surrounded by pine trees on the right and green fields on the left. Cattle are peacefully grazing nearby. The air is filled with birdsong. The chestnut leaves shimmer. Frogs croak in the warm spring morning. The regiment is gathered along the bank and the cut. Several young Marylanders, under the age of twelve, come over to check out us harmless visitors. Each of these kids is holding a dead spring frog, maybe as a kind of offering. And look! Here comes Horace Greeley in propria persona! He strolls through our group with his signature walk, his hat tilted to the back, his white coat draped over his shoulders, his pants way too short, and a lost, distracted expression. Could it really be Horace, here to report for himself? No; this is more of a Maryland twist, and he seems a bit sullen.

After a few minutes’ halt, we hear the whistle of the engine. This machine is also an historic character in the war.

After a brief pause, we hear the sound of the engine's whistle. This machine is also a significant figure in the war's history.

Remember it! "J. H. Nicholson" is its name. Charles Holmes drives, and on either side stands a sentry with fixed bayonet. New spectacles for America! But it is grand to know that the bayonets are to protect, not to assail, Liberty and Law.

Remember it! "J. H. Nicholson" is the name. Charles Holmes is driving, and on either side stands a guard with a fixed bayonet. New glasses for America! But it's great to know that the bayonets are there to protect, not to attack, Liberty and Law.

The train leads off. We follow, by the track. Presently the train returns. We pass it and trudge on in light marching order, carrying arms, blankets, haversacks, and canteens. Our knapsacks are upon the train.

The train moves ahead. We follow along the tracks. Soon, the train comes back. We go past it and keep walking in a light marching formation, carrying our rifles, blankets, backpacks, and water canteens. Our knapsacks are on the train.

Fortunate for our backs that they do not have to bear any more burden! For the day grows sultry. It is one of those breezeless baking days which brew thunder-gusts. We march for some four miles, when, coming upon the guards of the Massachusetts Eighth, our howitzer is ordered to fall out and wait for the train. With a comrade of the Artillery, I am placed on guard over it.

Luckily for our backs, they don’t have to take on any more weight! The day is getting really hot. It’s one of those stifling days that brings on thunderstorms. We walk for about four miles, and when we run into the guards of the Massachusetts Eighth, our howitzer is ordered to stay behind and wait for the train. A fellow artilleryman and I are put in charge of guarding it.

ON GUARD WITH HOWITZER NO. TWO

HENRY BONNELL is my fellow-sentry. He, like myself, is an old campaigner in such campaigns as our generation has known. So we talk California, Oregon, Indian life, the Plains, keeping our eyes peeled meanwhile, and ranging the country. Men that will tear up track are quite capable of picking off a sentry. A giant chestnut gives us little dots of shade from its pigmy leaves. The country about us is open and newly plowed. Some of the worm-fences are new, and ten rails high; but the farming is careless, and the soil thin.

HENRY BONNELL is my fellow sentry. He, like me, has been through quite a few campaigns in our time. So we chat about California, Oregon, life with Native Americans, and the Plains while keeping a lookout and scanning the area. Guys who can tear up tracks are definitely capable of taking out a sentry. A large chestnut tree offers us a little shade from its tiny leaves. The land around us is open and freshly plowed. Some of the worm fences are new and ten rails high, but the farming looks sloppy, and the soil is thin.

Two of the Massachusetts men come back to the gun while we are standing there. One is my friend Stephen Morris, of Marblehead, Sutton Light Infantry. I had shared my breakfast yesterday with Stephe. So we refraternize.

Two of the Massachusetts guys return to the gun while we’re standing there. One is my friend Stephen Morris from Marblehead, Sutton Light Infantry. I shared my breakfast with Stephen yesterday, so we reconnect.

His business is,—"I make shoes in winter and fishin’ in summer." He gives me a few facts,—suspicious persons seen about the track, men on horseback in the distance. One of the Massachusetts guard last night challenged his captain. Captain replied, "Officer of the night." Whereupon, says Stephe, "the recruit let squizzle and jest missed his ear." He then related to me the incident of the railroad station. "The first thing they know’d," says he, "we bit right into the depot and took charge." "I don’t mind," Stephe remarked,—"I don’t mind life, nor yit death; but whenever I see a Massachusetts boy, I stick by him, and if them Secessionists attackt us to-night, or any other time, they’ll get in debt."

His business is, “I make shoes in the winter and fish in the summer.” He shares a few details—suspicious people seen around the tracks, men on horseback in the distance. One of the Massachusetts guards challenged his captain last night. The captain replied, “Officer of the night.” Then, Stephe said, “the recruit fired and just missed his ear.” He then told me about an incident at the railroad station. “The first thing they knew,” he said, “we went right into the depot and took charge.” “I don’t mind,” Stephe remarked, “I don’t mind life or death; but whenever I see a Massachusetts boy, I stick by him, and if those Secessionists attack us tonight or any other time, they’ll be in debt.”

Whistle, again! and the train appears. We are ordered to ship our howitzer on a platform car. The engine pushes us on. This train brings our light baggage and the rear guard.

Whistle again! and the train shows up. We are instructed to load our howitzer onto a flat car. The engine pushes us forward. This train carries our light luggage and the rear guard.

A hundred yards farther on is a delicious fresh spring below the bank. While the train halts, Stephe Morris rushes down to fill my canteen. "This a’n’t like Marblehead," says Stephe, panting up; "but a man that can shin up them rocks can git right over this sand."

A hundred yards ahead is a refreshing spring at the bottom of the bank. As the train stops, Stephe Morris hurries down to fill my canteen. "This isn’t like Marblehead," Stephe says, catching his breath as he climbs back up; "but a guy who can climb up those rocks can get right over this sand."

The train goes slowly on, as a rickety train should. At intervals we see the fresh spots of track just laid by our Yankee friends. Near the sixth mile, we began to overtake hot and uncomfortable squads of our fellows. The unseasonable heat of this most breathless day was too much for many of the younger men, unaccustomed to rough work, and weakened by want of sleep and irregular food in our hurried movements thus far.

The train moves slowly, just like a rickety train tends to do. Every now and then, we spot the fresh sections of track recently laid down by our Yankee friends. Around the sixth mile, we started to catch up with tired and uncomfortable groups of our guys. The unseasonable heat of this sweltering day was overwhelming for many of the younger men, who weren’t used to hard work and were worn out from lack of sleep and irregular meals during our rushed journey so far.

Charles Homans’s private carriage was, however, ready to pick up tired men, hot men, thirsty men, men with corns, or men with blisters. They tumbled into the train in considerable numbers.

Charles Homans's private carriage was, however, ready to pick up exhausted men, sweaty men, thirsty men, men with foot pain, or men with blisters. They piled into the train in large numbers.

An enemy that dared could have made a moderate bag of stragglers at this time. But they would not have been allowed to straggle, if any enemy had been about. By this time we were convinced that no attack was to be expected in this part of the way.

An enemy who dared could have easily picked off a few stragglers at this point. But they wouldn't have been allowed to stray if any enemy had been nearby. By this time, we were sure that we weren't going to face an attack in this area.

The main body of the regiment, under Major Shaler, a tall, soldierly fellow, with a mustache of the fighting color, tramped on their own pins to the watering-place, eight miles or so from Annapolis. There troops and train came to a halt, with the news that a bridge over a country road was broken a mile farther on.

The main part of the regiment, led by Major Shaler, a tall, soldierly guy with a mustache that looked ready for battle, marched on their own feet to the watering spot, about eight miles from Annapolis. There, the troops and their vehicles stopped when they heard that a bridge over a country road was damaged a mile ahead.

It had been distinctly insisted upon, in the usual Southern style, that we were not to be allowed to pass through Maryland, and that we were to be "welcomed to hospitable graves." The broken bridge was a capital spot for a skirmish. Why not look for it here?

It had been clearly stated, in the typical Southern way, that we weren't allowed to go through Maryland, and that we were to be "welcomed to hospitable graves." The broken bridge was a great place for a skirmish. Why not search for it here?

We looked; but got nothing. The rascals could skulk about by night, tear up rails, and hide them where they might be found by a man with half an eye, or half destroy a bridge; but there was no shoot in them. They have not faith enough in their cause to risk their lives for it, even behind a tree or from one of these thickets, choice spots for ambush.

We looked but found nothing. The troublemakers could sneak around at night, pull up rails, and hide them where someone with a little attention could find them, or even damage a bridge; but they didn't have any real fight in them. They lack the conviction in their cause to put their lives on the line for it, even from behind a tree or in one of these thickets, which are perfect spots for an ambush.

So we had no battle there, but a battle of the elements. The volcanic heat of the morning was followed by a furious storm of wind and a smart shower. The regiment wrapped themselves in their blankets and took their wetting with more or less satisfaction. They were receiving samples of all the different little miseries of a campaign.

So we didn’t have a battle there, but a battle with the elements. The scorching heat of the morning was followed by a fierce storm of wind and a heavy downpour. The regiment wrapped themselves in their blankets and endured the rain with varying degrees of satisfaction. They were getting a taste of all the different little hardships of a campaign.

And here let me say a word to my fellow-volunteers, actual and prospective, in all the armies of all the States:—

And here let me say a word to my fellow volunteers, both current and future, in all the armies of all the states:—

A soldier needs, besides his soldierly drill,

A soldier needs, in addition to his military training,

I.Good Feet.
II.A good Stomach.
III.And after these, come the good Head and the good Heart.

But Good Feet are distinctly the first thing. Without them you cannot get to your duty. If a comrade, or a horse, or a locomotive, takes you on its back to the field, you are useless there. And when the field is lost, you cannot retire, run away, and save your bacon.

But good feet are definitely the first priority. Without them, you can’t fulfill your duty. If a comrade, or a horse, or a train, carries you to the field, you’re useless there. And when the field is lost, you can’t retreat, escape, and save yourself.

Good shoes and plenty of walking make good feet. A man who pretends to belong to an infantry company ought always to keep himself in training, so that any moment he can march twenty or thirty miles without feeling a pang or raising a blister. Was this the case with even a decimation of the army who rushed to defend Washington? Were you so trained, my comrades of the Seventh?

Good shoes and a lot of walking keep your feet healthy. A guy who claims to be part of an infantry unit should always stay in shape, so he can march twenty or thirty miles at any time without feeling discomfort or getting blisters. Was this true for even a small portion of the army that rushed to defend Washington? Were you all in shape, my fellow members of the Seventh?

A captain of a company, who will let his men march with such shoes as I have seen on the feet of some poor fellows in this war, ought to be garroted with shoe-strings, or at least compelled to play Pope and wash the feet of the whole army of the Apostles of Liberty.

A captain of a company who allows his men to march in the kind of shoes I've seen on some poor souls in this war should be strangled with shoelaces or at least forced to take on the role of Pope and wash the feet of the entire army of the Apostles of Liberty.

If you find a foot-soldier lying beat out by the roadside, desperate as a sea-sick man, five to one his heels are too high, or his soles too narrow or too thin, or his shoe is not made straight on the inside, so the great toe can spread into its place as he treads.

If you come across a foot soldier collapsed by the side of the road, looking as miserable as someone seasick, chances are his heels are too high, his soles are too narrow or too thin, or his shoe isn’t made right on the inside, preventing his big toe from spreading out properly when he walks.

I am an old walker over Alps across the water, and over Cordilleras, Sierras, Deserts and Prairies at home; I have done my near sixty miles a day without discomfort,—and speaking from large experience, and with painful recollections of the suffering and death I have known for want of good feet on the march, I say to every volunteer:—

I am an experienced hiker who has walked through the Alps, crossed rivers, and traversed mountain ranges, deserts, and prairies at home. I’ve covered almost sixty miles in a day comfortably—and speaking from extensive experience, with vivid memories of the suffering and deaths I’ve witnessed due to poor footwear on the journey, I say to every volunteer:—

Trust in God; BUT KEEP YOUR SHOES EASY!

Trust in God; BUT KEEP YOUR SHOES COMFORTABLE!

THE BRIDGE

When the frenzy of the brief tempest was over, it began to be a question, "What to do about the broken bridge?" The gap was narrow; but even Charles Homans could not promise to leap the "J. H. Nicholson" over it. Who was to be our Julius Cæsar in bridge-building? Who but Sergeant Scott, Armorer of the Regiment, with my fellow-sentry of the morning, Bonnell, as First Assistant?

When the chaos of the short storm had passed, people started asking, "What should we do about the broken bridge?" The gap was small, but even Charles Homans couldn’t guarantee he could jump the "J. H. Nicholson" across it. Who would be our Julius Caesar in rebuilding the bridge? None other than Sergeant Scott, the Armorer of the Regiment, with my fellow sentry from the morning, Bonnell, as the First Assistant.

Scott called for a working party. There were plenty of handy fellows among our Engineers and in the Line. Tools were plenty in the Engineers' chest. We pushed the platform car upon which howitzer No. 1 was mounted down to the gap, and began operations.

Scott called for a work crew. There were plenty of skilled people among our Engineers and in the Line. Tools were abundant in the Engineers' chest. We pushed the platform car with howitzer No. 1 on it down to the gap and started working.

"I wish," says the petit caporal of the Engineer Company, patting his howitzer gently on the back, "that I could get this Putty Blower pointed at the enemy, while you fellows are bridge-building."

"I wish," says the petit caporal of the Engineer Company, patting his howitzer gently on the back, "that I could get this Putty Blower aimed at the enemy, while you guys are building the bridge."

The inefficient destructives of Maryland had only half spoilt the bridge. Some of the old timbers could be used,—and for new ones, there was the forest.

The destructive forces in Maryland had only partially damaged the bridge. Some of the old beams were still usable, and for new ones, there was the forest.

Scott and his party made a good and a quick job of it. Our friends of the Massachusetts Eighth had now come up. They lent a ready hand, as usual. The sun set brilliantly. By twilight there was a practicable bridge. The engine was dispatched back to keep the road open. The two platform cars, freighted with our howitzers, were rigged with the gun-ropes for dragging along the rail. We passed through the files of the Massachusetts men, resting by the way, and eating by the fires of the evening the suppers we had in great part provided them; and so begins our night-march.

Scott and his team completed the task quickly and efficiently. Our friends from the Massachusetts Eighth had just arrived. As always, they were ready to help. The sunset was stunning. By dusk, there was a usable bridge. The engine was sent back to keep the road clear. The two platform cars, loaded with our howitzers, were set up with gun ropes for pulling them along the tracks. We moved past the Massachusetts soldiers, who were resting and eating the dinners we mostly provided them by the evening fires, and thus began our night march.

THE NIGHT-MARCH

O GOTTSCHALK! what a poetic Marche de Nuit we then began to play, with our heels and toes, on the railroad track!

O GOTTSCHALK! What a poetic Marche de Nuit we started to play then, with our heels and toes, on the railroad track!

It was full-moonlight and the night inexpressibly sweet and serene. The air was cool and vivified by the gust and shower of the afternoon. Fresh spring was in every breath. Our fellows had forgotten that this morning they were hot and disgusted. Everyone hugged his rifle as if it were the arm of the Girl of his Heart, and stepped out gayly for the promenade. Tired or foot-sore men, or even lazy ones, could mount upon the two freight-cars we were using for artillery-wagons. There were stout arms enough to tow the whole.

It was a full moon, and the night was incredibly sweet and peaceful. The air was cool and refreshed by the breeze and shower from the afternoon. Every breath felt like fresh spring. Our buddies had completely forgotten that they were hot and annoyed earlier that morning. Everyone held their rifles like they were the arms of their true love, stepping out cheerfully for a stroll. Tired, sore, or even lazy men could hop onto the two freight cars we were using as artillery wagons. There were plenty of strong arms to pull the whole thing.

The scouts went ahead under First Lieutenant Farnham of the Second Company. We were at school together,—I am afraid to say how many years ago. He is just the same cool, dry, shrewd fellow he was as a boy, and a most efficient officer.

The scouts moved forward with First Lieutenant Farnham from the Second Company. We went to school together—I hesitate to mention how many years ago. He’s exactly the same cool, calm, clever guy he was as a kid, and a really effective officer.

It was an original kind of march. I suppose a battery of howitzers never before found itself mounted upon cars, ready to open fire at once and bang away into the offing with shrapnel or into the bushes with canister. Our line extended a half-mile along the track. It was beautiful to stand on the bank above a cutting, and watch the files strike from the shadow of a wood into a broad flame of moonlight, every rifle sparkling up alert as it came forward. A beautiful sight to see the barrels writing themselves upon the dimness, each a silver flash.

It was a unique kind of march. I guess a set of howitzers has never before been loaded onto cars, ready to fire right away and blast into the distance with shrapnel or into the bushes with canister shots. Our line stretched half a mile along the track. It was stunning to stand on the bank above a ravine and watch the troops emerge from the shade of a forest into a wide expanse of moonlight, every rifle shining brightly as it moved forward. It was a beautiful sight to see the barrels carving their shapes into the darkness, each one a silver spark.

By and by, "Halt!" came, repeated along from the front, company after company. "Halt! a rail gone."

By and by, "Stop!" came, echoed along from the front, company after company. "Stop! a rail's gone."

It was found without difficulty. The imbeciles who took it up probably supposed we would not wish to wet our feet by searching for it in the dewy grass of the next field. With incredible doltishness they had also left the chairs and spikes beside the track. Bonnell took hold, and in a few minutes had the rail in place and firm enough to pass the engine. Remember, we were not only hurrying on to succor Washington, but opening the only convenient and practicable route between it and the loyal States.

It was easily found. The fools who picked it up probably thought we wouldn’t want to get our feet wet searching for it in the dewy grass of the next field. With unbelievable stupidity, they also left the chairs and spikes next to the track. Bonnell grabbed hold, and in a few minutes had the rail placed and stable enough for the engine to pass. Remember, we were not only rushing to help Washington, but also opening the only convenient and practical route between it and the loyal States.

A little farther on, we came to a village,—a rare sight in this scantily peopled region. Here Sergeant Keeler, of our company, the tallest man in the regiment, and one of the handiest, suggested that we should tear up the rails at a turn-out by the station, and so be prepared for chances. So "Out crowbars!" was the word. We tore up and bagged half a dozen rails, with chairs and spikes complete. Here too, some of the engineers found a keg of spikes. This was also bagged and loaded on our cars. We fought the chaps with their own weapons, since they would not meet us with ours.

A little further on, we reached a village—a rare sight in this sparsely populated area. Here, Sergeant Keeler from our company, the tallest guy in the regiment and one of the most resourceful, suggested we should pull up the rails at a turnout by the station to prepare for any opportunities. So, "Out with the crowbars!" was the call. We removed and bagged about six rails, with chairs and spikes included. Additionally, some of the engineers discovered a keg of spikes, which we also bagged and loaded onto our cars. We fought them with their own tools since they wouldn’t face us with ours.

These things made delay, and by and by there was a long halt, while the Colonel communicated, by orders sounded along the line, with the engine. Homans’s drag was hard after us, bringing our knapsacks and traps.

These things caused delays, and eventually, there was a long pause while the Colonel communicated with the engine through orders relayed along the line. Homans's drag was struggling to keep up with us, carrying our backpacks and gear.

After I had admired for some time the beauty of our moonlit line, and listened to the orders as they grew or died along the distance, I began to want excitement. Bonnell suggested that he and I should scout up the road and see if any rails were wanting. We traveled along into the quiet night.

After I had appreciated the beauty of our moonlit path for a while and listened to the commands as they faded in the distance, I started to crave some excitement. Bonnell suggested that we scout up the road to check if any rails were missing. We made our way into the calm night.

A mile ahead of the line we suddenly caught the gleam of a rifle-barrel. "Who goes there?" one of our own scouts challenged smartly.

A mile ahead of the line, we suddenly spotted the glint of a rifle barrel. "Who’s there?" one of our scouts called out sharply.

We had arrived at the nick of time. Three rails were up. Two of them were easily found. The third was discovered by beating the bush thoroughly. Bonnell and I ran back for tools, and returned at full trot with crowbar and sledge on our shoulders. There were plenty of willing hands to help,—too many, indeed,—and with the aid of a huge Massachusetts man we soon had the rail in place.

We arrived just in time. Three rails were up. Two of them were easy to find. The third one was found by thoroughly checking the bushes. Bonnell and I ran back for tools and returned quickly with a crowbar and a sledgehammer on our shoulders. There were plenty of people eager to help—maybe too many, in fact—and with the help of a big guy from Massachusetts, we soon had the rail in place.

From this time on we were constantly interrupted. Not a half-mile passed without a rail up. Bonnell was always at the front laying track, and I am proud to say that he accepted me as aide-de-camp. Other fellows, unknown to me in the dark, gave hearty help. The Seventh showed that it could do something else than drill.

From that point on, we were constantly interrupted. Not a half-mile went by without a rail being raised. Bonnell was always at the front laying track, and I’m proud to say that he took me on as his aide. Other guys, who I couldn’t see in the dark, helped out a lot. The Seventh proved that it could do more than just drill.

At one spot, on a high embankment over standing water, the rail was gone, sunk probably. Here we tried our rails brought from the turn-out. They were too short. We supplemented with a length of plank from our stores. We rolled our cars carefully over. They passed safe. But Homans shook his head. He could not venture a locomotive on that frail stuff. So we lost the society of the "J. H. Nicholson." Next day the Massachusetts commander called for someone to dive in the pool for the lost rail. Plump into the water went a little wiry chap and grappled the rail. "When I come up," says the brave fellow afterwards to me, "our officer out with a twenty-dollar gold-piece and wanted me to take it. 'That a’n’t what I come for,' says I. 'Take it,' says he, 'and share with the others.' 'That a’n’t what they come for,' says I. But I took a big cold," the diver continued, "and I’m condemned hoarse yit,"—which was the fact.

At one spot, on a high embankment over standing water, the rail was missing, probably sunk. Here we tried our rails from the turn-out. They were too short. We added a length of plank from our supplies. We carefully rolled our cars over. They made it safely. But Homans shook his head. He couldn’t risk a locomotive on that flimsy stuff. So we lost the company of the "J. H. Nicholson." The next day, the Massachusetts commander called for someone to dive into the pool for the lost rail. A little wiry guy jumped into the water and grabbed the rail. "When I came up," the brave guy later told me, "our officer offered me a twenty-dollar gold coin and wanted me to take it. 'That’s not why I came,' I said. 'Take it,' he said, 'and share with the others.' 'That’s not what they came for,' I replied. But I caught a big cold," the diver continued, "and I’m still hoarse,"—which was true.

Farther on we found a whole length of track torn up, on both sides, sleepers and all, and the same thing repeated with alternations of breaks of single rails. Our howitzer-ropes came into play to hoist and haul. We were not going to be stopped.

Further along, we found a long stretch of track completely torn up, with sleepers and everything gone, and the same situation occurred with intermittent breaks of individual rails. We put our howitzer ropes to work to lift and pull. We weren't going to let anything stop us.

But it was becoming a Noche Triste to some of our comrades. We had now marched some sixteen miles. The distance was trifling. But the men had been on their legs pretty much all day and night. Hardly anyone had had any full or substantial sleep or meal since we started from New York. They napped off, standing, leaning on their guns, dropping down in their tracks on the wet ground, at every halt. They were sleepy, but plucky. As we passed through deep cuttings, places, as it were, built for defense, there was a general desire that the tedium of the night should be relieved by a shindy.

But it was turning into a Noche Triste for some of our comrades. We had already marched about sixteen miles. The distance wasn't much. But the men had been on their feet pretty much all day and night. Hardly anyone had gotten a decent sleep or meal since we left New York. They were dozing off while standing, leaning on their guns, or collapsing in their tracks on the wet ground at every stop. They were tired but determined. As we went through deep cuttings, places seemingly built for defense, there was a collective wish that the boredom of the night should be broken by some excitement.

During the whole night I saw our officers moving about the line, doing their duty vigorously, despite exhaustion, hunger and sleeplessness.

During the whole night, I saw our officers moving along the line, doing their jobs energetically despite being exhausted, hungry, and sleep-deprived.

About midnight our friends of the Eighth had joined us, and our whole little army struggled on together. I find that I have been rather understating the troubles of the march. It seems impossible that such difficulty could be encountered within twenty miles of the capital of our nation. But we were making a rush to put ourselves in that capital, and we could not proceed in the slow, systematic way of an advancing army. We must take the risk and stand the suffering, whatever it was. So the Seventh Regiment went through its bloodless Noche Triste.

About midnight, our friends from the Eighth joined us, and our whole little army trudged on together. I realize I’ve been downplaying the challenges of the march. It seems unbelievable that we faced such difficulties just twenty miles from our nation's capital. But we were rushing to reach that capital, and we couldn’t advance in the leisurely, organized manner of a proper army. We had to take the risk and endure the hardship, no matter what. So, the Seventh Regiment went through its bloodless Noche Triste.

MORNING

At last we issued from the damp woods, two miles below the railroad junction. Here was an extensive farm. Our vanguard had halted and borrowed a few rails to make fires. These were, of course, carefully paid for at their proprietor’s own price. The fires were bright in the gray dawn. About them the whole regiment was now halted. The men tumbled down to catch forty winks. Some, who were hungrier for food than sleep, went off foraging among the farm-houses. They returned with appetizing legends of hot breakfast in hospitable abodes, or scanty fare given grudgingly in hostile ones. All meals, however, were paid for.

At last, we emerged from the damp woods, two miles below the railroad junction. Here was a large farm. Our advance party had stopped and borrowed a few rails to make fires. These were, of course, carefully paid for at the owner’s price. The fires looked bright in the gray dawn. The whole regiment was now gathered around them. The men settled down to catch some sleep. Some, who were hungrier for food than for rest, went off searching through the farmhouses. They returned with enticing tales of a hot breakfast in friendly homes, or meager meals given reluctantly in hostile ones. All meals, however, were paid for.

Here, as at other halts below, the country-people came up to talk to us. The traitors could easily be distinguished by their insolence disguised as obsequiousness. The loyal men were still timid, but more hopeful at last. All were very lavish with the monosyllable, Sir. It was an odd coincidence, that the vanguard, halting off at a farm in the morning, found it deserted for the moment by its tenants, and protected only by an engraved portrait of our (former) Colonel Duryea, serenely smiling over the mantel-piece.

Here, like at other stops before, the locals came up to chat with us. The traitors stood out easily, hiding their arrogance under a false guise of humility. The loyal folks were still hesitant, but finally a bit more hopeful. Everyone was very generous with the word "Sir." It was a strange coincidence that the vanguard, stopping at a farm in the morning, found it temporarily empty of its owners, with only an engraved portrait of our (former) Colonel Duryea, smiling serenely over the mantelpiece, to protect it.

From this point, the railroad was pretty much all gone. But we were warmed and refreshed by a nap and a bite, and besides had daylight and open country.

From this point, the railroad was basically non-existent. But we felt recharged from a nap and a snack, and we also had daylight and wide-open spaces.

We put our guns on their own wheels, all dropped into ranks as if on parade, and marched the last two miles to the station. We still had no certain information. Until we actually saw the train awaiting us, and the Washington companies, who had come down to escort us, drawn up, we did not know whether our Uncle Sam was still a resident of the capital.

We set our guns on their wheels, all lined up like we were on parade, and marched the last two miles to the station. We still didn’t have any solid information. Until we actually saw the train waiting for us, along with the Washington companies that had come down to escort us, we didn’t know if Uncle Sam was still living in the capital.

We packed into the train, and rolled away to Washington.

We got on the train and headed off to Washington.

WASHINGTON

We marched up to the White House, showed ourselves to the President, made our bow to him as our host, and then marched up to the Capitol, our grand lodgings.

We marched up to the White House, introduced ourselves to the President, greeted him as our host, and then marched over to the Capitol, our grand accommodations.

There we are now, quartered in the Representatives’ Chamber.

There we are now, stationed in the Representatives’ Chamber.

And here I must hastily end this first sketch of the Great Defense. May it continue to be as firm and faithful as it is this day!

And here I must quickly wrap up this first draft of the Great Defense. May it remain as strong and steadfast as it is today!

I have scribbled my story with a thousand men stirring about me. If any of my sentences miss their aim, accuse my comrades and the bewilderment of this martial crowd. For here are four or five thousand others on the same business as ourselves, and drums are beating, guns are clanking, companies are tramping, all the while. Our friends of the Eighth Massachusetts are quartered under the dome, and cheer us whenever we pass.

I’ve written my story with a thousand men moving around me. If any of my sentences miss their mark, blame my comrades and the chaos of this military crowd. Because here are four or five thousand others doing the same thing as us, and drums are beating, guns are clanking, and troops are marching all the while. Our friends from the Eighth Massachusetts are stationed under the dome, cheering us on whenever we walk by.

Desks marked John Covode, John Cochran, and Anson Burlingame have allowed me to use them as I wrote.

Desks labeled John Covode, John Cochran, and Anson Burlingame have let me use them while I wrote.

CALVIN

A STUDY OF CHARACTER

CHARLES DUDLEY WARNER

CALVIN is dead. His life, long to him, but short for the rest of us, was not marked by startling adventures, but his character was so uncommon and his qualities were so worthy of imitation, that I have been asked by those who personally knew him to set down my recollections of his career.

CALVIN is dead. His life felt long to him, but short to the rest of us. It wasn’t filled with extraordinary adventures, but his character was so rare and his qualities so admirable that those who knew him personally have requested me to record my memories of his life.

His origin and ancestry were shrouded in mystery; even his age was a matter of pure conjecture. Although he was of the Maltese race, I have reason to suppose that he was American by birth as he certainly was in sympathy. Calvin was given to me eight years ago by Mrs. Stowe, but she knew nothing of his age or origin. He walked into her house one day out of the great unknown and became at once at home, as if he had been always a friend of the family. He appeared to have artistic and literary tastes, and it was as if he had inquired at the door if that was the residence of the author of Uncle Tom’s Cabin, and, upon being assured that it was, had decided to dwell there. This is, of course, fanciful, for his antecedents were wholly unknown, but in his time he could hardly have been in any household where he would not have heard Uncle Tom’s Cabin talked about. When he came to Mrs. Stowe, he was as large as he ever was, and apparently as old as he ever became. Yet there was in him no appearance of age; he was in the happy maturity of all his powers, and you would rather have said that in that maturity he had found the secret of perpetual youth. And it was as difficult to believe that he would ever be aged as it was to imagine that he had ever been in immature youth. There was in him a mysterious perpetuity.

His background and family history were a mystery; even his age was purely speculative. Although he was Maltese, I suspect that he was American by birth since he definitely seemed to relate more to America. Calvin was given to me eight years ago by Mrs. Stowe, but she didn’t know anything about his age or background. He came into her house one day out of nowhere and immediately felt at home, as if he had always been part of the family. He seemed to have artistic and literary interests, and it was almost as if he had asked at the door if this was the home of the author of Uncle Tom’s Cabin, and upon learning it was, decided to stay. Of course, this is a bit fanciful, as his background was entirely unknown, but during his time, he could hardly have been in any household where Uncle Tom’s Cabin wasn’t discussed. When he arrived at Mrs. Stowe's, he was as big as he ever got and looked as old as he ever would be. Yet there was nothing about him that seemed old; he was in the prime of his life and you would have thought that, in that prime, he had discovered the secret to eternal youth. It was just as hard to believe that he would ever become old as it was to imagine he had ever been a youthful kid. There was something mysteriously timeless about him.

After some years, when Mrs. Stowe made her winter home in Florida, Calvin came to live with us. From the first moment, he fell into the ways of the house and assumed a recognized position in the family,—I say recognized, because after he became known he was always inquired for by visitors, and in the letters to the other members of the family he always received a message. Although the least obtrusive of beings, his individuality always made itself felt.

After a few years, when Mrs. Stowe decided to spend her winters in Florida, Calvin came to live with us. From the very beginning, he adapted to our home life and earned a place in the family— I mention “earned” because once he was known, visitors always asked about him, and the other family members always included him in their letters. Even though he was the least intrusive person, his personality was always noticeable.

His personal appearance had much to do with this, for he was of royal mould, and had an air of high breeding. He was large, but he had nothing of the fat grossness of the celebrated Angora family; though powerful, he was exquisitely proportioned, and as graceful in every movement as a young leopard. When he stood up to open a door—he opened all the doors with old-fashioned latches—he was portentously tall, and when stretched on the rug before the fire he seemed too long for this world—as indeed he was. His coat was the finest and softest I have ever seen, a shade of quiet Maltese; and from his throat downward, underneath, to the white tips of his feet, he wore the whitest and most delicate ermine; and no person was ever more fastidiously neat. In his finely formed head you saw something of his aristocratic character; the ears were small and cleanly cut, there was a tinge of pink in the nostrils, his face was handsome, and the expression of his countenance exceedingly intelligent—I should call it even a sweet expression if the term were not inconsistent with his look of alertness and sagacity.

His personal appearance played a big role in this, as he looked regal and had an air of sophistication. He was large but didn't have the heavy bulk of the well-known Angora breed; instead, he was powerfully built and perfectly proportioned, moving with the grace of a young leopard. When he stood to open a door—he used the old-fashioned latches—he towered impressively, and when he lay down on the rug by the fire, he seemed almost too long for this world—as indeed he was. His coat was the finest and softest I’ve ever seen, a subtle shade of Maltese; from his throat down to the tips of his white paws, he sported the cleanest and most delicate ermine; no one was ever more meticulously neat. In his elegantly shaped head, you could see hints of his noble character; his ears were small and well-defined, there was a hint of pink in his nostrils, his face was attractive, and his expression was remarkably intelligent—I would even call it sweet if that didn’t contradict his alert and wise demeanor.

It is difficult to convey a just idea of his gayety in connection with his dignity and gravity, which his name expressed. As we know nothing of his family, of course it will be understood that Calvin was his Christian name. He had times of relaxation into utter playfulness, delighting in a ball of yarn, catching sportively at stray ribbons when his mistress was at her toilet, and pursuing his own tail, with hilarity, for lack of anything better. He could amuse himself by the hour, and he did not care for children; perhaps something in his past was present to his memory. He had absolutely no bad habits, and his disposition was perfect. I never saw him exactly angry, though I have seen his tail grow to an enormous size when a strange cat appeared upon his lawn. He disliked cats, evidently regarding them as feline and treacherous, and he had no association with them. Occasionally there would be heard a night concert in the shrubbery. Calvin would ask to have the door opened, and then you would hear a rush and a "pestzt," and the concert would explode, and Calvin would quietly come in and resume his seat on the hearth. There was no trace of anger in his manner, but he wouldn’t have any of that about the house. He had the rare virtue of magnanimity. Although he had fixed notions about his own rights, and extraordinary persistency in getting them, he never showed temper at a repulse; he simply and firmly persisted till he had what he wanted. His diet was one point; his idea was that of the scholars about dictionaries,—to "get the best." He knew as well as anyone what was in the house, and would refuse beef if turkey was to be had; and if there were oysters, he would wait over the turkey to see if the oysters would not be forthcoming. And yet he was not a gross gourmand; he would eat bread if he saw me eating it, and thought he was not being imposed on. His habits of feeding, also, were refined; he never used a knife, and he would put up his hand and draw the fork down to his mouth as gracefully as a grown person. Unless necessity compelled, he would not eat in the kitchen, but insisted upon his meals in the dining-room, and would wait patiently, unless a stranger were present; and then he was sure to importune the visitor, hoping that the latter was ignorant of the rule of the house, and would give him something. They used to say that he preferred as his table-cloth on the floor a certain well-known church journal; but this was said by an Episcopalian. So far as I know, he had no religious prejudices, except that he did not like the association with Romanists. He tolerated the servants, because they belonged to the house, and would sometimes linger by the kitchen stove; but the moment visitors came in he arose, opened the door, and marched into the drawing-room. Yet he enjoyed the company of his equals, and never withdrew, no matter how many callers—whom he recognized as of his society—might come into the drawing-room. Calvin was fond of company, but he wanted to choose it; and I have no doubt that his was an aristocratic fastidiousness rather than one of faith. It is so with most people.

It's hard to describe how joyful he was while maintaining his dignity and seriousness, which his name represented. Since we know nothing about his family, it's clear that Calvin was his first name. He had moments of complete playfulness, enjoying a ball of yarn, playfully swatting at stray ribbons when his owner was getting ready, and cheerfully chasing his own tail out of boredom. He could entertain himself for hours and didn't care for kids; maybe something from his past lingered in his mind. He had no bad habits and a perfect temperament. I never saw him truly angry, though I did see his tail puff up to an enormous size when a strange cat entered his territory. He clearly disliked cats, viewing them as sneaky and untrustworthy, and kept his distance from them. Occasionally, you'd hear a midnight concert from the bushes. Calvin would ask for the door to be opened, and you'd hear a rush followed by a "pestzt," and the concert would erupt, after which Calvin would calmly stroll back in and settle down on the hearth. There was no sign of anger in his behavior, but he wouldn't tolerate that kind of thing in his home. He had the rare quality of being generous. While he had strong opinions about his own rights and was remarkably persistent in claiming them, he never lost his temper when faced with denial; he simply and firmly held on until he got what he wanted. His eating habits were important; he believed in getting the best, much like scholars do about dictionaries. He knew exactly what food was available at home and would refuse beef if turkey was on offer; if there were oysters, he’d wait through the turkey to see if the oysters would come out. Still, he wasn't a glutton; he would eat bread if he saw me eating it, thinking he wasn't being tricked. His eating style was also refined; he never used a knife and would expertly bring the fork to his mouth with the grace of an adult. Unless absolutely necessary, he wouldn’t eat in the kitchen, insisting on dining in the dining room, and he’d wait patiently unless strangers were present; then he would beg the guests, hoping they didn't know the house rules and would give him something. People used to say he preferred a well-known church magazine as his makeshift tablecloth on the floor, but that was said by someone from the Episcopal Church. As far as I know, he didn’t have any religious biases, except for not wanting to be associated with Catholics. He tolerated the servants since they were part of the household and sometimes hung around the kitchen stove; but as soon as visitors arrived, he'd get up, open the door, and march into the living room. He enjoyed the company of his peers and never left, no matter how many guests—whom he considered his equals—entered the drawing room. Calvin liked being around others, but he wanted to choose who that was; I’m sure his preferences were more about class than beliefs. That’s true for most people.

The intelligence of Calvin was something phenomenal, in his rank of life. He established a method of communicating his wants, and even some of his sentiments; and he could help himself in many things. There was a furnace register in a retired room, where he used to go when he wished to be alone, that he always opened when he desired more heat; but never shut it, any more than he shut the door after himself. He could do almost everything but speak; and you would declare sometimes that you could see a pathetic longing to do that in his intelligent face. I have no desire to overdraw his qualities, but if there was one thing in him more noticeable than another, it was his fondness for nature. He could content himself for hours at a low window, looking into the ravine and at the great trees, noting the smallest stir there; he delighted, above all things, to accompany me walking about the garden, hearing the birds, getting the smell of the fresh earth, and rejoicing in the sunshine. He followed me and gamboled like a dog, rolling over on the turf and exhibiting his delight in a hundred ways. If I worked, he sat and watched me, or looked off over the bank, and kept his ear open to the twitter in the cherry-trees. When it stormed, he was sure to sit at the window, keenly watching the rain or the snow, glancing up and down at its falling; and a winter tempest always delighted him. I think he was genuinely fond of birds, but, so far as I know, he usually confined himself to one a day; he never killed, as some sportsmen do, for the sake of killing, but only as civilized people do,—from necessity. He was intimate with the flying-squirrels who dwell in the chestnut-trees,—too intimate, for almost every day in the summer he would bring in one, until he nearly discouraged them. He was, indeed, a superb hunter, and would have been a devastating one, if his bump of destructiveness had not been offset by a bump of moderation. There was very little of the brutality of the lower animals about him; I don’t think he enjoyed rats for themselves, but he knew his business, and for the first few months of his residence with us he waged an awful campaign against the horde, and after that his simple presence was sufficient to deter them from coming on the premises. Mice amused him, but he usually considered them too small game to be taken seriously; I have seen him play for an hour with a mouse, and then let him go with a royal condescension. In this whole matter of "getting a living," Calvin was a great contrast to the rapacity of the age in which he lived.

Calvin's intelligence was truly remarkable for his position in life. He developed a way to express his needs and even some of his feelings, and he could manage many things on his own. There was a furnace register in a secluded room where he would go when he wanted to be alone; he always opened it when he wanted more heat, but never closed it, just like he never shut the door behind him. He could do almost everything except speak, and sometimes you could see a deep desire to communicate in his expressive face. I don’t want to exaggerate his qualities, but one thing that stood out was his love for nature. He could happily sit for hours at a low window, gazing into the ravine and at the tall trees, noticing even the slightest movement. He especially loved to walk with me in the garden, listening to the birds, smelling the fresh earth, and enjoying the sunshine. He followed me like a dog, bounding around in excitement, rolling on the grass, and showing his joy in a hundred different ways. When I worked, he sat and watched me or looked out over the bank, listening to the chatter in the cherry trees. During storms, he always sat at the window, intently watching the rain or snow, glancing up and down at it as it fell; a winter storm always thrilled him. I think he genuinely liked birds, but as far as I know, he usually only took one a day; he never killed just for the sake of it like some hunters do, but only out of necessity, like civilized people. He was close to the flying squirrels in the chestnut trees—too close, actually, because during summer he would bring one in almost every day, which nearly scared them away. He was indeed a fantastic hunter and would have been a devastating one if his tendency to destroy hadn’t been balanced by a sense of moderation. There was very little of the brutality of lower animals in him; I don’t think he had any interest in rats just for themselves, but he knew what he was doing, and during the first few months he lived with us, he launched an intense campaign against the rats, after which just his presence was enough to keep them away. Mice amused him, but he usually thought of them as too small to take seriously; I’ve seen him play with a mouse for an hour and then let it go with a sense of princely grace. In this whole matter of "earning a living," Calvin stood in stark contrast to the greediness of his time.

I hesitate a little to speak of his capacity for friendship and the affectionateness of his nature, for I know from his own reserve that he would not care to have it much talked about. We understood each other perfectly, but we never made any fuss about it; when I spoke his name and snapped my fingers, he came to me; when I returned home at night, he was pretty sure to be waiting for me near the gate, and would rise and saunter along the walk, as if his being there were purely accidental,—so shy was he commonly of showing feeling; and when I opened the door he never rushed in, like a cat, but loitered, and lounged, as if he had had no intention of going in, but would condescend to. And yet, the fact was, he knew dinner was ready, and he was bound to be there. He kept the run of dinnertime. It happened sometimes, during our absence in the summer, that dinner would be early, and Calvin, walking about the grounds, missed it and came in late. But he never made a mistake the second day. There was one thing he never did,—he never rushed through an open doorway. He never forgot his dignity. If he had asked to have the door opened, and was eager to go out, he always went deliberately; I can see him now, standing on the sill, looking about at the sky as if he was thinking whether it were worth while to take an umbrella, until he was near having his tail shut in.

I hesitate a bit to talk about his ability to be a friend and his affectionate nature because I know from his own reserved personality that he wouldn’t want too much discussion about it. We understood each other perfectly, but we never made a big deal out of it; when I called his name and snapped my fingers, he would come to me. When I got home at night, he was usually waiting for me by the gate and would get up and stroll along the path, as if his presence was totally coincidental—he was so shy about showing his feelings. When I opened the door, he never rushed in like a cat would, but lingered and lounged around as if he hadn't really intended to go inside but would graciously allow himself to. The truth was, he knew dinner was ready, and he was expected to be there. He always kept track of dinnertime. Sometimes, during our time away in the summer, dinner would be earlier, and Calvin would wander the grounds and miss it, coming in late. But he never made that mistake twice. There was one thing he never did—he never rushed through an open doorway. He always remembered his dignity. If he had asked for the door to be opened and was eager to go out, he always took his time; I can picture him now, standing on the threshold, looking up at the sky as if he was debating whether it was worth grabbing an umbrella until he nearly got his tail caught in the door.

His friendship was rather constant than demonstrative. When we returned from an absence of nearly two years, Calvin welcomed us with evident pleasure, but showed his satisfaction rather by tranquil happiness than by fuming about. He had the faculty of making us glad to get home. It was his constancy that was so attractive. He liked companionship, but he wouldn’t be petted, or fussed over, or sit in anyone’s lap a moment; he always extricated himself from such familiarity with dignity and with no show of temper. If there was any petting to be done, however, he chose to do it. Often he would sit looking at me, and then, moved by a delicate affection, come and pull at my coat and sleeve until he could touch my face with his nose, and then go away contented. He had a habit of coming to my study in the morning, sitting quietly by my side or on the table for hours, watching the pen run over the paper, occasionally swinging his tail round for a blotter, and then going to sleep among the papers by the inkstand. Or, more rarely, he would watch the writing from a perch on my shoulder. Writing always interested him, and, until he understood it, he wanted to hold the pen.

His friendship was more about being steady than showing off. When we came back after almost two years, Calvin greeted us with clear happiness, but he expressed his joy through calm contentment rather than bouncing around. He had a way of making us happy to be home. It was his reliability that was so appealing. He enjoyed being around others, but he wouldn’t let himself be spoiled, fussed over, or sit in anyone’s lap for even a moment; he always freed himself from such closeness with grace and without any sign of annoyance. If there was any cuddling to be done, however, he chose to initiate it. Often, he would sit there looking at me, and then, touched by a gentle affection, come over and tug at my coat and sleeve until he could nuzzle my face with his nose, and then walk away satisfied. He had a habit of coming into my study in the morning, sitting quietly beside me or on the table for hours, watching as the pen moved across the paper, occasionally swaying his tail to act as a blotter, and then curling up to sleep among the papers by the inkstand. Or, more rarely, he would observe the writing from a spot on my shoulder. Writing always caught his interest, and until he understood it, he wanted to hold the pen.

He always held himself in a kind of reserve with his friend, as if he had said, "Let us respect our personality, and not make a 'mess' of friendship." He saw, with Emerson, the risk of degrading it to trivial conveniency. "Why insist on rash personal relations with your friend?" "Leave this touching and clawing." Yet I would not give an unfair notion of his aloofness, his fine sense of the sacredness of the me and the not-me. And, at the risk of not being believed, I will relate an incident, which was often repeated. Calvin had the practice of passing a portion of the night in the contemplation of its beauties, and would come into our chamber over the roof of the conservatory through the open window, summer and winter, and go to sleep on the foot of my bed. He would do this always exactly in this way; he never was content to stay in the chamber if we compelled him to go upstairs and through the door. He had the obstinacy of General Grant. But this is by the way. In the morning, he performed his toilet and went down to breakfast with the rest of the family. Now, when the mistress was absent from home, and at no other time, Calvin would come in the morning, when the bell rang, to the head of the bed, put up his feet and look into my face, follow me about when I rose, "assist" at the dressing, and in many purring ways show his fondness, as if he had plainly said, "I know that she has gone away, but I am here." Such was Calvin in rare moments.

He always kept a bit of distance with his friend, as if he was saying, "Let's respect our individuality and not mess up our friendship." He, like Emerson, recognized the danger of reducing it to something trivial. "Why push for intense personal connections with your friend?" "Leave all that touching and clawing behind." Still, I don’t want to give the wrong impression about his detachment; he had a deep appreciation for the importance of self and others. Despite the risk of being doubted, I’ll share a story that often happened. Calvin had a habit of spending part of the night enjoying its beauty, and would come into our room over the roof of the conservatory through the open window, both summer and winter, and fall asleep at the foot of my bed. He always did it this way; he never liked to stay in the room if we made him go upstairs and through the door. He had the stubbornness of General Grant. But that’s beside the point. In the morning, he would get ready and head down for breakfast with the rest of the family. Now, when the lady of the house was away, and only then, Calvin would come in the morning, when the bell rang, to the head of the bed, put his feet up and look at me, follow me around when I got up, "help" with the dressing, and in many soft and purring ways show his affection, as if to clearly say, "I know she’s gone, but I’m here." That was Calvin in those rare moments.

He had his limitations. Whatever passion he had for nature, he had no conception of art. There was sent to him once a fine and very expressive cat’s head in bronze, by Frémiet. I placed it on the floor. He regarded it intently, approached it cautiously and crouchingly, touched it with his nose, perceived the fraud, turned away abruptly, and never would notice it afterward. On the whole, his life was not only a successful one, but a happy one. He never had but one fear, so far as I know: he had a mortal and a reasonable terror of plumbers. He would never stay in the house when they were here. No coaxing could quiet him. Of course he didn’t share our fear about their charges, but he must have had some dreadful experience with them in that portion of his life which is unknown to us. A plumber was to him the devil, and I have no doubt that, in his scheme, plumbers were foreordained to do him mischief.

He had his limits. No matter how much he loved nature, he didn’t get art at all. Once, someone sent him a beautiful and very expressive bronze cat’s head by Frémiet. I set it on the floor. He stared at it closely, moved toward it slowly and cautiously, touched it with his nose, realized it was fake, turned away abruptly, and never acknowledged it again. Overall, his life was not just successful but also happy. He only had one fear, as far as I know: he was deathly afraid of plumbers. He wouldn’t stay in the house when they were around. No amount of coaxing could calm him down. Of course, he didn’t share our concern about their fees, but he must have had some terrible experience with them back in that part of his life we don’t know about. To him, a plumber was like the devil, and I have no doubt that, in his mind, plumbers were meant to do him harm.

In speaking of his worth, it has never occurred to me to estimate Calvin by the worldly standard. I know that it is customary now, when anyone dies, to ask how much he was worth, and that no obituary in the newspapers is considered complete without such an estimate. The plumbers in our house were one day overheard to say that, "They say that she says that he says that he wouldn’t take a hundred dollars for him." It is unnecessary to say that I never made such a remark, and that, so far as Calvin was concerned, there was no purchase in money.

When talking about his value, it never crossed my mind to judge Calvin by material standards. I know it's common these days to wonder how much someone was worth when they pass away, and no obituary is seen as complete without that kind of assessment. The plumbers in our building were once heard saying, "They say that she says that he says that he wouldn't take a hundred dollars for him." It's not worth mentioning that I never said anything like that, and when it came to Calvin, he couldn't be bought with money.

As I look back upon it, Calvin’s life seems to me a fortunate one, for it was natural and unforced. He ate when he was hungry, slept when he was sleepy, and enjoyed existence to the very tips of his toes and the end of his expressive and slow-moving tail. He delighted to roam about the garden, and stroll among the trees, and to lie on the green grass and luxuriate in all the sweet influences of summer. You could never accuse him of idleness, and yet he knew the secret of repose. The poet who wrote so prettily of him that his little life was rounded with a sleep, understated his felicity; it was rounded with a good many. His conscience never seemed to interfere with his slumbers. In fact, he had good habits and a contented mind. I can see him now walk in at the study door, sit down by my chair, bring his tail artistically about his feet, and look up at me with unspeakable happiness in his handsome face. I often thought that he felt the dumb limitation which denied him the power of language. But since he was denied speech, he scorned the inarticulate mouthings of the lower animals. The vulgar mewing and yowling of the cat species was beneath him; he sometimes uttered a sort of articulate and well-bred ejaculation, when he wished to call attention to something that he considered remarkable, or to some want of his, but he never went whining about. He would sit for hours at a closed window, when he desired to enter, without a murmur, and when it was opened he never admitted that he had been impatient by "bolting" in. Though speech he had not, and the unpleasant kind of utterance given to his race he would not use, he had a mighty power of purr to express his measureless content with congenial society. There was in him a musical organ with stops of varied power and expression, upon which I have no doubt he could have performed Scarlatti’s celebrated cat’s-fugue.

As I look back, Calvin's life seems like a lucky one because it was natural and effortless. He ate when he was hungry, slept when he was tired, and enjoyed life to the fullest, right down to his expressive and slow-moving tail. He loved wandering around the garden, strolling among the trees, and lying on the green grass, soaking up all the sweet vibes of summer. You could never call him lazy, yet he knew how to relax. The poet who charmingly described his little life as being completed with a sleep understated his happiness; it was actually wrapped in a lot of them. His conscience never seemed to disrupt his naps. In fact, he had good habits and a content mind. I can still picture him walking in through the study door, sitting by my chair, wrapping his tail around his feet elegantly, and looking up at me with pure joy on his handsome face. I often thought he sensed the frustrating limitation of not being able to speak. But since he couldn't talk, he looked down on the inarticulate sounds of lesser animals. The crude meowing and yowling of cats were beneath him; he sometimes let out a sort of refined and articulate sound when he wanted to draw attention to something he found remarkable or to express a need, but he never whined. He would sit for hours by a closed window when he wanted to come inside, without a peep, and when it was opened, he never acted impatient by rushing in. Even though he couldn't speak, and he wouldn’t use the unpleasant noises typical of his kind, he had an incredible purr to express his immense satisfaction with good company. He had a musical ability with varying power and expression, and I have no doubt he could have played Scarlatti’s famous cat’s fugue.

Whether Calvin died of old age, or was carried off by one of the diseases incident to youth, it is impossible to say; for his departure was as quiet as his advent was mysterious. I only know that he appeared to us in this world in his perfect stature and beauty, and that after a time, like Lohengrin, he withdrew. In his illness there was nothing more to be regretted than in all his blameless life. I suppose there never was an illness that had more of dignity and sweetness and resignation in it. It came on gradually, in a kind of listlessness and want of appetite. An alarming symptom was his preference for the warmth of a furnace-register to the lively sparkle of the open wood-fire. Whatever pain he suffered, he bore it in silence, and seemed only anxious not to obtrude his malady. We tempted him with the delicacies of the season, but it soon became impossible for him to eat, and for two weeks he ate or drank scarcely anything. Sometimes he made an effort to take something, but it was evident that he made the effort to please us. The neighbors—and I am convinced that the advice of neighbors is never good for anything—suggested catnip. He wouldn’t even smell it. We had the attendance of an amateur practitioner of medicine, whose real office was the cure of souls, but nothing touched his case. He took what was offered, but it was with the air of one to whom the time for pellets was passed. He sat or lay day after day almost motionless, never once making a display of those vulgar convulsions or contortions of pain which are so disagreeable to society. His favorite place was on the brightest spot of a Smyrna rug by the conservatory, where the sunlight fell and he could hear the fountain play. If we went to him and exhibited our interest in his condition, he always purred in recognition of our sympathy. And when I spoke his name, he looked up with an expression that said, "I understand it, old fellow, but it’s no use." He was to all who came to visit him a model of calmness and patience in affliction.

Whether Calvin died of old age or was taken by one of the diseases common in youth, it's hard to say; his passing was as quiet as his arrival was mysterious. All I know is that he came to us in perfect stature and beauty, and after a while, like Lohengrin, he withdrew. In his illness, there was nothing more to regret than in all his innocent life. I suppose there has never been an illness that was more dignified, sweet, and accepting. It came on gradually, with a kind of laziness and loss of appetite. A worrying sign was his preference for the warmth of a furnace register over the lively glow of an open fire. Whatever pain he felt, he endured in silence, seeming only concerned about not burdening us with his suffering. We tempted him with seasonal treats, but soon it became impossible for him to eat, and for two weeks, he hardly consumed anything. Sometimes he made an effort to eat something, but it was clear he was only trying to please us. The neighbors—and I'm convinced their advice is never good for anything—suggested catnip. He wouldn’t even sniff it. We had the help of an amateur doctor, whose true role was more about healing souls, but nothing seemed to help him. He accepted what was offered but did so with the air of someone for whom the time for medicine had passed. He sat or lay day after day almost motionless, never once showing those vulgar convulsions or grimaces of pain that society finds so unpleasant. His favorite spot was on the brightest part of a Smyrna rug by the conservatory, where the sunlight shone, and he could hear the fountain. If we approached him and showed our concern for his condition, he always purred in acknowledgment of our sympathy. And when I said his name, he looked up with an expression that seemed to say, "I get it, old friend, but it’s no use." To everyone who came to visit him, he was a model of calmness and patience in suffering.

I was absent from home at the last, but heard by daily postal-card of his failing condition; and never again saw him alive. One sunny morning, he rose from his rug, went into the conservatory (he was very thin then), walked around it deliberately, looking at all the plants he knew, and then went to the bay-window in the dining-room, and stood a long time looking out upon the little field, now brown and sere, and toward the garden, where perhaps the happiest hours of his life had been spent. It was a last look. He turned and walked away, laid himself down upon the bright spot in the rug, and quietly died.

I wasn't home at the end, but I received daily postcards about his declining health; I never saw him alive again. One sunny morning, he got up from his rug, went into the conservatory (he was very thin by then), walked around it slowly, checking out all the plants he recognized, and then went to the bay window in the dining room. He stood there for a long time staring out at the little field, now brown and dried up, and toward the garden, where he had spent perhaps the happiest moments of his life. It was a final look. He turned and walked away, laid down in the sunny spot on the rug, and quietly passed away.

It is not too much to say that a little shock went through the neighborhood when it was known that Calvin was dead, so marked was his individuality; and his friends, one after another, came in to see him. There was no sentimental nonsense about his obsequies; it was felt that any parade would have been distasteful to him. John, who acted as undertaker, prepared a candle-box for him, and I believe assumed a professional decorum; but there may have been the usual levity underneath, for I heard that he remarked in the kitchen that it was the "dryest wake he ever attended." Everybody, however, felt a fondness for Calvin, and regarded him with a certain respect. Between him and Bertha there existed a great friendship, and she apprehended his nature; she used to say that sometimes she was afraid of him, he looked at her so intelligently; she was never certain that he was what he appeared to be.

It’s safe to say that the neighborhood was shocked when news broke about Calvin’s death; his unique personality was so strong. His friends came by one after another to pay their respects. There was no sentimental nonsense at his funeral; everyone agreed that any showiness would have annoyed him. John, who took on the role of the undertaker, prepared a simple wooden box for him and probably put on a serious demeanor, but there might have been some usual joking underneath, as I heard him say in the kitchen that it was the "most boring wake he ever went to." Still, everyone had a fondness for Calvin and treated him with a certain level of respect. He and Bertha shared a deep friendship, and she understood him well; she used to say that sometimes she felt uneasy around him because of how intently he looked at her; she was never completely sure he was who he seemed to be.

When I returned, they had laid Calvin on a table in an upper chamber by an open window. It was February. He reposed in a candle-box, lined about the edge with evergreen, and at his head stood a little wine-glass with flowers. He lay with his head tucked down in his arms,—a favorite position of his before the fire,—as if asleep in the comfort of his soft and exquisite fur. It was the involuntary exclamation of those who saw him, "How natural he looks!" As for myself, I said nothing. John buried him under the twin hawthorn-trees,—one white and the other pink,—in a spot where Calvin was fond of lying and listening to the hum of summer insects and the twitter of birds.

When I got back, they had placed Calvin on a table in an upper room near an open window. It was February. He rested in a candle box, surrounded by evergreen, and at his head was a small wine glass filled with flowers. He was curled up with his head tucked into his arms—a position he loved when lounging by the fire—as if he were peacefully asleep in the warmth of his soft, beautiful fur. Those who saw him couldn't help but exclaim, "He looks so natural!" As for me, I didn't say anything. John buried him under the twin hawthorn trees—one white and the other pink—in a spot where Calvin enjoyed lying and listening to the buzzing of summer insects and the chirping of birds.

Perhaps I have failed to make appear the individuality of character that was so evident to those who knew him. At any rate, I have set down nothing concerning him but the literal truth. He was always a mystery. I did not know whence he came; I do not know whither he has gone. I would not weave one spray of falsehood in the wreath I lay upon his grave.

Maybe I haven't shown the unique personality that was so clear to those who knew him. Regardless, I've only written down the absolute truth about him. He was always a mystery. I didn't know where he came from, and I don't know where he has gone. I wouldn't add a single lie to the tribute I leave on his grave.

[From My Summer in a Garden, by Charles Dudley Warner. Copyright, 1870, by Fields, Osgood & Co. Copyright, 1898, by Charles Dudley Warner. Copyright, 1912, by Susan Lee Warner.]

[From My Summer in a Garden, by Charles Dudley Warner. Copyright, 1870, by Fields, Osgood & Co. Copyright, 1898, by Charles Dudley Warner. Copyright, 1912, by Susan Lee Warner.]

FIVE AMERICAN CONTRIBUTIONS TO CIVILIZATION

CHARLES WILLIAM ELIOT

LOOKING back over forty centuries of history, we observe that many nations have made characteristic contributions to the progress of civilization, the beneficent effects of which have been permanent, although the races that made them may have lost their national form and organization, or their relative standing among the nations of the earth. Thus, the Hebrew race, during many centuries, made supreme contributions to religious thought; and the Greek, during the brief climax of the race, to speculative philosophy, architecture, sculpture, and the drama. The Roman people developed military colonization, aqueducts, roads and bridges, and a great body of public law, large parts of which still survive; and the Italians of the middle ages and the Renaissance developed ecclesiastical organization and the fine arts, as tributary to the splendor of the church and to municipal luxury. England, for several centuries, has contributed to the institutional development of representative government and public justice; the Dutch, in the sixteenth century, made a superb struggle for free thought and free government; France, in the eighteenth century, taught the doctrine of individual freedom and the theory of human rights; and Germany, at two periods within the nineteenth century, fifty years apart, proved the vital force of the sentiment of nationality. I ask you to consider with me what characteristic and durable contributions the American people have been making to the progress of civilization.

LOOKING back over forty centuries of history, we can see that many nations have made significant contributions to the development of civilization, the positive effects of which have been lasting, even though the races that made them may have lost their national identity and organization, or their standing among the nations of the world. For instance, the Hebrew people contributed greatly to religious thought for many centuries; the Greeks, during a brief period of greatness, advanced speculative philosophy, architecture, sculpture, and drama. The Romans developed military colonization, aqueducts, roads and bridges, and a substantial body of public law, much of which still exists today; and the Italians during the Middle Ages and the Renaissance contributed to church organization and the fine arts, enhancing the splendor of the church and local luxury. England, for several centuries, has played a key role in the development of representative government and public justice; the Dutch, in the sixteenth century, fought vigorously for free thought and government; France, in the eighteenth century, promoted the ideas of individual freedom and human rights; and Germany, at two points in the nineteenth century, fifty years apart, demonstrated the powerful sentiment of nationalism. I invite you to reflect with me on what unique and lasting contributions the American people have made to the progress of civilization.

The first and principal contribution to which I shall ask your attention is the advance made in the United States, not in theory only, but in practice, toward the abandonment of war as the means of settling disputes between nations, the substitution of discussion and arbitration, and the avoidance of armaments. If the intermittent Indian fighting and the brief contest with the Barbary corsairs be disregarded, the United States have had only four years and a quarter of international war in the one hundred and seven years since the adoption of the Constitution. Within the same period the United States have been a party to forty-seven arbitrations—being more than half of all that have taken place in the modern world. The questions settled by these arbitrations have been just such as have commonly caused wars, namely, questions of boundary, fisheries, damage caused by war or civil disturbances, and injuries to commerce. Some of them were of great magnitude, the four made under the treaty of Washington (May 8, 1871) being the most important that have ever taken place. Confident in their strength, and relying on their ability to adjust international differences, the United States have habitually maintained, by voluntary enlistment for short terms, a standing army and a fleet which, in proportion to the population, are insignificant.

The first and main point I want to highlight is the progress made in the United States, not just in theory but also in practice, towards moving away from war as a way to resolve disputes between nations. Instead, there has been a shift towards discussion and arbitration, along with a focus on reducing military buildup. If we overlook the sporadic conflicts with Native Americans and the brief skirmishes with the Barbary pirates, the United States has experienced only a little over four years of international war in the 107 years since adopting the Constitution. During the same time, the U.S. has participated in forty-seven arbitrations, which is more than half of all such cases in the modern world. The issues resolved through these arbitrations are the kinds that typically lead to wars, like boundary disputes, fishing rights, damages from war or civil unrest, and harm to trade. Some of these cases were of significant importance, particularly the four arbitrations under the Treaty of Washington (May 8, 1871), which were the most critical ever conducted. Confident in their strength and their capability to resolve international disputes, the United States has consistently maintained a standing army and a navy, relying on voluntary enlistment for short terms, which, relative to the population, are quite small.

The beneficent effects of this American contribution to civilization are of two sorts: in the first place, the direct evils of war and of preparations for war have been diminished; and secondly, the influence of the war spirit on the perennial conflict between the rights of the single personal unit and the powers of the multitude that constitute organized society—or, in other words, between individual freedom and collective authority—has been reduced to the lowest terms. War has been, and still is, the school of collectivism, the warrant of tyranny. Century after century, tribes, clans, and nations have sacrificed the liberty of the individual to the fundamental necessity of being strong for combined defense or attack in war. Individual freedom is crushed in war, for the nature of war is inevitably despotic. It says to the private person: "Obey without a question, even unto death; die in this ditch, without knowing why; walk into that deadly thicket; mount this embankment, behind which are men who will try to kill you, lest you should kill them; make part of an immense machine for blind destruction, cruelty, rapine, and killing." At this moment every young man in Continental Europe learns the lesson of absolute military obedience, and feels himself subject to this crushing power of militant society, against which no rights of the individual to life, liberty, and the pursuit of happiness avail anything. This pernicious influence, inherent in the social organization of all Continental Europe during many centuries, the American people have for generations escaped, and they show other nations how to escape it. I ask your attention to the favorable conditions under which this contribution of the United States to civilization has been made.

The positive effects of this American contribution to civilization come in two ways: first, the direct harms of war and the preparations for war have been reduced; and second, the impact of the war mentality on the ongoing struggle between individual rights and the powers of the group that make up organized society—or, in other words, between individual freedom and collective authority—has been minimized. War has historically been a breeding ground for collectivism and a justification for tyranny. For centuries, tribes, clans, and nations have sacrificed individual liberty for the essential need to be strong for defense or offense in times of war. Individual freedom is stifled in war because its nature is inherently oppressive. It tells the individual: "Follow orders without question, even if it leads to death; die here without understanding why; walk into danger; charge this trench where men are waiting to kill you, as you would kill them; become part of a vast machine of destruction, cruelty, looting, and killing." Right now, every young man in Continental Europe is learning the lesson of absolute military obedience, feeling the weight of this oppressive force of militant society, where individual rights to life, liberty, and the pursuit of happiness mean nothing. This harmful influence, which has been part of the social fabric of all Continental Europe for many centuries, the American people have avoided for generations, showing other nations how to break free from it. I ask you to consider the favorable conditions that have allowed this contribution of the United States to civilization to take place.

There has been a deal of fighting on the American continent during the past three centuries; but it has not been of the sort which most imperils liberty. The first European colonists who occupied portions of the coast of North America encountered in the Indians men of the Stone Age, who ultimately had to be resisted and quelled by force. The Indian races were at a stage of development thousands of years behind that of the Europeans. They could not be assimilated; for the most part they could not be taught or even reasoned with; with a few exceptions they had to be driven away by prolonged fighting, or subdued by force so that they would live peaceably with the whites. This warfare, however, always had in it for the whites a large element of self-defense—the homes and families of the settlers were to be defended against a stealthy and pitiless foe. Constant exposure to the attacks of savages was only one of the formidable dangers and difficulties which for a hundred years the early settlers had to meet, and which developed in them courage, hardiness, and persistence. The French and English wars on the North American continent, always more or less mixed with Indian warfare, were characterized by race hatred and religious animosity—two of the commonest causes of war in all ages; but they did not tend to fasten upon the English colonists any objectionable public authority, or to contract the limits of individual liberty. They furnished a school of martial qualities at small cost to liberty. In the War of Independence there was a distinct hope and purpose to enlarge individual liberty. It made possible a confederation of the colonies, and, ultimately, the adoption of the Constitution of the United States. It gave to the thirteen colonies a lesson in collectivism, but it was a needed lesson on the necessity of combining their forces to resist an oppressive external authority. The war of 1812 is properly called the Second War of Independence, for it was truly a fight for liberty and for the rights of neutrals, in resistance to the impressment of seamen and other oppressions growing out of European conflicts. The civil war of 1861-65 was waged, on the side of the North, primarily, to prevent the dismemberment of the country, and, secondarily and incidentally, to destroy the institution of slavery. On the Northern side it therefore called forth a generous element of popular ardor in defense of free institutions; and though it temporarily caused centralization of great powers in the government, it did as much to promote individual freedom as it did to strengthen public authority.

There has been a lot of fighting on the American continent over the past three centuries, but it hasn't been the kind that really threatens freedom. The first European colonists who settled on the North American coast encountered Native Americans who were living in a Stone Age society, and they ultimately had to be resisted and subdued by force. The Native American tribes were thousands of years behind the Europeans in terms of development. They couldn't be integrated; for the most part, they couldn't be educated or even reasoned with; and with a few exceptions, they had to be driven away through prolonged conflict, or forced into peaceful coexistence with the settlers. This warfare, however, for the settlers was largely about self-defense—the homes and families of the colonists needed protection against a stealthy and brutal enemy. Constant threats from Native Americans were just one of the many significant challenges the early settlers faced for a hundred years, which fostered in them courage, resilience, and determination. The wars between the French and English on the North American continent, often mixed with Native American conflicts, were marked by racial hatred and religious animosity—two common causes of war throughout history; yet they did not impose any objectionable public authority on the English colonists or limit their individual freedoms. They provided a learning experience in military skills with little cost to liberty. In the War of Independence, there was a clear hope and intention to expand individual freedom. It led to a union of the colonies and ultimately to the adoption of the United States Constitution. It taught the thirteen colonies about the importance of coming together to resist an oppressive outside power. The War of 1812 is rightly called the Second War of Independence because it was genuinely a struggle for freedom and the rights of neutrals, in opposition to the forced enlistment of sailors and other abuses stemming from European conflicts. The Civil War from 1861 to 1865 was fought mainly by the North to prevent the nation from splitting apart and, secondarily, to eliminate slavery. Therefore, it ignited a strong sense of popular passion in defense of free institutions; and although it temporarily led to significant centralization of power in the government, it also promoted individual freedom as much as it enhanced public authority.

In all this series of fightings the main motives were self-defense, resistance to oppression, the enlargement of liberty, and the conservation of national acquisitions. The war with Mexico, it is true, was of a wholly different type. That was a war of conquest, and of conquest chiefly in the interest of African slavery. It was also an unjust attack made by a powerful people on a feeble one; but it lasted less than two years, and the number of men engaged in it was at no time large. Moreover, by the treaty which ended the war, the conquering nation agreed to pay the conquered eighteen million dollars in partial compensation for some of the territory wrested from it, instead of demanding a huge war-indemnity, as the European way is. Its results contradicted the anticipations both of those who advocated and of those who opposed it. It was one of the wrongs which prepared the way for the great rebellion; but its direct evils were of moderate extent, and it had no effect on the perennial conflict between individual liberty and public power.

In all these fights, the main motives were self-defense, standing up against oppression, expanding freedom, and preserving national gains. The war with Mexico was different. It was a war of conquest, primarily aimed at supporting African slavery. It was also an unjust attack by a strong nation against a weaker one; however, it lasted less than two years, and the number of people involved was never particularly large. Additionally, through the treaty that ended the war, the victorious nation agreed to pay the defeated one eighteen million dollars as partial compensation for some of the land taken, instead of demanding a massive war indemnity like is common in Europe. Its outcomes surprised both supporters and opponents. It was one of the injustices that led to the major rebellion, but its direct negative impacts were limited, and it didn't affect the ongoing struggle between personal freedom and government authority.

In the meantime, partly as the results of Indian fighting and the Mexican war, but chiefly through purchases and arbitrations, the American people had acquired a territory so extensive, so defended by oceans, gulfs, and great lakes, and so intersected by those great natural highways, navigable rivers, that it would obviously be impossible for any enemy to overrun or subdue it. The civilized nations of Europe, western Asia, and northern Africa have always been liable to hostile incursions from without. Over and over again barbarous hordes have overthrown established civilizations; and at this moment there is not a nation of Europe which does not feel obliged to maintain monstrous armaments for defense against its neighbors. The American people have long been exempt from such terrors, and are now absolutely free from this necessity of keeping in readiness to meet heavy assaults. The absence of a great standing army and of a large fleet has been a main characteristic of the United States, in contrast with the other civilized nations; this has been a great inducement to immigration, and a prime cause of the country’s rapid increase in wealth. The United States have no formidable neighbor, except Great Britain in Canada. In April, 1817, by a convention made between Great Britain and the United States, without much public discussion or observation, these two powerful nations agreed that each should keep on the Great Lakes only a few police vessels of insignificant size and armament. This agreement was made but four years after Perry’s naval victory on Lake Erie, and only three years after the burning of Washington by a British force. It was one of the first acts of Monroe’s first administration, and it would be difficult to find in all history a more judicious or effectual agreement between two powerful neighbors. For eighty years this beneficent convention has helped to keep the peace. The European way would have been to build competitive fleets, dock-yards, and fortresses, all of which would have helped to bring on war during the periods of mutual exasperation which have occurred since 1817. Monroe’s second administration was signalized, six years later, by the declaration that the United States would consider any attempt on the part of the Holy Alliance to extend their system to any portion of this hemisphere as dangerous to the peace and safety of the United States. This announcement was designed to prevent the introduction on the American continent of the horrible European system—with its balance of power, its alliances offensive and defensive in opposing groups, and its perpetual armaments on an enormous scale. That a declaration expressly intended to promote peace and prevent armaments should now be perverted into an argument for arming and for a belligerent public policy is an extraordinary perversion of the true American doctrine.

In the meantime, partly due to conflicts with Native Americans and the Mexican War, but mainly through purchases and negotiations, the American people had acquired a vast territory, protected by oceans, gulfs, and great lakes, and intersected by major natural routes like navigable rivers. It would clearly be impossible for any enemy to invade or conquer it. Civilized nations in Europe, Western Asia, and Northern Africa have always faced threats from outside forces. Time and again, barbaric groups have toppled established civilizations; right now, there isn’t a single nation in Europe that doesn’t feel the need to maintain massive military forces for defense against its neighbors. The American people have long been free from such fears and are currently completely free from needing to prepare against heavy attacks. The lack of a large standing army and a substantial fleet has been a key feature of the United States, unlike other civilized nations; this has greatly encouraged immigration and has been a major reason for the country’s rapid increase in wealth. The United States has no major neighbors, except for Great Britain in Canada. In April 1817, through a convention between Great Britain and the United States, with little public discussion or attention, these two powerful nations agreed to keep only a few small police vessels on the Great Lakes, with minimal armament. This agreement was made just four years after Perry’s naval victory on Lake Erie and only three years after the British burned Washington. It was one of the first acts of Monroe’s first administration, and it would be hard to find a more sensible or effective agreement between two powerful neighbors in all of history. For eighty years, this beneficial agreement has helped maintain peace. The European approach would have been to create competing fleets, shipyards, and fortresses, all of which would have likely led to war during the mutual tensions that have arisen since 1817. Monroe’s second term was marked, six years later, by the declaration that the United States would view any attempt by the Holy Alliance to extend their system to any part of this hemisphere as a threat to the peace and safety of the United States. This statement was intended to prevent the introduction of the horrifying European system—characterized by a balance of power, offensive and defensive alliances in opposing groups, and its massive imposition of armaments. It is an extraordinary distortion of the true American doctrine that a declaration meant to promote peace and discourage armaments has now been twisted into an argument for militarization and a combative public policy.

The ordinary causes of war between nation and nation have been lacking in America for the last century and a quarter. How many wars in the world’s history have been due to contending dynasties; how many of the most cruel and protracted wars have been due to religious strife; how many to race hatred! No one of these causes of war has been efficacious in America since the French were overcome in Canada by the English in 1759. Looking forward into the future, we find it impossible to imagine circumstances under which any of these common causes of war can take effect on the North American continent. Therefore, the ordinary motives for maintaining armaments in time of peace, and concentrating the powers of government in such a way as to interfere with individual liberty, have not been in play in the United States as among the nations of Europe, and are not likely to be.

The usual reasons for war between nations have been absent in America for the past 125 years. How many wars in history have come from competing royal families; how many of the most brutal and long-lasting conflicts have stemmed from religious differences; how many from racial hatred? None of these reasons for war have been significant in America since the English defeated the French in Canada in 1759. Looking ahead, it’s hard to picture a scenario where any of these typical causes of war would arise on the North American continent. Thus, the usual reasons for keeping military forces during peacetime and centralizing government power in ways that limit individual freedom haven’t been a factor in the United States as they have in European nations, and they aren’t likely to be.

Such have been the favorable conditions under which America has made its best contribution to the progress of our race.

America has made its best contributions to the progress of our society under such favorable conditions.

There are some people of a perverted sentimentality who occasionally lament the absence in our country of the ordinary inducements to war, on the ground that war develops certain noble qualities in some of the combatants, and gives opportunity for the practice of heroic virtues, such as courage, loyalty, and self-sacrifice. It is further said that prolonged peace makes nations effeminate, luxurious, and materialistic, and substitutes for the high ideals of the patriot soldier the low ideals of the farmer, manufacturer, tradesman, and pleasure-seeker. This view seems to me to err in two opposite ways. In the first place, it forgets that war, in spite of the fact that it develops some splendid virtues, is the most horrible occupation that human beings can possibly engage in. It is cruel, treacherous, and murderous. Defensive warfare, particularly on the part of a weak nation against powerful invaders or oppressors, excites a generous sympathy; but for every heroic defense there must be an attack by a preponderating force, and war, being the conflict of the two, must be judged by its moral effects not on one party, but on both parties. Moreover, the weaker party may have the worse cause. The immediate ill effects of war are bad enough, but its after effects are generally worse, because indefinitely prolonged and indefinitely wasting and damaging. At this moment, thirty-one years after the end of our civil war, there are two great evils afflicting our country which took their rise in that war, namely, (1) the belief of a large proportion of our people in money without intrinsic value, or worth less than its face, and made current solely by act of Congress, and (2) the payment of immense annual sums in pensions. It is the paper-money delusion born of the civil war which generated and supports the silver-money delusion of to-day. As a consequence of the war, the nation has paid $2,000,000,000 in pensions within thirty-three years. So far as pensions are paid to disabled persons, they are a just and inevitable, but unproductive expenditure; so far as they are paid to persons who are not disabled,—men or women,—they are in the main not only unproductive but demoralizing; so far as they promote the marriage of young women to old men, as a pecuniary speculation, they create a grave social evil. It is impossible to compute or even imagine the losses and injuries already inflicted by the fiat-money delusion; and we know that some of the worst evils of the pension system will go on for a hundred years to come, unless the laws about widows’ pensions are changed for the better. It is a significant fact that of the existing pensioners of the war of 1812 only twenty-one are surviving soldiers or sailors, while 3826 are widows.[7]

There are some people with a twisted sense of sentimentality who sometimes mourn the lack of regular reasons for war in our country, arguing that war brings out certain noble traits in some of the fighters and creates chances to demonstrate heroic virtues like courage, loyalty, and self-sacrifice. They also claim that long periods of peace make nations weak, indulgent, and overly focused on materialism, replacing the high ideals of the patriotic soldier with the low ideals of farmers, manufacturers, merchants, and pleasure-seekers. This perspective, in my opinion, is flawed in two significant ways. First, it ignores the fact that, although war can develop some admirable qualities, it is the most horrific activity humans can engage in. It’s cruel, deceitful, and deadly. Defensive warfare, especially by a weaker nation against strong invaders or oppressors, can evoke sympathy; however, for every brave defense, there must be an attack by a stronger force, and war, being the clash between the two, must be assessed by its moral consequences on both sides. Furthermore, the weaker side might have the less just cause. The immediate negative consequences of war are severe, but its long-term effects are often worse because they last indefinitely and lead to ongoing waste and damage. Right now, thirty-one years after our civil war ended, our country is facing two major issues that originated from that war: (1) the widespread belief among many people in money that has no real value, or is worth less than its stated amount, and which exists only because of a law passed by Congress, and (2) the massive annual payments made in pensions. The illusion of paper money created by the civil war also fueled and maintains today’s silver-money delusion. As a result of the war, the nation has paid out $2,000,000,000 in pensions over thirty-three years. While pensions for disabled individuals are a fair and unavoidable, yet unproductive, expense, those paid to individuals who are not disabled—men or women—are mostly unproductive and demoralizing; they also encourage young women to marry older men as a financial strategy, creating a serious social issue. It’s impossible to calculate or even envision the losses and harm caused by the fiat-money illusion; and we know that some of the most troubling problems with the pension system will persist for the next hundred years unless the laws regarding widows’ pensions are improved. It’s notable that out of the current pensioners from the War of 1812, only twenty-one are surviving soldiers or sailors, while 3,826 are widows.

War gratifies, or used to gratify, the combative instinct of mankind, but it gratifies also the love of plunder, destruction, cruel discipline, and arbitrary power. It is doubtful whether fighting with modern appliances will continue to gratify the savage instinct of combat; for it is not likely that in the future two opposing lines of men can ever meet, or any line or column reach an enemy’s intrenchments. The machine-gun can only be compared to the scythe, which cuts off every blade of grass within its sweep. It has made cavalry charges impossible, just as the modern ironclad has made impossible the manœuvers of one of Nelson’s fleets. On land, the only mode of approach of one line to another must hereafter be by concealment, crawling, or surprise. Naval actions will henceforth be conflicts between opposing machines, guided, to be sure, by men; but it will be the best machine that wins, and not necessarily the most enduring men. War will become a contest between treasuries or war-chests; for now that 10,000 men can fire away a million dollars’ worth of ammunition in an hour, no poor nation can long resist a rich one, unless there be some extraordinary difference between the two in mental and moral strength.

War satisfies, or used to satisfy, humanity's instinct to fight, but it also fulfills the desire for looting, destruction, harsh discipline, and unchecked power. It's uncertain whether modern warfare will continue to satisfy our primal urge for combat; it's unlikely that opposing forces will ever meet in formation, or that any group can reach an enemy's fortified position. The machine gun is like a scythe, cutting down everything in its path. It has made cavalry charges impossible, just as modern battleships have rendered the tactics of Nelson’s fleets outdated. In the future, the only way for one line of troops to approach another will be through stealth, crawling, or surprise. Naval battles will turn into contests of competing machines, operated by humans, but the victor will be the best machine, not necessarily the most resilient soldiers. War will evolve into a competition between financial resources; as now, 10,000 soldiers can expend a million dollars' worth of ammunition in an hour, no impoverished nation can hold out against a wealthy one unless there’s a significant difference in mental and moral strength.

The view that war is desirable omits also the consideration that modern social and industrial life affords ample opportunities for the courageous and loyal discharge of duty, apart from the barbarities of warfare. There are many serviceable occupations in civil life which call for all the courage and fidelity of the best soldier, and for more than his independent responsibility, because not pursued in masses or under the immediate command of superiors. Such occupations are those of the locomotive engineer, the electric lineman, the railroad brakeman, the city fireman, and the policeman. The occupation of the locomotive engineer requires constantly a high degree of skill, alertness, fidelity, and resolution, and at any moment may call for heroic self-forgetfulness. The occupation of a lineman requires all the courage and endurance of a soldier, whose lurking foe is mysterious and invisible. In the two years, 1893 and 1894, there were 34,000 trainmen killed and wounded on the railroads of the United States, and 25,000 other railroad employés besides. I need not enlarge on the dangers of the fireman’s occupation, or on the disciplined gallantry with which its risks are habitually incurred. The policeman in large cities needs every virtue of the best soldier, for in the discharge of many of his most important duties he is alone. Even the feminine occupation of the trained nurse illustrates every heroic quality which can possibly be exhibited in war; for she, simply in the way of duty, without the stimulus of excitement or companionship, runs risks from which many a soldier in hot blood would shrink. No one need be anxious about the lack of opportunities in civilized life for the display of heroic qualities. New industries demand new forms of fidelity and self-sacrificing devotion. Every generation develops some new kind of hero. Did it ever occur to you that the "scab" is a creditable type of nineteenth century hero? In defense of his rights as an individual, he deliberately incurs the reprobation of many of his fellows, and runs the immediate risk of bodily injury, or even of death. He also risks his livelihood for the future, and thereby the well-being of his family. He steadily asserts in action his right to work on such conditions as he sees fit to make, and, in so doing, he exhibits remarkable courage, and renders a great service to his fellow-men. He is generally a quiet, unpretending, silent person, who values his personal freedom more than the society and approbation of his mates. Often he is impelled to work by family affection, but this fact does not diminish his heroism. There are file-closers behind the line of battle of the bravest regiment. Another modern personage who needs heroic endurance, and often exhibits it, is the public servant who steadily does his duty against the outcry of a party press bent on perverting his every word and act. Through the telegram, cheap postage, and the daily newspaper, the forces of hasty public opinion can now be concentrated and expressed with a rapidity and intensity unknown to preceding generations. In consequence, the independent thinker or actor, or the public servant, when his thoughts or acts run counter to prevailing popular or party opinions, encounters sudden and intense obloquy, which, to many temperaments, is very formidable. That habit of submitting to the opinion of the majority which democracy fosters renders the storm of detraction and calumny all the more difficult to endure—makes it, indeed, so intolerable to many citizens, that they will conceal or modify their opinions rather than endure it. Yet the very breath of life for a democracy is free discussion, and the taking account, of all opinions honestly held and reasonably expressed. The unreality of the vilification of public men in the modern press is often revealed by the sudden change when an eminent public servant retires or dies. A man for whom no words of derision or condemnation were strong enough yesterday is recognized to-morrow as an honorable and serviceable person, and a credit to his country. Nevertheless, this habit of partizan ridicule and denunciation in the daily reading-matter of millions of people calls for a new kind of courage and toughness in public men, and calls for it, not in brief moments of excitement only, but steadily, year in and year out. Clearly, there is no need of bringing on wars in order to breed heroes. Civilized life affords plenty of opportunities for heroes, and for a better kind than war or any other savagery has ever produced. Moreover, none but lunatics would set a city on fire in order to give opportunities for heroism to firemen, or introduce the cholera or yellow fever to give physicians and nurses opportunity for practicing disinterested devotion, or condemn thousands of people to extreme poverty in order that some well-to-do persons might practice a beautiful charity. It is equally crazy to advocate war on the ground that it is a school for heroes.

The belief that war is desirable overlooks the fact that modern social and industrial life provides plenty of opportunities for brave and dedicated service, without resorting to the brutalities of warfare. There are many valuable jobs in civilian life that require all the courage and loyalty of the best soldier, and even more independent responsibility since they are not done in groups or under the immediate guidance of superiors. Jobs like locomotive engineer, electric lineman, railroad brakeman, city firefighter, and police officer fit this description. Being a locomotive engineer constantly demands a high level of skill, alertness, loyalty, and resolve, and may call for heroic selflessness at any moment. A lineman's job requires all the courage and stamina of a soldier, facing hidden and unseen dangers. In the two years of 1893 and 1894, 34,000 train workers were killed or injured on U.S. railroads, along with another 25,000 railroad employees. I won't go into the risks that firefighters face daily or the disciplined bravery with which they confront those risks. In large cities, police officers need every quality of the best soldiers, as many of their vital responsibilities are carried out alone. Even the female profession of a trained nurse showcases every heroic characteristic that can be displayed in war; she takes risks in the course of her duty, without the thrill of excitement or companionship, that many soldiers would avoid in the heat of battle. There’s no reason to worry about a lack of opportunities in civilized life for demonstrating heroic qualities. New industries require new forms of loyalty and selfless dedication. Each generation produces a new type of hero. Have you ever thought about how the "scab" is a commendable type of 19th-century hero? By defending his individual rights, he willingly faces the disapproval of many peers and risks physical harm, even death. He also jeopardizes his future livelihood and, in turn, the well-being of his family. He consistently asserts his right to work under the conditions he prefers and demonstrates remarkable bravery while serving his fellow humans. He's usually a quiet, unassuming person who values his personal freedom more than the approval of his peers. Often, family love drives him to work, but that doesn’t lessen his heroism. There are diligent workers behind the front lines of the bravest regiments. Another modern figure who shows the need for heroic endurance is the public servant who continues to fulfill his duties amid the onslaught of a party press inclined to twist his every word and action. With telegrams, affordable mail, and daily newspapers, public opinion can now be formed and expressed with a speed and intensity unknown to previous generations. This means that independent thinkers or public servants, when their views or actions contradict popular or party beliefs, face sudden and severe criticism, which can be daunting for many. The tendency to conform to majority opinion that democracy encourages makes it even harder to endure such storms of scorn and slander—making it so unbearable for many citizens that they hide or adjust their opinions to avoid it. Yet, the very essence of democracy is free discussion and considering all opinions honestly held and reasonably expressed. The unreality of the public vilification seen in today’s press is often displayed by the abrupt change in perception when an important figure retires or passes away. A person who yesterday faced scathing derision is tomorrow recognized as an honorable and valuable contributor to society. Nonetheless, this trend of partisan mockery and condemnation in the daily reading for millions demands a new kind of bravery and resilience from public figures, required not just in fleeting moments of excitement but consistently, year after year. Clearly, there's no need to instigate wars to create heroes. Civilized life offers ample chances for heroism, and a form that is superior to what war or other forms of savagery have ever produced. Furthermore, only the insane would set a city ablaze to create opportunities for firefighters, introduce cholera or yellow fever to allow doctors and nurses to display selfless devotion, or force thousands into extreme poverty so that some wealthy people can practice charity. It's equally absurd to support war on the premise that it serves as a school for heroes.

Another misleading argument for war needs brief notice. It is said that war is a school of national development—that a nation, when conducting a great war, puts forth prodigious exertions to raise money, supply munitions, enlist troops, and keep them in the field, and often gets a clearer conception and a better control of its own material and moral forces while making these unusual exertions. The nation which means to live in peace necessarily foregoes, it is said, these valuable opportunities of abnormal activity. Naturally, such a nation’s abnormal activities devoted to destruction would be diminished; but its normal and abnormal activities devoted to construction and improvement ought to increase.

Another misleading argument for war deserves a quick mention. It's claimed that war serves as a catalyst for national development—that a nation engaged in a major conflict exerts extraordinary effort to raise funds, supply weapons, recruit soldiers, and maintain them in combat, often gaining a sharper understanding and better control of its own resources and moral strength during these intense efforts. It's suggested that a nation committed to living in peace inevitably misses out on these valuable opportunities for heightened activity. Naturally, such a nation would see a decrease in destructive activities, but its normal and extraordinary efforts focused on building and improving should actually increase.

One great reason for the rapid development of the United States since the adoption of the Constitution is the comparative exemption of the whole people from war, dread of war, and preparations for war. The energies of the people have been directed into other channels. The progress of applied science during the present century, and the new ideals concerning the well-being of human multitudes, have opened great fields for the useful application of national energy. This immense territory of ours, stretching from ocean to ocean, and for the most part but imperfectly developed and sparsely settled, affords a broad field for the beneficent application of the richest national forces during an indefinite period. There is no department of national activity in which we could not advantageously put forth much more force than we now expend; and there are great fields which we have never cultivated at all. As examples, I may mention the post-office, national sanitation, public works, and education. Although great improvements have been made during the past fifty years in the collection and delivery of mail matter, much still remains to be done both in city and country, and particularly in the country. In the mail facilities secured to our people, we are far behind several European governments, whereas we ought to be far in advance of every European government except Switzerland, since the rapid interchange of ideas, and the promotion of family, friendly, and commercial intercourse, are of more importance to a democracy than to any other form of political society. Our national government takes very little pains about the sanitation of the country, or its deliverance from injurious insects and parasites; yet these are matters of gravest interest, with which only the general government can deal, because action by separate States or cities is necessarily ineffectual. To fight pestilences needs quite as much energy, skill, and courage as to carry on war; indeed, the foes are more insidious and awful, and the means of resistance less obvious. On the average and the large scale, the professions which heal and prevent disease, and mitigate suffering, call for much more ability, constancy, and devotion than the professions which inflict wounds and death and all sorts of human misery. Our government has never touched the important subject of national roads, by which I mean not railroads, but common highways; yet here is a great subject for beneficent action through government, in which we need only go for our lessons to little republican Switzerland. Inundations and droughts are great enemies of the human race, against which government ought to create defenses, because private enterprise cannot cope with such wide-spreading evils. Popular education is another great field in which public activity should be indefinitely enlarged, not so much through the action of the Federal government,—though even there a much more effective supervision should be provided than now exists,—but through the action of States, cities, and towns. We have hardly begun to apprehend the fundamental necessity and infinite value of public education, or to appreciate the immense advantages to be derived from additional expenditure for it. What prodigious possibilities of improvement are suggested by the single statement that the average annual expenditure for the schooling of a child in the United States is only about eighteen dollars! Here is a cause which requires from hundreds of thousands of men and women keen intelligence, hearty devotion to duty, and a steady uplifting and advancement of all its standards and ideals. The system of public instruction should embody for coming generations all the virtues of the mediæval church. It should stand for the brotherhood and unity of all classes and conditions; it should exalt the joys of the intellectual life above all material delights; and it should produce the best constituted and most wisely directed intellectual and moral host that the world has seen. In view of such unutilized opportunities as these for the beneficent application of great public forces, does it not seem monstrous that war should be advocated on the ground that it gives occasion for rallying and using the national energies?

One major reason for the rapid development of the United States since the Constitution was adopted is that the entire population has been largely spared from war, the fear of war, and preparations for war. People’s energies have been channeled into other areas. The advances in applied science in this century, along with new ideals about human well-being, have opened up great opportunities for effectively using national energy. Our vast territory, stretching coast to coast and mostly underdeveloped and lightly populated, offers a wide field for the beneficial application of our national resources for an extended period. There isn’t a single area of national activity where we couldn’t effectively exert much more effort than we currently do; there are even vast areas we’ve never explored at all. For example, look at the post-office, national sanitation, public works, and education. Despite significant improvements made over the last fifty years in mail collection and delivery, there is still a lot of work to be done, especially in rural areas. In terms of mail services, we lag behind several European governments, even though we should far exceed every European government except for Switzerland, since quick exchange of ideas and fostering family, friendly, and commercial connections is more crucial for a democracy than any other political system. Our national government pays little attention to the sanitation of the country or to fighting harmful insects and parasites; yet, these are serious issues that only the federal government can effectively address, as actions taken by individual states or cities are often ineffective. Combatting epidemics requires as much energy, skill, and courage as conducting a war; indeed, the enemies here are more stealthy and dangerous, and the methods of resistance are less clear. On a broad scale, the professions that heal and prevent disease and alleviate suffering require much more skill, consistency, and dedication than those that cause wounds and death and all kinds of human misery. Our government has never tackled the important issue of national roads—meaning not railroads, but regular highways. Yet, this represents a significant opportunity for beneficial government action, drawing lessons from small republics like Switzerland. Floods and droughts are great threats to humanity, and government should establish defenses against them, as private enterprise cannot handle such widespread issues. Public education is another area where public engagement should be significantly expanded, not just through federal intervention—though there should definitely be more effective oversight there as well—but through the efforts of states, cities, and towns. We have barely scratched the surface of understanding the fundamental necessity and immense value of public education, or the great benefits that could come from increased funding. Just consider the staggering potential for improvement reflected in the fact that the average annual spending on a child’s education in the United States is only about eighteen dollars! This is a cause that demands keen intelligence, strong commitment to duty, and a consistent elevation and improvement of all its standards and ideals from hundreds of thousands of people. The public education system should embody the virtues of the medieval church for future generations. It should represent the brotherhood and unity of all classes and conditions; it should promote the joys of intellectual life above all material pleasures; and it should cultivate the best-prepared and most wisely guided intellectual and moral force the world has ever seen. Considering such unexploited opportunities for the positive use of great public resources, doesn’t it seem absurd that some advocate for war on the grounds that it stimulates the rallying and use of national energies?

The second eminent contribution which the United States have made to civilization is their thorough acceptance, in theory and practice, of the widest religious toleration. As a means of suppressing individual liberty, the collective authority of the Church, when elaborately organized in a hierarchy directed by one head and absolutely devoted in every rank to its service, comes next in proved efficiency to that concentration of powers in government which enables it to carry on war effectively. The Western Christian Church, organized under the Bishop of Rome, acquired, during the middle ages, a centralized authority which quite overrode both the temporal ruler and the rising spirit of nationality. For a time Christian Church and Christian States acted together, just as in Egypt, during many earlier centuries, the great powers of civil and religious rule had been united. The Crusades marked the climax of the power of the Church. Thereafter, Church and State were often in conflict; and during this prolonged conflict the seeds of liberty were planted, took root, and made some sturdy growth. We can see now, as we look back on the history of Europe, how fortunate it was that the colonization of North America by Europeans was deferred until after the period of the Reformation, and especially until after the Elizabethan period in England, the Luther period in Germany, and the splendid struggle of the Dutch for liberty in Holland. The founders of New England and New York were men who had imbibed the principles of resistance both to arbitrary civil power and to universal ecclesiastical authority. Hence it came about that within the territory now covered by the United States no single ecclesiastical organization ever obtained a wide and oppressive control, and that in different parts of this great region churches very unlike in doctrine and organization were almost simultaneously established. It has been an inevitable consequence of this condition of things that the Church, as a whole, in the United States has not been an effective opponent of any form of human rights. For generations it has been divided into numerous sects and denominations, no one of which has been able to claim more than a tenth of the population as its adherents; and the practices of these numerous denominations have been profoundly modified by political theories and practices, and by social customs natural to new communities formed under the prevailing conditions of free intercourse and rapid growth. The constitutional prohibition of religious tests as qualifications for office gave the United States the leadership among the nations in dissociating theological opinions and political rights. No one denomination or ecclesiastical organization in the United States has held great properties, or has had the means of conducting its ritual with costly pomp or its charitable works with imposing liberality. No splendid architectural exhibitions of Church power have interested or overawed the population. On the contrary, there has prevailed in general a great simplicity in public worship, until very recent years. Some splendors have been lately developed by religious bodies in the great cities; but these splendors and luxuries have been almost simultaneously exhibited by religious bodies of very different, not to say opposite, kinds. Thus, in New York city, the Jews, the Greek Church, the Catholics, and the Episcopalians have all erected, or undertaken to erect, magnificent edifices. But these recent demonstrations of wealth and zeal are so distributed among differing religious organizations that they cannot be imagined to indicate a coming centralization of ecclesiastical influence adverse to individual liberty.

The second major contribution the United States has made to civilization is its strong commitment, both in theory and practice, to broad religious tolerance. The collective authority of the Church, when organized hierarchically and led by a single head devoted to its cause, ranks just behind the concentration of governmental powers that enables effective warfare in terms of suppressing individual liberty. During the Middle Ages, the Western Christian Church, organized under the Bishop of Rome, gained centralized authority that overshadowed both temporal rulers and the emerging sense of nationalism. For a time, the Christian Church and Christian States worked together, similar to how civil and religious powers were united in Egypt centuries earlier. The Crusades represented the peak of the Church's power. After that, the Church and State frequently conflicted; and during this ongoing struggle, the foundations of liberty were laid, took root, and grew sturdy. Looking back on European history, it’s fortunate that the colonization of North America by Europeans happened after the Reformation and especially after the Elizabethan period in England, the Luther period in Germany, and the remarkable fight for freedom in the Netherlands. The founders of New England and New York were individuals who adopted the principles of resistance to both arbitrary civil authority and universal ecclesiastical control. As a result, no single religious organization ever gained widespread oppressive power in the territory now known as the United States, and various churches with differing doctrines and structures were founded almost simultaneously across this vast region. This situation has naturally led to the Church as a whole in the United States not being an effective opponent of any form of human rights. For generations, it has been split into numerous sects and denominations, none of which have claimed more than a tenth of the population as followers; and the practices of these various denominations have been significantly shaped by political theories and practices, along with social customs typical of new communities formed under conditions of free exchange and rapid growth. The constitutional ban on religious tests for office positions has positioned the United States as a leader among nations in separating theological beliefs from political rights. No one denomination or religious organization in the U.S. has maintained significant properties or had the means to conduct its rituals with extravagant opulence or its charitable works with imposing generosity. There are no grand architectural displays of Church power that have captivated or intimidated the populace. Instead, there has typically been a great simplicity in public worship, until very recently. Some ornate religious structures have emerged in large cities lately; however, these displays of wealth and zeal have been almost concurrently showcased by very different, if not opposing, religious groups. For instance, in New York City, Jews, the Greek Church, Catholics, and Episcopalians have all built or attempted to build impressive edifices. But these recent demonstrations of wealth and enthusiasm are so spread among different religious organizations that they don’t suggest an impending centralization of ecclesiastical influence that would threaten individual liberty.

In the United States, the great principle of religious toleration is better understood and more firmly established than in any other nation of the earth. It is not only embodied in legislation, but also completely recognized in the habits and customs of good society. Elsewhere it may be a long road from legal to social recognition of religious liberty, as the example of England shows. This recognition alone would mean, to any competent student of history, that the United States had made an unexampled contribution to the reconciliation of just governmental power with just freedom for the individual, inasmuch as the partial establishment of religious toleration has been the main work of civilization during the past four centuries. In view of this characteristic and infinitely beneficent contribution to human happiness and progress, how pitiable seem the temporary outbursts of bigotry and fanaticism which have occasionally marred the fair record of our country in regard to religious toleration! If anyone imagines that this American contribution to civilization is no longer important,—that the victory for toleration has been already won,—let him recall the fact that the last years of the nineteenth century have witnessed two horrible religious persecutions, one by a Christian nation, the other by a Moslem—one, of the Jews by Russia, and the other, of the Armenians by Turkey.

In the United States, the important principle of religious tolerance is better understood and more firmly established than in any other country in the world. It’s not only reflected in the laws but is also fully recognized in the customs and habits of decent society. In other places, there may be a long journey from legal acknowledgment to social acceptance of religious freedom, as demonstrated by England. This recognition alone would signify, to any knowledgeable student of history, that the United States has made an unparalleled contribution to balancing proper governmental power with individual freedom, considering that the partial establishment of religious tolerance has been a major achievement of civilization over the past four centuries. Given this distinctive and immensely positive contribution to human happiness and progress, how unfortunate seem the occasional outbursts of bigotry and fanaticism that have marred our country's otherwise commendable record on religious tolerance! If anyone thinks that this American contribution to civilization is no longer significant—that the battle for tolerance has already been won—let them remember that the last years of the nineteenth century saw two terrible religious persecutions, one by a Christian nation and the other by a Muslim one—specifically, the persecution of Jews by Russia and the persecution of Armenians by Turkey.

The third characteristic contribution which the United States have made to civilization has been the safe development of a manhood suffrage nearly universal. The experience of the United States has brought out several principles with regard to the suffrage which have not been clearly apprehended by some eminent political philosophers. In the first place, American experience has demonstrated the advantages of a gradual approach to universal suffrage, over a sudden leap. Universal suffrage is not the first and only means of attaining democratic government; rather, it is the ultimate goal of successful democracy. It is not a specific for the cure of all political ills; on the contrary, it may itself easily be the source of great political evils. The people of the United States feel its dangers to-day. When constituencies are large, it aggravates the well-known difficulties of party government; so that many of the ills which threaten democratic communities at this moment, whether in Europe or America, proceed from the breakdown of party government rather than from failures of universal suffrage. The methods of party government were elaborated where suffrage was limited and constituencies were small. Manhood suffrage has not worked perfectly well in the United States, or in any other nation where it has been adopted, and it is not likely very soon to work perfectly anywhere. It is like freedom of the will for the individual—the only atmosphere in which virtue can grow, but an atmosphere in which sin can also grow. Like freedom of the will, it needs to be surrounded with checks and safeguards, particularly in the childhood of the nation; but, like freedom of the will, it is the supreme good, the goal of perfected democracy. Secondly, like freedom of the will, universal suffrage has an educational effect, which has been mentioned by many writers, but has seldom been clearly apprehended or adequately described. This educational effect is produced in two ways: In the first place, the combination of individual freedom with social mobility, which a wide suffrage tends to produce, permits the capable to rise through all grades of society, even within a single generation; and this freedom to rise is intensely stimulating to personal ambition. Thus every capable American, from youth to age, is bent on bettering himself and his condition. Nothing can be more striking than the contrast between the mental condition of an average American belonging to the laborious classes, but conscious that he can rise to the top of the social scale, and that of a European mechanic, peasant, or tradesman, who knows that he cannot rise out of his class, and is content with his hereditary classification. The state of mind of the American prompts to constant struggle for self-improvement and the acquisition of all sorts of property and power. In the second place, it is a direct effect of a broad suffrage that the voters become periodically interested in the discussion of grave public problems, which carry their minds away from the routine of their daily labor and household experience out into larger fields. The instrumentalities of this prolonged education have been multiplied and improved enormously within the last fifty years. In no field of human endeavor have the fruits of the introduction of steam and electrical power been more striking than in the methods of reaching multitudes of people with instructive narratives, expositions, and arguments. The multiplication of newspapers, magazines, and books is only one of the immense developments in the means of reaching the people. The advocates of any public cause now have it in their power to provide hundreds of newspapers with the same copy, or the same plates, for simultaneous issue. The mails provide the means of circulating millions of leaflets and pamphlets. The interest in the minds of the people which prompts to the reading of these multiplied communications comes from the frequently recurring elections. The more difficult the intellectual problem presented in any given election, the more educative the effect of the discussion. Many modern industrial and financial problems are extremely difficult, even for highly-educated men. As subjects of earnest thought and discussion on the farm, and in the work-shop, factory, rolling-mill, and mine, they supply a mental training for millions of adults, the like of which has never before been seen in the world.

The third major contribution the United States has made to civilization is the safe development of nearly universal manhood suffrage. The experience of the United States has revealed several principles regarding suffrage that some prominent political philosophers haven’t fully grasped. First, American experience has shown the benefits of a gradual approach to universal suffrage over a sudden change. Universal suffrage is not the first and only path to achieving democratic government; rather, it is the ultimate goal of a successful democracy. It’s not a cure-all for political problems; in fact, it can easily become a source of significant political issues. The people of the United States recognize its dangers today. When constituencies are large, it makes the challenges of party government even more pronounced, so many of the problems that threaten democratic communities now, whether in Europe or America, stem from the breakdown of party government rather than failures of universal suffrage. The methods of party government were developed when suffrage was limited and constituencies were small. Manhood suffrage hasn’t worked perfectly in the United States or in any other nation that has adopted it, and it’s unlikely to work perfectly anywhere anytime soon. It's like individual free will—the only environment where virtue can develop, but also an environment where wrongdoing can flourish. Just like free will, it needs to be surrounded by checks and safeguards, particularly in the early stages of a nation; but, like free will, it is the ultimate good, the aim of a perfected democracy. Secondly, similar to free will, universal suffrage has an educational impact, which has been noted by many writers but rarely understood or described sufficiently. This educational impact occurs in two ways: First, the combination of individual freedom with social mobility that widespread suffrage encourages allows capable individuals to rise through the social ranks, even within a single generation; this opportunity to advance is highly motivating for personal ambition. As a result, every capable American, from youth to old age, is focused on improving themselves and their circumstances. Nothing is more striking than the difference between the mindset of an average American from the working class, who knows they can rise to the top of the social ladder, and that of a European mechanic, peasant, or tradesman, who understands they cannot escape their class and is content with their inherited status. The American mindset drives constant effort for self-improvement and the pursuit of various forms of property and power. Secondly, broad suffrage directly encourages voters to regularly engage in discussions about serious public issues, which pulls their minds away from the routine of daily work and home life into broader matters. The means of this extended education have expanded and improved dramatically over the past fifty years. In no area of human endeavor have the benefits of steam and electrical power been more evident than in the methods of reaching large groups with informative stories, explanations, and arguments. The growth of newspapers, magazines, and books is just one of the many advancements in how people are reached. Advocates for any public cause can now provide hundreds of newspapers with the same copy, or the same plates, for simultaneous publication. The mail allows for the distribution of millions of leaflets and pamphlets. The public interest that encourages reading these numerous communications stems from the frequent elections. The more complex the intellectual issue presented in any election, the more educational the discussion becomes. Many modern industrial and financial issues are extremely challenging, even for those who are highly educated. As subjects for serious thought and discussion on farms, in workshops, factories, rolling mills, and mines, they provide a level of mental training for millions of adults that has never before been seen in the world.

In these discussions, it is not only the receptive masses that are benefited; the classes that supply the appeals to the masses are also benefited in a high degree. There is no better mental exercise for the most highly trained man than the effort to expound a difficult subject in so clear a way that the untrained man can understand it. In a republic in which the final appeal is to manhood suffrage, the educated minority of the people is constantly stimulated to exertion, by the instinct of self-preservation as well as by love of country. They see dangers in proposals made to universal suffrage, and they must exert themselves to ward off those dangers. The position of the educated and well-to-do classes is a thoroughly wholesome one in this respect: they cannot depend for the preservation of their advantages on land-owning, hereditary privilege, or any legislation not equally applicable to the poorest and humblest citizen. They must maintain their superiority by being superior. They cannot live in a too safe corner.

In these discussions, it’s not just the receptive masses that benefit; the groups that engage the masses also gain a lot. There’s no better mental workout for highly educated individuals than trying to explain a complex topic so clearly that someone without training can understand it. In a republic where the ultimate decision lies with the voters, the educated minority is constantly motivated to act, driven by both self-preservation and a love for their country. They notice threats in proposals aimed at universal voting rights, and they must work to protect against those threats. The position of the educated and affluent classes is very healthy in this sense: they can’t rely on land ownership, hereditary privilege, or any laws that don’t apply equally to the poorest and humblest citizen for maintaining their advantages. They need to keep their superiority by actually being superior. They can’t hide away in a too-safe corner.

I touch here on a misconception which underlies much of the criticism of universal suffrage. It is commonly said that the rule of the majority must be the rule of the most ignorant and incapable, the multitude being necessarily uninstructed as to taxation, public finance, and foreign relations, and untrained to active thought on such difficult subjects. Now, universal suffrage is merely a convention as to where the last appeal shall lie for the decision of public questions; and it is the rule of the majority only in this sense. The educated classes are undoubtedly a minority; but it is not safe to assume that they monopolize the good sense of the community. On the contrary, it is very clear that native good judgment and good feeling are not proportional to education, and that among a multitude of men who have only an elementary education, a large proportion will possess both good judgment and good feeling. Indeed, persons who can neither read nor write may possess a large share of both, as is constantly seen in regions where the opportunities for education in childhood have been scanty or inaccessible. It is not to be supposed that the cultivated classes, under a régime of universal suffrage, are not going to try to make their cultivation felt in the discussion and disposal of public questions. Any result under universal suffrage is a complex effect of the discussion of the public question in hand by the educated classes in the presence of the comparatively uneducated, when a majority of both classes taken together is ultimately to settle the question. In practice, both classes divide on almost every issue. But, in any case, if the educated classes cannot hold their own with the uneducated, by means of their superior physical, mental, and moral qualities, they are obviously unfit to lead society. With education should come better powers of argument and persuasion, a stricter sense of honor, and a greater general effectiveness. With these advantages, the educated classes must undoubtedly appeal to the less educated, and try to convert them to their way of thinking; but this is a process which is good for both sets of people. Indeed, it is the best possible process for the training of freemen, educated or uneducated, rich or poor.

I'm touching on a misconception that drives a lot of the criticism of universal suffrage. People often say that the rule of the majority ends up being the rule of the most ignorant and incapable, arguing that the masses are typically uninformed about taxation, public finance, and foreign relations, and haven't been trained to think critically about these complex topics. However, universal suffrage is really just an agreement on where the final say lies in making public decisions; it operates as the majority rule in that specific sense. The educated classes are definitely a minority, but it's risky to assume they have a monopoly on common sense. In fact, it's quite clear that natural good judgment and empathy aren't necessarily tied to education, and among a large group of people with only basic education, many will likely have both good judgment and empathy. In fact, individuals who can't read or write can still possess a great deal of both, as seen frequently in areas where childhood education opportunities have been limited or hard to access. It shouldn't be assumed that the educated classes, in a system of universal suffrage, won't try to make their knowledge felt when discussing and resolving public issues. Any outcome from universal suffrage results from the interaction between educated individuals discussing public issues alongside the relatively uneducated, with a majority from both groups ultimately resolving the matter. In practice, both groups tend to have differing opinions on almost every issue. But if the educated class can't compete with the uneducated, using their superior physical, mental, and moral qualities, it's clear they aren't fit to lead society. With education should come improved skills in argument and persuasion, a stronger sense of honor, and greater overall effectiveness. With these advantages, the educated classes certainly need to engage with the less educated and attempt to persuade them to their viewpoints, but this exchange benefits both groups. In fact, it's the best possible way to train free individuals, whether educated or uneducated, wealthy or poor.

It is often assumed that the educated classes become impotent in a democracy, because the representatives of those classes are not exclusively chosen to public office. This argument is a very fallacious one. It assumes that the public offices are the places of greatest influence; whereas, in the United States, at least, that is conspicuously not the case. In a democracy, it is important to discriminate influence from authority. Rulers and magistrates may or may not be persons of influence; but many persons of influence never become rulers, magistrates, or representatives in parliaments or legislatures. The complex industries of a modern state, and its innumerable corporation services, offer great fields for administrative talent which were entirely unknown to preceding generations; and these new activities attract many ambitious and capable men more strongly than the public service. These men are not on that account lost to their country or to society. The present generation has wholly escaped from the conditions of earlier centuries, when able men who were not great land-owners had but three outlets for their ambition—the army, the church, or the national civil service. The national service, whether in an empire, a limited monarchy, or a republic, is now only one of many fields which offer to able and patriotic men an honorable and successful career. Indeed, legislation and public administration necessarily have a very second-hand quality; and more and more legislators and administrators become dependent on the researches of scholars, men of science, and historians, and follow in the footsteps of inventors, economists, and political philosophers. Political leaders are very seldom leaders of thought; they are generally trying to induce masses of men to act on principles thought out long before. Their skill is in the selection of practicable approximations to the ideal; their arts are arts of exposition and persuasion; their honor comes from fidelity under trying circumstances to familiar principles of public duty. The real leaders of American thought in this century have been preachers, teachers, jurists, seers, and poets. While it is of the highest importance, under any form of government, that the public servants should be men of intelligence, education, and honor, it is no objection to any given form, that under it large numbers of educated and honorable citizens have no connection with the public service.

It’s often thought that educated people lose their power in a democracy since not all of them get selected for public office. This idea is quite misleading. It assumes that public offices hold the most influence, but that’s clearly not true in the United States. In a democracy, it’s essential to distinguish between influence and authority. Rulers and officials might be influential or not, but many influential people never become rulers, officials, or representatives in governments or legislatures. The complex industries in a modern state, along with countless corporate services, provide vast opportunities for administrative talent that didn’t exist in previous generations, and these new roles attract many ambitious and capable individuals more than public service does. These individuals aren’t lost to their country or society because of that. The current generation has moved away from the conditions of past centuries, when skilled people who weren’t wealthy landowners had only three paths for their ambitions: the military, the church, or national civil service. National service, whether in an empire, a limited monarchy, or a republic, is now just one of many avenues where capable and patriotic individuals can have honorable and successful careers. In fact, legislation and public administration often take on a secondary role; more and more lawmakers and administrators rely on the research of scholars, scientists, and historians, following in the footsteps of inventors, economists, and political thinkers. Political leaders rarely lead in thought; they usually try to motivate large groups of people to act based on ideas developed long before. Their expertise lies in finding practical solutions that approximate ideals; their skills involve explaining and persuading; and their honor comes from sticking to familiar principles of public duty during tough times. The true thinkers of American society in this century have been preachers, educators, judges, visionaries, and poets. While it’s crucial for public servants to be intelligent, educated, and honorable, it’s not a problem for any particular system if many educated and honorable citizens aren’t involved in public service.

Well-to-do Europeans, when reasoning about the working of democracy, often assume that under any government the property-holders are synonymous with the intelligent and educated class. That is not the case in the American democracy. Anyone who has been connected with a large American university can testify that democratic institutions produce plenty of rich people who are not educated and plenty of educated people who are not rich, just as mediæval society produced illiterate nobles and cultivated monks.

Wealthy Europeans, when discussing how democracy works, often think that in any government, property owners are the same as the intelligent and educated class. That's not true in American democracy. Anyone who has worked at a large American university can confirm that democratic systems create many wealthy people who lack education and many educated people who aren't wealthy, just like medieval society had uneducated nobles and learned monks.

Persons who object to manhood suffrage as the last resort for the settlement of public questions are bound to show where, in all the world, a juster or more practicable regulation or convention has been arrived at. The objectors ought at least to indicate where the ultimate decision should, in their judgment, rest—as, for example, with the land-owners, or the property-holders, or the graduates of secondary schools, or the professional classes. He would be a bold political philosopher who, in these days, should propose that the ultimate tribunal should be constituted in any of these ways. All the experience of the civilized world fails to indicate a safe personage, a safe class, or a safe minority, with which to deposit this power of ultimate decision. On the contrary, the experience of civilization indicates that no select person or class can be trusted with that power, no matter what the principle of selection. The convention that the majority of males shall decide public questions has obviously great recommendations. It is apparently fairer than the rule of any minority, and it is sure to be supported by an adequate physical force. Moreover, its decisions are likely to enforce themselves. Even in matters of doubtful prognostication, the fact that a majority of the males do the prophesying tends to the fulfillment of the prophecy. At any rate, the adoption or partial adoption of universal male suffrage by several civilized nations is coincident with unexampled ameliorations in the condition of the least fortunate and most numerous classes of the population. To this general amelioration many causes have doubtless contributed; but it is reasonable to suppose that the acquisition of the power which comes with votes has had something to do with it.

People who oppose men’s suffrage as the final method for settling public issues need to explain where, in the whole world, a fairer or more practical regulation or agreement has been established. Those who object should at least suggest where they think the ultimate decision should lie—whether it's with landowners, property holders, graduates of secondary schools, or the professional classes. It would be quite daring for a modern political philosopher to propose that the ultimate authority should be made up of any of these groups. All the experience of the civilized world fails to show a trustworthy individual, class, or minority to hand over this ultimate decision-making power. On the contrary, civilization's experience suggests that no chosen individual or class can be trusted with that power, regardless of how they are selected. The idea that a majority of males will decide public matters has clear advantages. It seems fairer than any minority rule, and it is likely to be backed by sufficient physical force. Furthermore, its decisions are likely to carry themselves out. Even in situations with uncertain outcomes, the fact that a majority of males are making predictions tends to make those predictions come true. In any case, the full or partial adoption of universal male suffrage by several civilized nations has coincided with unprecedented improvements in the conditions of the least fortunate and most numerous groups in society. Many factors have likely contributed to this overall improvement, but it’s reasonable to assume that gaining the power that comes with voting has played a role.

Timid or conservative people often stand aghast at the possible directions of democratic desire, or at some of the predicted results of democratic rule; but meantime the actual experience of the American democracy proves: 1, that property has never been safer under any form of government; 2, that no people have ever welcomed so ardently new machinery, and new inventions generally; 3, that religious toleration was never carried so far, and never so universally accepted; 4, that nowhere have the power and disposition to read been so general; 5, that nowhere has governmental power been more adequate, or more freely exercised, to levy and collect taxes, to raise armies and to disband them, to maintain public order, and to pay off great public debts—national, State, and town; 6, that nowhere have property and well-being been so widely diffused; and 7, that no form of government ever inspired greater affection and loyalty, or prompted to greater personal sacrifices in supreme moments. In view of these solid facts, speculations as to what universal suffrage would have done in the seventeenth and eighteenth centuries, or may do in the twentieth, seem futile indeed. The most civilized nations of the world have all either adopted this final appeal to manhood suffrage, or they are approaching that adoption by rapid stages. The United States, having no customs or traditions of an opposite sort to overcome, have led the nations in this direction, and have had the honor of devising, as a result of practical experience, the best safeguards for universal suffrage, safeguards which, in the main, are intended to prevent hasty public action, or action based on sudden discontents or temporary spasms of public feeling. These checks are intended to give time for discussion and deliberation, or, in other words, to secure the enlightenment of the voters before the vote. If, under new conditions, existing safeguards prove insufficient, the only wise course is to devise new safeguards.

Timid or conservative people often stand shocked at the possible directions of democratic wishes, or at some of the predicted outcomes of democratic governance; but in the meantime, the actual experience of American democracy shows: 1. that property has never been safer under any form of government; 2. that no people have ever welcomed new technology and inventions as eagerly; 3. that religious tolerance has never gone so far and been so widely accepted; 4. that nowhere have the power and willingness to read been so widespread; 5. that government authority has never been more effective, or more freely exercised, to collect taxes, raise armies and disband them, maintain public order, and settle large public debts—national, state, and local; 6. that nowhere have property and well-being been so broadly distributed; and 7. that no form of government has ever inspired greater love and loyalty, or encouraged more personal sacrifices in critical moments. Considering these solid facts, speculations about what universal suffrage would have achieved in the seventeenth and eighteenth centuries, or might achieve in the twentieth, seem pointless. The most advanced nations in the world have either adopted manhood suffrage as the final appeal, or they are rapidly moving towards it. The United States, with no contrasting customs or traditions to overcome, has led the way in this direction and has had the honor of creating, through practical experience, the best safeguards for universal suffrage—safeguards primarily aimed at preventing rushed public decisions or actions driven by sudden discontent or temporary emotional responses. These measures are meant to allow time for discussion and thoughtful consideration, ensuring that voters are informed before casting their votes. If, under new circumstances, current safeguards are found lacking, the sensible approach is to create new protections.

The United States have made to civilization a fourth contribution of a very hopeful sort, to which public attention needs to be directed, lest temporary evils connected therewith should prevent the continuation of this beneficent action. The United States have furnished a demonstration that people belonging to a great variety of races or nations are, under favorable circumstances, fit for political freedom. It is the fashion to attribute to the enormous immigration of the last fifty years some of the failures of the American political system, and particularly the American failure in municipal government, and the introduction in a few States of the rule of the irresponsible party foremen known as "bosses." Impatient of these evils, and hastily accepting this improbable explanation of them, some people wish to depart from the American policy of welcoming immigrants. In two respects the absorption of large numbers of immigrants from many nations into the American commonwealth has been of great service to mankind. In the first place, it has demonstrated that people who at home have been subject to every sort of aristocratic or despotic or military oppression become within less than a generation serviceable citizens of a republic; and, in the second place, the United States have thus educated to freedom many millions of men. Furthermore, the comparatively high degree of happiness and prosperity enjoyed by the people of the United States has been brought home to multitudes in Europe by friends and relatives who have emigrated to this country, and has commended free institutions to them in the best possible way. This is a legitimate propaganda vastly more effective than any annexation or conquest of unwilling people, or of people unprepared for liberty.

The United States has made a hopeful fourth contribution to civilization that needs public attention, so that temporary issues related to it don’t hinder this positive action. The U.S. has demonstrated that people from a wide range of races and nations can be prepared for political freedom under the right conditions. It's common to blame the massive immigration over the last fifty years for some failures in the American political system, especially in local governments, and for introducing the rule of irresponsible party bosses. Frustrated with these problems and quickly accepting this unlikely explanation, some people want to change the American policy of welcoming immigrants. However, in two ways, absorbing large numbers of immigrants from various nations has greatly benefited humanity. First, it has proven that people who have faced different types of aristocratic, despotic, or military oppression can become valuable citizens of a republic in less than a generation. Second, the United States has educated millions of men in the principles of freedom. Moreover, the relatively high levels of happiness and prosperity experienced by Americans have been communicated to many in Europe through friends and relatives who immigrated to this country, showcasing free institutions in the best way possible. This is a legitimate form of influence that is far more effective than any annexation or conquest of unwilling or unprepared people.

It is a great mistake to suppose that the process of assimilating foreigners began in this century. The eighteenth century provided the colonies with a great mixture of peoples, although the English race predominated then, as now. When the Revolution broke out, there were already English, Irish, Scotch, Dutch, Germans, French, Portuguese, and Swedes in the colonies. The French were, to be sure, in small proportion, and were almost exclusively Huguenot refugees, but they were a valuable element in the population. The Germans were well diffused, having established themselves in New York, Pennsylvania, Virginia, and Georgia. The Scotch were scattered through all the colonies. Pennsylvania, especially, was inhabited by an extraordinary mixture of nationalities and religions. Since steam-navigation on the Atlantic and railroad transportation on the North American continent became cheap and easy, the tide of immigration has greatly increased; but it is very doubtful if the amount of assimilation going on in the nineteenth century has been any larger, in proportion to the population and wealth of the country, than it was in the eighteenth. The main difference in the assimilation going on in the two centuries is this, that in the eighteenth century the newcomers were almost all Protestants, while in the nineteenth century a considerable proportion have been Catholics. One result, however, of the importation of large numbers of Catholics into the United States has been a profound modification of the Roman Catholic Church in regard to the manners and customs of both the clergy and the laity, the scope of the authority of the priest, and the attitude of the Catholic Church toward public education. This American modification of the Roman Church has reacted strongly on the Church in Europe.

It's a big mistake to think that the process of integrating foreigners started in this century. The eighteenth century brought a diverse mix of people to the colonies, even though the English population was the largest, as it is today. By the time the Revolution began, there were already English, Irish, Scottish, Dutch, German, French, Portuguese, and Swedish people living in the colonies. The French made up a small percentage and were mostly Huguenot refugees, yet they were an important part of the population. The Germans were spread out, establishing communities in New York, Pennsylvania, Virginia, and Georgia. The Scots were found throughout all the colonies. Pennsylvania, in particular, was home to an extraordinary mix of nationalities and religions. Since steam navigation on the Atlantic and railroad transportation across North America became cheap and easily accessible, immigration has dramatically increased; however, it’s questionable whether the level of assimilation in the nineteenth century has been any greater, relative to the population and wealth of the country, than it was in the eighteenth. The main difference in the assimilation between the two centuries is that in the eighteenth century, nearly all newcomers were Protestants, while in the nineteenth century, a significant number were Catholics. One outcome of the large influx of Catholics into the United States has been a significant change in the Roman Catholic Church regarding the behaviors and customs of both clergy and laity, the extent of the priest's authority, and the Church's stance on public education. This American adaptation of the Roman Church has had a strong impact on the Church in Europe.

Another great contribution to civilization made by the United States is the diffusion of material well-being among the population. No country in the world approaches the United States in this respect. It is seen in that diffused elementary education which implants for life a habit of reading, and in the habitual optimism which characterizes the common people. It is seen in the housing of the people and of their domestic animals, in the comparative costliness of their food, clothing, and household furniture, in their implements, vehicles, and means of transportation, and in the substitution, on a prodigious scale, of the work of machinery for the work of men’s hands. This last item in American well-being is quite as striking in agriculture, mining, and fishing, as it is in manufactures. The social effects of the manufacture of power, and of the discovery of means of putting that power just where it is wanted, have been more striking in the United States than anywhere else. Manufactured and distributed power needs intelligence to direct it: the bicycle is a blind horse, and must be steered at every instant; somebody must show a steam-drill where to strike and how deep to go. So far as men and women can substitute for the direct expenditure of muscular strength the more intelligent effort of designing, tending, and guiding machines, they win promotion in the scale of being, and make their lives more interesting as well as more productive. It is in the invention of machinery for producing and distributing power, and at once economizing and elevating human labor, that American ingenuity has been most conspicuously manifested. The high price of labor in a sparsely-settled country has had something to do with this striking result; but the genius of the people and of their government has had much more to do with it. As proof of the general proposition, it suffices merely to mention the telegraph and telephone, the sewing-machine, the cotton-gin, the mower, reaper, and threshing-machine, the dish-washing machine, the river steamboat, the sleeping-car, the boot and shoe machinery, and the watch machinery. The ultimate effects of these and kindred inventions are quite as much intellectual as physical, and they are developing and increasing with a portentous rapidity which sometimes suggests a doubt whether the bodily forces of men and women are adequate to resist the new mental strains brought upon them. However this may prove to be in the future, the clear result in the present is an unexampled diffusion of well-being in the United States.

Another significant contribution to civilization made by the United States is the widespread material prosperity among its population. No other country in the world compares to the U.S. in this regard. It's seen in the widespread access to basic education that instills a lifelong habit of reading and in the persistent optimism that defines ordinary people. It's evident in the quality of housing for both people and their pets, the relatively higher costs of their food, clothing, and household furniture, and in their tools, vehicles, and means of transportation. There's also a remarkable shift towards using machinery to perform tasks that were once done by hand. This transformation is just as notable in agriculture, mining, and fishing as it is in manufacturing. The social impact of generating power and figuring out how to deploy it effectively has been more pronounced in the U.S. than anywhere else. Manufactured and distributed power requires intelligence to manage: the bicycle is a mindless vehicle that needs constant steering; someone must direct a steam drill on where to strike and how deep to drill. As people can replace physical exertion with smarter efforts in designing, operating, and managing machines, they elevate their status and make their lives more engaging and productive. American creativity is particularly evident in inventing machinery that produces and distributes power while saving and enhancing human labor. The high cost of labor in a sparsely populated nation has contributed to this remarkable outcome, but the ingenuity of the people and their government has played a far larger role. To illustrate this point, one only needs to mention the telegraph and telephone, the sewing machine, the cotton gin, the mower, reaper, and threshing machine, the dishwasher, the river steamboat, the sleeper car, machinery for making boots and shoes, and watch machinery. The eventual impacts of these and similar inventions are as much mental as they are physical, and they are growing at an alarming speed that sometimes raises concerns about whether people's physical capabilities can keep up with the new mental demands placed on them. Regardless of what the future holds, the clear outcome now is an unprecedented spread of prosperity in the United States.

These five contributions to civilization—peace-keeping, religious toleration, the development of manhood suffrage, the welcoming of newcomers, and the diffusion of well-being—I hold to have been eminently characteristic of our country, and so important that, in spite of the qualifications and deductions which every candid citizen would admit with regard to every one of them, they will ever be held in the grateful remembrance of mankind. They are reasonable grounds for a steady, glowing patriotism. They have had much to do, both as causes and as effects, with the material prosperity of the United States; but they are all five essentially moral contributions, being triumphs of reason, enterprise, courage, faith, and justice, over passion, selfishness, inertness, timidity, and distrust. Beneath each one of these developments there lies a strong ethical sentiment, a strenuous moral and social purpose. It is for such work that multitudinous democracies are fit.

These five contributions to civilization—keeping the peace, religious tolerance, the development of universal manhood suffrage, welcoming newcomers, and spreading well-being—I believe have been defining features of our country and are so significant that, despite the qualifications and exceptions that any honest citizen would acknowledge regarding each of them, they will always be remembered with gratitude by humanity. They provide solid reasons for a lasting, vibrant sense of patriotism. They have greatly influenced both the causes and effects of the material prosperity of the United States; however, all five are fundamentally moral contributions, representing victories of reason, initiative, bravery, faith, and justice over passion, selfishness, complacency, fear, and distrust. Behind each of these developments lies a strong ethical feeling and a dedicated moral and social purpose. It is for such endeavors that countless democracies are suited.

In regard to all five of these contributions, the characteristic policy of our country has been from time to time threatened with reversal—is even now so threatened. It is for true patriots to insist on the maintenance of these historic purposes and policies of the people of the United States. Our country’s future perils, whether already visible or still unimagined, are to be met with courage and constancy founded firmly on these popular achievements in the past.

Concerning all five of these contributions, the basic policy of our country has faced threats of change now and then—and it’s still at risk. It’s up to true patriots to advocate for the preservation of these historic goals and policies of the American people. The future challenges our country faces, whether we can see them now or they remain unknown, must be confronted with courage and determination based on the significant accomplishments of the past.

I TALK OF DREAMS

W.D. Howells

BUT it is mostly my own dreams I talk of, and that will somewhat excuse me for talking of dreams at all. Everyone knows how delightful the dreams are that one dreams one’s self, and how insipid the dreams of others are. I had an illustration of the fact, not many evenings ago, when a company of us got telling dreams. I had by far the best dreams of any; to be quite frank, mine were the only dreams worth listening to; they were richly imaginative, delicately fantastic, exquisitely whimsical, and humorous in the last degree; and I wondered that when the rest could have listened to them they were always eager to cut in with some silly, senseless, tasteless thing that made me sorry and ashamed for them. I shall not be going too far if I say that it was on their part the grossest betrayal of vanity that I ever witnessed.

But mostly, I’m talking about my own dreams, and that somewhat justifies my discussion about dreams in general. Everyone knows how wonderful our own dreams can be and how dull the dreams of others are. I had a perfect example of this not long ago when a group of us started sharing our dreams. Mine were by far the best; to be honest, they were the only ones worth hearing. They were richly imaginative, delightfully fantastic, wonderfully whimsical, and hilariously funny. I was surprised that instead of listening to mine, they always jumped in with some silly, nonsensical, tasteless stories that made me feel embarrassed for them. I don't think it's too much to say that it was the worst display of vanity I’ve ever seen.

But the egotism of some people concerning their dreams is almost incredible. They will come down to breakfast and bore everybody with a recital of the nonsense that has passed through their brains in sleep, as if they were not bad enough when they were awake; they will not spare the slightest detail; and if, by the mercy of Heaven, they have forgotten something, they will be sure to recollect it, and go back and give it all over again with added circumstance. Such people do not reflect that there is something so purely and intensely personal in dreams that they can rarely interest anyone but the dreamer, and that to the dearest friend, the closest relation or connection, they can seldom be otherwise than tedious and impertinent. The habit husbands and wives have of making each other listen to their dreams is especially cruel. They have each other quite helpless, and for this reason they should all the more carefully guard themselves from abusing their advantage. Parents should not afflict their offspring with the rehearsal of their mental maunderings in sleep, and children should learn that one of the first duties a child owes its parents is to spare them the anguish of hearing what it has dreamed about overnight. A like forbearance in regard to the community at large should be taught as the first trait of good manners in the public schools, if we ever come to teach good manners there.

But the self-importance of some people about their dreams is almost unbelievable. They will sit down for breakfast and bore everyone with a recounting of the nonsense that went through their heads while they were sleeping, as if it wasn’t bad enough when they were awake; they won’t skip a single detail; and if, by some miracle, they’ve forgotten something, they’ll definitely remember it and go back to share it all over again with even more embellishments. These people don’t realize that dreams are so personal and intense that they rarely interest anyone but the dreamer, and even to the closest friend or family member, they can often be tedious and annoying. The tendency of husbands and wives to make each other listen to their dreams is particularly cruel. They have each other completely at their mercy, and because of this, they should be even more careful not to abuse that privilege. Parents shouldn’t burden their children with a replay of their nighttime thoughts, and kids should understand that one of the first responsibilities they have to their parents is to spare them the pain of hearing about their dreams from the night before. This kind of restraint towards the wider community should also be taught as a fundamental aspect of good manners in public schools, if we ever get around to teaching good manners there.

I

Certain exceptional dreams, however, are so imperatively significant, so vitally important, that it would be wrong to withhold them from the knowledge of those who happened not to dream them, and I feel some such quality in my own dreams so strongly that I could scarcely forgive myself if I did not, however briefly, impart them. It was only the last week, for instance, that I found myself one night in the company of the Duke of Wellington, the great Duke, the Iron one, in fact; and after a few moments of agreeable conversation on topics of interest among gentlemen, his Grace said that now, if I pleased, he would like a couple of those towels. We had not been speaking of towels, that I remember, but it seemed the most natural thing in the world that he should mention them in the connection, whatever it was, and I went at once to get them for him. At the place where they gave out towels, and where I found some very civil people, they told me that what I wanted was not towels, and they gave me instead two bath-gowns, of rather scanty measure, butternut in color and Turkish in texture. The garments made somehow a very strong impression upon me, so that I could draw them now, if I could draw anything, as they looked when they were held up to me. At the same moment, for no reason that I can allege, I passed from a social to a menial relation to the Duke, and foresaw that when I went back to him with those bath-gowns he would not thank me as one gentleman would another, but would offer me a tip as if I were a servant. This gave me no trouble, for I at once dramatized a little scene between myself and the Duke, in which I should bring him the bath-gowns, and he should offer me the tip, and I should refuse it with a low bow, and say that I was an American. What I did not dramatize, or what seemed to enter into the dialogue quite without my agency, was the Duke’s reply to my proud speech. It was foreshown me that he would say, He did not see why that should make any difference. I suppose it was in the hurt I felt at this wound to our national dignity that I now instantly invented the society of some ladies, whom I told of my business with those bath-gowns (I still had them in my hands), and urged them to go with me and call upon the Duke. They expressed, somehow, that they would rather not, and then I urged that the Duke was very handsome. This seemed to end the whole affair, and I passed on to other visions, which I cannot recall.

Certain exceptional dreams are so incredibly significant and important that it would be wrong to keep them from those who didn't experience them. I feel some of that significance in my own dreams so strongly that I would hardly forgive myself if I didn't share them, even briefly. Just last week, for instance, I found myself one night in the company of the Duke of Wellington, the great Duke, the Iron Duke, in fact. After a few moments of enjoyable conversation on topics interesting to gentlemen, he mentioned that he would like a couple of towels. I didn't remember us talking about towels, but it felt completely natural for him to bring them up in whatever context we had been discussing, so I went right away to get them for him. At the place where they distributed towels, where I encountered some very polite staff, they told me that what I needed wasn’t towels but rather two bath-gowns, of rather limited size, butternut in color and Turkish in texture. Those garments made a strong impression on me, and I could draw them now if I could draw anything, just as they looked when they were handed to me. At the same time, for no reason I could identify, I shifted from a social role to a menial one in relation to the Duke, and I envisioned that when I returned with those bath-gowns, he wouldn't thank me like a gentleman would another, but instead would offer me a tip as if I were a servant. This didn't bother me at all, because I instantly imagined a little scene with the Duke where I would present the bath-gowns, he would offer me a tip, and I would refuse it with a low bow, saying that I was an American. What I didn’t foresee, or what seemed to pop up in the dialogue without my control, was the Duke's response to my proud assertion. I felt it would be said that he didn’t see why that should make any difference. I suppose it was the sting I felt from this insult to our national pride that led me to create an imaginary society of ladies, to whom I explained my task with the bath-gowns (which I still held), urging them to join me in visiting the Duke. They somehow conveyed that they'd prefer not to, and then I insisted that the Duke was very handsome. This seemed to wrap up the whole situation, and I moved on to other visions, which I can't recall.

I have not often had a dream of such international import, in the offense offered through me to the American character and its well-known superiority to tips, but I have had others quite as humiliating to me personally. In fact, I am rather in the habit of having such dreams, and I think I may not unjustly attribute to them the disciplined modesty which the reader will hardly fail to detect in the present essay. It has more than once been my fate to find myself during sleep in battle, where I behave with so little courage as to bring discredit upon our flag and shame upon myself. In these circumstances I am not anxious to make even a showing of courage; my one thought is to get away as rapidly and safely as possible. It is said that this is really the wish of all novices under fire, and that the difference between a hero and a coward is that the hero hides it, with a duplicity which finally does him honor, and that the coward frankly runs away. I have never really been in battle, and if it is anything like a battle in dreams I would not willingly qualify myself to speak by the card on this point. Neither have I ever really been upon the stage, but in dreams I have often been there, and always in a great trouble of mind at not knowing my part. It seems a little odd that I should not sometimes be prepared, but I never am, and I feel that when the curtain rises I shall be disgraced beyond all reprieve. I dare say it is the suffering from this that awakens me in time, or changes the current of my dreams so that I have never yet been actually hooted from the stage.

I haven't often had a dream with such global significance, especially regarding the offense caused to the American spirit and its obvious superiority to tips, but I've had other dreams that were just as embarrassing for me personally. In fact, I tend to have such dreams, and I think I can justly attribute to them the disciplined modesty that the reader will likely notice in this essay. More than once, I've found myself in my sleep, A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0, in battle, where I act with so little bravery that it brings shame to our flag and to myself. In those moments, I’m not even concerned about trying to be brave; my only thought is to escape as quickly and safely as possible. It’s said that this is the true desire of all beginners in combat, and that the difference between a hero and a coward is that the hero conceals his fear, with a cleverness that ultimately earns him respect, while the coward just runs away. I've never actually been in battle, and if it's anything like the battles I dream about, I wouldn't confidently claim to be qualified to speak on this. I’ve also never really been on stage, but in my dreams, I often find myself there, always anxiously realizing that I don’t know my lines. It seems strange that I wouldn’t be prepared sometimes, but I never am, and I fear that when the curtain goes up, I’ll be utterly humiliated. I suppose the anxiety about this wakes me up in time or shifts the direction of my dreams, so I’ve never actually been booed off stage.

II

But I do not so much object to these ordeals as to some social experiences which I have in dreams. I cannot understand why one should dream of being slighted or snubbed in society, but this is what I have done more than once, though never perhaps so signally as in the instance I am about to give. I found myself in a large room, where people were sitting at lunch or supper around small tables, as is the custom, I am told, at parties in the houses of our nobility and gentry. I was feeling very well; not too proud, I hope, but in harmony with the time and place. I was very well dressed, for me; and as I stood talking to some ladies at one of the tables I was saying some rather brilliant things, for me; I lounged easily on one foot, as I have observed men of fashion do, and as I talked, I flipped my gloves, which I held in one hand, across the other; I remember thinking that this was a peculiarly distinguished action. Upon the whole I comported myself like one in the habit of such affairs, and I turned to walk away to another table, very well satisfied with myself and with the effect of my splendor upon the ladies. But I had got only a few paces off when I perceived (I could not see with my back turned) one of the ladies lean forward, and heard her say to the rest in a tone of killing condescension and patronage: "I don’t see why that person isn’t as well as another."

But I don’t really mind these challenges as much as some social experiences I have in my dreams. I can’t understand why someone would dream about being ignored or disrespected in social settings, yet I’ve experienced this more than once, although never quite as dramatically as in the example I’m about to share. I found myself in a large room where people were having lunch or dinner at small tables, as I’ve heard is common at parties hosted by our nobility and gentry. I was feeling good; not overly proud, I hope, but in tune with the occasion and atmosphere. I was dressed quite nicely for me, and as I stood talking to some ladies at one of the tables, I was saying some rather clever things, at least for me; I leaned casually on one foot, as fashionable men do, and while I spoke, I flipped my gloves, which I held in one hand, across the other; I remember thinking this was a particularly distinguished move. Overall, I was behaving like someone used to such gatherings, and as I turned to walk to another table, I felt very pleased with myself and the impression my elegance had made on the ladies. But I had only taken a few steps when I noticed (I couldn’t see with my back turned) one of the ladies lean forward and heard her say to the others in a tone of cutting condescension and superiority: "I don’t see why that person isn’t as good as anyone else."

I say that I do not like this sort of dreams, and I never would have them if I could help. They make me ask myself if I am really such a snob when I am waking, and this in itself is very unpleasant. If I am, I cannot help hoping that it will not be found out; and in my dreams I am always less sorry for the misdeeds I commit than for their possible discovery. I have done some very bad things in dreams which I have no concern for whatever, except as they seem to threaten me with publicity or bring me within the penalty of the law; and I believe this is the attitude of most other criminals, remorse being a fiction of the poets, according to the students of the criminal class. It is not agreeable to bring this home to one’s self, but the fact is not without its significance in another direction. It implies that both in the case of the dream-criminal and the deed-criminal there is perhaps the same taint of insanity; only in the deed-criminal it is active, and in the dream-criminal it is passive. In both, the inhibitory clause that forbids evil is off, but the dreamer is not bidden to do evil as the maniac is, or as the malefactor often seems to be. The dreamer is purely unmoral; good and bad are the same to his conscience; he has no more to do with right and wrong than the animals; he is reduced to the state of the merely natural man; and perhaps the primitive men were really like what we all are now in our dreams. Perhaps all life to them was merely dreaming, and they never had anything like our waking consciousness, which seems to be the offspring of conscience, or else the parent of it. Until men passed the first stage of being, perhaps that which we call the soul, for want of a better name, or a worse, could hardly have existed, and perhaps in dreams the soul is mostly absent now. The soul, or the principle that we call the soul, is the supernal criticism of the deeds done in the body, which goes perpetually on in the waking mind. While this watches, and warns or commands, we go right; but when it is off duty we go neither right nor wrong, but are as the beasts that perish.

I say I don’t like these kinds of dreams, and I would never have them if I could avoid it. They make me wonder if I’m really that much of a snob when I’m awake, which is itself pretty uncomfortable. If I am, I can’t help hoping it won’t be discovered; and in my dreams, I’m always more worried about being found out than about the bad things I do. I’ve committed some pretty terrible acts in my dreams that don’t bother me at all, except for the fear of exposure or facing legal consequences; and I believe this is true for most other criminals, since remorse is just a fictional idea according to those who study the criminal mind. It’s not pleasant to confront this about oneself, but the fact does hold some important implications. It suggests that both dream criminals and actual criminals might share a kind of insanity; only, for the actual criminals, it’s active, while for dream criminals, it’s passive. In both cases, the moral restraint that prevents wrongdoing is absent, but the dreamer isn’t compelled to do evil like a maniac is, or like many criminals often appear to be. The dreamer is simply amoral; good and bad mean nothing to their conscience; they relate to right and wrong no more than animals do; they revert to the state of the purely natural human; and maybe primitive people were genuinely like what we all become in our dreams. Perhaps for them, all of life was just dreaming, and they never experienced anything like our waking consciousness, which seems to stem from, or give rise to, conscience. Until humans evolved beyond their initial state, perhaps what we refer to as the soul, for lack of a better term, might not have really existed, and maybe the soul is often absent in dreams now. The soul, or the principle we call the soul, serves as the ultimate judgement of the actions performed in the body, constantly functioning in the waking mind. As long as this faculty is alert, we do right; but when it's disengaged, we neither do right nor wrong, but act like the beasts that perish.

A common theory is that the dreams which we remember are those we have in the drowse which precedes sleeping and waking; but I do not altogether accept this theory. In fact, there is very little proof of it. We often wake from a dream, literally, but there is no proof that we did not dream in the middle of the night the dream which is quite as vividly with us in the morning as the one we wake from. I should think that the dream which has some color of conscience in it was the drowse-dream, and that the dream which has none is the sleep-dream; and I believe that the most of our dreams will be found by this test to be sleep-dreams. It is in these we may know what we would be without our souls, without their supernal criticism of the mind; for the mind keeps on working in them, with the lights of waking knowledge, both experience and observation, but ruthlessly, remorselessly. By them we may know what the state of the habitual criminal is, what the state of the lunatic, the animal, the devil is. In them the personal character ceases; the dreamer is remanded to his type.

A common theory is that the dreams we remember are the ones we have while drifting in and out of sleep; however, I don’t fully agree with this theory. In fact, there's very little evidence to support it. We often wake up from a dream, but there's no proof that we didn't dream in the middle of the night, experiencing a dream just as vivid in the morning as the one we woke from. I think that dreams with some sense of conscience are the ones we have while drifting, while the ones that lack this are the deeper sleep dreams; I believe that most of our dreams will turn out to be the latter. These dreams reveal what we would be like without our souls, without their higher judgment over our thoughts; the mind continues to work in them, using the knowledge we have from both experience and observation, but without compassion or mercy. Through these dreams, we can understand the state of habitual criminals, the insane, the animalistic, and the devilish. In these dreams, personal character fades away; the dreamer is reduced to their archetype.

III

It is very strange, in the matter of dreadful dreams, how the body of the terror is, in the course of often dreaming, reduced to a mere convention. For a long time I was tormented with a nightmare of burglars, and at first I used to dramatize the whole affair in detail, from the time the burglars approached the house till they mounted the stairs and the light of their dark-lanterns shone under the door into my room. Now I have blue-penciled all that introductory detail; I have a light shining in under my door at once; I know that it is my old burglars; and I have the effect of nightmare without further ceremony. There are other nightmares that still cost me a great deal of trouble in their construction, as, for instance, the nightmare of clinging to the face of a precipice or the eaves of a lofty building; I have to take as much pains with the arrangement of these as if I were now dreaming them for the first time and were hardly more than an apprentice in the business.

It's really strange how, when it comes to nightmares, the fear can become just a ritual over time. For a long while, I was haunted by a dream about burglars, and at first, I'd play the whole thing out in detail—from the moment the burglars came near the house to when they climbed the stairs and the light from their lanterns shone under my door. Now I've cut out all that introductory stuff; I can see the light coming under my door right away; I know it’s my usual burglars, and I experience the nightmare without any extra fuss. There are still some nightmares that take a lot of effort to create, like the one where I'm hanging on the edge of a cliff or the roof of a tall building; I have to work as hard on those as if I were dreaming them for the first time and was still just a novice at it.

Perhaps the most universal dream of all is that disgraceful dream of appearing in public places and in society with very little or nothing on. This dream spares neither age nor sex, I believe, and I daresay the innocency of wordless infancy is abused by it and dotage pursued to the tomb. I have not the least doubt Adam and Eve had it in Eden; though, up to the moment the fig-leaf came in, it is difficult to imagine just what plight they found themselves in that seemed improper; probably there was some plight. The most amusing thing about this dream is the sort of defensive process that goes on in the mind in search of self-justification or explanation. Is there not some peculiar circumstance or special condition in whose virtue it is wholly right and proper for one to come to a fashionable assembly clad simply in a towel, or to go about the street in nothing but a pair of kid gloves, or of pajamas at the most? This, or something like it, the mind of the dreamer struggles to establish, with a good deal of anxious appeal to the bystanders and a final sense of the hopelessness of the cause.

Perhaps the most universal dream of all is that embarrassing fantasy of being in public places and in society with very little or nothing on. I believe this dream affects people of all ages and genders, and I’d venture to say that even the innocence of infancy is violated by it, while old age follows it to the grave. I have no doubt that Adam and Eve experienced it in Eden; though, until the fig leaf came into play, it's hard to imagine what situation they found themselves in that seemed inappropriate; there was probably something. The most amusing aspect of this dream is the kind of defensive reasoning that occurs in the mind as it searches for self-justification or explanation. Isn’t there some peculiar circumstance or special condition under which it is absolutely right and acceptable for someone to show up at a trendy gathering dressed only in a towel, or to walk around the street in just a pair of kid gloves, or at most, pajamas? This, or something similar, is what the dreamer’s mind struggles to establish, with a great deal of anxious appeal to onlookers and a final sense of the futility of the argument.

One may easily laugh off this sort of dream in the morning, but there are other shameful dreams whose inculpation projects itself far into the day, and whose infamy often lingers about one till lunch-time. Everyone, nearly, has had them, but it is not the kind of dream that anyone is fond of telling: the gross vanity of the most besotted dream-teller keeps that sort back. During the forenoon, at least, the victim goes about with the dim question whether he is not really that kind of man harassing him, and a sort of remote fear that he may be. I fancy that as to his nature and as to his mind he is so, and that but for the supernal criticism, but for his soul, he might be that kind of man in very act and deed.

You might easily laugh off this kind of dream in the morning, but there are other embarrassing dreams whose guilt can stick with you throughout the day, and whose shame often hangs around until lunch. Almost everyone has experienced them, but it’s not the type of dream that anyone wants to share: even the most self-absorbed dream-teller tends to keep those to themselves. At least for the morning, the person dealing with it carries a nagging doubt about whether he might actually be that kind of person, along with a distant fear that he could be. I believe that deep down, in his nature and his thoughts, he is that way, and that without higher judgment, without his conscience, he could very well act on those tendencies.

The dreams we sometimes have about other people are not without a curious suggestion; and the superstitious (of those superstitious who like to invent their own superstitions) might very well imagine that the persons dreamed of had a witting complicity in their facts, as well as the dreamer. This is a conjecture that must, of course, not be forced to any conclusion. One must not go to one of these persons and ask, however much one would like to ask: "Sir, have you no recollection of such and such a thing, at such and such a time and place, which happened to us in my dream?" Any such person would be fully justified in not answering the question. It would be, of all interviewing, the most intolerable species. Yet a singular interest, a curiosity not altogether indefensible, will attach to these persons in the dreamer’s mind, and he will not be without the sense, ever after, that he and they have a secret in common. This is dreadful, but the only thing that I can think to do about it is to urge people to keep out of other people’s dreams by every means in their power.

The dreams we sometimes have about other people come with an interesting suggestion; and those who are superstitious (especially those who like to make up their own superstitions) might think that the people they dream about are somehow involved in those dreams, just like the dreamer. This is a theory that shouldn’t be pushed too far. You shouldn’t approach one of these people and ask, no matter how much you want to: “Hey, do you remember something that happened to us in my dream at this time and place?” Anyone asked that would be completely justified in not responding. It would be the most uncomfortable kind of questioning. Yet, a strange interest and an understandable curiosity will linger in the dreamer's mind about these individuals, and they will always feel that they share a secret with them. This is unsettling, but the only thing I can suggest is for people to stay out of others’ dreams by any means possible.

IV

There are things in dreams very awful, which would not be at all so in waking—quite witless and aimless things, which at the time were of such baleful effect that it remains forever. I remember dreaming when I was quite a small boy, not more than ten years old, a dream which is vivider in my mind now than anything that happened at the time. I suppose it came remotely from my reading of certain "Tales of the Grotesque and the Arabesque," which had just then fallen into my hands; and it involved simply an action of the fire-company in the little town where I lived. They were working the brakes of the old fire-engine, which would seldom respond to their efforts, and as their hands rose and fell they set up the heart-shaking and soul-desolating cry of "Arms Poe! arms Poe! arms Poe!" This and nothing more was the body of my horror; and if the reader is not moved by it the fault is his and not mine; for I can assure him that nothing in my experience had been more dreadful to me.

There are some really terrifying things in dreams that wouldn’t be scary at all when awake—completely pointless and foolish things, yet at the time they felt so awful that they stick with you forever. I remember dreaming as a small boy, no more than ten years old, about a dream that is clearer in my mind now than anything that happened back then. I guess it stemmed from my reading of "Tales of the Grotesque and the Arabesque," which I had just come across; it was simply about the fire department in the small town where I lived. They were trying to get the old fire engine to work, which rarely responded to their efforts, and as their hands moved up and down, they let out this heart-pounding and soul-crushing cry of "Arms Poe! arms Poe! arms Poe!" This, and nothing more, was the source of my terror; and if the reader isn’t affected by it, that’s on him, not me; because I can assure you that nothing in my experience was more horrifying.

I can hardly except the dismaying apparition of a clown whom I once saw, somewhat later in life, rise through the air in a sitting posture and float lightly over the house-roof, snapping his fingers and vaguely smiling, while the antennæ on his forehead, which clowns have in common with some other insects, nodded elasticity. I do not know why this portent should have been so terrifying, or indeed that it was a portent at all, for nothing ever came of it; what I know is that it was to the last degree threatening and awful. I never got anything but joy out of the circuses where this dream must have originated, but the pantomime of "Don Giovanni," which I saw at the theater, was as grewsome to me waking as it was to me dreaming. The statue of the Commendatore, in getting down from his horse to pursue the wicked hero (I think that is what he gets down for), set an example by which a long line of statues afterward profited in my dreams. For many years, and I do not know but quite up to the time when I adopted burglars as the theme of my nightmares, I was almost always chased by a marble statue with an uplifted arm, and almost always I ran along the verge of a pond to escape it. I believe that I got this pond out of my remote childhood, and that it may have been a fish-pond embowered by weeping-willows which I used to admire in the door-yard of a neighbor. I have somehow a greater respect for the material of this earlier nightmare than I have for that of the later ones, and no doubt the reader will agree with me that it is much more romantic to be pursued by a statue than to be threatened by burglars. It is but a few hours ago, however, that I saved myself from these inveterate enemies by waking up just in time for breakfast. They did not come with that light of the dark-lanterns shining under the door, or I should have known them at once, and not had so much bother; but they intimated their presence in the catch of the lock, which would not close securely, and there was some question at first whether they were not ghosts. I thought of tying the doorknob on the inside of my room to my bedpost (a bedpost that has not been in existence for fifty years), but after suffering awhile I decided to speak to them from an upper window. By this time they had turned into a trio of harmless, necessary tramps, and at my appeal to them absolutely nonsensical as I now believe it to have been, to regard the peculiar circumstances, whatever they were or were not, they did really get up from the back porch where they were seated and go quietly away.

I can hardly accept the unsettling vision of a clown I once saw, later in life, rising into the air in a sitting position and gliding gently over the roof, snapping his fingers and vaguely smiling, while the antennae on his forehead, which clowns share with some other insects, waved back and forth. I don’t know why this scene was so terrifying, or if it was even a warning at all, since nothing ever came of it; all I know is that it felt extremely threatening and awful. I only got joy from the circuses where this dream must have originated, but the pantomime of "Don Giovanni," which I saw at the theater, was as grim to me while awake as it was while dreaming. The statue of the Commendatore, getting down from his horse to chase the villainous hero (I think that’s why he got down), set a precedent that many statues followed in my dreams. For many years, and I think right up until I started having nightmares about burglars, I was almost always chased by a marble statue with an outstretched arm, and I almost always ran along the edge of a pond to escape it. I believe this pond comes from my distant childhood, and it might have been a fish pond surrounded by weeping willows that I admired in a neighbor’s yard. I have a strange respect for the material of this earlier nightmare compared to my later ones, and I’m sure the reader will agree that it’s much more romantic to be chased by a statue than to be threatened by burglars. Just a few hours ago, though, I managed to escape from these persistent enemies by waking up just in time for breakfast. They didn’t come with the light from dark lanterns shining under the door, or I would have recognized them immediately and saved myself a lot of trouble; instead, they made their presence known through the lock that wouldn’t close tightly, and at first, there was some uncertainty about whether they were actually ghosts. I thought about tying the doorknob on the inside of my room to my bedpost (which hasn’t existed for fifty years), but after a while, I decided to talk to them from an upper window. By then, they had turned into a trio of harmless, necessary tramps, and despite my appeal to them—which now seems completely nonsensical—to consider the unusual circumstances, whatever they were, they did actually get up from the back porch where they were sitting and quietly left.

Burglars are not always so easily to be entreated. On one occasion, when I found a party of them digging at the corner of my house on Concord Avenue in Cambridge, and opened the window over them to expostulate, the leader looked up at me in well-affected surprise. He lifted his hand, with a twenty-dollar note in it, toward me, and said: "Oh! Can you change me a twenty-dollar bill?" I expressed a polite regret that I had not so much money about me, and then he said to the rest, "Go ahead, boys," and they went on undermining my house. I do not know what came of it all.

Burglars aren't always easy to deal with. Once, when I caught a group of them digging at the corner of my house on Concord Avenue in Cambridge, I opened the window to talk to them. The leader looked up at me with a fake surprise. He held up a twenty-dollar bill and asked, "Oh! Can you change a twenty for me?" I politely said that I didn’t have that much cash on me, and then he told the others, "Keep going, guys," and they continued digging under my house. I have no idea what happened after that.

Of ghosts I have seldom dreamed, so far as I can remember; in fact, I have never dreamed of the kind of ghosts that we are all more or less afraid of, though I have dreamed rather often of the spirits of departed friends. But I once dreamed of dying, and the reader, who has never died yet, may be interested to know what it is like. According to this experience of mine, which I do not claim is typical, it is like a fire kindling in an air-tight stove with paper and shavings; the gathering smoke and gases suddenly burst into flame and puff the door out, and all is over.

I've rarely dreamed of ghosts, as far as I can remember; in fact, I've never dreamed of the type of ghosts that tend to scare us, even though I've often dreamed of the spirits of friends who've passed away. However, I once had a dream about dying, and for the reader who hasn't experienced it yet, you might be curious about what it's like. Based on my experience, which I don’t claim is the norm, it feels like a fire igniting in a sealed stove with paper and shavings; the accumulating smoke and gases suddenly explode into flames, pushing the door open, and then it’s all over.

I have not yet been led to execution for the many crimes I have committed in my dreams, but I was once in the hands of a barber who added to the shaving and shampooing business the art of removing his customers’ heads in treatment for headache. As I took my seat in his chair I had some lingering doubts as to the effect of a treatment so drastic, and I ventured to mention the case of a friend of mine, a gentleman somewhat eminent in the law, who after several weeks was still going about without his head. The barber did not attempt to refute my position. He merely said: "Oh, well, he had such a very thick sort of a head, anyway."

I haven’t been executed yet for all the crimes I’ve committed in my dreams, but there was a time when I found myself in the hands of a barber who combined shaving and shampooing with the unique service of removing his customers’ heads as a cure for headaches. As I sat in his chair, I had some doubts about such a drastic treatment, so I brought up a friend of mine—a lawyer who was somewhat well-known—who was still wandering around without his head after several weeks. The barber didn’t try to argue with me. He just said, “Oh, well, he had a really thick head anyway.”

This was a sarcasm, but I think it was urged as a reason, though it may not have been. We rarely bring away from sleep the things that seem so brilliant to us in our dreams. Verse is especially apt to fade away, or turn into doggerel in the memory, and the witty sayings which we contrive to remember will hardly bear the test of daylight. The most perfect thing of the kind out of my own dreams was something that I seemed to wake with the very sound of in my ears. It was after a certain dinner, which had been rather uncommonly gay, with a good deal of very good talk, which seemed to go on all night, and when I woke in the morning someone was saying: "Oh, I shouldn’t at all mind his robbing Peter to pay Paul, if I felt sure that Paul would get the money." This I think really humorous, and an extremely neat bit of characterization; I feel free to praise it, because it was not I who said it.

This was sarcasm, but I think it was given as a reason, even though it might not have been. We rarely remember the things that seem so brilliant in our dreams. Poetry especially tends to fade away or turn into nonsense in our memory, and the witty remarks we manage to remember usually don’t hold up in the light of day. The best example from my dreams was something I seemed to wake up hearing. It was after a particularly lively dinner filled with great conversation that went on all night, and when I woke up in the morning, someone was saying: "Oh, I wouldn’t mind him robbing Peter to pay Paul at all, if I felt sure that Paul would actually get the money." I find this really funny and a very clever bit of characterization; I feel free to praise it because it wasn’t me who said it.

V

Apparently the greater part of dreams have no more mirth than sense in them. This is perhaps because the man is in dreams reduced to the brute condition, and is the lawless inferior of the waking man intellectually, as the lawless in waking are always the inferiors of the lawful. Some loose thinkers suppose that if we give the rein to imagination it will do great things, but it will really do little things, foolish and worthless things, as we witness in dreams, where it is quite unbridled. It must keep close to truth, and it must be under the law if it would work strongly and sanely. The man in his dreams is really lower than the lunatic in his deliriums. These have a logic of their own; but the dreamer has not even a crazy logic.

Most dreams aren’t much more amusing than they are sensible. This might be because, in dreams, a person is reduced to a primal state, lacking the intellectual control of their waking self, just as those who act without restraint in real life are usually beneath those who follow the rules. Some careless thinkers believe that if we let our imagination run wild, it will achieve great things, but in reality, it tends to produce trivial, foolish, and worthless ideas, as seen in dreams where it is completely unchecked. It needs to stay grounded in truth and operate within the boundaries of reason to have any real strength or sanity. A dreamer, in fact, is in a worse state than a lunatic in their delusions. The latter has their own kind of logic, but the dreamer lacks even that.

"Like a dog, he hunts in his dreams,"

and probably his dreams and the dog’s are not only alike, but are of the same quality. In his wicked dreams the man is not only animal, he is devil, so wholly is he let into his evils, as the Swedenborgians say. The wrong is indifferent to him until the fear of detection and punishment steals in upon him. Even then he is not sorry for his misdeed, as I have said before; he is only anxious to escape its consequences.

and probably his dreams and the dog’s are not just similar, but are of the same kind. In his wicked dreams, the man is not just animal, he is devil, so completely is he consumed by his bad nature, as the Swedenborgians say. The wrongdoing doesn’t bother him until the fear of getting caught and punished creeps in. Even then, he doesn’t feel remorse for his actions, as I mentioned before; he only wants to avoid the consequences.

It seems probable that when this fear makes itself felt he is near to waking; and probably when we dream, as we often do, that the thing is only a dream, and hope for rescue from it by waking, we are always just about to wake. This double effect is very strange, but still more strange is the effect which we are privy to in the minds of others when they not merely say things to us which are wholly unexpected, but think things that we know they are thinking, and that they do not express in words. A great many years ago, when I was young, I dreamed that my father, who was in another town, came into the room where I was really lying asleep and stood by my bed. He wished to greet me, after our separation, but he reasoned that if he did so I should wake, and he turned and left the room without touching me. This process in his mind, which I knew as clearly and accurately as if it had apparently gone on in my own, was apparently confined to his mind as absolutely as anything could be that was not spoken or in any wise uttered.

It seems likely that when this fear starts to be felt, he's close to waking up; and probably when we dream, as we often do, that it's just a dream and hope to be rescued from it by waking, we are usually just about to wake up. This dual sensation is very strange, but even stranger is the effect we can sense in the minds of others when they not only say things to us that are completely unexpected but also think things that we know they are thinking but don't express in words. Many years ago, when I was young, I dreamed that my father, who was in another town, came into the room where I was actually sleeping and stood by my bed. He wanted to greet me after our time apart but figured that if he did, I would wake up, so he turned and left the room without touching me. This thought process in his mind, which I understood clearly and accurately as if it had been happening in my own, seemed to be completely contained in his mind, as definitively as anything could be that wasn't spoken or otherwise expressed.

Of course, it was of my agency, like any other part of the dream, and it was something like the operation of the novelist’s intention through the mind of his characters. But in this there is the author’s consciousness that he is doing it all himself, while in my dream this reasoning in the mind of another was something that I felt myself mere witness of. In fact, there is no analogy, so far as I can make out, between the process of literary invention and the process of dreaming. In the invention, the critical faculty is vividly and constantly alert; in dreaming, it seems altogether absent. It seems absent, too, in what we call day-dreaming, or that sort of dramatizing action which perhaps goes on perpetually in the mind, or some minds. But this day-dreaming is not otherwise any more like night-dreaming than invention is; for the man is never more actively and consciously a man, and never has a greater will to be fine and high and grand than in his day-dreams, while in his night-dreams he is quite willing to be a miscreant of any worst sort.

Of course, it was my choice, just like any other part of the dream, and it was something like how a novelist's intention works through the minds of their characters. But in this, there's a conscious awareness from the author that they’re in control, while in my dream, this reasoning in someone else's mind felt like something I was just witnessing. In fact, as far as I can tell, there’s no real comparison between the process of creating literature and the process of dreaming. In creation, the critical mind is vividly aware and constantly alert; in dreaming, it seems completely absent. It also seems absent in what we call daydreaming, or that kind of dramatic thinking that might be happening continuously in the mind, or some minds. But this daydreaming isn’t really any more similar to night dreaming than creative invention is; because a person is never more actively and consciously themselves, and never has a greater desire to be noble and elevated than when they’re daydreaming, while in their night dreams, they’re perfectly willing to be the worst kind of person.

It is very remarkable, in view of this fact, that we have now and then, though ever so much more rarely, dreams that are as angelic as those others are demoniac. Is it possible that then the dreamer is let into his goods (the word is Swedenborg’s again) instead of his evils? It may be supposed that in sleep the dreamer lies passive, while his proper soul is away, and other spirits, celestial and infernal, have free access to his mind, and abuse it to their own ends in the one case, and use it in his behalf in the other.

It's quite striking, considering this, that every now and then—though much less frequently—we have dreams that are as heavenly as those others are hellish. Is it possible that, in those moments, the dreamer is accessed by his good side (the term is Swedenborg’s again) instead of his bad side? One could argue that while asleep, the dreamer is passive, with his true self absent, and that different spirits, both celestial and infernal, have free rein over his mind—manipulating it for their own purposes in one scenario, and supporting him in the other.

That would be an explanation, but nothing seems quite to hold in regard to dreams. If it is true, why should the dreamer’s state so much oftener be imbued with evil than with good? It might be answered that the evil forces are much more positive and aggressive than the good; or that the love of the dreamer, which is his life, being mainly evil, invites the wicked spirits oftener. But that is a point which I would rather leave each dreamer to settle for himself. The greater number of everyone’s dreams, like the romantic novel, I fancy, concern incident rather than character, and I am not sure, after all, that the dream which convicts the dreamer of an essential baseness is commoner than the dream that tells in his favor morally.

That could be an explanation, but nothing really seems to add up when it comes to dreams. If it's true, why are dreamers often filled with negativity more than positivity? One might say that negative forces are more assertive and impactful than the positive ones; or that the dreamer’s own life, which is largely influenced by negativity, attracts darker spirits more often. But I’d rather leave that question for each dreamer to figure out on their own. Most of everyone’s dreams, like a romantic novel, seem to focus more on events than on character, and I'm not entirely convinced that dreams revealing a fundamental flaw in the dreamer are more common than those that portray them in a morally favorable light.

I daresay every reader of this book has had dreams so amusing that he has wakened himself from them by laughing, and then not found them so very funny, or perhaps not been able to recall them at all. I have had at least one of this sort, remarkable for other reasons, which remains perfect in my mind, though it is now some ten years old. One of the children had been exposed to a very remote chance of scarlet-fever at the house of a friend, and had been duly scolded for the risk, which was then quite forgotten. I dreamed that this friend, however, was giving a ladies’ lunch, at which I was unaccountably and invisibly present, and the talk began to run upon the scarlet-fever cases in her family. She said that after the last she had fumigated the whole house for seventy-two hours (the period seemed very significant and important in my dream), and had burned everything she could lay her hands on.

I bet every reader of this book has had dreams so funny that they've woken themselves up laughing, only to realize later that they weren't that funny at all, or maybe even forgotten them entirely. I have at least one dream like that, notable for other reasons, which remains vivid in my mind, even though it’s now about ten years old. One of the kids had been exposed to a very slim chance of scarlet fever at a friend's house, and had been appropriately scolded for taking that risk, which was then totally forgotten. I dreamed that this friend was hosting a ladies’ lunch, at which I was mysteriously and invisibly present, and the conversation turned to the scarlet fever cases in her family. She mentioned that after the last case, she had fumigated the entire house for seventy-two hours (that timeframe felt very significant and important in my dream), and had burned everything she could find.

"And what did the nurse burn?" asked one of the other ladies.

"And what did the nurse burn?" one of the other ladies asked.

The hostess began to laugh. "The nurse didn’t burn a thing!"

The hostess started laughing. "The nurse didn't burn anything!"

Then all the rest burst out laughing at the joke, and the laughter woke me, to see the boy sitting up in his bed and hear him saying: "Oh, I am so sick!"

Then everyone else burst out laughing at the joke, and their laughter woke me up. I saw the boy sitting up in his bed, and I heard him say, "Oh, I feel so sick!"

It was the nausea which announces scarlet-fever, and for six weeks after that we were in quarantine. Very likely the fear of the contagion had been in my nether mind all the time, but, so far as consciousness could testify of it, I had wholly forgotten it.

It was the nausea that signals scarlet fever, and for six weeks after that, we were in quarantine. The fear of the contagion had likely been in the back of my mind the whole time, but as far as I could tell, I had completely forgotten about it.

VI

One rarely loses one’s personality in dreams; it is rather intensified, with all the proper circumstances and relations of it, but I have had at least one dream in which I seemed to transcend my own circumstance and condition with remarkable completeness. Even my epoch, my precious present, I left behind (or ahead, rather), and in my unity with the persons of my dream I became strictly mediæval. In fact, I have always called it my mediæval dream, to such as I could get to listen to it; and it had for its scene a feudal tower in some waste place, a tower open at the top and with a deep, clear pool of water at the bottom, so that it instantly became known to me, as if I had always known it, for the Pool Tower. While I stood looking into it, in a mediæval dress and a mediæval mood, there came flying in at the open door of the ruin beside me the duke’s hunchback, and after him, furious and shrieking maledictions, the swarthy beauty whom I was aware the duke was tired of. The keeping was now not only ducal, but thoroughly Italian, and it was suggested somehow to my own subtle Italian perception that the hunchback had been set on to tease the girl and provoke her so that she would turn upon him and try to wreak her fury on him and chase him into the Pool Tower and up the stone stairs that wound round its hollow to the top, where the solemn sky showed. The fearful spire of the steps was unguarded, and when I had lost the pair from sight, with the dwarf’s mocking laughter and the girl’s angry cries in my ears, there came fluttering from the height, like a bird wounded and whirling from a lofty tree, the figure of the girl, while far aloof the hunchback peered over at her fall. Midway in her descent her head struck against the edge of the steps, with a kish, such as an egg-shell makes when broken against the edge of a platter, and then plunged into the dark pool at my feet, where I could presently see her lying in the clear depths and the blood curling upward from the wound in her skull like a dark smoke. I was not sensible of any great pity; I accepted the affair, quite mediævally, as something that might very well have happened, given the girl, the duke and the dwarf, and the time and place.

One rarely loses one’s personality in dreams; instead, it becomes more intense, complete with all the relevant circumstances and relationships. However, I have had at least one dream where I felt I fully transcended my own situation. Even my time, my cherished present, was left behind (or ahead, rather), and in my connection with the people in my dream, I became distinctly medieval. In fact, I've always referred to it as my medieval dream, to anyone who would listen. It took place in a feudal tower in a desolate area, a tower open at the top with a deep, clear pool of water at the bottom. I instantly recognized it, as if I had always known it, as the Pool Tower. While I was gazing into it, dressed and feeling medieval, the duke's hunchback rushed in through the open door of the ruins beside me, followed by the dark-haired beauty, who I sensed the duke was tired of, screaming and cursing. The atmosphere felt not just noble but completely Italian, and somehow I picked up that the hunchback had been told to tease the girl, provoke her into turning on him, and rush him up the stone stairs that spiraled up to the top, where the solemn sky was visible. The steep staircase was unguarded, and when I lost sight of them, with the dwarf's mocking laughter and the girl's furious cries still ringing in my ears, the girl came tumbling down from above, like a wounded bird falling from a tall tree, while the hunchback watched from a distance. Midway in her fall, her head struck the edge of the steps with a kish, like an eggshell breaking against a plate, and then she plunged into the dark pool at my feet. I could soon see her lying in the clear depths, blood rising from the wound in her head like dark smoke. I didn’t feel much pity; I accepted the situation, quite medievally, as something that could easily happen, given the girl, the duke, the dwarf, and the time and place.

I am rather fond of a mediæval setting for those

I really like a medieval setting for those

"Dreams that flicker in front of a partly closed eye,"

just closing for an afternoon nap. Then I invite to my vision a wide landscape, with a cold, wintry afternoon light upon it, and over this plain I have bands and groups of people scurrying, in mediæval hose of divers colors and mediæval leathern jerkins, hugging themselves against the frost, and very miserable. They affect me with a profound compassion; they represent to me, somehow, the vast mass of humanity, the mass that does the work, and earns the bread, and goes cold and hungry through all the ages. I should be at a loss to say why this was the effect, and I am utterly unable to say why these fore-dreams, which I partially solicit, should have such a tremendous significance as they seem to have. They are mostly of the most evanescent and intangible character, but they have one trait in common. They always involve the attribution of ethical motive and quality to material things, and in their passage through my brain they promise me a solution of the riddle of the painful earth in the very instant when they are gone forever. They are of innumerable multitude, chasing each other with the swiftness of light, and never staying to be seized by the memory, which seems already drugged with sleep before their course begins. One of these dreams, indeed, I did capture, and I found it to be the figure 8, but lying on its side, and in that posture involving the mystery and the revelation of the mystery of the universe. I leave the reader to imagine why.

just closing for an afternoon nap. Then I envision a vast landscape, illuminated by the cold light of a wintry afternoon. Over this plain, I see groups of people scurrying about, dressed in colorful medieval stockings and leather tunics, trying to keep warm against the frost and looking quite miserable. They evoke deep compassion in me; somehow, they represent the immense mass of humanity—the ones who do the work, earn their keep, and endure cold and hunger throughout the ages. I can’t quite explain why this effect happens, and I have no idea why these pre-dreams, which I partially welcome, carry such significant weight as they seem to. They are mostly fleeting and intangible, but they share one common trait. They always attribute ethical motives and qualities to material things, and as they pass through my mind, they promise a solution to the riddle of the painful earth just at the moment they disappear forever. There are countless of them, racing past like lightning, never stopping long enough to be caught by memory, which feels already drowsy before they even begin. One of these dreams, I did manage to capture, and it turned out to be the figure 8, but lying on its side, which in that position hints at the mystery and revelation of the universe. I leave it to the reader to imagine why.

As we grow older, I think we are less and less able to remember our dreams. This is perhaps because the experience of youth is less dense, and the empty spaces of the young consciousness are more hospitable to these airy visitants. A few dreams of my later life stand out in strong relief, but for the most part they blend in an indistinguishable mass, and pass away with the actualities into a common oblivion. I should say that they were more frequent with me than they used to be; it seems to me that now I dream whole nights through, and much more about the business of my waking life than formerly. As I earn my living by weaving a certain sort of dreams into literary form, it might be supposed that I would some time dream of the personages in these dreams, but I cannot remember that I have ever done so. The two kinds of inventing, the voluntary and the involuntary, seem absolutely and finally distinct.

As we get older, I think we find it harder to remember our dreams. This might be because youth experiences are less intense, and the open spaces of a young mind welcome these fleeting visitors more easily. A few dreams from my later years stand out clearly, but for the most part, they mix into an indistinguishable blur and fade away with reality into a shared oblivion. I would say that they are more frequent for me now than they used to be; it feels like I dream through entire nights, and much more about my waking life than before. Since I make a living by weaving a certain kind of dreams into literary form, you might think that I would occasionally dream about the characters from these dreams, but I can’t recall ever doing that. The two types of creation, the intentional and the unintentional, seem completely and fundamentally separate.

Of the prophetic dreams which people sometimes have I have mentioned the only one of mine which had any dramatic interest, but I have verified in my own experience the theory of Ribot that approaching disease sometimes intimates itself in dreams of the disorder impending, before it is otherwise declared in the organism. In actual sickness I think that I dream rather less than in health. I had a malarial fever when I was a boy, and I had a sort of continuous dream in it that distressed me greatly. It was of gliding down the school-house stairs without touching my feet to the steps, and this was indescribably appalling.

Of the prophetic dreams that people sometimes have, I've mentioned the only one of mine that was particularly dramatic. However, I've confirmed through my own experience the theory from Ribot that an approaching illness can sometimes manifest in dreams before it becomes evident in the body. When I’m actually sick, I tend to dream less than when I'm healthy. I had a malarial fever when I was a kid, and during that time, I had a sort of continuous dream that really upset me. It involved gliding down the schoolhouse stairs without my feet touching the steps, and it was incredibly terrifying.

The anguish of mind that one suffers from the imaginary dangers of dreams is probably of the same quality as that inspired by real peril in waking. A curious proof of this happened within my knowledge not many years ago. One of the neighbor’s children was coasting down a long hill with a railroad at the foot of it, and as he neared the bottom an express-train rushed round the curve. The flag-man ran forward and shouted to the boy to throw himself off his sled, but he kept on and ran into the locomotive, and was so hurt that he died. His injuries, however, were to the spine, and they were of a kind that rendered him insensible to pain while he lived. He talked very clearly and calmly of his accident, and when he was asked why he did not throw himself off his sled, as the flag-man bade him, he said: "I thought it was a dream." The reality had, through the mental stress, no doubt transmuted itself to the very substance of dreams, and he had felt the same kind and quality of suffering as he would have done if he had been dreaming. The Norwegian poet and novelist Björnstjerne Björnson was at my house shortly after this happened, and he was greatly struck by the psychological implications of the incident; it seemed to mean for him all sorts of possibilities in the obscure realm where it cast a fitful light.

The mental anguish one experiences from the imagined dangers of dreams is likely similar to that caused by real threats while awake. A striking example of this occurred a few years ago. One of the neighbor’s kids was sledding down a long hill that ended near a railroad track, and as he approached the bottom, an express train came speeding around the bend. The flagman rushed forward and shouted for the boy to get off his sled, but he continued and collided with the train, sustaining injuries that led to his death. However, his injuries were to his spine, which made him unable to feel pain while he was alive. He spoke very clearly and calmly about his accident, and when asked why he did not listen to the flagman and get off his sled, he replied: "I thought it was a dream." The reality, due to the mental strain, had likely transformed into something that felt like a dream, and he experienced the same type of suffering as he would have in a dream. The Norwegian poet and novelist Björnstjerne Björnson visited my house shortly after this incident, and he was deeply impressed by the psychological implications; it seemed to open up various possibilities in the mysterious area it illuminated.

But such a glimmer soon fades, and the darkness thickens round us again. It is not with the blindfold sense of sleep that we shall ever find out the secret of life, I fancy, either in the dreams which seem personal to us each one, or those universal dreams which we apparently share with the whole race. Of the race-dream, as I may call it, there is one hardly less common than that dream of going about insufficiently clad, which I have already mentioned, and that is the dream of suddenly falling from some height and waking with a start. The experience before the start is extremely dim, and latterly I have condensed this dread almost as much as the preliminary passages of my burglar-dream. I am aware of nothing but an instant of danger, and then comes the jar or jolt that wakens me. Upon the whole, I find this a great saving of emotion, and I do not know but there is a tendency, as I grow older, to shorten up the detail of what may be styled the conventional dream, the dream which we have so often that it is like a story read before. Indeed, the plots of dreams are not much more varied than the plots of romantic novels, which are notoriously stale and hackneyed. It would be interesting, and possibly important, if some observer would note the recurrence of this sort of dreams and classify their varieties. I think we should all be astonished to find how few and slight the variations were.

But that glimmer quickly fades, and the darkness closes in around us again. I don’t think we’ll ever uncover the secret of life through the blind sense of sleep, whether it's the dreams that feel personal to each of us or the universal dreams we seem to share with everyone. One common collective dream, which I can call a "race-dream," is almost as frequent as the dream of walking around underdressed, which I’ve already mentioned. That’s the dream of suddenly falling from a height and waking up with a jolt. Before the shock, the experience is extremely vague, and lately, I’ve managed to condense this fear just as much as the early parts of my burglar-dream. I only sense a moment of danger, and then the bump or jolt wakes me up. Overall, I find this a significant saving of emotion, and I don’t know if it’s just me getting older, but I feel like I'm shortening the details of what can be called the conventional dream—the kind we experience so often that it feels like a story we've heard before. In fact, the storylines of dreams aren’t much more varied than those of romantic novels, which are notoriously dull and overused. It would be interesting and perhaps important if someone were to track these kinds of dreams and categorize their types. I think we’d all be surprised to see how few and subtle the variations really are.

VII

If I come to speak of dreams concerning the dead, it must be with a tenderness and awe that all who have had them will share with me. Nothing is more remarkable in them than the fact that the dead, though they are dead, yet live, and are, to our commerce with them, quite like all other living persons. We may recognize, and they may recognize, that they are no longer in the body, but they are as verily living as we are. This may be merely an effect from the doctrine of immortality which we all hold or have held, and yet I would fain believe that it may be something like proof of it. No one really knows, or can know, but one may at least hope, without offending science, which indeed no longer frowns so darkly upon faith. This persistence of life in those whom we mourn as dead, may not it be a witness of the fact that the consciousness cannot accept the notion of death at all, and,

If I'm going to talk about dreams involving the dead, I have to do so with a tenderness and awe that anyone who has experienced them will understand. What stands out the most in these dreams is the fact that the dead, even though they're gone, still exist and feel just like any other living person in our interactions with them. We might realize, and they might realize, that they're no longer in their physical bodies, but they are just as alive as we are. This could simply be a result of the belief in immortality that we all share or have shared, and yet I’d like to think it might serve as some kind of proof of it. Nobody truly knows, or can know, but we can at least hope without upsetting science, which has actually become more accepting of faith. This continuation of life in those we grieve as dead might just be evidence that consciousness can't accept the idea of death at all, and,

"Whatever wild sorrow says,"

that we have never truly felt them lost? Sometimes those who have died come back in dreams as parts of a common life which seems never to have been broken; the old circle is restored without a flaw; but whether they do this, or whether it is acknowledged between them and us that they have died, and are now disembodied spirits, the effect of life is the same. Perhaps in those dreams they and we are alike disembodied spirits, and the soul of the dreamer, which so often seems to abandon the body to the animal, is then the conscious entity, the thing which the dreamer feels to be himself, and is mingling with the souls of the departed on something like the terms which shall hereafter be constant.

that we have never truly felt them lost? Sometimes those who have died come back in dreams as parts of a shared life that seems never to have been broken; the old circle is restored perfectly; but whether they do this, or whether it’s acknowledged between them and us that they have died and are now disembodied spirits, the impact of life is the same. Maybe in those dreams, they and we are both disembodied spirits, and the soul of the dreamer, which often seems to leave the body to the animal, is then the conscious entity, the thing that the dreamer feels is truly himself, and is mingling with the souls of the departed on terms that will be ever-present.

I think very few of those who have lost their beloved have failed to receive some sign or message from them in dreams, and often it is of deep and abiding consolation. It may be that this is our anguish compelling the echo of love out of the darkness where nothing is, but it may be that there is something there which answers to our throe with pity and with longing like our own. Again, no one knows, but in a matter impossible of definite solution I will not refuse the comfort which belief can give. Unbelief can be no gain, and belief no loss. But those dreams are so dear, so sacred, so interwoven with the finest and tenderest tissues of our being that one cannot speak of them freely, or indeed more than most vaguely. It is enough to say that one has had them, and to know that almost everyone else has had them, too. They seem to be among the universal dreams, and a strange quality of them is that, though they deal with a fact of universal doubt, they are, to my experience at least, not nearly so fantastic or capricious as the dreams that deal with the facts of every-day life and with the affairs of people still in this world.

I believe that very few people who have lost someone they love haven't received some kind of sign or message from them in dreams, and these dreams often bring deep comfort. It might be our pain stirring up echoes of love from the emptiness, but maybe there is something out there that responds to our suffering with compassion and longing, just like we feel. No one really knows for sure, but in a situation where there’s no clear answer, I won’t turn down the comfort that belief can provide. Disbelief offers no benefit, while belief brings no harm. Those dreams are so precious, so sacred, and so intertwined with the most delicate parts of our existence that it's hard to talk about them openly or even clearly. It’s enough to acknowledge that we've experienced them and to recognize that almost everyone else has, too. They seem to be among the common dreams, and what's interesting is that, despite addressing a universal uncertainty, they feel much more genuine and less random than the dreams that relate to the everyday lives and concerns of those still in this world.

I do not know whether it is common to dream of faces or figures strange to our waking knowledge, but occasionally I have done this. I suppose it is much the same kind of invention that causes the person we dream of to say or do a thing unexpected to us. But this is rather common, and the creation of a novel aspect, the physiognomy of a stranger, in the person we dream of, is rather rare. In all my dreams I can recall but one presence of the kind. I have never dreamed of any sort of monster foreign to my knowledge, or even of any grotesque thing made up of elements familiar to it; the grotesqueness has always been in the motive or circumstance of the dream. I have very seldom dreamed of animals, though once, when I was a boy, for a time after I had passed a corn-field where there were some bundles of snakes, writhen and knotted together in the cold of an early spring day, I had dreams infested by like images of those loathsome reptiles. I suppose that everyone has had dreams of finding his way through unnamable filth and of feeding upon hideous carnage; these are clearly the punishment of gluttony, and are the fumes of a rebellious stomach.

I don't know if it's common to dream about faces or figures that are unfamiliar to us, but I’ve experienced it now and then. I guess it’s similar to how someone in our dreams might say or do something surprising. But dreaming of a completely new appearance, the face of a stranger, is pretty rare. In all my dreams, I can only remember one instance like that. I've never dreamed of any kind of monster that I don't know, or even of any bizarre things made up of familiar parts; the strangeness has always come from the emotions or situations in the dream. I’ve rarely dreamed about animals, although once, when I was a kid, after passing a cornfield where there were some bundles of snakes all twisted together in the chilly early spring, I had dreams filled with those creepy images of snakes. I think most people have had dreams about wading through unimaginable muck and witnessing gruesome scenes; these clearly reflect the consequences of overindulgence and are like the aftermath of a rebellious stomach.

I have heard people say they have sometimes dreamed of a thing, and awakened from their dream and then fallen asleep and dreamed of the same thing; but I believe that this is all one continuous dream; that they did not really awaken, but only dreamed that they awakened. I have never had any such dream, but at one time I had a recurrent dream, which was so singular that I thought no one else had ever had a recurrent dream till I proved that it was rather common by starting the inquiry in the Contributors’ Club in the Atlantic Monthly, when I found that great numbers of people have recurrent dreams. My own recurrent dreams began to come during the first year of my consulate at Venice, where I had hoped to find the same kind of poetic dimness on the phases of American life, which I wished to treat in literature, as the distance in time would have given. I should not wish any such dimness now; but those were my romantic days, and I was sorely baffled by its absence. The disappointment began to haunt my nights as well as my days, and a dream repeated itself from week to week for a matter of eight or ten months to one effect. I dreamed that I had gone home to America, and that people met me and said, "Why, you have given up your place!" and I always answered: "Certainly not; I haven’t done at all what I mean to do there, yet. I am only here on my ten days’ leave." I meant the ten days which a consul might take each quarter without applying to the Department of State; and then I would reflect how impossible it was that I should make the visit in that time. I saw that I should be found out and dismissed from my office and publicly disgraced. Then, suddenly, I was not consul at Venice, and had not been, but consul at Delhi, in India; and the distress I felt would all end in a splendid Oriental phantasmagory of elephants and native princes, with their retinues in procession, which I suppose was mostly out of my reading of De Quincey. This dream, with no variation that I can recall, persisted till I broke it up by saying, in the morning after it had recurred, that I had dreamed that dream again; and so it began to fade away, coming less and less frequently, and at last ceasing altogether.

I've heard people say they sometimes dream of something, wake up, then fall asleep and dream of the same thing again. But I think it’s all part of one continuous dream; they didn’t really wake up; they just dreamed they did. I've never had such a dream, but I once had a recurring dream that was so unique that I thought no one else had experienced recurring dreams until I found out it was pretty common by starting a discussion in the Contributors’ Club in the Atlantic Monthly. Many people shared that they had recurring dreams too. My own recurring dreams started during my first year as consul in Venice, where I hoped to find the same kind of poetic haziness in American life that I wanted to explore in my writing, which time and distance would have provided. I wouldn’t want that kind of haziness now, but those were my romantic days, and I was really frustrated by its absence. This disappointment began to invade my dreams as well as my days, and a specific dream reoccurred weekly for about eight or ten months. I dreamed that I had returned home to America, and people greeted me, saying, "Why, you’ve given up your position!" and I would reply, "Of course not; I haven’t done what I intend to do there yet. I’m just on my ten days’ leave." I meant the ten days a consul could take each quarter without asking the Department of State; then I would realize how impossible it was to visit in that time. I knew I would be found out, dismissed from my position, and publicly humiliated. Then, suddenly, I was no longer consul in Venice but consul in Delhi, India; and the distress I felt would all turn into a magnificent Oriental fantasy of elephants and native princes, with their retinues parading, which I guess I mostly imagined from reading De Quincey. This dream, without any changes I can remember, continued until I broke the cycle by saying, the morning after it recurred, that I had dreamed that dream again; and from then on, it began to fade away, coming less often, and eventually stopping altogether.

I am rather proud of that dream; it is really my battle-horse among dreams, and I think I will ride away on it.

I’m pretty proud of that dream; it’s really my trusty steed among dreams, and I think I’m going to ride away on it.

[From Impressions and Experiences, by W. D. Howells. Copyright, 1896, by W. D. Howells.]

[From Impressions and Experiences, by W. D. Howells. Copyright, 1896, by W. D. Howells.]

AN IDYL OF THE HONEY-BEE

JOHN BURROUGHS

THERE is no creature with which man has surrounded himself that seems so much like a product of civilization, so much like the result of development on special lines and in special fields, as the honey-bee. Indeed, a colony of bees, with their neatness and love of order, their division of labor, their public-spiritedness, their thrift, their complex economies, and their inordinate love of gain, seems as far removed from a condition of rude nature as does a walled city or a cathedral town. Our native bee, on the other hand, the "burly, dozing humblebee," affects one more like the rude, untutored savage. He has learned nothing from experience. He lives from hand to mouth. He luxuriates in time of plenty, and he starves in times of scarcity. He lives in a rude nest, or in a hole in the ground, and in small communities; he builds a few deep cells or sacks in which he stores a little honey and bee-bread for his young, but as a worker in wax he is of the most primitive and awkward. The Indian regarded the honey-bee as an ill-omen. She was the white man’s fly. In fact she was the epitome of the white man himself. She has the white man’s craftiness, his industry, his architectural skill, his neatness and love of system, his foresight; and, above all, his eager, miserly habits. The honey-bee’s great ambition is to be rich, to lay up great stores, to possess the sweet of every flower that blooms. She is more than provident. Enough will not satisfy her; she must have all she can get by hook or by crook. She comes from the oldest country, Asia, and thrives best in the most fertile and long-settled lands.

There’s no creature that man has surrounded himself with that seems more like a product of civilization, more like the result of development in specific ways and areas, than the honeybee. A colony of bees, with their neatness and sense of order, their division of labor, their community spirit, their resourcefulness, their complex economies, and their excessive desire for wealth, feels as far removed from a state of wild nature as a walled city or a cathedral town. In contrast, our native bee, the "bulky, lazy bumblebee," resembles the unrefined, untaught savage. He hasn’t learned from his experiences. He lives hand-to-mouth, thriving when food is plentiful and starving during shortages. He resides in a simple nest or a hole in the ground and in small groups; he constructs a few deep cells or bags to store some honey and bee-bread for his young, but as a wax worker, he is quite primitive and clumsy. Indigenous people viewed the honeybee as a bad sign. She represented the white man’s nuisance. In fact, she embodied the white man himself. She possesses the white man’s cunning, his work ethic, his architectural talent, his neatness and love for organization, his foresight; and above all, his greedy, miserly tendencies. The honeybee’s main goal is to be wealthy, to hoard abundant supplies, to collect the sweetness of every flower that blooms. She is more than just prudent. Enough will never be enough for her; she needs to gather all she can by any means necessary. She comes from Asia, the oldest country, and thrives best in the most fertile and long-established lands.

Yet the fact remains that the honey-bee is essentially a wild creature, and never has been and cannot be thoroughly domesticated. Its proper home is the woods, and thither every new swarm counts on going; and thither many do go in spite of the care and watchfulness of the bee-keeper. If the woods in any given locality are deficient in trees with suitable cavities, the bees resort to all sorts of makeshifts; they go into chimneys, into barns and out-houses, under stones, into rocks, and so forth. Several chimneys in my locality with disused flues are taken possession of by colonies of bees nearly every season. One day, while bee-hunting, I developed a line that went toward a farmhouse where I had reason to believe no bees were kept. I followed it up and questioned the farmer about his bees. He said he kept no bees, but that a swarm had taken possession of his chimney, and another had gone under the clapboards in the gable end of his house. He had taken a large lot of honey out of both places the year before. Another farmer told me that one day his family had seen a number of bees examining a knothole in the side of his house; the next day, as they were sitting down to dinner, their attention was attracted by a loud humming noise, when they discovered a swarm of bees settling upon the side of the house and pouring into the knothole. In subsequent years other swarms came to the same place.

Yet the reality is that the honeybee is fundamentally a wild creature, and it has never been and cannot be fully domesticated. Its true home is in the woods, and every new swarm is eager to go there; many do end up there despite the care and vigilance of the beekeeper. If the woods in a given area lack trees with suitable cavities, the bees find all kinds of alternatives; they go into chimneys, barns, outbuildings, under stones, into rocks, and so on. Several chimneys in my area with unused flues are occupied by colonies of bees nearly every season. One day, while I was searching for bees, I followed a trail that led toward a farmhouse where I suspected no bees were kept. I pursued it and asked the farmer about his bees. He said he didn’t keep any, but a swarm had taken over his chimney, and another had settled under the clapboards in the gable end of his house. He had removed a large amount of honey from both spots the previous year. Another farmer told me that one day his family saw several bees investigating a knothole in the side of his house; the next day, as they were about to eat dinner, they heard a loud buzzing noise and discovered a swarm of bees landing on the side of the house and pouring into the knothole. In the following years, more swarms returned to the same spot.

Apparently every swarm of bees, before it leaves the parent hive, sends out exploring parties to look up the future home. The woods and groves are searched through and through, and no doubt the privacy of many a squirrel and many a wood-mouse is intruded upon. What cozy nooks and retreats they do spy out, so much more attractive than the painted hive in the garden, so much cooler in summer and so much warmer in winter!

Apparently, before every swarm of bees leaves the parent hive, they send out scout teams to find their new home. They thoroughly search the woods and groves, probably invading the privacy of many squirrels and wood mice. They discover such cozy nooks and retreats, so much more appealing than the painted hive in the garden, so much cooler in summer and so much warmer in winter!

The bee is in the main an honest citizen: she prefers legitimate to illegitimate business; she is never an outlaw until her proper sources of supply fail; she will not touch honey as long as honey yielding flowers can be found; she always prefers to go to the fountain-head, and dislikes to take her sweets at second hand. But in the fall, after the flowers have failed, she can be tempted. The bee-hunter takes advantage of this fact; he betrays her with a little honey. He wants to steal her stores, and he first encourages her to steal his, then follows the thief home with her booty. This is the whole trick of the bee-hunter. The bees never suspect his game, else by taking a circuitous route they could easily baffle him. But the honey-bee has absolutely no wit or cunning outside of her special gifts as a gatherer and storer of honey. She is a simple-minded creature, and can be imposed upon by any novice. Yet it is not every novice that can find a bee-tree. The sportsman may track his game to its retreat by the aid of his dog, but in hunting the honey-bee one must be his own dog, and track his game through an element in which it leaves no trail. It is a task for a sharp, quick eye, and may test the resources of the best woodcraft. One autumn, when I devoted much time to this pursuit, as the best means of getting at nature and the open-air exhilaration, my eye became so trained that bees were nearly as easy to it as birds. I saw and heard bees wherever I went. One day, standing on a street corner in a great city, I saw above the trucks and the traffic a line of bees carrying off sweets from some grocery or confectionery shop.

The bee is basically an honest citizen: she prefers legitimate work over illegal dealings; she only becomes a rogue when her usual food sources dry up; she won’t touch honey if there are flowers around that produce it; she always prefers to go directly to the source and doesn’t like getting her sugar secondhand. But in the fall, after the flowers are gone, she can be tempted. The bee-hunter takes advantage of this; he lures her in with a bit of honey. He wants to steal her stock, so he first tempts her to take his, then follows her home with her loot. That’s the entire trick of the bee-hunter. The bees never catch on to what he’s doing; otherwise, by taking a roundabout route, they could easily outsmart him. But the honeybee has no real cleverness or cunning beyond her knack for gathering and storing honey. She is a simple creature and can easily be fooled by any beginner. However, not every beginner can find a bee-tree. A hunter might track his game with the help of a dog, but in hunting for the honeybee, you have to rely on yourself and follow your target in an area where it leaves no trace. It’s a challenge for a sharp, observant eye and can test even the best woodsman. One autumn, when I spent a lot of time on this pursuit, thinking it was the best way to connect with nature and enjoy the fresh air, my eyesight became so trained that bees were nearly as easy for me to spot as birds. I saw and heard bees everywhere I went. One day, standing on a street corner in a busy city, I noticed above the trucks and the traffic a line of bees carrying sweets away from a grocery or candy shop.

One looks upon the woods with a new interest when he suspects they hold a colony of bees. What a pleasing secret it is,—a tree with a heart of comb honey, a decayed oak or maple with a bit of Sicily or Mount Hymettus stowed away in its trunk or branches; secret chambers where lies hidden the wealth of ten thousand little freebooters, great nuggets and wedges of precious ore gathered with risk and labor from every field and wood about!

One views the woods with fresh curiosity when there's a suspicion they contain a colony of bees. What a delightful secret it is—a tree filled with honeycomb, a weathered oak or maple hiding a piece of Sicily or Mount Hymettus in its trunk or branches; secret spaces that conceal the treasures of countless little adventurers, great nuggets and chunks of precious honey collected with effort and risk from every field and forest nearby!

But if you would know the delights of bee-hunting, and how many sweets such a trip yields beside honey, come with me some bright, warm, late September or early October day. It is the golden season of the year, and any errand or pursuit that takes us abroad upon the hills or by the painted woods and along the amber-colored streams at such a time is enough. So, with haversacks filled with grapes and peaches and apples and a bottle of milk,—for we shall not be home to dinner,—and armed with a compass, a hatchet, a pail, and a box with a piece of comb honey neatly fitted into it,—any box the size of your hand with a lid will do nearly as well as the elaborate and ingenious contrivance of the regular bee-hunter,—we sally forth. Our course at first lies along the highway under great chestnut-trees whose nuts are just dropping, then through an orchard and across a little creek, thence gently rising through a long series of cultivated fields toward some high uplying land behind which rises a rugged wooded ridge or mountain, the most sightly point in all this section. Behind this ridge for several miles the country is wild, wooded, and rocky, and is no doubt the home of many wild swarms of bees. What a gleeful uproar the robins, cedar-birds, high-holes, and cow blackbirds make amid the black cherry trees as we pass along! The raccoons, too, have been here after black cherries, and we see their marks at various points. Several crows are walking about a newly sowed wheatfield we pass through, and we pause to note their graceful movements and glossy coats. I have seen no bird walk the ground with just the same air the crow does. It is not exactly pride; there is no strut or swagger in it, though perhaps just a little condescension; it is the contented, complaisant, and self-possessed gait of a lord over his domains. All these acres are mine, he says, and all these crops; men plow and sow for me, and I stay here or go there, and find life sweet and good wherever I am. The hawk looks awkward and out of place on the ground; the game-birds hurry and skulk; but the crow is at home, and treads the earth as if there were none to molest or make him afraid.

But if you want to experience the joys of bee-hunting and discover how many treats such an adventure offers besides honey, join me on a sunny, warm day in late September or early October. It's the golden time of the year, and any reason to be out on the hills or near the colorful woods and amber streams during this season is worthwhile. So, with backpacks filled with grapes, peaches, apples, and a bottle of milk—since we won't be back for dinner—and equipped with a compass, a hatchet, a pail, and a container with a piece of honeycomb neatly placed inside it—any small box with a lid will work just as well as the fancy gear of a traditional bee-hunter—we set out. Our path initially follows the road beneath tall chestnut trees shedding their nuts, then through an orchard and across a small creek, gradually climbing through a long stretch of cultivated fields toward some elevated land behind which rises a rugged wooded ridge or mountain, the most picturesque spot in this area. Beyond this ridge, the landscape stretches for miles, wild and wooded and rocky, likely home to many wild swarms of bees. What a joyful noise the robins, cedar waxwings, flickers, and cow blackbirds make among the black cherry trees as we stroll by! The raccoons have been foraging for black cherries too, and we can see their tracks in various spots. Several crows are wandering around a freshly sown wheat field we pass through, and we stop to admire their graceful movements and shiny feathers. I’ve never seen any bird walk on the ground with the same confidence as the crow does. It’s not exactly pride; there’s no strut or swagger to it, though perhaps just a hint of condescension; it’s the relaxed, self-assured walk of a lord in his realm. “This land is all mine,” he seems to say, “and all these crops; men plow and sow for me, and I roam around enjoying life wherever I am.” The hawk looks clumsy and out of place on the ground; the game birds hurry and hide; but the crow is at home, walking the earth as if there were nothing to disturb him or cause him fear.

The crows we have always with us, but it is not every day or every season that one sees an eagle. Hence I must preserve the memory of one I saw the last day I went bee-hunting. As I was laboring up the side of a mountain at the head of a valley, the noble bird sprang from the top of a dry tree above me and came sailing directly over my head. I saw him bend his eye down upon me, and I could hear the low hum of his plumage as if the web of every quill in his great wings vibrated in his strong, level flight. I watched him as long as my eye could hold him. When he was fairly clear of the mountain he began that sweeping spiral movement in which he climbs the sky. Up and up he went, without once breaking his majestic poise, till he appeared to sight some far-off alien geography, when he bent his course thitherward and gradually vanished in the blue depths. The eagle is a bird of large ideas; he embraces long distances; the continent is his home. I never look upon one without emotion; I follow him with my eye as long as I can. I think of Canada, of the Great Lakes, of the Rocky Mountains, of the wild and sounding seacoast. The waters are his, and the woods and the inaccessible cliffs. He pierces behind the veil of the storm, and his joy is height and depth and vast spaces.

We always have crows around, but you don’t see an eagle every day or every season. So, I want to remember the one I saw the last time I went bee-hunting. As I was climbing up the side of a mountain at the end of a valley, this majestic bird flew down from the top of a dry tree right above me, gliding smoothly right over my head. I could see him looking down at me, and I could hear the soft hum of his feathers, as if every quill in his massive wings was vibrating during his strong, steady flight. I watched him for as long as I could keep him in sight. Once he cleared the mountain, he started that smooth spiral movement to climb higher into the sky. Up and up he soared, maintaining his incredible balance, until he seemed to spot some distant place and gradually disappeared into the blue expanse. The eagle has big ambitions; he covers long distances; the continent is his territory. I never see one without feeling something deep; I track him with my eyes for as long as I can. I think about Canada, the Great Lakes, the Rocky Mountains, and the rugged, echoing coast. The waters, the forests, and the steep cliffs belong to him. He sees beyond the storm, and his joy comes from heights and depths and vast spaces.

We go out of our way to touch at a spring run in the edge of the woods, and are lucky to find a single scarlet lobelia lingering there. It seems almost to light up the gloom with its intense bit of color. Beside a ditch in a field beyond, we find the great blue lobelia, and near it, amid the weeds and wild grasses and purple asters, the most beautiful of our fall flowers, the fringed gentian. What a rare and delicate, almost aristocratic look the gentian has amid its coarse, unkempt surroundings! It does not lure the bee, but it lures and holds every passing human eye. If we strike through the corner of yonder woods, where the ground is moistened by hidden springs, and where there is a little opening amid the trees, we shall find the closed gentian, a rare flower in this locality. I had walked this way many times before I chanced upon its retreat, and then I was following a line of bees. I lost the bees, but I got the gentians. How curious this flower looks with its deep blue petals folded together so tightly,—a bud and yet a blossom! It is the nun among our wild flowers,—a form closely veiled and cloaked. The buccaneer bumblebee sometimes tries to rifle it of its sweets. I have seen the blossom with the bee entombed in it. He had forced his way into the virgin corolla as if determined to know its secret, but he had never returned with the knowledge he had gained.

We make an effort to check out a spring run at the edge of the woods, and we’re fortunate to find a single scarlet lobelia still hanging on. It almost brightens up the gloom with its vibrant color. Next to a ditch in a field nearby, we come across the great blue lobelia, and close by, among the weeds and wild grasses and purple asters, is the most stunning of our fall flowers, the fringed gentian. The gentian has a rare and delicate, almost aristocratic look amid its rough surroundings! It doesn’t attract bees, but it definitely catches the eye of anyone passing by. If we push through the corner of that woods, where the ground is damp from hidden springs and there's a little opening among the trees, we’ll find the closed gentian, a rare flower in this area. I had walked this path many times before I stumbled upon its hiding place, and I was following a line of bees when I discovered it. I lost track of the bees, but I found the gentians instead. It’s interesting how this flower looks with its deep blue petals tightly folded together—part bud, part blossom! It’s like the nun of our wildflowers—a form closely covered and cloaked. The bold bumblebee sometimes tries to steal its nectar. I’ve seen a bumblebee trapped inside the flower. It had forced its way into the pure corolla as if determined to uncover its secret, but it never emerged with the knowledge it sought.

After a refreshing walk of a couple of miles we reach a point where we will make our first trial,—a high stone wall that runs parallel with the wooded ridge referred to, and separated from it by a broad field. There are bees at work there on that goldenrod, and it requires but little manœuvering to sweep one into our box. Almost any other creature rudely and suddenly arrested in its career, and clapped into a cage in this way, would show great confusion and alarm. The bee is alarmed for a moment, but the bee has a passion stronger than its love of life or fear of death, namely, desire for honey, not simply to eat, but to carry home as booty. "Such rage of honey in their bosom beats," says Virgil. It is quick to catch the scent of honey in the box, and as quick to fall to filling itself. We now set the box down upon the wall and gently remove the cover. The bee is head and shoulders in one of the half-filled cells, and is oblivious to everything else about it. Come rack, come ruin, it will die at work. We step back a few paces, and sit down upon the ground so as to bring the box against the blue sky as a background. In two or three minutes the bee is seen rising slowly and heavily from the box. It seems loath to leave so much honey behind, and it marks the place well. It mounts aloft in a rapidly increasing spiral, surveying the near and minute objects first, then the larger and more distant, till, having circled above the spot five or six times and taken all its bearings, it darts away for home. It is a good eye that holds fast to the bee till it is fairly off. Sometimes one’s head will swim following it, and often one’s eyes are put out by the sun. This bee gradually drifts down the hill, then strikes away toward a farmhouse half a mile away where I know bees are kept. Then we try another and another, and the third bee, much to our satisfaction, goes straight toward the woods. We could see the brown speck against the darker background for many yards. The regular bee-hunter professes to be able to tell a wild bee from a tame one by the color, the former, he says, being lighter. But there is no difference; they are both alike in color and in manner. Young bees are lighter than old, and that is all there is of it. If a bee lived many years in the woods it would doubtless come to have some distinguishing marks, but the life of a bee is only a few months at the farthest, and no change is wrought in this brief time.

After a refreshing walk of a couple of miles, we arrive at our first trial—a tall stone wall that runs parallel to the wooded ridge mentioned earlier, separated from it by a wide field. There are bees busy working on the goldenrod, and it takes just a little maneuvering to catch one in our box. Most creatures suddenly caught and shoved into a cage would panic and freak out. The bee is startled for a moment, but it has a stronger drive than its instinct for survival or fear of death, which is its desire for honey—not just to eat it, but to take it home. "Such rage of honey in their bosom beats," says Virgil. It quickly picks up the scent of honey in the box and immediately starts filling itself. We set the box on the wall and gently take off the cover. The bee is completely focused, head and shoulders in one of the half-filled cells, ignoring everything else around it. No matter what happens, it will keep working until it dies. We step back a few paces and sit on the ground so the box stands out against the blue sky. Within two or three minutes, the bee slowly and heavily rises from the box. It seems reluctant to leave so much honey behind and takes note of the spot well. It starts ascending in a rapidly widening spiral, first surveying the nearby small objects, then the larger and more distant ones, until after circling above the spot five or six times and getting its bearings, it zooms off home. It takes a keen eye to keep track of the bee until it's truly gone. Sometimes, your head might spin trying to follow it, and often the sun can hurt your eyes. This bee drifts down the hill and then heads toward a farmhouse half a mile away where I know bees are kept. Then we try another bee, and much to our satisfaction, the third one flies straight toward the woods. We can see the brown speck against the darker background for quite a distance. Experienced bee hunters say they can tell a wild bee from a tame one by its color; the wild ones are said to be lighter. But there’s really no difference; both are the same in color and behavior. Young bees are lighter than older ones, and that's all there is to it. If a bee lived many years in the woods, it would likely develop some distinguishing traits, but a bee's life is only a few months at most, so no significant changes happen in that short time.

Our bees are all soon back, and more with them, for we have touched the box here and there with the cork of a bottle of anise oil, and this fragrant and pungent oil will attract bees half a mile or more. When no flowers can be found, this is the quickest way to obtain a bee.

Our bees are all coming back soon, and we have even more because we’ve touched the box here and there with the cork of a bottle of anise oil, and this fragrant and strong oil will attract bees from half a mile away or more. When there aren’t any flowers around, this is the fastest way to get a bee.

It is a singular fact that when the bee first finds the hunter’s box, its first feeling is one of anger; it is as mad as a hornet; its tone changes, it sounds its shrill war trumpet and darts to and fro, and gives vent to its rage and indignation in no uncertain manner. It seems to scent foul play at once. It says, "Here is robbery; here is the spoil of some hive, may be my own," and its blood is up. But its ruling passion soon comes to the surface, its avarice gets the better of its indignation, and it seems to say, "Well, I had better take possession of this and carry it home." So after many feints and approaches and dartings off with a loud angry hum as if it would none of it, the bee settles down and fills itself.

It's interesting that when a bee first discovers the hunter's box, its initial reaction is anger; it’s as furious as a hornet. Its tone shifts, it buzzes its shrill war call and flits around in a frenzy, expressing its rage and frustration loudly. It seems to sense something is wrong immediately. It thinks, "This is theft; this is the loot from a hive, maybe even my own," and its adrenaline spikes. But soon, its main drive takes over, its greed outweighs its anger, and it seems to conclude, "Well, I might as well take this and bring it home." So after many false starts and quick retreats with an annoyed buzz as if it wants nothing to do with it, the bee settles down and starts gathering what it needs.

It does not entirely cool off and get soberly to work till it has made two or three trips home with its booty. When other bees come, even if all from the same swarm, they quarrel and dispute over the box, and clip and dart at each other like bantam cocks. Apparently the ill feeling which the sight of the honey awakens is not one of jealousy or rivalry, but wrath.

It doesn’t fully calm down and get back to work until it has made a few trips home with its loot. When other bees show up, even if they’re all from the same swarm, they argue and fight over the box, darting at each other like fighting roosters. It seems like the anger triggered by the sight of the honey isn’t about jealousy or competition, but pure rage.

A bee will usually make three or four trips from the hunter’s box before it brings back a companion. I suspect the bee does not tell its fellows what it has found, but that they smell out the secret; it doubtless bears some evidence with it upon its feet or proboscis that it has been upon honeycomb and not upon flowers, and its companions take the hint and follow, arriving always many seconds behind. Then the quantity and quality of the booty would also betray it. No doubt, also, there are plenty of gossips about a hive that note and tell everything. "Oh, did you see that? Peggy Mel came in a few moments ago in great haste, and one of the upstairs packers says she was loaded till she groaned with apple-blossom honey, which she deposited, and then rushed off again like mad. Apple-blossom honey in October! Fee, fi, fo, fum! I smell something! Let’s after."

A bee usually makes three or four trips from the hunter's box before bringing back a friend. I think the bee doesn’t tell its buddies what it found, but they sniff out the secret. It probably has some proof on its feet or tongue that it has been on the honeycomb and not just on flowers, and its companions pick up on that and follow, always arriving a few seconds later. The amount and quality of the bounty would also give it away. There are definitely plenty of gossips around a hive that notice and share everything. "Oh, did you see that? Peggy Mel came in just a moment ago in a big hurry, and one of the upstairs packers says she was loaded down with apple-blossom honey, which she dropped off before darting away like crazy. Apple-blossom honey in October! Fee, fi, fo, fum! I smell something! Let’s go after her."

In about half an hour we have three well-defined lines of bees established,—two to farmhouses and one to the woods, and our box is being rapidly depleted of its honey. About every fourth bee goes to the woods, and now that they have learned the way thoroughly they do not make the long preliminary whirl above the box, but start directly from it. The woods are rough and dense and the hill steep, and we do not like to follow the line of bees until we have tried at least to settle the problem as to the distance they go into the woods,—whether the tree is on this side of the ridge or into the depth of the forest on the other side. So we shut up the box when it is full of bees and carry it about three hundred yards along the wall from which we are operating. When liberated, the bees, as they always will in such cases, go off in the same directions they have been going; they do not seem to know that they have been moved. But other bees have followed our scent, and it is not many minutes before a second line to the woods is established. This is called cross-lining the bees. The new line makes a sharp angle with the other line, and we know at once that the tree is only a few rods into the woods. The two lines we have established form two sides of a triangle of which the wall is the base; at the apex of the triangle, or where the two lines meet in the woods, we are sure to find the tree. We quickly follow up these lines, and where they cross each other on the side of the hill we scan every tree closely. I pause at the foot of an oak and examine a hole near the root; now the bees are in this tree and their entrance is on the upper side near the ground not two feet from the hole I peer into, and yet so quiet and secret is their going and coming that I fail to discover them and pass on up the hill. Failing in this direction I return to the oak again, and then perceive the bees going out in a small crack in the tree. The bees do not know they are found out and that the game is in our hands, and are as oblivious of our presence as if we were ants or crickets. The indications are that the swarm is a small one, and the store of honey trifling. In "taking up" a bee-tree it is usual first to kill or stupefy the bees with the fumes of burning sulphur or with tobacco smoke. But this course is impracticable on the present occasion, so we boldly and ruthlessly assault the tree with an ax we have procured. At the first blow the bees set up a loud buzzing, but we have no mercy, and the side of the cavity is soon cut away and the interior with its white-yellow mass of comb honey is exposed, and not a bee strikes a blow in defense of its all. This may seem singular, but it has nearly always been my experience. When a swarm of bees are thus rudely assaulted with an ax they evidently think the end of the world has come, and, like true misers as they are, each one seizes as much of the treasure as it can hold; in other words, they all fall to and gorge themselves with honey, and calmly await the issue. While in this condition they make no defense, and will not sting unless taken hold of. In fact they are as harmless as flies. Bees are always to be managed with boldness and decision. Any half-way measures, any timid poking about, any feeble attempts to reach their honey, are sure to be quickly resented. The popular notion that bees have a special antipathy toward certain persons and a liking for certain others has only this fact at the bottom of it: they will sting a person who is afraid of them and goes skulking and dodging about, and they will not sting a person who faces them boldly and has no dread of them. They are like dogs. The way to disarm a vicious dog is to show him you do not fear him; it is his turn to be afraid then. I never had any dread of bees and am seldom stung by them. I have climbed up into a large chestnut that contained a swarm in one of its cavities and chopped them out with an ax, being obliged at times to pause and brush the bewildered bees from my hands and face, and not been stung once. I have chopped a swarm out of an apple-tree in June, and taken out the cards of honey and arranged them in a hive, and then dipped out the bees with a dipper, and taken the whole home with me in pretty good condition, with scarcely any opposition on the part of the bees. In reaching your hand into the cavity to detach and remove the comb you are pretty sure to get stung, for when you touch the "business end" of a bee, it will sting even though its head be off. But the bee carries the antidote to its own poison. The best remedy for bee sting is honey, and when your hands are besmeared with honey, as they are sure to be on such occasions, the wound is scarcely more painful than the prick of a pin. Assault your bee-tree, then, boldly with your ax, and you will find that when the honey is exposed every bee has surrendered and the whole swarm is cowering in helpless bewilderment and terror. Our tree yields only a few pounds of honey, not enough to have lasted the swarm till January, but no matter: we have the less burden to carry.

In about half an hour, we have three clear lines of bees established—two heading to farmhouses and one to the woods, and our box is quickly running out of honey. About every fourth bee heads to the woods, and now that they’ve learned the route well, they skip the long initial circle above the box and fly straight from it. The woods are rough and thick, and the hill is steep, so we don't want to follow the bees until we’ve at least tried to figure out how far they go into the woods—whether the tree is on this side of the ridge or deeper in the forest on the other side. So, we close the box when it’s full of bees and carry it about three hundred yards along the wall where we’re working. When we release them, the bees, as they always do in these cases, fly off in the same directions they’ve been going; they don’t seem to know they’ve been moved. But other bees have picked up our scent, and within a few minutes, a second line to the woods is formed. This is called cross-lining the bees. The new line makes a sharp angle with the other line, and we immediately know the tree is only a short distance into the woods. The two lines we’ve created form two sides of a triangle with the wall as the base; at the point of the triangle, where the two lines meet in the woods, we're sure to find the tree. We quickly follow these lines, and where they cross on the side of the hill, we closely examine every tree. I pause at the base of an oak and look at a hole near the root; now the bees are in this tree, and their entrance is on the upper side near the ground, not two feet from the hole I’m looking into. Yet their comings and goings are so quiet and secretive that I fail to notice them and move on up the hill. Not finding them in this direction, I return to the oak again and then spot the bees exiting through a small crack in the tree. The bees don’t realize they’ve been discovered and that we have the upper hand; they remain as unaware of our presence as if we were ants or crickets. The signs indicate that the swarm is small, and the stash of honey is minimal. When "taking up" a bee tree, it's common to first kill or stun the bees with the fumes of burning sulfur or tobacco smoke. But that approach isn’t practical right now, so we boldly and ruthlessly attack the tree with an ax we’ve brought along. At the first hit, the bees create a loud buzzing, but we show no mercy, and soon the side of the cavity is chopped away, exposing the interior filled with honeycomb, and not a single bee makes a defensive move. This may seem odd, but it’s almost always been my experience. When a swarm of bees is suddenly attacked with an ax, they clearly think it’s the end of the world, and like true hoarders, each one grabs as much treasure as it can carry. In other words, they all start gorging themselves on honey, calmly waiting to see what happens. While in this state, they don’t defend themselves and won’t sting unless grabbed. In fact, they’re as harmless as flies. Bees should always be handled with confidence and decisiveness. Any half-hearted attempts, any timid poking around, or weak efforts to reach their honey are sure to be met with quick resistance. The popular belief that bees dislike certain people and like others is based on this fact: they will sting someone who is afraid and skittish, but they won’t sting someone who confronts them confidently and isn’t scared. They’re like dogs. The way to disarm a vicious dog is to show him you’re unafraid; then it’s his turn to be scared. I’ve never been afraid of bees and am rarely stung by them. I’ve climbed up into a large chestnut tree that had a swarm in one of its hollows and chopped them out with an ax, having to stop sometimes to brush the confused bees off my hands and face, and I didn’t get stung once. I’ve chopped a swarm out of an apple tree in June, taken the honeycombs and arranged them in a hive, and then scooped the bees into a container, bringing the whole lot home in decent condition, facing almost no resistance from the bees. When you reach into the cavity to detach and remove the comb, you’re pretty likely to get stung, because when you touch the "business end" of a bee, it’ll sting even if its head is gone. But the bee carries the antidote to its own poison. The best remedy for a bee sting is honey, and when your hands are smeared with it—as they inevitably will be in such situations—the sting is hardly worse than a pinprick. So attack your bee tree boldly with your ax, and you’ll find that once the honey is exposed, every bee has surrendered, and the entire swarm is stunned and fearful. Our tree yields only a few pounds of honey, not enough for the swarm to survive until January, but that’s okay: we have less to carry.

In the afternoon we go nearly half a mile farther along the ridge to a cornfield that lies immediately in front of the highest point of the mountain. The view is superb; the ripe autumn landscape rolls away to the east, cut through by the great placid river; in the extreme north the wall of the Catskills stands out clear and strong, while in the south the mountains of the Highlands bound the view. The day is warm, and the bees are very busy there in that neglected corner of the field, rich in asters, fleabane, and goldenrod. The corn has been cut, and upon a stout but a few rods from the woods, which here drop quickly down from the precipitous heights, we set up our bee-box, touched again with the pungent oil. In a few moments a bee has found it; she comes up to leeward, following the scent. On leaving the box, she goes straight toward the woods. More bees quickly come, and it is not long before the line is well established. Now we have recourse to the same tactics we employed before, and move along the ridge to another field to get our cross line. But the bees still go in almost the same direction they did from the corn stout. The tree is then either on the top of the mountain or on the other or west side of it. We hesitate to make the plunge into the woods and seek to scale those precipices, for the eye can plainly see what is before us. As the afternoon sun gets lower, the bees are seen with wonderful distinctness. They fly toward and under the sun, and are in a strong light, while the near woods which form the background are in deep shadow. They look like large luminous motes. Their swiftly vibrating, transparent wings surround their bodies with a shining nimbus that makes them visible for a long distance. They seem magnified many times. We see them bridge the little gulf between us and the woods, then rise up over the treetops with their burdens, swerving neither to the right hand nor to the left. It is almost pathetic to see them labor so, climbing the mountain and unwittingly guiding us to their treasures. When the sun gets down so that his direction corresponds exactly with the course of the bees, we make the plunge. It proves even harder climbing than we had anticipated; the mountain is faced by a broken and irregular wall of rock, up which we pull ourselves slowly and cautiously by main strength. In half an hour, the perspiration streaming from every pore, we reach the summit. The trees here are all small, a second growth, and we are soon convinced the bees are not here. Then down we go on the other side, clambering down the rocky stairways till we reach quite a broad plateau that forms something like the shoulder of the mountain. On the brink of this there are many large hemlocks, and we scan them closely and rap upon them with our ax. But not a bee is seen or heard; we do not seem as near the tree as we were in the fields below; yet, if some divinity would only whisper the fact to us, we are within a few rods of the coveted prize, which is not in one of the large hemlocks or oaks that absorb our attention, but in an old stub or stump not six feet high, and which we have seen and passed several times without giving it a thought. We go farther down the mountain and beat about to the right and left, and get entangled in brush and arrested by precipices, and finally, as the day is nearly spent, give up the search and leave the woods quite baffled, but resolved to return on the morrow. The next day we come back and commence operations in an opening in the woods well down on the side of the mountain where we gave up the search. Our box is soon swarming with the eager bees, and they go back toward the summit we have passed. We follow back and establish a new line, where the ground will permit; then another and still another, and yet the riddle is not solved. One time we are south of them, then north, then the bees get up through the trees and we cannot tell where they go. But after much searching, and after the mystery seems rather to deepen than to clear up, we chance to pause beside the old stump. A bee comes out of a small opening like that made by ants in decayed wood, rubs its eyes and examines its antennæ, as bees always do before leaving their hive, then takes flight. At the same instant several bees come by us loaded with our honey and settle home with that peculiar low, complacent buzz of the well-filled insect. Here, then, is our idyl, our bit of Virgil and Theocritus, in a decayed stump of a hemlock-tree. We could tear it open with our hands, and a bear would find it an easy prize, and a rich one, too, for we take from it fifty pounds of excellent honey. The bees have been here many years, and have of course sent out swarm after swarm into the wilds. They have protected themselves against the weather and strengthened their shaky habitation by a copious use of wax.

In the afternoon, we walk nearly half a mile further along the ridge to a cornfield that sits right in front of the highest point of the mountain. The view is stunning; the ripe autumn landscape stretches out to the east, carved by the great calm river; to the far north, the Catskills stand out clear and strong, while to the south, the Highlands mountains frame the view. The day is warm, and the bees are very busy in that neglected corner of the field, rich with asters, fleabane, and goldenrod. The corn has been cut, and a few rods from the woods, which drop steeply from the heights, we set up our bee box, infused with the strong oil. In a moment, a bee finds it; she approaches from downwind, following the scent. After leaving the box, she heads straight toward the woods. More bees arrive quickly, and soon, a path is firmly established. Now, we use the same approach as before and move along the ridge to another field to get our cross line. However, the bees continue to fly in almost the same direction as they did from the corn stubble. The tree must be either at the top of the mountain or on the opposite, west side. We hesitate to dive into the woods and try to climb those steep slopes, as we can clearly see what lies ahead. As the afternoon sun starts to dip, the bees are visible in striking detail. They fly toward and under the sun, glowing brightly against the deep shadows of the nearby woods. They appear like large glowing specks. Their rapid, translucent wings create a shining halo around their bodies, making them visible from a long distance. They seem magnified many times. We watch as they bridge the small gap between us and the woods, rising over the treetops with their loads, not veering to the right or left. It’s almost touching to see them working so hard, climbing the mountain and unknowingly leading us to their treasures. When the sun lowers enough that its direction aligns perfectly with the bees' flight path, we plunge in. The climb proves even tougher than expected; the mountain is faced with a broken and irregular rock wall that we scale slowly and carefully using our strength. After half an hour, with sweat pouring from every pore, we finally reach the summit. The trees here are all small, a second growth, and we soon realize the bees are not here. We then head down the other side, scrambling down rocky pathways until we reach a broad plateau that resembles a shoulder of the mountain. At the edge of this plateau, there are many large hemlocks, and we inspect them closely, striking them gently with our ax. Yet, we neither see nor hear a single bee; we don’t seem as close to the tree as we were in the fields below. However, if only some divine being would whisper the truth to us, we are within a few rods of the sought-after prize, which is not hidden in one of the large hemlocks or oaks that catch our attention, but in an old stump less than six feet high, one we have passed several times without a second thought. We venture further down the mountain, searching right and left, getting tangled in brush and blocked by cliffs, and ultimately, as the day draws to a close, we abandon our search, feeling puzzled but determined to return the next day. When we return, we begin our work in a clearing in the woods lower down the mountain where we previously gave up. Our box quickly fills with eager bees, and they return to the summit we passed. We follow their path and set up a new line wherever the ground allows; then another and yet another, but the puzzle remains unsolved. At one point, we’re south of them, then north, but once the bees get up through the trees, we lose track of their direction. After much searching, and as the mystery seems to deepen rather than clarify, we happen to stop by the old stump. A bee emerges from a small opening, like one made by ants in decayed wood, rubs its eyes, and checks its antennae, as bees always do before leaving their hive, then takes off. At that same moment, several bees pass by us, loaded with our honey, buzzing home with that familiar low, contented hum of well-fed insects. Here, then, is our little treasure, our piece of Virgil and Theocritus, in a decayed hemlock stump. We could easily tear it open, and a bear would find it an easy and rich prize, as we take away fifty pounds of excellent honey. The bees have inhabited this spot for many years and have undoubtedly sent swarm after swarm into the wild. They have weatherproofed and reinforced their fragile home with plenty of wax.

When a bee-tree is thus "taken up" in the middle of the day, of course a good many bees are away from home and have not heard the news. When they return and find the ground flowing with honey, and piles of bleeding combs lying about, they apparently do not recognize the place, and their first instinct is to fall to and fill themselves; this done, their next thought is to carry it home, so they rise up slowly through the branches of the trees till they have attained an altitude that enables them to survey the scene, when they seem to say, "Why, this is home," and down they come again; beholding the wreck and ruins once more, they still think there is some mistake, and get up a second or a third time and then drop back pitifully as before. It is the most pathetic sight of all, the surviving and bewildered bees struggling to save a few drops of their wasted treasures.

When a bee tree is "taken up" in the middle of the day, many bees are away from home and haven't heard the news. When they return and see the ground covered in honey and piles of broken combs scattered around, they don’t seem to recognize the area. Their first instinct is to indulge and fill themselves up; once they do that, their next thought is to bring it back home. They slowly rise up through the tree branches until they reach a height that lets them see the area, and it seems like they’re saying, "Oh, this is home," before coming back down. However, when they see the destruction again, they still think something is wrong and try to fly up a second or third time, only to drop back down sadly once more. It’s truly a heartbreaking sight, watching the confused bees struggle to salvage a few drops of their lost treasures.

Presently, if there is another swarm in the woods, robber bees appear. You may know them by their saucy, chiding, devil-may-care hum. It is an ill wind that blows nobody good, and they make the most of the misfortune of their neighbors, and thereby pave the way for their own ruin. The hunter marks their course and the next day looks them up. On this occasion the day was hot and the honey very fragrant, and a line of bees was soon established S. S. W. Though there was much refuse honey in the old stub, and though little golden rills trickled down the hill from it, and the near branches and saplings were besmeared with it where we wiped our murderous hands, yet not a drop was wasted. It was a feast to which not only honey-bees came, but bumblebees, wasps, hornets, flies, ants. The bumblebees, which at this season are hungry vagrants with no fixed place of abode, would gorge themselves, then creep beneath the bits of empty comb or fragments of bark and pass the night, and renew the feast next day. The bumblebee is an insect of which the bee-hunter sees much. There are all sorts and sizes of them. They are dull and clumsy compared with the honey-bee. Attracted in the fields by the bee-hunter’s box, they will come up the wind on the scent and blunder into it in the most stupid, lubberly fashion.

Right now, if there’s another swarm in the woods, robber bees show up. You can recognize them by their bold, mocking, carefree buzz. It’s a bad situation that doesn’t benefit anyone, and they take full advantage of their neighbors' misfortunes, which leads to their own downfall. The hunter tracks their path and checks on them the next day. On this day, it was hot, and the honey was really fragrant, quickly leading to a line of bees flying S.S.W. Even though there was a lot of leftover honey in the old stump, and little golden streams were flowing down the hill from it, making the nearby branches and saplings sticky where we wiped our greedy hands, not a drop was wasted. It was a feast that attracted not just honeybees but also bumblebees, wasps, hornets, flies, and ants. The bumblebees, which at this time are hungry wanderers without a set home, would stuff themselves, then hide under bits of empty honeycomb or pieces of bark to sleep for the night, and come back to feast again the next day. Bumblebees are insects that the bee-hunter encounters often. They come in all shapes and sizes. They are slow and clumsy compared to honeybees. Drawn into the fields by the bee-hunter’s box, they will drift up the wind by scent and stumble into it in the most awkward, foolish way.

The honey-bees that licked up our leavings on the old stub belonged to a swarm, as it proved, about half a mile farther down the ridge, and a few days afterward fate overtook them, and their stores in turn became the prey of another swarm in the vicinity, which also tempted Providence and were overwhelmed. The first-mentioned swarm I had lined from several points, and was following up the clew over rocks and through gulleys, when I came to where a large hemlock had been felled a few years before, and a swarm taken from a cavity near the top of it; fragments of the old comb were yet to be seen. A few yards away stood another short, squatty hemlock, and I said my bees ought to be there. As I paused near it, I noticed where the tree had been wounded with an ax a couple of feet from the ground many years before. The wound had partially grown over, but there was an opening there that I did not see at the first glance. I was about to pass on when a bee passed me making that peculiar shrill, discordant hum that a bee makes when besmeared with honey. I saw it alight in the partially closed wound and crawl home; then came others and others, little bands and squads of them heavily freighted with honey from the box. The tree was about twenty inches through and hollow at the butt, or from the ax-mark down. This space the bees had completely filled with honey. With an ax we cut away the outer ring of live wood and exposed the treasure. Despite the utmost care, we wounded the comb so that little rills of the golden liquid issued from the root of the tree and trickled down the hill.

The honeybees that fed on our leftovers on the old stump came from a swarm that, as it turned out, was about half a mile down the ridge. A few days later, fate caught up with them, and their honey became the target of another nearby swarm, which also pushed its luck and was crushed. I had tracked the first swarm from different angles and was following the trail over rocks and through gullies when I reached a spot where a large hemlock had been cut down a few years earlier, and a swarm had been taken from a cavity near the top. You could still see bits of the old comb. A few yards away stood another short, squat hemlock, and I thought my bees should be there. As I paused near it, I noticed a place where the tree had been injured with an ax a couple of feet above the ground many years back. The wound had partly healed, but there was an opening that I initially missed. I was about to move on when a bee flew past me, making that distinct sharp, jarring buzz that a bee makes when covered in honey. I watched it land in the partially closed wound and crawl inside; soon, more and more followed, small groups of them heavily loaded with honey. The tree was about twenty inches wide and hollow near the base, from the ax mark down. This space was completely filled with honey. With an ax, we removed the outer layer of live wood and revealed the treasure. Despite our best efforts, we damaged the comb, causing small streams of the golden liquid to flow from the base of the tree and trickle down the hill.

The other bee-tree in the vicinity to which I have referred we found one warm November day in less than half an hour after entering the woods. It also was a hemlock that stood in a niche in a wall of hoary, moss-covered rocks thirty feet high. The tree hardly reached to the top of the precipice. The bees entered a small hole at the root, which was seven or eight feet from the ground. The position was a striking one. Never did apiary have a finer outlook or more rugged surroundings. A black, wood-embraced lake lay at our feet; the long panorama of the Catskills filled the far distance, and the more broken outlines of the Shawangunk range filled the rear. On every hand were precipices and a wild confusion of rocks and trees.

The other bee tree nearby that I mentioned was found on a warm November day in less than half an hour after we entered the woods. It was also a hemlock tree, standing in a niche among gray, moss-covered rocks that were about thirty feet high. The tree barely reached the top of the cliff. The bees entered a small hole at the root, which was seven or eight feet above the ground. The spot was impressive. No apiary had a better view or more rugged surroundings. Below us was a black lake surrounded by woods; the long stretch of the Catskills filled the distant horizon, while the more jagged shapes of the Shawangunk range lay behind. All around were cliffs and a wild jumble of rocks and trees.

The cavity occupied by the bees was about three feet and a half long and eight or ten inches in diameter. With an ax we cut away one side of the tree, and laid bare its curiously wrought heart of honey. It was a most pleasing sight. What winding and devious ways the bees had through their palace! What great masses and blocks of snow-white comb there were! Where it was sealed up, presenting that slightly dented, uneven surface, it looked like some precious ore. When we carried a large pailful of it out of the woods it seemed still more like ore.

The space where the bees were located was about three and a half feet long and eight or ten inches wide. With an axe, we chopped away one side of the tree, revealing its intricately crafted honey core. It was a beautiful sight. The bees had created winding and twisted paths throughout their home! There were huge chunks and layers of bright white comb! Where it was sealed, with its slightly indented, uneven surface, it looked like precious metal. When we carried a big bucket of it out of the woods, it seemed even more like ore.

Your native bee-hunter predicates the distance of the tree by the time the bee occupies in making its first trip. But this is no certain guide. You are always safe in calculating that the tree is inside of a mile, and you need not as a rule look for your bee’s return under ten minutes. One day I picked up a bee in an opening in the woods and gave it honey, and it made three trips to my box with an interval of about twelve minutes between them; it returned alone each time; the tree, which I afterward found, was about half a mile distant.

Your local bee-hunter estimates the distance to the tree based on how long it takes the bee to make its first trip. But this isn't always accurate. Typically, you can assume that the tree is within a mile, and you usually shouldn't expect to see your bee back in under ten minutes. One day, I caught a bee in a clearing in the woods and offered it honey. It made three trips to my box with roughly twelve minutes in between each trip; it came back alone every time. Later, I discovered that the tree was about half a mile away.

In lining bees through the woods the tactics of the hunter are to pause every twenty or thirty rods, lop away the branches or cut down the trees, and set the bees to work again. If they still go forward, he goes forward also and repeats his observations till the tree is found, or till the bees turn and come back upon the trail. Then he knows he has passed the tree, and he retraces his steps to a convenient distance and tries again, and thus quickly reduces the space to be looked over till the swarm is traced home. On one occasion, in a wild rocky wood, where the surface alternated between deep gulfs and chasms filled with thick, heavy growths of timber and sharp, precipitous, rocky ridges like a tempest-tossed sea, I carried my bees directly under their tree, and set them to work from a high, exposed ledge of rocks not thirty feet distant. One would have expected them under such circumstances to have gone straight home, as there were but few branches intervening, but they did not; they labored up through the trees and attained an altitude above the woods as if they had miles to travel, and thus baffled me for hours. Bees will always do this. They are acquainted with the woods only from the top side, and from the air above; they recognize home only by landmarks here, and in every instance they rise aloft to take their bearings. Think how familiar to them the topography of the forest summits must be,—an umbrageous sea or plain where every mark and point is known.

In tracking bees through the woods, the hunter’s strategy is to stop every twenty or thirty rods, clear away branches or cut down trees, and get the bees working again. If they keep moving forward, he moves ahead as well and repeats his observations until he finds the tree or until the bees turn back on their path. Then he knows he has passed the tree, so he retraces his steps to a convenient distance and tries again, quickly narrowing down the area to search until he finds the swarm. Once, in a wild, rocky forest where the ground varied between deep valleys and chasms filled with thick timber and sharp, steep rocky ridges that looked like a stormy sea, I brought my bees right under their tree and set them to work from a high, exposed rock ledge just thirty feet away. One would think that under those circumstances they would head straight home, since there were only a few branches in the way, but they didn’t; they worked their way up through the trees and reached a height above the woods as if they had miles to go, frustrating me for hours. Bees will always do this. They know the woods only from above and from the air; they recognize home only by the landmarks here, and in every case, they rise high to get their bearings. Just think about how familiar the topography of the forest tops must be to them—a shaded sea or plain where every marker and point is recognized.

Another curious fact is that generally you will get track of a bee-tree sooner when you are half a mile from it than when you are only a few yards. Bees, like us human insects, have little faith in the near at hand; they expect to make their fortune in a distant field, they are lured by the remote and the difficult, and hence overlook the flower and the sweet at their very door. On several occasions I have unwittingly set my box within a few paces of a bee-tree and waited long for bees without getting them, when, on removing to a distant field or opening in the woods, I have got a clew at once.

Another interesting fact is that you generally have a better chance of finding a bee tree when you're half a mile away than when you're just a few yards from it. Bees, like us humans, don't trust what's right in front of them; they tend to seek their fortune in distant places. They're attracted to the far and the challenging, which causes them to miss the flowers and sweetness that's right at their doorstep. There have been several times when I unknowingly placed my box just a few steps from a bee tree and waited a long time for bees without success. However, when I moved to a more distant field or an opening in the woods, I immediately found a lead.

I have a theory that when bees leave the hive, unless there is some special attraction in some other direction, they generally go against the wind. They would thus have the wind with them when they returned home heavily laden, and with these little navigators the difference is an important one. With a full cargo, a stiff head-wind is a great hindrance, but fresh and empty-handed they can face it with more ease. Virgil says bees bear gravel stones as ballast, but their only ballast is their honey-bag. Hence, when I go bee-hunting, I prefer to get to windward of the woods in which the swarm is supposed to have refuge.

I have a theory that when bees leave the hive, unless there's something particularly enticing in another direction, they usually fly against the wind. This way, they have the wind at their backs when they return home loaded down. For these little navigators, that difference really matters. When they're carrying a full load, a strong headwind is a significant obstacle, but when they're fresh and not carrying anything, they can handle it more easily. Virgil mentions that bees carry gravel stones as ballast, but their only ballast is their honey bag. So, when I go bee-hunting, I prefer to position myself upwind of the woods where the swarm is believed to be hiding.

Bees, like the milkman, like to be near a spring. They do water their honey, especially in a dry time. The liquid is then of course thicker and sweeter, and will bear diluting. Hence old bee-hunters look for bee-trees along creeks and near spring runs in the woods. I once found a tree a long distance from any water, and the honey had a peculiar bitter flavor, imparted to it, I was convinced, by rainwater sucked from the decayed and spongy hemlock-tree in which the swarm was found. In cutting into the tree, the north side of it was found to be saturated with water like a spring, which ran out in big drops, and had a bitter flavor. The bees had thus found a spring or a cistern in their own house.

Bees, just like the milkman, prefer to stay close to a spring. They do add water to their honey, especially during dry periods. The result is a thicker, sweeter liquid that can be diluted. That's why experienced bee hunters search for bee trees along creeks and near spring runs in the woods. I once discovered a tree far away from any water, and the honey had a strange bitter taste, which I was sure came from rainwater absorbed by the decayed, spongy hemlock tree where the swarm was located. When I cut into the tree, the north side was found to be soaked with water like a spring, which dripped out in large drops and had a bitter flavor. The bees had essentially created a spring or cistern in their own home.

Bees are exposed to many hardships and many dangers. Winds and storms prove as disastrous to them as to other navigators. Black spiders lie in wait for them as do brigands for travelers. One day, as I was looking for a bee amid some goldenrod, I spied one partly concealed under a leaf. Its baskets were full of pollen, and it did not move. On lifting up the leaf I discovered that a hairy spider was ambushed there and had the bee by the throat. The vampire was evidently afraid of the bee’s sting, and was holding it by the throat till quite sure of its death. Virgil speaks of the painted lizard, perhaps a species of salamander, as an enemy of the honey-bee. We have no lizard that destroys the bee; but our tree-toad, ambushed among the apple and cherry blossoms, snaps them up wholesale. Quick as lightning that subtle but clammy tongue darts forth, and the unsuspecting bee is gone. Virgil also accuses the titmouse and the woodpecker of preying upon the bees, and our kingbird has been charged with the like crime, but the latter devours only the drones. The workers are either too small and quick for it or else it dreads their sting.

Bees face many hardships and dangers. Strong winds and storms can be just as harmful to them as they are to other travelers. Black spiders wait to ambush them, much like robbers do with people. One day, while I was searching for a bee among some goldenrod, I saw one partly hidden under a leaf. Its baskets were full of pollen, and it wasn’t moving. When I lifted the leaf, I found a hairy spider lying in wait and had the bee by its throat. The spider clearly feared the bee's sting and was holding it by the throat until it was sure the bee was dead. Virgil mentions the painted lizard, possibly a type of salamander, as an enemy of the honeybee. We may not have any lizards that harm bees, but our tree-toad, hidden among the apple and cherry blossoms, catches them easily. In the blink of an eye, that quick but slimy tongue darts out, and the unsuspecting bee is gone. Virgil also points out that the titmouse and the woodpecker prey on bees, and our kingbird has been accused of the same, but it only eats the drones. The worker bees are either too small and fast for it, or the kingbird is afraid of their sting.

Virgil, by the way, had little more than a child’s knowledge of the honey-bee. There is little fact and much fable in his fourth Georgic. If he had ever kept bees himself, or even visited an apiary, it is hard to see how he could have believed that the bee in its flight abroad carried a gravel stone for ballast.

Virgil, by the way, had only a child’s understanding of the honeybee. His fourth Georgic is filled with more myths than facts. If he had ever kept bees himself or even visited a bee farm, it's difficult to understand how he could have thought that a bee carries a pebble for balance while flying.

"And just like when empty boats drift on waves,
Sailors use sandy ballast to balance the boat; So bees carry small stones, whose balanced weight Guided by the whistling winds, they maintain their steady flight;

or that, when two colonies made war upon each other, they issued forth from their hives led by their kings and fought in the air, strewing the ground with the dead and dying:—

or that, when two colonies went to war with each other, they emerged from their hives led by their queens and battled in the air, covering the ground with the dead and dying:—

"Hard hailstones don't cover the ground any thicker than this,
"Nor do shaken oaks rain down such showers of acorns."

It is quite certain he had never been bee-hunting. If he had we should have had a fifth Georgic. Yet he seems to have known that bees sometimes escaped to the woods:—

It’s pretty clear he had never gone bee-hunting. If he had, we would have had a fifth Georgic. Yet, he seems to have understood that bees sometimes got away to the woods:—

"Bees don't just live in hives; they're found" In their own underground chambers: Their vaulted ceilings are adorned with pumice, "And in the decayed trunks of hollow trees."

Wild honey is as near like tame as wild bees are like their brothers in the hive. The only difference is, that wild honey is flavored with your adventure, which makes it a little more delectable than the domestic article.

Wild honey is pretty much the same as tame honey, just like wild bees are similar to those in a hive. The only difference is that wild honey carries the flavor of your adventures, making it a bit more delicious than the store-bought kind.

[From Pepacton, by John Burroughs. Copyright, 1881, 1895, and 1909, by John Burroughs.]

[From Pepacton, by John Burroughs. Copyright, 1881, 1895, and 1909, by John Burroughs.]

CUT-OFF COPPLES’S

CLARENCE KING

ONE October day, as Kaweah and I traveled by ourselves over a lonely foothill trail, I came to consider myself the friend of woodpeckers. With rather more reserve as regards the bluejay, let me admit great interest in his worldly wisdom. As an instance of co-operative living the partnership of these two birds is rather more hopeful than most mundane experiments. For many autumn and winter months such food as their dainty taste chooses is so rare throughout the Sierras that in default of any climatic temptation to migrate the birds get in harvests with annual regularity and surprising labor. Oak and pine mingle in open growth. Acorns from the one are their grain; the soft pine bark is granary; and this the process:

One October day, while Kaweah and I were hiking alone on a quiet foothill trail, I found myself thinking of woodpeckers as friends. I admit that I have more reserved feelings about bluejays, but I’m still very interested in their street smarts. Their partnership is a shining example of teamwork in nature, more promising than many human endeavors. During the autumn and winter months, the food they like to eat becomes quite scarce in the Sierras, so instead of migrating due to the lack of resources, these birds work hard to gather food with impressive regularity. Oak and pine trees grow together in open spaces. Acorns from the oaks are their grain, and the soft pine bark serves as their storage; here’s how they do it:

Armies of woodpeckers drill small, round holes in the bark of standing pine-trees, sometimes perforating it thickly up to twenty or thirty and even forty feet above the ground; then about equal numbers of woodpeckers and jays gather acorns, rejecting always the little cup, and insert the gland tightly in the pine bark with its tender base outward and exposed to the air.

Groups of woodpeckers drill small, round holes in the bark of standing pine trees, sometimes making densely packed holes up to twenty, thirty, or even forty feet above the ground. Then, about the same number of woodpeckers and jays gather acorns, always discarding the little cup, and insert the acorn tightly into the pine bark with its soft base facing out and exposed to the air.

A woodpecker, having drilled a hole, has its exact measure in mind, and after examining a number of acorns makes his selection, and never fails of a perfect fit. Not so the jolly, careless jay, who picks up any sound acorn he finds, and, if it is too large for a hole, drops it in the most off-hand way as if it were an affair of no consequence; utters one of his dry, chuckling squawks, and either tries another or loafs about, lazily watching the hard-working woodpeckers.

A woodpecker, after drilling a hole, has the exact size in mind, and after checking out several acorns, makes his choice and always gets a perfect fit. Not so with the cheerful, careless jay, who grabs any decent acorn he finds, and if it's too big for a hole, drops it nonchalantly as if it doesn’t matter at all; lets out one of his dry, chuckling squawks, and either tries again or lounges around, lazily observing the hard-working woodpeckers.

Thus they live, amicably harvesting, and with this sequel: those acorns in which grubs form become the sole property of woodpeckers, while all sound ones fall to the jays. Ordinarily chances are in favor of woodpeckers, and when there are absolutely no sound nuts the jays sell short, so to speak, and go over to Nevada and speculate in juniper-berries.

Thus they live, happily gathering their harvest, with this outcome: the acorns infested with grubs belong exclusively to woodpeckers, while the healthy ones go to the jays. Usually, woodpeckers have the upper hand, and when there are no good acorns around, the jays cut their losses, so to speak, and head over to Nevada to invest in juniper berries.

The monotony of hill and glade failing to interest me, and in default of other diversion, I all day long watched the birds, recalling how many gay and successful jays I knew who lived, as these, on the wit and industry of less ostentatious woodpeckers; thinking, too, what naïvely dogmatic and richly worded political economy Mr. Ruskin would phrase from my feathered friends. Thus I came to Ruskin, wishing I might see the work of his idol, and after that longing for some equal artist who should arise and choose to paint our Sierras as they are with all their color-glory, power of innumerable pine and countless pinnacle, gloom of tempest, or splendor, where rushing light shatters itself upon granite crag, or burns in dying rose upon far fields of snow.

The boring landscape of hills and clearings didn’t hold my interest, so instead, I spent the whole day watching the birds. I remembered how many cheerful and successful jays I knew that lived off the cleverness and hard work of less showy woodpeckers. I also thought about what richly worded and somewhat dogmatic economics Mr. Ruskin would craft based on my feathered friends. This led me to Ruskin, and I wished I could see the work of his idol. I longed for some equally talented artist to emerge and capture our Sierras exactly as they are, showcasing their vibrant colors, the strength of countless pines and peaks, the darkness of storms, or the brilliance when sunlight breaks against granite cliffs or casts a dying rose hue on distant snowfields.

Had I rubbed Aladdin’s lamp? A turn in the trail brought suddenly into view a man who sat under shadow of oaks, painting upon a large canvas.

Had I rubbed Aladdin’s lamp? A turn in the trail suddenly revealed a man sitting in the shade of some oaks, painting on a large canvas.

As I approached, the artist turned half round upon his stool, rested palette and brushes upon one knee, and in familiar tone said, "Dern’d if you ain’t just naturally ketched me at it! Get off and set down. You ain’t going for no doctor, I know."

As I got closer, the artist turned a bit on his stool, rested his palette and brushes on one knee, and in a casual tone said, "Darned if you haven't just caught me in the act! Get off and take a seat. You’re not heading to a doctor, I can tell."

My artist was of short, good-natured, butcher-boy make-up, dressed in what had formerly been black broadcloth, with an enlivening show of red flannel shirt about the throat, wrists, and a considerable display of the same where his waistcoat might once have overlapped a strained but as yet coherent waistband. The cut of these garments, by length of coat-tail and voluminous leg, proudly asserted a "Bay" origin. His small feet were squeezed into tight, short boots, with high, raking heels.

My artist was a short, easygoing guy who looked like a butcher's apprentice, dressed in what used to be black broadcloth, with a bright red flannel shirt showing at the neck, wrists, and quite a bit more where his waistcoat probably once covered a stretched but still intact waistband. The style of these clothes, with the long coat tails and baggy legs, clearly showcased a "Bay" origin. His small feet were stuffed into tight, short boots with high, slanted heels.

A round face, with small, full mouth, non-committal nose, and black, protruding eyes, showed no more sign of the ideal temperament than did the broad daub upon his square yard of canvas.

A round face with a small, full mouth, an indifferent nose, and bulging black eyes showed no more sign of an ideal temperament than the broad splotch on his square yard of canvas.

"Going to Copples’s?" inquired my friend.

"Are you going to Copples?" my friend asked.

That was my destination, and I answered, "Yes."

That was where I was headed, and I replied, "Yes."

"That’s me," he ejaculated. "Right over there, down below those two oaks! Ever there?"

"That's me," he exclaimed. "Right over there, down by those two oak trees! See it?"

"No."

"Nope."

"My studio’s there now;" giving impressive accent to the word.

"My studio is there now;" placing emphasis on the word.

All the while these few words were passing he scrutinized me with unconcealed curiosity, puzzled, as well he might be, by my dress and equipment. Finally, after I had tied Kaweah to a tree and seated myself by the easel, and after he had absently rubbed some raw sienna into his little store of white, he softly ventured: "Was you looking out a ditch?"

All the while these few words were being exchanged, he watched me with obvious curiosity, understandably confused by my outfit and gear. Finally, after I had tied Kaweah to a tree and settled down by the easel, and after he had mindlessly mixed some raw sienna into his small supply of white, he gently asked, "Were you looking for a ditch?"

"No," I replied.

"No," I said.

He neatly rubbed up the white and sienna with his "blender," unconsciously adding a dash of Veronese green, gazed at my leggings, then at the barometer, and again meeting my eye with a look as if he feared I might be a disguised duke, said in slow tone, with hyphens of silence between each two syllables, giving to his language all the dignity of an unabridged Webster, "I would take pleasure in stating that my name is Hank G. Smith, artist;" and, seeing me smile, he relaxed a little, and, giving the blender another vigorous twist, added, "I would request yours."

He carefully mixed the white and sienna with his "blender," unconsciously adding a bit of Veronese green, looked at my leggings, then at the barometer, and when his gaze met mine, it was like he was worried I might be a disguised duke. In a slow tone, with pauses between each two syllables, giving his words all the importance of a full Webster dictionary, he said, "I would like to introduce myself; my name is Hank G. Smith, artist." Seeing me smile, he relaxed a bit, and after giving the blender another vigorous twist, he added, "I would like to know your name."

Mr. Smith having learned my name, occupation, and that my home was on the Hudson, near New York, quickly assumed a familiar me-and-you-old-fel’ tone, and rattled on merrily about his winter in New York spent in "going through the Academy,"—a period of deep moment to one who before that painted only wagons for his livelihood.

Mr. Smith learned my name, job, and that I lived on the Hudson, near New York, and quickly adopted a friendly, casual tone. He happily talked about his winter in New York spent "going through the Academy"—a significant time for someone who had only painted wagons for a living before that.

Storing away canvas, stool, and easel in a deserted cabin close by, he rejoined me, and, leading Kaweah by his lariat, I walked beside Smith down the trail toward Copples’s.

Stashing the canvas, stool, and easel in an empty cabin nearby, he caught up with me, and while guiding Kaweah with his lasso, I walked alongside Smith down the path toward Copples’s.

He talked freely, and as if composing his own biography, beginning:

He spoke openly, almost like he was creating his own life story, starting with:

"California-born and mountain-raised, his nature soon drove him into a painter’s career." Then he reverted fondly to New York and his experience there.

"Born in California and raised in the mountains, his nature quickly pushed him towards a career as a painter." Then he nostalgically recalled his time in New York and what he experienced there.

"Oh, no!" he mused in pleasant irony, "he never spread his napkin over his legs and partook French victuals up to old Delmonico’s. 'Twasn’t H. G. which took her to the theater."

"Oh, no!" he thought with a wry smile, "he never put his napkin on his lap and enjoyed French food at the old Delmonico’s. It wasn’t H. G. who took her to the theater."

In a sort of stage-aside to me, he added, "She was a model! Stood for them sculptors, you know; perfectly virtuous, and built from the ground up." Then, as if words failed him, made an expressive gesture with both hands over his shirt-bosom to indicate the topography of her figure, and, sliding them down sharply against his waistband, he added, "Anatomical torso!"

In a sort of aside to me, he added, "She was a model! Posed for those sculptors, you know; completely virtuous, and built from the ground up." Then, as if he couldn’t find the right words, he made an expressive gesture with both hands over his chest to indicate her figure, and, sliding them down sharply against his waistband, he added, "Anatomical torso!"

Mr. Smith found relief in meeting one so near himself, as he conceived me to be, in habit and experience. The long-pent-up emotions and ambitions of his life found ready utterance, and a willing listener.

Mr. Smith felt relieved to meet someone he thought was similar to him in habits and experiences. The emotions and ambitions he had kept bottled up for so long found a way to express themselves, and he had someone who was eager to listen.

I learned that his aim was to become a characteristically California painter, with special designs for making himself famous as the delineator of mule-trains and ox-wagons; to be, as he expressed it, "the Pacific Slope Bonheur."

I found out that his goal was to become a typical California painter, with unique plans to make himself famous for illustrating mule trains and ox wagons; to be, as he put it, "the Pacific Slope Bonheur."

"There," he said, "is old Eastman Johnson; he’s made the riffle on barns, and that everlasting girl with the ears of corn; but it ain’t life, it ain’t got the real git-up.

"There," he said, "is old Eastman Johnson; he’s done the painting of barns, and that never-ending girl with the ears of corn; but it’s not life, it doesn’t have the real energy."

"If you want to see the thing, just look at a Gérôme; his Arab folks and Egyptian dancing-girls, they ain’t assuming a pleasant expression and looking at spots while their likenesses is took.

"If you want to see the thing, just look at a Gérôme; his Arab people and Egyptian dancers aren't pretending to be happy and gazing at random spots while their portraits are being painted."

"H. G. will discount Eastman yet."

"H. G. will still underestimate Eastman."

He avowed his great admiration of Church, which, with a little leaning toward Mr. Gifford, seemed his only hearty approval.

He expressed his genuine admiration for Church, which, along with a slight preference for Mr. Gifford, appeared to be his only sincere approval.

"It’s all Bierstadt, and Bierstadt, and Bierstadt nowadays! What has he done but twist and skew and distort and discolor and belittle and be-pretty this whole dog-gonned country? Why, his mountains are too high and too slim; they’d blow over in one of our fall winds.

"It’s all Bierstadt, Bierstadt, and more Bierstadt these days! What has he done except twist, skew, distort, discolor, belittle, and prettify this entire darn country? Seriously, his mountains are way too high and too thin; they’d topple in one of our fall winds."

"I’ve herded colts two summers in Yosemite, and honest now, when I stood right up in front of his picture, I didn’t know it.

"I've rounded up colts for two summers in Yosemite, and honestly, when I stood right in front of his picture, I had no idea."

"He hasn’t what old Ruskin calls for."

"He doesn’t have what old Ruskin talks about."

By this time the station buildings were in sight, and far down the cañon, winding in even grade round spur after spur, outlined by a low, clinging cloud of red dust, we could see the great Sierra mule-train,—that industrial gulf-stream flowing from California plains over into arid Nevada, carrying thither materials for life and luxury. In a vast, perpetual caravan of heavy wagons, drawn by teams of from eight to fourteen mules, all the supplies of many cities and villages were hauled across the Sierra at an immense cost, and with such skill of driving and generalship of mules as the world has never seen before.

By this time, the station buildings were in view, and far down the canyon, winding in a smooth grade around spur after spur, outlined by a low, swirling cloud of red dust, we could see the large Sierra mule-train—an industrial lifeline flowing from the California plains into dry Nevada, carrying everything needed for life and luxury. In a massive, continuous caravan of heavy wagons, drawn by teams of eight to fourteen mules, all the supplies for countless cities and towns were transported across the Sierra at an enormous cost, with driving skill and mule-handling expertise that the world had never seen before.

Our trail descended toward the grade, quickly bringing us to a high bank immediately overlooking the trains a few rods below the group of station buildings.

Our path led down to the slope, quickly taking us to a high bank that overlooked the trains just a short distance below the group of station buildings.

I had by this time learned that Copples, the former station-proprietor, had suffered amputation of the leg three times, receiving from the road men, in consequence, the name of "Cut-off," and that, while his doctors disagreed as to whether they had better try a fourth, the kindly hand of death had spared him that pain, and Mrs. Copples an added extortion in the bill.

I had by this time learned that Copples, the former station owner, had undergone three leg amputations, earning him the nickname "Cut-off" from the road crew. While his doctors debated whether they should attempt a fourth amputation, the merciful hand of death saved him from that suffering, and spared Mrs. Copples from another expense on the medical bill.

The dying "Cut-off" had made his wife promise she would stay by and carry on the station until all his debts, which were many and heavy, should be paid, and then do as she chose.

The dying "Cut-off" made his wife promise that she would stay and run the station until all his debts, which were numerous and substantial, were paid, and then she could do what she wanted.

The poor woman, a New Englander of some refinement, lingered, sadly fulfilling her task, though longing for liberty.

The poor woman, a New Englander of some refinement, lingered, sadly completing her task, though yearning for freedom.

When Smith came to speak of Sarah Jane, her niece, a new light kindled in my friend’s eye.

When Smith started talking about Sarah Jane, his niece, a new spark lit up in my friend’s eye.

"You never saw Sarah Jane?" he inquired.

"You've never seen Sarah Jane?" he asked.

I shook my head.

I shook my head.

He went on to tell me that he was living in hope of making her Mrs. H. G., but that the bar-keeper also indulged a hope, and as this important functionary was a man of ready cash, and of derringers and few words, it became a delicate matter to avow open rivalry; but it was evident my friend’s star was ascendant, and, learning that he considered himself to possess the "dead-wood," and to have "gaited" the bar-keeper, I was more than amused, even comforted.

He told me that he was hopeful about making her Mrs. H.G., but the bartender also had hopes, and since this key player had money and was a man of few words but quick with his gun, it became a tricky situation to openly compete. However, it was clear that my friend was in a better position, and when I found out he believed he had the upper hand and had outmaneuvered the bartender, I was more than entertained; I was even reassured.

It was pleasure to sit there leaning against a vigorous old oak while Smith opened his heart to me, in easy confidence, and, with quick eye watching the passing mules, penciled in a little sketch-book a leg, a head, or such portions of body and harness as seemed to him useful for future works.

It was a pleasure to sit there leaning against a strong old oak while Smith shared his thoughts with me, confidently. With a keen eye on the passing mules, he sketched in a small notebook parts like a leg, a head, or whatever bits of body and harness he found useful for future projects.

"These are notes," he said, "and I’ve pretty much made up my mind to paint my great picture on a gee-pull. I’ll scumble in a sunset effect, lighting up the dust, and striking across the backs of team and driver, and I’ll paint a come-up-there-d’n-you look on the old teamster’s face, and the mules will be just a-humping their little selves and laying down to work like they’d expire. And the wagon! Don’t you see what fine color-material there is in the heavy load and canvas-top with sunlight and shadow in the folds? And that’s what’s the matter with H. G. Smith.

"These are my notes," he said, "and I've pretty much decided to paint my big masterpiece on a gee-pull. I'll blend in a sunset effect, lighting up the dust and casting shadows over the team and the driver. I'll capture that determined look on the old teamster's face, and the mules will be straining with all they’ve got, ready to work like they’re about to drop. And the wagon! Can't you see what amazing colors I can get from the heavy load and canvas top, with sunlight and shadows playing on the folds? And that's what's wrong with H. G. Smith."

"Orders, sir, orders; that’s what I’ll get then, and I’ll take my little old Sarah Jane and light out for New York, and you’ll see Smith on a studio doorplate, and folks’ll say, 'Fine feeling for nature, has Smith!'"

"Orders, sir, orders; that’s what I’ll get then, and I’ll take my little old Sarah Jane and head out for New York, and you’ll see Smith on a studio doorplate, and people will say, 'Smith has a great sense of nature!'"

I let this singular man speak for himself in his own vernacular, pruning nothing of its idiom or slang, as you shall choose to call it. In this faithful transcript there are words I could have wished to expunge, but they are his, not mine, and illustrate his mental construction.

I let this unique man express himself in his own words, cutting nothing from his language or slang, whatever you want to call it. In this accurate transcript, there are words I might have wanted to remove, but they are his, not mine, and they show how he thinks.

The breath of most Californians is as unconsciously charged with slang as an Italian’s of garlic, and the two, after all, have much the same function; you touch the bowl or your language, but should never let either be fairly recognized in salad or conversation. But Smith’s English was the well undefiled when compared with what I every moment heard from the current of teamsters which set constantly by us in the direction of Copples’s.

The way most Californians speak is as naturally filled with slang as an Italian is with garlic, and both serve a similar purpose; you can casually use slang in your language, but you should never let it become too obvious in your conversations or discussions. However, Smith's English was pure compared to what I constantly heard from the teamsters passing by us on the way to Copples's.

Close in front came a huge wagon piled high with cases of freight, and drawn along by a team of twelve mules, whose heavy breathing and drenched skins showed them hard-worked and well tired out. The driver looked anxiously ahead at a soft spot in the road, and on at the station, as if calculating whether his team had courage left to haul through.

A massive wagon rolled up, stacked high with freight cases and pulled by a team of twelve mules, whose heavy breathing and soaked coats showed they were exhausted from hard work. The driver looked anxiously ahead at a muddy patch in the road and toward the station, as if figuring out if his team still had the strength to make it through.

He called kindly to them, cracked his black-snake whip, and all together they strained bravely on.

He called out to them kindly, snapped his black snake whip, and together they pushed forward bravely.

The great van rocked, settled a little on the near side, and stuck fast.

The big van swayed, settled slightly on the side closest to us, and got stuck.

With a look of despair the driver got off and laid the lash freely among his team; they jumped and jerked, frantically tangled themselves up, and at last all sulked and became stubbornly immovable. Meanwhile, a mile of teams behind, unable to pass on the narrow grade, came to an unwilling halt.

With a look of despair, the driver got off and whipped his horses; they jumped and jerked, frantically got tangled up, and finally all sulked and became stubbornly immovable. Meanwhile, a mile of teams behind, unable to pass on the narrow slope, came to an unwilling stop.

About five wagons back I noticed a tall Pike, dressed in checked shirt, and pantaloons tucked into jack-boots. A soft felt hat, worn on the back of his head, displayed long locks of flaxen hair, which hung freely about a florid pink countenance, noticeable for its pair of violent little blue eyes, and facial angle rendered acute by a sharp, long nose.

About five wagons back, I saw a tall guy dressed in a checked shirt and pants tucked into his boots. He wore a soft felt hat tilted back on his head, showing off long strands of blonde hair that hung freely around his rosy face, which stood out because of his bright blue eyes and a sharp, long nose.

This fellow watched the stoppage with impatience, and at last, when it was more than he could bear, walked up by the other teams with a look of wrath absolutely devilish. One would have expected him to blow up with rage; yet withal his gait and manner were cool and soft in the extreme. In a bland, almost tender voice, he said to the unfortunate driver, "My friend, perhaps I can help you;" and his gentle way of disentangling and patting the leaders as he headed them round in the right direction would have given him a high office under Mr. Bergh. He leisurely examined the embedded wheel, and cast an eye along the road ahead. He then began in rather excited manner to swear, pouring it out louder and more profane, till he utterly eclipsed the most horrid blasphemies I ever heard, piling them up thicker and more fiendish till it seemed as if the very earth must open and engulf him.

This guy watched the halt with frustration, and finally, when he couldn’t take it anymore, he walked over to the other teams with an outrageously angry look. You'd expect him to explode with fury; yet his walk and demeanor were surprisingly calm and gentle. In a soothing, almost gentle voice, he said to the unlucky driver, "My friend, maybe I can help you;" and his gentle way of untangling and guiding the leaders as he turned them in the right direction would have earned him a high position under Mr. Bergh. He casually inspected the stuck wheel and glanced down the road ahead. Then he started swearing in a pretty intense way, getting louder and more vulgar, until he completely outdid the most horrific curses I’d ever heard, piling them on thicker and more maliciously until it felt like the ground might just open up and swallow him whole.

I noticed one mule after another give a little squat, bringing their breasts hard against the collars, and straining traces, till only one old mule, with ears back and dangling chain, still held out. The Pike walked up and yelled one gigantic oath; her ears sprang forward, she squatted in terror, and the iron links grated under her strain. He then stepped back and took the rein, every trembling mule looking out of the corner of its eye and listening at qui vive.

I saw one mule after another crouch down, pushing their chests firmly against the collars and straining on the harness, until only one old mule, with her ears pinned back and chain hanging loosely, refused to budge. The Pike walked over and let out a loud curse; her ears perked up, she crouched in fear, and the metal links scraped under the pressure. He then stepped back and took the reins, while every trembling mule watched out of the corner of its eye, alert and listening.

With a peculiar air of deliberation and of childlike simplicity, he said in every-day tones, "Come up there, mules!"

With a strange sense of intention and a childlike simplicity, he said in casual tones, "Come up here, mules!"

One quick strain, a slight rumble, and the wagon rolled on to Copples’s.

One quick jolt, a little rumble, and the wagon moved on to Copples’s.

Smith and I followed, and as we neared the house he punched me familiarly and said, as a brown petticoat disappeared in the station door, "There’s Sarah Jane! When I see that girl I feel like I’d reach out and gather her in;" then clasping her imaginary form as if she was about to dance with him, he executed a couple of waltz turns, softly intimating, "That’s what’s the matter with H. G."

Smith and I followed, and as we got closer to the house, he playfully punched my arm and said, as a brown petticoat vanished through the station door, "There’s Sarah Jane! When I see that girl, I feel like I just want to pull her in!" Then, wrapping his arms around her imaginary figure as if they were about to dance, he spun around a couple of times, subtly hinting, "That’s what’s going on with H. G."

Kaweah being stabled, we betook ourselves to the office, which was of course bar-room as well. As I entered, the unfortunate teamster was about paying his liquid compliment to the florid Pike. Their glasses were filled. "My respects," said the little driver. The whiskey became lost to view, and went eroding its way through the dust these poor fellows had swallowed. He added, "Well, Billy, you can swear."

Kaweah being put away, we headed to the office, which also served as the bar. As I walked in, the unfortunate truck driver was about to pay his respects to the cheerful Pike. Their glasses were full. "Cheers," said the little driver. The whiskey disappeared, soaking into the dust these poor guys had consumed. He added, "Well, Billy, you sure can swear."

"Swear?" repeated the Pike in a tone of incredulous questioning. "Me swear?" as if the compliment were greater than his modest desert. "No, I can’t blaspheme worth a cuss. You’d jest orter hear Pete Green. He can exhort the impenitent mule. I’ve known a ten-mule-team to renounce the flesh and haul thirty-one thousand through a foot of clay mud under one of his outpourings."

"Swear?" the Pike echoed, sounding incredulous. "Me swear?" as if the compliment was more than he deserved. "No, I can’t curse to save my life. You should really hear Pete Green. He can preach to a stubborn mule. I’ve seen a ten-mule team give up their stubbornness and pull thirty-one thousand out of a foot of clay mud while he was speaking."

As a hotel, Copples’s is on the Mongolian plan, which means that dining-room and kitchen are given over to the mercies—never very tender—of Chinamen; not such Chinamen as learned the art of pig-roasting that they might be served up by Elia, but the average John, and a sadly low average that John is. I grant him a certain general air of thrift, admitting, too, that his lack of sobriety never makes itself apparent in loud Celtic brawl. But he is, when all is said, and in spite of timid and fawning obedience, a very poor servant.

As a hotel, Copples's is set up in the Mongolian style, which means that the dining room and kitchen are at the mercy—never very gentle—of Chinese cooks; not the kind that mastered the art of pig-roasting to impress Elia, but the typical guy, and quite a disappointing one at that. I’ll give him some credit for a certain general sense of frugality, and I’ll also acknowledge that his lack of sobriety doesn’t manifest in loud Celtic fights. But, when everything is considered, and despite his nervous and submissive attitude, he is a very poor servant.

Now and then at one friend’s house it has happened to me that I dined upon artistic Chinese cookery, and all they who come home from living in China smack their lips over the relishing cuisine. I wish they had sat down that day at Copples’s. No; on second thought I would spare them.

Now and then at a friend's house, I've had the chance to enjoy some amazing Chinese food, and everyone who comes back from living in China raves about the delicious dishes. I wish they had been there that day at Copples’s. Actually, on second thought, maybe I should spare them from that experience.

John may go peacefully to North Adams and make shoes for us, but I shall not solve the awful domestic problem by bringing him into my kitchen; certainly so long as Howells’s "Mrs. Johnson" lives, nor even while I can get an Irish lady to torment me, and offer the hospitality of my home to her cousins.

John might head to North Adams and make shoes for us, but I won’t fix the terrible domestic issue by bringing him into my kitchen; definitely not while Howells’s "Mrs. Johnson" exists, nor even while I can get an Irish lady to annoy me and offer my home to her cousins.

After the warning bell, fifty or sixty teamsters inserted their dusty heads in buckets of water, turned their once white neck-handkerchiefs inside out, producing a sudden effect of clean linen, and made use of the two mournful wrecks of combs which hung on strings at either side the Copples’s mirror. Many went to the bar and partook of a "dust-cutter." There was then such clearing of throats, and such loud and prolonged blowing of noses as may not often be heard upon this globe.

After the warning bell, about fifty or sixty teamsters dipped their dusty heads into buckets of water, flipped their once white neckerchiefs inside out to reveal clean linen, and used the two sad remains of combs that hung on strings on either side of the Copples's mirror. Many headed to the bar for a "dust-cutter." There was then such a clearing of throats and such loud, prolonged nose-blowing that you don't often hear on this planet.

In the calm which ensued, conversation sprang up on "lead harness," the "Stockton wagon that had went off the grade," with here and there a sentiment called out by two framed lithographic belles, who in great richness of color and scantiness of raiment flanked the bar-mirror;—a dazzling reflector, chiefly destined to portray the barkeeper’s back hair, which work of art involved much affectionate labor.

In the calm that followed, people started talking about the "lead harness," the "Stockton wagon that had gone off the grade," with a few comments sparked by two framed lithographic beauties, who, dressed in vibrant colors and minimal clothing, flanked the bar mirror—a stunning reflection mainly meant to showcase the barkeeper’s hairstyle, which was a piece of art requiring a lot of careful work.

A second bell and rolling away of doors revealed a long dining-room, with three parallel tables, cleanly set and watched over by Chinamen, whose fresh, white clothes and bright, olive-buff skin made a contrast of color which was always chief among my yearnings for the Nile.

A second bell rang, and the doors rolled open to reveal a long dining room with three parallel tables, neatly set and overseen by Chinese staff. Their fresh white clothes and bright olive-buff skin created a colorful contrast that always fueled my longing for the Nile.

While I loitered in the background every seat was taken, and I found myself with a few dilatory teamsters destined to await a second table.

While I hung around in the background, every seat was taken, and I ended up with a few slow-moving teamsters who were waiting for a second table.

The dinner-room communicated with a kitchen beyond by means of two square apertures cut in the partition wall. Through these portholes a glare of red light poured, except when the square framed a Chinese cook’s head, or discharged hundreds of little dishes.

The dining room connected to the kitchen through two square openings in the wall. Bright red light streamed through these openings, unless a Chinese cook's head was in the frame or a bunch of small dishes were being passed through.

The teamsters sat down in patience; a few of the more elegant sort cleaned their nails with the three-tine forks, others picked their teeth with them, and nearly all speared with this implement small specimens from the dishes before them, securing a pickle or a square inch of pie or even that luxury, a dried apple; a few, on tilted-back chairs, drummed upon the bottom of their plates the latest tune of the road.

The teamsters settled in with patience; some of the more refined individuals cleaned their nails using the three-pronged forks, while others used them to pick their teeth. Almost all of them speared small bites from the dishes in front of them, snagging a pickle, a piece of pie, or even the treat of a dried apple. A few, leaning back in their chairs, tapped out the latest road tune on the bottoms of their plates.

When fairly under way the scene became active and animated beyond belief. Waiters, balancing upon their arms twenty or thirty plates, hurried along and shot them dexterously over the teamsters’ heads with crash and spatter.

When things were pretty much in full swing, the scene became incredibly lively and vibrant. Waiters, balancing twenty or thirty plates on their arms, hurried by and expertly tossed them over the teamsters’ heads with a crash and splatter.

Beans swimming in fat, meats slimed with pale, ropy gravy, and over everything a faint Mongol odor,—the flavor of moral degeneracy and of a disintegrating race.

Beans floating in grease, meats coated with pale, slimy gravy, and a slight Mongol smell lingering over everything—the taste of moral decline and a crumbling race.

Sharks and wolves may no longer be figured as types of prandial haste. My friends, the teamsters, stuffed and swallowed with a rapidity which was alarming but for the dexterity they showed, and which could only have come of long practice.

Sharks and wolves may no longer be seen as symbols of eating quickly. My friends, the truck drivers, stuffed their faces and swallowed their food with a speed that was shocking, but they handled it with such skill that it could only have come from years of practice.

In fifteen minutes the room was empty, and those fellows who were not feeding grain to their mules lighted cigars and lingered round the bar.

In fifteen minutes, the room was empty, and those guys who weren't feeding grain to their mules lit cigars and hung around the bar.

Just then my artist rushed in, seized me by the arm, and said in my ear, "We’ll have our supper over to Mrs. Copples’s. O no, I guess not—Sarah Jane—arms peeled—cooking up stuff—old woman gone into the milk-room with a skimmer." He then added that if I wanted to see what I had been spared, I might follow him.

Just then, my artist rushed in, grabbed my arm, and whispered in my ear, "We’ll have our supper at Mrs. Copples’s. Oh, wait, I guess not—Sarah Jane—sleeves rolled up—cooking something—old woman went into the milk room with a skimmer." He then added that if I wanted to see what I had missed, I could follow him.

We went round an angle of the building and came upon a high bank, where, through wide-open windows, I could look into the Chinese kitchen.

We went around a corner of the building and came across a steep bank, where, through wide-open windows, I could see into the Chinese kitchen.

By this time the second table of teamsters were under way, and the waiters yelled their orders through to the three cooks.

By now, the second group of teamsters was on their way, and the waiters shouted their orders to the three cooks.

This large, unpainted kitchen was lighted up by kerosene lamps. Through clouds of smoke and steam dodged and sprang the cooks, dripping with perspiration and grease, grabbing a steak in the hand and slapping it down on the gridiron, slipping and sliding around on the damp floor, dropping a card of biscuits and picking them up again in their fists, which were garnished by the whole bill of fare. The red papers with Chinese inscriptions, and little joss-sticks here and there pasted upon each wall, the spry devils themselves, and that faint, sickening odor of China which pervaded the room, combined to produce a sense of deep, sober gratitude that I had not risked their fare.

This large, unpainted kitchen was lit by kerosene lamps. Cooks darted through clouds of smoke and steam, sweating and greasy, grabbing a steak and slapping it down on the grill, slipping and sliding on the damp floor, dropping a tray of biscuits and picking them up again in their hands, which were covered in bits of the entire menu. The red papers with Chinese writing, little joss sticks stuck on the walls, the energetic cooks themselves, and the faint, unpleasant smell of Chinese food that filled the room all combined to make me feel deeply grateful that I hadn’t tried their food.

"Now," demanded Smith, "you see that there little white building yonder?"

"Now," Smith said, "do you see that small white building over there?"

I did.

I did.

He struck a contemplative position, leaned against the house, extending one hand after the manner of the minstrel sentimentalist, and softly chanted:

He took a thoughtful stance, leaned against the house, held out one hand like a sentimental singer, and quietly sang:

"It's, oh, it's the cottage of my love;"

"and there’s where they’re getting up as nice a little supper as can be found on this road or any other. Let’s go over!"

"and that’s where they’re having a really nice little supper, probably the best you can find on this road or any other. Let’s go over!"

So we strolled across an open space where were two giant pines towering somber against the twilight, a little mountain brooklet, and a few quiet cows.

So we walked through an open area where two giant pines stood tall and solemn against the dusk, a small mountain stream, and a few peaceful cows.

"Stop," said Smith, leaning his back against a pine, and encircling my neck affectionately with an arm; "I told you, as regards Sarah Jane, how my feelings stand. Well, now, you just bet she’s on the reciprocate! When I told old woman Copples I’d like to invite you over,—Sarah Jane she passed me in the doorway,—and said she, 'Glad to see your friends.'"

"Stop," said Smith, leaning against a pine tree and wrapping his arm affectionately around my neck. "I told you how I feel about Sarah Jane. Well, I can tell you she feels the same way! When I mentioned to old woman Copples that I wanted to invite you over, Sarah Jane walked past me in the doorway and said, 'Glad to see your friends.'"

Then sotto voce, for we were very near, he sang again:

Then sotto voce, since we were very close, he sang again:

"'Tis, oh, it's the cottage of my love;'

"and C. K.," he continued familiarly, "you’re a judge of wimmen," chucking his knuckles into my ribs, whereat I jumped; when he added, "There, I knew you was. Well, Sarah Jane is a derned magnificent female; number three boot, just the height for me. Venus de Copples, I call her, and would make the most touching artist’s wife in this planet. If I design to paint a head, or a foot, or an arm, get my little old Sarah Jane to peel the particular charm, and just whack her in on the canvas."

"and C. K.," he said casually, "you know a thing or two about women," playfully hitting my ribs, making me jump; then he added, "See, I knew you did. Well, Sarah Jane is an absolutely amazing woman; size three boot, just the right height for me. I call her the Venus de Copples, and she would make the most beautiful artist’s wife on this planet. If I want to paint a head, or a foot, or an arm, I just need my lovely Sarah Jane to show off that special charm and then just slap her onto the canvas."

We passed in through low doors, turned from a small, dark entry into the family sitting-room, and were alone there in presence of a cheery log fire, which good-naturedly bade us welcome, crackling freely and tossing its sparks out upon floor of pine and coyote-skin rug. A few old framed prints hung upon dark walls, their faces looking serenely down upon the scanty, old-fashioned furniture and windows full of flowering plants. A low-cushioned chair, not long since vacated, was drawn close by the centre-table, whereon were a lamp and a large, open Bible, with a pair of silver-bowed spectacles lying upon its lighted page.

We walked through low doors, moved from a small, dark entryway into the family living room, and found ourselves alone in front of a cheerful log fire that warmly welcomed us, crackling happily and sending sparks onto the pine floor and coyote-skin rug. A few old framed prints hung on the dark walls, their subjects serenely gazing down at the sparse, old-fashioned furniture and windows filled with flowering plants. A recently vacated low-cushioned chair was pulled up close to the center table, which held a lamp and a large, open Bible, with a pair of silver-framed glasses resting on its lit page.

Smith made a gesture of silence toward the door, touched the Bible, and whispered, "Here’s where old woman Copples lives, and it is a good thing; I read it aloud to her evenings, and I can just feel the high, local lights of it. It’ll fetch H. G. yet!"

Smith gestured for silence toward the door, touched the Bible, and whispered, "This is where old woman Copples lives, and it's a good thing; I read it aloud to her in the evenings, and I can really feel the local vibe of it. It’ll impress H. G. yet!"

At this juncture the door opened; a pale, thin, elderly woman entered, and with tired smile greeted me. While her hard, labor-stiffened, needle-roughened hand was in mine, I looked into her face and felt something (it may be, it must be, but little, yet something) of the sorrow of her life; that of a woman large in sympathy, deep in faith, eternal in constancy, thrown away on a rough, worthless fellow. All things she hoped for had failed her; the tenderness which never came, the hopes years ago in ashes, the whole world of her yearnings long buried, leaving only the duty of living and the hope of Heaven. As she sat down, took up her spectacles and knitting, and closed the Bible, she began pleasantly to talk to us of the warm, bright autumn nights, of Smith’s work, and then of my own profession, and of her niece, Sarah Jane. Her genuinely sweet spirit and natively gentle manner were very beautiful, and far overbalanced all traces of rustic birth and mountain life.

At that moment, the door opened; a pale, thin, elderly woman walked in and greeted me with a tired smile. As her rough, work-worn hand was in mine, I looked into her face and sensed something (maybe a little, but definitely something) of the sorrow in her life; that of a woman rich in sympathy, deep in faith, and unwavering in loyalty, wasted on a rough, worthless guy. Everything she hoped for had let her down; the kindness that never came, the dreams long turned to ashes, the entire world of her desires buried long ago, leaving only the obligation of living and the hope for Heaven. As she sat down, picked up her glasses and knitting, and closed the Bible, she started to chat with us about the warm, bright autumn nights, Smith's work, and then about my own job, and her niece, Sarah Jane. Her genuinely sweet spirit and naturally gentle manner were truly beautiful and completely overshadowed any signs of her rustic upbringing and mountain life.

O, that unquenchable Christian fire, how pure the gold of its result! It needs no practiced elegance, no social greatness, for its success; only the warm human heart, and out of it shall come a sacred calm and gentleness, such as no power, no wealth, no culture may ever hope to win.

O, that relentless Christian fire, how pure the gold of its outcome! It requires no refined style, no social status, for its success; just the warm human heart, and from it will emerge a sacred calm and gentleness that no power, wealth, or culture could ever hope to achieve.

No words of mine would outline the beauty of that plain, weary old woman, the sad, sweet patience of those gray eyes, nor the spirit of overflowing goodness which cheered and enlivened the half hour we spent there.

No words of mine could capture the beauty of that tired old woman, the sad, sweet patience in her gray eyes, or the spirit of overflowing kindness that brightened the half hour we spent there.

H. G. might perhaps be pardoned for showing an alacrity when the door again opened and Sarah Jane rolled—I might almost say trundled—in, and was introduced to me.

H. G. could probably be excused for showing eagerness when the door opened again and Sarah Jane rolled—in fact, I could almost say trundled—in and was introduced to me.

Sarah Jane was an essentially Californian product, as much so as one of those vast potatoes or massive pears; she had a suggestion of State-Fair in the fullness of her physique, yet withal was pretty and modest.

Sarah Jane was a true Californian, just like those huge potatoes or giant pears; her figure had a hint of State Fair about it, yet she was still pretty and modest.

If I could have rid myself of a fear that her buttons might sooner or later burst off and go singing by my ear, I think I might have felt as H. G. did, that she was a "magnificent female," with her smooth, brilliant skin and ropes of soft brown hair.

If I could have shaken off the fear that her buttons might eventually pop off and fly past my ear, I think I might have felt like H. G. did, that she was a "magnificent woman," with her smooth, shiny skin and flowing soft brown hair.

H. G., in presence of the ladies, lost something of his original flavor, and rose into studied elegance, greatly to the comfort of Sarah, whose glow of pride as his talk ran on came without show of restraint.

H. G., in front of the ladies, lost some of his original charm and embraced a more polished elegance, much to Sarah's relief, whose pride glowed as he spoke without any hint of holding back.

The supper was delicious.

The dinner was delicious.

But Sarah was quiet, quiet to H. G. and to me, until after tea, when the old lady said, "You young folks will have to excuse me this evening," and withdrew to her chamber.

But Sarah was quiet, quiet to H. G. and to me, until after tea, when the old lady said, "You guys are going to have to excuse me this evening," and went to her room.

More logs were then piled on the sitting-room hearth, and we three gathered in a semi-circle.

More logs were then stacked on the living room fireplace, and the three of us gathered in a semi-circle.

Presently H. G. took the poker and twisted it about among coals and ashes, prying up the oak sticks, as he announced, in a measured, studied way, "An artist’s wife, that is," he explained, "an Academician’s wife orter, well she’d orter sabe the beautiful, and take her regular æsthetics; and then again," he continued in explanatory tone, "she’d orter to know how to keep a hotel, derned if she hadn’t, for it’s rough like furst off, 'fore a feller gets his name up. But then when he does, tho’, she’s got a salubrious old time of it. It’s touch a little bell" (he pressed the andiron-top to show us how the thing was done), "and 'Brooks, the morning paper!' Open your regular Herald:

Right now, H. G. picked up the poker and moved it around in the coals and ashes, prodding the oak logs as he announced, in a deliberate, thoughtful manner, "An artist’s wife, that is," he explained, "an Academician’s wife should really know about beauty and have her regular aesthetics; and then again," he continued in an explanatory tone, "she should know how to run a hotel, no doubt about it, because it’s tough in the beginning, before a guy makes a name for himself. But once he does, though, she has a pretty good time of it. All she has to do is touch a little bell" (he pressed the top of the andiron to show us how it was done), "and 'Brooks, the morning paper!' Open your usual Herald:

 

"'ART NOTES.—Another of H. G. Smith’s tender works, entitled, "Off the Grade," so full of out-of-doors and subtle feeling of nature, is now on exhibition at Goupil’s.'

'ART NOTES.—Another one of H. G. Smith’s touching works, titled "Off the Grade," which is rich in outdoor elements and the subtle emotions of nature, is now being displayed at Goupil’s.'

"Look down a little further:

"Look down a bit further:"

"'ITALIAN OPERA.—Between the acts all eyes turned to the distingué Mrs. H. G. Smith, who looked,'"—then turning to me, and waving his hand at Sarah Jane, "I leave it to you if she don’t."

"'ITALIAN OPERA.—During the breaks, everyone’s attention shifted to the distinguished Mrs. H. G. Smith, who appeared,'"—then turning to me and gesturing toward Sarah Jane, "I'll let you decide if she doesn't."

Sarah Jane assumed the pleasing color of the sugar-beet, without seeming inwardly unhappy.

Sarah Jane took on the appealing color of the sugar beet, without appearing to be unhappy inside.

"It’s only a question of time with H. G.," continued my friend. "Art is long, you know—derned long—and it may be a year before I paint my great picture, but after that Smith works in lead harness."

"It’s just a matter of time with H. G.," my friend said. "Art takes a long time, you know—really long—and it might take me a year to finish my masterpiece, but after that, Smith will be working in lead harness."

He used the poker freely, and more and more his flow of hopes turned a shade of sentiment to Sarah Jane, who smiled broader and broader, showing teeth of healthy whiteness.

He used the poker without hesitation, and increasingly, his hopes started leaning toward Sarah Jane, who smiled wider and wider, revealing a set of healthy white teeth.

At last I withdrew and sought my room, which was H. G.'s also, and his studio. I had gone with a candle round the walls whereon were tacked studies and sketches, finding here and there a bit of real merit among the profusion of trash, when the door burst open and my friend entered, kicked off his boots and trousers, and walked up and down at a sort of quadrille step, singing:

At last, I stepped back and headed to my room, which was also H. G.'s and his studio. I walked around with a candle, glancing at the walls covered in studies and sketches, spotting some bits of real talent amidst the overwhelming amount of junk, when the door swung open and my friend walked in, kicked off his boots and pants, and started pacing back and forth in a kind of dance, singing:

"Yeah, it's the cottage of my beloved;
Absolutely, it’s my sweetheart's cottage.

"and, what’s more, H. G. has just had his genteel goodnight kiss; and when and where is the good old bar-keep?"

"and, what's more, H. G. just got his polite goodnight kiss; so when and where is the good old bartender?"

I checked his exuberance as best I might, knowing full well that the quiet and elegant dispenser of neat and mixed beverages hearing this inquiry would put in an appearance in person and offer a few remarks designed to provoke ill-feeling. So I at last got Smith in bed and the lamp out. All was quiet for a few moments, and when I had almost gotten asleep I heard my room-mate in low tones say to himself,—

I tried to tone down his enthusiasm as much as I could, fully aware that the calm and classy bartender, whether pouring drinks straight or mixing them, would show up in person after hearing my question and make some comments meant to stir up trouble. Eventually, I got Smith into bed and turned off the lamp. Everything was quiet for a little while, and just when I was about to fall asleep, I heard my roommate softly mumble to himself,—

"Married, by the Rev. Gospel, our talented California artist, Mr. H. G. Smith, to Miss Sarah Jane Copples. No cards."

"Married, by Rev. Gospel, our talented California artist, Mr. H. G. Smith, to Miss Sarah Jane Copples. No cards."

A pause, and then with more gentle utterance, "and that’s what’s the matter with H. G."

A pause, and then with a softer tone, "and that’s what’s wrong with H. G."

Slowly from this atmosphere of art I passed away into the tranquil land of dreams.

Slowly, from this artistic atmosphere, I drifted into the peaceful realm of dreams.

[From Mountaineering in the Sierra Nevada, by Clarence King. Copyright, 1871, by James R. Osgood & Co. Copyright, 1902, by Charles Scribner’s Sons.]

[From Mountaineering in the Sierra Nevada, by Clarence King. Copyright, 1871, by James R. Osgood & Co. Copyright, 1902, by Charles Scribner’s Sons.]

THE THÉÂTRE FRANÇAIS

HENRY JAMES

M. FRANCISQUE SARCEY, the dramatic critic of the Paris "Temps," and the gentleman who, of the whole journalistic fraternity, holds the fortune of a play in the hollow of his hand, has been publishing during the last year a series of biographical notices of the chief actors and actresses of the first theater in the world. Comédiens et Comédiennes: la Comédie Française—such is the title of this publication, which appears in monthly numbers of the "Librairie des Bibliophiles," and is ornamented on each occasion with a very prettily etched portrait, by M. Gaucherel, of the artist to whom the number is devoted. By lovers of the stage in general and of the Théâtre Français in particular the series will be found most interesting; and I welcome the pretext for saying a few words about an institution which—if such language be not hyperbolical—I passionately admire. I must add that the portrait is incomplete, though for the present occasion it is more than sufficient. The list of M. Sarcey’s biographies is not yet filled up; three or four, those of Madame Favart and of MM. Fèbvre and Delaunay, are still wanting. Nine numbers, however, have appeared—the first being entitled La Maison de Molière, and devoted to a general account of the great theater; and the others treating of its principal sociétaires and pensionnaires in the following order:

M. FRANCISQUE SARCEY, the theater critic for the Paris "Temps," who has the power to make or break a play, has been publishing a series of biographies of the leading actors and actresses at the world's premier theater over the past year. Comédiens et Comédiennes: la Comédie Française—that’s the title of this series, which comes out monthly through the "Librairie des Bibliophiles," featuring a beautifully etched portrait by M. Gaucherel of the artist spotlighted in each issue. Fans of the stage in general, and the Théâtre Français in particular, will find this series very engaging; I’m glad for the chance to say a few words about an institution that—if I may say so—is something I truly admire. I should mention that the portrayal is not complete yet; three or four biographies, including those of Madame Favart and MM. Fèbvre and Delaunay, are still missing. However, nine issues have been published so far—the first titled La Maison de Molière, which provides an overview of the great theater, followed by profiles of its main sociétaires and pensionnaires in this order:

Regnier,
Got,
Sophie Croizette,
Sarah Bernhardt,
Coquelin,
Madeleine Brohan,
Bressant,
Madame Plessy.

(This order, by the way, is purely accidental; it is not that of age or of merit.) It is always entertaining to encounter M. Francisque Sarcey, and the reader who, during a Paris winter, has been in the habit, of a Sunday evening, of unfolding his "Temps" immediately after unfolding his napkin, and glancing down first of all to see what this sturdy feuilletoniste has found to his hand—such a reader will find him in great force in the pages before us. It is true that, though I myself confess to being such a reader, there are moments when I grow rather weary of M. Sarcey, who has in an eminent degree both the virtues and the defects which attach to the great French characteristic—the habit of taking terribly au sérieux anything that you may set about doing. Of this habit of abounding in one’s own sense, of expatiating, elaborating, reiterating, refining, as if for the hour the fate of mankind were bound up with one’s particular topic, M. Sarcey is a capital and at times an almost comical representative. He talks about the theater once a week as if—honestly, between himself and his reader—the theater were the only thing in this frivolous world that is worth seriously talking about. He has a religious respect for his theme and he holds that if a thing is to be done at all it must be done in detail as well as in the gross.

(This order, by the way, is purely accidental; it is not that of age or of merit.) It’s always entertaining to come across M. Francisque Sarcey, and any reader who, during a Paris winter, has made a habit of opening his "Temps" on a Sunday evening right after unfolding his napkin, and checking first to see what this robust feuilletoniste has to say—such a reader will find him in top form in the following pages. It’s true that, although I admit to being that kind of reader, there are times when I become a bit weary of M. Sarcey, who embodies both the strengths and weaknesses typical of a great French trait—the tendency to take anything you engage in way too au sérieux. In this quality of being full of one’s own ideas, of expanding, elaborating, repeating, and refining as if for that moment the fate of humanity depended on the topic at hand, M. Sarcey is an excellent and sometimes almost comical example. He discusses the theater once a week as if—honestly, between him and his readers—the theater is the only thing in this frivolous world that truly deserves serious discussion. He has a deep respect for his subject and believes that if something is worth doing, it should be done in detail as well as in the broad view.

It is to this serious way of taking the matter, to his thoroughly businesslike and professional attitude, to his unwearying attention to detail, that the critic of the "Temps" owes his enviable influence and the weight of his words. Add to this that he is sternly incorruptible. He has his admirations, but they are honest and discriminating; and whom he loveth he very often chasteneth. He is not ashamed to commend Mlle. X., who has only had a curtsy to make, if her curtsy has been the ideal curtsy of the situation; and he is not afraid to overhaul M. A., who has delivered the tirade of the play, if M. A., has failed to hit the mark. Of course his judgment is good; when I have had occasion to measure it I have usually found it excellent. He has the scenic sense—the theatrical eye. He knows at a glance what will do, and what will not do. He is shrewd and sagacious and almost tiresomely in earnest, and this is his principal brilliancy. He is homely, familiar and colloquial; he leans his elbows on his desk and does up his weekly budget into a parcel the reverse of coquettish. You can fancy him a grocer retailing tapioca and hominy—full weight for the price; his style seems a sort of integument of brown paper. But the fact remains that if M. Sarcey praises a play the play has a run; and that if M. Sarcey says it will not do it does not do at all. If M. Sarcey devotes an encouraging line and a half to a young actress, mademoiselle is immediately lancée; she has a career. If he bestows a quiet "bravo" on an obscure comedian, the gentleman may forthwith renew his engagement. When you make and unmake fortunes at this rate, what matters it whether you have a little elegance the more or the less? Elegance is for M. Paul de St. Victor, who does the theaters in the "Moniteur," and who, though he writes a style only a trifle less pictorial than that of Théophile Gautier himself, has never, to the best of my belief, brought clouds or sunshine to any playhouse. I may add, to finish with M. Sarcey, that he contributes a daily political article—generally devoted to watching and showing up the "game" of the clerical party—to Edmond About’s journal, the "XIXième Siècle"; that he gives a weekly conférence on current literature; that he "confers" also on those excellent Sunday morning performances now so common in the French theaters, during which examples of the classic repertory are presented, accompanied by a light lecture upon the history and character of the play. As the commentator on these occasions M. Sarcey is in great demand, and he officiates sometimes in small provincial towns. Lastly, frequent play-goers in Paris observe that the very slenderest novelty is sufficient to insure at a theater the (very considerable) physical presence of the conscientious critic of the "Temps." If he were remarkable for nothing else he would be remarkable for the fortitude with which he exposes himself to the pestiferous climate of the Parisian temples of the drama.

It’s his serious approach to the matter, his completely businesslike and professional attitude, and his tireless attention to detail that give the critic of the "Temps" his impressive influence and the weight of his words. On top of that, he is strictly incorruptible. He has his favorites, but they are genuine and carefully chosen; and those he loves he often critiques. He isn’t shy about praising Mlle. X., who only had to make a curtsy, as long as her curtsy perfectly suited the situation; and he isn’t afraid to call out M. A. if he fails to deliver the play’s speech correctly. Of course, his judgment is sound; when I’ve had the chance to assess it, I’ve usually found it excellent. He has a great sense of theater. He knows at a glance what works and what doesn’t. He is perceptive, wise, and almost annoyingly earnest, and this is his main brilliance. He is down-to-earth, familiar, and conversational; he leans on his desk and wraps up his weekly budget in a simple package. You can imagine him as a grocer selling tapioca and hominy—giving full weight for the price; his style feels like a brown paper wrapper. But the truth is that when M. Sarcey praises a play, it succeeds; and if he says it won’t work, it definitely doesn’t. If M. Sarcey writes an encouraging line and a half about a young actress, she’s immediately launched into her career. If he gives a quiet "bravo" to an unknown comedian, he can renew his contract right away. When you can make and break fortunes like this, what does it matter if you have a bit more or less elegance? Elegance is for M. Paul de St. Victor, who covers the theaters in the "Moniteur," and who, although he writes in a style just a bit less vivid than that of Théophile Gautier himself, has never, as far as I know, brought any clouds or sunshine to a theater. I should mention, to wrap up on M. Sarcey, that he writes a daily political article—usually focused on tracking and exposing the "game" of the clerical party—for Edmond About’s journal, the "XIXième Siècle"; that he gives a weekly lecture on current literature; and that he also "confers" on those excellent Sunday morning performances that are now so common in French theaters, where examples of classic plays are presented along with a short lecture on the history and significance of the play. As the commentator on these occasions, M. Sarcey is much in demand, even officiating in small provincial towns. Lastly, regular theatergoers in Paris notice that even the slightest novelty is enough to guarantee the (very substantial) presence of the conscientious critic from the "Temps." If he were known for nothing else, he would certainly be known for the courage with which he endures the toxic atmosphere of Parisian theaters.

For these agreeable "notices" M. Sarcey appears to have mended his pen and to have given a fillip to his fancy. They are gracefully and often lightly turned; occasionally, even, the author grazes the epigrammatic. They deal, as is proper, with the artistic and not with the private physiognomy of the ladies and gentlemen whom they commemorate; and though they occasionally allude to what the French call "intimate" matters, they contain no satisfaction for the lovers of scandal. The Théâtre Français, in the face it presents to the world, is an austere and venerable establishment, and a frivolous tone about its affairs would be almost as much out of keeping as if applied to the Académie herself. M. Sarcey touches upon the organization of the theater, and gives some account of the different phases through which it has passed during these latter years. Its chief functionary is a general administrator, or director, appointed by the State, which enjoys this right in virtue of the considerable subsidy which it pays to the house; a subsidy amounting, if I am not mistaken (M. Sarcey does not mention the sum), to 250,000 francs. The director, however, is not an absolute but a constitutional ruler; for he shares his powers with the society itself, which has always had a large deliberative voice.

For these enjoyable "notices," M. Sarcey seems to have sharpened his writing and added some flair to his creativity. They are elegantly and often playfully composed; at times, the author even touches on something epigrammatic. They focus, as they should, on the artistic qualities of the ladies and gentlemen they celebrate, and although they occasionally reference what the French describe as "intimate" matters, they offer no thrill for scandal seekers. The Théâtre Français, in its public persona, is a serious and respected institution, and a lighthearted approach to its dealings would feel just as inappropriate as if applied to the Académie itself. M. Sarcey discusses the theater's organization and provides an overview of the various changes it has undergone in recent years. Its primary leader is a general administrator or director appointed by the State, which has this authority due to the substantial subsidy it provides to the theater; a subsidy that amounts, if I'm not mistaken (M. Sarcey doesn't specify the amount), to 250,000 francs. However, the director is not an absolute ruler but works within a constitutional framework, sharing authority with the society itself, which has always had a significant role in decision-making.

Whence, it may be asked, does the society derive its light and its inspiration? From the past, from precedent, from tradition—from the great unwritten body of laws which no one has in his keeping but many have in their memory, and all in their respect. The principles on which the Théâtre Français rests are a good deal like the Common Law of England—a vaguely and inconveniently registered mass of regulations which time and occasion have welded together and from which the recurring occasion can usually manage to extract the rightful precedent. Napoleon I., who had a finger in every pie in his dominion, found time during his brief and disastrous occupation of Moscow to send down a decree remodeling and regulating the constitution of the theater. This document has long been a dead letter, and the society abides by its older traditions. The traditions of the Comédie Française—that is the sovereign word, and that is the charm of the place—the charm that one never ceases to feel, however often one may sit beneath the classic, dusky dome. One feels this charm with peculiar intensity as a newly arrived foreigner. The Théâtre Français has had the good fortune to be able to allow its traditions to accumulate. They have been preserved, transmitted, respected, cherished, until at last they form the very atmosphere, the vital air, of the establishment. A stranger feels their superior influence the first time he sees the great curtain go up; he feels that he is in a theater that is not as other theaters are. It is not only better, it is different. It has a peculiar perfection—something consecrated, historical, academic. This impression is delicious, and he watches the performance in a sort of tranquil ecstasy.

Where does society get its inspiration and guidance? From the past, from established norms, from tradition—it's a large unwritten set of rules that nobody has fully documented but many remember, and everyone respects. The principles that the Théâtre Français is built upon are somewhat similar to England's Common Law—a loosely formed collection of rules that have been shaped over time, from which the right precedent can typically be drawn when needed. Napoleon I, who was involved in every aspect of his empire, took time during his brief and disastrous time in Moscow to issue a decree that reworked and regulated the theater's constitution. This document has long since become irrelevant, and the theater continues to follow its older traditions. The traditions of the Comédie Française—that is the key element, the magic of the place—the magic that one never stops feeling, no matter how many times one sits under the classic, dark dome. A newly arrived foreigner feels this charm even more intensely. The Théâtre Français has been fortunate to have allowed its traditions to build up over time. They have been preserved, passed down, respected, and cherished, until they create the very atmosphere, the essential air, of the establishment. A newcomer senses their profound influence the first time they see the grand curtain rise; they realize that they are in a theater that stands apart from all others. It’s not just better; it’s different. It possesses a unique perfection—something sacred, historical, academic. This feeling is delightful, and they watch the performance in a state of serene ecstasy.

Never has he seen anything so smooth and harmonious, so artistic and complete. He has heard all his life of attention to detail, and now, for the first time, he sees something that deserves the name. He sees dramatic effort refined to a point with which the English stage is unacquainted. He sees that there are no limits to possible "finish," and that so trivial an act as taking a letter from a servant or placing one’s hat on a chair may be made a suggestive and interesting incident. He sees these things and a great many more besides, but at first he does not analyze them; he gives himself up to sympathetic contemplation. He is in an ideal and exemplary world—a world that has managed to attain all the felicities that the world we live in misses. The people do the things that we should like to do; they are gifted as we should like to be; they have mastered the accomplishments that we have had to give up. The women are not all beautiful—decidedly not, indeed—but they are graceful, agreeable, sympathetic, ladylike; they have the best manners possible and they are delightfully well dressed. They have charming musical voices and they speak with irreproachable purity and sweetness; they walk with the most elegant grace and when they sit it is a pleasure to see their attitudes. They go out and come in, they pass across the stage, they talk, and laugh, and cry, they deliver long tirades or remain statuesquely mute; they are tender or tragic, they are comic or conventional; and through it all you never observe an awkwardness, a roughness, an accident, a crude spot, a false note.

He has never seen anything so smooth and harmonious, so artistic and complete. He’s heard about attention to detail all his life, and now, for the first time, he sees something that truly deserves that label. He sees dramatic effort refined to a level that the English stage doesn’t know. He realizes there are no limits to how polished things can be, and even a simple act like taking a letter from a servant or placing one’s hat on a chair can be a suggestive and interesting moment. He notices these things and many more, but initially, he doesn’t analyze them; he loses himself in sympathetic contemplation. He finds himself in an ideal and exemplary world—a world that has achieved all the joys that our world lacks. The people do the things we wish we could do; they are talented in ways we aspire to be; they have mastered the skills we've had to give up. The women aren’t all beautiful—not at all—but they are graceful, pleasant, relatable, and ladylike; they have impeccable manners and are delightfully well-dressed. They have charming musical voices and speak with perfect clarity and sweetness; they walk with elegant grace, and when they sit, their postures are a pleasure to behold. They come and go, cross the stage, talk, laugh, and cry, they deliver long monologues or remain statuesquely silent; they are tender or tragic, comic or conventional; and throughout it all, you never see any awkwardness, roughness, mishaps, clumsiness, or false notes.

As for the men, they are not handsome either; it must be confessed, indeed, that at the present hour manly beauty is but scantily represented at the Théâtre Français. Bressant, I believe, used to be thought handsome; but Bressant has retired, and among the gentlemen of the troupe I can think of no one but M. Mounet-Sully who may be positively commended for his fine person. But M. Mounet-Sully is, from the scenic point of view, an Adonis of the first magnitude. To be handsome, however, is for an actor one of the last necessities; and these gentlemen are mostly handsome enough. They look perfectly what they are intended to look, and in cases where it is proposed that they shall seem handsome, they usually succeed. They are as well mannered and as well dressed as their fairer comrades and their voices are no less agreeable and effective. They represent gentlemen and they produce the illusion. In this endeavour they deserve even greater credit than the actresses, for in modern comedy, of which the repertory of the Théâtre Français is largely composed, they have nothing in the way of costume to help to carry it off. Half-a-dozen ugly men, in the periodic coat and trousers and stove-pipe hat, with blue chins and false mustaches, strutting before the footlights, and pretending to be interesting, romantic, pathetic, heroic, certainly play a perilous game. At every turn they suggest prosaic things and the usual liability to awkwardness is meantime increased a thousandfold. But the comedians of the Théâtre Français are never awkward, and when it is necessary they solve triumphantly the problem of being at once realistic to the eye and romantic to the imagination.

As for the men, they're not handsome either; I have to admit that right now, manly beauty is pretty rare at the Théâtre Français. Bressant, I think, used to be considered handsome, but he's retired, and among the guys in the troupe, I can only think of M. Mounet-Sully who can genuinely be praised for his nice appearance. But M. Mounet-Sully is, from a stage perspective, a top-tier Adonis. Being handsome, however, is one of the last things an actor needs; these gentlemen are mostly handsome enough. They look exactly as they’re meant to, and in situations where they’re expected to appear handsome, they usually pull it off. They have the same level of manners and dress as their female counterparts, and their voices are just as pleasant and impactful. They portray gentlemen and create the illusion successfully. In this effort, they deserve even more credit than the actresses, because in modern comedy, which makes up a large part of the Théâtre Français's repertoire, they have no costumes to help them out. A few unattractive men, in period coats and trousers and tall hats, with blue chins and fake mustaches, strutting around and pretending to be interesting, romantic, pathetic, or heroic, are certainly taking a risk. They constantly evoke mundane things, and the usual risk of awkwardness is multiplied a thousand times. But the comedians at the Théâtre Français are never awkward, and when needed, they expertly tackle the challenge of being both realistic to the eye and romantic to the imagination.

I am speaking always of one’s first impression of them. There are spots on the sun, and you discover after a while that there are little irregularities at the Théâtre Français. But the acting is so incomparably better than any that you have seen that criticism for a long time is content to lie dormant. I shall never forget how at first I was under the charm. I liked the very incommodities of the place; I am not sure that I did not find a certain mystic salubrity in the bad ventilation. The Théâtre Français, it is known, gives you a good deal for your money. The performance, which rarely ends before midnight, and sometimes transgresses it, frequently begins by seven o’clock. The first hour or two is occupied by secondary performers; but not for the world at this time would I have missed the first rising of the curtain. No dinner could be too hastily swallowed to enable me to see, for instance, Madame Nathalie in Octave Feuillet’s charming little comedy of "Le Village." Madame Nathalie was a plain, stout old woman, who did the mothers and aunts and elderly wives; I use the past tense because she retired from the stage a year ago, leaving a most conspicuous vacancy. She was an admirable actress and a perfect mistress of laughter and tears. In "Le Village" she played an old provincial bourgeoise whose husband takes it into his head, one winter night, to start on the tour of Europe with a roving bachelor friend, who has dropped down on him at supper-time, after the lapse of years, and has gossiped him into momentary discontent with his fireside existence. My pleasure was in Madame Nathalie’s figure when she came in dressed to go out to vespers across the place. The two foolish old cronies are over their wine, talking of the beauty of the women on the Ionian coast; you hear the church-bell in the distance. It was the quiet felicity of the old lady’s dress that used to charm me; the Comédie Française was in every fold of it. She wore a large black silk mantilla, of a peculiar cut, which looked as if she had just taken it tenderly out of some old wardrobe where it lay folded in lavender, and a large dark bonnet, adorned with handsome black silk loops and bows. Her big pale face had a softly frightened look, and in her hand she carried her neatly kept breviary. The extreme suggestiveness, and yet the taste and temperance of this costume, seemed to me inimitable; the bonnet alone, with its handsome, decent, virtuous bows, was worth coming to see. It expressed all the rest, and you saw the excellent, pious woman go pick her steps churchward among the puddles, while Jeannette, the cook, in a high white cap, marched before her in sabots with a lantern.

I’m always talking about someone’s first impression of them. There are flaws in everything, and after a while, you notice little quirks at the Théâtre Français. But the acting is so incredibly better than anything you've seen that criticism stays quiet for a long time. I’ll never forget how I was captivated at first. I even liked the uncomfortable aspects of the place; I think I found some strange charm in the poor ventilation. It’s known that the Théâtre Français gives you a lot for your money. The performance, which rarely ends before midnight and sometimes goes over, usually starts around seven o’clock. The first hour or two features secondary performers, but I wouldn’t have missed the initial curtain rise for anything. No dinner could be eaten too quickly to let me see, for example, Madame Nathalie in Octave Feuillet's delightful little play "Le Village." Madame Nathalie was a plain, stout older woman who played mothers, aunts, and older wives; I use the past tense because she retired a year ago, leaving a significant gap. She was a fantastic actress and a master of both laughter and tears. In "Le Village," she portrayed an old provincial woman whose husband decides one winter night to travel around Europe with a wandering friend who surprises him during dinner, sparking a momentary wish to escape his cozy life. I enjoyed Madame Nathalie’s entrance when she came in dressed to go to vespers across the place. The two silly old friends are chatting over their wine, reminiscing about the beauty of women on the Ionian coast; you can hear the church bell in the distance. It was the quiet charm of the old lady’s outfit that enchanted me; the Comédie Française was in every detail of it. She wore a large black silk mantilla, cut in a unique way, as if she had just gently taken it from an old wardrobe where it lay folded with care, and a big dark bonnet decorated with elegant black silk loops and bows. Her large pale face had a gently startled expression, and she held her well-kept breviary in her hand. The costume was incredibly suggestive while still being tasteful and modest; the bonnet alone, with its lovely, decent bows, was worth the visit. It conveyed everything else, and you could see the excellent, devout woman making her way to church among the puddles while Jeannette, the cook, in a tall white cap, marched ahead of her in wooden shoes with a lantern.

Such matters are trifles, but they are representative trifles, and they are not the only ones that I remember. It used to please me, when I had squeezed into my stall—the stalls at the Français are extremely uncomfortable—to remember of how great a history the large, dim salle around me could boast; how many great things had happened there; how the air was thick with associations. Even if I had never seen Rachel, it was something of a consolation to think that those very footlights had illumined her finest moments and that the echoes of her mighty voice were sleeping in that dingy dome. From this to musing upon the "traditions" of the place, of which I spoke just now, was of course but a step. How were they kept? by whom, and where? Who trims the undying lamp and guards the accumulated treasure? I never found out—by sitting in the stalls; and very soon I ceased to care to know. One may be very fond of the stage and yet care little for the green-room; just as one may be very fond of pictures and books and yet be no frequenter of studios and authors’ dens. They might pass on the torch as they would behind the scenes; so long as during my time they did not let it drop I made up my mind to be satisfied. And that one could depend upon their not letting it drop became a part of the customary comfort of Parisian life. It became certain that the "traditions" were not mere catchwords, but a most beneficent reality.

Such things are minor, but they are significant little details, and they aren't the only ones I remember. I used to enjoy, when I squeezed into my seat—the seats at the Français are really uncomfortable—thinking about the rich history that the large, dim salle around me held; how many great events had taken place there; how the air was filled with memories. Even if I had never seen Rachel, it was somewhat comforting to think that those very footlights had illuminated her greatest moments and that the echoes of her powerful voice lingered in that shabby dome. It was an easy leap from that to pondering the "traditions" of the place, which I just mentioned. How are they preserved? By whom, and where? Who tends to the eternal lamp and protects the cherished legacy? I never figured that out—just by sitting in the seats; and soon enough, I stopped caring to know. One can love the stage and still not care much about the green room, just as one can appreciate art and books without frequently visiting studios and writers’ spaces. They could pass on the torch behind the scenes; as long as they didn’t let it drop during my time, I decided I would be content. And knowing that they wouldn’t let it drop became a part of the usual comfort of life in Paris. It became clear that the "traditions" were not empty phrases but a truly beneficial reality.

Going to the other Parisian theaters helps you to believe in them. Unless you are a voracious theater-goer you give the others up; you find they do not "pay"; the Français does for you all that they do and so much more besides. There are two possible exceptions—the Gymnase and the Palais Royal. The Gymnase, since the death of Mademoiselle Desclée, has been under a heavy cloud; but occasionally, when a month’s sunshine rests upon it, there is a savor of excellence in the performance. But you feel that you are still within the realm of accident; the delightful security of the Rue de Richelieu is wanting. The young lover is liable to be common and the beautifully dressed heroine to have an unpleasant voice. The Palais Royal has always been in its way very perfect; but its way admits of great imperfection. The actresses are classically bad, though usually pretty, and the actors are much addicted to taking liberties. In broad comedy, nevertheless, two or three of the latter are not to be surpassed, and (counting out the women) there is usually something masterly in a Palais Royal performance. In its own line it has what is called style, and it therefore walks, at a distance, in the footsteps of the Français. The Odéon has never seemed to me in any degree a rival of the Théâtre Français, though it is a smaller copy of that establishment. It receives a subsidy from the State, and is obliged by its contract to play the classic repertory one night in the week. It is on these nights, listening to Molière or Marivaux, that you may best measure the superiority of the greater theater. I have seen actors at the Odéon, in the classic repertory, imperfect in their texts; a monstrously insupposable case at the Comédie Française. The function of the Odéon is to operate as a pépinière or nursery for its elder—to try young talents, shape them, make them flexible and then hand them over to the upper house. The more especial nursery of the Français, however, is the Conservatoire Dramatique, an institution dependent upon the State, through the Ministry of the Fine Arts, whose budget is charged with the remuneration of its professors. Pupils graduating from the Conservatoire with a prize have ipso facto the right to débuter at the Théâtre Français, which retains them or lets them go, according to its discretion. Most of the first subjects of the Français have done their two years’ work at the Conservatoire, and M. Sarcey holds that an actor who has not had that fundamental training which is only to be acquired there never obtains a complete mastery of his resources. Nevertheless some of the best actors of the day have owed nothing to the Conservatoire—Bressant, for instance, and Aimée Desclée, the latter of whom, indeed, never arrived at the Français. (Molière and Balzac were not of the Academy, and so Mlle. Desclée, the first actress after Rachel, died without acquiring the privilege which M. Sarcey says is the day-dream of all young theatrical women—that of printing on their visiting-cards, after their name, de la Comédie Française.)

Going to the other theaters in Paris helps you appreciate them. Unless you're a die-hard theater fan, you might skip the others; you find they don't provide the experience you're looking for; the Français does everything they do and so much more. There are two possible exceptions—the Gymnase and the Palais Royal. The Gymnase, since the passing of Mademoiselle Desclée, has been somewhat uninspired; but occasionally, when a patch of good shows comes along, there's a hint of quality in the performances. However, you still sense it's a bit hit-or-miss; you miss the consistent enjoyment of the Rue de Richelieu. The young lovers might come off as cliché and the beautifully dressed heroine might have an unpleasant voice. The Palais Royal has always had its own kind of perfection; but that perfection allows for significant flaws. The actresses can be classically bad, though typically good-looking, and the actors often like to improvise a lot. Still, in broad comedy, a couple of the actors are top-notch, and excluding the women, there’s usually something outstanding about a performance at the Palais Royal. In its genre, it has what’s called style, and it somewhat follows in the footsteps of the Français from a distance. The Odéon has never seemed like a true rival to the Théâtre Français to me, even though it’s a smaller version of that theater. It gets government funding and is required to perform classic plays one night a week. It's on these nights, listening to Molière or Marivaux, that you can really see how superior the larger theater is. I’ve seen actors at the Odéon, performing classic plays, struggle with their lines, which would be unthinkable at the Comédie Française. The purpose of the Odéon is to act as a nursery for the main theater—to test new talent, help them develop, and then send them off to the bigger stage. However, the main nursery for the Français is the Conservatoire Dramatique, which is funded by the State, under the Ministry of the Fine Arts, whose budget covers the salaries of its teachers. Students who graduate from the Conservatoire with honors have the right to perform at the Théâtre Français, which then decides whether to keep them or let them go. Most of the leading actors at the Français completed their training at the Conservatoire, and M. Sarcey believes that an actor who hasn't undergone that essential training can never fully master their craft. Yet some of today’s best actors never went to the Conservatoire—like Bressant and Aimée Desclée, the latter of whom never performed at the Français. (Molière and Balzac weren’t part of the Academy, and so Mlle. Desclée, who was the leading actress after Rachel, died without ever achieving the privilege that M. Sarcey says is the dream of all young actresses—that of putting on their business cards, after their name, de la Comédie Française.)

The Théâtre Français has, moreover, the right to do as Molière did—to claim its property wherever it finds it. It may stretch out its long arm and break the engagement of a promising actor at any of the other theaters; of course after a certain amount of notice given. So, last winter, it notified to the Gymnase its design of appropriating Worms, the admirable jeune premier, who, returning from a long sojourn in Russia and taking the town by surprise, had begun to retrieve the shrunken fortunes of that establishment.

The Théâtre Français has the same right Molière had—to claim its talent wherever it finds it. It can reach out and break the contract of a promising actor at any other theater, of course, after giving some notice. So, last winter, it informed the Gymnase of its plan to poach Worms, the amazing jeune premier, who, after returning from a long stay in Russia and surprising everyone in town, had started to revive the declining fortunes of that theater.

On the whole, it may be said that the great talents find their way, sooner or later, to the Théâtre Français. This is of course not a rule that works unvaryingly, for there are a great many influences to interfere with it. Interest as well as merit—especially in the case of the actresses—weighs in the scale; and the ire that may exist in celestial minds has been known to manifest itself in the councils of the Comédie. Moreover, a brilliant actress may prefer to reign supreme at one of the smaller theaters; at the Français, inevitably, she shares her dominion. The honor is less, but the comfort is greater.

Overall, it's fair to say that great talents eventually make their way to the Théâtre Français. However, this isn't a strict rule, as many factors can influence the outcome. Both interest and talent—especially when it comes to actresses—play a role; and the displeasure of those in high places has been known to affect decisions within the councils of the Comédie. Furthermore, a talented actress might choose to shine at a smaller theater; at the Français, she inevitably has to share the spotlight. The prestige is lower, but the comfort is greater.

Nevertheless, at the Français, in a general way, there is in each case a tolerably obvious artistic reason for membership; and if you see a clever actor remain outside for years, you may be pretty sure that, though private reasons count, there are artistic reasons as well. The first half dozen times I saw Mademoiselle Fargueil, who for years ruled the roost, as the vulgar saying is, at the Vaudeville, I wondered that so consummate and accomplished an actress should not have a place on the first French stage. But I presently grew wiser, and perceived that, clever as Mademoiselle Fargueil is, she is not for the Rue de Richelieu, but for the Boulevards; her peculiar, intensely Parisian intonation would sound out of place in the Maison de Molière. (Of course if Mademoiselle Fargueil has ever received overtures from the Français, my sagacity is at fault—I am looking through a millstone. But I suspect she has not.) Frédéric Lemaître, who died last winter, and who was a very great actor, had been tried at the Français and found wanting—for those particular conditions. But it may probably be said that if Frédéric was wanting, the theater was too, in this case. Frédéric’s great force was his extravagance, his fantasticality; and the stage of the Rue de Richelieu was a trifle too academic. I have even wondered whether Desclée, if she had lived, would have trod that stage by right, and whether it would have seemed her proper element. The negative is not impossible. It is very possible that in that classic atmosphere her great charm—her intensely modern quality, her super-subtle realism—would have appeared an anomaly. I can imagine even that her strange, touching, nervous voice would not have seemed the voice of the house. At the Français you must know how to acquit yourself of a tirade; that has always been the touchstone of capacity. It would probably have proved Desclée’s stumbling-block, though she could utter speeches of six words as no one else surely has ever done. It is true that Mademoiselle Croizette, and in a certain sense Mademoiselle Sarah Bernhardt, are rather weak at their tirades; but then old theater-goers will tell you that these young ladies, in spite of a hundred attractions, have no business at the Français.

However, at the Théâtre Français, there’s usually a pretty clear artistic reason for why someone is a member. If you notice a talented actor staying out for years, you can bet that while personal reasons are part of it, artistic reasons play a role too. The first few times I saw Mademoiselle Fargueil, who held the spotlight at the Vaudeville for years, I was puzzled as to why such a skilled actress didn’t have a spot on the main French stage. But I soon understood that, talented as she is, Mademoiselle Fargueil belongs to the Boulevards, not the Rue de Richelieu; her distinctively Parisian accent wouldn’t fit in at the Maison de Molière. (Of course, if she ever received offers from the Français, I might be mistaken—I might be missing something. But I doubt she has.) Frédéric Lemaître, who passed away last winter and was an extraordinary actor, was tried at the Français and found lacking for those specific conditions. However, it’s fair to say that if Frédéric fell short, the theater did too in this instance. His great strength was his extravagance and quirky style, while the stage at Rue de Richelieu was a bit too traditional. I have even wondered if Desclée, had she lived, would have rightly performed on that stage, and if it would have seemed like her natural environment. The answer isn’t impossible; it’s quite likely that in that classic setting, her incredible charm—her modernity and subtle realism—would have felt out of place. I can imagine that her unique, touching, nervous voice wouldn’t have sounded like the usual voice for that venue. At the Français, you need to be able to deliver a tirade; that has always been the benchmark of skill. That could have been Desclée’s downfall, even though she could deliver six-word lines better than anyone else. It’s true that Mademoiselle Croizette, and in a sense Mademoiselle Sarah Bernhardt, aren’t particularly strong with their tirades; however, longtime theater-goers will tell you that despite all their charms, these young ladies don’t truly belong at the Français.

In the course of time the susceptible foreigner passes from that superstitious state of attention which I just now sketched to that greater enlightenment which enables him to understand such a judgment as this of the old theater-goers. It is borne in upon him that, as the good Homer sometimes nods, the Théâtre Français sometimes lapses from its high standard. He makes various reflections. He thinks that Mademoiselle Favart rants. He thinks M. Mounet-Sully, in spite of his delicious voice, insupportable. He thinks that M. Parodi’s five-act tragedy, "Rome Vaincue," presented in the early part of the present winter, was better done certainly than it would have been done upon any English stage, but by no means so much better done as might have been expected. (Here, if I had space, I would open a long parenthesis, in which I should aspire to demonstrate that the incontestable superiority of average French acting to English is by no means so strongly marked in tragedy as in comedy—is indeed sometimes not strongly marked at all. The reason of this is in a great measure, I think, that we have had Shakespeare to exercise ourselves upon, and that an inferior dramatic instinct exercised upon Shakespeare may become more flexible than a superior one exercised upon Corneille and Racine. When it comes to ranting—ranting even in a modified and comparatively reasonable sense—we do, I suspect, quite as well as the French, if not rather better.) Mr. G. H. Lewes, in his entertaining little book upon Actors and the Art of Acting, mentions M. Talbot, of the Français, as a surprisingly incompetent performer. My memory assents to his judgment at the same time that it proposes an amendment. This actor’s special line is the buffeted, bemuddled, besotted old fathers, uncles and guardians of classic comedy, and he plays them with his face much more than with his tongue. Nature has endowed him with a visage so admirably adapted, once for all, to his rôle, that he has only to sit in a chair, with his hands folded on his stomach, to look like a monument of bewildered senility. After that it does not matter what he says or how he says it.

Over time, the impressionable foreigner moves from that superstitious state of awareness I just described to a greater understanding that lets him grasp the judgment of seasoned theater-goers. He realizes that even the great Théâtre Français sometimes falls short of its high standards. He reflects on various points: he thinks Mademoiselle Favart overacts. He finds M. Mounet-Sully, despite his beautiful voice, unbearable. He considers that M. Parodi’s five-act tragedy, "Rome Vaincue," which premiered earlier this winter, was certainly better than it would have been on any English stage, but not nearly as much better as one might have expected. (If I had the space, I would open a long parenthesis to argue that the clear superiority of average French acting over English is not nearly as evident in tragedy as it is in comedy—sometimes, it’s hardly noticeable at all. The reason for this, I believe, is largely due to the fact that we have Shakespeare to work with, and an inferior dramatic instinct applied to Shakespeare may become more adaptable than a superior one working with Corneille and Racine. When it comes to overacting—even in a tempered and relatively reasonable sense—we do just as well as the French, if not better.) Mr. G. H. Lewes, in his entertaining little book on Actors and the Art of Acting, describes M. Talbot of the Français as a surprisingly bad actor. I agree with his assessment while also offering a slight correction. This actor specializes in the confused, muddled, and tipsy old fathers, uncles, and guardians of classic comedy, and he conveys this mainly through his expressive face rather than his words. Nature has gifted him with a face perfectly suited for his role, so that he only needs to sit in a chair with his hands on his stomach to look like a monument of confused old age. After that, it doesn’t matter what he says or how he says it.

The Comédie Française sometimes does weaker things than in keeping M. Talbot. Last autumn,[8] for instance, it was really depressing to see Mademoiselle Dudley brought all the way from Brussels (and with not a little flourish either) to "create" the guilty vestal in "Rome Vaincue." As far as the interests of art are concerned, Mademoiselle Dudley had much better have remained in the Flemish capital, of whose language she is apparently a perfect mistress. It is hard, too, to forgive M. Perrin (M. Perrin is the present director of the Théâtre Français) for bringing out "L’Ami Fritz" of M. Erckmann-Chatrian. The two gentlemen who write under this name have a double claim to kindness. In the first place, they have produced some delightful little novels; everyone knows and admires Le Conscrit de 1813; everyone admires, indeed, the charming tale on which the play in question is founded. In the second place, they were, before the production of their piece, the objects of a scurrilous attack by the "Figaro" newspaper, which held the authors up to reprobation for having "insulted the army," and did its best to lay the train for a hostile manifestation on the first night. (It may be added that the good sense of the public outbalanced the impudence of the newspaper, and the play was simply advertised into success.) But neither the novels nor the persecutions of M. Erckmann-Chatrian avail to render "L’Ami Fritz," in its would-be dramatic form, worthy of the first French stage. It is played as well as possible, and upholstered even better; but it is, according to the vulgar phrase, too "thin" for the locality. Upholstery has never played such a part at the Théâtre Français as during the reign of M. Perrin, who came into power, if I mistake not, after the late war. He proved very early that he was a radical, and he has introduced a hundred novelties. His administration, however, has been brilliant, and in his hands the Théâtre Français has made money. This it had rarely done before, and this, in the conservative view, is quite beneath its dignity. To the conservative view I should humbly incline. An institution so closely protected by a rich and powerful State ought to be able to cultivate art for art.

The Comédie Française sometimes puts on less impressive shows than M. Talbot’s performances. Last autumn,[8] for example, it was really disappointing to see Mademoiselle Dudley brought all the way from Brussels (and not without some fanfare) to "create" the role of the guilty vestal in "Rome Vaincue." For the sake of art, Mademoiselle Dudley would have been better off staying in her home city, where she clearly has mastered the language. It's also hard to forgive M. Perrin (the current director of the Théâtre Français) for staging "L’Ami Fritz" by M. Erckmann-Chatrian. The two writers behind that name deserve recognition for two reasons. First, they've written some delightful little novels; everyone knows and admires Le Conscrit de 1813; in fact, everyone loves the charming story that inspired the play. Second, they were the targets of a nasty attack from the "Figaro" newspaper, which criticized them for "insulting the army" and tried to provoke a negative reaction on the opening night. (It's worth noting that the public’s good judgment outweighed the newspaper's audacity, and the play ended up being a success thanks to clever marketing.) But neither the novels nor the harassment faced by M. Erckmann-Chatrian make "L’Ami Fritz," in its attempted dramatic form, fit for the premier French stage. It's performed as well as it can be and dressed up even better, but, in simple terms, it just isn't substantial enough for the venue. The level of decoration has never been so significant at the Théâtre Français as it has during M. Perrin's tenure, who came into power, if I'm not mistaken, after the recent war. He quickly showed himself to be a radical and has introduced a hundred new ideas. However, his management has been successful, and under his leadership, the Théâtre Français has made money. This is something it rarely achieved before, and from a conservative perspective, it seems rather undignified. I tend to lean toward that conservative viewpoint. An institution so heavily supported by a wealthy and powerful State should be able to cultivate art for its own sake.

The first of M. Sarcey’s biographies, to which I have been too long in coming, is devoted to Regnier, a veteran actor, who left the stage four or five years since, and who now fills the office of oracle to his younger comrades. It is the indispensable thing, says M. Sarcey, for a young aspirant to be able to say that he has had lessons of M. Regnier, or that M. Regnier had advised him, or that he has talked such and such a point over with M. Regnier. (His comrades always speak of him as M. Regnier—never as simple Regnier.) I have had the fortune to see him but once; it was the first time I ever went to the Théâtre Français. He played Don Annibal in Émile Augier’s romantic comedy of "L’Aventurière," and I have not forgotten the exquisite humor of the performance. The part is that of a sort of seventeenth century Captain Costigan, only the Miss Fotheringay in the case is the gentleman’s sister and not his daughter. This lady is moreover an ambitious and designing person, who leads her thread-bare braggart of a brother quite by the nose. She has entrapped a worthy gentleman of Padua, of mature years, and he is on the eve of making her his wife, when his son, a clever young soldier, beguiles Don Annibal into supping with him, and makes him drink so deep that the prating adventurer at last lets the cat out of the bag and confides to his companion that the fair Clorinde is not the virtuous gentlewoman she appears, but a poor strolling actress who has had a lover at every stage of her journey. The scene was played by Bressant and Regnier, and it has always remained in my mind as one of the most perfect things I have seen on the stage. The gradual action of the wine upon Don Annibal, the delicacy with which his deepening tipsiness was indicated, its intellectual rather than physical manifestation, and, in the midst of it, the fantastic conceit which made him think that he was winding his fellow drinker round his fingers—all this was exquisitely rendered. Drunkenness on the stage is usually both dreary and disgusting; and I can remember besides this but two really interesting pictures of intoxication (excepting always, indeed, the immortal tipsiness of Cassio in "Othello," which a clever actor can always make touching). One is the beautiful befuddlement of Rip Van Winkle, as Mr. Joseph Jefferson renders it, and the other (a memory of the Théâtre Français) the scene in the "Duc Job," in which Got succumbs to mild inebriation, and dozes in his chair just boosily enough for the young girl who loves him to make it out.

The first of M. Sarcey’s biographies, which I've taken too long to read, is about Regnier, a seasoned actor who stepped off the stage four or five years ago and now serves as a mentor to his younger colleagues. M. Sarcey says it's essential for any aspiring actor to claim they’ve taken lessons from M. Regnier or that he has given them advice, or that they've discussed specific points with him. (His peers always refer to him as M. Regnier—never just Regnier.) I've only had the chance to see him perform once; it was my first visit to the Théâtre Français. He played Don Annibal in Émile Augier’s romantic comedy "L’Aventurière," and I still remember the exquisite humor of his performance. The character resembles a seventeenth-century Captain Costigan, but this lady, in this case, is his sister rather than his daughter. This woman is also ambitious and manipulative, leading her boastful brother along quite expertly. She has caught the attention of a respectable older gentleman from Padua, who is about to marry her when his son, a clever young soldier, tricks Don Annibal into dining with him and makes him drink so much that the chatterbox finally spills the beans, confessing that the lovely Clorinde isn’t the virtuous woman she seems to be, but a struggling actress who has had a lover at every stop along her way. The scene was performed by Bressant and Regnier, and it has always stuck with me as one of the most perfect things I’ve seen on stage. The subtle way the wine affects Don Annibal, the finesse with which his growing drunkenness is portrayed, focusing on its intellectual rather than physical effects, and in the midst of this, the imaginative notion that he thinks he's completely controlling his drinking companion—all of it was skillfully done. Drunkenness on stage is usually either dull or off-putting; aside from this, I can recall only two truly engaging portrayals of intoxication (excluding the legendary tipsiness of Cassio in "Othello," which a skilled actor can always make moving). One is the beautiful befuddlement of Rip Van Winkle, as performed by Mr. Joseph Jefferson, and the other (a memory from the Théâtre Français) is the scene in "Duc Job," where Got succumbs to mild inebriation and dozes in his chair just enough for the young girl who loves him to notice.

It is to this admirable Émile Got that M. Sarcey’s second notice is devoted. Got is at the present hour unquestionably the first actor at the Théâtre Français, and I have personally no hesitation in accepting him as the first of living actors. His younger comrade, Coquelin, has, I think, as much talent and as much art; as the older man Got has the longer and fuller record and may therefore be spoken of as the master. If I were obliged to rank the half-dozen premiers sujets of the last few years at the Théâtre Français in their absolute order of talent (thank Heaven, I am not so obliged!) I think I should make up some such little list as this: Got, Coquelin, Madame Plessy, Sarah Bernhardt, Mademoiselle Favart, Delaunay. I confess that I have no sooner written it than I feel as if I ought to amend it, and wonder whether it is not a great folly to put Delaunay after Mademoiselle Favart. But this is idle.

It is to the remarkable Émile Got that M. Sarcey’s second notice is dedicated. Got is currently undoubtedly the top actor at the Théâtre Français, and I have no doubt in considering him the best among living actors. His younger colleague, Coquelin, has just as much talent and skill; however, Got has a longer and more comprehensive career, so he can be regarded as the master. If I had to rank the top half-dozen premiers sujets of the last few years at the Théâtre Français based on their talent (thankfully, I’m not obligated to do so!), I think I would come up with a list like this: Got, Coquelin, Madame Plessy, Sarah Bernhardt, Mademoiselle Favart, Delaunay. I must admit that as soon as I write it, I feel like I should change it and question whether it’s a mistake to place Delaunay after Mademoiselle Favart. But this is just a trivial thought.

As for Got, he is a singularly interesting actor. I have often wondered whether the best definition of him would not be to say that he is really a philosophic actor. He is an immense humorist and his comicality is sometimes colossal; but his most striking quality is the one on which M. Sarcey dwells—his sobriety and profundity, his underlying element of manliness and melancholy, the impression he gives you of having a general conception of human life and of seeing the relativity, as one may say, of the character he represents. Of all the comic actors I have seen he is the least trivial—at the same time that for richness of detail his comic manner is unsurpassed. His repertory is very large and various, but it may be divided into two equal halves—the parts that belong to reality and the parts that belong to fantasy. There is of course a great deal of fantasy in his realistic parts and a great deal of reality in his fantastic ones, but the general division is just; and at times, indeed, the two faces of his talent seem to have little in common. The Duc Job, to which I just now alluded, is one of the things he does most perfectly. The part, which is that of a young man, is a serious and tender one. It is amazing that the actor who plays it should also be able to carry off triumphantly the frantic buffoonery of Maître Pathelin, or should represent the Sganarelle of the "Médecin Malgré Lui" with such an unctuous breadth of humor. The two characters, perhaps, which have given me the liveliest idea of Got’s power and fertility are the Maître Pathelin and the M. Poirier who figures in the title to the comedy which Émile Augier and Jules Sandeau wrote together. M. Poirier, the retired shopkeeper who marries his daughter to a marquis and makes acquaintance with the incommodities incidental to such a piece of luck, is perhaps the actor’s most elaborate creation; it is difficult to see how the portrayal of a type and an individual can have a larger sweep and a more minute completeness. The bonhomme Poirier, in Got’s hands, is really great; and half-a-dozen of the actor’s modern parts that I could mention are hardly less brilliant. But when I think of him I instinctively think first of some rôle in which he wears the cap and gown of a period as regards which humorous invention may fairly take the bit in its teeth. This is what Got lets it do in Maître Pathelin, and he leads the spectator’s exhilarated fancy a dance to which the latter’s aching sides on the morrow sufficiently testify.

Got is an exceptionally interesting actor. I've often thought that the best way to describe him is as a truly philosophical actor. He is incredibly humorous, and his comedic style can sometimes be enormous; however, his most striking attribute is the one M. Sarcey highlights—his seriousness and depth, along with a blend of masculinity and melancholy. He gives off an impression of having a broad understanding of human life and recognizing the relativity, as one might say, of the character he portrays. Of all the comedic actors I've seen, he is the least trivial—yet when it comes to the richness of detail, his comedic approach is unmatched. His repertoire is vast and varied, but it can be split into two equal parts—the roles grounded in reality and those that venture into fantasy. Naturally, there’s plenty of fantasy in his realistic roles and much reality in his fantastical ones, but the general division holds true; at times, the two aspects of his talent seem quite unrelated. The Duc Job, which I just mentioned, is one of the things he performs flawlessly. The role, that of a young man, is both serious and tender. It's remarkable that the actor who takes on this role can also successfully execute the wild antics of Maître Pathelin, or portray Sganarelle in the "Médecin Malgré Lui" with such rich humor. The two characters that have given me the clearest sense of Got’s skill and creativity are Maître Pathelin and M. Poirier, who appears in the title of the comedy jointly written by Émile Augier and Jules Sandeau. M. Poirier, the retired shopkeeper who marries off his daughter to a marquis and experiences the challenges that come with such good fortune, is perhaps the actor’s most complex creation; it’s hard to envision how the portrayal of a character type and an individual can have such a wide range and detailed completeness. The bonhomme Poirier, in Got’s portrayal, truly stands out; and several of the actor’s modern roles that I could mention are hardly less impressive. But when I think of him, I instinctively recall some role in which he dons the cap and gown of a time period where humorous imagination can truly take flight. This is exactly what Got allows in Maître Pathelin, and he leads the audience’s delighted imagination in a way that leaves them laughing long after.

The piece is a réchauffé of a mediæval farce which has the credit of being the first play not a "mystery" or a miracle-piece in the records of the French drama. The plot is extremely bald and primitive. It sets forth how a cunning lawyer undertook to purchase a dozen ells of cloth for nothing. In the first scene we see him in the market-place, bargaining and haggling with the draper, and then marching off with the roll of cloth, with the understanding that the shopman shall call at his house in the course of an hour for the money. In the next act we have Maître Pathelin at his fireside with his wife, to whom he relates his trick and its projected sequel, and who greets them with Homeric laughter. He gets into bed, and the innocent draper arrives. Then follows a scene of which the liveliest description must be ineffective. Pathelin pretends to be out of his head, to be overtaken by a mysterious malady which has made him delirious, not to know the draper from Adam, never to have heard of the dozen ells of cloth, and to be altogether an impossible person to collect a debt from. To carry out this character he indulges in a series of indescribable antics, out-Bedlams Bedlam, frolics over the room dressed out in the bed-clothes and chanting the wildest gibberish, bewilders the poor draper to within an inch of his own sanity and finally puts him utterly to rout. The spectacle could only be portentously flat or heroically successful, and in Got’s hands this latter was its fortune. His Sganarelle, in the "Médicin Malgré Lui," and half-a-dozen of his characters from Molière besides—such a part, too, as his Tibia, in Alfred de Musset’s charming bit of romanticism, the "Caprices de Marianne"—have a certain generic resemblance with his treatment of the figure I have sketched. In all these things the comicality is of the exuberant and tremendous order, and yet in spite of its richness and flexibility it suggests little connection with high animal spirits. It seems a matter of invention, of reflection and irony. You cannot imagine Got representing a fool pure and simple—or at least a passive and unsuspecting fool. There must always be an element of shrewdness and even of contempt; he must be the man who knows and judges—or at least who pretends. It is a compliment, I take it, to an actor, to say that he prompts you to wonder about his private personality; and an observant spectator of M. Got is at liberty to guess that he is both obstinate and proud.

The piece is a réchauffé of a medieval farce, which is recognized as the first play in French drama that isn't a "mystery" or a miracle piece. The plot is very simple and straightforward. It shows how a clever lawyer tries to get a dozen ells of cloth without paying for it. In the first scene, we see him in the marketplace, bargaining and haggling with the draper, and then walking away with the roll of cloth, with the understanding that the shopkeeper will come by his house in an hour to collect the money. In the next act, we find Maître Pathelin at home with his wife, telling her about his trick and its planned outcome, which makes her laugh uncontrollably. He gets into bed, and the unsuspecting draper arrives. What follows is a scene that words alone cannot fully capture. Pathelin pretends to be out of his mind, struck by a mysterious illness that has made him delirious, not recognizing the draper or recalling anything about the dozen ells of cloth, and acting completely impossible to collect from. To carry out this act, he engages in a series of wild antics, causing total confusion for the poor draper, pushing him to the brink of madness, and ultimately driving him away. The performance could either fall flat or succeed spectacularly, and in Got’s hands, it turned out to be the latter. His Sganarelle in "Médicin Malgré Lui," along with several other characters from Molière, and even his Tibia in Alfred de Musset’s charming romantic piece, "Caprices de Marianne," all share a generic resemblance with the character I’ve described. In all these roles, the humor is abundant and powerful, yet despite its richness and flexibility, it suggests little connection to high spirits. It feels like a matter of creativity, reflection, and irony. You can’t picture Got portraying a fool who is completely unaware or unsuspecting. There’s always an element of cleverness and even disdain; he must be someone who knows and judges—or at least pretends to. I believe it’s a compliment to an actor to say that he prompts curiosity about his personal character; and a keen observer of M. Got might guess that he is both stubborn and proud.

In Coquelin there is perhaps greater spontaneity, and there is a not inferior mastery of his art. He is a wonderfully brilliant, elastic actor. He is but thirty-five years old, and yet his record is most glorious. He too has his "actual" and his classical repertory, and here also it is hard to choose. As the young valet de comédie in Molière and Regnard and Marivaux he is incomparable. I shall never forget the really infernal brilliancy of his Mascarille in "L’Étourdi." His volubility, his rapidity, his impudence and gayety, his ringing, penetrating voice and the shrill trumpet-note of his laughter, make him the ideal of the classic serving-man of the classic young lover—half rascal and half good fellow. Coquelin has lately had two or three immense successes in the comedies of the day. His Duc de Sept-Monts, in the famous "Étrangère" of Alexandre Dumas, last winter, was the capital creation of the piece; and in the revival, this winter, of Augier’s "Paul Forestier," his Adolphe de Beaubourg, the young man about town, consciously tainted with commonness, and trying to shake off the incubus, seemed while one watched it and listened to it the last word of delicately humorous art. Of Coquelin’s eminence in the old comedies M. Sarcey speaks with a certain pictorial force: "No one is better cut out to represent those bold and magnificent rascals of the old repertory, with their boisterous gayety, their brilliant fancy and their superb extravagance, who give to their buffoonery je ne sais quoi d’épique. In these parts one may say of Coquelin that he is incomparable. I prefer him to Got in such cases, and even to Regnier, his master. I never saw Monrose, and cannot speak of him. But good judges have assured me that there was much that was factitious in the manner of this eminent comedian, and that his vivacity was a trifle mechanical. There is nothing whatever of this in Coquelin’s manner. The eye, the nose, and the voice—the voice above all—are his most powerful means of action. He launches his tirades all in one breath, with full lungs, without troubling himself too much over the shading of details, in large masses, and he possesses himself only the more strongly of the public, which has a great sense of ensemble. The words that must be detached, the words that must decisively 'tell,' glitter in this delivery with the sonorous ring of a brand-new louis d’or. Crispin, Scapin, Figaro, Mascarille have never found a more valiant and joyous interpreter."

In Coquelin, there’s perhaps more spontaneity, along with a mastery of his craft that isn’t any less impressive. He’s a brilliantly talented, dynamic actor. At just thirty-five years old, his record is remarkable. He has both his contemporary and classical repertoire, and it’s tough to pick a standout. As the young comedic servant in Molière, Regnard, and Marivaux, he is unmatched. I will never forget the incredibly brilliant performance of his Mascarille in "L’Étourdi." His fluency, speed, boldness, and cheerfulness, combined with his resonant, piercing voice and the shrillness of his laughter, make him the ideal classic servant for a classic young lover—half rogue and half good buddy. Recently, Coquelin had a few huge successes in modern comedies. His Duc de Sept-Monts in the famous "Étrangère" by Alexandre Dumas last winter was the highlight of the show; and in this winter's revival of Augier’s "Paul Forestier," his Adolphe de Beaubourg, the young urbanite who knowingly carries a touch of commonness and tries to shake it off, seemed to embody the pinnacle of subtly humorous performance. M. Sarcey describes Coquelin’s greatness in classic comedies with vivid imagery: "No one is better suited to portray those bold and magnificent rascals of the classic repertoire, brimming with boisterous joy, brilliant imagination, and extravagant charm, who lend an epic quality to their buffoonery. One could say that Coquelin is incomparable in these roles. I prefer him to Got in these instances, and even to Regnier, his teacher. Though I never saw Monrose and can’t comment on him, experienced critics have told me there was something somewhat artificial in this well-known comedian’s style, and that his liveliness felt a bit mechanical. There’s nothing at all of that in Coquelin’s approach. His eyes, his nose, and his voice—especially his voice—are his most powerful tools. He delivers his tirades all in one breath, with full lungs, not worrying too much about intricate details, but rather in bold strokes, and he captures the audience even more strongly because they appreciate a cohesive performance. The words that need to stand out, the words that must resonate, shine in his delivery like the clear ring of a fresh louis d’or. Crispin, Scapin, Figaro, and Mascarille have never had a more valiant and joyful interpreter."

I should say that this was enough about the men at the Théâtre Français, if I did not remember that I have not spoken of Delaunay. But Delaunay has plenty of people to speak for him; he has, in especial, the more eloquent half of humanity—the ladies. I suppose that of all the actors of the Comédie Française he is the most universally appreciated and admired; he is the popular favorite. And he has certainly earned this distinction, for there was never a more amiable and sympathetic genius. He plays the young lovers of the past and the present, and he acquits himself of his difficult and delicate task with extraordinary grace and propriety. The danger I spoke of a while since—the danger, for the actor of a romantic and sentimental part, of being compromised by the coat and trousers, the hat and umbrella of the current year—are reduced by Delaunay to their minimum. He reconciles in a marvelous fashion the love-sick gallant of the ideal world with the "gentlemanly man" of to-day; and his passion is as far removed from rant as his propriety is from stiffness. He has been accused of late years of falling into a mannerism, and I think there is some truth in the charge. But the fault in Delaunay’s situation is certainly venial. How can a man of fifty, to whom, as regards face and figure, Nature has been stingy, play an amorous swain of twenty without taking refuge in a mannerism? His mannerism is a legitimate device for diverting the spectator’s attention from certain incongruities. Delaunay’s juvenility, his ardor, his passion, his good taste and sense of fitness, have always an irresistible charm. As he has grown older he has increased his repertory by parts of greater weight and sobriety—he has played the husbands as well as the lovers. One of his most recent and brilliant "creations" of this kind is his Marquis de Presles in "Le Gendre de M. Poirier"—a piece of acting superb for its lightness and désinvolture. It cannot be better praised than by saying it was worthy of Got’s inimitable rendering of the part opposed to it. But I think I shall remember Delaunay best in the picturesque and romantic comedies—as the Duc de Richelieu in "Mlle. De Belle-Isle"; as the joyous, gallant, exuberant young hero, his plumes and love knots fluttering in the breath of his gushing improvisation, of Corneille’s "Menteur"; or, most of all, as the melodious swains of those charmingly poetic, faintly, naturally Shakespearean little comedies of Alfred de Musset.

I should mention that I’ve covered enough about the men at the Théâtre Français, unless I forget to talk about Delaunay. But Delaunay has plenty of people to speak for him, especially the more eloquent half of humanity—the ladies. I suppose that of all the actors at the Comédie Française, he is the most universally appreciated and admired; he is the popular favorite. And he has definitely earned this distinction, as there has never been a more agreeable and relatable talent. He portrays young lovers from both the past and the present, and he handles this challenging and delicate role with extraordinary grace and appropriateness. The risk I mentioned earlier—the risk for an actor in a romantic and sentimental role of being overshadowed by the fashion and trends of the current year—has been minimized by Delaunay. He beautifully merges the lovesick gallant of the ideal world with today’s "gentleman," and his passion is as far from melodrama as his appropriateness is from stiff formality. In recent years, he’s been accused of developing a mannerism, and I think there’s some truth to that. However, the issue in Delaunay’s case is certainly a minor one. How can a fifty-year-old man, who Nature has not been generous to in terms of looks, play a romantic young man without resorting to a mannerism? His mannerism is a legitimate way to divert the audience’s attention from certain inconsistencies. Delaunay’s youthful energy, his enthusiasm, his passion, and his good taste and sense of style always carry an irresistible charm. As he has gotten older, he has expanded his repertoire to include more substantial and serious roles—he has played husbands as well as lovers. One of his most recent and outstanding performances in this way is his Marquis de Presles in "Le Gendre de M. Poirier"—an acting performance that shines for its lightness and casual elegance. It could not be better praised than by saying it was worthy of Got’s unmatched portrayal of the opposing character. But I think I will remember Delaunay best in the colorful and romantic comedies—like the Duc de Richelieu in "Mlle. De Belle-Isle"; as the joyful, charming, exuberant young hero, his plumes and love knots dancing in the air of his spirited improvisation in Corneille’s "Menteur"; or, most of all, as the melodious lovers in those delightfully poetic, subtly, naturally Shakespearean little comedies of Alfred de Musset.

To speak of Delaunay ought to bring us properly to Mademoiselle Favart, who for so many years invariably represented the object of his tender invocations. Mademoiselle Favart at the present time rather lacks what the French call "actuality." She has recently made an attempt to recover something of that large measure of it which she once possessed; but I doubt whether it has been completely successful. M. Sarcey has not yet put forth his notice of her; and when he does so it will be interesting to see how he treats her. She is not one of his high admirations. She is a great talent that has passed into eclipse. I call her a great talent, although I remember the words in which M. Sarcey somewhere speaks of her: "Mlle. Favart, who, to happy natural gifts, soutenus par un travail acharné, owed a distinguished place," etc. Her talent is great, but the impression that she gives of a travail acharné and of an insatiable ambition is perhaps even greater. For many years she reigned supreme, and I believe she is accused of not having always reigned generously. However that may be, there came a day when Mesdemoiselles Croizette and Sarah Bernhardt passed to the front and the elder actress receded, if not into the background, at least into what painters call the middle distance. The private history of these events has, I believe, been rich in heart-burnings; but it is only with the public history that we are concerned. Mademoiselle Favart has always seemed to me a powerful rather than an interesting actress; there is usually something mechanical and overdone in her manner. In some of her parts there is a kind of audible creaking of the machinery. If Delaunay is open to the reproach of having let a mannerism get the better of him, this accusation is much more fatally true of Mademoiselle Favart. On the other hand, she knows her trade as no one does—no one, at least, save Madame Plessy. When she is bad she is extremely bad, and sometimes she is interruptedly bad for a whole evening. In the revival of Scribe’s clever comedy of "Une Chaine," this winter (which, by the way, though the cast included both Got and Coquelin, was the nearest approach to mediocrity I have ever seen at the Théâtre Français), Mademoiselle Favart was, to my sense, startlingly bad. The part had originally been played by Madame Plessy; and I remember how M. Sarcey in his feuilleton treated its actual representative. "Mademoiselle Favart does Louise. Who does not recall the exquisite delicacy and temperance with which Mme. Plessy rendered that difficult scene in the second act?" etc. And nothing more. When, however, Mademoiselle Favart is at her best, she is remarkably strong. She rises to great occasions. I doubt whether such parts as the desperate heroine of the "Supplice d’une Femme," or as Julie in Octave Feuillet’s lugubrious drama of that name, could be more effectively played than she plays them. She can carry a great weight without flinching; she has what the French call "authority"; and in declamation she sometimes unrolls her fine voice, as it were, in long harmonious waves and cadences the sustained power of which her younger rivals must often envy her.

Talking about Delaunay naturally brings us to Mademoiselle Favart, who for so many years was the focus of his heartfelt invitations. Right now, Mademoiselle Favart seems to lack what the French refer to as "actuality." She’s recently tried to regain some of the charisma she once had, but I doubt it's been completely successful. M. Sarcey hasn’t released his review of her yet, and when he does, it will be interesting to see how he addresses her. She’s not one of his top favorites. She’s a significant talent that’s faded into the background. I call her a significant talent, even though I remember how M. Sarcey described her: "Mlle. Favart, who, with her natural gifts, soutenus par un travail acharné, earned a distinguished place," etc. Her talent is exceptional, but the impression she gives of hard work and relentless ambition might be even stronger. For many years, she was at the top, and I believe she’s been criticized for not always ruling generously. Regardless, there was a moment when Mesdemoiselles Croizette and Sarah Bernhardt took the spotlight, and the older actress stepped back, if not entirely out of view, at least to what painters call the middle distance. The backstory of these events has likely been filled with drama, but we’re only concerned with the public narrative. Mademoiselle Favart has always struck me as a powerful rather than an intriguing actress; there’s often something mechanical and exaggerated in her performance. In some of her roles, you can almost hear the gears grinding. If Delaunay can be criticized for letting a mannerism overwhelm him, that accusation rings even truer for Mademoiselle Favart. However, she knows her craft better than anyone—no one, at least, except Madame Plessy. When she’s bad, she’s really bad, and sometimes she’s inconsistently bad for an entire evening. In the revival of Scribe’s clever comedy "Une Chaine" this winter (which, by the way, despite having both Got and Coquelin, was the closest to mediocrity I’ve ever seen at the Théâtre Français), Mademoiselle Favart was, in my opinion, shockingly bad. The role was originally performed by Madame Plessy, and I recall how M. Sarcey discussed the current actress in his feuilleton. "Mademoiselle Favart plays Louise. Who doesn’t remember the exquisite delicacy and restraint with which Mme. Plessy portrayed that challenging scene in the second act?" etc. And nothing more. However, when Mademoiselle Favart is at her best, she is impressively strong. She rises to significant occasions. I doubt any portrayal of the desperate heroine in "Supplice d’une Femme" or as Julie in Octave Feuillet’s tragic play of that name could be more effectively performed than how she does it. She can bear a heavy load without faltering; she has what the French call "authority"; and in her declamation, she sometimes unfurls her beautiful voice, creating long, harmonious waves and cadences that her younger rivals must often envy.

I am drawing to the close of these rather desultory observations without having spoken of the four ladies commemorated by M. Sarcey in the publication which lies before me; and I do not know that I can justify my tardiness otherwise than by saying that writing and reading about artists of so extreme a personal brilliancy is poor work, and that the best the critic can do is to wish his reader may see them, from a quiet fauteuil, as speedily and as often as possible. Of Madeleine Brohan, indeed, there is little to say. She is a delightful person to listen to, and she is still delightful to look at, in spite of that redundancy of contour which time has contributed to her charms. But she has never been ambitious and her talent has had no particularly original quality. It is a long time since she created an important part; but in the old repertory her rich, dense voice, her charming smile, her mellow, tranquil gayety, always give extreme pleasure. To hear her sit and talk, simply, and laugh and play with her fan, along with Madame Plessy, in Moliere’s "Critique de l’École des Femmes," is an entertainment to be remembered. For Madame Plessy I should have to mend my pen and begin a new chapter; and for Mademoiselle Sarah Bernhardt no less a ceremony would suffice. I saw Madame Plessy for the first time in Émile Augier’s "Aventurière," when, as I mentioned, I first saw Regnier. This is considered by many persons her best part, and she certainly carries it off with a high hand; but I like her better in characters which afford more scope to her talents for comedy. These characters are very numerous, for her activity and versatility have been extraordinary. Her comedy of course is "high"; it is of the highest conceivable kind, and she has often been accused of being too mincing and too artificial. I should never make this charge, for, to me, Madame Plessy’s minauderies, her grand airs and her arch-refinements, have never been anything but the odorous swayings and queenly tossings of some splendid garden flower. Never had an actress grander manners. When Madame Plessy represents a duchess you have no allowances to make. Her limitations are on the side of the pathetic. If she is brilliant, she is cold; and I cannot imagine her touching the source of tears. But she is in the highest degree accomplished; she gives an impression of intelligence and intellect which is produced by none of her companions—excepting always the extremely exceptional Sarah Bernhardt. Madame Plessy’s intellect has sometimes misled her—as, for instance, when it whispered to her, a few years since, that she could play Agrippine in Racine’s "Britannicus," on that tragedy being presented for the débuts of Mounet-Sully. I was verdant enough to think her Agrippine very fine. But M. Sarcey reminds his readers of what he said of it the Monday after the first performance. "I will not say"—he quotes himself—"that Madame Plessy is indifferent. With her intelligence, her natural gifts, her great situation, her immense authority over the public, one cannot be indifferent in anything. She is therefore not indifferently bad. She is bad to a point that cannot be expressed and that would be distressing for dramatic art if it were not that in this great shipwreck there rise to the surface a few floating fragments of the finest qualities that nature has ever bestowed upon an artist."

I'm nearing the end of these rather scattered thoughts without mentioning the four ladies recognized by M. Sarcey in the publication in front of me; I can only justify my delay by saying that writing and reading about artists with such unique brilliance is challenging, and the best a critic can do is hope that their readers get to see them, from a comfortable chair, as soon as possible and as often as they can. There's not much to say about Madeleine Brohan. She's a pleasure to listen to, and she still looks lovely, despite some added curves that time has brought to her beauty. However, she has never been particularly ambitious, and her talent hasn’t displayed anything especially original. It’s been a long time since she played an important role, but in the classic repertoire, her rich, deep voice, charming smile, and warm, calm cheerfulness always provide great enjoyment. Watching her chat simply, laugh, and play with her fan alongside Madame Plessy in Molière’s "Critique de l’École des Femmes" is definitely a memorable experience. I would need to gather my thoughts and start a new chapter to discuss Madame Plessy, and the same goes for Mademoiselle Sarah Bernhardt. I first saw Madame Plessy in Émile Augier’s "Aventurière," when, as I mentioned earlier, I first encountered Regnier. Many consider this her best role, and she certainly performs it with impressive flair; however, I prefer her in roles that allow her comedic talents to shine more. There are plenty of these roles since her energy and versatility are remarkable. Her style of comedy is "high"—the highest you can imagine—and she has often been accused of being too fussy and artificial. I wouldn’t make that accusation because, to me, Madame Plessy’s mannerisms, her grand gestures, and her playful sophistication have always felt like the elegant movements of a beautiful garden flower. No actress has more grandeur in her presence. When Madame Plessy portrays a duchess, you don’t need to make any allowances. Her weaknesses lie in her ability to evoke pathos. Although she can be brilliant, she also comes off as cold; I can’t picture her generating genuine tears. Nonetheless, she is incredibly skilled; she exudes an impression of intelligence and intellect that none of her peers match—except, of course, for the truly exceptional Sarah Bernhardt. Madame Plessy’s intellect has sometimes led her astray—like a few years ago when it convinced her she could play Agrippine in Racine’s "Britannicus" for Mounet-Sully's debut. I was naive enough to think her Agrippine was quite impressive. But M. Sarcey reminds his readers of what he said the Monday after the premiere: "I will not say"—he quotes himself—"that Madame Plessy is indifferent. With her intelligence, her natural talent, her significant presence, her immense influence over the public, one cannot simply be indifferent in anything. Therefore, she is not merely bad. She is bad to an indescribable degree that would be concerning for dramatic art if it weren't for the few brilliant fragments of talent that rise to the surface amid this great shipwreck."

Madame Plessy retired from the stage six months ago and it may be said that the void produced by this event is irreparable. There is not only no prospect, but there is no hope of filling it up. The present conditions of artistic production are directly hostile to the formation of actresses as consummate and as complete as Madame Plessy. One may not expect to see her like, any more than one may expect to see a new manufacture of old lace and old brocade. She carried off with her something that the younger generation of actresses will consistently lack—a certain largeness of style and robustness of art. (These qualities are in a modified degree those of Mademoiselle Favart.) But if the younger actresses have the success of Mesdemoiselles Croizette and Sarah Bernhardt, will they greatly care whether they are not "robust"? These young ladies are children of a later and eminently contemporary type, according to which an actress undertakes not to interest but to fascinate. They are charming—"awfully" charming; strange, eccentric, imaginative. It would be needless to speak specifically of Mademoiselle Croizette; for although she has very great attractions I think she may (by the cold impartiality of science) be classified as a secondary, a less inspired and (to use the great word of the day) a more "brutal" Sarah Bernhardt. (Mademoiselle Croizette’s "brutality" is her great card.) As for Mademoiselle Sarah Bernhardt, she is simply, at present, in Paris, one of the great figures of the day. It would be hard to imagine a more brilliant embodiment of feminine success; she deserves a chapter for herself.

Madame Plessy retired from the stage six months ago and it’s safe to say that the gap left by her departure is impossible to fill. There’s not just a lack of prospects; there’s no hope of replacing her. The current state of artistic production is directly opposed to nurturing actresses as exceptional and complete as Madame Plessy. One cannot expect to see her kind again, just as one wouldn’t expect to see new creations of old lace and brocade. She took with her a quality that the younger generation of actresses will always be missing—a certain grandeur of style and strength in their craft. (These traits are somewhat similar to those of Mademoiselle Favart.) But if the younger actresses achieve the success of Mesdemoiselles Croizette and Sarah Bernhardt, will they really care if they aren’t "robust"? These young women are products of a newer, very contemporary ideal, where an actress aims to fascinate rather than merely engage. They are delightful—"incredibly" charming; unique, quirky, and imaginative. There’s no need to discuss Mademoiselle Croizette in detail; even though she has considerable appeal, she can be seen (through the objective lens of science) as a secondary, less inspired, and (to use a popular term) a more "brutal" version of Sarah Bernhardt. (Mademoiselle Croizette’s "brutality" is her biggest asset.) As for Mademoiselle Sarah Bernhardt, she is undeniably one of the most prominent figures of her time in Paris. It’s hard to picture a more dazzling representation of female success; she deserves a chapter all to herself.

December, 1876.

December 1876.

THEOCRITUS ON CAPE COD

HAMILTON WRIGHT MABIE

CAPE COD lies at the other end of the world from Sicily not only in distance, but in the look of it, the lay of it, the way of it. It is so far off that it offers a base from which one may get a fresh view of Theocritus.

CAPE COD is located at the opposite end of the world from Sicily, not just in terms of distance, but also in its appearance, landscape, and lifestyle. It's so remote that it provides a perspective from which one can gain a new understanding of Theocritus.

There are very pleasant villages on the Cape, in the wide shade of ancient elms, set deep in the old-time New England quiet. For there was a time before the arrival of the Syrians, the Armenians, and the automobile, when New England was in a meditative mood. But Cape Cod is really a ridge of sand with a backbone of soil, rashly thrust into the Atlantic, and as fluent and volatile, so to speak, as one of those far Western rivers that are shifting currents sublimely indifferent to private ownership. The Cape does not lack stability, but it shifts its lines with easy disregard of charts and boundaries, and remains stable only at its center; it is always fraying at the edges. It lies, too, on the western edge of the ocean stream, where the forces of land and sea are often at war and the palette of colors is limited. The sirocco does not sift fine sand through every crevice and fill the heart of man with murderous impulses; but the east wind diffuses a kind of elemental depression.

There are really nice villages on the Cape, under the broad shade of old elms, immersed in the timeless calm of New England. There was a time before the Syrians, the Armenians, and cars arrived when New England had a reflective vibe. But Cape Cod is essentially a ridge of sand with some soil at its core, carelessly jutting into the Atlantic, and as fluid and unpredictable, you could say, as those far Western rivers that change paths, totally unconcerned about private ownership. The Cape isn’t unstable, but it shifts its lines with a casual disregard for maps and borders, remaining only at its center. It's always unraveling at the edges. It sits on the western edge of the ocean current, where land and sea often clash, and the range of colors is limited. The sirocco doesn’t blow fine sand into every nook and fill people's hearts with violent urges; instead, the east wind spreads a kind of deep, primal sadness.

Sicily, on the other hand, is high-built on rocky foundations, and is the wide-spreading reach of a great volcano sloping broadly and leisurely to the sea. It is often shaken at its center, but the sea does not take from nor add to its substance at will. It lies in the very heart of a sea of such ravishing color that by sheer fecundity of beauty it has given birth to a vast fellowship of gods and divinely fashioned creatures; its slopes are white with billowy masses of almond blossoms in that earlier spring which is late winter on Cape Cod; while gray-green, gnarled, and twisted olive-trees bear witness to the passionate moods of the Mediterranean, mother of poetry, comedy, and tragedy, often asleep in a dream of beauty in which the shadowy figures of the oldest time move, often as violent as the North Atlantic when March torments it with furious moods. For the Mediterranean is as seductive, beguiling, and uncertain of temper as Cleopatra, as radiant as Hera, as voluptuous as Aphrodite. Put in terms of color, it is as different from the sea round Cape Cod as a picture by Sorolla is different from a picture by Mauve.

Sicily, on the other hand, is built high on rocky foundations and is the broad expanse of a great volcano that slopes gently down to the sea. It often experiences tremors at its center, but the sea neither takes from nor adds to its land whenever it pleases. It sits in the very heart of a sea with such stunning color that, due to its rich beauty, it has inspired a vast community of gods and beautifully created beings; its slopes are covered in fluffy white almond blossoms during that early spring that feels like late winter on Cape Cod; while gray-green, twisted olive trees bear witness to the passionate moods of the Mediterranean, the mother of poetry, comedy, and tragedy, often lost in a dreamy beauty where shadows of ancient times move, sometimes as turbulent as the North Atlantic when March lashes it with fierce storms. The Mediterranean is as enchanting, captivating, and unpredictable as Cleopatra, as bright as Hera, and as sensual as Aphrodite. In terms of color, it is as distinct from the sea around Cape Cod as a painting by Sorolla is from one by Mauve.

Theocritus is interested in the magic of the island rather than in the mystery of the many-sounding sea, and to him the familiar look of things is never edged like a photograph; it is as solid and real as a report of the Department of Agriculture, but a mist of poetry is spread over it, in which, as in a Whistler nocturne, many details harmonize in a landscape at once actual and visionary. There is no example in literature of the unison of sight and vision more subtly and elusively harmonious than the report of Sicily in the Idylls. In its occupations the island was as prosaic as Cape Cod, and lacked the far-reaching consciousness of the great world which is the possession of every populated sand-bar in the Western world; but it was enveloped in an atmosphere in which the edges of things were lost in a sense of their rootage in poetic relations, and of interrelations so elusive and immaterial that a delicate but persistent charm exhaled from them.

Theocritus focuses on the island's magic rather than the mystery of the ever-sounding sea. For him, the familiar appearance of things isn't sharp like a photograph; it's as solid and real as a report from the Department of Agriculture, but it's covered with a mist of poetry, where, like in a Whistler nocturne, various details blend together in a landscape that is both real and visionary. There's no other example in literature of the harmony between sight and vision as subtly and elusively balanced as the depiction of Sicily in the Idylls. The island's daily life was as ordinary as Cape Cod and lacked the expansive awareness of the wider world that every populated sandbar in the Western world possesses. However, it was surrounded by an atmosphere where the edges of things blurred into a sense of their connections in poetic relationships, and of interconnections so delicate and intangible that a subtle yet persistent charm radiated from them.

Sicily was a solid and stubborn reality thousands of years before Theocritus struck his pastoral lyre; but its most obvious quality was atmospheric. It was compacted of facts, but they were seen not as a camera sees, but as an artist sees; not in sharp outline and hard actuality, but softened by a flood of light which melts all hard lines in a landscape vibrant and shimmering. Our landscape-painters are now reporting Nature as Theocritus saw her in Sicily; the value of the overtone matching the value of the under-tone, to quote an artist’s phrase, "apply these tones in right proportions," writes Mr. Harrison, "and you will find that the sky painted with the perfectly matched tone will fly away indefinitely, will be bathed in a perfect atmosphere." We who have for a time lost the poetic mood and strayed from the poet’s standpoint paint the undertones with entire fidelity; but we do not paint in the overtones, and the landscape loses the luminous and vibrant quality which comes into it when the sky rains light upon it. We see with the accuracy of the camera; we do not see with the vision of the poet, in which reality is not sacrificed, but subdued to larger uses. We insist on the scientific fact; the poet is intent on the visual fact. The one gives the bare structure of the landscape; the other gives us its color, atmosphere, charm. Here, perhaps, is the real difference between Cape Cod and Sicily. It is not so much a contrast between encircling seas and the sand-ridge and rock-ridge as between the two ways of seeing, the scientific and the poetic.

Sicily was a tangible and persistent reality thousands of years before Theocritus played his pastoral lyre; but its most obvious quality was its atmosphere. It was made up of facts, but they were perceived not like a camera captures them, but like an artist does; not in sharp outlines and hard reality, but softened by a flood of light that blurs all hard lines in a vibrant and shimmering landscape. Our landscape painters today are capturing Nature as Theocritus saw her in Sicily; the value of the overtones matching the value of the undertones. To quote an artist’s phrase, "apply these tones in right proportions," writes Mr. Harrison, "and you will find that the sky painted with the perfectly matched tone will fly away indefinitely, will be bathed in a perfect atmosphere." We, who for a time have lost the poetic mood and strayed from the poet’s perspective, paint the undertones with complete fidelity; but we don’t paint with the overtones, causing the landscape to lose the luminous and vibrant quality that comes when the sky showers light upon it. We see with the precision of a camera; we do not perceive with the vision of the poet, in which reality is not lost but elevated to larger purposes. We focus on the scientific facts; the poet is focused on the visual facts. The one presents the bare structure of the landscape; the other reveals its color, atmosphere, and charm. Here, perhaps, is the true difference between Cape Cod and Sicily. It is not just a contrast between encircling seas and sand ridges and rock ridges, but between two ways of seeing: the scientific and the poetic.

The difference of soils must also be taken into account. The soil of history on Cape Cod is almost as thin as the physical soil, which is so light and detached that it is blown about by all the winds of heaven. In Sicily, on the other hand, the soil is so much a part of the substance of the island that the sirocco must bring from the shores of Africa the fine particles with which it tortures men. On Cape Cod there are a few colonial traditions, many heroic memories of brave deeds in awful seas, some records of prosperous daring in fishing-ships, and then the advent of the summer colonists; a creditable history, but of so recent date that it has not developed the fructifying power of a rich soil, out of which atmosphere rises like an exhalation. In Sicily, on the other hand, the soil of history is so deep that the spade of the archæeologist has not touched bottom, and even the much-toiling Freeman found four octavo volumes too cramped to tell the whole story, and mercifully stopped at the death of Agathocles.

The difference in soils must also be considered. The historical soil of Cape Cod is almost as shallow as the actual soil, which is so light and loose that it gets blown around by all kinds of winds. In contrast, Sicily's soil is so integral to the island that the sirocco has to bring fine particles from the shores of Africa to disturb its people. Cape Cod has a few colonial traditions, many heroic memories of brave acts in terrible seas, some accounts of successful ventures in fishing boats, and then the arrival of summer vacationers; it's a respectable history, but so recent that it hasn't developed the enriching power of a rich soil, from which the atmosphere rises like a mist. In Sicily, however, the historical soil is so deep that an archaeologist's spade hasn't even reached the bottom, and even the diligent Freeman found four octavo volumes too small to cover the entire story, and thankfully stopped at the death of Agathocles.

Since the beginning of history, which means only the brief time since we began to remember events, everybody has gone to Sicily, and most people have stayed there until they were driven on, or driven out, by later comers; and almost everybody has been determined to keep the island for himself, and set about it with an ingenuity and energy of slaughter which make the movement toward universal peace seem pallid and nerveless. It is safe to say that on no bit of ground of equal area has more history been enacted than in Sicily; and when Theocritus was young, Sicily was already venerable with years and experience.

Since the start of history, which really means the short time since we began to remember events, everyone has traveled to Sicily, and most people have stayed there until they were either pushed away or forced out by newcomers; and almost everyone has been determined to claim the island for themselves, pursuing this with a creativity and intensity of violence that makes the movement towards global peace seem weak and lifeless. It’s safe to say that no area of equal size has witnessed more history than Sicily; and by the time Theocritus was young, Sicily was already steeped in age and experience.

Now, history, using the word as signifying things which have happened, although enacted on the ground, gets into the air, and one often feels it before he knows it. In this volatile and pervasive form it is diffused over the landscape and becomes atmospheric; and atmosphere, it must be remembered, bears the same relation to air that the countenance bears to the face: it reveals and expresses what is behind the physical features. There is hardly a half-mile of Sicily below the upper ridges of Ætna that has not been fought over; and the localities are few which cannot show the prints of the feet of the gods or of the heroes who were their children.

Now, history, referring to events that have taken place, even though they happened on the ground, becomes part of the atmosphere, and you often sense it before you’re fully aware of it. In this fluid and widespread form, it spreads across the land and becomes part of the air; and it's important to remember that atmosphere relates to air in the same way that a person's expression relates to their face: it reveals and expresses what lies beneath the visible features. There’s hardly a half-mile of Sicily below the upper slopes of Mount Etna that hasn't seen conflict, and there are few places that can’t show the traces of the gods or the heroes who were their offspring.

It was a very charming picture on which the curtain was rolled up when history began, but the island was not a theater in which men sat at ease and looked at Persephone in the arms of Pluto; it was an arena in which race followed close upon race, like the waves of the sea, each rising a little higher and gaining a little wider sweep, and each leaving behind not only wreckage, but layers of soil potent in vitality. The island was as full of strange music, of haunting presences, of far-off memories of tragedy, as the island of the Tempest: it bred its Calibans, but it bred also its Prosperos. For the imagination is nourished by rich associations as an artist is fed by a beautiful landscape; and in Sicily men grew up in an invisible world of memories that spread a heroic glamor over desolate places and kept Olympus within view of the mountain pastures where rude shepherds cut their pipes:

It was a very charming scene revealed when history started, but the island wasn’t just a theater where people relaxed and watched Persephone in Pluto's arms; it was a battleground where one race followed another, like the waves of the sea, each one rising a bit higher and spreading wider, leaving behind not just debris but layers of rich, fertile soil. The island was filled with strange music, haunting presences, and distant memories of tragedy, much like the island in the Tempest: it produced its Calibans, but it also produced its Prosperos. The imagination thrives on rich associations just as an artist draws inspiration from a beautiful landscape; in Sicily, people grew up surrounded by an invisible world of memories that infused a heroic allure into desolate places and kept Olympus visible from the mountain pastures where rustic shepherds played their pipes:

"I created a pipe that speaks through nine mouths, quite beautiful to look at; The wax is white on it, and the edge line is straight on both sides.

The soil of history may be so rich that it nourishes all manner of noxious things side by side with flowers of glorious beauty; this is the price we pay for fertility. A thin soil, on the other hand, sends a few flowers of delicate structure and haunting fragrance into the air, like the arbutus and the witchiana, which express the clean, dry sod of Cape Cod, and are symbolic of the poverty and purity of its history. Thoreau reports that in one place he saw advertised, "Fine sand for sale here," and he ventures the suggestion that "some of the street" had been sifted. And, possibly, with a little tinge of malice after his long fight with winds and shore-drifts, he reports that "in some pictures of Provincetown the persons of the inhabitants are not drawn below the ankles, so much being supposed to be buried in the sand." "Nevertheless," he continues, "natives of Provincetown assured me that they could walk in the middle of the road without trouble, even in slippers, for they had learned how to put their feet down and lift them up without taking in any sand." On a soil so light and porous there is a plentiful harvesting of health and substantial comfort, but not much chance of poetry.

The soil of history can be so rich that it supports all kinds of unpleasant things alongside beautiful flowers; this is the cost of fertility. In contrast, thin soil produces a few delicate flowers with an enchanting scent, like the arbutus and witchiana, which reflect the clean, dry ground of Cape Cod and symbolize the scarcity and purity of its history. Thoreau mentions that he saw an ad for "Fine sand for sale here," and he jokingly suggests that “some of the street” must have been sifted. After his long battle with the winds and shifting sands, he notes that “in some pictures of Provincetown, the people are not drawn below the ankles, as so much of them is said to be buried in the sand.” “Still,” he goes on, “the locals in Provincetown told me they could walk in the middle of the road without any trouble, even in slippers, because they had figured out how to place their feet down and lift them up without bringing up any sand." On such light and porous soil, there's plenty of health and comfort to enjoy, but not much opportunity for poetry.

In the country of Theocritus there was great chance for poetry; not because anybody was taught anything, but because everybody was born in an atmosphere that was a diffused poetry. If this had not been true, the poet could not have spread a soft mist of poesy over the whole island: no man works that kind of magic unaided; he compounds his potion out of simples culled from the fields round him. Theocritus does not disguise the rudeness of the life he describes; goat-herds and he-goats are not the conventional properties of the poetic stage. The poet was without a touch of the drawing-room consciousness of crude things, though he knew well softness and charm of life in Syracuse under a tyrant who did not "patronize the arts," but was instructed by them. To him the distinction between poetic and unpoetic things was not in the appearance, but in the root. He was not ashamed of Nature as he found her, and he never apologized for her coarseness by avoiding things not fit for refined eyes. His shepherds and goat-herds are often gross and unmannerly, and as stuffed with noisy abuse as Shakespeare’s people in "Richard III." Lacon and Cometas, rival poets of the field, are having a controversy, and this is the manner of their argument:

In Theocritus's country, there was a great opportunity for poetry; not because anyone was formally taught, but because everyone was born into an environment that was filled with poetry. If this hadn't been the case, the poet wouldn't have been able to cast a gentle mist of poetry over the entire island: no one works that kind of magic alone; he mixes his potion with simple elements gathered from the fields around him. Theocritus doesn't hide the roughness of the life he portrays; goat-herders and male goats are not the typical props of a poetic stage. The poet lacked the polished perspective that often softens crude realities, though he appreciated the beauty and charm of life in Syracuse under a tyrant who didn't "support the arts," but was influenced by them. To him, the difference between poetic and unpoetic things wasn’t based on appearances, but on their essence. He wasn't ashamed of Nature as he found her, and he never apologized for her roughness by shying away from things deemed unworthy of refined tastes. His shepherds and goat-herders are often crude and rude, filled with loud insults like Shakespeare’s characters in "Richard III." Lacon and Cometas, rival poets of the countryside, are engaged in a dispute, and this is how they argue:

"LACON
"When did I learn anything right from your practice or your preaching,
You puppet, you distorted mass of ugliness and malice?
"Kites
"When? When I defeated you, crying heavily; your goats watched with joy,
And they bleated; and were treated just as I had treated you.

And then, without a pause, the landscape shines through the noisy talk:

And then, without missing a beat, the landscape bursts through the loud chatter:

"No, here are oaks and galingale: the buzz of busy bees
It makes the spot enjoyable, and the birds are singing in the trees,
Here are two chilly streamlets; here the shadows grow darker. "Than that place over there, and see what cones fall from the tall pine tree."

Thoreau, to press the analogy from painting a little further, lays the undertones on with a firm hand: "It is a wild, rank place and there is no flattery in it. Strewn with crabs, horse-shoes, and razor-clams, and whatever the sea casts up,—a vast morgue, where famished dogs may range in packs, and cows come daily to glean the pittance which the tide leaves them. The carcasses of men and beasts together lie stately up upon its shelf, rotting and bleaching in the sun and waves, and each tide turns them in their beds, and tucks fresh sand under them. There is naked Nature,—inhumanely sincere, wasting no thought on man, nibbling at the cliffy shore where gulls wheel amid the spray."

Thoreau, to extend the painting analogy a bit more, applies the base colors with conviction: "It’s a wild, overgrown area with no sweetening. Covered in crabs, horseshoes, and razor clams, and whatever the sea washes ashore—a huge morgue, where starving dogs roam in packs, and cows come every day to gather the scraps the tide leaves behind. The bodies of men and animals together lie grandly on its shelf, rotting and turning white under the sun and waves, while each tide shifts them in their resting place and puts fresh sand underneath. Here is raw Nature—brutally honest, paying no mind to humanity, nibbling at the rocky shore where seagulls glide through the mist."

It certainly is naked Nature with a vengeance, and it was hardly fair to take her portrait in that condition. Theocritus would have shown us Acteon surprising Artemis, not naked, but nude; and there is all the difference between nakedness and nudity that yawns between a Greek statue and a Pompeiian fresco indiscreetly preserved in the museum at Naples. Theocritus shows Nature nude, but not naked; and it is worth noting that the difference between the two lies in the presence or absence of consciousness. In Greek mythology, nudity passes without note or comment; the moment it begins to be noted and commented upon it becomes nakedness.

It's definitely raw Nature with a passion, and it wasn't quite fair to capture her image in that state. Theocritus would have depicted Acteon stumbling upon Artemis, not naked, but nude; and there's a significant difference between nakedness and nudity, much like the gap between a Greek statue and an indiscreetly preserved Pompeiian fresco in the museum in Naples. Theocritus represents Nature as nude, but not naked; and it's important to recognize that the difference between the two hinges on the presence or absence of awareness. In Greek mythology, nudity goes by without a second thought; as soon as it starts to attract attention and commentary, it turns into nakedness.

Theocritus sees Nature nude, as did all the Greek poets, but he does not surprise her when she is naked. He paints the undertones faithfully, but he always lays on the overtones, and so spreads the effulgence of the sky-stream over the undertones, and the picture becomes vibrant and luminous. The fact is never slurred or ignored; it gets full value, but not as a solitary and detached thing untouched by light, unmodified by the landscape. Is there a more charming impression of a landscape bathed in atmosphere, exhaling poetry, breathing in the very presence of divinity, than this, in Calverley’s translation:

Theocritus views Nature in her pure form, like all Greek poets did, but he doesn't catch her off guard when she's exposed. He accurately captures the subtleties, but he always adds layers, spreading the brilliance of the sky across those subtleties, making the scene vibrant and bright. The reality is never overlooked or downplayed; it gets its due recognition, but it's not just an isolated element untouched by light or altered by the surrounding scenery. Is there a more delightful depiction of a landscape soaked in atmosphere, exuding poetry, and breathing in the very essence of divinity, than this, in Calverley’s translation:

I stopped. He smiled sweetly like before,
Gave me the staff, 'the Muses’'
And sloped down to the left toward Pyxa. We all the while Eucritus and I went to Phrasydene's, And baby-faced Amyntas: there we were lying. Half-buried in a couch of fragrant reeds And fresh-cut vine leaves, who is happier than us? A lot of elm and poplar trees swayed overhead; Nearby, a sacred spring bubbled continuously. From the Nymphs' grotto, and in the dark branches The sweet cicada chirped tirelessly.
Hidden in the dense thorn bushes far away. The tree frog's call was heard; the crested lark Sang with the goldfinch; turtles mourned; And above the fountain hung the golden bee.
Everything about the rich summer felt like autumn: Pears at our feet, and apples by our side. Covered in abundance; branches on the ground Lying back, weighed down with damsons; while we brushed From the cask's head, the crust of four long years. Hey, you who live on Parnassian peaks,
Nymphs of Castalia, did the old Chiron ever Place a bold cup before Hercules In Pholus' cave—did as sweet drinks Because that Anapian shepherd, in whose hand Rocks were like pebbles, Polyphemus the strong, Easily stroll over the cottage lawns:—
As you ladies, please allow that day to be for us. All by Demeter’s shrine during harvest time? By whose corn stacks might I often return again? Plant my wide fan: while she stands by and smiles,
"Poppies and bundles of corn on each heavy arm."

Here is the landscape seen with a poet’s eye, and the color and shining quality of a landscape, it must be remembered, are in the exquisitely sensitive eye that sees, not in the structure and substance upon which it rests. The painter and poet create nature as really as they create art, for in every clear sight of the world we are not passive receivers of impressions, but partners in that creative work which makes nature as contemporaneous as the morning newspaper.

Here’s the landscape seen through a poet’s perspective, and it’s important to remember that the color and brilliance of a landscape come from the exquisitely sensitive eye that observes it, not from the structure and substance that it rests upon. The painter and poet shape nature just like they create art, because in every clear view of the world, we are not just passive observers of impressions; we are active participants in the creative process that makes nature as current as the morning newspaper.

It is true, Sicily was poetic in its very structure while Cape Cod is poetic only in oases, bits of old New England shade and tracery of elms, the peace of ancient sincerity and content honestly housed, the changing color of marshes in whose channels the tides are singing or mute; but the Sicily of Theocritus was seen by the poetic eye. In every complete vision of a landscape what is behind the eye is as important as what lies before it, and behind the eyes that looked at Sicily in the third century, B.C., there were not only the memories of many generations, but there was also a faith in visible and invisible creatures which peopled the world with divinities. The text of Theocritus is starred with the names of gods and goddesses, of heroes and poets: it is like a rich tapestry, on the surface of which history has been woven in beautiful colors; the flat surface dissolves in a vast distance, and the dull warp and woof glows with moving life.

It's true, Sicily was beautifully poetic in its very layout, while Cape Cod is only poetic in certain spots—fragments of old New England shade and patterns of elms, the calm of genuine sincerity and contentment honestly displayed, the shifting colors of marshes where the tides either sing or remain silent; but the Sicily of Theocritus was seen through a poetic lens. In every complete view of a landscape, what's behind the eye matters just as much as what’s in front of it, and behind the eyes that gazed upon Sicily in the third century, B.C., there were not only the memories of many generations but also a belief in both visible and invisible beings that filled the world with divine entities. The text of Theocritus is dotted with names of gods and goddesses, heroes and poets: it resembles a rich tapestry, where history is woven in beautiful colors; the flat surface fades into a vast distance, and the dull threads shine with vibrant life.

The Idylls are saturated with religion, and as devoid of piety as a Bernard Shaw play. Gods and men differ only in their power, not at all in their character. What we call morals were as conspicuously absent from Olympus as from Sicily. In both places life and the world are taken in their obvious intention; there was no attempt, apart from the philosophers, who are always an inquisitive folk, to discover either the mind or the heart of things. In the Greek Bible, which Homer composed and recited to crowds of people on festive occasions, the fear of the gods and their vengeance are set forth in a text of unsurpassed force and vitality of imagination; but no god in his most dissolute mood betrays any moral consciousness, and no man repents of sins. That things often go wrong was as obvious then as now, but there was no sense of sin. There were Greeks who prayed, but none who put dust on his head and beat his breast and cried, "Woe unto me, a sinner!" There were disasters by land and sea, but no newspaper spread them out in shrieking type, and by skillful omission and selection of topics wore the semblance of an official report of a madhouse; there were diseases and deaths, but patent-medicine advertisements had not saturated the common mind with ominous symptoms; old age was present with its monitions of change and decay:

The Idylls are filled with religion, yet as lacking in piety as a Bernard Shaw play. Gods and humans differ only in their power, not in their character at all. What we refer to as morals were just as noticeably absent from Olympus as they were from Sicily. In both places, life and the world are taken at face value; aside from the philosophers, who are naturally curious, there was no effort to understand the deeper truths of existence. In the Greek Bible, which Homer wrote and performed for audiences during celebrations, the fear of the gods and their wrath are expressed in a text that is powerful and full of imagination; however, no god, even at his most debauched, shows any sense of moral awareness, and no human feels remorse for wrongdoing. It was clear then, as it is now, that things often went wrong, but there was no concept of sin. There were Greeks who prayed, but none who lamented with dust on their heads, beating their chests, and crying out, "Woe is me, a sinner!" There were disasters by land and sea, but no newspaper sensationalized them with bold headlines, creating the appearance of an official report from a madhouse; there were illnesses and deaths, but the common mindset hadn't been overwhelmed with ominous symptoms from patent-medicine ads; old age was present, bringing reminders of change and decay:

"Age overtakes us all;
First, let's focus on our tempers; then we can move on to our cheeks and chins, Bit by bit, the frosts of Time creep in. "Get up and go somewhere before your limbs become dry."

Theocritus came late in the classical age, and the shadows had deepened since Homer’s time. The torches on the tombs were inverted, the imagery of immortality was faint and dim; but the natural world was still naturally seen, and, if age was coming down the road, the brave man went bravely forward to meet the shadow.

Theocritus arrived late in the classical era, and times had changed since Homer's day. The torches on the tombs were turned upside down, and the idea of immortality felt weak and unclear; however, the natural world was still vividly appreciated, and even though age was approaching, the courageous person faced it head-on.

It was different on Cape Cod. Even Thoreau, who had escaped from the morasses of theology into the woods and accomplished the reversion to paganism in the shortest possible manner, never lost the habit of moralizing, which is a survival of the deep-going consciousness of sin. Describing the operations of a sloop dragging for anchors and chains, he gives his text those neat, hard touches of fancy which he had at command even in his most uncompromising, semi-scientific moments: "To hunt to-day in pleasant weather for anchors which had been lost,—the sunken faith and hope of mariners, to which they trusted in vain; now, perchance it is the rusty one of some old pirate ship or Norman fisherman, whose cable parted here two hundred years ago, and now the best bower anchor of a Canton or California ship which has gone about her business."

It was different on Cape Cod. Even Thoreau, who had escaped from the depths of theology into the woods and quickly returned to a more primal state, never lost the tendency to moralize, a remnant of the profound awareness of sin. Describing the process of a sloop searching for anchors and chains, he adds those sharp, vivid details of imagination that he could effortlessly conjure even in his most straightforward, semi-scientific moments: "To hunt today in nice weather for anchors that had been lost—the sunken faith and hope of sailors, which they relied on in vain; perhaps now it’s the rusty one from some old pirate ship or Norman fisherman, whose line broke here two hundred years ago, and now the best bower anchor of a Canton or California ship that has moved on with its business."

And then he drops into the depths of the moral subconsciousness from which the clear, clean waters of Walden Pond could not wash him: "If the roadsteads of the spiritual ocean could be thus dragged, what rusty flukes of hope deceived and parted chain-cables of faith might again be windlassed aboard! enough to sink the finder’s craft, or stock new navies to the end of time. The bottom of the sea is strewn with anchors, some deeper and some shallower, and alternately covered and uncovered by the sand, perchance with a small length of iron cable still attached, to which where is the other end?... So, if we had diving bells adapted to the spiritual deeps, we should see anchors with their cables attached, as thick as eels in vinegar, all wriggling vainly toward their holding ground. But that is not treasure for us which another man has lost; rather it is for us to seek what no other man has found or can find." The tone is light, almost trifling, when one takes into account the imagery and the idea, and the subconsciousness is wearing thin; but it is still there.

And then he sinks into the depths of his moral subconsciousness, from which the clear, clean waters of Walden Pond can’t purify him: “If the spiritual ocean could be dragged like this, what rusty hooks of hope, which have misled and broken the chains of faith, could be pulled back on board! Enough to sink the seeker’s ship or fuel new fleets for all time. The ocean floor is scattered with anchors, some deeper and some shallower, covered and uncovered by sand, perhaps with a short length of iron cable still attached. But where is the other end?... So, if we had diving bells suited for these spiritual depths, we would see anchors with their cables attached, as thick as eels in vinegar, all wriggling uselessly toward their grounding. But the treasure we seek isn’t what someone else has lost; instead, we should search for what no one else has found or can find.” The tone is light, almost trivial, considering the imagery and the idea, and the subconsciousness is wearing thin; but it’s still present.

Thoreau’s individual consciousness was a very faint reflection of an ancestral consciousness of the presence of sin, and of moral obligations of an intensity almost inconceivable in these degenerate days. There was a time in a Cape Cod community when corporal punishment was inflicted on all residents who denied the Scriptures, and all persons who stood outside the meeting-house during the time of divine service were set in the stocks. The way of righteousness was not a straight and narrow path, but a macadamized thoroughfare, and woe to the man who ventured on a by-path! One is not surprised to learn that "hysteric fits" were very common, and that congregations were often thrown into the utmost confusion; for the preaching was far from quieting. "Some think sinning ends with this life," said a well-known preacher, "but it is a mistake. The creature is held under an everlasting law; the damned increase in sin in hell. Possibly, the mention of this may please thee. But, remember, there shall be no pleasant sins there; no eating, drinking, singing, dancing; wanton dalliance, and drinking stolen waters; but damned sins, bitter, hellish sins; sins exasperated by torments; cursing God, spite, rage, and blasphemy. The guilt of all thy sins shall be laid upon thy soul, and be made so many heaps of fuel.... He damns sinners heaps upon heaps."

Thoreau’s individual awareness was a faint echo of a deeper ancestral understanding of sin and moral responsibilities that seem almost unimaginable in today’s world. There was a time in a Cape Cod community when all residents who rejected the Scriptures faced corporal punishment, and anyone who stood outside the meeting-house during divine service was put in the stocks. The path of righteousness wasn’t a narrow road but a wide, paved highway, and woe to anyone who strayed onto a side path! It’s no surprise that “hysteric fits” were quite common, and congregations often found themselves in chaos, as the preaching hardly brought peace. “Some believe that sinning ends with this life,” said a well-known preacher, “but that’s a mistake. The creature is bound by an everlasting law; the damned only increase in sin in hell. Perhaps mentioning this might please you. But remember, there will be no enjoyable sins there; no eating, drinking, singing, dancing; no indulgent pleasures or drinking tainted waters; just wretched sins, bitter, hellish sins; sins intensified by suffering; cursing God, spite, rage, and blasphemy. All your sins will weigh down your soul, becoming heaps of fuel... He condemns sinners, heap upon heap.”

It is not surprising to learn that as a result of such preaching the hearers were several times greatly alarmed, and "on one occasion a comparatively innocent young man was frightened nearly out of his wits." One wonders in what precise sense the word "comparatively" was used; it is certain that those who had this sense of the sinfulness of things driven into them were too thoroughly frightened to see the world with the poet’s eye.

It’s not surprising that, because of such preaching, the listeners were often really shaken up, and "one time, a relatively innocent young man was nearly scared out of his mind." It makes one think about what exactly is meant by the word "relatively;" it’s clear that those who had this sense of the wrongness of things drilled into them were way too scared to view the world with the poet’s perspective.

In Sicily nobody was concerned for the safety of his soul; nobody was aware that he had a soul to be saved. Thoughtful people knew that certain things gave offense to the gods; that you must not flaunt your prosperity after the fashion of some American millionaires, who have discovered in recent years that there is a basis of fact for the Greek feeling that it is wise to hold great possessions modestly; that certain family and state relations are sacred, and that the fate of Œdipus was a warning: but nobody was making observations of his own frame of mind; there were no thermometers to take the spiritual temperature.

In Sicily, no one worried about the safety of his soul; no one even realized he had a soul that needed saving. Thoughtful people understood that some actions could offend the gods; that you shouldn’t show off your wealth like some American millionaires have been doing lately, who found out that the Greeks were right about keeping great possessions humble; that certain family and state relationships are sacred, and that the story of Œdipus was a warning. But nobody was reflecting on their own state of mind; there were no tools to measure spiritual well-being.

In his representative capacity as poet, Theocritus, speaking for his people, might have said with Gautier, "I am a man for whom the visible world exists." It is as impossible to cut the visible world loose from the invisible as to see the solid stretch of earth without seeing the light that streams upon it and makes the landscape; but Gautier came as near doing the impossible as any man could, and the goat-herds and pipe-players of Theocritus measurably approached this instable position. On Cape Cod, it is true, they looked "up and not down," but it is also true that they "looked in and not out"; in Sicily they looked neither up nor down, but straight ahead. The inevitable shadows fell across the fields whence the distracted Demeter sought Persephone, and Enceladus, uneasily bearing the weight of Ætna, poured out the vials of his wrath on thriving vineyards and on almond orchards white as with sea-foam; but the haunting sense of disaster in some other world beyond the dip of the sea was absent. If the hope of living with the gods was faint and far, and the forms of vanished heroes were vague and dim, the fear of retribution beyond the gate of death was a mere blurring of the landscape by a mist that came and went.

In his role as a poet, Theocritus, speaking for his people, might have echoed Gautier's sentiment, "I am a person for whom the visible world exists." It's just as impossible to separate the visible world from the invisible as it is to see the solid ground without noticing the light that shines on it and creates the scenery; yet Gautier came as close to doing the impossible as anyone could, and the shepherds and musicians of Theocritus approached this unstable state. On Cape Cod, they indeed looked "up and not down," but they also "looked in and not out"; in Sicily, they neither looked up nor down, but straight ahead. The inevitable shadows fell across the fields where the troubled Demeter searched for Persephone, and Enceladus, uneasily bearing the weight of Ætna, unleashed his fury on flourishing vineyards and on almond orchards as white as sea foam; however, the haunting sense of disaster in some other realm beyond the horizon was absent. If the hope of living with the gods was faint and distant, and the images of long-gone heroes were vague and blurry, the fear of punishment after death was merely a haze that blurred the landscape, coming and going.

The two workmen whose talk Theocritus overhears and reports in the Tenth Idyll are not discussing the welfare of their souls; they are not even awake to the hard conditions of labor, and take no thought about shorter hours and higher wages: they are interested chiefly in Bombyca, "lean, dusk, a gypsy,"

The two workers that Theocritus overhears and describes in the Tenth Idyll aren't talking about the state of their souls; they're not even aware of the tough conditions of their jobs and don't think about shorter hours or higher pay. They're primarily focused on Bombyca, "lean, dusky, a gypsy,"

"...twinkling dice at your feet,
"Poppies on your lips, and no one knows how sweet your ways are!"

And they lighten the hard task of the reaper of the stubborn corn in this fashion:

And they make the tough job of harvesting the stubborn corn easier in this way:

"O rich in fruit and grain: may this field
Tilled well, Demeter, and good crops grow!
"Gather the sheaves, harvesters: so that when someone passes by, they won't say—
"Forget them, they're never worth their salary!"
"Let the cut grass point north, you who mow,
Or westward—because that's where the ears get the most attention.
"Don't take a midday nap, you threshing men:
The chaff flies the most from the corn ears then.
"Wake when the lark wakes; when he sleeps nearby
Get to work, you harvesters: and take a nap at noon.
"Guys, the life of frogs for me! They don't need him." Who fills the jug, for in drink they revel.
"Better boil herbs, you who strive for profit,
"Then, splitting cumin, split your hand in two."

In Sicily no reckoning of the waste of life had been kept, and armies and fleets had been spent as freely in the tumultuous centuries of conquest as if, in the over-abundance of life, these losses need not be entered in the book of account. Theocritus distils this sense of fertility from the air, and the leaves of the Idylls are fairly astir with it. The central myth of the island has a meaning quite beyond the reach of accident; poetic as it is, its symbolism seems almost scientific. Under skies so full of the light which, in a real sense, creates the landscape, encircled by a sea which was fecund of gods and goddesses, Sicily was the teeming mother of flower-strewn fields and trees heavy with fruit, trunks and boughs made firm by winds as the fruit grew mellow in the sun. Demeter moved through harvest-fields and across the grassy slopes where herds are fed, a smiling goddess,

In Sicily, no account was kept of the waste of life, and armies and fleets were spent as freely during the chaotic centuries of conquest as if, in the abundance of life, these losses didn’t need to be recorded. Theocritus captures this sense of fertility in the air, and the leaves of the Idylls are alive with it. The central myth of the island holds meaning far beyond mere coincidence; poetic as it is, its symbolism feels almost scientific. Under skies so filled with light that, in a real sense, shapes the landscape, surrounded by a sea rich with gods and goddesses, Sicily was the vibrant mother of flower-filled fields and trees heavy with fruit, their trunks and branches solidified by winds as the fruit ripened in the sun. Demeter moved through the harvest fields and across the grassy slopes where herds grazed, a smiling goddess,

"Poppies and bundles of corn on each heavy arm."

Forgetfulness of the ills of life, dreams of Olympian beauty and tempered energy in the fields—are not these the secrets of the fair world which survives in the Idylls?

Forgetfulness of life's troubles, visions of perfect beauty, and balanced energy in the fields—aren't these the secrets of the beautiful world that lives on in the Idylls?

The corn and wine were food for the gods who gave them as truly as for the men who plucked the ripened grain and pressed the fragrant grape. If there was a sense of awe in the presence of the gods, there was no sense of moral separation, no yawning chasm of unworthiness. The gods obeyed their impulses not less readily than the men and women they had created; both had eaten of the fruit of the tree of life, but neither had eaten of the tree of knowledge of good and evil. Anybody might happen upon Pan in some deeply shadowed place, and the danger of surprising Diana at her bath was not wholly imaginary. Religion was largely the sense of being neighbor to the gods; they were more prosperous than men and had more power, but they were different only in degree, and one might be on easy terms with them. They were created by the poetic mind, and they repaid it a thousand-fold with the consciousness of a world haunted by near, familiar, and radiant divinity. The heresy which shattered the unity of life by dividing it between the religious and the secular had not come to confuse the souls of the good and put a full half of life in the hands of sinners; religion was as natural as sunlight and as easy as breathing.

The corn and wine were food for the gods just as much as they were for the people who harvested the ripe grain and pressed the sweet grapes. While there was awe in the presence of the gods, there wasn’t a feeling of moral separation or a huge gap of unworthiness. The gods followed their impulses just as readily as the men and women they created; both had partaken of the fruit of the tree of life, but neither had tasted the tree of knowledge of good and evil. Anyone could stumble upon Pan in some dark corner, and the risk of catching Diana unawares while she bathed wasn’t just a fantasy. Religion was mostly about feeling close to the gods; they were better off and more powerful than humans, but the difference was only a matter of degree, and one could easily relate to them. They were born from the creative mind, and in return, they filled the world with a sense of nearby, familiar, and vibrant divinity. The belief that split life into religious and secular domains had not yet confused the hearts of the good or handed half of life over to wrongdoers; religion was as natural as sunlight and as effortless as breathing.

There was little philosophy and less science in Sicily as Theocritus reports it. The devastating passion for knowledge had not brought self-consciousness in like a tide, nor had the desire to know about things taken the place of knowledge of the things themselves. The beauty of the world was a matter of experience, not of formal observation, and was seen directly as artists see a landscape before they bring technical skill to reproduce it. So far as the men and women who work and sing and make love in the Idylls were concerned, the age was delightfully unintellectual and, therefore, normally poetic. The vocabulary of names for things was made up of descriptive rather than analytical words, and things were seen in wholes rather than in parts.

There wasn't much philosophy or science in Sicily, according to Theocritus. The intense passion for knowledge hadn’t led to self-awareness, and wanting to learn about things hadn’t replaced understanding those things themselves. The beauty of the world was experienced firsthand, not through formal observation, and was perceived directly, like how artists view a landscape before they apply their technical skills to recreate it. As for the men and women who work, sing, and love in the Idylls, the time was refreshingly unacademic and, therefore, genuinely poetic. The words used to name things were more descriptive than analytical, and things were perceived as whole entities rather than broken down into parts.

From this point of view religion was as universal and all-enfolding as air, and the gods were as concrete and tangible as trees and rocks and stars. They were companionable with all sorts and conditions of men, and if one wished to represent them, he used symbols and images of divinely fashioned men and women, not philosophical ideas or scientific formulæ. In this respect the Roman Catholic Church has been both a wise teacher and a tender guardian of lonely and sorrowful humanity. Homer was not a formal theologian, but the harvest of the seed of thought he sowed is not even now fully gathered. He peopled the whole world of imagination. Christianity is not only concrete but historic, and some day, when the way of abstraction has been abandoned for that way of vital knowledge, which is the path of the prophets, the saints, and the artists, it will again set the imagination aflame. Meantime Theocritus is a charming companion for those who hunger and thirst for beauty, and who long from time to time to hang up the trumpet of the reformer, and give themselves up to the song of the sea and the simple music of the shepherd’s pipe.

From this perspective, religion was as universal and encompassing as air, and the gods were as real and tangible as trees, rocks, and stars. They were relatable to all kinds of people, and if someone wanted to depict them, they used symbols and images of divinely crafted men and women, not abstract ideas or scientific formulas. In this way, the Roman Catholic Church has been both a wise teacher and a compassionate protector of lonely and sorrowful humanity. Homer wasn’t a formal theologian, but the insights he shared are still being explored today. He filled the entire realm of imagination. Christianity is not just concrete but also historical, and one day, when abstract thinking is set aside for a more vital understanding that reflects the path of the prophets, saints, and artists, it will once again ignite the imagination. Meanwhile, Theocritus is a delightful companion for those who crave beauty and occasionally wish to pause the calls for reform and immerse themselves in the melodies of the sea and the simple tunes of the shepherd’s pipe.

COLONIALISM IN THE UNITED STATES[9]

HENRY CABOT LODGE

NOTHING is more interesting than to trace, through many years and almost endless wanderings and changes, the fortunes of an idea or habit of thought. The subject is a much-neglected one, even in these days of sweeping and minute investigation, because the inherent difficulties are so great, and the necessary data so multifarious, confused, and sometimes contradictory, that absolute proof and smooth presentation seem well-nigh impossible. Yet the ideas, the opinions, even the prejudices of men, impalpable and indefinite as they are, have at times a wonderful vitality and force and are not without meaning and importance when looked at with considerate eyes. The conditions under which they have been developed may change, or pass utterly away, while they, mere shadowy creations of the mind, will endure for generations. Long after the world to which it belonged has vanished, a habit of thought will live on, indelibly imprinted upon a race or nation, like the footprint of some extinct beast or bird upon a piece of stone. The solemn bigotry of the Spaniard is the fossil trace of the fierce struggle of eight hundred years with the Moors. The theory of the Lord’s day peculiar to the English race all over the world is the deeply branded sign of the brief reign of Puritanism. A certain fashion of thought prevailed half a century ago; another is popular to-day. There is a resemblance between the two, the existence of both is recognized, and both, without much consideration, are set down as sporadic and independent, which is by no means a safe conclusion. We have all heard of those rivers which are suddenly lost to sight in the bowels of the earth, and, coming as suddenly again to the surface, flow onward to the sea as before. Or the wandering stream may turn aside into fresh fields, and, with new shapes and colors, seem to have no connection with the waters of its source or with those which finally mingle with the ocean. Yet, despite the disappearances and the changes, it is always the same river. It is exactly so with some kinds of ideas and modes of thought,—those that are wholly distinct from the countless host of opinions which perish utterly, and are forgotten in a few years, or which are still oftener the creatures of a day, or an hour, and die by myriads, like the short-lived insects whose course is run between sunrise and sunset.

NOTHING is more fascinating than following the journey of an idea or way of thinking through many years of constant change and exploration. This topic is often overlooked, even in our time of thorough investigation, because the challenges are significant and the necessary information is so diverse, confusing, and occasionally contradictory that achieving absolute proof and a clear explanation seems nearly impossible. Yet, the thoughts, beliefs, and even biases of people, as intangible and vague as they may be, can sometimes have remarkable energy and influence, and they hold meaning and significance when examined thoughtfully. The circumstances that shaped them might change or completely fade away, while these intangible concepts, mere creations of the mind, can endure for generations. Long after the world they originated from has disappeared, a way of thinking can persist, permanently marked in a culture or nation, like the footprint of some extinct creature on a stone. The rigid beliefs of the Spaniard are the enduring mark of the fierce battles fought for eight hundred years against the Moors. The idea of the Lord’s Day, unique to the English-speaking world, is a deep reminder of the brief era of Puritanism. A certain mindset was prevalent half a century ago; another is in vogue today. While there are similarities between the two and their existence is acknowledged, both are often thought to be sporadic and independent, which is a questionable conclusion. We’ve all heard of rivers that disappear underground only to resurface suddenly and continue flowing to the sea as they did before. Or a wandering stream may divert into new areas, taking on different forms and colors, seemingly unconnected to its source or the waters that ultimately join the ocean. Yet, despite their vanishings and transformations, it’s always the same river. The same is true for certain types of ideas and ways of thinking—ones that are entirely different from the countless opinions that fade away and are forgotten in just a few years, or those that are fleeting, lasting only a day or an hour, and die out like short-lived insects that live from sunrise to sunset.

The purpose of this essay is to discuss briefly certain opinions which belong to the more enduring class. They are sufficiently well known. When they are mentioned everyone will recognize them, and will admit their existence at the particular period to which they belong. The point which is overlooked is their connection and relationship. They all have the same pedigree, a marked resemblance to each other, and they derive their descent from a common ancestor. My intention is merely to trace the pedigree and narrate the history of this numerous and interesting family of ideas and habits of thought. I have entitled them collectively "Colonialism in the United States," a description which is perhaps more comprehensive than satisfactory or exact.

The purpose of this essay is to briefly discuss certain opinions that have stood the test of time. They are well-known, and when mentioned, everyone will recognize them and acknowledge their existence during the specific time period they belong to. What often gets overlooked is their connection and relationship. They all share the same roots, have a striking similarity to one another, and all come from a common ancestor. My goal is simply to trace this lineage and recount the history of this large and fascinating family of ideas and ways of thinking. I have collectively titled them "Colonialism in the United States," a description that may be more comprehensive than it is accurate or satisfying.

In the year of grace 1776, we published to the world our Declaration of Independence. Six years later, England assented to the separation. These are tolerably familiar facts. That we have been striving ever since to make that independence real and complete, and that the work is not yet entirely finished, are not, perhaps, equally obvious truisms. The hard fighting by which we severed our connection with the mother-country was in many ways the least difficult part of the work of building up a great and independent nation. The decision of the sword may be rude, but it is pretty sure to be speedy. Armed revolution is quick. A South American, in the exercise of his constitutional privileges, will rush into the street and declare a revolution in five minutes. A Frenchman will pull down one government to-day, and set up another to-morrow, besides giving new names to all the principal streets of Paris during the intervening night. We English-speaking people do not move quite so fast. We come more slowly to the boiling point; we are not fond of violent changes, and when we make them we consume a considerable time in the operation. Still, at the best, a revolution by force of arms is an affair of a few years. We broke with England in 1776, we had won our victory in 1782, and by the year 1789 we had a new national government fairly started.

In 1776, we shared our Declaration of Independence with the world. Six years later, England agreed to our separation. These are fairly well-known facts. However, that we have been working ever since to make that independence genuine and complete, and that this work is not entirely done, might not be as obvious. The tough battles that led us to break away from England were, in many ways, the easiest part of the journey to building a great independent nation. The decision to fight can be harsh, but it tends to be quick. Armed revolution happens fast. A South American, exercising his constitutional rights, can rush into the streets and declare a revolution in five minutes. A Frenchman can topple one government today and set up another tomorrow, even renaming the main streets of Paris overnight. We English speakers don’t move quite as swiftly. We reach our boiling point more gradually; we’re not fans of sudden changes, and when we do make them, it takes us quite a bit of time. Still, at best, a revolution through force lasts only a few years. We broke away from England in 1776, secured our victory in 1782, and by 1789, we had successfully established a new national government.

But if we are slower than other people in the conduct of revolutions, owing largely to our love of dogged fighting and inability to recognize defeat, we are infinitely more deliberate than our neighbors in altering, or even modifying, our ideas and modes of thought. The slow mind and ingrained conservatism of the English race are the chief causes of their marvelous political and material success. After much obstinate fighting in the field, they have carried through the few revolutions which they have seen fit to engage in; but when they have undertaken to extend these revolutions to the domain of thought, there has arisen a spirit of stubborn and elusive resistance, which has seemed to set every effort, and even time itself, at defiance.

But if we move more slowly than others when it comes to revolutions, largely because of our stubbornness and inability to accept defeat, we are far more careful than our neighbors in changing or even adjusting our ideas and ways of thinking. The slow pace and deep-rooted conservatism of the English people are the main reasons for their amazing political and economic success. After a lot of determined fighting in the field, they have successfully carried out the few revolutions they thought necessary; however, when they tried to extend these revolutions to the realm of ideas, a spirit of stubborn and elusive resistance has emerged, seeming to challenge every effort and even time itself.

By the treaty of Paris our independence was acknowledged, and in name and theory was complete. We then entered upon the second stage in the conflict, that of ideas and opinions. True to our race and to our instincts, and with a wisdom which is one of the glories of our history, we carefully preserved the principles and forms of government and law, which traced an unbroken descent and growth from the days of the Saxon invasion. But while we kept so much that was of inestimable worth, we also retained, inevitably, of course, something which it would have been well for us to have shaken off together with the rule of George III. and the British Parliament. This was the colonial spirit in our modes of thought.

By the Treaty of Paris, our independence was recognized, and in name and theory, it was complete. We then entered the second phase of the conflict, focusing on ideas and opinions. True to our heritage and instincts, and with a wisdom that is one of the great achievements of our history, we carefully maintained the principles and structures of government and law that had an unbroken lineage and development since the Saxon invasion. However, while we kept so much that was invaluable, we also inevitably retained something we would have been better off letting go of along with the rule of George III and the British Parliament. This was the colonial mindset in our ways of thinking.

The word "colonial" is preferable to the more obvious word "provincial," because the former is absolute, while the latter, by usage, has become in a great measure relative. We are very apt to call an opinion, a custom, or a neighbor "provincial," because we do not like the person or thing in question; and in this way the true value of the word has of late been frittered away. "Colonialism," moreover, has in this connection historical point and value, while "provincialism" is general and meaningless. Colonialism is also susceptible of accurate definition. A colony is an off-shoot from a parent stock, and its chief characteristic is dependence. In exact proportion as dependence lessens, the colony changes its nature and advances toward national existence. For a hundred and fifty years we were English colonies. Just before the revolution, in everything but the affairs of practical government, the precise point at which the break came, we were still colonies in the fullest sense of the term. Except in matters of food and drink, and of the wealth which we won from the soil and the ocean, we were in a state of complete material and intellectual dependence. Every luxury, and almost every manufactured article, came to us across the water. Our politics, except those which were purely local, were the politics of England, and so also were our foreign relations. Our books, our art, our authors, our commerce, were all English; and this was true of our colleges, our professions, our learning, our fashions, and our manners. There is no need here to go into the details which show the absolute supremacy of the colonial spirit and our entire intellectual dependence. When we sought to originate, we simply imitated. The conditions of our life could not be overcome.

The term "colonial" is better than the more obvious term "provincial" because the former is definitive, while the latter has become more relative over time. We often label an opinion, a custom, or a neighbor as "provincial" just because we don't like them; this has diluted the real meaning of the word. "Colonialism," on the other hand, carries historical significance and weight, while "provincialism" is broad and vague. Colonialism can also be precisely defined. A colony is a branch from a parent group, and its main feature is dependence. As dependence decreases, the colony changes and moves towards becoming a nation. For one hundred and fifty years, we were English colonies. Right before the revolution, in every way that mattered except for the governance issues that led to the break, we were still fully colonies. Except in terms of food, drink, and the wealth we gained from land and sea, we were completely materially and intellectually reliant. Every luxury and nearly every manufactured good came to us from across the ocean. Our politics, except for local matters, were English politics, as were our foreign relations. Our books, art, authors, and commerce were all English; this was also true for our colleges, professions, education, trends, and customs. There's no need to dive into the specifics that illustrate the total dominance of the colonial mindset and our complete intellectual reliance. When we attempted to create something original, we merely copied. The circumstances of our lives were unchangeable.

The universal prevalence of the colonial spirit at that period is shown most strongly by one great exception, just as the flash of lightning makes us realize the intense darkness of a thunder-storm at night. In the midst of the provincial and barren waste of our intellectual existence in the eighteenth century there stands out in sharp relief the luminous genius of Franklin. It is true that Franklin was cosmopolitan in thought, that his name and fame and achievements in science and literature belonged to mankind; but he was all this because he was genuinely and intensely American. His audacity, his fertility, his adaptability, are all characteristic of America, and not of an English colony. He moved with an easy and assured step, with a poise and balance which nothing could shake, among the great men of the world; he stood before kings and princes and courtiers, unmoved and unawed. He was strongly averse to breaking with England; but when the war came he was the one man who could go forth and represent to Europe the new nationality without a touch of the colonist about him. He met them all, great ministers and great sovereigns, on a common ground, as if the colonies of yesterday had been an independent nation for generations. His autobiography is the corner-stone, the first great work of American literature. The plain, direct style, almost worthy of Swift, the homely, forcible language, the humor, the observation, the knowledge of men, the worldly philosophy of that remarkable book, are familiar to all; but its best and, considering its date, its most extraordinary quality is its perfect originality. It is American in feeling, without any taint of English colonialism. Look at Franklin in the midst of that excellent Pennsylvania community; compare him and his genius with his surroundings, and you get a better idea of what the colonial spirit was in America in those days, and how thoroughly men were saturated with it, than in any other way.

The widespread influence of the colonial mindset during that time is highlighted by one significant exception, just like a flash of lightning reveals the deep darkness of a thunderstorm at night. In the midst of the dull and limited intellectual landscape of the eighteenth century, the brilliant mind of Franklin stands out sharply. It's true that Franklin had a cosmopolitan outlook, and his name, fame, and achievements in science and literature belonged to the world; however, he embodied all this because he was genuinely and deeply American. His boldness, creativity, and adaptability are all traits of America, not of an English colony. He navigated among the great thinkers of the world with ease and confidence, maintaining a poise that nothing could disturb, facing kings, princes, and courtiers without being shaken or intimidated. He strongly opposed breaking away from England, but when the war came, he was the one person who could represent the new nation to Europe without any trace of a colonial attitude. He engaged with all, from prominent ministers to powerful rulers, on common ground, as if the colonies of the past had been an independent nation for generations. His autobiography is the foundation of American literature, displaying a clear and straightforward style, almost reminiscent of Swift, with relatable and impactful language, humor, keen observation, and worldly wisdom that are well-known. Yet, its most remarkable quality, considering its time, is its absolute originality. It captures an American essence without any hint of English colonialism. Look at Franklin amidst that outstanding Pennsylvania community; by comparing him and his genius to his surroundings, you gain a clearer understanding of what the colonial spirit was like in America back then and how completely it permeated people's lives.

In general terms it may be said that, outside of politics and the still latent democratic tendencies, the entire intellectual life of the colonists was drawn from England, and that to the mother country they looked for everything pertaining to the domain of thought. The colonists in the eighteenth century had, in a word, a thoroughly and deeply rooted habit of mental dependence. The manner in which we have gradually shaken off this dependence, retaining of the past only that which is good, constitutes the history of the decline of the colonial spirit in the United States. As this spirit existed everywhere at the outset, and brooded over the whole realm of intellect, we can in most cases trace its history best in the recurring and successful revolts against it, which, breaking out now here, now there, have at last brought it so near to final extinction.

In general terms, it can be said that, apart from politics and the underlying democratic tendencies, the entire intellectual life of the colonists came from England, and they relied on the mother country for everything related to thought. The colonists in the eighteenth century had a deeply rooted habit of mental dependence. The way we have gradually shaken off this dependence, keeping only the good from the past, tells the story of the decline of the colonial spirit in the United States. Since this spirit was prevalent everywhere at the beginning and influenced all areas of intellect, we can often trace its history best through the recurring and successful uprisings against it, which have emerged here and there, ultimately bringing it close to extinction.

In 1789, after the seven years of disorder and demoralization which followed the close of the war, the United States government was established. Every visible political tie which bound us to England had been severed, and we were apparently entirely independent. But the shackles of the colonial spirit, which had been forging and welding for a century and a half, were still heavy upon us, and fettered all our mental action. The work of making our independence real and genuine was but half done, and the first struggle of the new national spirit with that of the colonial past was in the field of politics, and consumed twenty-five years before victory was finally obtained. We still felt that our fortunes were inextricably interwoven with those of Europe. We could not realize that what affected us nearly when we were a part of the British Empire no longer touched us as an independent nation. We can best understand how strong this feeling was by the effect which was produced here by the French revolution. That tremendous convulsion, it may be said, was necessarily felt everywhere; but one much greater might take place in Europe to-day without producing here anything at all resembling the excitement of 1790. We had already achieved far more than the French revolution ever accomplished. We had gone much farther on the democratic road than any other nation. Yet worthy men in the United States put on cockades and liberty caps, erected trees of liberty, called each other "Citizen Brown" and "Citizen Smith," drank confusion to tyrants, and sang the wild songs of Paris. All this was done in a country where every privilege and artificial distinction had been swept away, and where the government was the creation of the people themselves. These ravings and symbols had a terrific reality in Paris and in Europe, and so, like colonists, we felt that they must have a meaning to us, and that the fate and fortunes of our ally were our fate and fortunes. A part of the people engaged in an imitation that became here the shallowest nonsense, while the other portion of the community, which was hostile to French ideas, took up and propagated the notion that the welfare of civilized society lay with England and with English opinions. Thus we had two great parties in the United States, working themselves up to white heat over the politics of England and France. The first heavy blow to the influence of foreign politics was Washington’s proclamation of neutrality. It seems a very simple and obvious thing now, this policy of non-interference in the affairs of Europe which that proclamation inaugurated, and yet at the time men marveled at the step, and thought it very strange. Parties divided over it. People could not conceive how we could keep clear of the great stream of European events. One side disliked the proclamation as hostile to France, while the other approved it for the same reason. Even the Secretary of State, Thomas Jefferson, one of the most representative men of American democracy, resisted the neutrality policy in the genuine spirit of the colonist. Yet Washington’s proclamation was simply the sequel to the Declaration of Independence. It merely amounted to saying: We have created a new nation, and England not only cannot govern us, but English and European politics are none of our business, and we propose to be independent of them and not meddle in them. The neutrality policy of Washington’s administration was a great advance toward independence and a severe blow to colonialism in politics. Washington himself exerted a powerful influence against the colonial spirit. The principle of nationality, then just entering upon its long struggle with state’s rights, was in its very nature hostile to everything colonial; and Washington, despite his Virginian traditions, was thoroughly imbued with the national spirit. He believed himself, and insensibly impressed his belief upon the people, that true nationality could only be obtained by keeping ourselves aloof from the conflicts and the politics of the Old World. Then, too, his splendid personal dignity, which still holds us silent and respectful after the lapse of a hundred years, communicated itself to his office, and thence to the nation of which he was the representative. The colonial spirit withered away in the presence of Washington.

In 1789, after seven years of chaos and demoralization following the end of the war, the United States government was formed. Every visible political connection that tied us to England had been cut, and we appeared to be entirely independent. However, the restraints of the colonial mindset, which had been building and tightening for a century and a half, were still a burden, restricting all our thoughts. The task of making our independence real and substantial was only half completed, and the initial clash between the new national spirit and the colonial past played out in the political arena, taking twenty-five years to achieve victory. We still felt that our fortunes were intricately linked to those of Europe. We couldn’t grasp that what impacted us when we were part of the British Empire no longer mattered to us as an independent nation. The strength of this sentiment is evident from the response to the French Revolution. That massive upheaval was felt everywhere; however, a much greater upheaval in Europe today would likely elicit nothing here resembling the excitement of 1790. We had already accomplished far more than the French Revolution ever did. We had advanced much further down the democratic path than any other nation. Yet, respectable individuals in the United States donned cockades and liberty caps, put up liberty trees, referred to each other as "Citizen Brown" and "Citizen Smith," toasted to the downfall of tyrants, and sang the fervent songs of Paris. All this happened in a country where every privilege and artificial distinction had been eliminated, and where the government was created by the people themselves. These displays and symbols had a tremendous reality in Paris and Europe, so, like colonists, we thought they must hold significance for us and that the fate and fortunes of our ally were intertwined with ours. Part of the populace engaged in this imitation that became the shallowest nonsense here, while another segment, which opposed French ideas, embraced and spread the belief that the prosperity of civilized society depended on England and English opinions. Thus, we had two major political parties in the United States, who were worked up to a frenzy over the politics of England and France. The first significant challenge to the influence of foreign politics was Washington’s proclamation of neutrality. This policy of staying out of European affairs that the proclamation established seems very straightforward and obvious now, and yet at the time, people were astonished by the decision and found it quite strange. Parties were divided over it. Many couldn’t understand how we could remain detached from the significant events happening in Europe. One side opposed the proclamation as being unfriendly to France, while the other supported it for the same reason. Even the Secretary of State, Thomas Jefferson, a key representative of American democracy, resisted the neutrality policy in true colonial fashion. Yet Washington’s proclamation was simply a continuation of the Declaration of Independence. It essentially stated: We have formed a new nation, and England not only cannot govern us, but English and European politics are not our concern, and we intend to remain independent of them and avoid meddling. The neutrality policy of Washington’s administration was a significant step toward independence and a strong blow against colonial attitudes in politics. Washington himself had a powerful influence against the colonial spirit. The principle of nationality, just beginning its long struggle with states’ rights, was inherently opposed to everything colonial; and Washington, despite his Virginian roots, was deeply infused with the national spirit. He believed, and effortlessly conveyed this belief to the public, that true nationality could only be achieved by keeping ourselves separate from the conflicts and politics of the Old World. Additionally, his remarkable personal dignity, which still commands our silence and respect after a hundred years, conveyed itself to his office and from there to the nation he represented. The colonial mindset faded in the wake of Washington.

The only thorough-going nationalist among the leaders of that time was Alexander Hamilton. He was not born in the States, and was therefore free from all local influences; and he was by nature imperious in temper and imperial in his views. The guiding principle of that great man’s public career was the advancement of American nationality. He was called "British" Hamilton by the very men who wished to throw us into the arms of the French republic, because he was wedded to the principles and the forms of constitutional English government and sought to preserve them here adapted to new conditions. He desired to put our political inheritance to its proper use, but this was as far removed from the colonial spirit as possible. Instead of being "British," Hamilton’s intense eagerness for a strong national government made him the deadliest foe of the colonial spirit, which he did more to strangle and crush out than any other man of his time. The objects at which he aimed were continental supremacy, and complete independence in business, politics, and industry. In all these departments he saw the belittling effects of dependence, and so he assailed it by his reports and by his whole policy, foreign and domestic. So much of his work as he carried through had a far-reaching effect, and did a great deal to weaken the colonial spirit. But the strength of that spirit was best shown in the hostility or indifference which was displayed toward his projects. The great cause of opposition to Hamilton’s financial policy proceeded, undoubtedly, from state jealousy of the central government; but the resistance to his foreign policy arose from the colonial ignorance which could not understand the real purpose of neutrality, and which thought that Hamilton was simply and stupidly endeavoring to force us toward England as against France.

The only true nationalist among the leaders of that time was Alexander Hamilton. He wasn’t born in the States and was therefore free from local influences; he had an assertive nature and broad, imperial views. The main goal of this great man’s public career was to promote American nationality. He was labeled "British" Hamilton by those who wanted to align us with the French republic because he was committed to the principles and structures of constitutional English government and aimed to preserve them here, adapted to new circumstances. He wanted to make the most of our political inheritance, but this was far from the colonial spirit. Rather than being "British," Hamilton’s strong desire for a powerful national government made him the biggest enemy of the colonial spirit, which he did more to stifle and eliminate than anyone else of his time. His goals were continental dominance and full independence in business, politics, and industry. In all these areas, he recognized the diminishing effects of dependence, and he attacked it through his reports and overall policy, both foreign and domestic. Much of his work had a significant impact and helped weaken the colonial spirit. However, the strength of that spirit was best shown in the hostility or indifference toward his proposals. The main source of opposition to Hamilton’s financial policy undoubtedly came from state rivalry with the central government; meanwhile, the resistance to his foreign policy stemmed from a colonial ignorance that couldn’t grasp the real intent of neutrality and thought Hamilton was simply and foolishly trying to push us towards England against France.

Washington, Hamilton, and John Adams, notwithstanding his New England prejudices, all did much while they were in power, as the heads of the Federalist party, to cherish and increase national self-respect, and thereby eradicate colonialism from our politics. The lull in Europe, after the fall of the Federalists, led to a truce in the contests over foreign affairs in the United States, but with the renewal of war the old conflict broke out. The years from 1806 to 1812 are among the least creditable in our history. The Federalists ceased to be a national party and the fierce reaction against the French revolution drove them into an unreasoning admiration of England. They looked to England for the salvation of civilized society. Their chief interest centered in English politics, and the resources of England formed the subject of their thoughts and studies, and furnished the theme of conversation at their dinner tables. It was just as bad on the other side. The Republicans still clung to their affection for France, notwithstanding the despotism of the empire. They regarded Napoleon with reverential awe, and shivered at the idea of plunging into hostilities with anyone. The foreign policy of Jefferson was that of a thorough colonist. He shrank with horror from war. He would have had us confine ourselves to agriculture, and to our flocks and herds, because our commerce, the commerce of a nation, was something with which other powers were likely to interfere. He wished us to exist in a state of complete commercial and industrial dependence, and allow England to carry for us and manufacture for us, as she did when we were colonies weighed down by the clauses of the navigation acts. His plans of resistance did not extend beyond the old colonial scheme of non-importation and non-intercourse agreements. Read the bitter debates in Congress of those years, and you find them filled with nothing but the politics of other nations. All the talk is saturated with colonial feeling. Even the names of opprobrium which the hostile parties applied to each other were borrowed. The Republicans called the Federalists "Tories" and a "British faction," while the Federalists retorted by stigmatizing their opponents as Jacobins. During these sorry years, however, the last in which our politics bore the colonial character, a new party was growing up, which may be called the national party, not as distinguished from the party of state’s rights, but as the opposition to colonial ideas. This new movement was headed and rendered illustrious by such men as Henry Clay, John Quincy Adams, the brilliant group from South Carolina, comprising Calhoun, Langdon Cheves, and William Lowndes, and at a later period by Daniel Webster. Clay and the South Carolinians were the first to push forward the resistance to colonialism. Their policy was crude and ill-defined. They struck out blindly against the evil influence which, as they felt, was choking the current of national life, for they were convinced that, to be truly independent, the United States must fight somebody. Who that somebody should be was a secondary question. Of all the nations which had been kicking and cuffing us, England was, on the whole, the most arrogant, and offensive; and so the young nationalists dragged the country into the war of 1812. We were wonderfully successful at sea and at New Orleans, but in other respects this war was neither very prosperous nor very creditable, and the treaty of Ghent was absolutely silent as to the objects for which we had expressly declared war. Nevertheless, the real purpose of the war was gained, despite the silent and almost meaningless treaty which concluded it. We had proved to the world and to ourselves that we existed as a nation. We had demonstrated the fact that we had ceased to be colonies. We had torn up colonialism in our public affairs by the roots, and we had crushed out the colonial spirit in our politics. After the war of 1812 our politics might be good, bad, or indifferent, but they were our own politics, and not those of Europe. The wretched colonial spirit which had belittled and warped them for twenty-five years had perished utterly, and with the treaty of Ghent it was buried so deeply that not even its ghost has since then crossed our political pathway.

Washington, Hamilton, and John Adams, despite his New England biases, all did a lot while they were in power as leaders of the Federalist party to foster and boost national self-respect, and in doing so, eliminate colonialism from our politics. The quiet in Europe after the Federalists fell from power led to a pause in the disputes over foreign affairs in the United States, but when war broke out again, the old conflicts resurfaced. The years from 1806 to 1812 are among the least honorable in our history. The Federalists stopped being a national party, and the strong backlash against the French Revolution pushed them into an unthinking admiration for England. They looked to England for the rescue of civilized society. Their main interest focused on English politics, and the resources of England became the topic of their thoughts, studies, and dinner conversations. It was just as troubling on the other side. The Republicans still held onto their affection for France, despite the tyrannical empire. They viewed Napoleon with deep respect and feared the thought of engaging in conflicts with anyone. Jefferson's foreign policy was that of a true colonist. He recoiled in horror from the idea of war. He wanted us to stick to agriculture and our livestock because our trade, the trade of a nation, was something that other powers could interfere with. He wished for us to exist in a state of complete commercial and industrial dependence, relying on England to carry out trade and manufacture for us, just as she did when we were colonies restricted by the navigation acts. His plans for resistance did not go beyond the old colonial strategies of non-importation and non-intercourse agreements. Read the bitter debates in Congress during those years, and you’ll find them full of nothing but the politics of other countries. All the discussions are soaked in colonial sentiment. Even the insults that the opposing parties hurled at each other were borrowed. The Republicans called the Federalists "Tories" and a "British faction," while the Federalists countered by labeling their opponents as Jacobins. During these unfortunate years, however, the last in which our politics took on a colonial character, a new party began to emerge, which can be referred to as the national party, not as separate from the party of state’s rights, but in opposition to colonial ideas. This new movement was led and distinguished by figures like Henry Clay, John Quincy Adams, the brilliant group from South Carolina, which included Calhoun, Langdon Cheves, and William Lowndes, and later by Daniel Webster. Clay and the South Carolinians were the first to advance the resistance to colonialism. Their policy was rough and unclear. They struck out blindly against the negative force that they felt was choking the flow of national life, convinced that to be truly independent, the United States needed to fight someone. Who that someone was, was a secondary concern. Of all the nations that had been kicking and hitting us, England was, for the most part, the most arrogant and offensive; and so the young nationalists led the country into the War of 1812. We had great success at sea and at New Orleans, but in other respects, the war was neither very prosperous nor very respectable, and the Treaty of Ghent was completely silent about the reasons for which we had explicitly declared war. Nevertheless, the true goal of the war was achieved, despite the silent and almost meaningless treaty that ended it. We proved to the world and to ourselves that we existed as a nation. We demonstrated that we had stopped being colonies. We had completely uprooted colonialism from our public affairs, and we had eliminated the colonial spirit from our politics. After the War of 1812, our politics could be good, bad, or average, but they were our own politics, not those of Europe. The miserable colonial spirit that had belittled and distorted them for twenty-five years had completely died, and with the Treaty of Ghent, it was buried so deeply that not even its ghost has since crossed our political path.

Besides being the field where the first battle with the colonial spirit was fought out, politics then offered almost the only intellectual interest of the country, outside of commerce, which was still largely dependent in character, and very different in its scope from the great mercantile combinations of to-day. Religious controversy was of the past, and except in New England, where the liberal revolt against Calvinism was in progress, there was no great interest in theological questions. When the Constitution went into operation the professions of law and medicine were in their infancy. There was no literature, no art, no science, none of the multifarious interests which now divide and absorb the intellectual energies of the community. In the quarter of a century which closed with the treaty of Ghent we can trace the development of the legal and medical professions, and their advance towards independence and originality. But in the literary efforts of the time we see the colonial spirit displayed more strongly than anywhere else, and in apparently undiminished vigor.

Besides being the place where the first battle against colonial thinking took place, politics then provided almost the only intellectual engagement in the country, aside from commerce, which was still mostly dependent in nature and very different in scope from today’s large commercial enterprises. Religious debates were a thing of the past, and except in New England, where a liberal backlash against Calvinism was happening, there wasn’t much interest in theological discussions. When the Constitution was enacted, the fields of law and medicine were just starting out. There was no literature, no art, no science, none of the many diverse interests that now capture and engage the community’s intellectual energy. In the 25 years that ended with the Treaty of Ghent, we can see the legal and medical professions evolving and moving toward independence and originality. However, in the literary efforts of that time, the colonial spirit is displayed more prominently than anywhere else, and it seems as vigorous as ever.

Our first literature was political, and sprang from the discussions incident to the adoption of the Constitution. It was, however, devoted to our own affairs, and aimed at the foundation of a nation, and was therefore fresh, vigorous, often learned, and thoroughly American in tone. Its masterpiece was the Federalist, which marks an era in the history of constitutional discussion, and which was the conception of the thoroughly national mind of Hamilton. After the new government was established, our political writings, like our politics, drifted back to provincialism of thought, and were absorbed in the affairs of Europe; but the first advance on the road to literary independence was made by the early literature of the Constitution.

Our earliest literature was political and came from the discussions around the adoption of the Constitution. It focused on our own issues and aimed at building a nation, making it fresh, energetic, often scholarly, and distinctly American in style. Its standout work was the Federalist, which marks a significant moment in the history of constitutional debate, conceived by the truly national perspective of Hamilton. After the new government was established, our political writings, much like our politics, returned to a narrow way of thinking and became focused on European affairs; however, the first step toward literary independence was taken by the early literature surrounding the Constitution.

It is to this period also, which covers the years from 1789 to 1815, that Washington Irving, the first of our great writers, belongs. This is not the place to enter into an analysis of Irving’s genius, but it may be fairly said that while in feeling he was a thorough American, in literature he was a cosmopolitan. His easy style, the tinge of romance, and the mingling of the story-teller and the antiquarian remind us of his great contemporary, Walter Scott. In his quiet humor and gentle satire, we taste the flavor of Addison. In the charming legends with which he has consecrated the beauties of the Hudson River valley, and thrown over that beautiful region the warm light of his imagination, we find the genuine love of country and of home. In like manner we perceive his historical taste and his patriotism in the last work of his life, the biography of his great namesake. But he wrought as well with the romance of Spain and of England. He was too great to be colonial; he did not find enough food for his imagination in the America of that day to be thoroughly American. He stands apart, a notable gift from America to English literature, but not a type of American literature itself. He had imitators and friends, whom it has been the fashion to call a school, but he founded no school, and died as he had lived, alone. He broke through the narrow trammels of colonialism himself, but the colonial spirit hung just as heavily upon the feeble literature about him. In those years also came the first poem of William Cullen Bryant, the first American poem with the quality of life and which was native and not of imported origin.

It is also during this period, which spans the years from 1789 to 1815, that Washington Irving, the first of our great writers, made his mark. This isn’t the place to analyze Irving’s talent, but it's fair to say that while he was deeply American in spirit, he was cosmopolitan in his writing. His relaxed style, touch of romance, and blend of storytelling with antiquarian interests remind us of his great contemporary, Walter Scott. In his subtle humor and gentle satire, we can taste the essence of Addison. In the delightful legends that celebrate the beauty of the Hudson River valley, he casts a warm glow of imagination over that stunning area, reflecting a genuine love of country and home. Similarly, we see his historical taste and patriotism in the last work of his life, the biography of his famous namesake. However, he also drew from the romance of Spain and England. He was too significant to be bound by colonialism; the America of his time didn’t provide enough inspiration for his imagination to be fully American. He stands apart, a remarkable contribution from America to English literature, but not representative of American literature itself. He had imitators and friends, often referred to as a school, but he didn’t establish one and died as he lived, alone. He transcended the narrow confines of colonialism himself, yet the colonial spirit still weighed heavily on the weak literature around him. In those years, William Cullen Bryant also published his first poem, the first American poem with genuine vitality that was truly native rather than imported.

In that same period too there flourished another literary man, who was far removed in every way from the brilliant editor of Diedrich Knickerbocker, but who illustrated by his struggle with colonialism the strength of that influence far better than Irving, who soared so easily above it. Noah Webster, poor, sturdy, independent, with a rude but surprising knowledge of philology, revolted in every nerve and fiber of his being against the enervating influence of the colonial past. The spirit of nationality had entered into his soul. He felt that the nation which he saw growing up about him was too great to take its orthography or its pronunciation blindly and obediently from the mother land. It was a new country and a new nation, and Webster determined that so far as in him lay it should have linguistic independence. It was an odd idea, but it came from his heart, and his national feeling found natural expression in the study of language, to which he devoted his life. He went into open rebellion against British tradition. He was snubbed, laughed at, and abused. He was regarded as little better than a madman to dare to set himself up against Johnson and his successors. But the hard-headed New Englander pressed on, and finally brought out his dictionary,—a great work, which has fitly preserved his name. His knowledge was crude, his general theory mistaken; his system of changes has not stood the test of time, and was in itself contradictory; but the stubborn battle which he fought for literary independence and the hard blows he struck should never be forgotten, while the odds against which he contended and the opposition he aroused are admirable illustrations of the overpowering influence of the colonial spirit in our early literature.

During that same time, another writer emerged, completely different from the brilliant editor of Diedrich Knickerbocker. This man, Noah Webster, exemplified the struggle against colonialism far better than Irving, who easily transcended it. Webster, poor, strong-willed, and independent, had a rough yet impressive understanding of linguistics. He rebelled against the draining effects of the colonial past with every fiber of his being. A sense of nationalism filled his spirit. He believed that the nation developing around him was too significant to rely blindly on the spelling and pronunciation inherited from the mother country. It was a new land and a new nation, and Webster decided that it should have linguistic independence as much as he could ensure. It was a strange concept, but it came from his heart, and his national pride naturally expressed itself in his lifelong study of language. He openly opposed British tradition. He faced ridicule, laughter, and abuse. Many viewed him as almost insane for daring to challenge Johnson and his followers. However, the determined New Englander pressed on and eventually published his dictionary—an important work that rightfully immortalized his name. His knowledge was basic, his overall theory flawed; his proposed changes didn’t withstand the test of time and were, in many ways, contradictory. But the relentless fight he waged for literary independence and the significant blows he struck should never be forgotten, as they highlight the immense influence of the colonial spirit present in our early literature.

What the state of our literature was, what the feelings of our few literary men apart from these few exceptions, and what the spirit with which Webster did battle, all come out in a few lines written by an English poet. We can see everything as by a sudden flash of light, and we do not need to look farther to understand the condition of American literature in the early years of the century. In the waste of barbarism called the United States, the only oasis discovered by the delicate sensibilities of Mr. Thomas Moore was in the society of Mr. Joseph Dennie, a clever editor and essayist, and his little circle of friends in Philadelphia. The lines commonly quoted in this connection are those in the epistle to Spencer, beginning,—

What the state of our literature was, what the feelings of our few literary figures aside from these exceptions, and the spirit with which Webster fought all come together in a few lines written by an English poet. We can see everything clearly in an instant, and we don’t need to look further to understand the state of American literature in the early years of the century. In the wasteland of barbarism known as the United States, the only oasis discovered by the delicate sensibilities of Mr. Thomas Moore was in the company of Mr. Joseph Dennie, a sharp editor and essayist, and his small circle of friends in Philadelphia. The lines often quoted in this context are those in the epistle to Spencer, beginning,—

"Yet, yet, forgive me, O you sacred few,
"Whom I met late by the green banks of Delaware;"

which describe the poet’s feelings toward America, and his delight in the society of Mr. Dennie and his friends. But the feelings and opinions of Moore are of no moment. The really important passage describes not the author, but what Dennie and his companions said and thought, and has in this way historical if not poetic value. The lines occur among those addressed to the "Boston frigate" when the author was leaving Halifax:—

which describe the poet’s feelings about America and his happiness in the company of Mr. Dennie and his friends. However, Moore's feelings and opinions aren't significant. The truly important part describes not the author, but what Dennie and his friends said and thought, giving it historical, if not poetic, value. The lines appear in those addressed to the "Boston frigate" when the author was leaving Halifax:—

"Goodbye to the few I still have left with regret;
May they sometimes remember what I can't forget,
The joy of those evenings—such a short joy,
When we have sneaked into the night with conversation and song; When they've asked me about manners, mindset, or demeanor, Of a bard I had known or a chief I had seen,
They had long admired whose glory, even from afar, Whose name often blessed the wine cup they poured. And still, with genuine but humble sympathy I've shared everything I knew about every celebrated figure. They have listened and sighed at the strong flow. America's empire should fade away like a dream,
Without leaving a single trace of brilliance, to say How amazing was the tide that has disappeared!

The evils apprehended by these excellent gentlemen are much more strongly set forth in the previous epistle, but here we catch sight of the men themselves. There they sit adoring Englishmen, and eagerly inquiring about them of the gracious Mr. Moore, while they are dolefully sighing that the empire of America is to pass away and leave no relic of genius. In their small way they were doing what they could toward such a consummation. It may be said that this frame of mind was perfectly natural under the circumstances; but it is not to the purpose to inquire into causes and motives; it is enough to state the fact. Here was a set of men of more than average talents and education; not men of real talent and quality, like Irving, but clever men, forming one of the two or three small groups of literary persons in the United States. They come before us as true provincials, steeped to the eyes in colonialism, and they fairly represent the condition of American literature at that time. They were slaves to the colonial spirit, which bowed before England and Europe. They have not left a name or a line which is remembered or read, except to serve as a historical illustration, and they will ultimately find their fit resting-place in the foot-notes of the historian.

The concerns expressed by these fine gentlemen are explained in more detail in the previous letter, but here we see the men themselves. There they are, worshiping Englishmen and eagerly asking about them from the gracious Mr. Moore, while they sadly lament that America's empire is fading away and leaving behind no trace of creativity. In their limited way, they were doing what they could to bring about such an end. One could say that this mindset was completely natural given the circumstances; however, it's not relevant to explore the reasons and motives; it's enough to state the fact. Here was a group of individuals with above-average talent and education; not truly gifted individuals like Irving, but smart people, forming one of the few small groups of literary figures in the United States. They appear before us as genuine provincials, deeply entrenched in colonialism, and they truly represent the state of American literature at that time. They were shackled by the colonial mindset, which bowed down to England and Europe. They haven't left behind a name or a line that is remembered or read, except as a historical example, and ultimately, they will find their appropriate place in the footnotes of history.

With the close of the English war the United States entered upon the second stage of their development. The new era, which began in 1815, lasted until 1861. It was a period of growth, not simply in the direction of a vast material prosperity and a rapidly increasing population, but in national sentiment, which made itself felt everywhere. Wherever we turn during those years, we discover a steady decline of the colonial influence. Politics had become wholly national and independent. The law was illustrated by great names, which take high rank in the annals of English jurisprudence. Medicine began to have its schools, and to show practitioners who no longer looked across the sea for inspiration. The Monroe doctrine bore witness to the strong foreign policy of an independent people. The tariff gave evidence of the eager desire for industrial independence, which found practical expression in the fast-growing native manufactures. Internal improvements were a sign of the general faith and interest in the development of the national resources. The rapid multiplication of inventions resulted from the natural genius of America in that important field, where it took almost at once a leading place. Science began to have a home at our seats of learning, and in the land of Franklin found a congenial soil.

With the end of the English war, the United States entered the second stage of its development. The new era, which started in 1815, lasted until 1861. It was a time of growth, not just in terms of vast material prosperity and a rapidly growing population, but also in national sentiment, which was felt everywhere. During those years, we noticed a steady decline in colonial influence. Politics became entirely national and independent. The law was shaped by prominent

But the colonial spirit, cast out from our politics and fast disappearing from business and the professions, still clung closely to literature, which must always be the best and last expression of a national mode of thought. In the admirable Life of Cooper, recently published, by Professor Lounsbury, the condition of our literature in 1820 is described so vividly and so exactly that it cannot be improved. It is as follows:—

But the colonial mindset, pushed out of our politics and quickly fading from business and professions, still held on tightly to literature, which will always be the most significant and final reflection of a nation's way of thinking. In the excellent Life of Cooper, recently published by Professor Lounsbury, the state of our literature in 1820 is depicted so clearly and accurately that it can't be improved. It is as follows:—

"The intellectual dependence of America upon England at that period is something that it is now hard to understand. Political supremacy had been cast off, but the supremacy of opinion remained absolutely unshaken. Of creative literature there was then very little of any value produced; and to that little a foreign stamp was necessary, to give currency outside of the petty circle in which it originated. There was slight encouragement for the author to write; there was still less for the publisher to print. It was, indeed, a positive injury, ordinarily, to the commercial credit of a bookseller to bring out a volume of poetry or of prose fiction which had been written by an American; for it was almost certain to fail to pay expenses. A sort of critical literature was struggling, or rather gasping, for a life that was hardly worth living; for its most marked characteristic was its servile deference to English judgment and dread of English censure. It requires a painful and penitential examination of the reviews of the period to comprehend the utter abasement of mind with which the men of that day accepted the foreign estimate upon works written here, which had been read by themselves, but which it was clear had not been read by the critics whose opinions they echoed. Even the meekness with which they submitted to the most depreciatory estimate of themselves was outdone by the anxiety with which they hurried to assure the world that they, the most cultivated of the American race, did not presume to have so high an opinion of the writings of some one of their countrymen as had been expressed by enthusiasts, whose patriotism had proved too much for their discernment. Never was any class so eager to free itself from charges that imputed to it the presumption of holding independent views of its own. Out of the intellectual character of many of those who at that day pretended to be the representatives of the highest education in this country, it almost seemed that the element of manliness had been wholly eliminated; and that, along with its sturdy democracy, whom no obstacles thwarted and no dangers daunted, the New World was also to give birth to a race of literary cowards and parasites."

The intellectual reliance of America on England during that time is something hard to grasp today. Political control had been shed, but the dominance of opinion was still completely intact. There was very little valuable creative literature produced, and what little existed needed a foreign approval to gain traction outside of the small circle where it originated. Authors had little motivation to write, and publishers had even less incentive to print. In fact, it was often a financial risk for a bookseller to release a volume of poetry or prose fiction written by an American, as it was almost certain to lead to losses. A type of critical literature was barely surviving, marked by its submissive respect for English judgment and fear of English criticism. It takes a painful and humiliating look at the reviews from that time to realize how utterly defeated the thinkers of the day were, accepting foreign opinions on works they had read themselves, which were clearly not read by the critics whose views they parroted. Even the way they submitted to negative assessments of themselves was overshadowed by their anxiety to assure the world that they, the most educated Americans, did not claim to hold as high an opinion of their fellow countrymen's writings as some enthusiasts who were too patriotic to be discerning. Never has a group been so eager to distance itself from accusations of thinking for themselves. The intellectual nature of many of those who claimed to represent the peak of education in the country seemed to have had all sense of manliness stripped away; along with the robust democracy that faced no obstacles and feared no dangers, the New World appeared set to spawn a breed of literary cowards and parasites.

The case is vigorously stated, but is not at all over-charged. Far stronger, indeed, than Professor Lounsbury’s statement is the commentary furnished by Cooper’s first book. This novel, now utterly forgotten, was entitled Precaution. Its scene was laid wholly in England; its characters were drawn from English society, chiefly from the aristocracy of that favored land; its conventional phrases were all English; worst and most extraordinary of all, it professed to be by an English author, and was received on that theory without suspicion. In such a guise did the most popular of American novelists and one of the most eminent among modern writers of fiction first appear before his countrymen and the world. If this were not so pitiable, it would be utterly ludicrous and yet the most melancholy feature of the case is that Cooper was not in the least to blame, and no one found fault with him, for his action was regarded by everyone as a matter of course. In other words, the first step of an American entering upon a literary career was to pretend to be an Englishman, in order that he might win the approval, not of Englishmen, but of his own countrymen.

The case is clearly presented, but it's not exaggerated at all. In fact, much stronger than Professor Lounsbury’s statement is the commentary provided by Cooper’s first book. This novel, now completely forgotten, was called Precaution. It was entirely set in England, its characters came from English society, mainly the aristocracy of that privileged land; all the usual phrases were English; and, most surprisingly, it claimed to be by an English author, and it was accepted on that basis without any doubt. In this way, the most popular American novelist and one of the most distinguished modern fiction writers first presented himself to his fellow countrymen and the world. If this weren’t so sad, it would be downright ridiculous; yet the most sorrowful aspect of the situation is that Cooper wasn’t at all to blame, and no one criticized him because his actions were seen as completely normal. In other words, the initial step for an American starting a literary career was to pretend to be English, so he could gain approval, not from the English, but from his own fellow Americans.

If this preposterous state of public opinion had been a mere passing fashion it would hardly be worth recording. But it represented a fixed and settled habit of mind, and is only one example of a long series of similar phenomena. We look back to the years preceding the revolution, and there we find this mental condition flourishing and strong. At that time it hardly calls for comment, because it was so perfectly natural. It is when we find such opinions existing in the year 1820 that we are conscious of their significance. They belong to colonists, and yet they are uttered by the citizens of a great and independent state. The sorriest part of it is that these views were chiefly held by the best educated portion of the community. The great body of the American people, who had cast out the colonial spirit from their politics and their business, and were fast destroying it in the professions, was sound and true. The parasitic literature of that day makes the boastful and rhetorical patriotism then in the exuberance of youth seem actually noble and fine, because, with all its faults, it was honest, genuine, and inspired by a real love of country.

If this absurd public opinion had just been a fleeting trend, it wouldn't be worth mentioning. But it was a deeply ingrained mindset and is just one example of a long series of similar occurrences. Looking back at the years leading up to the revolution, we see this way of thinking thriving and robust. At that time, it barely warranted any commentary because it felt so completely normal. It’s only when we see these views in 1820 that we realize their significance. They’re held by colonists, yet they're expressed by citizens of a great independent state. The saddest part is that these opinions were mostly held by the most educated segment of society. The vast majority of the American people, who had rid themselves of the colonial mindset in their politics and business and were quickly eliminating it from the professions, were sound and genuine. The superficial literature of that time makes the boastful and rhetorical patriotism, then in its youthful exuberance, seem actually noble and impressive because, despite its flaws, it was honest, genuine, and driven by a true love of country.

Yet it was during this period, between the years 1815 and 1861, that we began to have a literature of our own, and one in which any people could take a just pride. Cooper himself was the pioneer. In his second novel, The Spy, he threw off the wretched spirit of the colonist, and the story, which at once gained a popularity that broke down all barriers, was read everywhere with delight and approbation. The chief cause of the difference between the fate of this novel and that of its predecessor lies in the fact that The Spy was of genuine native origin. Cooper knew and loved American scenery and life. He understood certain phases of American character on the prairie and the ocean, and his genius was no longer smothered by the dead colonialism of the past. The Spy, and those of Cooper’s novels which belong to the same class, have lived and will live, and certain American characters which he drew will likewise endure. He might have struggled all his life in the limbo of intellectual servitude to which Moore’s friends consigned themselves, and no one would have cared for him then or remembered him now. But, with all his foibles, Cooper was inspired by an intense patriotism, and he had a bold, vigorous, aggressive nature. He freed his talents at a stroke, and giving them full play attained at once a world-wide reputation, which no man of colonial mind could ever have dreamed of reaching. Yet his countrymen, long before his days of strife and unpopularity, seem to have taken singularly little patriotic pride in his achievements, and the well bred and well educated shuddered to hear him called the "American Scott"; not because they thought this truly colonial description inappropriate and misapplied, but because it was a piece of irreverent audacity toward a great light of English literature.

Yet it was during this time, between 1815 and 1861, that we started to develop our own literature—a literature that any nation could be justly proud of. Cooper was the trailblazer. In his second novel, The Spy, he shed the miserable spirit of colonialism, and the story quickly gained popularity that broke down all barriers, being read everywhere with enjoyment and approval. The main difference between this novel and its predecessor is that The Spy had genuine native roots. Cooper knew and loved American landscapes and life. He understood various aspects of American character, whether on the prairie or at sea, and his talent was no longer stifled by the dead colonial mindset of the past. The Spy, along with the other novels Cooper wrote in this vein, has endured and will continue to endure, as will the American characters he created. He could have spent his life trapped in the intellectual servitude that Moore’s friends willingly accepted, and no one would have cared about him or remembered him today. But Cooper, with all his flaws, was driven by a strong patriotism, and he possessed a bold, energetic, and assertive nature. He unleashed his talents in an instant, allowing them to flourish and achieving a global reputation that no colonial-minded person could have ever imagined attaining. Yet long before Cooper faced struggles and unpopularity, his fellow countrymen seemed to take surprisingly little patriotic pride in his accomplishments, and the well-bred and educated cringed at the thought of calling him the "American Scott"; not because they thought that label was truly inappropriate or misapplied, but because it was seen as a disrespectful boldness towards a major figure in English literature.

Cooper was the first, after the close of the war of 1812, to cast off the colonial spirit and take up his position as a representative of genuine American literature; but he soon had companions, who carried still higher the standard which he had raised. To this period, which closed with our civil war, belong many of the names which are to-day among those most cherished by English-speaking people everywhere. We see the national spirit in Longfellow turning from the themes of the Old World to those of the New. In the beautiful creations of the sensitive and delicate imagination of Hawthorne, there was a new tone and a rich originality, and the same influence may be detected in the remarkable poems and the wild fancies of Poe. We find a like native strength in the sparkling verses of Holmes, in the pure and gentle poetry of Whittier, and in the firm, vigorous work of Lowell. A new leader of independent thought arises in Emerson, destined to achieve a world-wide reputation. A new school of historians appears, adorned by the talents of Prescott, Bancroft, and Motley. Many of these distinguished men were far removed in point of time from the beginning of the new era, but they all belonged to and were the result of the national movement, which began its onward march as soon as we had shaken ourselves clear from the influence of the colonial spirit upon our public affairs by the struggle which culminated in "Madison’s war," as the Federalists loved to call it.

Cooper was the first, after the end of the War of 1812, to shed the colonial mindset and establish himself as a representative of true American literature; however, he soon had peers who elevated the standard he set even further. This period, which ended with our Civil War, includes many names that are now among the most cherished by English-speaking people everywhere. We see the national spirit in Longfellow, who shifts focus from themes of the Old World to those of the New. In the beautiful works of Hawthorne's sensitive and delicate imagination, there was a fresh tone and rich originality, and the same influence can be spotted in the remarkable poems and wild imaginations of Poe. We discover similar native strength in the lively verses of Holmes, in the pure and gentle poetry of Whittier, and in the solid, vigorous work of Lowell. A new leader of independent thought emerges in Emerson, destined to earn a world-wide reputation. A new group of historians arises, enriched by the talents of Prescott, Bancroft, and Motley. Many of these distinguished individuals were far removed in time from the beginning of the new era, but they all belonged to and were shaped by the national movement, which started its advance as soon as we freed ourselves from the colonial influence on our public affairs through the conflict that culminated in what the Federalists called "Madison’s war."

These successes in the various departments of intellectual activity were all due to an instinctive revolt against colonialism. But, nevertheless, the old and time-worn spirit which made Cooper pretend to be an Englishman in 1820 was very strong, and continued to impede our progress toward intellectual independence. We find it clinging to the lesser and weaker forms of literature. We see it in fashion and society and in habits of thought, but we find the best proof of its vitality in our sensitiveness to foreign opinion. This was a universal failing. The body of the people showed it by bitter resentment; the cultivated and highly educated by abject submission and deprecation, or by cries of pain.

These achievements in different areas of intellectual activity were all driven by a natural resistance to colonialism. However, the old mindset that made Cooper act like an Englishman in 1820 was still very strong and continued to hold us back from achieving intellectual independence. We can see it lingering in the lesser and weaker forms of literature. It’s evident in fashion, society, and thought patterns, but we find the clearest evidence of its persistence in our sensitivity to foreign opinions. This was a widespread issue. The general public displayed it through intense resentment, while the educated and cultured reacted with extreme submission and self-deprecation, or through cries of distress.

As was natural in a very young nation, just awakened to its future destiny, just conscious of its still undeveloped strength, there was at this time a vast amount of exuberant self-satisfaction, of cheap rhetoric, and of noisy self-glorification. There was a corresponding readiness to take offense at the unfavorable opinion of outsiders, and at the same time an eager and insatiable curiosity to hear foreign opinions of any kind. We were, of course, very open to satire and attack. We were young, undeveloped, with a crude, almost raw civilization, and a great inclination to be boastful and conceited. Our English cousins, who had failed to conquer us, bore us no good will, and were quite ready to take all the revenge which books of travel and criticism could afford. It is to these years that Marryat, Trollope, Hamilton, Dickens, and a host of others belong. Most of their productions are quite forgotten now. The only ones which are still read, probably, are the American Notes and Martin Chuzzlewit: the former preserved by the fame of the author, the latter by its own merit as a novel. There was abundant truth in what Dickens said, to take the great novelist as the type of this group of foreign critics. It was an age in which Elijah Pogram and Jefferson Brick flourished rankly. It is also true that all that Dickens wrote was poisoned by his utter ingratitude, and that to describe the United States as populated by nothing but Bricks and Pograms was one-sided and malicious, and not true to facts. But the truth or the falsehood, the value or the worthlessness, of these criticisms are not of importance now. The striking fact, and the one we are in search of, is the manner in which we bore these censures when they appeared. We can appreciate contemporary feeling at that time only by delving in much forgotten literature; and even then we can hardly comprehend fully what we find, so completely has our habit of mind altered since those days. We received these strictures with a howl of anguish and a scream of mortified vanity. We winced and writhed, and were almost ready to go to war, because English travelers and writers abused us. It is usual now to refer these ebullitions of feeling to our youth, probably from analogy with the youth of an individual. But the analogy is misleading. Sensitiveness to foreign opinion is not especially characteristic of a youthful nation, or, at least, we have no cases to prove it, and in the absence of proof the theory falls. On the other hand, this excessive and almost morbid sensibility is a characteristic of provincial, colonial, or dependent states, especially in regard to the mother country. We raged and cried out against adverse English criticism, whether it was true or false, just or unjust, and we paid it this unnatural attention because the spirit of the colonist still lurked in our hearts and affected our mode of thought. We were advancing fast on the road to intellectual and moral independence, but we were still far from the goal.

As was natural in a very young nation that had just awakened to its future and was aware of its still undeveloped strength, there was at this time a lot of excessive self-satisfaction, cheap rhetoric, and loud self-glorification. There was also a tendency to take offense at outsiders' unfavorable opinions, while at the same time being eager and insatiably curious to hear any foreign opinions. We were, of course, very open to satire and criticism. We were young and underdeveloped, with a crude, almost raw civilization, and a strong inclination to be boastful and conceited. Our English cousins, who had failed to conquer us, held no goodwill toward us and were more than ready to take their revenge through travel books and critiques. This was the era of Marryat, Trollope, Hamilton, Dickens, and many others. Most of their works are quite forgotten now. The only ones still read today are likely American Notes and Martin Chuzzlewit: the former kept alive by the author's fame, the latter by its own merit as a novel. There was much truth in what Dickens said, being a representative of this group of foreign critics. It was a time when Elijah Pogram and Jefferson Brick thrived. It is also true that everything Dickens wrote was tainted by his complete ingratitude, and that to depict the United States as filled only with Bricks and Pograms was one-sided and malicious, and not entirely true. But the truth or falsehood, the worth or lack of worth, of these criticisms doesn’t matter now. The important fact, which we are looking for, is how we responded to these criticisms when they came out. We can only grasp contemporary feelings from that time by digging into much-forgotten literature; even then, we can hardly fully understand what we find, as our mindset has changed so completely since those days. We received these criticisms with a howl of anguish and a scream of wounded pride. We winced and writhed, and were almost ready to go to war over how English travelers and writers insulted us. It's common now to attribute these emotional outbursts to our youth, probably because of the analogy with an individual's youth. But this analogy is misleading. Sensitivity to foreign opinions isn't particularly characteristic of a youthful nation, or at least we have no cases to prove it, and without proof, the theory falls apart. On the other hand, this excessive and almost pathological sensitivity is a trait of provincial, colonial, or dependent states, especially in relation to the mother country. We raged and shouted against negative English criticism, whether it was true or false, fair or unfair, and we gave it this unnatural attention because the spirit of the colonist still lingered in our hearts and influenced our way of thinking. We were quickly progressing on the path to intellectual and moral independence, but we were still far from reaching that goal.

This second period in our history closed, as has been said, with the struggle generated by a great moral question, which finally absorbed all the thoughts and passions of the people, and culminated in a terrible civil war. We fought to preserve the integrity of the Union; we fought for our national life, and nationality prevailed. The magnitude of the conflict, the dreadful suffering which it caused for the sake of principle, the uprising of a great people, elevated and ennobled the whole country. The flood-gates were opened, and the tremendous tide of national feeling swept away every meaner emotion. We came out of the battle, after an experience which brought a sudden maturity with it, stronger than ever, but much graver and soberer than before. We came out self-poised and self-reliant, with a true sense of dignity and of our national greatness, which years of peaceful development could not have given us. The sensitiveness to foreign opinion which had been the marked feature of our mental condition before the war had disappeared. It had vanished in the smoke of battle, as the colonial spirit disappeared from our politics in the war of 1812. Englishmen and Frenchmen have come and gone, and written their impressions of us, and made little splashes in the current of every-day topics, and have been forgotten. Just now it is the fashion for every Englishman who visits this country, particularly if he is a man of any note, to go home and tell the world what he thinks of us. Some of these writers do this without taking the trouble to come here first. Sometimes we read what they have to say out of curiosity. We accept what is true, whether unpalatable or not, philosophically, and smile at what is false. The general feeling is one of wholesome indifference. We no longer see salvation and happiness in favorable foreign opinion, or misery in the reverse. The colonial spirit in this direction also is practically extinct.

This second period in our history ended, as mentioned, with the struggle ignited by a significant moral issue, which ultimately consumed everyone's thoughts and emotions, culminating in a devastating civil war. We fought to maintain the unity of the nation; we fought for our national existence, and our identity prevailed. The scale of the conflict, the immense suffering it caused for the sake of our principles, and the uprising of a great people elevated and ennobled the entire country. The floodgates opened, and the overwhelming wave of national sentiment washed away all lesser feelings. We emerged from the battle, having gained a sudden maturity, stronger than ever, but much more serious and reflective than before. We came out self-assured and independent, with a genuine sense of dignity and our national significance, which years of peaceful growth couldn't have provided. The sensitivity to foreign opinions that had characterized our mindset before the war had vanished. It disappeared in the smoke of battle, just as the colonial spirit faded from our politics during the War of 1812. Englishmen and Frenchmen have visited, shared their thoughts about us, made minor impacts on daily conversations, and have been forgotten. Right now, it’s trendy for every Englishman who comes to this country, especially if he’s noteworthy, to return home and tell the world his views on us. Some of these authors do this without even bothering to visit first. Occasionally, we read their remarks out of curiosity. We accept what’s true, whether it’s hard to hear or not, with a philosophical attitude, and we smile at what’s false. The general sentiment is one of healthy indifference. We no longer find salvation and happiness in positive foreign opinions, nor misery in the opposite. The colonial mindset in this regard is practically gone.

But while this is true of the mass of the American people whose mental health is good, and is also true of the great body of sound public opinion in the United States, it has some marked exceptions; and these exceptions constitute the lingering remains of the colonial spirit, which survives, and shows itself here and there even at the present day, with a strange vitality.

But while this is true for most Americans who have good mental health, and it’s also true for the strong public opinion in the United States, there are some notable exceptions. These exceptions reflect the remnants of the colonial mindset, which still exists and shows up occasionally today with surprising energy.

In the years which followed the close of the war, it seemed as if colonialism had been utterly extinguished: but, unfortunately, this was not the case. The multiplication of great fortunes, the growth of a class rich by inheritance, and the improvement in methods of travel and communication, all tended to carry large numbers of Americans to Europe. The luxurious fancies which were born of increased wealth, and the intellectual tastes which were developed by the advance of the higher education, and to which an old civilization offers peculiar advantages and attractions, combined to breed in many persons a love of foreign life and foreign manners. These tendencies and opportunities have revived the dying spirit of colonialism. We see it most strongly in the leisure class, which is gradually increasing in this country. During the miserable ascendancy of the Second Empire, a band of these persons formed what was known as the "American colony," in Paris. Perhaps they still exist; if so, their existence is now less flagrant and more decent. When they were notorious they presented the melancholy spectacle of Americans admiring and aping the manners, habits, and vices of another nation, when that nation was bent and corrupted by the cheap, meretricious, and rotten system of the third Napoleon. They furnished a very offensive example of peculiarly mean colonialism. This particular phase has departed, but the same sort of Americans are, unfortunately, still common in Europe. I do not mean, of course, those persons who go abroad to buy social consideration, nor the women who trade on their beauty or their wits to gain a brief and dishonoring notoriety. These last are merely adventurers and adventuresses, who are common to all nations. The people referred to here form that large class, comprising many excellent men and women, no doubt, who pass their lives in Europe, mourning over the inferiority of their own country, and who become thoroughly denationalized. They do not change into Frenchmen or Englishmen, but are simply disfigured and deformed Americans.

In the years following the end of the war, it seemed as if colonialism had completely disappeared; unfortunately, that wasn't true. The rise of great wealth, the growth of a class that became rich through inheritance, and improvements in travel and communication all led many Americans to Europe. The luxurious desires that came from increased wealth and the intellectual interests developed through higher education, which an older civilization uniquely offers, combined to inspire a fascination with foreign lifestyles and cultures in many people. These tendencies and opportunities have revived the fading spirit of colonialism. We see this most prominently in the growing leisure class in this country. During the unfortunate times of the Second Empire, a group of these individuals formed what was known as the "American colony" in Paris. They may still exist; if so, they are now less conspicuous and more respectable. When they were notorious, they presented a sad sight of Americans admiring and imitating the behaviors, habits, and vices of another country, especially one that was weakened and corrupted by the cheap and dishonest system of the third Napoleon. They provided a very offensive example of a particularly petty form of colonialism. This phase has faded, but unfortunately, the same type of Americans are still common in Europe. I’m not talking about those who go abroad to seek social status, nor the women who use their beauty or intelligence for fleeting and disgraceful fame. These individuals are simply adventurers, found in all nations. The group I'm referring to includes many decent men and women who spend their lives in Europe, lamenting the shortcomings of their own country, and becoming thoroughly denationalized. They don't turn into French or English people; they simply become distorted and changed versions of Americans.

We find the same wretched habit of thought in certain groups among the rich and idle people of our great eastern cities, especially in New York, because it is the metropolis. These groups are for the most part made up of young men who despise everything American and admire everything English. They talk and dress and walk and ride in certain ways, because they imagine that the English do these things after that fashion. They hold their own country in contempt, and lament the hard fate of their birth. They try to think that they form an aristocracy, and become at once ludicrous and despicable. The virtues which have made the upper classes in England what they are, and which take them into public affairs, into literature and politics, are forgotten, for Anglo-Americans imitate the vices or the follies of their models, and stop there. If all this were merely a fleeting fashion, an attack of Anglo-mania or of Gallo-mania, of which there have been instances enough everywhere, it would be of no consequence. But it is a recurrence of the old and deep-seated malady of colonialism. It is a lineal descendant of the old colonial family. The features are somewhat dim now, and the vitality is low, but there is no mistaking the hereditary traits. The people who thus despise their own land, and ape English manners, flatter themselves with being cosmopolitans, when in truth they are genuine colonists, petty and provincial to the last degree.

We see the same miserable mindset in certain groups of wealthy and idle people in our major eastern cities, especially in New York, since it's the biggest city. These groups mostly consist of young men who look down on everything American and idolize everything British. They talk, dress, walk, and ride in certain ways because they think that's how the English do it. They disdain their own country and mourn the misfortune of their birth. They try to convince themselves that they are part of an aristocracy, which makes them both ridiculous and contemptible. The qualities that have shaped the upper classes in England and led them into public life, literature, and politics are forgotten, as Anglo-Americans only imitate the vices or follies of their role models and stop there. If this were just a passing trend, a fleeting infatuation with English or French culture, which has happened before, it wouldn’t matter. But it represents a return of the old, deep-rooted issue of colonialism. It is a direct descendant of the old colonial mindset. While the characteristics are somewhat faded now and the energy is low, the inherited traits are unmistakable. Those who look down on their own country and mimic English customs falsely pride themselves on being cosmopolitans, when in reality, they are true colonists—petty and provincial to the utmost degree.

We see a like tendency in the same limited but marked way in our literature. Some of our cleverest fiction is largely devoted to studying the character of our countrymen abroad; that is, either denationalized Americans or Americans with a foreign background. At times this species of literature resolves itself into an agonized effort to show how foreigners regard us, and to point out the defects which jar upon foreign susceptibilities even while it satirizes the denationalized American. The endeavor to turn ourselves inside out in order to appreciate the trivialities of life which impress foreigners unpleasantly is very unprofitable exertion, and the Europeanized American is not worth either study or satire. Writings of this kind, again, are intended to be cosmopolitan in tone, and to evince a knowledge of the world, and yet they are in reality steeped in colonialism. We cannot but regret the influence of a spirit which wastes fine powers of mind and keen perceptions in a fruitless striving and a morbid craving to know how we appear to foreigners, and to show what they think of us.

We can see a similar trend in our literature, which is limited but noticeable. Much of our clever fiction focuses on the characters of our fellow Americans living abroad; that is, either Americans who have lost their national identity or those with a foreign background. Sometimes, this type of literature turns into a desperate attempt to show how foreigners view us and highlight the flaws that annoy them, all while poking fun at the denationalized American. Trying to examine ourselves deeply to understand the trivial aspects of life that upset foreigners is a pointless effort, and the Europeanized American isn't worth studying or satirizing. These writings aim to sound cosmopolitan and show a worldly knowledge, yet they are actually filled with colonial attitudes. It’s frustrating to see this mindset squander valuable mental capabilities and sharp insights in a futile effort to understand how we are perceived by foreigners and to reveal their opinions of us.

We see, also, men and women of talent going abroad to study art and remaining there. The atmosphere of Europe is more congenial to such pursuits, and the struggle as nothing to what must be encountered here. But when it leads to an abandonment of America, the result is wholly vain. Sometimes these people become tolerably successful French artists, but their nationality and individuality have departed, and with them originality and force. The admirable school of etching which has arisen in New York; the beautiful work of American wood-engraving; the Chelsea tiles of Low, which have won the highest prizes at English exhibitions; the silver of Tiffany, specimens of which were bought by the Japanese commissioners at the Paris Exposition, are all strong, genuine work, and are doing more for American art, and for all art, than a wilderness of over-educated and denationalized Americans who are painting pictures and carving statues and writing music in Europe or in the United States, in the spirit of colonists, and bowed down by a wretched dependence.

We also notice talented men and women going abroad to study art and staying there. The atmosphere in Europe is better suited for these pursuits, and the challenges they face there are nothing compared to what they encounter here. However, when this leads to abandoning America, the outcome is completely pointless. Sometimes these individuals become fairly successful French artists, but they lose their nationality and individuality, along with their originality and strength. The amazing etching school that has developed in New York; the beautiful work of American wood-engraving; the Chelsea tiles by Low, which have won top awards at English exhibitions; the silver by Tiffany, which Japanese commissioners bought at the Paris Exposition, all represent strong, genuine work. They are doing more for American art and all art than a sea of over-educated and denationalized Americans who are painting pictures, carving statues, and writing music in Europe or the United States, with a colonist mindset and weighed down by a miserable dependence.

There is abundance of splendid material all about us here for the poet, the artist, or the novelist. The conditions are not the same as in Europe, but they are not on that account inferior. They are certainly as good. They may be better. Our business is not to grumble because they are different, for that is colonial. We must adapt ourselves to them, for we alone can use properly our own resources; and no work in art or literature ever has been, or ever will be, of any real or lasting value which is not true, original, and independent.

There's plenty of amazing material all around us for poets, artists, and novelists. The conditions aren't the same as in Europe, but that doesn’t make them inferior. They’re definitely just as good. They might even be better. We shouldn’t complain just because they’re different, as that’s a colonial mindset. We need to adapt to them because only we can properly use our own resources; and no artwork or literature has ever been, or will ever be, of any real or lasting value unless it's genuine, original, and independent.

If these remnants of the colonial spirit and influence were, as they look at first sight, merely trivial accidents, they would not be worth mentioning. But the range of their influence, although limited, affects an important class. It appears almost wholly among the rich or the highly educated in art and literature; that is, to a large extent among men and women of talent and refined sensibilities. The follies of those who imitate English habits belong really to but a small portion of even their own class. But as these follies are contemptible, the wholesome prejudice which they excite is naturally, but thoughtlessly, extended to all who have anything in common with those who are guilty of them. In this busy country of ours, the men of leisure and education, although increasing in number, are still few, and they have heavier duties and responsibilities than anywhere else. Public charities, public affairs, politics, literature, all demand the energies of such men. To the country which has given them wealth and leisure and education they owe the duty of faithful service, because they, and they alone, can afford to do that work which must be done without pay. The few who are imbued with the colonial spirit not only fail in their duty, and become contemptible and absurd, but they injure the influence and thwart the activity of the great majority of those who are similarly situated, and who are also patriotic and public spirited.

If these remnants of colonial attitudes and influences were just, as they seem at first glance, minor issues, they wouldn't be worth mentioning. However, their influence, though limited, impacts an important group. It mainly appears among the wealthy or those highly educated in art and literature; that is, largely among talented individuals with refined tastes. The foolishness of those who mimic English customs really only represents a small part of their own class. But because these foolish behaviors are ridiculous, the healthy disdain they provoke is often, though thoughtlessly, extended to everyone who has anything in common with those who exhibit them. In our busy country, people of leisure and education, while increasing in number, are still few and carry heavier responsibilities than anywhere else. Public charities, public affairs, politics, and literature all require the energy of such individuals. To the country that has provided them with wealth, leisure, and education, they owe a duty of dedicated service, since only they can undertake the work that must be done without compensation. Those few who embody the colonial spirit not only neglect their responsibilities, becoming ridiculous and absurd, but they also harm the influence and obstruct the efforts of the vast majority of others in similar positions, who are also patriotic and civic-minded.

In art and literature the vain struggle to be somebody or something other than an American, the senseless admiration of everything foreign, and the morbid anxiety about our appearance before foreigners have the same deadening effect. Such qualities were bad enough in 1820. They are a thousand times meaner and more foolish now. They retard the march of true progress, which here, as elsewhere, must be in the direction of nationality and independence. This does not mean that we are to expect or to seek for something utterly different, something new and strange, in art, literature, or society. Originality is thinking for one’s self. Simply to think differently from other people is eccentricity. Some of our English cousins, for instance, have undertaken to hold Walt Whitman up as the herald of the coming literature of American democracy, not because he was a genius, not for his merits alone, but largely because he departed from all received forms, and indulged in barbarous eccentricities. They mistake difference for originality. Whitman was a true and a great poet, but it was his power and imagination which made him so, not his eccentricities. When Whitman did best, he was, as a rule, nearest to the old and well-proved forms. We, like our contemporaries everywhere, are the heirs of the ages, and we must study the past, and learn from it, and advance from what has been already tried and found good. That is the only way to success anywhere, or in anything. But we cannot enter upon that or any other road until we are truly national and independent intellectually, and are ready to think for ourselves, and not look to foreigners in order to find out what they think.

In art and literature, the pointless effort to be someone or something other than an American, the blind admiration for everything foreign, and the unhealthy worry about how we appear to outsiders all have the same stifling effect. These traits were bad enough in 1820. They are a thousand times worse and more ridiculous now. They hold back real progress, which, as everywhere else, must head toward nationality and independence. This doesn’t mean we should expect or look for something completely different, something new and strange, in art, literature, or society. Originality is thinking for yourself. Simply thinking differently from others is just being eccentric. Some of our English relatives, for example, have tried to present Walt Whitman as the voice of the upcoming literature of American democracy, not because he was a genius or for his merits alone, but mainly because he broke from all established forms and embraced strange eccentricities. They confuse difference with originality. Whitman was a true and great poet, but it was his talent and imagination that made him great, not his eccentricities. When Whitman was at his best, he was usually closest to the old and well-established forms. We, like our contemporaries everywhere, are the inheritors of the past, and we must study it, learn from it, and build upon what has already been tried and proved effective. That is the only path to success anywhere, or in anything. But we cannot start down that path or any other until we are genuinely national and intellectually independent, and are ready to think for ourselves instead of looking to outsiders to figure out what they think.

To those who grumble and sigh over the inferiority of America we may commend the opinion of a distinguished Englishman, as they prefer such authority. Mr. Herbert Spencer said, recently, "I think that whatever difficulties they may have to surmount, and whatever tribulations they may have to pass through, the Americans may reasonably look forward to a time when they will have produced a civilization grander than any the world has known." Even the Englishmen whom our provincials of to-day adore, even those who are most hostile, pay a serious attention to America. That keen respect for success and anxious deference to power so characteristic of Great Britain find expression every day, more and more, in the English interest in the United States, now that we do not care in the least about it; and be it said in passing, no people despises more heartily than the English a man who does not love his country. To be despised abroad, and regarded with contempt and pity at home, is not a very lofty result of so much effort on the part of our lovers of the British. But it is the natural and fit reward of colonialism. Members of a great nation instinctively patronize colonists.

To those who complain and sigh about America's shortcomings, we can reference the opinion of a notable Englishman, since they prefer that kind of authority. Mr. Herbert Spencer recently stated, "I believe that whatever challenges they may face and whatever hardships they may endure, Americans can reasonably look forward to a time when they will have created a civilization greater than any the world has ever seen." Even the Englishmen whom our contemporary provincial leaders admire, even those who are most critical, pay serious attention to America. That sharp respect for success and eager deference to power, so typical of Great Britain, is increasingly evident in the English interest in the United States, especially now that we are indifferent to it; and let it be noted, no nation despises more than the English a person who does not love their country. To be looked down upon abroad and regarded with disdain and pity at home is not an admirable outcome for those who so fervently admire the British. But it’s the natural and fitting consequence of colonialism. Members of a great nation instinctively look down on colonists.

It is interesting to examine the sources of the colonial spirit, and to trace its influence upon our history and its gradual decline. The study of a habit of mind, with its tenacity of life, is an instructive and entertaining branch of history. But if we lay history and philosophy aside, the colonial spirit as it survives to-day, although curious enough, is a mean and noxious thing, which cannot be too quickly or too thoroughly stamped out. It is the dying spirit of dependence, and wherever it still clings it injures, weakens, and degrades. It should be exorcised rapidly and completely, so that it will never return. I cannot close more fitly than with the noble words of Emerson:—

It’s interesting to look into the origins of the colonial mindset and track its impact on our history and gradual fade. Studying a way of thinking that’s so persistent is both educational and engaging. However, if we put history and philosophy aside, the colonial spirit that still exists today, while intriguing, is harmful and toxic, and needs to be eradicated as quickly and thoroughly as possible. It represents the fading spirit of dependence, and wherever it remains, it causes harm, weakens, and degrades. It should be completely and swiftly banished so that it never comes back. I can't conclude better than by quoting the wise words of Emerson:—

"Let the passion for America cast out the passion for Europe. They who find America insipid, they for whom London and Paris have spoiled their own homes, can be spared to return to those cities. I not only see a career at home for more genius than we have, but for more than there is in the world."

"Let the love for America replace the love for Europe. Those who find America dull, and whose homes have been ruined by London and Paris, can go back to those cities. I see not only a future at home for more talent than we have, but for even more than exists in the world."

NEW YORK AFTER PARIS

W.C. Brownell

NO American, not a commercial or otherwise hardened traveler, can have a soul so dead as to be incapable of emotion when, on his return from a long trip abroad, he catches sight of the low-lying and insignificant Long Island coast. One’s excitement begins, indeed, with the pilot-boat. The pilot-boat is the first concrete symbol of those native and normal relations with one’s fellow-men, which one has so long observed in infinitely varied manifestation abroad, but always as a spectator and a stranger, and which one is now on the eve of sharing himself. As she comes up swiftly, white and graceful, drops her pilot, crosses the steamer’s bows, tacks, and picks up her boat in the foaming wake, she presents a spectacle beside which the most picturesque Mediterranean craft, with colored sails and lazy evolutions, appear mistily in the memory as elements of a feeble and conventional ideal. The ununiformed pilot clambers on board, makes his way to the bridge, and takes command with an equal lack of French manner and of English affectation distinctly palpable to the sense, sharpened by long absence into observing native characteristics as closely as foreign ones. If the season be right the afternoon is bright, the range of vision apparently limitless, the sky nearly cloudless and, by contrast with the European firmament, almost colorless, the July sun such as no Parisian or Londoner ever saw. The French reproach us for having no word for "patrie" as distinct from "pays"; we have the thing at all events, and cherish it, and it needs only the proximity of the foreigner, from whom in general we are so widely separated, to give our patriotism a tinge of the veriest chauvinism that exists in France itself.

NO American, especially one who isn't used to traveling or who has a hardened heart, can't be so void of feeling that they don't experience emotion when, returning from a long trip abroad, they catch sight of the low-lying and somewhat ordinary Long Island coast. The excitement truly begins with the pilot boat. The pilot boat is the first real sign of the normal relationships we have with our fellow humans, which we’ve observed in various forms while abroad, always as a bystander and a stranger, and which we are about to participate in ourselves. As it approaches swiftly, white and elegant, drops off its pilot, crosses the steamer's bow, turns, and retrieves its boat from the foaming wake, it creates a scene that makes the most beautiful Mediterranean vessels, with colorful sails and slow movements, seem faintly like a weak and dull ideal. The unformally dressed pilot climbs aboard, heads to the bridge, and takes command with an easygoing style that lacks the French flair and the English pretensions, which stand out vividly to someone who has been away and is keenly observing both local traits and foreign ones. If the timing is right, the afternoon is bright, the view seems endless, the sky nearly cloudless and, in contrast to the European sky, almost colorless, with a July sun that no Parisian or Londoner has ever experienced. The French criticize us for not having a specific word for "patrie" apart from "pays"; we have the sentiment nonetheless, and we treasure it. It only takes the presence of a foreigner, from whom we are usually quite separated, to make our patriotism feel a bit like the purest form of nationalism found in France itself.

We fancy the feeling old-fashioned, and imagine ours to be the most cosmopolitan, the least prejudiced temperament in the world. It is reasonable that it should be. The extreme sensitiveness noticed in us by all foreign observers during the antebellum epoch, and ascribed by Tocqueville to our self-distrust, is naturally inconsistent with our position and circumstances to-day. A population greater than that of any of the great nations, isolated by the most enviable geographical felicity in the world from the narrowing influences of international jealousy apparent to every American who travels in Europe, is increasingly less concerned at criticism than a struggling provincial republic of half its size. And along with our self-confidence and our carelessness of "abroad," it is only with the grosser element among us that national conceit has deepened; in general, we are apt to fancy we have become cosmopolitan in proportion as we have lost our provincialism. With us surely the individual has not withered, and if the world has become more and more to him, it is because it is the world at large and not the pent-up confines of his own country’s history and extent. "La patrie" in danger would be quickly enough rescued—there is no need to prove that over again, even to our own satisfaction; but in general "la patrie" not being in any danger, being on the contrary apparently on the very crest of the wave of the world, it is felt not to need much of one’s active consideration, and passively indeed is viewed by many people, probably, as a comfortable and gigantic contrivance for securing a free field in which the individual may expand and develop. "America," says Emerson, "America is Opportunity." After all, the average American of the present day says, a country stands or falls by the number of properly expanded and developed individuals it possesses. But the happening of any one of a dozen things unexpectedly betrays that all this cosmopolitanism is in great measure, and so far as sentiment is concerned, a veneer and a disguise. Such a happening is the very change from blue water to gray that announces to the returning American the nearness of that country which he sometimes thinks he prizes more for what it stands for than for itself. It is not, he then feels with a sudden flood of emotion, that America is home, but that home is America. America comes suddenly to mean what it never meant before.

We like to think of ourselves as old-fashioned and see our attitudes as the most cosmopolitan and least biased in the world. It makes sense for us to feel that way. The extreme sensitivity noted by foreign observers during the pre-Civil War era, which Tocqueville attributed to our self-doubt, doesn’t quite align with our current situation. With a population larger than any of the major nations, and enjoying an enviable geographical position that shields us from the international rivalries that every American sees while traveling in Europe, we care a lot less about criticism than a struggling provincial republic half our size. And along with our growing self-confidence and indifference to what happens "abroad," it’s mainly with the coarser elements among us that national pride has intensified; generally, we like to think we’ve become cosmopolitan just as we’ve shed our provincial mindset. For us, the individual has definitely not faded away, and if the world has become more significant for him, it’s because it’s the wider world, not just the limited history and boundaries of his own country. "La patrie" in danger could be quickly saved—there’s no need to prove that again, even to ourselves; but in general, since "la patrie" is not in any danger and seems to be really thriving on the world stage, it often doesn’t seem to need much of our active attention and is viewed by many as a convenient and vast system that allows individuals to grow and thrive. "America," as Emerson puts it, "America is Opportunity." Ultimately, the average American today believes that a country thrives or declines based on the number of well-developed individuals it has. However, when something unexpected happens, it reveals that this cosmopolitanism is largely a superficial facade. A moment like the shift from blue water to gray signals to the returning American that he is nearing a country he sometimes thinks he values more for what it represents than for what it actually is. In that moment, he suddenly feels a wave of emotion—not that America is home, but that home is America. Suddenly, America takes on a meaning it has never had before.

Unhappily for this exaltation, ordinary life is not composed of emotional crises. It is ordinary life with a vengeance which one encounters in issuing from the steamer dock and facing again his native city. Paris never looked so lovely, so exquisite to the sense as it now appears in the memory. All that Parisian regularity, order, decorum, and beauty into which, although a stranger, your own activities fitted so perfectly that you were only half-conscious of its existence, was not, then, merely normal, wholly a matter of course. Emerging into West Street, amid the solicitations of hackmen, the tinkling jog-trot of the most ignoble horse-cars you have seen since leaving home, the dry dust blowing into your eyes, the gaping black holes of broken pavements, the unspeakable filth, the line of red brick buildings prematurely decrepit, the sagging multitude of telegraph wires, the clumsy electric lights depending before the beer saloon and the groggery, the curious confusion of spruceness and squalor in the aspect of these latter, which also seem legion—confronting all this for the first time in three years, say, you think with wonder of your disappointment at not finding the Tuileries Gardens a mass of flowers, and with a blush of the times you have told Frenchmen that New York was very much like Paris. New York is at this moment the most foreign-looking city you have ever seen; in going abroad the American discounts the unexpected; returning after the insensible orientation of Europe, the contrast with things recently familiar is prodigious, because one is so entirely unprepared for it. One thinks to be at home, and finds himself at the spectacle. New York is less like any European city than any European city is like any other. It is distinguished from them all—even from London—by the ignoble character of the res publicæ, and the refuge of taste, care, wealth, pride, self-respect even, in private and personal regions. A splendid carriage, liveried servants without and Paris dresses within, rattling over the scandalous paving, splashed by the neglected mud, catching the rusty drippings of the hideous elevated railway, wrenching its axle in the tram-track in avoiding a mountainous wagon load of commerce on this hand and a garbage cart on that, caught in a jam of horse-cars and a blockade of trucks, finally depositing its dainty freight to pick its way across a sidewalk eloquent of official neglect and private contumely, to a shop door or a residence stoop—such a contrast as this sets us off from Europe very definitely and in a very marked degree.

Unfortunately, this excitement is not what everyday life is made of. It’s everyday life in all its harshness that you face when you step off the steamer and confront your hometown. Paris has never looked so beautiful or so delightful in your memory as it does now. All that Parisian regularity, order, decorum, and beauty into which your activities fit so seamlessly—making you only half aware of its existence—wasn’t just normal, it wasn’t something to take for granted. Stepping onto West Street, amidst the shouts of cab drivers, the jarring clatter of the rudest horse-drawn carriages you've seen since you left home, the dry dust blowing into your eyes, the gaping potholes in the pavement, the disgusting filth, the line of dilapidated red-brick buildings, the sagging mess of telegraph wires, the awkward electric lights hanging over the beer hall and bar, and the strange mix of neatness and dirt in these places, which seem to be everywhere—you can’t help but think about your disappointment at not finding the Tuileries Gardens overflowing with flowers. You also feel embarrassed remembering how you told the French that New York was very much like Paris. At this moment, New York looks more foreign than any city you've ever seen; when Americans travel abroad, they tend to overlook the unexpected. But after being gradually adjusted to Europe, the shock of returning to a recently familiar place is overwhelming because you’re completely unprepared for it. You expect to feel at home, but instead, you’re confronted with a spectacle. New York is less like any European city than any European city is like another. It stands apart from them all—even from London—due to the lowly nature of its public spaces, where taste, care, wealth, pride, and even self-respect seem to retreat into private and personal areas. A luxurious carriage with uniformed servants outside and Parisian fashion within rattles over the horrible pavement, splashed by the neglected mud, catching the rusty drippings from the ugly elevated railway, struggling to avoid a mountain of goods on one side and a garbage truck on the other, caught in a traffic jam of horse-drawn carriages and a blockade of trucks, finally dropping off its delicate passengers who gingerly navigate a sidewalk that speaks volumes about official neglect and personal disdain to reach a shop door or a home entrance—this stark contrast definitely sets us apart from Europe in a very noticeable way.

There is no palpable New York in the sense in which there is a Paris, a Vienna, a Milan. You can touch it at no point. It is not even ocular. There is instead a Fifth Avenue, a Broadway, a Central Park, a Chatham Square. How they have dwindled, by the way. Fifth Avenue might be any one of a dozen London streets in the first impression it makes on the retina and leaves on the mind. The opposite side of Madison Square is but a step away. The spacious hall of the Fifth Avenue Hotel has shrunk to stifling proportions. Thirty-fourth Street is a lane; the City Hall a bandbox; the Central Park a narrow strip of elegant landscape whose lateral limitations are constantly forced upon the sense by the Lenox Library on one side and a monster apartment house on the other. The American fondness for size—for pure bigness—needs explanation, it appears; we care for size, but inartistically; we care nothing for proportion, which is what makes size count. Everything is on the same scale; there is no play, no movement. An exception should be made in favor of the big business building and the apartment house which have arisen within a few years, and which have greatly accentuated the grotesqueness of the city’s sky-line as seen from either the New Jersey or the Long Island shore. They are perhaps rather high than big; many of them were built before the authorities noticed them and followed unequally in the steps of other civilized municipal governments, from that of ancient Rome down, in prohibiting the passing of a fixed limit. But bigness has also evidently been one of their architectonic motives, and it is to be remarked that they are so far out of scale with the surrounding buildings as to avoid the usual commonplace, only by creating a positively disagreeable effect. The aspect of Fifty-seventh Street between Broadway and Seventh Avenue, for example, is certainly that of the world upside down: a Gothic church utterly concealed, not to say crushed, by contiguous flats, and confronted by the overwhelming "Osborne," which towers above anything in the neighborhood, and perhaps makes the most powerful impression that the returned traveler receives during his first week or two of strange sensations. Yet the "Osborne’s" dimensions are not very different from those of the Arc de l’Étoile. It is true it does not face an avenue of majestic buildings a mile and a half long and two hundred and thirty feet wide, but the association of these two structures, one a private enterprise and the other a public monument, together with the obvious suggestions of each, furnish a not misleading illustration of both the spectacular and the moral contrast between New York and Paris, as it appears unduly magnified no doubt to the sense surprised to notice it at all.

There's no real New York like there is a Paris, a Vienna, or a Milan. You can’t really grasp it at any point. It’s not even visible in the same way. Instead, there’s a Fifth Avenue, a Broadway, a Central Park, a Chatham Square. By the way, how much they have shrunk. Fifth Avenue feels like just one of many London streets based on first impressions and what it leaves in your mind. The other side of Madison Square is just a quick walk away. The large hall of the Fifth Avenue Hotel now feels cramped. Thirty-fourth Street has become a narrow lane; City Hall is tiny; Central Park is just a slim stretch of beautiful landscape whose lateral boundaries are constantly pushed on your senses by the Lenox Library on one side and a giant apartment building on the other. The American love for size—just sheer bigness—needs some explaining; we care about size, but in an unartistic way; we don’t care at all about proportion, which is what really matters with size. Everything feels uniform; there’s no variation, no movement. There’s an exception for the large office buildings and apartment complexes that have gone up in recent years, which have really highlighted the oddness of the city’s skyline as seen from either New Jersey or Long Island. They’re perhaps more tall than large; many were built before the city noticed them and followed the mismatched footsteps of other civilized municipalities, from ancient Rome onwards, in placing limits on height. But size has clearly been one of their design motives, and it’s noteworthy that they’re so disproportionate to the surrounding buildings that they avoid the usual commonplace by creating an outright unpleasant effect. The view of Fifty-seventh Street between Broadway and Seventh Avenue, for instance, definitely looks like the world turned upside down: a Gothic church completely hidden, if not overwhelmed, by adjacent apartment buildings, and facing the dominating "Osborne," which towers over everything nearby, possibly leaving the strongest impression on a traveler returning after a long time away during their first couple of weeks of new experiences. Yet the “Osborne’s” size isn’t too different from that of the Arc de l’Étoile. True, it doesn’t face a grand avenue of majestic buildings a mile and a half long and two hundred and thirty feet wide, but the connection between these two structures, one a private building and the other a public monument, along with the clear implications of each, offers a pretty accurate comparison of both the flashy and the moral differences between New York and Paris, which might seem exaggerated to someone who’s just noticed it.

Still another reason for the foreign aspect of the New Yorker’s native city is the gradual withdrawing of the American element into certain quarters, its transformation or essential modification in others, and in the rest the presence of the lees of Europe. At every step you are forced to realize that New York is the second Irish and the third or fourth German city in the world. However great our success in drilling this foreign contingent of our social army into order and reason and self-respect—and it is not to be doubted that this success gives us a distinction wholly new in history—nevertheless our effect upon its members has been in the direction of development rather than of assimilation. We have given them our opportunity, permitted them the expansion denied them in their own several feudalities, made men of serfs, demonstrated the utility of self-government under the most trying conditions, proved the efficacy of our elastic institutions on a scale truly grandiose; but evidently, so far as New York is concerned, we have done this at the sacrifice of a distinct and obvious nationality. To an observant sense New York is nearly as little national as Port Said. It contrasts absolutely in this respect with Paris, whose assimilating power is prodigious; every foreigner in Paris eagerly seeks Parisianization.

Another reason for the foreign vibe of New York, the native city of the New Yorker, is the gradual retreat of the American element into specific neighborhoods, its transformation or significant change in others, and the presence of remnants from Europe in the rest. Everywhere you look, you’re made aware that New York is the second-largest Irish city and the third or fourth largest German city in the world. No matter how successful we have been in organizing this foreign group into a cohesive social force— and there’s no doubt that this achievement gives us a distinct status in history—our impact on its members has leaned more towards development than assimilation. We’ve provided them with opportunities, allowed them to grow in ways they couldn’t in their own countries, turned serfs into men, shown the value of self-government under challenging circumstances, and demonstrated the effectiveness of our flexible institutions on a truly grand scale. However, when it comes to New York, it seems we’ve done this at the cost of a clear and recognizable nationality. To a keen observer, New York feels almost as non-national as Port Said. In this respect, it stands in stark contrast to Paris, which has a remarkable ability to assimilate; every foreigner in Paris eagerly seeks to become Parisian.

Ocularly, therefore, the "note" of New York seems that of characterless individualism. The monotony of the chaotic composition and movement is, paradoxically, its most abiding impression. And as the whole is destitute of definiteness, of distinction, the parts are, correspondingly, individually insignificant. Where in the world are all the types? one asks one’s self in renewing his old walks and desultory wanderings. Where is the New York counterpart of that astonishing variety of types which makes Paris what it is morally and pictorially, the Paris of Balzac as well as the Paris of M. Jean Béraud. Of a sudden the lack of nationality in our familiar literature and art becomes luminously explicable. One perceives why Mr. Howells is so successful in confining himself to the simplest, broadest, most representative representatives, why Mr. James goes abroad invariably for his mise-en-scène, and often for his characters, why Mr. Reinhart lives in Paris, and Mr. Abbey in London. New York is this and that, it is incontestably unlike any other great city, but compared with Paris, its most impressive trait is its lack of that organic quality which results from variety of types. Thus compared, it seems to have only the variety of individuals which results in monotony. It is the difference between noise and music. Pictorially, the general aspect of New York is such that the mind speedily takes refuge in insensitiveness. Its expansiveness seeks exercise in other directions—business, dissipation, study, æstheticism, politics. The life of the senses is no longer possible. This is why one’s sense for art is so stimulated by going abroad, and one’s sense for art in its freest, frankest, most universal and least special, intense and enervated development, is especially exhilarated by going to Paris. It is why, too, on one’s return one can note the gradual decline of his sensitiveness, his severity—the progressive atrophy of a sense no longer called into exercise. "I had no conception before," said a Chicago broker to me one day in Paris, with intelligent eloquence, "of a finished city!" Chicago undoubtedly presents a greater contrast to Paris than does New York, and so, perhaps, better prepares one to appreciate the Parisian quality, but the returned New Yorker cannot fail to be deeply impressed with the finish, the organic perfection, the elegance, and reserve of the Paris mirrored in his memory. Is it possible that the uniformity, the monotony of Paris architecture, the prose note in Parisian taste, should once have weighed upon his spirit? Riding once on the top of a Paris tramway, betraying an understanding of English by reading an American newspaper, that sub-consciousness of moral isolation which the foreigner feels in Paris as elsewhere, was suddenly and completely destroyed by my next neighbor, who remarked with contemptuous conviction and a Manhattan accent: "When you’ve seen one block of this infernal town you’ve seen it all!" He felt sure of sympathy in advance. Probably few New Yorkers would have differed with him. The universal light stone and brown paint, the wide sidewalks, the asphalt pavement, the indefinitely multipled kiosks, the prevalence of a few marked kinds of vehicles, the uniformed workmen and workwomen, the infinite reduplication, in a word, of easily recognized types, is at first mistaken by the New Yorker for that dead level of uniformity which is, of all things in the world, the most tiresome to him in his own city. After a time, however, he begins to realize three important facts: In the first place these phenomena, which so vividly force themselves on his notice that their reduplication strikes him more than their qualities, are nevertheless of a quality altogether unexampled in his experience for fitness and agreeableness; in the second place, they are details of a whole, members of an organism, and not they, but the city which they compose, the "finished city" of the acute Chicagoan, is the spectacle; in the third place they serve as a background for the finest group of monuments in the world. On his return he perceives these things with a melancholy a non lucendo luminousness. The dead level of Murray Hill uniformity he finds the most agreeable aspect in the city.

Visually, the vibe of New York comes across as a mix of bland individualism. The sameness of its chaotic structure and movement ironically leaves a lasting impression. And since the overall scene lacks clarity and distinction, the individual parts seem unimportant. You might wonder, where are all the different types? as you revisit familiar streets and aimless wanderings. Where is New York’s equivalent to the amazing variety that makes Paris what it is, both morally and visually—the Paris of Balzac as well as the Paris of M. Jean Béraud? Suddenly, the absence of nationality in our familiar literature and art becomes clear. You see why Mr. Howells is so successful at sticking to the simplest, broadest, most representative characters, why Mr. James always goes abroad for his settings and often for his characters, why Mr. Reinhart lives in Paris, and Mr. Abbey in London. New York is this and that; it is undeniably different from any other big city, but compared to Paris, its most striking feature is its lack of the organic quality that comes from a variety of types. In this comparison, it seems to only have the variety of individuals, which leads to monotony. It’s the difference between noise and music. Visually, New York’s overall look is such that the mind quickly retreats into apathy. Its vastness finds expression elsewhere—business, indulgence, study, aesthetics, politics. The life of the senses is no longer possible. This is why traveling abroad stimulates one's appreciation for art, especially in its freest, most candid, universal, and least intense form, which is particularly heightened by visiting Paris. It’s also why, upon returning, you can notice the slow decline of your sensitivity, the strictness—an ongoing atrophy of a sense that’s no longer engaged. "I had no idea before," a Chicago broker said to me one day in Paris, speaking with intelligent passion, "of a finished city!" Chicago certainly contrasts with Paris more than New York does, and maybe it better prepares someone to appreciate what Paris offers, but a New Yorker back from a trip cannot help but be deeply struck by the completion, organic perfection, elegance, and restraint of the Paris that lingers in his memory. Could it be that the sameness and monotony of Parisian architecture, the straightforwardness of Parisian taste, ever weighed heavily on his spirit? Once, riding on top of a Paris tram, showing an understanding of English by reading an American newspaper, that feeling of moral isolation that foreigners experience in Paris and elsewhere was suddenly shattered by my next-door neighbor, who said with a dismissive tone and a Manhattan accent: "When you’ve seen one block of this hellhole, you’ve seen it all!" He seemed confident he’d find sympathy. Probably most New Yorkers would agree with him. The universal light stone and brown paint, the wide sidewalks, the asphalt streets, the countless kiosks, the dominance of a few types of vehicles, the uniformed workers, and the endless repetition of easily recognizable types is initially mistaken by the New Yorker as the monotonous sameness he finds most boring in his own city. However, after a while, he begins to understand three key points: First, these things, which are so striking that their repetition grabs his attention more than their qualities, nonetheless possess an extraordinary quality for fitness and pleasantness; second, these are part of a whole, components of an organism, and it’s not them, but the city they form—the "finished city" of the insightful Chicagoan—that is the real spectacle; third, they provide a backdrop for some of the finest monuments in the world. Upon his return, he sees these things with a bittersweet clarity. He discovers that the uniformity of Murray Hill is the most enjoyable aspect of the city.

And the reason is that Paris has habituated him to the exquisite, the rational, pleasure to be derived from that organic spectacle a "finished city," far more than that Murray Hill is respectable and appropriate, and that almost any other prospect, except in spots of very limited area which emphasize the surrounding ugliness, is acutely displeasing. This latter is certainly very true. We have long frankly reproached ourselves with having no art commensurate with our distinction in other activities, resignedly attributing the lack to our hitherto necessary material preoccupation. But what we are really accounting for in this way is our lack of Titians and Bramantes. We are for the most part quite unconscious of the character of the American æsthetic substratum, so to speak. As a matter of fact, we do far better in the production of striking artistic personalities than we do in the general medium of taste and culture. We figure well invariably at the Salon. At home the artist is simply either driven in upon himself, or else awarded by a naïve clientèle, an eminence so far out of perspective as to result unfortunately both for him and for the community. He pleases himself, follows his own bent, and prefers salience to conformability for his work, because his chief aim is to make an effect. This is especially true of those of our architects who have ideas. But these are the exceptions, of course, and the general aspect of the city is characterized by something far less agreeable than mere lack of symmetry; it is characterized mainly by an all-pervading bad taste in every detail into which the element of art enters or should enter—that is to say, nearly everything that meets the eye.

And the reason is that Paris has gotten him used to the exquisite, the rational, and the pleasure that comes from seeing a "finished city," much more than the respectable and suitable look of Murray Hill. Almost any other view, except for small areas that highlight the surrounding ugliness, is really unpleasant. This is definitely true. We have long openly criticized ourselves for not having art that matches our excellence in other areas, resigning ourselves to the idea that this is due to our necessary focus on material things. But what we're actually explaining here is our lack of Titians and Bramantes. For the most part, we are quite unaware of the character of the American aesthetic foundation, so to speak. In fact, we do much better at creating striking artistic personalities than we do in general taste and culture. We always do well at the Salon. At home, artists are either isolated or given unrealistic praise by a naïve clientèle, which is so out of proportion that it ends up being unfortunate for both them and the community. They please themselves, follow their own instincts, and prefer to stand out rather than conform in their work, since their main goal is to make an impact. This is particularly true for the architects among us who have innovative ideas. But these are the exceptions, of course, and the overall look of the city is marked by something much less pleasant than just a lack of symmetry; it is mainly defined by a pervasive bad taste in every detail that has any artistic element—essentially, almost everything that is in view.

However, on the other hand, Parisian uniformity may depress exuberance, it is the condition and often the cause of the omnipresent good taste. Not only is it true that, as Mr. Hamerton remarks, "in the better quarters of the city a building hardly ever rises from the ground unless it has been designed by some architect who knows what art is, and endeavors to apply it to little things as well as great"; but it is equally true that the national sense of form expresses itself in every appurtenance of life as well as in the masses and details of architecture. In New York our noisy diversity not only prevents any effect of ensemble and makes, as I say, the old commonplace brown stone regions the most reposeful and rational prospects of the city, but it precludes also, in a thousand activities and aspects, the operation of that salutary constraint and conformity without which the most acutely sensitive individuality inevitably declines to a lower level of form and taste. La mode, for example, seems scarcely to exist at all; or at any rate to have taken refuge in the chimney-pot hat and the tournure. The dude, it is true, has been developed within a few years, but his distinguishing trait of personal extinction has had much less success and is destined to a much shorter life than his appellation, which has wholly lost its original significance in gaining its present popularity. Every woman one meets in the street has a different bonnet. Every street car contains a millinery museum. And the mass of them may be judged after the circumstance that one of the most fashionable Fifth Avenue modistes flaunts a sign of enduring brass announcing "English Round Hats and Bonnets." The enormous establishments of ready-made men’s clothing seem not yet to have made their destined impression in the direction of uniformity. The contrast in dress of the working classes with those of Paris is as conspicuously unfortunate æsthetically, as politically and socially it may be significant; ocularly, it is a substitution of a cheap, faded, and ragged imitation of bourgeois costume for the marvel of neatness and propriety which composes the uniform of the Parisian ouvrier and ouvrière. Broadway below Tenth Street is a forest of signs which obscure the thoroughfare, conceal the buildings, overhang the sidewalks, and exhibit severally and collectively a taste in harmony with the Teutonic and Semitic enterprise which, almost exclusively, they attest. The shop-windows’ show, which is one of the great spectacles of Paris, is niggard and shabby; that of Philadelphia has considerably more interest, that of London nearly as much. Our clumsy coinage and countrified currency; our eccentric book-bindings; that class of our furniture and interior decoration which may be described as American rococo; that multifariously horrible machinery devised for excluding flies from houses and preventing them from alighting on dishes, for substituting a draught of air for stifling heat, for relieving an entire population from that surplusage of old-fashioned breeding involved in shutting doors, for rolling and rattling change in shops, for enabling you to "put only the exact fare in the box"; the racket of pneumatic tubes, of telephones, of aerial trains; the practice of reticulating pretentious façades with fire-escapes in lieu of fire-proof construction; the vast mass of our nickel-plated paraphernalia; our zinc cemetery monuments; our comic valentines and serious Christmas cards, and grocery labels, and "fancy" job-printing and theater posters; our conspicuous cuspadores and our conspicuous need of more of them; the "tone" of many articles in our most popular journals, their references to each other, their illustrations; the Sunday panorama of shirt-sleeved ease and the week-day fatigue costume of curl papers and "Mother Hubbards" general in some quarters; our sumptuous new bar-rooms, decorated perhaps on the principle that le mauvais goût mène au crime—all these phenomena, the list of which might be indefinitely extended, are so many witnesses of a general taste, public and private, which differs cardinally from that prevalent in Paris.

However, on the flip side, the uniformity in Paris might stifle creativity, but it's also what often leads to the widely appreciated good taste. It's true that, as Mr. Hamerton points out, "in the better neighborhoods of the city, a building hardly ever goes up unless it's designed by an architect who understands what art is and tries to apply it to both small details and grand designs." But it’s also true that the national sense of style shows up in every aspect of life—in addition to the overall and intricate details of architecture. In New York, our noisy diversity not only disrupts any sense of unity and makes the older, unexciting brownstone areas the most peaceful and rational views of the city, but it also prevents—across countless activities and areas—the beneficial restraint and conformity without which highly sensitive individuality inevitably sinks to a lower standard of form and taste. Fashion, for instance, seems barely to exist at all; or rather, it has taken refuge in the chimney-pot hat and the bustle. The "dude" has emerged in recent years, but his defining trait of personal absence has seen far less success and is likely to have a much shorter lifespan than his name, which has entirely lost its original meaning as it gained its current popularity. Every woman you see on the street has a different hat. Every streetcar is like a museum of millinery. And you can judge the variety of hats by the fact that one of the most fashionable Fifth Avenue milliners boasts a permanent brass sign that says "English Round Hats and Bonnets." The massive stores for ready-made men's clothing don’t seem to have made their mark yet in terms of creating uniformity. The difference in the dress of the working class compared to those in Paris is not only aesthetically unfortunate, but it also carries political and social significance; visually, it shows a cheap, faded, and ragged imitation of bourgeois attire instead of the neatness and propriety that characterizes the uniform of the Parisian worker. Broadway below Tenth Street is cluttered with signs that obscure the street, hide the buildings, hang over the sidewalks, and collectively showcase a taste aligned with the Teutonic and Semitic enterprises that they predominantly represent. The display in shop windows, which is one of the great sights of Paris, is stingy and shabby; Philadelphia’s has considerably more interest, and London's is almost as engaging. Our clumsy coins and rural-style currency; our quirky book covers; the style of our furniture and interior decoration that might be called American rococo; the variously awful machinery designed to keep flies out of homes and off dishes, to bring in fresh air instead of stifling heat, to relieve an entire population from the outdated social niceties involved in closing doors, to roll and rattle change in shops, to allow you to "put only the exact fare in the box"; the noise from pneumatic tubes, telephones, and elevated trains; the practice of cluttering up stylish exteriors with fire escapes instead of having fire-proof buildings; the vast amount of nickel-plated gadgets; our zinc cemetery markers; our humorous valentines and serious Christmas cards, grocery labels, and fancy printing and theater posters; our obvious spittoons and our clear need for more of them; the "tone" of many articles in our most popular magazines, their references to each other, their illustrations; the Sunday scene of casually dressed people and the week-day fatigue outfits of curl papers and “Mother Hubbards” common in some areas; our lavish new bars, maybe decorated on the principle that “bad taste leads to crime”—all these examples, the list of which could go on indefinitely, are clear indicators of a shared taste, both public and private, that fundamentally differs from what is found in Paris.

In fine, the material spectacle of New York is such that at last, with some anxiety, one turns from the external vileness of every prospect to seek solace in the pleasure that man affords. But even after the wholesome American reaction has set in, and your appetite for the life of the senses is starved into indifference for what begins to seem to you an unworthy ideal; after you are patriotically readjusted and feel once more the elation of living in the future owing to the dearth of sustenance in the present—you are still at the mercy of perceptions too keenly sharpened by your Paris sojourn to permit blindness to the fact that Paris and New York contrast as strongly in moral atmosphere as in material aspect. You become contemplative, and speculate pensively as to the character and quality of those native and normal conditions, those Relations, which finally you have definitely resumed. What is it—that vague and pervasive moral contrast which the American feels so potently on his return from abroad? How can we define that apparently undefinable difference which is only the more sensible for being so elusive? Book after book has been written about Europe from the American standpoint—about America from the European standpoint. None of them has specified what everyone has experienced. The spectacular and the material contrasts are easily enough characterized, and it is only the unreflecting or the superficial who exaggerate the importance of them. We are by no means at the mercy of our appreciation of Parisian spectacle, of the French machinery of life. We miss or we do not miss the Salon Carré, the view of the south transept of Notre Dame as one descends the rue St. Jacques, the Théâtre Français, the concerts, the Luxembourg Gardens, the excursions to the score of charming suburban places, the library at the corner, the convenient cheap cab, the manners of the people, the quiet, the climate, the constant entertainment of the senses. We have in general too much work to do to waste much time in regretting these things. In general, work is by natural selection so invariable a concomitant of our unrivaled opportunity to work profitably, that it absorbs our energies so far as this palpable sphere is concerned. But what is it that throughout the hours of busiest work and closest application, as well as in the preceding and following moments of leisure and the occasional intervals of relaxation, makes everyone vaguely perceive the vast moral difference between life here at home and life abroad—notably life in France? What is the subtle influence pervading the moral atmosphere in New York, which so markedly distinguishes what we call life here from life in Paris or even in Pennedepie?

In short, the visual chaos of New York is such that eventually, with some anxiety, you turn away from the external ugliness of every view to find comfort in the enjoyment that people provide. But even after the healthy American response kicks in, and your desire for sensory experiences is dulled into indifference toward what starts to seem like an unworthy ideal; after you’ve proudly adjusted and feel once more the excitement of living for the future because of the lack of fulfillment in the present—you are still at the mercy of perceptions that are too sharply defined by your time in Paris to ignore the reality that Paris and New York contrast just as much in moral atmosphere as they do in physical appearance. You become reflective and wonder about the nature and quality of those native and normal conditions, those relationships, which you have finally taken back up. What is it—that vague and pervasive moral contrast that Americans feel so intensely upon returning from abroad? How can we define that seemingly indefinable difference that somehow becomes more obvious the harder it is to pin down? Book after book has been written about Europe from the American perspective—about America from the European perspective. None have pinpointed what everyone has experienced. The striking and material contrasts are easy enough to describe, and it’s only those who are unthinking or superficial who exaggerate their significance. We are not at the mercy of our appreciation for the Parisian spectacle or the French way of life. We either miss or don’t miss the Salon Carré, the view of the south transept of Notre Dame while coming down the rue St. Jacques, the Théâtre Français, the concerts, the Luxembourg Gardens, trips to charming suburban spots, the library on the corner, the convenient affordable cab, the manners of the people, the tranquility, the climate, the constant stimulation of the senses. Generally, we have too much work to do to spend much time regretting these things. Work is, by nature, an inevitable part of our unmatched opportunity to work effectively, absorbing our energies as far as this tangible realm is concerned. But what is it that, throughout the hours filled with busy work and intense focus, as well as during the moments of leisure that come before and after, makes everyone vaguely aware of the vast moral difference between life here at home and life abroad—notably life in France? What is the subtle influence that fills the moral atmosphere in New York, which so clearly sets what we call life here apart from life in Paris or even in Pennedepie?

It is, I think, distinctly traceable to the intense individualism which prevails among us. Magnificent results have followed our devotion to this force; incontestably, we have spared ourselves both the acute and the chronic misery for which the tyranny of society over its constituent parts is directly responsible. We have, moreover, in this way not only freed ourselves from the tyranny of despotism, such for example as is exerted socially in England and politically in Russia, but we have undoubtedly developed a larger number of self-reliant and potentially capable social units than even a democratic system like that of France, which sacrifices the unit to the organism, succeeds in producing. We may truly say that, material as we are accused of being, we turn out more men than any other nationality. And if some Frenchman points out that we attach an esoteric sense to the term "man," and that at any rate our men are not better adapted than some others to a civilized environment which demands other qualities than honesty, energy, and intelligence, we may be quite content to leave him his objection, and to prefer what seems to us manliness, to civilization itself. At the same time we cannot pretend that individualism has done everything for us that could be desired. In giving us the man it has robbed us of the milieu. Morally speaking, the milieu with us scarcely exists. Our difference from Europe does not consist in the difference between the European milieu and ours; it consists in the fact that, comparatively speaking of course, we have no milieu. If we are individually developed, we are also individually isolated to a degree elsewhere unknown. Politically we have parties who, in Cicero’s phrase, "think the same things concerning the republic," but concerning very little else are we agreed in any mass of any moment. The number of our sauces is growing, but there is no corresponding diminution in the number of our religions. We have no communities. Our villages even are apt, rather, to be aggregations. Politics aside, there is hardly an American view of any phenomenon or class of phenomena. Every one of us likes, reads, sees, does what he chooses. Often dissimilarity is affected as adding piquancy of paradox. The judgment of the ages, the consensus of mankind, exercise no tyranny over the individual will. Do you believe in this or that, do you like this or that, are questions which, concerning the most fundamental matters, nevertheless form the staple of conversation in many circles. We live all of us apparently in a divine state of flux. The question asked at dinner by a lady in a neighboring city of a literary stranger, "What do you think of Shakespeare?" is not exaggeratedly peculiar. We all think differently of Shakespeare, of Cromwell, of Titian, of Browning, of George Washington. Concerning matters as to which we must be fundamentally disinterested, we permit ourselves not only prejudice but passion. At the most we have here and there groups of personal acquaintance only, whose members are in accord in regard to some one thing, and quickly crystallize and precipitate at the mention of something that is really a corollary of the force which unites them. The efforts that have been made in New York, within the past twenty years, to establish various special milieus, so to speak, have been pathetic in their number and resultlessness. Efforts of this sort are of course doomed to failure, because the essential trait of the milieu is spontaneous existence, but their failure discloses the mutual repulsion which keeps the molecules of our society from uniting. How can it be otherwise when life is so speculative, so experimental, so wholly dependent on the personal force and idiosyncrasies of the individual? How shall we accept any general verdict pronounced by persons of no more authority than ourselves, and arrived at by processes in which we are equally expert? We have so little consensus as to anything, because we dread the loss of personality involved in submitting to conventions, and because personality operates centrifugally alone. We make exceptions in favor of such matters as the Copernican system and the greatness of our own future. There are things which we take on the credit of the consensus of authorities, for which we may not have all the proofs at hand. But as to conventions of all sorts, our attitude is apt to be one of suspicion and uncertainty. Mark Twain, for example, first won his way to the popular American heart by exposing the humbugs of the Cinque-cento. Specifically the most teachable of people, nervously eager for information, Americans are nevertheless wholly distrustful of generalizations made by anyone else, and little disposed to receive blindly formularies and classifications of phenomena as to which they have had no experience. And of experience we have necessarily had, except politically, less than any civilized people in the world.

I believe this can be traced back to the strong individualism that dominates our society. We’ve seen amazing outcomes from our commitment to this principle; without a doubt, we’ve managed to avoid the intense and ongoing suffering caused by society’s control over its members. Furthermore, we’ve freed ourselves not just from the oppression of tyrants, like those found socially in England and politically in Russia, but we’ve also developed more self-sufficient and potentially capable individuals than even a democratic system like France, which often prioritizes the group over the individual, can produce. We can honestly say that, as materialistic as we are accused of being, we develop more men than any other nationality. And if a French person argues that we give an exclusive meaning to the term "man," and that our men aren’t necessarily better suited to a civilized world that demands qualities beyond honesty, energy, and intelligence, we can simply accept their objection and choose what we see as manliness over civilization itself. At the same time, we can’t ignore that individualism hasn’t given us everything we might want. While it has gifted us the individual, it has stripped us of the milieu. Morally speaking, our milieu is almost nonexistent. Our difference from Europe doesn’t stem from the disparity between the European milieu and ours; it’s that, comparatively speaking, we have no milieu at all. While we may be individually developed, we are also uniquely isolated in a way not seen anywhere else. Politically, we have parties that, in Cicero’s wording, "think the same things concerning the republic," but we hardly agree on anything else of significance. Our variety of sauces is increasing, but the number of our religions isn’t decreasing in the same way. We lack communities. Even our villages tend to be more like clusters. Setting politics aside, there’s hardly an American perspective on any phenomenon or group of phenomena. Each of us does what we like, reads what we want, and sees what interests us. Often, we deliberately highlight our differences to add an element of intrigue. The judgments of history and the consensus of mankind exert no control over the individual will. Questions about what you believe in or like, even regarding the most basic issues, become mainstream conversation in many circles. We all seem to exist in a constant state of flux. The inquiry posed at dinner by a woman in a nearby city to a literary stranger, "What do you think of Shakespeare?" is not unusually odd. Each of us holds different opinions about Shakespeare, Cromwell, Titian, Browning, and George Washington. On issues where we should be completely impartial, we allow ourselves not only bias but also passion. At most, we have small groups of acquaintances who agree on one particular thing, but they quickly split apart at the mention of anything that truly relates to the force that binds them. Efforts made in New York over the past twenty years to create various special milieus have been numerous and ultimately ineffective. These attempts are doomed to fail because the core characteristic of a milieu is its spontaneous nature, but their failure reveals the mutual repulsion that prevents the elements of our society from coming together. How could it be different when life is so speculative, so experimental, and so entirely reliant on the personal qualities and quirks of individuals? How can we accept any general judgment made by people no more authoritative than we are, formed through processes in which we each have equal expertise? We struggle to reach any consensus about anything because we fear losing our individuality by conforming to conventions, and because individuality tends to act independently. We make exceptions for things like the Copernican system and the greatness of our own future. There are things that we accept based on the consensus of authorities, even if we don’t have all the evidence right in front of us. But when it comes to conventions of any kind, we tend to approach them with suspicion and uncertainty. Mark Twain, for instance, won over the American public by exposing the nonsense of the Cinque-cento. Although Americans are some of the most eager learners, anxiously seeking information, they remain deeply skeptical of generalizations made by others and are generally reluctant to accept blindly any formulas or classifications of things with which they have no direct experience. And, unless it’s politically, we have had less experience than any other civilized society in the world.

We are infinitely more at home amid universal mobility. We want to act, to exert ourselves, to be, as we imagine, nearer to nature. We have our tastes in painting as in confectionery. Some of us prefer Tintoretto to Rembrandt, as we do chocolate to cocoanut. In respect of taste it would be impossible for the gloomiest skeptic to deny that this is an exceedingly free country. "I don’t know anything about the subject (whatever the subject may be), but I know what I like," is a remark which is heard on every hand, and which witnesses the sturdiness of our struggle against the tyranny of conventions and the indomitable nature of our independent spirit. In criticism the individual spirit fairly runs a-muck; it takes its lack of concurrence as credentials of impartiality often. In constructive art everyone is occupied less with nature than with the point of view. Mr. Howells himself displays more delight in his naturalistic attitude than zest in his execution, which, compared with that of the French naturalists, is in general faint-hearted enough. Everyone writes, paints, models, exclusively the point of view. Fidelity in following out nature’s suggestions, in depicting the emotions nature arouses, a sympathetic submission to nature’s sentiment, absorption into nature’s moods and subtle enfoldings, are extremely rare. The artist’s eye is fixed on the treatment. He is "creative" by main strength. He is penetrated with a desire to get away from "the same old thing," to "take it" in a new way, to draw attention to himself, to shine. One would say that every American nowadays who handles a brush or designs a building, was stimulated by the secret ambition of founding a school. We have in art thus, with a vengeance, that personal element which is indeed its savor, but which it is fatal to make its substance. We have it still more conspicuously in life. What do you think of him, or her? is the first question asked after every introduction. Of every new individual we meet we form instantly some personal impression. The criticism of character is nearly the one disinterested activity in which we have become expert. We have for this a peculiar gift, apparently, which we share with gypsies and money-lenders, and other people in whom the social instinct is chiefly latent. Our gossip takes on the character of personal judgments rather than of tittle-tattle. It concerns not what So-and-So has done, but what kind of a person So-and-So is. It would hardly be too much to say that So-and-So never leaves a group of which he is not an intimate without being immediately, impartially but fundamentally, discussed. To a degree not at all suspected by the author of the phrase, he "leaves his character" with them on quitting any assemblage of his acquaintance.

We feel much more at home in a world where everything is constantly moving. We want to take action, to push ourselves, to be, as we imagine, closer to nature. We have our preferences in art just like we do in food. Some of us prefer Tintoretto to Rembrandt, just as we prefer chocolate to coconut. When it comes to taste, it would be impossible for even the harshest skeptic to deny that this is an incredibly free country. "I don’t know much about the subject (whatever it may be), but I know what I like," is a phrase that you hear everywhere, showing our strong resistance to the constraints of convention and the unyielding nature of our independent spirit. In criticism, the individual spirit runs wild; often, it interprets its lack of agreement as evidence of fairness. In creative art, everyone focuses less on nature and more on their own perspective. Mr. Howells seems to enjoy his realistic approach more than his execution, which, compared to the French naturalists, is generally quite timid. Everyone writes, paints, or models exclusively from their perspective. Commitment to nature's suggestions, capturing the emotions it evokes, a sympathetic submission to its sentiments, and becoming absorbed in its moods and subtleties are very rare skills. The artist's attention is on their technique. They are "creative" out of sheer will. They are driven by a desire to escape "the same old thing," to approach things in a new way, to draw attention to themselves and to shine. It seems that every American today who picks up a brush or designs a building is motivated by the hidden ambition of starting a new artistic movement. Consequently, we have, in art, a strong personal element that certainly adds flavor, but making it the core can be detrimental. We see this even more clearly in our lives. The first question asked after every introduction is, "What do you think of him or her?" We instantly form a personal impression of every new person we meet. The critique of character is almost the only unbiased activity where we have become skilled. We appear to possess a unique talent for this, which we share with gypsies, money-lenders, and others whose social instincts are primarily subdued. Our gossip leans more toward personal judgments rather than mere chatter. It’s less about what someone has done and more about what kind of person they are. It wouldn’t be an exaggeration to say that no one ever leaves a group they’re close to without being discussed right away, fairly but in-depth. To a degree that the author of this phrase wouldn’t even realize, they "leave their character" behind every time they exit any gathering of acquaintances.

The great difficulty with our individuality and independence is that differentiation begins so soon and stops so far short of real importance. In no department of life has the law of the survival of the fittest, that principle in virtue of whose operation societies become distinguished and admirable, had time to work. Our social characteristics are inventions, discoveries, not survival. Nothing with us has passed into the stage of instinct. And for this reason some of our "best people," some of the most "thoughtful" among us, have less of that quality best characterized as social maturity than a Parisian washerwoman or concierge. Centuries of sifting, ages of gravitation toward harmony and homogeneity, have resulted for the French in a delightful immunity from the necessity of "proving all things" remorselessly laid on every individual of our society. Very many matters, at any rate, which to the French are matters of course, our self-respect pledges us to a personal examination of. The idea of sparing ourselves trouble in thinking occurs to us far more rarely than to other peoples. We have certainly an insufficient notion of the superior results reached by economy and system in this respect.

The big challenge with our individuality and independence is that differentiation starts very early and doesn't go far enough to really matter. In no area of life has the survival of the fittest—the principle that makes societies stand out and thrive—had enough time to take effect. Our social traits are inventions and discoveries, not developments from natural selection. Nothing we do has become instinctual. Because of this, some of our "best people" and those who are the most "thoughtful" among us actually have less social maturity than a Parisian washerwoman or concierge. Centuries of refinement and a long history of moving towards harmony and unity have given the French a wonderful freedom from the constant need to "prove all things" that weighs on every individual in our society. For many issues that the French take for granted, our self-respect requires us to analyze them personally. The idea of saving ourselves the trouble of thinking rarely crosses our minds compared to other cultures. We really have a limited understanding of the better outcomes achieved through efficiency and organization in this regard.

In one of Mr. Henry James’s cleverest sketches, Lady Barberina, the English heroine marries an American and comes to live in New York. She finds it dull. She is homesick without quite knowing why. Mr. James is at his best in exhibiting at once the intensity of her disgust and the intangibility of its provocation. We are not all like "Lady Barb." We do not all like London, whose materialism is only more splendid, not less uncompromising than our own; but we cannot help perceiving that what that unfortunate lady missed in New York was the milieu—an environment sufficiently developed to permit spontaneity and free play of thought and feeling, and a certain domination of shifting merit by fixed relations which keeps one’s mind off that disagreeable subject of contemplation, one’s self. Everyone seems acutely self-conscious; and the self-consciousness of the unit is fatal, of course, to the composure of the ensemble. The number of people intently minding their P’s and Q’s, reforming their orthoepy, practicing new discoveries in etiquette, making over their names, and in general exhibiting that activity of the amateur known as "going through the motions" to the end of bringing themselves up, as it were, is very noticeable in contrast with French oblivion to this kind of personal exertion. Even our simplicity is apt to be simplesse. And the conscientiousness in educating others displayed by those who are so fortunate as to have reached perfection nearly enough to permit relaxation in self-improvement, is only equaled by the avidity in acquisitiveness displayed by the learners themselves. Meantime the composure born of equality, as well as that springing from unconsciousness, suffers. Our society is a kind of Jacob’s ladder, to maintain equilibrium upon which requires an amount of effort on the part of the personally estimable gymnasts perpetually ascending and descending, in the highest degree hostile to spontaneity, to serenity, and stability.

In one of Mr. Henry James’s cleverest sketches, Lady Barberina, the English heroine marries an American and moves to New York. She finds it boring. She feels homesick without really understanding why. Mr. James excels at showing both her intense disgust and the subtle reasons behind it. Not everyone is like "Lady Barb." Not all of us enjoy London, whose materialism is only more impressive, not less uncompromising than our own; but it’s clear that what that poor lady lacked in New York was the milieu—an environment well-developed enough to allow for spontaneity and freedom of thought and feeling, and a certain dominance of stable relationships over changing values that distracts one from that uncomfortable topic of self-reflection. Everyone seems hyper-aware of themselves, and this self-consciousness in individuals inevitably disrupts the overall calm. The number of people diligently minding their manners, refining their pronunciation, practicing new etiquette discoveries, changing their names, and generally going through the motions to improve themselves is striking compared to the French obliviousness to such personal efforts. Even our straightforwardness can turn into simplesse. The earnestness in educating others shown by those fortunate enough to have nearly achieved perfection and can relax in self-improvement is matched only by the eagerness of the learners themselves. Meanwhile, the calm that comes from equality, as well as that which arises from unawareness, suffers. Our society resembles Jacob’s ladder, where maintaining balance requires an effort from the admirable gymnasts constantly climbing up and down, which is deeply contrary to spontaneity, serenity, and stability.

Naturally, thus, everyone is personally preoccupied to a degree unknown in France. And it is not necessary that this preoccupation should concern any side of that multifarious monster we know as "business." It may relate strictly to the paradox of seeking employment for leisure. Even the latter is a terribly conscious proceeding. We go about it with a mental deliberateness singularly in contrast with our physical precipitancy. But it is mainly "business," perhaps, that accentuates our individualism. The condition of désœuvrement is positively disreputable. It arouses the suspicion of acquaintance and the anxiety of friends. Occupation to the end of money-getting is our normal condition, any variation from which demands explanation, as little likely to be entirely honorable. Such occupation is, as I said, the inevitable sequence of the opportunity for it, and is the wiser and more dignified because of its necessity to the end of securing independence. What the Frenchman can secure merely by the exercise of economy is with us only the reward of energy and enterprise in acquisition—so comparatively speculative and hazardous is the condition of our business. And whereas with us money is far harder to keep, and is moreover something which it is far harder to be without than is the case in France, the ends of self-respect, freedom from mortification, and getting the most out of life, demand that we should take constant advantage of the fact that it is easier to get. Consequently everyone who is, as we say, worth anything, is with us adjusted to the prodigious dynamic condition which characterizes our existence. And such occupation is tremendously absorbing. Our opportunity is fatally handicapped by this remorseless necessity of embracing it. It yields us fruit after its kind, but it rigorously excludes us from tasting any other. Everyone is engaged in preparing the working drawings of his own fortune. There is no co-operation possible, because competition is the life of enterprise.

Naturally, everyone is personally preoccupied like never before in France. This preoccupation doesn’t have to be solely about the many-sided monster we call "business." It could strictly be about the paradox of looking for work to fill our free time. Even that is a highly conscious effort. We approach it with a mental deliberation that sharply contrasts our physical eagerness. But it’s mainly "business," perhaps, that highlights our individualism. The state of being unoccupied is considered really disreputable. It raises suspicion from acquaintances and anxiety from friends. Engaging in work just to make money is our usual state, and any deviation from that needs an explanation, as it's unlikely to be completely respectable. This work is, as I mentioned, the inevitable result of having the opportunity for it, and it’s wiser and more dignified because it’s necessary for achieving independence. What a French person can secure simply through frugality is, for us, only the result of hard work and initiative in gaining resources—our business conditions are comparatively speculative and risky. While money is much harder to keep for us, and it’s also harder to be without than it is in France, our goals of self-respect, freedom from embarrassment, and making the most of life require us to take constant advantage of how relatively easy it is to acquire money. As a result, everyone who is, as we say, worth anything is adjusted to the intense dynamic conditions that define our existence. This kind of work is incredibly consuming. Our chance is severely limited by this relentless need to engage with it. It brings us rewards specific to that pursuit but strictly prevents us from experiencing anything else. Everyone is busy drafting the blueprint for their own success. Cooperation isn’t possible because competition drives enterprise.

In the resultant manners the city illustrates Carlyle’s "anarchy plus the constable." Never was the struggle for existence more palpable, more naked, and more unpictorial. "It is the art of mankind to polish the world," says Thoreau somewhere, "and everyone who works is scrubbing in some part." Everyone certainly is here at work, yet was there ever such scrubbing with so little resultant polish? The disproportion would be tragic if it were not grotesque. Amid all "the hurry and rush of life along the sidewalks," as the newspapers say, one might surely expect to find the unexpected. The spectacle ought certainly to have the interest of picturesqueness which is inherent in the fortuitous. Unhappily, though there is hurry and rush enough, it is the bustle of business, not the dynamics of what is properly to be called life. The elements of the picture lack dignity—so completely as to leave the ensemble quite without accent. More incidents in the drama of real life will happen before midnight to the individuals who compose the orderly Boulevard procession in Paris than those of its chaotic Broadway counterpart will experience in a month. The latter are not really more impressive because they are apparently all running errands and include no flâneurs. The flâneur would fare ill should anything draw him into the stream. Everything being adjusted to the motive of looking out for one’s self, any of the sidewalk civility and mutual interest which obtain in Paris would throw the entire machine out of gear. Whoever is not in a hurry is in the way. A man running after an omnibus at the Madeleine would come into collision with fewer people and cause less disturbance than one who should stop on Fourteenth Street to apologize for an inadvertent jostle, or to give a lady any surplusage of passing room. He would be less ridiculous. A friend recently returned from Paris told me that, on several street occasions, his involuntary "Excuse me!" had been mistaken for a salutation and answered by a "How do you do?" and a stare of speculation. Apologies of this class sound to us, perhaps, like a subtle and deprecatory impeachment of our large tolerance and universal good nature.

In this way, the city demonstrates Carlyle’s idea of "anarchy plus the constable." The struggle for survival has never been more evident, more raw, and more unromantic. "It's the art of humanity to polish the world," Thoreau once said, "and everyone who works is scrubbing away at some part." Everyone is certainly working here, yet has there ever been such scrubbing with so little shine? The imbalance would be tragic if it weren't so absurd. Amid all "the hurry and rush of life along the sidewalks," as the newspapers put it, one would surely expect to find the unexpected. The scene should definitely have the charm that comes from randomness. Unfortunately, despite the rush, it’s the busy hustle of work, not the energy of what could be called real life. The elements of the scene lack dignity—so much so that the whole picture feels flat. More genuine life events will take place before midnight among the orderly procession on the Boulevard in Paris than what happens on its chaotic counterpart in Broadway in a month. The latter aren’t really more impressive just because it looks like everyone is on an errand and there are no flâneurs. The flâneur would be in trouble if anything pulled him into the crowd. With everything adjusted to the goal of self-preservation, any sidewalk politeness or mutual interest found in Paris would throw the entire operation out of balance. Anyone who isn’t in a hurry is in the way. A man chasing after a bus at the Madeleine would collide with fewer people and create less disruption than someone who stops on Fourteenth Street to apologize for bumping into someone or to give a lady a bit more space. He would seem less ridiculous. A friend who just returned from Paris told me that on several occasions he inadvertently said "Excuse me!" and it was taken as a greeting, answered with "How do you do?" and a curious stare. Apologies of this kind may seem to us like a subtle and belittling affront to our broad tolerance and overall good nature.

In this way our undoubted self-respect undoubtedly loses something of its bloom. We may prefer being jammed into street-cars and pressed against the platform rails of the elevated road to the tedious waiting at Paris 'bus stations—to mention one of the perennial and principal points of contrast which monopolize the thoughts of the average American sojourner in the French capital. But it is terribly vulgarizing. The contact and pressure are abominable. To a Parisian the daily experience in this respect of those of our women who have no carriages of their own, would seem as singular as the latter would find the Oriental habit of regarding the face as more important than other portions of the female person to keep concealed. But neither men nor women can persist in blushing at the intimacy of rudeness to which our crowding subjects them in common. The only resource is in blunted sensibility. And the manners thus negatively produced we do not quite appreciate in their enormity because the edge of our appreciation is thus necessarily dulled. The conductor scarcely ceases whistling to poke you for your fare. Other whistlers apparently go on forever. Loud talking follows naturally from the impossibility of personal seclusion in the presence of others. Our Sundays have lost secular decorum very much in proportion as they have lost Puritan observance. If we have nothing quite comparable with a London bank holiday, or with the conduct of the popular cohorts of the Epsom army; if only in "political picnics" and the excursions of "gangs" of "toughs" we illustrate absolute barbarism, it is nevertheless true that, from Central Park to Coney Island, our people exhibit a conception of the fitting employment of periodical leisure which would seem indecorous to a crowd of Belleville ouvriers. If we have not the cad, we certainly possess in abundance the species "hoodlum," which, though morally far more refreshing, is yet aesthetically intolerable; and the hoodlum is nearly as rare in Paris as the cad. Owing to his presence and to the atmosphere in which he thrives, we find ourselves, in spite of the most determined democratic convictions, shunning crowds whenever it is possible to shun them. The most robust of us easily get into the frame of mind of a Boston young woman, to whom the Champs-Élysées looked like a railway station, and who wished the people would get up from the benches and go home. Our life becomes a life of the interior; wherefore, in spite of a climate that permits walks abroad, we confine out-door existence to Newport lawns and camps in the Adirondacks; and whence proceeds that carelessness of the exterior which subordinates architecture to "household art," and makes of our streets such mere thoroughfares lined with "homes."

In this way, our undeniable self-respect starts to lose some of its luster. We may prefer being squeezed into streetcars and pressed against the platform rails of the elevated trains over the boring wait at Paris bus stations—just one of the key contrasts that dominate the thoughts of the average American traveler in the French capital. But it's incredibly degrading. The contact and pressure are terrible. To a Parisian, the daily experience of our women without their own carriages would seem as unusual as how some cultures see the face as more important to cover up than other parts of a woman’s body. However, neither men nor women can keep blushing at the rude intimacy our crowding creates. The only solution is to toughen up. We don't quite realize the extent of the poor manners bred from this because our ability to appreciate them is dulled. The conductor hardly stops whistling to ask for your fare. Other whistlers seem to go on forever. Loud talking comes naturally from the impossibility of personal space around others. Our Sundays have lost social decorum much like they’ve lost Puritan practices. While we may not have anything quite like a London bank holiday, or the behavior of the festive crowds at Epsom; if our “political picnics” and outings with “gangs” of “toughs” represent absolute barbarism, it’s true that from Central Park to Coney Island, our people show a sense of how to spend their time off that would seem inappropriate to a group of Belleville workers. While we may not have the cad, we definitely have plenty of “hoodlums,” which, though morally much more refreshing, are still aesthetically unacceptable; and the hoodlum is nearly as rare in Paris as the cad. Because of their presence and the environment they thrive in, we, despite our strongest democratic beliefs, try to avoid crowds whenever we can. Even the toughest among us can quickly adopt the mindset of a young Boston woman, who thought the Champs-Élysées looked like a train station and wished people would get up from the benches and go home. Our lives become more about staying indoors; and so, despite a climate that allows for outdoor strolls, we limit our time outside to Newport lawns and camps in the Adirondacks; hence the carelessness toward the outside world that prioritizes architecture as "household art," reducing our streets to mere thoroughfares lined with "homes."

The manners one encounters in street and shop in Paris are, it is well known, very different from our own. But no praise of them ever quite prepares an American for their agreeableness and simplicity. We are always agreeably surprised at the absence of elaborate manner which eulogists of French manners in general omit to note; and indeed it is an extremely elusive quality. Nothing is further removed from that intrusion of the national gemüthlichkeit into so impersonal a matter as affairs, large or small, which to an occasional sense makes the occasional German manner enjoyable. Nothing is farther from the obsequiousness of the London shopman, which rather dazes the American than pleases him. Nothing, on the other hand, is farther from our own bald dispatch. With us every shopper expects, or at any rate is prepared for, obstruction rather than facilitation on the seller’s side. The drygoods counter, especially when the attendant is of the gentler sex, is a kind of chevaux-de-frise. The retail atmosphere is charged with an affectation of unconsciousness; not only is every transaction impersonal, it is mechanical; ere long it must become automatic. In many cases there is to be encountered a certain defiant attitude to the last degree unhappy in its effects on the manners involved—a certain self-assertion which begs the question, else unmooted, of social equality, with the result for the time being of the most unsocial relation probably existing among men. Perfect personal equality for the time being invariably exists between customer and tradesman in France; the man or woman who serves you is first of all a fellow-creature; a shop, to be sure, is not a conversazione, but if you are in a loquacious or inquisitive mood you will be deemed neither frivolous nor familiar—nor yet an inanimate obstacle to the flow of the most important as well as the most impetuous of the currents of life.

The manners you experience in the streets and shops of Paris are, as everyone knows, quite different from our own. However, no amount of praise really prepares an American for how pleasant and straightforward they are. We're consistently pleasantly surprised by the lack of pretentiousness that those who admire French manners often overlook; it’s actually a very subtle quality. There’s nothing that intrudes on personal interaction in business, whether big or small, quite like the warm-heartedness that makes the occasional German manner enjoyable. In contrast, nothing is more distant from the obsequiousness of the London shopkeeper, which tends to confuse rather than please Americans. On the other hand, our approach can be quite brusque. We tend to expect, or at least be ready for, obstacles instead of help from sellers. The fabric counter, especially when the attendant is female, feels like a kind of barrier. The shopping environment can feel like it’s filled with a false sense of indifference; not only is every transaction impersonal, it’s also mechanical, and soon enough, it becomes automatic. In many cases, there's a certain defiant attitude that can be quite negative for the interactions involved—a self-assertion that raises the unasked question of social equality, leading to one of the most unsociable relationships possible. In France, there’s typically perfect personal equality between the customer and the shopkeeper; the person serving you is first and foremost a fellow human being. A shop may not be a friendly gathering place, but if you feel chatty or curious, you won’t be considered frivolous or overly familiar—nor just an impersonal barrier to the vital currents of life.

Certainly, in New York, we are too vain of our bustle to realize how mannerless and motiveless it is. The essence of life is movement, but so is the essence of epilepsy. Moreover the life of the New Yorker who chases street-cars, eats at a lunch counter, drinks what will "take hold" quickly at a bar he can quit instantly, reads only the head-lines of his newspaper, keeps abreast of the intellectual movement by inspecting the display of the Elevated Railway newsstands while he fumes at having to wait two minutes for his train, hastily buys his tardy ticket of sidewalk speculators, and leaves the theater as if it were on fire—the life of such a man is, notwithstanding all its futile activity, varied by long spaces of absolute mental stagnation, of moral coma. Not only is our hurry not decorous, not decent; it is not real activity, it is as little as possible like the animated existence of Paris, where the moral nature is kept in constant operation, intense or not as the case may be, in spite of the external and material tranquillity. Owing to this lack of a real, a rational activity, our individual civilization, which seems when successful a scramble, and when unlucky a sauve qui peut, is, morally as well as spectacularly, not ill described in so far as its external aspect is concerned by the epithet flat. Enervation seems to menace those whom hyperæsthesia spares.

Certainly, in New York, we are too proud of our hustle and bustle to see how rude and pointless it is. The essence of life is movement, but so is the essence of epilepsy. Furthermore, the life of a New Yorker who rushes for streetcars, eats at a lunch counter, drinks something that will "hit" quickly at a bar he can leave right away, reads only the headlines of his newspaper, keeps up with the latest news by checking the Elevated Railway newsstands while he grumbles about waiting two minutes for his train, hurriedly buys his late ticket from sidewalk scalpers, and leaves the theater as if it were on fire—despite all this frantic activity, his life is interrupted by long stretches of total mental stagnation and moral numbness. Our rush is not only undignified and inappropriate; it isn't genuine activity at all. It's nothing like the vibrant life of Paris, where the moral spirit is kept in constant motion, whether intensely or not, despite the outward calm. Because of this lack of genuine, rational activity, our individual civilization, which appears to be a chaotic scramble when it's working and a frantic escape when it isn't, is, in terms of its outward appearance, aptly described as flat, both morally and visually. Enervation seems to threaten those whom heightened sensitivity spares.

 

"We go to Europe to become Americanized," says Emerson, but France Americanizes us less in this sense than any other country of Europe, and perhaps Emerson was not thinking so much of her democratic development into social order and efficiency as of the less American and more feudal European influences, which do indeed, while we are subject to them, intensify our affection for our own institutions, our confidence in our own outlook. One must admit that in France (which nowadays follows our ideal of liberty perhaps as closely as we do hers of equality and fraternity, and where consequently our political notions receive few shocks) not only is the life of the senses more agreeable than it is with us, but the mutual relations of men are more felicitous also. And alas! Americans who have savored these sweets cannot avail themselves of the implication contained in Emerson’s further words—words which approach nearer to petulance than anything in his urbane and placid utterances—"those who prefer London or Paris to America may be spared to return to those capitals." "Il faut vivre, combattre, et finir avec les siens," says Doudan, and no law is more inexorable. The fruits of foreign gardens are, however delectable, enchanted for us; we may not touch them; and to pass our lives in covetous inspection of them is as barren a performance as may be imagined. For this reason the question "Should you like better to live here or abroad?" is as little practical as it is frequent. The empty life of the "foreign colonies" in Paris is its sufficient answer. Not only do most of us have to stay at home, but for everyone except the inconsiderable few who can better do abroad the work they have to do, and except those essentially un-American waifs who can contrive no work for themselves, life abroad is not only less profitable but less pleasant. The American endeavoring to acclimatize himself in Paris hardly needs to have cited to him the words of Epictetus: "Man, thou hast forgotten thine object; thy journey was not to this, but through this"—he is sure before long to become dismally persuaded of their truth. More speedily than elsewhere perhaps, he finds out in Paris the truth of Carlyle’s assurance: "It is, after all, the one unhappiness of a man. That he cannot work; that he cannot get his destiny as a man fulfilled." For the work which insures the felicity of the French life of the senses and of French human relations he cannot share; and, thus, the question of the relative attractiveness of French and American life—of Paris and New York—becomes the idle and purely speculative question as to whether one would like to change his personal and national identity.

"We go to Europe to become Americanized," says Emerson, but France Americanizes us less in this regard than any other country in Europe. Perhaps Emerson wasn't so much considering her democratic development into social order and efficiency as he was the less American and more feudal European influences, which, while we are under them, intensify our affection for our own institutions and our confidence in our own perspective. It's worth noting that in France (which today follows our ideal of liberty as closely as we do hers of equality and fraternity, and where our political ideas face fewer challenges), not only is sensory life more enjoyable than it is for us, but the interactions between people are also nicer. Unfortunately, Americans who have experienced these delights cannot rely on the implication in Emerson’s further words—words that come off as rather petulant compared to his usual calm and polished remarks—"those who prefer London or Paris to America might as well stay in those cities." "Il faut vivre, combattre, et finir avec les siens," says Doudan, and there's no law more absolute than that. While the fruits of foreign gardens are tempting, they're enchanted for us; we can't touch them, and spending our lives coveting them is as unfulfilling a pursuit as one could imagine. For this reason, the question "Would you prefer to live here or abroad?" is as impractical as it is common. The hollow existence of the "foreign colonies" in Paris is proof enough. Not only do most of us have to stay home, but for everyone except the small number who can accomplish their work better abroad and those un-American drifters who can't find any work for themselves, life abroad is not just less rewarding but less enjoyable. An American trying to adapt to life in Paris doesn't really need reminding of Epictetus’s words: "Man, you’ve forgotten your purpose; your journey was not to this but through this"—he will soon become painfully aware of their truth. Perhaps more quickly than elsewhere, he uncovers in Paris the truth of Carlyle’s assertion: "Ultimately, a man’s greatest unhappiness is that he cannot work; that he cannot fulfill his destiny as a man." The work that ensures the happiness of the French sensory experience and French relationships is something he cannot partake in; therefore, the question of whether French life or American life—Paris or New York—is more appealing becomes an idle and purely theoretical question of whether one would like to change his personal and national identity.

And this an American may permit himself the chauvinism of believing a less rational contradiction of instinct in himself than it would be in the case of anyone else. And for this reason: that in those elements of life which tend to the development and perfection of the individual soul in the work of fulfilling its mysterious destiny, American character and American conditions are especially rich. Bunyan’s genius exhibits its characteristic felicity in giving the name of Hopeful to the successor of that Faithful who perished in the town of Vanity. It would be a mark of that loose complacency in which we are too often offenders, to associate the scene of Faithful’s martyrdom with the Europe from which definitively we set out afresh a century ago; but it is impossible not to recognize that on our forward journey to the celestial country of national and individual success, our conspicuous inspiration and constant comforter is that hope whose cheering ministrations the "weary Titans" of Europe enjoy in far narrower measure. Living in the future has an indisputably tonic effect upon the moral sinews, and contributes an exhilaration to the spirit which no sense of attainment and achieved success can give. We are after all the true idealists of the world. Material as are the details of our preoccupation, our sub-consciousness is sustained by a general aspiration that is none the less heroic for being, perhaps, somewhat naïf as well. The times and moods when one’s energy is excited, when something occurs in the continuous drama of life to bring sharply into relief its vivid interest and one’s own intimate share therein, when nature seems infinitely more real than the societies she includes, when the missionary, the pioneer, the constructive spirit is aroused, are far more frequent with us than with other peoples. Our intense individualism happily modified by our equality, our constant, active, multiform struggle with the environment, do at least, as I said, produce men; and if we use the term in an esoteric sense we at least know its significance. Of our riches in this respect New York alone certainly gives no exaggerated idea—however it may otherwise epitomize and typify our national traits. A walk on Pennsylvania Avenue; a drive among the "homes" of Buffalo or Detroit—or a dozen other true centers of communal life which have a concrete impressiveness that for the most part only great capitals in Europe possess; a tour of college commencements in scores of spots consecrated to the exaltation of the permanent over the evanescent; contact in any wise with the prodigious amount of right feeling manifested in a hundred ways throughout a country whose prosperity stimulates generous impulse, or with the number of "good fellows" of large, shrewd, humorous views of life, critical perhaps rather than constructive, but at all events untouched by cynicism, perfectly competent and admirably confident, with a livelier interest in everything within their range of vision than can be felt by anyone mainly occupied with sensuous satisfaction, saved from boredom by a robust imperviousness, ready to begin life over again after every reverse with unenfeebled spirit, and finding, in the working out of their own personal salvation according to the gospel of necessity and opportunity, that joy which the pursuit of pleasure misses—experiences of every kind, in fine, that familiarize us with what is especially American in our civilization, are agreeable as no foreign experiences can be, because they are above all others animating and sustaining. Life in America has for everyone, in proportion to his seriousness, the zest that accompanies the "advance on Chaos and the Dark." Meantime, one’s last word about the America emphasized by contrast with the organic and solidaire society of France, is that, for insuring order and efficiency to the lines of this advance, it would be difficult to conceive too gravely the utility of observing attentively the work in the modern world of the only other great nation that follows the democratic standard, and is perennially prepared to make sacrifices for ideas.

And an American might allow himself the pride of believing that his instinct contradicts reason less than anyone else's. This is because, in those aspects of life that contribute to the development and fulfillment of the individual soul in pursuing its mysterious destiny, American character and conditions are particularly abundant. Bunyan’s brilliance is evident in naming Hopeful as the successor to Faithful, who died in Vanity Town. It would be a sign of the careless self-satisfaction we often indulge in to link the event of Faithful’s martyrdom with the Europe from which we definitively embarked on a new journey a century ago; yet it’s undeniable that as we move forward to the heavenly land of national and individual success, our prominent inspiration and constant support is that hope whose encouraging presence the "weary Titans" of Europe experience in much smaller amounts. Living in anticipation of the future undeniably boosts the moral fiber and adds a lift to the spirit that no amount of success or achievement can provide. We are, after all, the true idealists of the world. While the details of our pursuits may be material, our subconscious is fueled by a general aspiration that is, despite being a bit naïf, no less heroic. The times and moods when our energy is ignited, when something happens in the ongoing drama of life that brings its vibrant interest and our personal involvement into sharp focus, when nature appears infinitely more real than the societies she encompasses, when the missionary, the pioneer, the creative spirit emerges, occur much more frequently for us than for other nations. Our intense individualism, happily moderated by our equality, and our constant, active, diverse struggle with our surroundings, do, as I mentioned, produce individuals; and if we use the term in a deeper sense, we understand its significance. New York alone offers a clear idea of our wealth in this regard—though it may otherwise summarize and exemplify our national characteristics. A stroll down Pennsylvania Avenue; a drive through the "homes" of Buffalo or Detroit—or a dozen other true centers of community life that have a tangible significance usually found only in major European capitals; attending college graduations in numerous places dedicated to the enduring over the fleeting; engaging in any way with the vast amount of positive sentiment expressed in countless ways across a country whose prosperity fosters generous impulses, or connecting with the many "good fellows" who have broad, insightful, and humorous perspectives on life, critical perhaps rather than constructive, yet completely free from cynicism, highly capable and wonderfully confident, with a stronger interest in everything within their view than anyone primarily focused on physical satisfaction, shielded from boredom by their robust nature, ready to start anew after every setback with undiminished spirit, and finding, in working towards their personal salvation through the demands and opportunities of life, the joy that the quest for pleasure often overlooks—these experiences, in short, that familiarize us with what is uniquely American about our civilization, are more enjoyable than any foreign experiences can be, because they are above all else energizing and sustaining. Life in America offers everyone, depending on their seriousness, the thrill that comes with "advancing on Chaos and the Dark." Meanwhile, my final thought about America, especially when contrasted with the cohesive and solidaire society of France, is that in ensuring order and efficiency in this advancement, it’s hard to overstate the importance of closely observing the efforts of the only other great nation that upholds democratic ideals and is always ready to make sacrifices for its principles.

[From French Traits, by W. C. Brownell. Copyright, 1888, 1889, by Charles Scribner’s Sons.]

[From French Traits, by W. C. Brownell. Copyright, 1888, 1889, by Charles Scribner’s Sons.]

THE TYRANNY OF THINGS

EDWARD SANDFORD MARTIN

A TRAVELER newly returned from the Pacific Ocean tells pleasant stories of the Patagonians. As the steamer he was in was passing through Magellan’s Straits some natives came out to her in boats. They wore no clothes at all, though there was snow in the air. A baby that came along with them made some demonstration that displeased its mother, who took it by the foot, as Thetis took Achilles, and soused it over the side of the boat into the cold seawater. When she pulled it in, it lay a moment whimpering in the bottom of the boat, and then curled up and went to sleep. The missionaries there have tried to teach the natives to wear clothes, and to sleep in huts; but, so far, the traveler says, with very limited success. The most shelter a Patagonian can endure is a little heap of rocks or a log to the windward of him; as for clothes, he despises them, and he is indifferent to ornament.

A TRAVELER just back from the Pacific Ocean shares some enjoyable stories about the Patagonians. While the steamer he was on was going through Magellan's Straits, some locals came out to greet it in boats. They were completely unclothed, even though there was snow in the air. A baby that came with them made a fuss that upset its mother, who picked it up by the foot, just like Thetis did with Achilles, and dunked it over the side of the boat into the icy seawater. When she pulled it back in, it whimpered for a moment in the bottom of the boat, then curled up and fell asleep. The missionaries in the area have tried to teach the locals to wear clothes and sleep in huts, but according to the traveler, their efforts have been very limited. The most shelter a Patagonian can tolerate is a small pile of rocks or a log blocking the wind; as for clothes, he looks down on them and doesn't care for decoration.

To many of us, groaning under the oppression of modern conveniences, it seems lamentably meddlesome to undermine the simplicity of such people, and enervate them with the luxuries of civilization. To be able to sleep out-o-doors, and go naked, and take sea-baths on wintry days with impunity, would seem a most alluring emancipation. No rent to pay, no tailor, no plumber, no newspaper to be read on pain of getting behind the times; no regularity in anything, not even meals; nothing to do except to find food, and no expense for undertakers or physicians, even if we fail; what a fine, untrammeled life it would be! It takes occasional contact with such people as the Patagonians to keep us in mind that civilization is the mere cultivation of our wants, and that the higher it is the more our necessities are multiplied, until, if we are rich enough, we get enervated by luxury, and the young men come in and carry us out.

To many of us, weighed down by the pressure of modern conveniences, it seems sadly intrusive to disrupt the simplicity of those people and weaken them with the luxuries of civilization. The ability to sleep outdoors, go without clothes, and take ocean baths on cold days without worry seems like a truly appealing freedom. No rent to pay, no tailor, no plumber, and no need to read the newspaper to avoid falling behind; no routine for anything, not even meals; nothing to do except find food, and no costs for funerals or doctors, even if we don't make it; what a great, unrestricted life it would be! It takes occasional contact with people like the Patagonians to remind us that civilization is simply the development of our desires, and that the more advanced it becomes, the more our needs increase, until, if we're wealthy enough, we become weakened by luxury, and the young men come in and carry us away.

We want so many, many things, it seems a pity that those simple Patagonians could not send missionaries to us to show us how to do without. The comforts of life, at the rate they are increasing, bid fair to bury us soon, as Tarpeia was buried under the shields of her friends the Sabines. Mr. Hamerton, in speaking of the increase of comfort in England, groans at the "trying strain of expense to which our extremely high standard of living subjects all except the rich." It makes each individual of us very costly to keep, and constantly tempts people to concentrate on the maintenance of fewer individuals means that would in simpler times be divided among many. "My grandfather," said a modern the other day, "left $200,000. He was considered a rich man in those days; but, dear me! he supported four or five families—all his needy relations and all my grandmother’s." Think of an income of $10,000 a year being equal to such a strain, and providing suitably for a rich man’s large family in the bargain! It wouldn’t go so far now, and yet most of the reasonable necessaries of life cost less to-day than they did two generations ago. The difference is that we need so very many comforts that were not invented in our grandfather’s time.

We want so many things; it’s a shame that those simple Patagonians couldn’t send missionaries to teach us how to get by without them. The comforts of life, with how fast they’re increasing, are likely to bury us soon, just like Tarpeia was buried under the shields of her Sabine friends. Mr. Hamerton, while discussing the rise of comfort in England, laments the “heavy burden of expenses that our extremely high standard of living places on everyone except the wealthy.” It makes each of us very expensive to keep, constantly encouraging people to focus on maintaining fewer individuals when in simpler times, those resources would support many. “My grandfather,” a modern guy said the other day, “left $200,000. He was considered rich back then; but, wow! he supported four or five families—all his needy relatives and my grandmother’s too.” Imagine an income of $10,000 a year being equal to such a burden while providing adequately for a wealthy man’s large family on top of that! It wouldn’t stretch as far today, yet most of the basic necessities of life cost less now than they did two generations ago. The difference is that we require so many comforts that weren’t even around in our grandfather’s time.

There is a hospital, in a city large enough to keep a large hospital busy, that is in straits for money. Its income from contributions last year was larger by nearly a third than its income ten years ago, but its expenses were nearly double its income. There were some satisfactory reasons for the discrepancy—the city had grown, the number of patients had increased, extraordinary repairs had been made—but at the bottom a very large expenditure seemed to be due to the struggle of the managers to keep the institution up to modern standards. The patients are better cared for than they used to be; the nurses are better taught and more skillful; "conveniences" have been greatly multiplied; the heating and cooking and laundry work is all done in the best manner with the most approved apparatus; the plumbing is as safe as sanitary engineering can make it; the appliances for antiseptic surgery are fit for a fight for life; there are detached buildings for contagious diseases, and an out-patient department, and the whole concern is administered with wisdom and economy. There is only one distressing circumstance about this excellent charity, and that is that its expenses exceed its income. And yet its managers have not been extravagant: they have only done what the enlightened experience of the day has considered to be necessary. If the hospital has to shut down and the patients must be turned out, at least the receiver will find a well-appointed institution of which the managers have no reason to be ashamed.

There’s a hospital in a city big enough to keep a large hospital busy, but it's struggling financially. Its income from donations last year was nearly a third higher than it was ten years ago, but its expenses were almost double its income. There are some valid reasons for this gap—the city has grown, the number of patients has increased, and significant repairs have been made—but ultimately, the big expense seems to come from the managers' efforts to keep the facility up to modern standards. Patients are better cared for than they used to be; the nurses are better trained and more skilled; "conveniences" have significantly increased; heating, cooking, and laundry are all done with the best equipment; the plumbing is as safe as sanitary engineering can make it; the tools for antiseptic surgery are top-notch; there are separate buildings for contagious diseases, an outpatient department, and the entire operation is run with wisdom and efficiency. The only troubling aspect of this excellent charity is that its expenses exceed its income. Yet the managers haven’t been wasteful—they’ve only done what today's enlightened standards deem necessary. If the hospital ends up shutting down and patients have to be turned away, at least the receiver will find a well-equipped institution that the managers can take pride in.

The trouble seems to be with very many of us, in contemporary private life as well as in institutions, that the enlightened experience of the day invents more necessaries than we can get the money to pay for. Our opulent friends are constantly demonstrating to us by example how indispensably convenient the modern necessaries are, and we keep having them until we either exceed our incomes or miss the higher concerns of life in the effort to maintain a complete outfit of its creature comforts.

The problem for many of us, both in our personal lives and in organizations, is that modern developments create more necessities than we can afford. Our wealthy friends continually show us how essential these modern conveniences are, and we keep getting them until we either go over our budgets or neglect the more important aspects of life in our pursuit of all these comforts.

And the saddest part of all is that it is in such great measure an American development. We Americans keep inventing new necessaries, and the people of the effete monarchies gradually adopt such of them as they can afford. When we go abroad we growl about the inconveniences of European life—the absence of gas in bedrooms, the scarcity and sluggishness of elevators, the primitive nature of the plumbing, and a long list of other things without which life seems to press unreasonably upon our endurance. Nevertheless, if the res angustæ domi get straiter than usual, we are always liable to send our families across the water to spend a season in the practice of economy in some land where it costs less to live.

And the saddest part is that this is largely an American trend. We Americans keep coming up with new necessities, and the people of the outdated monarchies slowly adopt what they can afford. When we travel abroad, we complain about the inconveniences of European life—the lack of gas in bedrooms, the slow and limited elevators, the basic plumbing, and a long list of other things without which life feels unreasonably difficult. Still, if the financial situation at home gets tighter than usual, we're always likely to send our families across the ocean to spend some time practicing frugality in a place where the cost of living is lower.

Of course it all belongs to Progress, and no one is quite willing to have it stop, but it does a comfortable sufferer good to get his head out of his conveniences sometimes and complain.

Of course, it all belongs to Progress, and no one is really willing to let it stop, but it does a comfortable sufferer good to step out of their comfort zone sometimes and vent.

There was a story in the newspapers the other day about a Massachusetts minister who resigned his charge because someone had given his parish a fine house, and his parishioners wanted him to live in it. His salary was too small, he said, to admit of his living in a big house, and he would not do it. He was even deaf to the proposal that he should share the proposed tenement with the sewing societies and clubs of his church, and when the matter came to a serious issue, he relinquished his charge and sought a new field of usefulness. The situation was an amusing instance of the embarrassment of riches. Let no one to whom restricted quarters may have grown irksome, and who covets larger dimensions of shelter, be too hasty in deciding that the minister was wrong. Did you ever see the house that Hawthorne lived in at Lenox? Did you ever see Emerson’s house at Concord? They are good houses for Americans to know and remember. They permitted thought.

There was a story in the news recently about a minister in Massachusetts who quit his job because someone had gifted his church a nice big house, and the congregation wanted him to move in. He said his salary was too small to justify living in a large house, and he refused to do it. He even ignored the suggestion that he could share the house with the sewing groups and clubs of his church. When it became a serious issue, he resigned and looked for a new opportunity. The whole situation was a funny example of having too much of a good thing. So, if you’re feeling cramped in your own space and wish for something bigger, don’t be too quick to judge the minister for his decision. Have you ever seen the house that Hawthorne lived in at Lenox? Have you seen Emerson’s house at Concord? They’re great homes for Americans to know and remember. They encouraged deep thinking.

A big house is one of the greediest cormorants which can light upon a little income. Backs may go threadbare and stomachs may worry along on indifferent filling, but a house will have things, though its occupants go without. It is rarely complete, and constantly tempts the imagination to flights in brick and dreams in lath and plaster. It develops annual thirsts for paint and wall-paper, at least, if not for marble and wood-carving. The plumbing in it must be kept in order on pain of death. Whatever price is put on coal, it has to be heated in winter; and if it is rural or suburban, the grass about it must be cut even though funerals in the family have to be put off for the mowing. If the tenants are not rich enough to hire people to keep their house clean, they must do it themselves, for there is no excuse that will pass among housekeepers for a dirty house. The master of a house too big for him may expect to spend the leisure which might be made intellectually or spiritually profitable, in acquiring and putting into practice fag ends of the arts of the plumber, the bell-hanger, the locksmith, the gasfitter, and the carpenter. Presently he will know how to do everything that can be done in the house, except enjoy himself. He will learn about taxes, too, and water-rates, and how such abominations as sewers or new pavements are always liable to accrue at his expense. As for the mistress, she will be a slave to carpets and curtains, wall-paper, painters, and women who come in by the day to clean. She will be lucky if she gets a chance to say her prayers, and thrice and four times happy when she can read a book or visit with her friends. To live in a big house may be a luxury, provided that one has a full set of money and an enthusiastic housekeeper in one’s family; but to scrimp in a big house is a miserable business. Yet such is human folly, that for a man to refuse to live in a house because it is too big for him, is such an exceptional exhibition of sense that it becomes the favorite paragraph of a day in the newspapers.

A big house is one of the most demanding burdens that can weigh down a limited income. While the occupants might wear worn clothes and struggle to fill their stomachs, the house itself will always need things, even if its residents go without. It's rarely fully finished and constantly stirs up dreams of building projects. It develops an endless need for paint and wallpaper, at the very least, if not for marble and intricate woodwork. The plumbing must always be in top shape, or else it's a disaster waiting to happen. Regardless of the price of coal, it must be heated in winter; and if it’s in a rural or suburban area, the grass has to be mowed, even if it means delaying family funerals for the sake of landscaping. If the tenants can’t afford to hire help, they have to clean it themselves because housekeepers won't accept any excuses for dirtiness. The head of a house that’s too big for him can expect to spend what could have been valuable leisure time either intellectually or spiritually becoming skilled in the trades of plumbing, electrical work, locksmithing, gas fitting, and carpentry. Eventually, he will know how to do everything in the house except enjoy himself. He’ll also learn about taxes, water bills, and how expenses for things like sewers and new pavements will always be his responsibility. As for the mistress, she will be enslaved by carpets, curtains, wallpaper, painters, and cleaners who only come in for the day. She’ll be lucky to find time for her prayers and even luckier to read a book or catch up with friends. Living in a big house can be luxurious if one has plenty of money and a dedicated housekeeper in the family; but trying to scrape by in a big house is a miserable ordeal. Yet, such is human nature that when a man chooses not to live in a house that’s too big for him, it’s considered such a remarkable display of common sense that it often makes the news.

An ideal of earthly comfort, so common that every reader must have seen it, is to get a house so big that it is burdensome to maintain, and fill it up so full of jimcracks that it is a constant occupation to keep it in order. Then, when the expense of living in it is so great that you can’t afford to go away and rest from the burden of it, the situation is complete and boarding-houses and cemeteries begin to yawn for you. How many Americans, do you suppose, out of the droves that flock annually to Europe, are running away from oppressive houses?

An idea of comfort that's so common that every reader has seen it is to get a house so big that it becomes a hassle to maintain, and fill it with so much clutter that it's a constant struggle to keep it organized. Then, when the cost of living in it is so high that you can't afford to get away and take a break from the burden, the situation is set, and boarding houses and cemeteries start to seem inviting. How many Americans, do you think, among the crowds that go to Europe every year, are escaping from overwhelming houses?

When nature undertakes to provide a house, it fits the occupant. Animals which build by instinct build only what they need, but man’s building instinct, if it gets a chance to spread itself at all, is boundless, just as all his instincts are. For it is man’s peculiarity that nature has filled him with impulses to do things, and left it to his discretion when to stop. She never tells him when he has finished. And perhaps we ought not to be surprised that in so many cases it happens that he doesn’t know, but just goes ahead as long as the materials last.

When nature decides to create a home, it suits the inhabitant. Animals that build out of instinct only construct what they need, but when humans have the opportunity to expand their building instincts, there's no limit, just like with all their instincts. It’s unique to humans that nature has filled them with impulses to take action, allowing them to choose when to stop. Nature never indicates when they have completed their task. So, it’s not surprising that in many cases, they don’t realize when they’re done and just keep going as long as there are materials available.

If another man tries to oppress him, he understands that and is ready to fight to death and sacrifice all he has, rather than submit; but the tyranny of things is so subtle, so gradual in its approach, and comes so masked with seeming benefits, that it has him hopelessly bound before he suspects his fetters. He says from day to day, "I will add thus to my house;" "I will have one or two more horses;" "I will make a little greenhouse in my garden;" "I will allow myself the luxury of another hired man;" and so he goes on having things and imagining that he is richer for them. Presently he begins to realize that it is the things that own him. He has piled them up on his shoulders, and there they sit like Sindbad’s Old Man and drive him; and it becomes a daily question whether he can keep his trembling legs or not.

If another man tries to oppress him, he gets it and is ready to fight to the death and sacrifice everything he has rather than submit; but the tyranny of things is so subtle, so gradual in its approach, and comes disguised as seeming benefits that it has him hopelessly trapped before he even realizes it. He says to himself each day, "I’ll add this to my house;" "I’ll get one or two more horses;" "I’ll build a little greenhouse in my garden;" "I’ll indulge in the luxury of another hired hand;" and he keeps accumulating things, convincing himself he’s getting richer because of them. Soon he starts to realize that it’s the things that actually own him. He has piled them up on his shoulders, and there they sit like Sindbad’s Old Man, pushing him onward, and it becomes a daily struggle to keep his trembling legs steady.

All of which is not meant to prove that property has no real value, or to rebut Charles Lamb’s scornful denial that enough is as good as a feast. It is not meant to apply to the rich, who can have things comfortably, if they are philosophical; but to us poor, who have constant need to remind ourselves that where the verbs to have and to be cannot both be completely inflected, the verb to be is the one that best repays concentration.

All of this doesn't mean to suggest that property has no real value, or to counter Charles Lamb’s dismissive claim that enough is as good as a feast. It's not aimed at the wealthy, who can enjoy their possessions comfortably if they choose to be philosophical; but rather at us who are less fortunate, and who constantly need to remind ourselves that when the verbs to have and to be can't both be fully realized, the verb to be is the one that deserves our focus.

Perhaps we would not be so prone to swamp ourselves with luxuries and vain possessions that we cannot afford, if it were not for our deep-lying propensity to associate with people who are better off than we are. It is usually the sight of their appliances that upsets our little stock of sense, and lures us into an improvident competition.

Maybe we wouldn't be so quick to drown ourselves in luxuries and unnecessary stuff we can’t afford if it weren’t for our tendency to compare ourselves with those who have more. It’s often seeing their possessions that throws us off balance and pulls us into a reckless competition.

There is a proverb of Solomon’s which prophesies financial wreck or ultimate misfortune of some sort to people who make gifts to the rich. Though not expressly stated, it is somehow implied that the proverb is intended not as a warning to the rich themselves, who may doubtless exchange presents with impunity, but for persons whose incomes rank somewhere between "moderate circumstances" and destitution. That such persons should need to be warned not to spend their substance on the rich seems odd, but when Solomon was busied with precept he could usually be trusted not to waste either words or wisdom. Poor people are constantly spending themselves upon the rich, not only because they like them, but often from an instinctive conviction that such expenditure is well invested. I wonder sometimes whether this is true.

There’s a saying from Solomon that predicts financial disaster or some kind of bad luck for those who give gifts to the wealthy. Although it's not stated outright, it seems to be directed not at the rich themselves, who can exchange gifts without worry, but at people whose incomes fall somewhere between "getting by" and poverty. It seems strange that these individuals would need to be cautioned against spending their resources on the rich, but when Solomon shared advice, he usually didn’t waste words or wisdom. Poor people are always spending their money on the wealthy, not only because they admire them, but often because they instinctively believe that such spending is a good investment. I sometimes wonder if that's true.

To associate with the rich seems pleasant and profitable. They are apt to be agreeable and well informed, and it is good to play with them and enjoy the usufruct of all their pleasant apparatus; but, of course, you can neither hope nor wish to get anything for nothing. Of the cost of the practice, the expenditure of time still seems to be the item that is most serious. It takes a great deal of time to cultivate the rich successfully. If they are working people their time is so much more valuable than yours, that when you visit with them it is apt to be your time that is sacrificed. If they are not working people it is worse yet. Their special outings, when they want your company, always come when you cannot get away from work except at some great sacrifice, which, under the stress of temptation, you are too apt to make. Their pleasuring is on so large a scale that you cannot make it fit your times or necessities. You can’t go yachting for half a day, nor will fifty dollars take you far on the way to shoot big game in Manitoba. You simply cannot play with them when they play, because you cannot reach; and when they work you cannot play with them, because their time then is worth so much a minute that you cannot bear to waste it. And you cannot play with them when you are working yourself and they are inactively at leisure, because, cheap as your time is, you can’t spare it.

Hanging out with wealthy people seems nice and beneficial. They tend to be charming and well-informed, and it's enjoyable to socialize with them and take advantage of all their nice things; however, you can't expect to get anything for free. The biggest cost of this is the time investment. It takes a lot of time to build relationships with the rich. If they work for a living, their time is way more valuable than yours, so when you spend time with them, it often ends up being your time that gets wasted. If they don't work, it’s even harder. Their social events usually happen when you can only take time off from work at a huge sacrifice, which you’re often tempted to do. Their leisure activities are on such a grand scale that you can't fit them into your schedule or needs. You can't go yachting for just half a day, and fifty dollars won’t get you far if you want to hunt big game in Manitoba. You simply can't join them during their fun times because you can't keep up; and when they’re working, you can’t socialize because their time is so valuable that you feel bad wasting it. Plus, you can't hang out with them when you're working and they're just relaxing, because even though your time is cheaper, you still can’t afford to give it up.

Charming and likeable as they are, and good to know, it must be admitted that there is a superior convenience about associating most of the time with people who want to do about what we want to do at about the same time, and whose abilities to do what they wish approximate to ours. It is not so much a matter of persons as of times and means. You cannot make your opportunities concur with the opportunities of people whose incomes are ten times greater than yours. When you play together it is at a sacrifice, and one which you have to make. Solomon was right. To associate with very rich people involves sacrifices. You cannot even be rich yourself without expense, and you may just as well give over trying. Count it, then, among the costs of a considerable income that in enlarging the range of your sports it inevitably contracts the circle of those who will find it profitable to share them.

Charming and likable as they are, and nice to know, it must be acknowledged that there’s a clear advantage to spending most of your time with people who want to do what you want to do around the same time and who have skills similar to yours. It’s less about the individuals and more about timing and resources. You can’t align your opportunities with those of people whose incomes are ten times yours. When you play together, it comes at a cost, one that you have to bear. Solomon was correct. Associating with very wealthy people requires sacrifices. You can’t even be wealthy yourself without it costing you, so you might as well stop trying. Consider it one of the costs of a significant income that while expanding the variety of your activities, it inevitably narrows the circle of people who will find it worthwhile to join you.

[From Windfalls of Observation, by Edward Sandford Martin. Copyright, 1893, by Charles Scribner’s Sons.]

[From Windfalls of Observation, by Edward Sandford Martin. Copyright, 1893, by Charles Scribner’s Sons.]

FREE TRADE VS. PROTECTION IN LITERATURE

SAMUEL MCCHORD CROTHERS

IN the old-fashioned text-book we used to be told that the branch of learning that was treated was at once an art and a science. Literature is much more than that. It is an art, a science, a profession, a trade, and an accident. The literature that is of lasting value is an accident. It is something that happens. After it has happened, the historical critics busy themselves in explaining it. But they are not able to predict the next stroke of genius.

IN the old-fashioned textbook, we were told that the subject we were studying was both an art and a science. Literature is much more than that. It’s an art, a science, a profession, a trade, and often just a coincidence. The literature that endures is usually a coincidence. It’s something that occurs. Once it has happened, historical critics try to explain it. But they can’t predict the next burst of genius.

Shelley defines poetry as the record of "the best and happiest moments of the best and happiest minds." When we are fortunate enough to happen in upon an author at one of these happy moments, then, as the country newspaper would say, "a very enjoyable time was had." After we have said all that can be said about art and craftsmanship, we put our hopes upon a happy chance. Literature cannot be standardized. We never know how the most painstaking work may turn out. The most that can be said of the literary life is what Sancho Panza said of the profession of knight-errantry: "There is something delightful in going about in expectation of accidents."

Shelley describes poetry as a record of "the best and happiest moments of the best and happiest minds." When we’re lucky enough to find an author during one of these joyful moments, it’s like the local newspaper might say, "a very enjoyable time was had." After we've discussed everything about art and skill, we rely on a bit of good fortune. Literature can’t be made uniform. We never know how the most careful work will turn out. The most we can say about the literary life is what Sancho Panza remarked about being a knight: "There is something delightful in going about in expectation of accidents."

After a meeting in behalf of Social Justice, an eager, distraught young man met me, in the streets of Boston, and asked:

After a meeting for Social Justice, an eager, upset young man approached me on the streets of Boston and asked:

"You believe in the principle of equality?"

"You believe in the idea of equality?"

"Yes."

"Yes."

"Don’t I then have just as much right to be a genius as Shakespeare had?"

"Don't I have just as much right to be a genius as Shakespeare did?"

"Yes."

Yes.

"Then why ain’t I?"

"Then why am I not?"

I had to confess that I didn’t know.

I had to admit that I didn’t know.

It is with this chastened sense of our limitations that we meet for any organized attempt at the encouragement of literary productivity. Matthew Arnold’s favorite bit of irreverence in which he seemed to find endless enjoyment was in twitting the unfortunate Bishop who had said that "something ought to be done" for the Holy Trinity. It was a business-like proposition that involved a spiritual incongruity.

It is with this humbled awareness of our limitations that we gather for any organized effort to boost literary productivity. Matthew Arnold’s favorite sarcastic remark, which he seemed to enjoy endlessly, was teasing the unfortunate Bishop who said that "something ought to be done" for the Holy Trinity. It was a practical suggestion that carried a spiritual contradiction.

A confusion of values is likely to take place when we try to "do something" for American Literature. It is an object that appeals to the uplifter who is anxious to "get results." But the difficulty is that if a piece of writing is literature, it does not need to be uplifted. If it is not literature, it is likely to be so heavy that you can’t lift it. We have been told that a man by taking thought cannot add a cubit to his stature. It is certainly true that we cannot add many cubits to our literary stature. If we could we should all be giants.

A mix-up of values is likely to happen when we try to "do something" for American Literature. It’s something that appeals to the person who wants to "get results." But the problem is that if a piece of writing is truly literature, it doesn't need to be propped up. If it isn't literature, it's probably so heavy that you can't lift it. We've been told that a person cannot add a cubit to their height just by thinking. It's definitely true that we can't increase our literary stature by much. If we could, we'd all be giants.

When literary men discourse with one another about their art, they often seem to labor under a weight of responsibility which a friendly outsider would seek to lighten. They are under the impression that they have left undone many things which they ought to have done, and that the Public blames them for their manifold transgressions.

When writers talk to each other about their craft, they often carry a heavy sense of responsibility that a friendly outsider would want to ease. They feel like they haven’t done enough of the things they should have done, and that the public criticizes them for their numerous mistakes.

That Great American Novel ought to have been written long ago. There ought to be more local color and less imitation of European models. There ought to have been more plain speaking to demonstrate that we are not squeamish and are not tied to the apron strings of Mrs. Grundy. There ought to be a literary center and those who are at it ought to live up to it.

That Great American Novel should have been written a long time ago. There should be more local flavor and less copying of European styles. There should have been more straightforward talk to show that we aren’t sensitive and aren’t dependent on the standards of society. There should be a literary hub, and those involved should set a high standard.

In all this it is assumed that contemporary writers can control the literary situation.

In all this, it is assumed that modern writers can manage the literary landscape.

Let me comfort the over-strained consciences of the members of the writing fraternity. Your responsibility is not nearly so great as you imagine.

Let me reassure the stressed-out consciences of the writers out there. Your responsibility isn’t nearly as big as you think.

Literature differs from the other arts in the relation in which the producer stands to the consumer. Literature can never be made one of the protected industries. In the Drama the living actor has a complete monopoly. One might express a preference for Garrick or Booth, but if he goes to the theater he must take what is set before him. The monopoly of the singer is not quite so complete as it once was. But until canned music is improved, most people will prefer to get theirs fresh. In painting and in sculpture there is more or less competition with the work of other ages. Yet even here there is a measure of natural protection. The old masters may be admired, but they are expensive. The living artist can control a certain market of his own.

Literature is different from other art forms in how the creator relates to the audience. Literature can never become a fully protected industry. In theater, the live actor has a complete monopoly. One might favor Garrick or Booth, but if they go to the theater, they must accept whatever is presented. The singer's monopoly isn't as strong as it used to be. However, until recorded music improves, most people will still prefer it fresh. In painting and sculpture, there’s some competition with works from other eras. Yet even here, there’s a degree of natural protection. While the old masters can be admired, they tend to be pricey. The contemporary artist can secure a specific market for themselves.

There is also a great opportunity for the artist and his friends to exert pressure. When you go to an exhibition of new paintings, you are not a free agent. You are aware that the artist or his friends may be in the vicinity to observe how First Citizen and Second Citizen enjoy the masterpiece. Conscious of this espionage, you endeavor to look pleased. You observe a picture which outrages your ideas of the possible. You mildly remark to a bystander that you have never seen anything like that before.

There’s also a big chance for the artist and his friends to put some pressure on you. When you attend an exhibition of new paintings, you’re not completely free. You know that the artist or his friends might be nearby, watching how the First Citizen and Second Citizen respond to the masterpiece. Aware of this watchfulness, you try to look happy. You see a painting that challenges your ideas of what’s possible. You casually mention to someone next to you that you’ve never seen anything like that before.

"Probably not," he replies, "it is not a picture of any outward scene, it represents the artist’s state of mind."

"Probably not," he replies, "it's not a depiction of any outside scene; it reflects the artist's state of mind."

"O," you reply, "I understand. He is making an exhibition of himself."

"Oh," you reply, "I get it. He's putting on a show for everyone."

It is all so personal that you do not feel like carrying the investigation further. You take what is set before you and ask no questions.

It feels so personal that you don’t want to carry the investigation any further. You accept what’s presented to you and don’t ask any questions.

But with a book the relation to the producer is altogether different. You go into your library and shut the door, and you have the same sense of intellectual freedom that you have when you go into the polling booth and mark your Australian ballot. You are a sovereign citizen. Nobody can know what you are reading unless you choose to tell. You snap your fingers at the critics. In the "tumultuous privacy" of print you enjoy what you find enjoyable, and let the rest go.

But with a book, your relationship to the creator is completely different. You step into your library and close the door, and you feel the same sense of intellectual freedom that you do when you enter the voting booth and cast your Australian ballot. You are a sovereign citizen. No one can know what you're reading unless you decide to share. You disregard the critics. In the "tumultuous privacy" of print, you enjoy what you find pleasurable and ignore the rest.

Your mind is a free port. There are no customs house officers to examine the cargoes that are unladen. The book which has just come from the press has no advantage over the book that is a century old. In the matter of legibility the old volume may be preferable, and its price is less. Whatever choice you make is in the face of the free competition of all the ages. Literature is the timeless art.

Your mind is a free space. There are no customs officials to inspect the goods that are unloaded. A book freshly printed has no advantage over a book that's a century old. In terms of readability, the older book might even be better, and it costs less. Whatever choice you make is amidst the open competition of all time. Literature is the art that never goes out of style.

Clever writers who start fashions in the literary world should take account of this secrecy of the reader’s position. It is easy enough to start a fashion, the difficulty is to get people to follow it. Few people will follow a fashion except when other people are looking at them. When they are alone they relapse into something which they enjoy and which they find comfortable.

Clever writers who set trends in the literary world should consider this secrecy surrounding the reader's experience. It's relatively simple to initiate a trend, but the challenge lies in getting people to embrace it. Most people won't adopt a trend unless there's an audience watching them. When they're on their own, they revert to what they truly enjoy and find comforting.

The ultimate consumer of literature is therefore inclined to take a philosophical view of the contentions among literary people, about what seem to them the violent fluctuations of taste. These fashions come and go, but the quiet reader is undisturbed. There are enough good books already printed to last his life-time. Aware of this, he is not alarmed by the cries of the "calamity howlers" who predict a famine.

The ultimate consumer of literature is likely to adopt a philosophical perspective on the debates among literary folks regarding what they see as the wild swings in taste. These trends come and go, but the calm reader remains unfazed. There are plenty of good books already published to last him a lifetime. Knowing this, he isn’t worried by the cries of the "calamity howlers" who predict a shortage.

From a purely commercial viewpoint, this competition with writers of all generations is disconcerting. But I do not see that anything can be done to prevent it. The principle of protection fails. Trades-unionism offers no remedy. What if all the living authors should join in a general strike! We tremble to think of the army of strike-breakers that would rush in from all centuries.

From a purely commercial perspective, this competition with writers from all eras is unsettling. However, I don’t believe anything can be done to stop it. The idea of protection doesn’t hold up. Unionism offers no solution. What if all the living authors decided to go on strike? We shudder to imagine the wave of strike-breakers that would come in from every century.

From the literary viewpoint, however, this free competition is very stimulating and even exciting. To hold our own under free trade conditions, we must not put all our thought on increasing the output. In order to meet the free competition to which we are exposed, we must improve the quality of our work. Perhaps that may be good for us.

From a literary perspective, this free competition is quite stimulating and even thrilling. To succeed in a free trade environment, we can't just focus on increasing our output. To handle the free competition we face, we need to enhance the quality of our work. That might actually be beneficial for us.

DANTE AND THE BOWERY

THEODORE ROOSEVELT

IT is the conventional thing to praise Dante because he of set purpose "used the language of the market-place," so as to be understanded of the common people; but we do not in practice either admire or understand a man who writes in the language of our own market-place. It must be the Florentine market-place of the thirteenth century—not Fulton Market of to-day. What infinite use Dante would have made of the Bowery! Of course, he could have done it only because not merely he himself, the great poet, but his audience also, would have accepted it as natural. The nineteenth century was more apt than the thirteenth to boast of itself as being the greatest of the centuries; but, save as regards purely material objects, ranging from locomotives to bank buildings, it did not wholly believe in its boasting. A nineteenth-century poet, when trying to illustrate some point he was making, obviously felt uncomfortable in mentioning nineteenth-century heroes if he also referred to those of classic times, lest he should be suspected of instituting comparisons between them. A thirteenth-century poet was not in the least troubled by any such misgivings, and quite simply illustrated his point by allusions to any character in history or romance, ancient or contemporary, that happened to occur to him.

IT is the usual thing to praise Dante for using "the language of the market-place" so that common people could understand him; however, we don't really admire or get a writer who uses the language we actually hear in our own market-place today. It must be the Florentine market-place of the thirteenth century—not Fulton Market today. Imagine what Dante could have done with the Bowery! Of course, he could have only achieved this because both he, the great poet, and his audience would have accepted it as normal. The nineteenth century was more likely than the thirteenth to brag about being the greatest of all centuries; but, except for tangible things like locomotives and bank buildings, it didn’t entirely buy into its own hype. A nineteenth-century poet, when trying to make a point, clearly felt uneasy about mentioning contemporary heroes alongside those from classic times, fearing they would be seen as comparing them. A thirteenth-century poet, on the other hand, wasn’t bothered by such doubts and readily illustrated his points with references to any historical or fictional character, whether ancient or modern, that came to mind.

Of all the poets of the nineteenth century, Walt Whitman was the only one who dared use the Bowery—that is, use anything that was striking and vividly typical of the humanity around him—as Dante used the ordinary humanity of his day; and even Whitman was not quite natural in doing so, for he always felt that he was defying the conventions and prejudices of his neighbors, and his self-consciousness made him a little defiant. Dante was not defiant of conventions: the conventions of his day did not forbid him to use human nature just as he saw it, no less than human nature as he read about it. The Bowery is one of the great highways of humanity, a highway of seething life, of varied interest, of fun, of work, of sordid and terrible tragedy; and it is haunted by demons as evil as any that stalk through the pages of the Inferno. But no man of Dante’s art and with Dante’s soul would write of it nowadays; and he would hardly be understood if he did. Whitman wrote of homely things and every-day men, and of their greatness, but his art was not equal to his power and his purpose; and, even as it was, he, the poet, by set intention, of the democracy, is not known to the people as widely as he should be known; and it is only the few—the men like Edward FitzGerald, John Burroughs, and W. E. Henley—who prize him as he ought to be prized.

Of all the poets of the nineteenth century, Walt Whitman was the only one who dared to use the Bowery—that is, to draw on anything that was striking and vividly representative of the humanity around him—just as Dante used the everyday humanity of his time. Even Whitman wasn't entirely natural in this, as he always felt he was pushing against the conventions and prejudices of his neighbors, and his self-awareness made him a bit defiant. Dante didn’t challenge conventions: the norms of his time didn’t stop him from depicting human nature as he observed it, just as much as those he read about. The Bowery is a major pulse of humanity, full of vibrant life, diverse interests, fun, work, and grim tragedies; it’s also haunted by demons as wicked as any in the pages of the Inferno. However, no poet with Dante's skill and spirit would write about it today; he would likely not be understood if he did. Whitman wrote about everyday things and ordinary people, highlighting their significance, but his artistry didn’t quite match his vision and aims; even so, he—the poet of democracy—is not as widely recognized by the public as he deserves. Only a few—like Edward FitzGerald, John Burroughs, and W. E. Henley—truly appreciate him as he should be.

Nowadays, at the outset of the twentieth century, cultivated people would ridicule the poet who illustrated fundamental truths, as Dante did six hundred years ago, by examples drawn alike from human nature as he saw it around him and from human nature as he read of it. I suppose that this must be partly because we are so self-conscious as always to read a comparison into any illustration, forgetting the fact that no comparison is implied between two men, in the sense of estimating their relative greatness or importance, when the career of each of them is chosen merely to illustrate some given quality that both possess. It is also probably due to the fact that an age in which the critical faculty is greatly developed often tends to develop a certain querulous inability to understand the fundamental truths which less critical ages accept as a matter of course. To such critics it seems improper, and indeed ludicrous, to illustrate human nature by examples chosen alike from the Brooklyn Navy Yard or Castle Garden and the Piræus, alike from Tammany and from the Roman mob organized by the foes or friends of Cæsar. To Dante such feeling itself would have been inexplicable.

These days, at the start of the twentieth century, educated people would mock the poet who illustrated basic truths, like Dante did six hundred years ago, using examples from both human nature as he observed it around him and from what he read about it. I think this is partly because we are so self-aware that we tend to read a comparison into any example, overlooking the fact that there’s no implied comparison between two men in terms of measuring their relative greatness or importance, when each’s career is simply chosen to illustrate a shared quality. It's also likely due to the fact that an era with a highly developed critical faculty often tends to develop a certain nagging inability to grasp fundamental truths that less critical times take for granted. To such critics, it seems inappropriate, and even ridiculous, to illustrate human nature with examples drawn equally from the Brooklyn Navy Yard or Castle Garden and from the Piræus, equally from Tammany and from the Roman mob organized by either Cæsar's enemies or allies. For Dante, such a sentiment would have been inexplicable.

Dante dealt with those tremendous qualities of the human soul which dwarf all differences in outward and visible form and station, and therefore he illustrated what he meant by any example that seemed to him apt. Only the great names of antiquity had been handed down, and so, when he spoke of pride or violence or flattery, and wished to illustrate his thesis by an appeal to the past, he could speak only of great and prominent characters; but in the present of his day most of the men he knew, or knew of, were naturally people of no permanent importance—just as is the case in the present of our own day. Yet the passions of these men were the same as those of the heroes of old, godlike or demoniac; and so he unhesitatingly used his contemporaries, or his immediate predecessors, to illustrate his points, without regard to their prominence or lack of prominence. He was not concerned with the differences in their fortunes and careers, with their heroic proportions or lack of such proportions; he was a mystic whose imagination soared so high and whose thoughts plumbed so deeply the far depths of our being that he was also quite simply a realist; for the eternal mysteries were ever before his mind, and, compared to them, the differences between the careers of the mighty masters of mankind and the careers of even very humble people seemed trivial. If we translate his comparisons into the terms of our day, we are apt to feel amused over this trait of his, until we go a little deeper and understand that we are ourselves to blame, because we have lost the faculty simply and naturally to recognize that the essential traits of humanity are shown alike by big men and by little men, in the lives that are now being lived and in those that are long ended.

Dante explored the incredible qualities of the human soul that overshadow all differences in outward appearance and status, so he used any example he thought was fitting to illustrate his points. Only the great figures of the past had been remembered, and when he talked about pride, violence, or flattery and wanted to refer to the past, he could only mention significant characters. However, in his own time, most of the men he knew or heard of were typically individuals of no lasting importance—just like in our own time. Still, the passions of these men were the same as those of the ancient heroes, whether godlike or demonic; so he confidently used his contemporaries or those who came just before him to make his points, regardless of how important they were. He wasn’t worried about the differences in their fortunes and lives, or whether they were heroic figures or not; he was a mystic whose imagination soared high and whose thoughts delved deep into the essence of our being, making him a realist as well. The eternal mysteries were always in his mind, and compared to those, the differences between the great leaders of humanity and even very ordinary people appeared insignificant. If we translate his comparisons into our modern terms, we might find his approach amusing, until we dig a little deeper and realize that it’s actually our fault for losing the ability to recognize that the essential traits of humanity are reflected in both great and small individuals, in the lives being lived now and in those that have long since passed.

Probably no two characters in Dante impress the ordinary reader more than Farinata and Capaneus: the man who raises himself waist-high from out his burning sepulcher, unshaken by torment, and the man who, with scornful disdain, refuses to brush from his body the falling flames; the great souls—magnanimous, Dante calls them—whom no torture, no disaster, no failure of the most absolute kind could force to yield or to bow before the dread powers that had mastered them. Dante has created these men, has made them permanent additions to the great figures of the world; they are imaginary only in the sense that Achilles and Ulysses are imaginary—that is, they are now as real as the figures of any men that ever lived. One of them was a mythical hero in a mythical feat, the other a second-rate faction leader in a faction-ridden Italian city of the thirteenth century, whose deeds have not the slightest importance aside from what Dante’s mention gives. Yet the two men are mentioned as naturally as Alexander and Cæsar are mentioned. Evidently they are dwelt upon at length because Dante felt it his duty to express a peculiar horror for that fierce pride which could defy its overlord, while at the same time, and perhaps unwillingly, he could not conceal a certain shuddering admiration for the lofty courage on which this evil pride was based.

Probably no two characters in Dante stand out to the average reader more than Farinata and Capaneus: the man who raises himself waist-high from his burning tomb, unshaken by suffering, and the man who scornfully refuses to brush off the falling flames; the great souls—magnanimous, as Dante calls them—whom no torment, disaster, or absolute failure could force to yield or bow before the terrifying powers that had dominated them. Dante has created these men, making them lasting figures in the world; they are only imaginary in the same way that Achilles and Ulysses are imaginary—that is, they are as real now as any men who ever lived. One of them was a mythical hero known for a legendary feat, while the other was a minor faction leader in a divided Italian city in the thirteenth century, whose actions hold no importance beyond what Dante’s mention provides. Yet, the two men are mentioned as naturally as Alexander and Caesar. Clearly, they are explored in depth because Dante felt compelled to express a unique horror for that fierce pride which could defy its master, while at the same time, perhaps reluctantly, he could not hide a certain shuddering admiration for the noble courage that this evil pride rested upon.

The point I wish to make is the simplicity with which Dante illustrated one of the principles on which he lays most stress, by the example of a man who was of consequence only in the history of the parochial politics of Florence. Farinata will now live forever as a symbol of the soul; yet as an historical figure he is dwarfed beside any one of hundreds of the leaders in our own Revolution and Civil War. Tom Benton, of Missouri, and Jefferson Davis, of Mississippi, were opposed to one another with a bitterness which surpassed that which rived asunder Guelph from Ghibellin, or black Guelph from white Guelph. They played mighty parts in a tragedy more tremendous than any which any mediæval city ever witnessed or could have witnessed. Each possessed an iron will and undaunted courage, physical and moral; each led a life of varied interest and danger, and exercised a power not possible in the career of the Florentine. One, the champion of the Union, fought for his principles as unyieldingly as the other fought for what he deemed right in trying to break up the Union. Each was a colossal figure. Each, when the forces against which he fought overcame him—for in his latter years Benton saw the cause of disunion triumph in Missouri, just as Jefferson Davis lived to see the cause of union triumph in the Nation—fronted an adverse fate with the frowning defiance, the high heart, and the stubborn will which Dante has commemorated for all time in his hero who "held hell in great scorn." Yet a modern poet who endeavored to illustrate such a point by reference to Benton and Davis would be uncomfortably conscious that his audience would laugh at him. He would feel ill at ease, and therefore would convey the impression of being ill at ease, exactly as he would feel that he was posing, was forced and unnatural, if he referred to the deeds of the evil heroes of the Paris Commune as he would without hesitation refer to the many similar but smaller leaders of riots in the Roman forum.

The point I want to make is how simply Dante illustrated one of the principles he emphasizes most, using the example of a man who was only significant in the local politics of Florence. Farinata will now live on forever as a symbol of the soul; yet as a historical figure, he pales in comparison to any of the leaders from our own Revolution and Civil War. Tom Benton from Missouri and Jefferson Davis from Mississippi were opposed to each other with a bitterness that surpassed that which split the Guelphs and Ghibellines, or the black Guelphs and white Guelphs. They played major roles in a tragedy more intense than anything any medieval city ever witnessed or could have witnessed. Each had an iron will and fearless courage, both physically and morally; each lived a life full of varied interests and dangers, and held power that wasn’t possible for someone in Florence. One, the champion of the Union, fought for his principles as fiercely as the other fought for what he believed was right in trying to break up the Union. Each was a towering figure. Each, when the forces he fought against overwhelmed him—for in his later years Benton saw the cause of disunion triumph in Missouri, just as Jefferson Davis lived to see the cause of union triumph in the Nation—faced an adverse fate with defiant scorn, a courageous heart, and stubborn determination, which Dante has immortalized in his hero who "held hell in great scorn." Yet, a modern poet who tried to illustrate such a point by referencing Benton and Davis would uncomfortably realize that his audience would laugh at him. He would feel uneasy, and therefore would convey the impression of being tense, just as he would feel out of place if he referred to the actions of the notorious figures of the Paris Commune in the same way he would without hesitation talk about the many similar but smaller leaders of riots in the Roman forum.

Dante speaks of a couple of French troubadours, or of a local Sicilian poet, just as he speaks of Euripides; and quite properly, for they illustrate as well what he has to teach; but we of to-day could not possibly speak of a couple of recent French poets or German novelists in the same connection without having an uncomfortable feeling that we ought to defend ourselves from possible misapprehension; and therefore we could not speak of them naturally. When Dante wishes to assail those guilty of crimes of violence, he in one stanza speaks of the torments inflicted by divine justice on Attila (coupling him with Pyrrhus and Sextus Pompey—a sufficiently odd conjunction in itself, by the way), and in the next stanza mentions the names of a couple of local highwaymen who had made travel unsafe in particular neighborhoods. The two highwaymen in question were by no means as important as Jesse James and Billy the Kid; doubtless they were far less formidable fighting men, and their adventures were less striking and varied. Yet think of the way we should feel if a great poet should now arise who would incidentally illustrate the ferocity of the human heart by allusions both to the terrible Hunnish "scourge of God" and to the outlaws who in our own times defied justice in Missouri and New Mexico!

Dante mentions a couple of French troubadours and a local Sicilian poet, just as he talks about Euripides; and rightly so, as they help illustrate his teachings. However, we today couldn't easily mention a couple of recent French poets or German novelists in the same way without feeling the need to clarify ourselves to avoid misunderstandings. As a result, we wouldn’t discuss them naturally. When Dante criticizes those guilty of violent crimes, he first refers to the punishments dealt by divine justice to Attila (paired with Pyrrhus and Sextus Pompey—a rather unusual trio, by the way) and then mentions a couple of local bandits who made traveling in certain areas dangerous. These two bandits were by no means as significant as Jesse James and Billy the Kid; they were likely much less intimidating as fighters, and their escapades were less dramatic and varied. Yet, consider how we would react if a great poet today cited both the brutal Hunnish "scourge of God" and the outlaws who defied the law in Missouri and New Mexico to illustrate the cruelty of the human heart!

When Dante wishes to illustrate the fierce passions of the human heart, he may speak of Lycurgus, or of Saul; or he may speak of two local contemporary captains, victor or vanquished in obscure struggles between Guelph and Ghibellin; men like Jacopo del Cassero or Buonconte, whom he mentions as naturally as he does Cyrus or Rehoboam. He is entirely right! What one among our own writers, however, would be able simply and naturally to mention Ulrich Dahlgren, or Custer, or Morgan, or Raphael Semmes, or Marion, or Sumter, as illustrating the qualities shown by Hannibal, or Rameses, or William the Conqueror, or by Moses or Hercules? Yet the Guelph and Ghibellin captains of whom Dante speaks were in no way as important as these American soldiers of the second or third rank. Dante saw nothing incongruous in treating at length of the qualities of all of them; he was not thinking of comparing the genius of the unimportant local leader with the genius of the great sovereign conquerors of the past—he was thinking only of the qualities of courage and daring and of the awful horror of death; and when we deal with what is elemental in the human soul it matters but little whose soul we take. In the same way he mentions a couple of spendthrifts of Padua and Siena, who come to violent ends, just as in the preceding canto he had dwelt upon the tortures undergone by Dionysius and Simon de Montfort, guarded by Nessus and his fellow centaurs. For some reason he hated the spendthrifts in question as the Whigs of Revolutionary South Carolina and New York hated Tarleton, Kruger, Saint Leger, and De Lancey; and to him there was nothing incongruous in drawing a lesson from one couple of offenders more than from another. (It would, by the way, be outside my present purpose to speak of the rather puzzling manner in which Dante confounds his own hatreds, with those of heaven, and, for instance, shows a vindictive enjoyment in putting his personal opponent Filippo Argenti in hell, for no clearly adequate reason.)

When Dante wants to show the intense emotions of the human heart, he might reference Lycurgus or Saul; he could also talk about two local captains from his time, whether they were victorious or defeated in the obscure fights between the Guelphs and Ghibellines—men like Jacopo del Cassero or Buonconte, whom he mentions as easily as he does Cyrus or Rehoboam. He is completely justified! Yet, how many of our own writers could casually mention Ulrich Dahlgren, Custer, Morgan, Raphael Semmes, Marion, or Sumter to highlight qualities demonstrated by Hannibal, Rameses, William the Conqueror, Moses, or Hercules? The Guelph and Ghibelline captains Dante refers to were by no means as significant as those American soldiers of lesser rank. Dante found nothing inconsistent in discussing the qualities of all these individuals in depth; he wasn't trying to compare the prowess of an ordinary local leader with that of great sovereign conquerors from history—he was focused solely on qualities like courage and bravery, as well as the profound fear of death; when addressing what is fundamental in the human spirit, it hardly matters whose soul is under discussion. Similarly, he mentions a couple of spendthrifts from Padua and Siena who meet violent ends, just like in the previous canto when he described the tortures faced by Dionysius and Simon de Montfort, guarded by Nessus and his fellow centaurs. For some reason, he despised the spendthrifts just as the Whigs of Revolutionary South Carolina and New York despised Tarleton, Kruger, Saint Leger, and De Lancey; for him, there was nothing strange about drawing a lesson from one pair of wrongdoers over another. (By the way, discussing the somewhat confusing way Dante conflates his own hatreds with those of heaven, particularly his vindictive pleasure in placing his personal enemy Filippo Argenti in hell without a clearly justifiable reason, would be beyond my current focus.)

When he turns from those whom he is glad to see in hell toward those for whom he cares, he shows the same delightful power of penetrating through the externals into the essentials. Cato and Manfred illustrate his point no better than Belacqua, a contemporary Florentine maker of citherns. Alas! what poet to-day would dare to illustrate his argument by introducing Steinway in company with Cato and Manfred! Yet again, when examples of love are needed, he draws them from the wedding-feast at Cana, from the actions of Pylades and Orestes, and from the life of a kindly, honest comb-dealer of Siena who had just died. Could we now link together Peter Cooper and Pylades, without feeling a sense of incongruity? He couples Priscian with a politician of local note who had written an encyclopædia and a lawyer of distinction who had lectured at Bologna and Oxford; we could not now with such fine unconsciousness bring Evarts and one of the compilers of the Encyclopædia Britannica into a life comparison.

When he shifts his focus from those he's happy to see in hell to those he cares about, he demonstrates his impressive ability to see beyond the surface to the core of things. Cato and Manfred don’t illustrate his point any better than Belacqua, a modern Florentine maker of zithers. Alas! What poet today would dare to make his argument by putting Steinway alongside Cato and Manfred! Yet again, when examples of love are required, he draws them from the wedding at Cana, from the actions of Pylades and Orestes, and from the life of a kind, honest comb dealer from Siena who just passed away. Could we now connect Peter Cooper with Pylades, without feeling some disconnect? He pairs Priscian with a local politician known for writing an encyclopedia and a distinguished lawyer who lectured at Bologna and Oxford; we couldn’t now so effortlessly compare Evarts and one of the compilers of the Encyclopædia Britannica in a life comparison.

When Dante deals with the crimes which he most abhorred, simony and barratry, he flails offenders of his age who were of the same type as those who in our days flourish by political or commercial corruption; and he names his offenders, both those just dead and those still living, and puts them, popes and politicians alike, in hell. There have been trust magnates and politicians and editors and magazine-writers in our own country whose lives and deeds were no more edifying than those of the men who lie in the third and the fifth chasm of the eighth circle of the Inferno; yet for a poet to name those men would be condemned as an instance of shocking taste.

When Dante confronts the crimes he despised the most, like simony and barratry, he punishes the offenders of his time who were similar to those who today thrive on political or commercial corruption. He names his offenders, both the recently deceased and the still living, putting popes and politicians alike in hell. There have been corporate magnates, politicians, editors, and magazine writers in our country whose lives and actions were no more admirable than those of the men who are stuck in the third and fifth pits of the eighth circle of the Inferno; yet for a poet to call out those individuals would be seen as a shocking breach of taste.

One age expresses itself naturally in a form that would be unnatural, and therefore undesirable, in another age. We do not express ourselves nowadays in epics at all; and we keep the emotions aroused in us by what is good or evil in the men of the present in a totally different compartment from that which holds our emotions concerning what was good or evil in the men of the past. An imitation of the letter of the times past, when the spirit has wholly altered, would be worse than useless; and the very qualities that help to make Dante’s poem immortal would, if copied nowadays, make the copyist ridiculous. Nevertheless, it would be a good thing if we could, in some measure, achieve the mighty Florentine’s high simplicity of soul, at least to the extent of recognizing in those around us the eternal qualities which we admire or condemn in the men who wrought good or evil at any stage in the world’s previous history. Dante’s masterpiece is one of the supreme works of art that the ages have witnessed; but he would have been the last to wish that it should be treated only as a work of art, or worshiped only for art’s sake, without reference to the dread lessons it teaches mankind.

One era expresses itself naturally in a way that would be unnatural and therefore undesirable in another era. We don’t express ourselves in epics anymore, and we keep the feelings stirred up by what we see as good or evil in present-day people completely separate from our feelings about what was good or evil in people from the past. Trying to imitate the style of past times, when the spirit has completely changed, would be pointless; and the very qualities that make Dante’s poem timeless would, if copied today, make the copier look foolish. Still, it would be beneficial if we could, to some extent, achieve the high simplicity of soul that the great Florentine had, at least enough to recognize in those around us the eternal qualities that we admire or condemn in the people who did good or evil throughout history. Dante’s masterpiece is one of the greatest works of art in history; but he would have been the last to want it treated merely as a work of art or revered only for art's sake, without considering the important lessons it teaches humanity.

[From History as Literature and Other Essays, by Theodore Roosevelt. Copyright, 1913, by Charles Scribner’s Sons.]

[From History as Literature and Other Essays, by Theodore Roosevelt. Copyright, 1913, by Charles Scribner’s Sons.]

THE REVOLT OF THE UNFIT

NICHOLAS MURRAY BUTLER

THERE are wars and rumors of wars in a portion of the territory occupied by the doctrine of organic evolution. All is not working smoothly and well and according to formula. It begins to appear that those men of science who, having derived the doctrine of organic evolution in its modern form from observations on earthworms, on climbing-plants, and on brightly colored birds, and who then straightway applied it blithely to man and his affairs, have made enemies of no small part of the human race.

THERE are wars and rumors of wars in some areas influenced by the idea of organic evolution. Not everything is going smoothly or according to plan. It seems that those scientists who developed the concept of organic evolution in its current form from studying earthworms, climbing plants, and brightly colored birds, and then eagerly applied it to humans and our issues, have created opponents among a significant portion of humanity.

It was all well enough to treat some earthworms, some climbing-plants, and some brightly colored birds as fit, and others as unfit, to survive; but when this distinction is extended over human beings and their economic, social, and political affairs, there is a general pricking-up of ears. The consciously fit look down on the resulting discussions with complacent scorn. The consciously unfit rage and roar loudly; while the unconsciously unfit bestir themselves mightily to overturn the whole theory upon which the distinction between fitness and unfitness rests. If any law of nature makes so absurd a distinction as that, then the offending and obnoxious law must be repealed, and that quickly.

It was all fine to consider some earthworms, some climbing plants, and some brightly colored birds as suitable for survival while labeling others as unsuitable; but when this distinction is applied to humans and their economic, social, and political matters, it grabs everyone's attention. Those who believe they are fit look down on the ensuing debates with smugness. Those who see themselves as unfit react angrily and loudly; meanwhile, those who are unaware of their unfitness work hard to challenge the entire idea of fitness versus unfitness. If any natural law creates such an absurd distinction, then that problematic law needs to be abolished, and quickly.

The trouble appears to arise primarily from the fact that man does not like what may be termed his evolutionary poor relations. He is willing enough to read about earthworms and climbing-plants and brightly colored birds, but he does not want nature to be making leaps from any of these to him.

The issue seems to stem mainly from the fact that people don’t like what could be called their less evolved relatives. They're perfectly fine reading about earthworms, climbing plants, and colorful birds, but they don't want nature making any jumps from these to themselves.

The earthworm, which, not being adapted to its surroundings, soon dies unhonored and unsung, passes peacefully out of life without either a coroner’s inquest, an indictment for earthworm slaughter, a legislative proposal for the future protection of earthworms, or even a new society for the reform of the social and economic state of the earthworms that are left. Even the quasi-intelligent climbing-plant and the brightly colored bird, humanly vain, find an equally inconspicuous fate awaiting them. This is the way nature operates when unimpeded or unchallenged by the powerful manifestations of human revolt or human revenge. Of course if man understood the place assigned to him in nature by the doctrine of organic evolution as well as the earthworm, the climbing-plant, and the brightly colored bird understand theirs, he, too, like them, would submit to nature’s processes and decrees without a protest. As a matter of logic, no doubt he ought to; but after all these centuries, it is still a far cry from logic to life.

The earthworm, which isn’t suited to its environment, quickly dies without recognition or praise, passing away quietly without a coroner’s investigation, charges for killing earthworms, proposals for their future protection, or even a new organization aimed at improving the social and economic conditions of the remaining earthworms. Even the somewhat intelligent climbing plant and the brightly colored bird, with their human-like vanity, meet a similarly unnoticed end. This is how nature works when it isn’t interrupted or challenged by the strong forces of human rebellion or vengeance. If humans understood their role in nature through the lens of organic evolution as well as the earthworm, climbing plant, and brightly colored bird understand theirs, they too would accept nature’s processes and rules without protest. Logically, they should; but after all these centuries, logic still feels quite distant from real life.

In fact, man, unless he is consciously and admittedly fit, revolts against the implication of the doctrine of evolution, and objects both to being considered unfit to survive and succeed, and to being forced to accept the only fate which nature offers to those who are unfit for survival and success. Indeed, he manifests with amazing pertinacity what Schopenhauer used to call "the will to live," and considerations and arguments based on adaptability to environment have no weight with him. So much the worse for environment, he cries; and straightway sets out to prove it.

In fact, a person, unless they are aware and accepting of their fitness, resists the implication of the theory of evolution. They object to being seen as unfit to survive and thrive, as well as to being forced to accept the fate that nature offers those who are unfit for survival and success. They stubbornly display what Schopenhauer referred to as "the will to live," and discussions about adaptability to the environment mean nothing to them. "Too bad for the environment," they declare, and immediately set out to prove it.

On the other hand, those humans who are classed by the doctrine of evolution as fit, exhibit a most disconcerting satisfaction with things as they are. The fit make no conscious struggle for existence. They do not have to. Being fit, they survive ipso facto. Thus does the doctrine of evolution, like a playful kitten, merrily pursue its tail with rapturous delight. The fit survive; those survive who are fit. Nothing could be more simple.

On the other hand, those people who are considered fit by the theory of evolution show a troubling satisfaction with the status quo. The fit don't have to actively struggle for survival. They don't need to. Just being fit means they survive ipso facto. So, the theory of evolution, like a playful kitten, happily chases its tail with joyful delight. The fit survive; those who are fit continue to live. Nothing could be clearer.

Those who are not adapted to the conditions that surround them, however, rebel against the fate of the earthworm and the climbing-plant and the brightly colored bird, and engage in a conscious struggle for existence and for success in that existence despite their inappropriate environment. Statutes can be repealed or amended; why not laws of nature as well? Those human beings who are unfit have, it must be admitted, one great, though perhaps temporary, advantage over the laws of nature; for the laws of nature have not yet been granted suffrage, and the organized unfit can always lead a large majority to the polls. So soon as knowledge of this fact becomes common property, the laws of nature will have a bad quarter of an hour in more countries than one.

Those who don't adapt to their surroundings often resist the inevitability of their fate like earthworms, climbing plants, or brightly colored birds. They consciously fight for survival and success, even when their environment isn't right for them. Laws can be changed or repealed; why can’t we change the laws of nature too? It's true that those who don't fit in have one significant, though possibly temporary, advantage over natural laws; since those laws don’t have the right to vote, the organized unfit can always rally a large majority to the polls. Once this fact becomes widely known, the laws of nature will face some serious challenges in more than one country.

The revolt of the unfit primarily takes the form of attempts to lessen and to limit competition, which is instinctively felt, and with reason, to be part of the struggle for existence and for success. The inequalities which nature makes, and without which the process of evolution could not go on, the unfit propose to smooth away and to wipe out by that magic fiat of collective human will called legislation. The great struggle between the gods of Olympus and the Titans, which the ancient sculptors so loved to picture, was child’s play compared with the struggle between the laws of nature and the laws of man which the civilized world is apparently soon to be invited to witness. This struggle will bear a little examination, and it may be that the laws of nature, as the doctrine of evolution conceives and states them, will not have everything their own way.

The uprising of those deemed unfit mostly manifests as efforts to reduce and limit competition, which is instinctively understood, and rightly so, as part of the fight for survival and success. The inequalities that nature creates, without which evolution wouldn't continue, are something the unfit aim to eliminate through that powerful force of collective human will known as legislation. The epic battle between the gods of Olympus and the Titans, which ancient sculptors loved to depict, was trivial compared to the clash between the laws of nature and the laws of man that the civilized world is soon expected to witness. This conflict deserves a closer look, and it may turn out that the laws of nature, as described by the theory of evolution, won't have it all their way.

Professor Huxley, whose orthodoxy as an evolutionist will hardly be questioned, made a suggestion of this kind in his Romanes lecture as long ago as 1893. He called attention then to the fact that there is a fallacy in the notion that because, on the whole, animals and plants have advanced in perfection of organization by means of the struggle for existence and the consequent survival of the fittest, therefore, men as social and ethical beings must depend upon the same process to help them to perfection. As Professor Huxley suggests, this fallacy doubtless has its origin in the ambiguity of the phrase "survival of the fittest." One jumps to the conclusion that fittest means best; whereas, of course, it has in it no moral element whatever. The doctrine of evolution uses the term fitness in a hard and stern sense. Nothing more is meant by it than a measure of adaptation to surrounding conditions. Into this conception of fitness there enters no element of beauty, no element of morality, no element of progress toward an ideal. Fitness is a cold fact ascertainable with almost mathematical certainty.

Professor Huxley, whose views as an evolutionist are rarely challenged, made a similar suggestion in his Romanes lecture back in 1893. He pointed out that there’s a fallacy in the idea that because, overall, animals and plants have improved in organization through the struggle for existence and the survival of the fittest, humans as social and moral beings must rely on the same process to achieve perfection. As Professor Huxley mentions, this fallacy likely stems from the ambiguity of the phrase "survival of the fittest." People often assume that fittest means best; however, it doesn’t carry any moral implications at all. The concept of evolution uses the term fitness in a strict and unyielding way. It simply refers to a measure of how well an organism adapts to its environment. Within this definition of fitness, there’s no element of beauty, no moral aspect, and no notion of progress toward an ideal. Fitness is a straightforward fact that can be determined with almost mathematical precision.

We now begin to catch sight of the real significance of this struggle between the laws of nature and the laws of man. From one point of view the struggle is hopeless from the start; from another it is full of promise. If it be true that man really proposes to halt the laws of nature by his legislation, then the struggle is hopeless. It is only a question of time when the laws of nature will have their way. If, on the other hand, the struggle between the laws of nature and the laws of man is in reality a mock struggle, and the supposed combat merely an exhibition of evolutionary boxing, then we may find a clew to what is really going on.

We’re starting to see the real importance of this conflict between the laws of nature and the laws created by humans. From one perspective, the fight seems doomed from the beginning; from another, it holds a lot of promise. If it’s true that humans think they can stop the laws of nature with their laws, then this struggle is pointless. It’s just a matter of time before nature wins. However, if the conflict between nature’s laws and human laws is actually just a superficial struggle, and the supposed battle is merely a display of evolutionary sparring, then we might uncover the truth of what’s really happening.

It might be worth while, for example, to follow up the suggestion that in looking back over the whole series of products of organic evolution, the real successes and permanences of life are to be found among those species that have been able to institute something like what we call a social system. Wherever an individual insists upon treating himself as an end in himself, and all other individuals as his actual or potential competitors or enemies, then the fate of the earthworm, the climbing-plant, and the brightly colored bird is sure to be his; for he has brought himself under the jurisdiction of one of nature’s laws, and sooner or later he must succumb to that law of nature, and in the struggle for existence his place will be marked out for him by it with unerring precision. If, however, he has developed so far as to have risen to the lofty height of human sympathy, and thereby has learned to transcend his individuality and to make himself a member of a larger whole, he may then save himself from the extinction which follows inevitably upon proved unfitness in the individual struggle for existence.

It might be worthwhile, for example, to explore the idea that when we look back over the entire history of organic evolution, the true successes and lasting forms of life are found among those species that have been able to create something like what we call a social system. Whenever an individual insists on treating themselves as an end in themselves, viewing others as actual or potential competitors or enemies, then they are destined for the same fate as the earthworm, the climbing plant, and the brightly colored bird; for they have subjected themselves to one of nature’s laws, and sooner or later, they must succumb to that law. In the struggle for existence, their place will be determined with unerring precision by that law. However, if that individual has developed enough to reach the elevated state of human empathy and has learned to rise above their individuality to become part of a larger whole, they may then save themselves from the extinction that inevitably follows when unfitness is proven in the individual struggle for existence.

So soon as the individual has something to give, there will be those who have something to give to him, and he elevates himself above this relentless law with its inexorable punishments for the unfit. At that point, when individuals begin to give each to the other, then their mutual co-operation and interdependence build human society, and participation in that society changes the whole character of the human struggle. Nevertheless, large numbers of human beings carry with them into social and political relations the traditions and instincts of the old individualistic struggle for existence, with the laws of organic evolution pointing grimly to their several destinies. These are not able to realize that moral elements, and what we call progress toward an end or ideal, are not found under the operation of the law of natural selection, but have to be discovered elsewhere and added to it. Beauty, morality, progress have other lurking-places than in the struggle for existence, and they have for their sponsors other laws than that of natural selection. You will read the pages of Darwin and of Herbert Spencer in vain for any indication of how the Parthenon was produced, how the Sistine Madonna, how the Ninth Symphony of Beethoven, how the Divine Comedy, or Hamlet or Faust. There are many mysteries left in the world, thank God, and these are some of them.

As soon as someone has something to offer, there will be others who have something to offer in return, allowing him to rise above the unforgiving laws that punish the unfit. At that moment, when individuals begin to mutually support each other, their cooperation and reliance on one another create human society, and being part of that society transforms the nature of human struggle. However, many people bring with them into social and political interactions the old traditions and instincts from the individualistic fight for survival, while the laws of evolution indicate their separate fates. They fail to understand that moral elements and what we call progress towards a goal or ideal do not arise from natural selection but must be discovered elsewhere and added to it. Beauty, morality, and progress have other origins beyond the struggle for survival, and their foundations rely on rules different from natural selection. You will find no explanation in the writings of Darwin or Herbert Spencer about how the Parthenon was created, how the Sistine Madonna came to be, how Beethoven's Ninth Symphony was composed, or how the Divine Comedy, Hamlet, or Faust were crafted. There are many mysteries still in the world, thank God, and these are some of them.

The escape of genius from the cloud-covered mountain-tops of the unknown into human society has not yet been accounted for. Even Rousseau made a mistake. When he was writing the Contrat social it is recorded that his attention was favorably attracted by the island of Corsica. He, being engaged in the process of finding out how to repeal the laws of man by the laws of nature, spoke of Corsica as the one country in Europe that seemed to him capable of legislation. This led him to add: "I have a presentiment that some day this little island will astonish Europe." It was not long before Corsica did astonish Europe, but not by any capacity for legislation. As some clever person has said, it let loose Napoleon. We know nothing more of the origin and advent of genius than that.

The escape of genius from the cloud-covered mountain tops of the unknown into human society is still a mystery. Even Rousseau got it wrong. While writing the Contrat social, he was notably drawn to the island of Corsica. As he was trying to figure out how to replace human laws with natural ones, he described Corsica as the only country in Europe he believed could successfully create laws. He went on to say, "I have a feeling that one day this little island will surprise Europe." It didn’t take long for Corsica to surprise Europe, but not in terms of its legislative abilities. As someone clever pointed out, it unleashed Napoleon. We still know nothing more about the origin and emergence of genius than that.

Perhaps we should comprehend these things better were it not for the persistence of the superstition that human beings habitually think. There is no more persistent superstition than this. Linnæus helped it on to an undeserved permanence when he devised the name Homo sapiens for the highest species of the order primates. That was the quintessence of complimentary nomenclature. Of course human beings as such do not think. A real thinker is one of the rarest things in nature. He comes only at long intervals in human history, and when he does come, he is often astonishingly unwelcome. Indeed, he is sometimes speedily sent the way of the unfit and unprotesting earthworm. Emerson understood this, as he understood so many other of the deep things of life. For he wrote: "Beware when the great God lets loose a thinker on this planet. Then all things are at risk."

Maybe we would understand these things better if it weren't for the stubborn belief that humans are naturally thinkers. There's no belief more stubborn than this one. Linnæus gave it an unwarranted permanence when he came up with the name Homo sapiens for the top species in the primate order. That was the ultimate in flattering naming. Of course, humans in general don’t really think. A true thinker is one of the rarest beings in nature. They appear only at long intervals in human history, and when they do show up, they're often surprisingly unwelcome. In fact, they sometimes get quickly removed from the world, just like an unfit, silent earthworm. Emerson understood this, just like he grasped so many other profound aspects of life. He wrote: "Beware when the great God lets loose a thinker on this planet. Then all things are at risk."

The plain fact is that man is not ruled by thinking. When man thinks he thinks, he usually merely feels; and his instincts and feelings are powerful precisely in proportion as they are irrational. Reason reveals the other side, and a knowledge of the other side is fatal to the driving power of a prejudice. Prejudices have their important uses, but it is well to try not to mix them up with principles.

The simple truth is that people aren't governed by logic. When someone thinks they are thinking, they're usually just feeling; their instincts and emotions are strong precisely because they're irrational. Reason shows another perspective, and understanding that other perspective weakens the influence of a bias. Biases have their important roles, but it’s best not to confuse them with principles.

The underlying principle in the widespread and ominous revolt of the unfit is that moral considerations must outweigh the mere blind struggle for existence in human affairs.

The main idea behind the widespread and troubling uprising of those unable to cope is that moral values should take precedence over just the mindless fight for survival in human matters.

It is to this fact that we must hold fast if we would understand the world of to-day, and still more the world of to-morrow. The purpose of the revolt of the unfit is to substitute interdependence on a higher plane for the struggle for existence on a lower one. Who dares attempt to picture what will happen if this revolt shall not succeed?

It is this fact that we must cling to if we want to understand today’s world, and even more so the world of tomorrow. The goal of the uprising of the unfit is to replace the struggle for survival on a lower level with interdependence on a higher one. Who has the courage to imagine what will happen if this uprising fails?

These are problems full of fascination. In one form or another they will persist as long as humanity itself. There is only one way of getting rid of them, and that is so charmingly and wittily pointed out by Robert Louis Stevenson in his fable, "The Four Reformers," that I wish to quote it:

These problems are incredibly fascinating. They will continue to exist in some form as long as humanity does. There's only one way to eliminate them, and Robert Louis Stevenson charmingly and cleverly highlights this in his fable, "The Four Reformers," which I'd like to quote:

"Four reformers met under a bramble-bush. They were all agreed the world must be changed. 'We must abolish property,' said one.

"Four reformers gathered under a thorny bush. They all agreed that the world needed to change. 'We have to get rid of property,' said one."

"'We must abolish marriage,' said the second.

"'We need to get rid of marriage,' said the second."

"'We must abolish God,' said the third.

"'We must get rid of God,' said the third."

"'I wish we could abolish work,' said the fourth.

"I wish we could get rid of work," said the fourth.

"'Do not let us get beyond practical politics,' said the first. 'The first thing is to reduce men to a common level.'

"'Let's stick to practical politics,' said the first. 'The main thing is to bring everyone down to a common level.'

"'The first thing,' said the second, 'is to give freedom to the sexes.'

"'The first thing,' said the second, 'is to give freedom to both genders.'"

"'The first thing,' said the third, 'is to find out how to do it.'

"'The first thing,' said the third, 'is to figure out how to do it.'"

"'The first step,' said the first, 'is to abolish the Bible.'

"'The first step,' said the first, 'is to get rid of the Bible.'"

"'The first thing,' said the second, 'is to abolish the laws.'

"'The first thing,' said the second, 'is to get rid of the laws.'"

'"The first thing,' said the third, 'is to abolish mankind.'"

"The first thing," said the third, "is to get rid of humanity."

[From Why Should We Change Our Form of Government, by Nicholas Murray Butler. Copyright, 1912, by Charles Scribner’s Sons.]

[From Why Should We Change Our Form of Government, by Nicholas Murray Butler. Copyright, 1912, by Charles Scribner’s Sons.]

ON TRANSLATING THE ODES OF HORACE

W. P. TRENT

IN a letter written on August 21, 1703, to Robert Harley, afterward Earl of Oxford and Prime Minister, by Dr. George Hickes, the famous scholar and non-juror, there is a reference to "old Dr. Biram Eaton who has read Horace over, as they tell me, many hundred times, oftener, I fear, than he has read the Gospels." Dr. Biram Eaton has escaped an article in the Dictionary of National Biography, and, so far as I know, he has never been reckoned by Horatians among their patron saints. In view of the slur cast upon him by Dr. Hickes I should like to propose his canonization, but I should much prefer to lay a wager that he found time between his readings to try to turn some of the odes of his favorite writer into English verses, probably into couplets resembling those of Dryden. And I should also be willing to wager that before and after making each of his versions, he gave expression, in some form or other, to the proverbial statement that to attempt to translate Horace is to attempt the impossible.

IN a letter written on August 21, 1703, to Robert Harley, who later became the Earl of Oxford and Prime Minister, Dr. George Hickes, a well-known scholar and non-juror, mentions "old Dr. Biram Eaton, who, as I've heard, has read Horace many hundreds of times, more often, I fear, than he has read the Gospels." Dr. Biram Eaton has been left out of the Dictionary of National Biography, and, as far as I know, he’s never been considered one of the patron saints by Horatians. Given the slight thrown at him by Dr. Hickes, I’d like to suggest his canonization, but I’d much rather bet that he found time between his readings to try translating some of his favorite writer’s odes into English verses, probably in couplets similar to those of Dryden. I’d also be willing to bet that before and after making each of his translations, he expressed, in one way or another, the saying that trying to translate Horace is like trying to do the impossible.

Perhaps we owe to this proverbial impossibility the fact that the translator of Horace is always with us. A living antinomy, he writes a modest preface; then exclaiming in the words of his master, "Nil mortalibus ardui est," he tries to scale very heaven in his folly, to rush blindly per vetitum nefas. But because he has loved much, therefore is much forgiven him. To love Horace and not attempt to translate him would be to flout that principle of altruism in which some modern thinkers have discovered, more poetically perhaps than philosophically, the motive force of civilization. "We love Horace, and hence we must try to set him forth in a way to make others love him," is what all translators, it would seem, say to themselves, consciously or unconsciously, when they decide to publish their respective renditions. And who shall blame them? Where is the critic competent to judge their work, who has not himself listened to the Siren’s song, if but for a moment in his youth, who has not a version of some ode of Horace hid away among his papers, the memory of which will doubtless forever prevent him from flinging a stone at any fellow-offender?

Maybe we owe this impossible task to the fact that the translator of Horace is always with us. A living contradiction, he writes a modest preface; then, echoing the words of his master, "Nil mortalibus ardui est," he tries to reach the heavens in his foolishness, to rush blindly per vetitum nefas. But because he has loved deeply, much is forgiven him. To love Horace and not attempt to translate him would be to disregard that principle of altruism in which some modern thinkers have found, perhaps more poetically than philosophically, the driving force of civilization. "We love Horace, and therefore we must try to present him in a way that makes others love him too," is what all translators seem to tell themselves, consciously or unconsciously, when they choose to publish their own versions. And who can blame them? Where is the critic able to evaluate their work, who has not listened to the Siren’s song, even if just for a moment in his youth, who does not have a version of some ode of Horace tucked away among his papers, the memory of which will surely stop him from throwing stones at any fellow translator?

It is not only impossible to translate Horace adequately, but it is impossible to explain satisfactorily the causes of his unbounded popularity—a popularity illustrated by the fact that when that well-known group of American book-lovers, the Bibliophile Society, were seeking to determine what great man of letters they would first honor by issuing one or more of his works in sumptuous form, they chose—not an author of their own day or nation or language—but a writer dead nearly two thousand years, of alien race and tongue, spokesman of a civilization remote and strange, the Horace of the immortal Odes. Yet admirers of Lucretius and of Catullus tell us very plainly and insistently that this Horace of the Odes is not a great poet. We listen respectfully to the charge and somehow we do not seem greatly to resent it; we merely read the Odes, if possible, more diligently and affectionately—not, it is true, in the splendid Bibliophile volumes, but in some well-worn pocket edition that has accompanied us on our journeys, or, like one I own, has helped us to while away the hours on a deer stand, through which the deer, as shy as the fawn with which the poet compared Chloë, simply would not run. If we own such a pocket volume, we leave our critical faculties in abeyance when Dante, in the Inferno, introduces Horace to us along with Homer and Ovid and Lucan; for do not our hearts tell us that in the truest sense of the phrase, he is worthy to walk with the greatest of this mediævally assorted company? We feel sure that Virgil must have loved him as a man; we have proof that Milton admired him as a poet. We deny to him "the grand manner," but we attribute to him every charm. When we seek to analyze this charm, we are left with the suspicion that, after we have pointed out many of its elements, such as humor, vivacity, kindliness, sententiousness, and the like, there are as many others, equally potent but more subtle, that escape us altogether. So we turn the hackneyed saying into "the charm is the man," and contentedly exchange analysis for enjoyment. And yet we are persuaded that no author is more worthy of the painstaking, detailed study characteristic of modern scholarship than is this same Epicurean poet, who so utterly defies analysis and would be the first, were he not but "dust and a shade," to smile at our ponderous erudition. We feel that the scholar who shall devote the best years of his life to studying the influence of Horace upon subsequent writers in the chief literatures and to collecting the tributes that have been paid to his genius by the great and worthy of all lands and ages, will deserve sincere benedictions. We conclude, in short, that that exquisite epithet, "the well-beloved," so inappropriately bestowed upon the worthless and flippant French King, belongs to Horace, and to Horace alone, jure divino.

It’s not just impossible to translate Horace properly, but it's also hard to explain why he’s so incredibly popular. This popularity is shown by the fact that when the well-known American book club, the Bibliophile Society, decided to honor a great writer by publishing one of their works in an elegant format, they chose—not a contemporary author from their own country or language—but a writer who died nearly two thousand years ago, from a different race and culture, the Horace of the immortal Odes. Yet, fans of Lucretius and Catullus make it clear that they believe this Horace of the Odes isn’t a great poet. We listen to this claim respectfully and somehow don’t seem to mind that much; instead, we read the Odes even more diligently and fondly—not, admittedly, in the beautiful Bibliophile editions, but in some well-worn pocket version that has traveled with us, or like one I have that helped us pass the time on a deer stand, where the deer, as shy as the fawn the poet compared Chloe to, just wouldn’t come out. If we have such a pocket book, we leave our critical judgment aside when Dante introduces Horace in the Inferno alongside Homer, Ovid, and Lucan; doesn’t our heart tell us that, in the truest sense, he deserves to be counted among the greatest of that medieval mix? We believe that Virgil must have liked him as a person; we know that Milton admired him as a poet. We may deny him "the grand manner," but we attribute to him every charm. When we try to break down this charm, we suspect that after pointing out many of its qualities, like humor, liveliness, generosity, and so on, there are just as many others—equally strong but more subtle—that completely evade us. So we change the common saying to "the charm is the man," and happily trade analysis for enjoyment. Yet, we’re convinced that no author deserves the in-depth attention that modern scholarship gives more than this same Epicurean poet, who completely defies analysis and would be the first to smile at our heavy-handed scholarship if he weren’t just "dust and a shade." We feel that the scholar who dedicates the best years of their life to studying Horace's impact on later writers in major literary traditions and gathering the tributes paid to his genius by great and worthy individuals from all times and places will truly deserve heartfelt praise. In short, we conclude that the beautiful title, "the well-beloved," so wrongly given to the trivial French King, rightfully belongs to Horace and to Horace alone, jure divino.

But this praise of Horace and this defense of his translators fails to justify or explain the writing of this paper. An honest confession being good for the soul, I will confess that the remarks that follow were first employed to introduce some versions of selected Odes I was once rash enough to publish. It is not a good sportsman that shuts his eyes and bangs away with both barrels at a flock of birds, and I now doubt whether I was wise in trying to bring down readers, if not with my verse-barrel, at least with my prose-barrel. Being older, I use at present only one barrel at a time and, perhaps for the same reason, I am wont to try the prose-barrel. And fortunately I can apply to the comments I intend to make on Horatian translators the quotation I used in order to mollify irate readers of my own verse renderings. It came from a once popular, now forgotten poet, the Rev. John Pomfret, and it ran as follows:—"It will be to little purpose, the Author presumes, to offer any reasons why the following POEMS appear in public; for it is ten to one whether he gives the true, and if he does, it is much greater odds whether the gentle reader is so courteous as to believe him."

But this praise of Horace and defense of his translators doesn't explain why I’m writing this paper. To be honest, I’ll admit that the comments that follow were originally used to introduce some versions of selected Odes I once had the nerve to publish. It's not a good sportsman who closes his eyes and fires off both barrels at a flock of birds, and now I question whether I was smart in trying to catch readers, if not with my verse, at least with my prose. As I’ve gotten older, I now only use one barrel at a time and, maybe for that same reason, I tend to prefer the prose barrel. Luckily, I can use a quote I employed to calm down annoyed readers of my poetry when discussing Horatian translators. It came from a once-popular but now forgotten poet, Rev. John Pomfret, and it went like this:—"It will be to little purpose, the Author presumes, to offer any reasons why the following POEMS appear in public; for it is ten to one whether he gives the true, and if he does, it is much greater odds whether the gentle reader is so courteous as to believe him."

So much has been written on the methods of Horace’s translators, and so much remains to be written, that it is hard to determine where to begin; but perhaps the preface of the late Professor Conington to his well-known translation of the Odes will furnish a proper point of departure. Few persons, whether translators or readers, are likely to object to Conington’s first premise that the translator ought to aim at "some kind of metrical conformity to his original." To reproduce an original Sapphic or Alcaic stanza in blank verse, or in the couplets of Pope, is at once to repel the reader who knows Horace well, and to give the reader who is unacquainted with Latin lyric poetry a totally erroneous conception of the metrical and rhythmical methods of the poet. To render a compressed Latin verse by a diffuse English one is to do injustice, as Conington observes, to the sententiousness for which Horace is justly celebrated, although the English scholar, had he written after the appearance of Mr. Gladstone’s attempt to render the Odes, might with propriety have added that the translator should not, in his avoidance of diffuseness, be seduced by the facility of the octosyllabic couplet. To translate Horace’s odes into anything but quatrains, except on occasions, is also to offend the meticulous Horatian and to mislead any reader who seeks to know the poet through an English rendering. It would seem, however, that when Professor Conington insisted that an English measure once adopted for the Alcaic must be used for every ode in which Horace employed the stanza just named, he went far toward hampering the translator, who, despite his proneness to offend, has his rights. That such uniformity ought to be aimed at, and that it will, as a rule, be aimed at, is doubtless true; but there is an element of the problem with which Conington does not seem sufficiently to have reckoned.

So much has been said about the methods of Horace’s translators, and so much still needs to be addressed, that it’s difficult to know where to start; however, the introduction of the late Professor Conington to his famous translation of the Odes might be a suitable starting point. Few people, whether they are translators or readers, would likely disagree with Conington’s first point that a translator should aim for "some kind of metrical conformity to his original." Reproducing an original Sapphic or Alcaic stanza in free verse or in Pope's rhymed couplets will push away readers who know Horace well and give those who are unfamiliar with Latin lyric poetry a completely misleading idea of the poet's metrical and rhythmic techniques. Rendering a compact Latin verse with a verbose English version does a disservice, as Conington notes, to the pithiness for which Horace is rightly celebrated, although the English scholar, if he had written after Mr. Gladstone’s attempt to translate the Odes, could have properly added that the translator should not, in trying to avoid wordiness, be tempted by the ease of the eight-syllable couplet. Translating Horace’s odes into anything but quatrains, except on certain occasions, also disrespects the precise nature of Horatian poetry and misleads any reader who wants to understand the poet through an English version. However, when Professor Conington insisted that an English meter, once chosen for the Alcaic stanza, must be used for every ode where Horace employed that stanza, he may have unnecessarily limited the translator, who, despite his tendency to offend, has his own rights. It’s true that such consistency should be aimed for and generally will be aimed for; but there’s a part of the issue that Conington doesn’t seem to have fully considered.

This is rhyme, which he assumed to be necessary to a successful rendition of an ode of Horace. A particular stanza not employing rhyme may probably be used without resulting loss in translating every ode written in a special form. Yet this may not be the case with a stanza employing rhymes, if the translator aim, as he should, at a fairly, though not an awkwardly literal rendering of the language of his original. There will necessarily be coincidences of sound in a literal prose version of a Latin stanza that will suggest a definite and advantageous arrangement of rhymes for a poetical version. To adopt a certain English stanza in which to render a certain Latin stanza wherever it occurs, is to do away with this natural advantage, which presents itself oftener than might at first be supposed.

This is rhyme, which he thought was essential for a successful rendition of an ode by Horace. A specific stanza that doesn't use rhyme can likely be translated without losing much in every ode written in a particular form. However, this might not hold true for a stanza that does use rhyme if the translator aims, as they should, for a fairly literal but not clumsy translation of the original language. There will inevitably be sound coincidences in a literal prose version of a Latin stanza that will suggest a clear and beneficial arrangement of rhymes for a poetic version. Choosing a specific English stanza to translate a particular Latin stanza whenever it appears negates this natural advantage, which happens more often than might initially be assumed.

Concrete examples will serve to make my meaning clear. The third ode of the first book, the admirable "Sic te diva potens Cypri," is written in what is called the Second Asclepiad meter; so is the delightful ninth ode of the third book, the "Donec gratus eram." We will assume that for the first of these odes the translator has chosen a quatrain with alternating rhymes (a, b, a, b). Following Professor Conington’s rule of uniformity, he must employ the same stanza for the second of the two odes, which, by the way, Conington himself did not do, for reasons which he gave at length. Now the fifth stanza of the "Donec gratus eram" runs as follows:—

Concrete examples will help clarify my point. The third ode of the first book, the amazing "Sic te diva potens Cypri," is written in what's known as the Second Asclepiad meter; the charming ninth ode of the third book, "Donec gratus eram," is also in this meter. We'll assume that the translator has chosen an quatrain with alternating rhymes (a, b, a, b) for the first of these odes. Following Professor Conington's rule of consistency, he must use the same stanza for the second ode, which, by the way, Conington himself did not do, for reasons he explained in detail. Now the fifth stanza of "Donec gratus eram" goes as follows:—

"What if old Venus returns?" Didactic juice forces bronze,
If Chloe is unbraided "Is the door to Lydia open?"

This may be rendered in prose:—

This can be expressed in prose:—

"What if the former Love return and join with brazen yoke the parted ones, if yellow-haired Chloë be shaken off, and the door stand open for rejected Lydia?"

"What if the former love comes back and boldly ties together those who were separated, if yellow-haired Chloe is cast aside, and the door is left open for rejected Lydia?"

If my memory does not deceive me, it was this stanza, and especially one word in its last verse, that determined the arrangement of rhymes in a version I attempted years ago, "Consule Planco." This verse seemed to run inevitably into

If I remember correctly, it was this stanza, and especially one word in its last line, that influenced the rhyme scheme in a version I tried to write years ago, "Consule Planco." This line felt like it naturally led into

"And the door stands open for Lydia."

It needed but a moment to detect in the first verse of the stanza a possible rhyme-word. The syllable re of redit furnished more, not the most apt of rhymes with door, but still sufficient, as things go with amateur translators, and with a perhaps pardonable tautology I wrote

It only took a moment to find a potential rhyming word in the first line of the stanza. The syllable re from redit provided more, which wasn't the best rhyme for door, but was good enough for amateur translators, and with a possibly forgivable repetition, I wrote

"What if the past Love returns again
Return—"

Two other rhymes were found with little difficulty in the di of diductos and in excutitur, which suggested wide and cast aside, and the whole stanza, omitting strictly metrical considerations, appeared, or rather might have appeared, for I have changed it slightly, as follows:—

Two other rhymes were easily found in the di of diductos and in excutitur, which suggested wide and cast aside, and the whole stanza, ignoring strict metrical considerations, seemed, or could have seemed, since I've made some slight changes, as follows:—

"What if the former Love returns once more
Bring back together the sweethearts who have drifted apart,
If fair-haired Chloë is cast aside,
"Did the door open for Lydia?"

This stanza seemed to have the merit of almost complete literalness, since it omitted only two epithets, and I thought it had no unpardonable defects of rhythm and diction. So I took it as a model, and with little difficulty translated the entire ode—with what success I should not say and others need not inquire.

This stanza appeared to have the advantage of being almost entirely literal, as it left out only two descriptors. I felt it had no major issues with rhythm and word choice. So, I used it as a template and easily translated the whole ode—how well I did, I won't say, and others don't need to ask.

That rhymes and their position in the stanza are often determined for the translator by his original or else by a prose rendering of that original seems also to be shown by the following version of the closing ode of the first book (Carm. xxxviii)—the graceful "Persicos odi":—

That rhymes and their placement in the stanza are often decided for the translator by the original text, or a prose version of that original, as demonstrated by the following version of the closing ode of the first book (Carm. xxxviii)—the elegant "Persicos odi":—

"I can't stand your Persian decorations, kid,
Your linden-woven crowns annoy, Stop looking for the place where strikes The lasting rose.
"To simple myrtle, add nothing;
The myrtle doesn't suit you, my dude, Neither you nor I are drinking my wine. "Under dense vines."

Here "puer," boy, and "Displicent," displease or annoy, seem to determine, not merely the first rhyme, but the rhyme arrangement (a, a), and it needs but a glance at the close of the first stanza of the original to show that another word rhyming with "boy" would be hard to obtain. It follows that, if we are to have a quatrain, the third and fourth verses should probably be made to rhyme (b, b), and it is not difficult to comply with this requirement, or to cast the second stanza in the mold of the first. It is, alas! too true that no equivalent to "blows" will be found in Horace, that "Sedulus curo" has been unceremoniously thrown aside, that the poet does not specifically mention "wine" as the beverage he liked to drink in his rustic arbor. But a "rose," which Horace does mention, certainly "blows" or blooms very often in English verse; it is not too far-fetched to get "nothing add" and "lad" out of "nihil allabores" and "ministrum"; and "vine" ("vite") has suggested "wine" to many generations of poets. But it is rhyme suggestions and their influence upon the choice of stanzaic form that have occasioned this mild protest against Professor Conington’s precepts of rigid stanzaic conformity. I am convinced, from the above examples and from many more, not only that uniformity of stanza is not to be strictly insisted upon when one is employing rhymes, but also that translators should search more diligently than they appear to do for the rhyme suggestions implicit in so many Horatian stanzas.

Here "puer," boy, and "Displicent," displease or annoy, seem to determine not just the first rhyme but also the rhyme scheme (a, a). A quick look at the end of the first stanza of the original shows that finding another word that rhymes with "boy" would be quite difficult. Therefore, if we want to have a quatrain, the third and fourth lines should likely rhyme (b, b), and it’s not too hard to meet this requirement or to shape the second stanza like the first. Unfortunately, it's true that no equivalent to "blows" can be found in Horace, that "Sedulus curo" has been disregarded, and that the poet doesn’t specifically mention "wine" as the drink he enjoyed in his rustic arbor. However, a "rose," which Horace does mention, certainly "blows" or blooms often in English poetry. It’s not too far-fetched to derive "nothing add" and "lad" from "nihil allabores" and "ministrum"; and "vine" ("vite") has led many generations of poets to suggest "wine." But it’s the rhyme suggestions and their impact on the choice of stanza form that have prompted this mild protest against Professor Conington’s strict rules on stanzaic conformity. I believe, from these examples and many more, that uniformity of stanza shouldn’t be strictly enforced when using rhymes, and that translators should search more thoroughly for the rhyme possibilities found in so many Horatian stanzas.

Upon other points it is easier to agree with Conington. For most of the odes the iambic movement natural to English is preferable, as Milton may be held to have perceived. He abandoned rhyme in his celebrated version of the "Quis multa gracilis" (i., v.), and hence he had an excellent opportunity to indulge in experiments in so-called logaœdic verse. But he clung to the iambic movement, and the fact is significant, although not to be pressed, since he gave us no other rendering of an entire ode. Here too, however, I must plead for a careful study of each ode by the would-be translator, for there seem to be cases in which it would be almost disastrous to attempt a version in iambics. Such a case is presented by the beautiful "Diffugere nives" (iv., vii.). The iambic renderings of Professor Conington and Sir Theodore Martin seem to stray far from the original movement—as far as the former’s "'No 'scaping death' proclaims the year" does from the diction of Horace or of any other good poet. It is true that English dactyls are dangerous things, especially in translations, where the padding or packing which is natural to the measure when employed in English, is increased by the padding inevitably introduced into a translation from a synthetic into an analytic language. Yet the dactylic movement of the First Archilochian, in which the "Diffugere nives" is written, is hardly without great loss to be represented by any use of English iambics. It presents more difficulty than the introduction of something resembling the movement of dactylic hexameters proper into our blank verse.

On other points, it's easier to agree with Conington. For most of the odes, the iambic rhythm that's natural to English works better, as Milton seemed to recognize. He dropped rhyme in his famous version of "Quis multa gracilis" (i., v.), which gave him a great chance to experiment with what’s called logaœdic verse. Still, he held onto the iambic rhythm, and this is notable, though it shouldn't be overstated, since he didn't provide another complete version of an ode. Here too, however, I must advocate for a careful analysis of each ode by any would-be translator, as there are instances where trying to create an iambic version could be nearly disastrous. A prime example is the beautiful "Diffugere nives" (iv., vii.). The iambic versions by Professor Conington and Sir Theodore Martin seem to stray significantly from the original rhythm—much like the former’s "'No 'scaping death' proclaims the year" does from the style of Horace or any other good poet. It's true that English dactyls can be tricky, especially in translations, where the extra padding that naturally comes with the meter in English is compounded by the additional padding that results from translating from a synthetic to an analytic language. However, trying to represent the dactylic rhythm of the First Archilochian, in which "Diffugere nives" is written, would undoubtedly result in a significant loss if done with any form of English iambics. It presents more of a challenge than introducing something resembling the rhythm of proper dactylic hexameters into our blank verse.

When the translator makes up his mind to attempt a close approximation to the Horatian meter, it would seem that he should eschew the use of rhyme as likely to operate against that effect of likeness to the original which he is striving to secure. But, since the use of rhyme in lyric poetry appears, as Conington held, to be essential at present if the English version is to be acceptable as poetry, this close approximation can be desirable in a few special cases only. It will not do to dogmatize on such matters, but it may be safely said that no poet, not even Milton or Whitman, has yet accustomed the English or the American ear to the use of rhymeless verse in lyrical poetry. Here and there a successful rhymeless lyric, such as Collins’s "Ode to Evening" and Tennyson’s "Alcaics" on Milton, shows us that rhymeless stanzas may occasionally be used for lyric purposes with good effect; but thus far those translators of Horace who have made a practice of eschewing rhyme have failed, as a rule, like the first Lord Lytton,[10] to give us versions that charm. Yet charm is what the translator of Horace should chiefly endeavor to convey.

When a translator decides to closely mimic the Horatian meter, it seems they should avoid using rhyme since it might detract from achieving a likeness to the original that they're aiming for. However, because using rhyme in lyric poetry seems, as Conington suggested, essential for the English version to be accepted as poetry today, this close mimicry may only be desirable in a few specific instances. It’s not wise to be overly rigid about such matters, but it can be confidently said that no poet, not even Milton or Whitman, has managed to make English or American listeners accustomed to rhymeless verse in lyrical poetry. While some successful rhymeless lyrics, like Collins’s "Ode to Evening" and Tennyson’s "Alcaics" on Milton, demonstrate that rhymeless stanzas can occasionally work well for lyrical purposes, translators of Horace who have consistently avoided rhyme often fall short, like the first Lord Lytton,[10] in providing versions that are captivating. Yet it's charm that the translator of Horace should primarily aim to convey.

I am still more confident that Conington was right when he insisted that the English rendering should be confined "within the same number of lines as the Latin." He was surely right when he taxed Sir Theodore Martin, who so frequently violated this rule, with an exuberance that is totally at variance with the severity of the classics. Such exuberance is almost certain to result if the translator abandon the strict number of the lines into which the Roman poet compressed his thought. It results, too, from the use of stanzas of over four verses each. There is no other rule of translating that will so effectively insure a successful retention of the diction of the original as this of the line for line rendering, whenever such rendering is possible. And that the diction and the thought of the poet should be more closely followed than is usually the case, admits of no manner of doubt. We have already seen that a close scrutiny of the Latin will often suggest an almost literal rendering of the thought and diction. Such a rendering is more desired by the reader who is familiar with Horace than by the reader who is not, but it will be both pleasing and serviceable to the latter, if the quality of literalness be not too slavishly obtained. Metrical considerations and general smoothness ought, as a matter of course, to weigh with every translator, but surely they ought not to outweigh accurate rendering of diction and thought, especially the diction and thought of a poet so felicitous as Horace in his phrasing, and so just and happy in his observation of life.

I’m even more convinced that Conington was right when he argued that English translations should stick to "the same number of lines as the Latin." He was definitely right when he criticized Sir Theodore Martin, who often broke this rule, for having an excess that completely clashes with the discipline of the classics. Such excess is almost guaranteed if the translator strays from the strict line count that the Roman poet used to convey his ideas. It also comes from using stanzas longer than four lines each. There’s no other translation rule that more effectively ensures a successful retention of the original's language than this line-for-line approach, whenever possible. And there’s no doubt that the poet’s language and ideas should be followed more closely than is usually done. We’ve seen that a careful examination of the Latin often suggests a nearly literal translation of its thoughts and expressions. Such a translation is more appreciated by readers familiar with Horace than by those who aren't, but it can be enjoyable and helpful for the latter, as long as it doesn’t sacrifice too much in terms of fidelity. Metrical considerations and overall smoothness should, of course, be important to every translator, but they shouldn't overshadow an accurate representation of the language and ideas, especially from a poet as skillful as Horace in his phrasing, and as insightful and observant about life.

In this connection I am not sure but that Conington went too far when he recommended the Horatian translator to hold by the diction of our own Augustan period. That the Age of Pope corresponds in many ways with that of Horace is true enough, and the student of the poetry of the eighteenth century who cares at all for the poets he studies is almost sure to be an admirer of the "Roman bard" whom Pope imitated. But the diction of Horace does not strike one as stilted, while that of Pope often does; and for a translator of our own days to employ a diction that seems in any way stilted is fatal not merely to the popularity and hence to the present effectiveness of his work, but also, in all probability, to its intrinsic value. There is a good deal of the commonplace also in the poetry produced in the eighteenth century; but commonplace the translator of Horace can least afford to be. Horace himself may approach dangerously near the commonplace, yet he seems always to miss it by a dexterous and graceful turn. The translator, running after, will miss this turn sufficiently often, as it is; he cannot, therefore, afford to steep himself in a literature that has a tendency to the commonplace. But just as little can he afford to steep himself in the Romantic Poets from Shelley to Swinburne. A translation, whether from the Greek or the Latin, imbibing the luxuriance of imagination and phrasing characteristic of these modern poets, may satisfy a reader still in his intellectual teens, but the reader who makes use of a translation of Horace is likely to have passed out of that period of immaturity. It may be heretical, but I fancy that the translator of Horace who steeps himself in Keats or Tennyson, will be even less likely to give us the ideal rendering than the translator who steeps himself in Pope. Luxuriance and elegance may at times be more displeasing than excessive polish and point.

I'm not sure if Conington went too far when he suggested that the translator of Horace should stick to the language of our own Augustan period. It's true that Pope's era often resembles Horace's in many ways, and any poetry student from the 18th century who genuinely appreciates the poets they're studying is likely to also admire the "Roman bard" that Pope emulated. However, while Horace’s language doesn’t come off as stiff, Pope’s often does; and for a modern translator to use language that feels stiff will not only hurt the popularity and effectiveness of their work but likely its inherent value as well. There’s a fair amount of the ordinary in the poetry of the 18th century, yet the translator of Horace can’t afford to be ordinary. Horace may come close to being commonplace, but he always manages to evade it with a clever and graceful twist. The translator, in trying to follow, will likely miss those twists all too often, so they cannot afford to immerse themselves in literature that tends toward the ordinary. Likewise, they shouldn’t immerse themselves in the Romantic poets from Shelley to Swinburne. A translation from Greek or Latin that absorbs the rich imagination and phrasing typical of these modern poets may please a reader in their teens, but someone using a translation of Horace has probably moved beyond that youthful stage. It might be a controversial opinion, but I believe that a translator of Horace who immerses themselves in Keats or Tennyson is even less likely to produce an ideal rendering than one who immerses themselves in Pope. Richness and elegance can sometimes be more off-putting than excessive polish and sharpness.

To mention the eighteenth century is to bring up the thought of Horatian paraphrases. A successful paraphrase is sometimes better as poetry than a good poetical translation, and it not infrequently conveys a juster idea of the spirit of Horace. It is almost needless to praise the work in this kind of Mr. Austin Dobson and of the late Eugene Field. But a paraphrase, however good, can never be entirely satisfying either to the reader that knows Horace or to the reader that desires to know him. Nor can a prose version be thoroughly satisfactory. What is wanted is not merely the drift of the poet’s thought, but, as near as may be, what he actually sang. The paraphrase may sing, and the prose version may give us the thought in nearly equivalent words, which may carry along with them not a little of the poet’s feeling; but neither answers all our requirements as well as a good rendering in verse may do—such a rendering, for example, as that which the late Goldwin Smith gave of the "Cœlo tonantem" (iii., v.)—yet there is surely room for all these forms of approach to a poet who is, paradoxically enough, at one and the same time, the most approachable and the most unapproachable of writers.

To talk about the eighteenth century is to bring up the ideas of Horatian paraphrases. A good paraphrase can sometimes be more poetic than a decent poetic translation, and it often conveys a clearer sense of Horace's spirit. It's almost unnecessary to praise the work of Mr. Austin Dobson and the late Eugene Field in this style. However, a paraphrase, no matter how well done, can never fully satisfy either a reader who is familiar with Horace or one who wants to understand him. The same goes for prose versions—they can't be completely satisfying either. What we need is not just the essence of the poet’s thoughts, but, as closely as possible, what he actually expressed. A paraphrase might have a poetic quality, and a prose version can deliver the ideas in similar words, which might carry some of the poet’s emotion; but neither meets all our needs as well as a good verse translation can—like the rendition of the "Cœlo tonantem" (iii., v.) by the late Goldwin Smith—yet there is clearly space for all these different ways to approach a poet who is, paradoxically, both very accessible and very elusive.

But one could write forever upon the topic of poetical translation in general, and of the translation of Horace’s odes in particular. It is a subject about which people will differ to the end of time; a subject the principles of which will never be thoroughly exemplified in practice. Still, it always seems to fascinate those who discuss it, and they have a way of hoping that what they have said about it will not be without value to those who want to read about it. "Hope springs eternal in the human breast," said the poet who also wrote of his great master lines that have not been surpassed in their kind:—

But one could go on forever about poetic translation in general, and specifically about translating Horace’s odes. It’s a topic that people will argue about for as long as time goes on; it's a subject whose principles will never be fully demonstrated in practice. Still, it always seems to captivate those who talk about it, and they tend to hope that what they’ve shared will be valuable to anyone interested in reading about it. "Hope springs eternal in the human breast," said the poet who also wrote lines about his great master that have never been surpassed:—

"Horace still captivates with effortless grace,
And without a method, it convinces us to make sense,
A friend will express it casually, "The most genuine ideas in the simplest way."
Typographical errors corrected by the etext transcriber:
at the rate of half a million=>at the rate of half a million
cruel discipline, and arbitrary power=>cruel discipline, and arbitrary power
to to speak=>so to speak
which examples of the classic repository=>which examples of the classic repertory
Master Pathelin=>Maître Pathelin
Emil Augier=>Émile Augier {2}

FOOTNOTES:

[1] "In Latin and French hath many soueraine wittes had great delyte to endite, and have many noble thinges fulfilde, but certes there ben some that speaken their poisye in French, of which speche the Frenchmen have as good a fantasye as we have in hearying of Frenchmen’s Englishe."—Chaucer’s Testament of Love.

[1] "Many brilliant minds have enjoyed writing in Latin and French, creating many noble works. However, there are some who express their poetry in French, which the French appreciate just as much as we enjoy hearing English from French speakers."—Chaucer’s Testament of Love.

[2] "Holinshed, in his Chronicle, observes, 'afterwards, also, by deligent travell of Geffry Chaucer and of John Gowre, in the time of Richard the Second, and after them of John Scogan and John Lydgate, monke of Berrie, our said toong was brought to an excellent passe, notwithstanding that it never came unto the type of perfection until the time of Queen Elizabeth, wherein John Jewell, Bishop of Sarum, John Fox, and sundrie learned and excellent writers, have fully accomplished the ornature of the same, to their great praise and immortal commendation.'"

[2] "Holinshed, in his Chronicle, notes, 'later on, thanks to the diligent efforts of Geoffrey Chaucer and John Gower during the time of Richard the Second, and then John Scogan and John Lydgate, a monk from Bury, our language reached an outstanding level, even though it didn't reach its full perfection until the time of Queen Elizabeth. During that era, John Jewel, Bishop of Sarum, John Fox, and various other learned and talented writers fully developed its beauty, earning them great praise and lasting recognition.'"

[3] "Live ever sweete booke; the simple image of his gentle witt, and the golden-pillar of his noble courage; and ever notify unto the world that thy writer was the secretary of eloquence, the breath of the muses, the honey-bee of the daintyest flowers of witt and arte, the pith of morale and intellectual virtues, the arme of Bellona in the field, the tonge of Suada in the chamber, the sprite of Practise in esse, and the paragon of excellency in print."—Harvey, Pierce’s Supererogation.

[3] "Live on, sweet book; the simple reflection of his gentle wit, and the strong support of his noble courage; and always let the world know that your author was the master of eloquence, the voice of the muses, the honeybee of the most delicate flowers of wit and art, the essence of moral and intellectual virtues, the strength of Bellona in battle, the speaker of charm in the bedroom, the spirit of practice in action, and the epitome of excellence in print."—Harvey, Pierce’s Supererogation.

"Through earth and deep waters,
The pen surpasses skill.
And deftly handles the world's misuse,
And show us in a glass,
The virtue and the vice Of everyone alive; The honeycomb that bees make
Isn't so sweet in the hive,
As are the golden leaves That drop from the poet's head! Which goes beyond our usual conversation "As far as dross leads." Graveyard.

[5] From the Atlantic Monthly, January, 1869.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ From the Atlantic Monthly, January 1869.

[6] One of Mr. Lincoln’s neatest strokes of humor was his treatment of this gentleman when a laudable curiosity induced him to be presented to the President of the Broken Bubble. Mr. Lincoln persisted in calling him Mr. Partington. Surely the refinement of good-breeding could go no further. Giving the young man his real name (already notorious in the newspapers) would have made his visit an insult. Had Henri IV. done this, it would have been famous.

[6] One of Mr. Lincoln’s best jokes was how he treated this guy when a respectful curiosity led him to meet the President of the Broken Bubble. Mr. Lincoln kept calling him Mr. Partington. It was the height of politeness. Using the young man’s actual name (which was already well-known in the newspapers) would have turned his visit into an insult. If Henri IV had done this, it would have been legendary.

[7] June 30, 1895.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ June 30, 1895.

[8] 1876.

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ 1876.

[9] This essay appeared originally in the Atlantic Monthly for May, 1883. During the thirty years which have elapsed since it was written the manifestations of the colonial spirit then apparent in the United States have not only altered in character but, I am glad to say, have weakened, diminished, and become less noticeable. Since 1883, also, there has been much achieved by Americans in Art and Literature, in painting, in sculpture, in music, and particularly in architecture. Success in all these fields has, with few exceptions, been won by men working in the spirit which is not colonial, but which it was the purpose of this essay to inculcate as the true one to which alone we could look for fine and enduring achievement. I have called attention to the date at which the essay was written in order that those who read it may remember that it applies in certain points to the conditions of thirty years ago and not to those of the present day.

[9] This essay was originally published in the Atlantic Monthly in May 1883. In the thirty years since it was written, the expressions of the colonial mindset that were evident in the United States have not only changed but, thankfully, have also lessened, faded, and become less prominent. Since 1883, Americans have accomplished a lot in Art and Literature, including painting, sculpture, music, and especially architecture. Success in all these areas has mostly been achieved by individuals working in a spirit that is not colonial, but rather one that this essay aims to promote as the only true path to great and lasting accomplishment. I highlight the date when the essay was written so that readers remember that it pertains to certain aspects of the conditions from thirty years ago, not those of today.

[10] Just as I am revising these comments, the two volumes of the Earl of Lytton’s admirable biography of his grandfather find themselves on my table. As was to be expected, they contain several interesting references to Horace. "He is the model for popular lyrics, and certainly the greatest lyrist extant." Again—"Observe how wonderfully he compresses and studies terseness, as if afraid to bore an impatient, idle audience; secondly, when he selects his picture, how it stands out—Cleopatra’s flight, the speech of Regulus, the vision of Hades in the ode on his escape from the tree, &c."

[10] Just as I'm revising these notes, the two volumes of the Earl of Lytton’s impressive biography of his grandfather are on my table. As expected, they include some intriguing references to Horace. "He is the model for popular lyrics and certainly the greatest lyricist around." Additionally—"Notice how beautifully he compresses and focuses on brevity, as if he’s wary of boring an impatient, lazy audience; and when he picks his imagery, how it really stands out—Cleopatra’s flight, Regulus’s speech, the vision of Hades in the ode about his escape from the tree, etc."

image of the book’s back cover

image of the book’s back cover



Download ePUB

If you like this ebook, consider a donation!